A COMMENTARY ON
PROVERBS
Charles Bridges
New York/Pittsburgh: R. Carter, 1847.
PREFACE.
PROVERBIAL teaching is one of the most ancient forms of instruction.
It was well adapted to the rudeness and simplicity of the first ages,
when books were few, and philosophy little understood. The mind,
unpractised to the slow process of reasoning, would be much more
easily arrested by terse sentences, expressing a striking sentiment in
the fewest words. The wise man himself has given the best definition
of these sententious maxims. Their elegance he describes under the
figure of "apples of gold in pictures (network) of silver."* Their force
and permanent impression are ''as goads and nails fastened by the
Master of assemblies"†--- driven closely home to the heart and con-
science, and fastened in the memories by the appointed instructor of the
people.
The antiquity of this teaching was recognised in the Church even
before the age of Solomon. (1 Sam. xxiv. 13.) Classic Annals have
recorded Aphorisms similarly constructed from men of wisdom. All
of these however were of a later date. Some possibly might be dim
scintillations from this fountain light; so that the King of Israel was
---as an old expositor has remarked ---'the disciple of none, but the
instructor of them all.'‡ Indeed his mind largely dealt in this intel-
* Chap. xxxv. 11. This image reminds us of Mr. Addison's apt description conceived in
his best style of taste and beauty--'By similitudes, drawn from the visible parts of nature,
a truth in the understanding is, as it were, reflected by the imagination. We are enabled
to see something like colour and shape in a notion, and to discover a scheme of thoughts
traced out upon matter. And here the mind receives a great deal of satisfaction, and has
two of its faculties gratified at the same time, while the fancy is busy in copying after the
understanding, and transcribing ideas out of the intellectual world into the material.'
Concluding paper on 'the Pleasures of the Imagination.' Spectator, No. 421.
† Eccles. xli. 11. LXX. write paroimiai (para oimoj—via—sayings spoken in the way.
Comp. Dr. Johnson's definition) a word often used in the New Testament for parables.
(John, x. 6; xvi. 25, 29.) Marg. Both were of the same popular character. A proverb is
often given in the form of a parable.
‡ Lavater. Comment. in Prov. Pref. Tigur. 1596.
iv PREFACE.
lectual exercise. "He spake three thousand proverbs." (1 Kings, iv.
32.) And from this valuable mass of thought he was directed, under
Divine inspiration, to "set in order" a collection for the instruction of
the Church to the end of time.*
Possibly some would rather have desired the preservation of his
discourses on Natural History (lb. iv. 33), than on Practical Wisdom.
But this Sovereign discrimination shews the real intent of the Scrip-
tures--not to teach philosophy, but religion; not to make men of
science, but men of sound godliness.
All competent judges will admit this Book to be eminently fitted
for this great end. What the Roman Orator pronounced of Thucydides,
applies far more truly to this King of Jerusalem ---'so full of matter,
that he comprised as many sentences as words.'† This wonderful Book
is indeed a mine of Divine wisdom. The views of God are holy and
reverential. The observation of human nature is minute and accurate.
The rule of life and conduct is closely applied, to make "the man of
God perfect, thoroughly furnished unto all good works" (2 Tim. iii.
16, 17); so that, as Mr. Scott well remarks--'we shall perceive the
meaning and utility of the Proverbs, in proportion to our experience
in true religion, our acquaintance with our own hearts, and with
human nature, and the extent and accuracy of our observation on the
character and affairs of men.‡ Eusebius mentions the whole consent of
the ancients, considering the Book of Proverbs to be ‘Wisdom fraught
with every kind of virtue.'§ Bishop Hall drew out mainly from it a
complete system of 'Divine Arts.'|| And though the Apostate Julian
* Eccles. xii.9. Grotius supposes the Book to be a compilation from preceding writers.
This degradation of Solomon is a gratuitous conjecture, unsupported by a title of evidence.
But such are the irreverent liberties that proud learning dares to take with the Word of
God!
† Cicero de Oratore, lib. ii. 14. Elsewhere he gives nearly the same judgment of Euripides.
Epist. Lib. xvi. 8.
‡ Pref. to Comment. On Prov.
§ Hist. lib. iv. c. 25. pana<reton sofi<an. Jerome's direction to one of his friends for
the education of his daughter is--'Let her have first of all the Book of Psalms for holiness
of heart, and be instructed in the Proverbs of Solomon for her godly life. '--Epist. vii. ad
Laetam. Matthew Henry, in his beautiful portrait of his mother, describes her as one,
that was ‘very well versed in Solomon’s Proverbs, and the rules of wisdom, which may be
fetched from thence for the conduct of human life, and knew how to apply them, and to use
knowledge aright.'--Sermon on the Death of Mrs. Katherine Henry.
|| 'Solomon's Divine Arts of Ethics, Politics, Economics --that is --the Government of
Behaviour, Commonwealth, Family --drawn into method out of his Proverbs, and Eccle-
siastes.'
Works, viii. 427. Edited by Rev. P. Hall. Oxford, 1837.
PREFACE v
scornfully preferred to it the sayings of Heathen Philosophy;* yet the
apostrophe of the son of Sirach was justly applied to its author--
'How wise wast thou in thy youth, and as a flood filled with under-
standing! Thy soul covered the whole earth, and thou fillest it with
dark parables.'†
As to its canonical authority' ---Michaelis well observes, 'that no
Book of the Old Testament is so well ratified by the evidence of quota-
tions.'‡ A few of the Jewish Talmudists appear to have expressed
some doubt of its Divine stamp, but upon grounds so futile, that they
were abandoned upon a more mature consideration.§ Ecclesiastical
History has recorded only one dissentient from the judgment of the
universal Church; and that one condemned by her authoritative
council.|| Witsius has admirably refuted the neological cavils of his
day.¶ Nothing has been said from any quarter to weaken the unhesi-
tating decision of our judgment, that the pen is that of the King of
Israel; but the words are the wisdom of God.
Some difference exists among expositors as to the exact divisions of
the Book. We have been led to divide it into three parts. In giving a
more succinct account of these several parts, we shall avail ourselves
largely, though necessarily in an abridged form, of the observations of
a Biblical scholar, not more remarkable for his profound learning, than
for his elegant taste.**
The first Part--all agree--extends from the opening of the Work
to the close of the ninth chapter. It is--as Dr. Good observes--
‘chiefly confined to the conduct of early life. All the most formidable
* Apud Cyrill. Contra Julian. lib. vii.
† Ecclus. xlvii. 14, 15. The whole passage (verses 12-22) is very beautiful. Eusebius
remarks of Solomon, that while, inspired by Divine wisdom, "he consecrated all his writings
to the profit and salvation of souls; yet he used these dark 'parables' for the exercise of
the mind. Contr. Marcell. lib. i. c. iii p. 17.
‡ Introd. to New Test. i. 207. Comp. especially in LXX. Chap. iii. 7. with .Rom. xii. 16;
11, 12, with Heb. xii. 5, 6; 34, with James, iv. 6. 1 Pet. v. 5; x. 12, with 1 Pet. iv. 8; xi.
31, with 1 Pet. iv.18; xxv. 6, 7, with Luke, xiv. 8-10; 21, 22, with Rom. xii 20; xxvi. 11,
with 2 Pet. ii. 22; xxvii. 1, with James, iv. 13, 14. It is a marked distinction drawn
between this Book and the Apocryphal Book of Wisdom, so similar in character; that from
the latter no quotation can be adduced in the New Testament.
§ Hottinger, Thesaur. Philol. lib. ii. c. 1. sect. 14. Comp. Carpzov. Introd. ad Lib.
Canon. Part. ii. C. iv. § 7.
|| Theodore Mopsuest. condemned by 5th Council of Constaninople, A.D. 551.
¶ Miscell. Sacra, lib. i c. xviii. 30-34.
** Extracts from an unpublished Translation of the Book of Proverbs, by the late Dr.
Good, in his Life by Dr. Gregory, pp. 286-306.
vi PREFACE.
dangers to which this season is exposed, and "the sins which most
easily beset it," are painted with the hand of a master. And while
the progress and issues of vice are exhibited under a variety of the
most striking delineations and metaphors, in their utmost deformity
and horror; all the beauties of language, and all the force of eloquence
are poured forth in the diversified form of earnest expostulation,
insinuating tenderness, captivating argument, and sublime allegory,
to win the ingenuous youth to virtue and piety, and to fix him in a
steady pursuit of his duties towards God and man. Virtue is pro-
nounced in the very outset to be essential wisdom, and vice or wicked-
ness essential folly. The only wise man therefore is declared to be the
truly good and virtuous, or he that fears God, and reverences his law;
while the man of vice and wickedness is a fool, a stubborn or perverse
wretch, and an abomination to Jehovah.
Wisdom is hence allegorized as a tree of life, yielding delicious
shade, fruit, and protection to those that approach her branches ;
throwing a garland of honour around their shoulders, and decorating
their heads with a graceful chaplet, more precious than rubies. She is
a sage and eloquent monitor, lifting up her warning voice at the gates
and in the squares of the city; denouncing to the young the snares
and dangers, to which they are exposed; and exhorting them to
abandon "the way of the wicked, which is as darkness," for the path
of the just, which is
--------'As the brightening dawn,
Advancing and brightening to perfect day.'*
The Second Part commences at the opening of the tenth chapter,
as is obvious from the introductory clause. The style and manner
of the second part are as different as possible from those of the first.
* We add two interesting testimonies, of a widely different character. 'The first part,
including the first nine chapters, is a kind of exordium, and is varied, elegant, sublime,
and truly poetical. The natural order is generally observed, and the parts are aptly con-
nected together. It is embellished with very beautiful descriptions and prosopopoeias, and
adorned with the most finished style, together with every kind of poetical ornament; so
that it scarcely yields, in beauty, to any specimen of Sacred Poetry'--Bp. LOWTH'S
Lectures on Heb. Poetry, xxiv. (Mr. Holden ventures to doubt whether this picture is not
somewhat over-wrought.--Pref. to Translation of Proverbs, xxxix.) 'The first nine chap-
ters of the Book of Proverbs present us with a most interesting specimen of "acceptable
words." There is in them an inimitable union of admonitory fidelity, and enticing and
subduing kindness. Like Paul, he "exhorts, comforts, and charges, as a father doth his
children." The whole soul of the writer is breathed out in the earnestness of benevolent
desire.'-- WARDLAW on Eccles. xii. 10.
PREFACE. vii
It is evidently designed for the use of persons advanced from the state
of youth to that of manhood. While in the preceding, addressed to
the young, the richest ornaments of the fancy are made choice of to
captivate their attention, and allure them to a right practice; in the
present all is business and activity, brevity, continuity, and terseness.
Every thought, though as highly polished, is at the same time as
compressed as possible; and the Writer, thoroughly aware of the
value of every moment of time at this important period, lays down
a complete series of short rules of life, and concentrates the most
momentous precepts into the narrowest compass. The former appeals
to the imagination; the latter to the judgment. The one exhibits
all the genius of poetry; the latter all the art of composition; and
hence the general matter is rendered as attractive in the one instance
as in the other.
'The great object in each of the Proverbs of the present part,
is to enforce a moral principle in words so few, that they may be
easily learnt, and so curiously selected and arranged, that they may
strike and fix the attention instantaneously; while, to prevent the
mind from becoming fatigued by a long series of detached sentences,
they are perpetually diversified by the changes of style and figure.
Sometimes the style is rendered striking by its peculiar simplicity,
or the familiarity of its illustration;1 sometimes by the grandeur
or loftiness of the simile employed on the occasion;2 sometimes by
an enigmatical obscurity,3 which rouses the curiosity; very frequently
by a strong and catching antithesis;4 occasionally by a playful
iteration of the same word;5 and in numerous instances by the
elegant pleonasms or the expansion of a single or common idea by
a luxuriance of agreeable words.'6
The Third Part we conceive to comprise the last seven chapters.
The first five were written by Solomon, and edited some centuries
after by the royal scribes in the reign of Hezekiah. The two last
were written by separate hands, but preserved by Divine care and
altogether worthy of the place they hold in the inspired Canon.
The time when this book was written is a matter of some un-
[1] Chap. I. 19; xvi. 3; xxii. 2.
2 Chap. xii. 58; xv. 11; xxi. 16, 22.
3 Chap. xvi. 24; xvii. 8; xviii. 20.
4 Chap. xiv. 10; xvi. 16; xvii. 10; xviii. 4; xix. 12; xx. 14.
5 Chap. xi. 15; xiii. 20; xvii. 13, 15.
6 Chap. xvi. 32; xvii. 17, 27, 28; xix. 6.
viii PREFACE.
certainty. We cannot doubt but its contents were a part of "the
three thousand Proverbs," which "he spake" before his most lament-
able fall. (1 Kings, iv. 32.) They were therefore the exercise of his
vast and comprehensive mind, under the full influence of his Divine
wisdom. (Ib. verse 29.) They might, however, as many judicious
critics have thought, have been "set in order" (Eccles. xii. 9) in their
present form at a period subsequent to that afflictive event. Both
parts of this hypothesis read a most solemn practical lesson. Do
we see "outlandish women causing him to sin" (Neh. xiii. 26)--
this "beloved of his God" falling himself into the snare, which he
so minutely described, and against which he so earnestly and re-
peatedly warned?1 Christian Ministers! does not Solomon, no less
than St. Paul,2 awfully teach us, that preaching to others will not
save our own souls? The supposition of the posterior arrangement
gives additional weight to his faithful admonitions. They come to
us, like the exhortations of the restored Apostle,3 with all the force
of painful experience, in the true spirit of his Master's command--
"When thou art converted, strengthen thy brethren."4
The interpretation of this Book requires much care and sobriety.
Believing the principles of the Old and New Testament to be essen-
tially the same, it seems reasonable to expound the more obscure by
the more clear. The primary duty is indeed to affix to each Proverb
its own literal and precise meaning. This is undoubtedly its spiritual
meaning--that is--the mind of the Spirit. In an extended appli-
cation of this discovered meaning, or in deducing inferences from it,
judgment, not imagination, must be the interpreter. When no other
than a literal meaning is plainly intended, the object must be, not
to search out a new and miscalled spiritual meaning, but to draw
practical instruction from its obvious sense.
There is, however--we may remark--a line to be drawn between
exposition and illustration. The figures used in this Book, after their
literal meaning has been wrought out, may fairly be used as illustrative
of other collateral truths, not specifically intended. The Sacred
Writers appear to warrant this principle of accommodation,* though
1 Chap. ii. v. vii. ix. xxii. 14; xxiii; 27, 28.
2 1 Cor. ix. 27.
3 1 Pet. i. 13, 17; iv. 7; v. 8, with Matt. xxvi. 35.
4 Luke, xxii. 32.
* See the Apostle's application of Ps. xix. 4, at Rom. x. 18, and DODDRIDGE'S and
GUYSE’S Paraphrase. Compo SCOTT on Chap. xxv. 6, 7.
PREFACE. ix
its use requires great delicacy and consideration; lest it should
divest Scripture of its determinate meaning, and identify us with
those artists, whom Dr. South memorializes, 'who can draw any-
thing out of anything.'*
But with all care to preserve a soundly-disciplined interpretation,
we must not forget, that the Book of Proverbs is a part of the volume
entitled--"The word of Christ." (Col. iii. 16.) And so accurately does
the title describe the Book, that the study of it brings the whole sub-
stance of the volume before us. It furnishes indeed the stimulating
motive to search the Old Testament Scripture (John, v. 39)--the true
key that opens the Divine Treasure-house; so that, as Mr. Cecil ob-
serves--'If we do not see the golden thread through all the Bible,
marking out Christ, we read the Scripture without the Key.'† This
remark however does not undervalue its large mass of historical and
practical instruction. But unquestionably Christ is the Sun of the
whole Scripture system; "and in his light we see the light" (Ps.
xxxvi. 9), that reflects upon every point of practical obligation, and
quickens life and energy throughout the whole Christian path. There
is therefore, as Professor Franke reminds us--'much JOY, comfort, and
delight to be found in the writings of the Old Testament (especially in
reading those places, which before were wearisome and almost irksome)
when we perceive Christ is so sweetly pictured there.'‡
It has, been recorded, of Mary Jane Graham, 'that she was delighted
in the course of her study of the Book of Proverbs to have Christ so
much and so frequently before her mind'1--a recollection--her bio-
grapher ventured to observe--of great moment for the spiritual dis-
cernment of the divine wisdom treasured up in this storehouse of prac-
tical instruction.'§ Indeed, considering that these "Proverbs set in
order--these words of the wise"--were originally "given from one
Shepherd" (Eccles. xii. 9-11), whom we cannot surely fail to identify,
we might naturally expect them to record distinct testimony of himself.
We cannot but fear, however, that this portion of the sacred volume
[1] Chap. 1. viii. ix. &c.
* Sermon on Matt. v. 44.
† Mrs. HAWKES'S Life, p.171. So Augustine--'The Old Testament has no true relish
if Christ be not understood in it.' Ninth Tractat. on John.
‡ Christ the Sum and Substance of Holy Scripture. Sect. xxi.
§ Life, chap. v.
x PREFACE.
is not generally estimated at its just value. Doubtless its pervading
character is not, either explicit statement of doctrinal truth, or lively ex-
ercises of Christian experience. Hence the superficial reader passes over
to some (in his view) richer portion of the Scriptural field. Now we
readily admit, that all parts of the Bible are not of equal importance.
But to value one part to the disparagement of another, is a slight to the
divine testimony, that will be visited with a severe rebuke. Such a
reader will only be possessed of mutilated fragments of truth, severed
from their vital influence. He will never rise beyond a sickly senti-
mentalism. Seeking for novelty and excitement, rather than for the
food of solid instruction; like Pharaoh's kine,* he devours much, but
digests nothing. Never will he have light enough for the firm settle-
ment of his faith; neither can he receive the true moulding of the mind
of the Spirit, or the impress of the divine image.
But the question has been often asked--and that--not in cavilling,
but in an anxiously enquiring, spirit--'How can I read this Book pro-
fitably ?' Not unfrequently the confession has been added--'My mind
and soul do not get food from it. I think I am less interested in this,
than in any other, part of Scripture. I acknowledge the wisdom of its
sayings. I am fully persuaded, that, being the Word of God, it was
not written in vain. The fault therefore must be in myself. Still the
question returns-- How am I to read it with profit?'
Now it might almost appear, as if the rules given at the opening of
the Book were intended to answer this question. (Chap. ii. 1-4.) Cer-
tain it is, that they do furnish the most satisfactory reply. The first
and chief direction--that which gives life to every other--that which
applies to every page and every verse of the Bible is--Begin with
prayer--"Cry--lift up thy voice." Then combine a pondering mind
with a praying heart. Actively apply thyself to "seek and search for
the hid treasures." The riches lie not on the surface. Only those
therefore, that dig into the bowels of the earth--not the readers, but
"the searchers of the Scriptures"--are enriched. (John, v. 39.) If the sur-
face be barren, the mine beneath is inexhaustible. Indeed it is a wise
discipline, that has made an active spirit of meditation necessary to
give solid and fruitful interest to this study, and to possess ourselves of
* Gen. xli 20, 21. Comp. the picture drawn, 2 Tim. iii. 7.
PREFACE. xi
a blessing, which carelessness or indolence will never realize. The pro-
mise here held out to diligent investigation fixed that intelligent
Christian just mentioned 'on one occasion in intense meditation for two
hours. She appeared to be lost in astonishment and gratitude at the
condescension and kindness of God in giving a promise, so free, so
encouraging. She grasped it, as if determined not to let it go.'*
The habit of interested attention being fixed, how shall we best
"apply the heart to the understanding" of the Book? Here the
valuable exercise of Scripture reference will greatly expand our own
thoughtful meditation. Gather contributions from all parts of the field.
Many a doubtful or apparently uninteresting Proverb will thus be
brightened in instructive application. We are persuaded, that an
enlarged Scriptural study, with whatever collateral helps may be within
our reach, will bring no regret in having rested awhile in this part of
the field, instead of passing onwards to a more inviting surface. To
advert once more to our Scriptural student--'She frequently employed
herself in the profitable exercise of "comparing spiritual things with
spiritual;" Scripture with itself; thus making God His own interpreter.
Much light and heavenly unction she conceived herself to have gained
by this means.'† The fruitfulness of this exercise will be, when we
"find God's words" as our treasure; "eat them" as our invigorating
food; and "they" thus become "the joy and rejoicing of our hearts."
(Jer. xv: 16.) 'Set your affection'--saith the apocryphal writer--
‘upon my words. Desire them, and ye shall be instructed. Wisdom is
glorious, and never fadeth away; yea, she is easily seen of those that
love her, and found of such as seek her. She preventeth those that
.desire her, in making herself first known unto them. Whoso seeketh
her early shall have no great travail; for he shall find her sitting at his
doors. Whoso watcheth for her‡ shall quickly be without care. For
she goeth about seeking such as are worthy of her, sheweth herself
favourably unto them in the ways, and meeteth them, however,
in every thought.'§
* Life of Mary Jane Graham, ut sup.
† Ib. Nicholls's Exposition of this Book, and Scott's Marginal References, will give
much valuable assistance to this study. No foreign help, however, should damp the
profitable interest of original research.
‡ [O a]grupnh<saj --whom wisdom scarcely affords time to sleep.
§ Wisd. vi. 11-16. The reader will find throughout this Exposition frequent reference
xii PREFACE.
An accurate apprehension of the main end and scope of this Book
will greatly facilitate the understanding of it. Different portions of
Scripture may be seen to have different ends, all however subordinate
to one end--primary and supreme. Without entering into detail
foreign to our purpose, suffice it to remark, that the end of this Book
appears to be, to set out a system of practical instruction, generally
applicable. Nor let this be thought a low gradation in the Christian
scheme. Unpalatable as it may be to the mere professor of godliness,*
the true man of God will honour practical inculcation in its place, no
less than doctrinal statement. "The truth as it is in Jesus"--that
which flows from him, leads to him, and centres in him--that in which
"we are to be learned, and to be taught by him"--is practical truth.
(Eph. iv. 20-24.) While other parts of Scripture shew us the glory of
our high calling; this may instruct in all minuteness of detail how to
" walk worthy of it." Elsewhere we learn our completeness in Christ
(Col. ii. 10): and most justly we glory in our high exaltation as "joint-
heirs with Christ, made to sit together in heavenly places in Christ
Jesus." (Rom. viii. 17. Eph. ii. 6.) We look into this Book, and, as by
the aid of the microscope, we see the minuteness of our Christian
obligations; that there is not a temper, a look, a word, a movement,
the most important action of the day, the smallest relative duty, in
which we do not either deface or adorn the image of our Lord, and the
profession of his name. Surely if the book conduced to no other end,
it tends to humble even the most consistent servant of God, in the
consciousness of countless failures. Not only therefore is the last
chapter--as Matthew Henry would have it--'a looking-glass for
ladies,' but the whole Book is a mirror for us all.
Nor is it only a mirror to shew our defects. It is also a guide-
to the Apocryphal Books of Wisdom--but only as human authorities. Mr. Horne has most
demonstrably overthrown their claim to a place in the sacred canon. (Introd. to Scrip.
vol. i. Append. No.1. last edit.) Yet while we would most distinctly mark the wide gulf
between inspired and uninspircd writings, there seems no necessity to lose much valuable
and beautiful instruction, only because the writers were not inspired, or their writings were
tainted with pernicious errors.
* We fear that Mr. Scott's hearers at the Lock as a sect have not died away. Their real
objection--as his son admirably observed--'was not to Arminianism (of which they
very probably scarcely knew the meaning) but to half, or more than half the word of God.
They had been accustomed to overlook it themselves, and could not bear to have it pressed
upon their notice by another.'--Scott's Life, pp. 232-235. Yet the preceptive part of an
Epistle may be set out, so dissociated from the doctrine, that the main-spring of practical
godliness is weakened, if not destroyed.
PREFACE. xiii
book and directory for godly conduct. The details of the external
life, in all the diversified spheres, are given or implied with perfect
accuracy, and with a profound knowledge of the workings of the human
heart. 'Beside a code of laws directly religious, a variety of admirable
rules stream forth from the deep recesses of wisdom, and spread over
the whole field.'* All ranks and classes have their word in season.
The sovereign on the throne is instructed as from God.1 The princi-
ples of national prosperity or decay are laid open.2 The rich are
warned of their besetting temptations.3 The poor are cheered in their
worldly humiliation.4 Wise rules are given for self-government.5 'It
bridles the injurious tongue,6 corrects the wanton eye,7 and ties the
unjust hand in chains.8 It prevents sloth,9 chastises all absurd desires;10
teaches prudence11 raises man's courage;12 and represents temper-
ance and chastity after such a fashion, that we cannot but have them
in veneration.'† To come to important matters so often mismanaged
--the blessing or curse of the marriage ordinance is vividly pour-
trayed.13 Sound principles of family order and discipline are incul-
cated.14 Domestic economy is displayed in its adorning consistency.15
Nay--even the minute courtesies of daily life are regulated.16 Self-
denying consideration of others,17 and liberal distribution18 are enforced.
All this diversified instruction is based upon the principles of true
godliness.19 Thus if the Psalms bring the glow upon the heart, the
Proverbs "make the face to shine." Indeed the Writer may mention
as one motive that led him to this work; that, having in a former
Exposition‡ shewn at large Christian experience to be built upon the
doctrines of the gospel, he wished to exhibit Christian practice as rest-
ing upon the same foundation. That is not sound faith, that does not
issue in practical godliness. Nor is there any true morality, apart from
1 Chap. viii. 15, 16; xvi. 10-13; xx. 8, 26; xxi. 1; xxv. 2-5; xxviii. 16; xxix. 14; xxxi. 1-9.
2 Chap. xi. 14; xiv. 34; xxiv. 6; xxviii. 2. 3 Chap. xviii. 11; xxiii. 4, 5; xxviii. 20, 22.
4 Chap. xv.16,17; xvii. 1; xix.1, 22; xxviii. 6. 5 Chap. iv. 23-27; xvi. 32; xxiii. 1.-3.
6 Chap. iv. 24; x. 31; xvii. 20; xxv. 23; xxvi. 20-26.
7 Chap. v. 20, 21; vi. 25-29; xxiii. 26, 27. 8 Chap. xviii. 5; xxviii. 8.
9 Chap. vi. 6-11; xii. 27; 4; xix. 24; xx. 4; xxiv. 30-34. 10 Chap. xxi. 25, 26.
11 Chap. iv. 14, 15; vi. 1-5; xiv. 8, 15, 18; xxii. 3; xxv. 6-10. 12 Chap. xxviii. 1.
13 Chap. xviii. 22; xix. 14; xxxi. 10, with xii. 4; xix. 13; xxi. 9, 19.
14 Chap. xiii. 24; xiv. 1; xix. 18; xxii. 6; xxiii. 13, 14; xxix. 15, 17, 19, 21.
15 Chap. xxvii. 28-27; xxxi. 10-27. 16 Chap. xxiii. 6-8; xxv. 17. 17 Chap. iii. 27, 28.
18 Chap. xi. 24; xxii. 9. 19 Chap. xxxi. 10, 30.
* Lord BACON’S Advancement of Learning, Book viii. chap. ii.
† Chap. v. 15-19, with xxiii. 29-35. Basil, quoted by Bp. Patrick.
‡ On Ps. cxix.
xiv PREFACE.
"the principles of Christ." This Book, if it be not, as the New Testa-
ment,--the Rule of Faith, may surely be considered as a valuable Rule
of conduct. And--as Mr. Scott observes--'it would be very useful
for those, who can command their time, at some stated season every
day, to read and deliberately consider a few of these maxims with
reference to their own conduct, in the various affairs in which they are
concerned.'* Doubtless if the world were governed by the whole
wisdom of this single Book, it would be "a new earth, wherein
dwelleth righteousness."
One other weighty consideration the Writer would advert to, as
having directed his attention to this Book--its distinctive character, as
a Book for the Young. The wise man's father propounded a most
anxious question--"Wherewithal shall a young man cleanse his way?"
His son in this Book has fully opened the answer--"By taking heed
thereto according to thy word." (Ps. cxix. 9.) Nay he expressly states
the Book to be written for the heeding of youth.1 It takes them as it
were by the hand, sets up way-marks to warn against coming danger
and imminent temptations,2 and allures them into the bright ways of
God by the most engaging motives.3 And never surely was the
object so momentous, as at the present day. Our young are growing
up at a period, when "the foundations of the earth are out of course;"
and when subtle and restless efforts are making to poison their hearts,
and pervert their ways. Nothing therefore can be more important, than
to fortify them with sound principles; that, when withdrawn from the
parental wing into a world or a Church (alas! that we should be con-
strained to use, the term!) of temptation, they may be manifestly under
a Divine cover, as the children of a special Providence. What this
invaluable Book impresses upon their minds is, the importance of deep-
seated principles in the heart; the responsibility of conduct in every
step of life; the danger of trifling deviations for expediency's sake;
the value of self-discipline; the habit of bringing everything to the
Word of God; the duty of weighing in just balances a worldly and a
heavenly portion, and thus deciding the momentous choice of an ever-
lasting good before the toys of earth. These lessons, thoroughly
inwrought, will prove the best security against all attempts to loosen
* Pref. to Comment. on Prov.
1 Chap. i. 4; iv. 1, &c.
2 Chap. i. 10-15; ii. 10-19; v. 1-13; vii.
3 Chap. iii. 1-18; viii. I7, &c.
PREFACE. xv
the hold of principle, and to entice upon enchanted ground. This
practical godliness--so far from wearing a forbidding, look, or being
associated with gloom or sadness--casts a smile over a world of
sorrow, is a sunbeam of comfort in suffering, and ever a principle of
peace and steadfastness. "Great peace have they which love thy law;
and nothing shall offend them." (Ps. cxix. 165.)
As to the matter of the exposition, the Writer cannot indeed say,
with a Romish commentator,* 'that he has gone through all the circle
of Biblical exposition, versions of the Scripture, Patristic reading, and
classic literature bearing upon the Scripture.' He trusts, however, that
it will be seen by the mass of references throughout the work, that he
has taken due care to mature his own judgment, and to enlarge his
scanty resources, by availing himself of the assistance of those exposi-
tors, who appear to have been most conversant with the original
language, and to have given the most careful and sober interpretation.
By a wider range, he would have probably rather perplexed than
informed his readers.
He would not only add, in conclusion, in the words of one of the
most valuable expositors†--that 'if there should be anything here to
please the reader, ascribe not the writing to the pen, but to the writer;
not the light to the lamp, but to the fountain; not the picture to the
pencil, but to the painter; not the gift to the unfaithful dispenser, but to
God the bountiful Giver.'
* Cornelius á Lapide. † Geier.
Old Newton Vicarage,
Oct. 7, 1846.
ADVERTISEMENT
TO THE FOURTH EDITION.
The Writer desires gratefully to acknowledge the many testimonies
of interest and edification connected with his Work. Deeply sensible
as he is of its great imperfections, may his God have the glory!
In reference to the mass of Scriptural references, he would state,
that his primary object in this, as in a former Exposition, was to draw
out into view the unsearchable riches of the Sacred field. And if he
may have sometimes inadvertently carried out this desire to an undue
extent, he trusts, that upon the whole it may encourage some of his
Readers to a meditative study of Holy Writ, so that "the Word of
Christ may dwell in them richly in all wisdom," to their own enlarged
profit, and to the edification of the Church.
He has been enabled to compress the work (without abridgement),
in order to reduce the price for wider circulation. He has now only to
commend it afresh to the blessing of his God, and to the kind accept-
ance of His Church.
Hinton Martell Rectory,
July 16, 1859.
In accordance with suggestions repeatedly made to the Author the Exposition
of the first nine chapters has been reprinted, apart, for more extensive
distribution, under the title of "A MANUAL FOR THE YOUNG;" at the
price of 2s. 6d.
.
EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF
PROVERBS
CHAPTER I.
1. The proverbs of Solomon, the Son of David, King of Israel; 2. To
know wisdom and instruction; to perceive the words of understand-
ing; 3. To receive the instruction of wisdom, justice, and judgment, and
equity; 4. To give subtilty to the simple, to the young man knowledge and
discretion.
THE Book naturally opens with a short account of its author. Solomon
is recorded as the wisest of men; a man of wisdom, because a man of
prayer. (1 Kings iii. 12. Comp. chap. ii. 1-9.) His extraordinary
wisdom was the admiration of the world. (1 Kings iii. 28; iv. 34.)
Had he been the Son of Jeroboam, he would have commanded respect;
much more as the son of David, formed by his godly prayers (Ps. lxxii.1.)
and counsels. (Chap. i-v. 1-4. 1 Kings ii. 1-4. 1 Chron. xxviii. 9.)
And if a King's sayings, even though without intrinsic merit, are pre-
served; the wise teaching of this King of Israel (Eccres. i. 1; xii. 9, 10)
may well demand our especial interest.
Valuable, however, as were Solomon's maxims for their own wis-
dom (exceeding the sages of his own or any other time) (1 Kings, iv.
29-31); they claim our reverence upon infinitely higher ground. "Be-
hold! a greater than Solomon is here." (Matt. xii. 42.) Often does he
speak in the person (Verse 20; viii. ix. xxiii. 26) always under the
inspiration (2 Tim. iii. 16) of "the wisdom of God;" so that his
sayings are truly "Divine sentences in the lips of the King." (Chap.
xvi. 10.)
The great end of this inestimable book is to teach, not secular or
political wisdom (though many excellent rules of each are interspersed)
2 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
(Chap. vi. 1-11; xxvii. 23-27; with xi. 14; xiv. 28, 34; xx. 18); but
that knowledge of God (Verse 7), which, while it "maketh wise unto
salvation, perfects and furnishes the man of God unto all good works."
(2 Tim. iii. 15-17. Tit. ii. 11, 12.) Its glowing privileges are set forth.
(Chap. iii. 13-18.) It is pressed upon us with intense earnestness, as
"the principal thing," our very "life." (Chap. iv. 5-9, 13.) Instruction
is the means of gaining it. We are directed to perceive the words of
understanding; to receive the instruction as a complete rule of wisdom,
justice, judgment, and equity (Comp. chap. ii. 9); sound principles, and
their practical application. Here also the simple, so readily deluded
(Chap. xiv. 15; xxi. 11. Ezek. xlv. 20), learn that subtilty, so needful
to discriminate between truth and error (Philip. i. 10. 1 Thess.
v. 21); to guard them from false teachers (Ps. xvii. 4. 1 John, iv. 1.
Comp. Acts, xvii. 11); and to "convince gainsayers." (Tit. i. 9; ii. 8.
Comp. Matt. xxii. 15-46.) Specially is the young man directed to this
book.* His undisciplined ardour runs to waste. His mind fluctuates
at the mercy of the winds of opinion in the world around him; and
greatly does he need some settled master-principles to fix his purpose,
choice, and conduct. Here then he finds knowledge and discretion; a
religion, not of imagination, impulse, or sentiment; but the sound
practical energy of Scriptural truth.
5. A wise man will hear, and will increase learning; and a man of under-
standing shall attain unto wise counsels; 6. To understand a proverb,
and the interpretation; the words of the wise, and their dark sayings.
Not only the simple and the young, but even the wise, may here gather
instruction. For a truly wise man is one, not who has attained, but who
knows that he "has not attained," and is pressing onward to perfection.
(Philip. iii. 12. Comp. 1 Cor. iii. 18; viii. 2.) David, while conscious
of comparative attainments, was ever seeking for higher light. (Ps.
cxix. 98-100; with 18, 33, 34.) Indeed the richest stores would soon
waste, without constant additions. Hearing is a great medium of know-
ledge. Jethro instructed Moses (Exod. xviii. 17-26); our Lord his
disciples. (Matt. xiii. 11-16. John, xvi. 12.) Peter enlightened his
fellow-apostles. (Acts, xi. 2-18.) Priscilla and Aquila "instructed
Apollos in the way of God more perfectly." (Ibid. xviii. 24-26.) In-
deed we must be hearers, ere we would be teachers. 'He gathers that
hears; he spends that teacheth. If we spend before we gather, we shall
soon prove bankrupts.'† The longer we learn, the more we feel our-
selves to be learners; and the more ready we shall be to hear, that we
* Ps, cxix. 9. Over the gates of Plato's school, it was written: Mhdeij agewmetrhtoj
eisitw. (Literally--Let no one who is not a geometrician enter.) But very different is
the inscription over these doors of Solomon--Let the ignorant, simple, foolish, young enter.
CARTWRIGHT in loc.--LAVATER in c. iv. 20-22.
† Bishop Hall.
CHAP. I. 7. 3
may increase in learning. (Chap. ix. 9; xviii. 15.) And at such a crisis
as this, both of the Church and of the world, how eagerly should we
improve every medium of instruction, by which we might become
"men of understanding, and attain wise counsels, to know what Israel
ought to do!" (1 Chron. xii. 32.) The wise man himself expounded
his words and dark sayings to the delight and instruction of his royal
scholar (1 Kings, x. 1-5); so to a teachable hearer "the deep things
of God" will be interpreted. (1 Cor. ii. 9, 10.) Hence the value of the
Minister of God; "an interpreter, one of a thousand" (Job, xxxiii. 23.
Comp. Acts, viii. 27-35); the divinely-appointed mean of bringing to
the perfection of knowledge. (Eph. iv. 11-15. 1 Thess. iii. 10.) Many
disorders and heresies might have been spared to the Church, if, instead
of indulging the perversity of an unsettled judgment, men had honoured
"the Priest, as the messenger of the Lord of Hosts," and in humble
simplicity had "sought the law at his mouth." (Mal. ii. 7. Comp. Heb.
xiii. 17, with 1 Cor. iv. 8; iii. 2-4.) Self-will may resist this sugges-
tion as Romish domination. But a humble subjection to the faithful
“steward of the mysteries of God," coming to learn, not to teach; to have,
not the curiosity fed, but the conscience satisfied. This reverence of
God's ordinance will issue in the "good things of the heart established
with grace." (Heb: xiii. 9.)
7. The fear of the Lord is the beginning (principal part, marg.) of know-
ledge: but fools despise wisdom and instruction.
The preface has stated the object of this Book of Wisdom. The
book itself now opens with a noble sentence. 'There is not'--as Bishop
Patrick observes--'such a wise instruction to be found in all their
books (speaking of Heathen ethics), as the very first of all in Solomon's,
which he lays as the ground of all wisdom.'* The fear of the Lord is
the beginning of knowledge. So Job had pronounced before. (Job, xxviii.
28.) So had the wise man's father. (Ps. cxi. 10.) Such is the weight
of this saying, that Solomon again repeats it.† Nay--after having
gone round the whole circuit; after having weighed exactly all the
sources of knowledge; his conclusion of the whole matter is this, that
the fear of God in its practical exercise "is the whole of man" (Eccles.
xii. 13. Comp. Job, xxviii. 12-14, with 28)--all his duty; all his
happiness; his first lesson and his last. Thus, when about to instruct
us from the mouth of God, he begins at the beginning, the principal part.
All heathen wisdom is but folly. Of all knowledge, the knowledge of
God is the principal. There is no true knowledge without godliness.
(Comp. Deut. iv. 6, 7.)
But what is this fear of the Lord? It is that affectionate reverence,
* Preface to his Paraphrase.
† Chap. ix. 10 Comp. the fine description by the son of Sirach. Ecclus. i. 14-20, 27.
4 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
by which the child of God bends himself humbly and carefully to his
Father's law. His wrath is so bitter, and his love so sweet; that hence
springs an earnest desire to please him, and--because of the danger of
coming short from his own weakness and temptations--a holy watch-
fulness and fear, "that he might not sin against him." (Heb. xii. 28, 29.)
This enters into every exercise of the mind, every object of life. (Chap.
xxiii. 17.) The oldest proficient in the Divine school seeks a more
complete moulding into its spirit. The godly parent trains up his
family under its influence. (Gen. xviii. 19. Eph. vi. 4.) The Christian
scholar honours it as the beginning, the head, of all his knowledge; at
once sanctifying its end, and preserving him from its most subtle
temptations.
Why then do multitudes around us despise wisdom and instruction?
Because the beginning of wisdom--"the fear of God--is not before their
eyes." (Ps. xxxvi. 1.) They know not its value. They scorn its obliga-
tion. Wise they may be in their own sight. But surely God here
gives them their right name. For fools they must be, to despise such
a blessing (Jer. viii. 9); to rush into wilful ruin (Verses 22, 24-32.
Comp. 1 Sam. ii. 25. 1 Kings, xii. 13. Jer. xxxvi. 22-32); to treasure
up work for despairing repentance. (Chap. v. 12, 13 j xxix. 1.) Good
Lord! May thy childlike fear be my wisdom, my security, my happiness!
8. My son, hear the instruction of thy father, and forsake not the law of thy
mother; 9. For they shall be an ornament of grace unto thy head, and
chains about thy neck.
Let the young mark the fear of the Lord connected with reverence to
parents. Thus the opening of this book puts honour upon “the first com-
mandment with promise." (Eph. vi. 2. Comp. 1 Tim. v. 4.) God here,
speaking by the mouth of a parent or teacher,* blends paternal tender-
ness with his Divine authority—My son. The command supposes the
godly character of parents, and recognises the responsibility of both
parents.† Children are rational creatures. Instruction, not blind sub-
mission, must be inculcated. Yet they are wayward. Instruction must
therefore be enforced with the authority of law. God puts his own
stamp upon parental discipline. Hear it--Forsake it not. Reverence
for his mother's law was the honourable mark of Timothy's profession.
(2 Tim. i. 5; iii. 14, 15.) Nor must this reverence be confined to the
years of restraint. The disciple of the Bible will own himself to be a
® Thus the prophets were called Fathers--2 Kings, ii. 12; xiii. 14. Our blessed Lord
used the same endearing address--John, xxi. 5. Comp. Matt. ix. 2, 22. Thus the Apo-
stles also acknowledged both their individual converts and collective Churches--l Tim. i. 2.
2 Tim. i. 2. Tit. i 4. 1 Cor. iv. 15; with 1 John. ii. 1; v. 21.
† See Judg. xiii. 12. No ancient system, so fully as the Bible, recognises the Mother's
just and equal claims. Comp. vi. 20; xv. 20; xx. 20; xxiii. 22; xxx. 17. Lev. xix: 3.
Deut. xxi, 18-21. Cartwright observes, that the names of Mothers of good and bad kings
are mentioned in Kings and Chronicles, as partakers in their credit or reproach. See also
Ecclus. iii. 1-16.
CHAP. I. 10-16. 5
child in relative obligations, long after he has ceased to be a child in
years. (Jer. xxxv. 8-10, 18.) Neither age nor rank gives any claim for
exemption. Joseph--when ripe in years, the head of a family, and
the first Lord in Egypt--bowed before his father's feet. (Gen. xlvi. 29;
xlviii. 12.) Solomon, in the glory of his crown, forgot not the respect
justly due to his mother.* Nor were the crown upon his head, and the
chain of gold about Joseph's neck (Comp. chap. iv. 9, with Gen. xli.
39, 42), so graceful as this ornament of filial humility. (1 Pet. v. 5.)
This indeed commands the praise of the world, and may sometimes be
a delusive, self-righteous dependence. But wherever it is grounded
upon right principle, it is the "putting on of the Lord Jesus Christ"
in his lovely example. (Rom. xiii. 14.) Though angels were subject
to him, yet was he "subject to his parents." (Luke, ii. 51, with Heb.
i. 6.) Yea, how did he honour his mother in his last dying command
to his disciple--"Behold thy mother!" (John, xix. 27.)
The same reciprocal obligation binds the spiritual father and his
children. Authority softened by tenderness--instruction moulded in
parental endearment--will always command its measure of reverential
and affectionate attention. Such was the Apostolical Ministry to the
Churches of Philippi and Thessalonica. Humility, tenderness, mutual
communion and cneerful subjection, formed the harmony of Christian
love and happiness. (Philip. iv. 9-19. 1 Thess. ii. 7-13.)
10. My son, if sinners entice thee, consent thou not. 11. If they say, ‘Come
with us, let us lay wait for blood; let us lurk privily for the innocent
without cause; 12. Let us swallow them up alive as the grave; and
whole as those who go down into the pit; 13. We shall find all pre-
cious substance; we shall fill our houses with spoil: 14. Cast in thy
lot among us; let us all have one purse:’ 15. My son, walk not thou
in the way with them; refrain thy foot from their path: 16. For their
feet run to evil and make haste to shed blood.
Let the young hearken to the instruction, and law of the godly parent
and minister. Who that has the charge of youth does not mourn
over the baneful influence of evil companions? Would that the
Lord's Servants were as energetic in his work, as sinners are in further-
ing the ends of their master! Almost as soon as Satan became an
apostate, he became a tempter. And most successfully does he train
his servants in this work. (Chap. xvi. 29. Gen. xi. 4. Num. xxxi. 16.
Isa. lvi. 12.) If sinners entice thee--This is no uncertain contingency.
'My son'--said the wise son of Sirach--'if thou come to serve the Lord
prepare thy heart for temptation.' (Ecclus. ii. 1.) Yet we have one
rule against all manifold enticements (Chap. vii. 5-23. Comp. Deut.
® 1 Kings, ii. 19, 20. See also Queen Esther's respect for Mordecai, her reputed father--
ii. 20.
6 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK: OF PROVERBS.
xiii.. 6-8.1 Chron. xxi. 1. 1 Kings, xiii. 15-19)--Consent thou not. Consent
constitutes the sin. Eve consented, before she plucked the fruit (Gen.
iii. 6); David, before he committed the act of sin. (2 Sam. xi. 2-4.
Comp. Josh. vii. 21.) Joseph resisted, and was saved. (Gen. xxxix. 8,
9.) Job was sorely tried; "yet in all this Job sinned not." (Job, i. 22;
ii. 10.) If the temptation prevail, charge it not on God; no--nor
on the devil. As the worst he can do, he can only tempt, he cannot
force us, to sin. When he has plied us with his utmost power, and
most subtle artifice, it is at the choice of our own will, whether we
yield or no. (See Jam. i. 13-15.) The habitual resistance of the will
clears us of responsibility. (Comp. Rom. vii. 14-17, 19, 20, 23.) The
consent, even if it be not carried out into the act, lays the responsi-
bility at our own door.
The enticement here was to robbery and blood; covetousness leading
to murder. Most fiendish was the plot. The innocent was to be mur-
dered without cause (Gen. iv. 8. Ps. x. 8), swallowed up alive and whole;
like Korah and his company, going down into the pit in their full strength.
(Num. xvi. 33.) The invitation at first was seemingly harmless--Only
come with us. Soon the demand rises--Cast in thy lot with us. 'But
we shall be discovered.' No--they reply--'we will do all so cleverly,
that there will be no more blood to be seen, than if the earth swallowed
them up; or they died a natural death, and were decently buried.’*
The spoil of precious, substance will be found, when our victim is destroyed.
(Comp. Matt. xxi. 38.) Precious substance! Why! This is as large a
promise, as that from the mouth of the Son of God. (Chap. viii. 21.)
But how can substance be found belonging to a world of shadows? (Ps.
xxxix. 6.) Much more, how can the fruit of robbery be precious, with
the curse of God? (Chap. xxi. 6. Ps. lxii. 9,10.)
Not that this horrible plot is usually propounded at first. But step
by step, unless the Lord graciously restrains, it may come to this at last.
The cover and varnish are; here taken off, to show what sin is in its
nature, character, and certain end. What young man, but would shud-
der, and start away from the wickedness, if presented to his imagination
alone? But many a deluded sinner is thus hurried on by the influence
of company to lengths of sin, that he had never contemplated.† Other
enticements are prepared for the amiable and the uninitiated, just enter-
ing into life; less fearful and obvious, and therefore more really danger-
ous. Such "advantage does Satan get of us by our ignorance of his
devices!” (2 Cor. ii. 11.)
Is it safe then to trust in our good resolutions or principles? No
--Walk not in the way with them. The invitation is --come with us.
The warning is--Refrain thy foot from their path. (Chap. iv. 14, 15.
* Cartwright. But see Gen iv.10. 2 Kings, ix. 26.
† Chartist Associations afford ample evidence of this awful delusion.
CHAP. I. 17-19. 7
Comp. Ps. i. 1.) Avoid parleying with them. No one becomes a pro-
fligate at once.* But "evil communications corrupt good manners."
(1 Cor. xv. 33.) The tender conscience becomes less sensitive by every
compliance. Who can stop himself in the down-hill road? One sin
prepares for another, pleads for it, nay, even makes it necessary for con-
cealment. David committed murder to hide his adultery, and for his
covering charged it upon the providence of God. (2 Sam. xi. 4, 17, 25.)
Again then—we repeat with all earnestness--Refrain. The path
may be strewed with flowers; but it is a path of evil, perhaps of blood.†
Every step on Satan's ground deprives us of the security of the promises
of God. Often has ruin followed by not refraining from the first step.
(Comp. Mark, xiv. 54, 71.) The only safety is in flight. (Gen. xxxix.
10, 12.) Run then into "thy hiding-place, and behind thy shield," and
boldly bid thy tempter "depart from thee." (Ps. cxix. 114, 115. Comp.
Matt. iv. 10.) Awful is the thought! There is not a sin, that the
highest saint of God may not commit, if trusting in himself. "Thou
standest by faith. Be not high-minded, but fear." (Rom. xi. 20.)
17. (Surely in vain the net is spread in the sight of any bird.) 18. And
they lay wait for their own blood; they lurk privily for their own lives.
19. So are the ways of every one that is greedy of gain; which taketh
away the life of the owners thereof.
The sight of danger leads, when possible, to the avoiding of it.
Instinct directs the bird; reason the man. Yet such is the infatuation
of sin, that man in his boasted wisdom will not do, what the bird will
do by her native instinct. She shuns the net spread in her sight; man
rushes into it. These men thirsted for their neighbour's blood. But in
the end they laid wait for their own. They lurked privily for the innocent
without cause. But it proved to be lurking privily for their own lives.
(Verse 11 with 18. Comp. Job, xviii. 8. Hab. ii. 10.) Ahab and his
guilty partner, in plotting the destruction of their innocent victim, worked
out their own ruin. (1 Kings, xxi. 4-24.) Little did Haman, when
bent upon the murder of Mordecai (Esth. vii. 9); or Judas, when "seek-
ing opportunity to betray his Master" (Matt. xxvi. 14-16; xxvii. 3-5),
see, that they were "digging a pit for themselves." (Ps. vii. 15, 16; ix.
15, 16.) Yet the sinner, would he but use his own eyes, might see hell
at the end of his path. (Matt. vii. 13.) But sin is self-delusive, self-
destructive. So are the ways—such the end—of greedy, often mur-
derous, gain.‡ My son—once more hear thy Father's instruction, "Flee
these things." (Verse 8, with 1 Tim, vi. 9-11.)
* ‘Nemo fit repente turpissimus.'—Classical adage.
† Verse 16. Isa. lix. 7. An apt illustration of the total depravity of man in the perverted
use of the members of his body.—Rom. iii.15.
‡ Comp. Job, xxxi. 39, 40. Jer. xxii. 17-19. Mic. iii. 10—12. ‘How great a cheat is
wickedness! It ensnareth the ensnarers, and murders the murderers; holds a dark lantern
in one hand, while with the other it discharges silently a pistol into our bosom.’—JERMIN
(Dr. M.), Comment on Proverbs, folio, 1638.
8 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
20. Wisdom (Wisdoms, Marg.) crieth without; she uttereth her voice in the
streets: 21. She crieth in the chief place of concourse, in the openings of
the gates; in the city she uttereth her words, saying, 22. How long, ye
simple ones, will ye love simplicity? and the scorners delight in their
scorning, and fools hate knowledge? 23. Turn you at my reproof: behold, I
will pour out my Spirit unto you; I will make known my words unto you.
A Father's instruction has warned us against the enticement of Satan.
Wisdom--the Son of God himself, now invites us,--in all the plenitude
of his Divine authority and grace.* Full of yearning love to sinners,
he crieth, not only in the temple, but without in the streets, in the chief
place of concourse, in the openings of the gates (Comp. chap. viii. 1-5. Matt.
xiii. 2. John, vii. 37-39; xviii. 20, 21. Ps. xl. 9, 10)—How long?
Simplicity is another term for folly. It is the temper of mind of those
that fear not God. They weigh not what they say or do. They live
as if there were neither God nor eternity. Their understandings are
blinded by the love of sin. In other cases man delights, not in his
ignorance, but in its removal. But these simple ones, ignorant of the value
and danger of their souls, love-simplicity. They consider all endeavours to
enlighten them, as breaking in upon an indulgent repose, and exciting
a groundless alarm. For while they live riotously, slothfully, or licen-
tiously, "they consider not in their hearts, that God remembereth all
their wickedness," and “that for all these things he will bring them into
judgment." (Hos. vii. 2. Eccles. xi. 9.) They are encouraged by a few
more furious than themselves--scorners--who have neither fear nor
shame, remorse of heart, nor decency of manner; who take an active
delight in their scorning: shooting their poisoned arrows against godli-
ness. (See Ps. lxiv. 3, 4.) All earnestness in religion is with them a
weakness unworthy of sensible men. The very Scripture terms are
revolting. A saint in Scripture means one sanctified by the Spirit of
God. With them it means a foolish person or a hypocrite. Their souls
are too high to stoop to the vulgar thoughts and habits of the gospel of
Christ. Thus do they prove themselves (both the indolent mass of the
simple ones, and their scornful leaders) to be fools, that hate knowledge.
* The cry, the chief place of concourse, the outpouring fountain of the Spirit, are identified
John, vii. 37-39. This very remonstrance, accompanied, as here, with a stirring invitation,
is also given in prophecy from the Saviour's own mouth. Isa. lv. 1-3. The terms of the pro-
mise forbid any other than a personal application. We can easily conceive a spirit to have
wisdom. But that an attribute of wisdom may dispense his Spirit or influence to others, is
beyond conception. Moreover, the Messiah assumed this personal title (Matt. xxiii. 34, with
Luke, xi. 49); and his Apostle expressly gives it to him (1 Cor. i. 24). The plural noun
joined with the singular verb (marg. comp. chap. ix. 1) seems to point him out as the
author and whole substance of all wisdom; ‘the very wisdom of the most wise God, "in
whom are hid all the treasures of wisdom and knowledge," and by whom rivers of wisdom
are poured into man by the word.' (Glass. Lib. iii. Tract. i. Can. 24.) The future tense in the
original may possibly give a prophetic character to the proclamation. Altogether, ‘this
interpretation gives to the exhortation of Wisdom a peculiar majesty and emphasis; setting
forth the eternal untreated Wisdom of the Father, using all means to draw men to God;
both by his works and by his word, inviting all men to know the truth.'--SCOTT. Bishop
Ball. Compare notes on v. 24, viii. 1.
CHAP. I. 20-23. 9
(Verses 7, 29, 30. Job, xxi. 14; xxiv. 13.) Aiming to keep out alarm,
with it they shut out all that would make them wise and happy. If
they hate the knowledge of their lost condition, they exclude all that
follows upon it, to make them "wise unto salvation." Of other know-
ledge they have often too much: mischievous, as keeping out better
things; giving them an evil eye, filling the soul with darkness; making
them "hate the light, so that they will not come to the light, lest their
deeds should be reproved." (John, iii. 19, 20.)
Our Lord deals with this case on the perfect freeness of the gospel.
He would melt down the hardness by pleading remonstrance—How
long? (Comp. Matt. xxiii. 37. Luke, xix. 41, 42.) He sweeps away all
the suggestions of unbelief, all the heartless excuses of indolence, by
inviting promises— Turn at my reproof. ‘I cannot turn myself.’ But
I will pour out my Spirit as a living fountain unto you. And—as the
consequence of this blessing---I will make known my words unto you.
The Bible, before a dark and sealed book, shall be made clear to you. ‘I
offer to you both my word outwardly to your ears, and a plentiful, measure
of my Spirit inwardly to your heart, to make that word effectual to
you.'*
But we are often told, that all the illumination to be expected in our
day is the written word, interpreted, like every other book, by our
own reason; and that the Spirit's teaching is an enthusiastic delusion.
Now this may pass with the simple and the scorner— who know no-
thing of the blindness of their hearts, and of the power of natural
prejudice, which Divine grace alone can conquer. But the man that
knows his own darkness, and that nothing less than the power of God
can teach him--he will—he must--"cry for knowledge, and lift up
his voice for understanding" (Chap. ii. 3); not because the word is dark
(for it is light itself), but because he is dark, and therefore utterly
unable to receive its instructions. (1 Cor. ii. 9-14.) We do not want
a new revelation, we only want a Divine Teacher, we want the pouring
out of the Spirit to make known the word. The word is the same Divine
word as before. But it was not understood, discerned, not therefore
practically effectual. Now there is joy, a power and sweetness, of
which before we had no conception. It humbled us in the sense of our
ignorance, and makes us pant for more of its heavenly light and
influence.
But the proud caviller complains of God, as if he reckoned with
"him for a blindness and inability, which he cannot help,--innate with-
out his consent. "Nay, but, 0 man, who art thou that repliest
against God?" (Rom. ix. 20.) He at once answers this Satanic plea,
by offering to you present, suitable, and sufficient relief. He meets
you on your way to condemnation with the promise of free and full
* Bishop Hall.
10 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
forgiveness. (Isa. i. 18; xliii. 23, 26.) Your plea will be of force, when
you have gone to him, and found him wanting. The power indeed is
of him. But he hath said —"Ask, and it shall be given you." (Matt.
vii. 7.) If your helplessness is a real grievance, bring it to him with
an honest desire to be rid of it. If you have never prayed, now is the
time for prayer. If you cannot pray, at least make the effort. Stretch
out the withered hand in the obedience of faith. (Mark, iii. 5.) If your
heart be hard, your convictions faint, your resolutions unsteady; all is
provided in the promise —I will pour out my Spirit upon you. Move
then, and act in dependence upon the Almighty Mover and Agent.
(Comp. Philip. ii. 12, 13.) Christian experience explains a mystery un-
fathomable to human reason. It harmonises man's energy and God's
grace. There is no straitening, no exclusion, with God. His promises
with one mouth assure a welcome to the willing heart. If it cannot
move, his Spirit can compel, point, draw it to the Saviour. Yea, in the
desire to turn, has not the Saviour already touched it, and drawn it to
himself?
But remember — the call—How long? is to an instant conversion;
not to the consideration or resolution of the morrow, but to the de-
cision of to-day. Delay is mockery of God. "Quench not the
Spirit " now striving, but which "will not always strive with man."
(1 Thess. v. 19. Gen. vi. 3.) Add not thus to the mass of guilt ready
to sink you into perdition.
24. Because I have called, and ye refused; I have stretched out my hand,
and no man regarded: 25. But ye have set at nought all my counsel,
and would none of my reproof: 26. I also will laugh at your calamity;
I will mock, when your fear cometh; 27. When your fear cometh, as a
desolation, and your destruction cometh as a whirlwind; when distress
and anguish cometh upon you. 28. Then shall they call upon me, but
I will not answer; they shall seek me early, but they shall not find me;
29. For that they hated knowledge, and did not choose the fear of the
Lord: 30. They would none of my counsel: they despised all my reproof.
31. Therefore shall they eat of the fruit of their own way, and be filled
with their own devices.
The Saviour calls by his word, his providence, his ministers, con-
science. But ye refused. Not till his calls have been refused, does he
thunder forth his warnings. But such grace, so rich and free, yet
rejected--who can take the guage of this guilt? All creatures beside
are his servants. (Ps. cxix. 91.) Man alone resists his yoke. He
stretched out his hand (Isa. lxv. 2) to afford help; to confer a blessing;
to beseech its acceptance; yea, even to command attention to his call.
(See Acts, xxi. 40.) But no man regarded. The wisest counsel, the most
solemn reproof, all is set at nought. Thus does he "endure with much
CHAP. I. 24-31. 11
long-suffering the vessels of wrath fitted to destruction." (Rom. ix. 22.)
But, O sinner! the day cometh, when he, who once yearned, and
wept, and prayed, and died, will have no pity (Ezek. v. 11, viii. 18,
with xxxiii. 11); when he shall be, as if he laughed and mocked at your
calamity (Comp. Judg. x. 14. Isa. i. 24); when he shall delight in the
exercise of his sovereign justice over you. (Comp. Deut. xxviii. 63.
Ezek. v. 13.) All will then be the desolation of realized fear (Chap. x.
24); sudden as a whirlwind;* the distress and anguish of utter despair.
(Job, xv. 24. Dan. v. 5, 6, 30.)
This is his solemn denunciation. And then, as if he could bear
these despisers no longer in his sight, he changes his address, and
pictures the scene itself in its strongest colours. They would not hear
when I called. Then shall they call upon me, and I will not answer. They
would not listen to my warnings; I will not listen to their cries. They
shall call upon me — yea, they shall seek me early; but they shall not find
me.† Prayer, once omnipotent, will then be powerless. ‘The last
judgment before the very last of all is come; the very outward court
or portal of hell;‡ the misery of deserted souls. To be forsaken of
God at any time is awful woe (Hos. ix. 12); how much more in the
time of trouble! (1 Sam. xxviii. 15.) But to have his countenance not
only turned: from us, but turned against us, his eternal frown instead of
his smile — this will be hell instead of heaven.
Does this unmeasured wrath seem inconsistent with a God of love?
"The Lord our God is a consuming fire." (Deut. iv. 24.) And think of
his knowledge, instead of being a delight, being hated; his fear not
chosen; none of his gracious counsel regarded; all his reproof despised.
Is it not just, that the sinner, thus obstinately bent upon the choice of
his own way, should not only gather, but eat the fruit of it? (Chap. xiii.
2); that it should enter into him, and become his substance; that he
should be filled with it, even to satiety;§ and that--not only daring
his road. (Num. xi. 4, 20. Ps. cvi. 13-15), but at the end, throughout
eternity? (Isa. iii. 11. Gal. vi. 7.) The moral elements of sin constitute
a hell of themselves, apart from the material fire. ‘The fruit of sin in
time, when arrived at full and finished maturity, is just the fruit of sin
* Chap. x. 25. Ps. lviii. 9. Isa. xvii. 13; xl. 24. Eastern travellers furnish abun-
dant illustration of this striking figure. Paxton's Illustrations of Scripture Geography,
pp. 412-416. — (Oliphant.)
† Matt. xxv. 6-12. Luke, xiii. 24-26. Dr. Owen admirably remarks upon this remon-
strance as a proof of the Personality of Wisdom — ‘If these things express not a person,
and that a Divine person, the Scripture gives us no due apprehension of anything what-
ever. Who is it that pours out the Holy Spirit? Who is it that men sin against, in
refusing to be obedient? Who is it, that in their distress they call upon, and seek early in
their trouble? The whole Scriptures declare to whom, and to whom alone, these things
belong, and may be ascribed.' — Expos. of Hebrews. Prelim. Exercit. xxvii. 8-12. We
might add — Who besides could threaten rebels with ruin, and promise peace and security
to the obedient?
‡ Bishop Reynolds' Works, p. 97]..
§ Chap. xiv. 14. Comp. xxv. 16. — ‘Ad nauseam implebuntur, et comedent, ita ut consi-
liorum vehementer tandem, sed nimis sero, ipsos prnniteant.'--MICHAELIS.
12 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
through eternity. It is merely the sinner reaping what he has sown.
It makes no violent or desultory step from sin in time to hell in eter-
nity. The one emerges from the other, as does the fruit from the
flower. It is simply, that the sinner be filled with his own ways, and that
he eat the fruit of his own devices.'*
This picture might seem to be the foreboding of despair. Yet, such
miracles of Divine grace have we seen; nay—such are we ourselves
--that we despair of none. We must not, however, soften down God's
own words by a misplaced presumptuous tenderness. Have we never
seen them verified in the dying sinner, who has neglected and scoffed
at the Gospel, and never sent up one cry for mercy on his soul? Is this
no warning of the danger of a protracted repentance; of the worthless-
ness of confessions extorted by terror; "howling on the bed; hot weep-
ing at the cross?" (Hos. vii. 14, with Luke, xviii. 13.) And does it not
solemnly tell us, that the day of grace has its limits (Gen. vi. 3. Heb.
iv. 7); that there is a knock, which will be the last knock; that a
sinner may be lost on this side of hell; intreated, pleaded with, wept
over—yet lost! lost even in the day of salvation? To "do despite to
the Spirit of grace" (mark the endearing name) —the Spirit of all kind-
ness, of alluring love; who pleads so tenderly with us—to wound him, as
it were, to the soul (Heb. x. 29, Gr.) — this is a provocation beyond words,
beyond thought. "There remaineth" only that, which might strike
into the very centre of the man, "the fearful looking for of judgment
and fiery indignation, which shall devour the adversaries. It is a fearful
thing to fall into the hands of the living God." (Ib. verses 26, 27, 31.)
32. For the turning away of the simple shall slay them, and the prosperity
of fools shall destroy them, 33. But whoso hearkeneth unto me shall
dwell safely, and shall be quiet from fear of evil.
Again is the sinner's ruin laid at his own door. He turns away
from Wisdom's beseeching voice. He despises the only remedy. He
dies a suicide. It matters nothing to what we turn. If we turn away
from God, we turn from our true, our eternal interests. And, oh ! be it
remembered, that every inattention, every wilful neglect, is a step
towards this fearful apostasy. The word gradually becomes a burden,
then a scorn. The fool may seem to be spared from judgment. But
his prosperity is his destruction.† To desire ease, therefore, is to embrace
a deadly enemy. Who that knows his own heart will not feel it a
matter, not of congratulation, but of deep and anxious prayer—'In all
time of our wealth--Good Lord, deliver us?’‡
* Chalmers on Rom. vi. 21.
† Job, xxi. 11-13. Ps. 1v. 19; lxxiii. 3-20. Jer xii. 1-3. Luke, vi. 24, 25; xii. 16-20;
xvi. 19-24. Jam. v. 1-5. Examples of Israel. —Deut. xxxii. 15-25. Jer. xxii. 20-22.
Hc's. xi ii. 6-9. Amos, vi. 1.-6. Babylon.— Isa. xivii. 7-9. Moab. —Jer. xlviii. 1-15. Sodom.
--Ezek. xvi. 49. Tyre.—Ezek. xxvii. 2, 25-27. ‡ Litany.
CHAP. II. 1-6. 13
But to close with the sunshine of promise--Art thou, Reader,
like God's own child, hearkening unto him? Then art thou under his
cover, where no evil can reach thee; dwelling not only safely, but
assured of safety; quiet even from fear of evil (Chap. iii. 21—26. Job, v.
21. Ps. xci. 5; cxii. 6, 7. Isa. xxxii. 17—19); as Noah in the ark, in con-
scious security, while the world were perishing around him (Gen. vii.
11-16); as David, fearless in imminent danger, because realizing a
refuge in God. (Ps. iii. Comp. 1 Sam. xxx. 6.) Yes — even the coming
day of distress and anguish brings with it no fear of evil. (Contrasting
verses 26, 27. Luke, xxi. 26. Rev. vi. 16-18.) "The day will burn like
an oven." Thou shalt behold the world on fire, and feel thou hast lost,
thou canst lose, nothing. The "day of darkness and gloominess" will
be to thee a day of unclouded sunshine, the entrance into everlasting
joy. (Mal. iv. 1, 2. Luke, xxi. 28. 2 Pet. iii. 10-13.)
CHAPTER II.
1. My son, if thou wilt receive my words, and hide my commandments with
thee; 2. So that thou incline thine ear unto wisdom, and apply thine,
heart to understanding: 3. Yea, if thou criest after knowledge, and
liftest up thy voice for understanding; 4. If thou seekest her as silver,
and searchest for her as for hid treasures; 5. Then shalt thou under-
stand the fear of the Lord, and find the knowledge of God. 6. For the
Lord giveth wisdom a out of his mouth cometh knowledge and under-
standing.
Wisdom, having solemnly warned rebellious scorners, now instructs her
dutiful children. The dark question long before asked—"Where shall
wisdom be found?" (Job, xxviii. 12, 20, 21) —is now answered. It is
here set before us, as the fear and knowledge of God (Verse 6); a prin-
ciple of practical godliness (Verses 7-9); a preservation from besetting
temptations (Verses 10-19); and a guide into the right and safe path.
(Verse 20.) Hence follow the security of its scholars (Verse 21), and
the certain ruin of its ungodly despisers. (Verse 22.)
The rules for its attainment are such as the simplest comprehen-
sion can apply. Carefully pondered, and diligently improved, they will
furnish a key for the understanding of the whole word of God. Let
us examine them more distinctly.
Receive my words —Let them be "the seed cast into the ground of
an honest and good heart" (Luke, viii. 15)—a heart prepared of God.
(Chap. xvi. 1.) Read the book of God as one who "sat at the feet of
Jesus, and heard his word." (Luke, x. 39.) Like the Bereans, "receive
it with all readiness" (Acts, xvii. 11); like the Thessalonians, with
reverential faith, acknowledging its supreme authority (1 Thess. ii. 13).
14 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
Hide my commandments with thee. Carry them about with thee as thy
choicest treasure for greater security (Col. iii. 16, with Matt. xiii. 44);
as thy furniture always at hand for present use. (Chap. iv. 20, 21; vii. 3.
Job, xxii. 22.) Let the heart be the hiding-place for the treasure.
(Luke, ii. 19, 51. Ps. cxix. 11.) Satan can never snatch it thence.
But there must be an active, practical habit of attention.* Yet to
incline the ear, and apply the heart —"who is sufficient for these things?"
Oh! my God! let it be thine own work on me—in me. Thou alone
canst do it.† Let it be with me, as with thy Beloved Son—"Waken
my ear morning by morning to hear as the learned." (Isa. L. 4.) So let
me under thy grace "incline mine ear, and hear, that my soul may
live." (Ibid. lv. 3.)
Without this spirit of prayer--there may be attention and earnest-
ness ; yet not one spiritual impression upon the conscience; not one
ray of Divine light in the soul. Earthly wisdom is gained by study;
heavenly wisdom by prayer. Study may form a Biblical scholar;
prayer puts the heart under a heavenly tutorage, and therefore forms
the wise and spiritual Christian. The word first comes into the ears;
then it enters into the heart; there it is safely hid; thence rises the cry
—the lifting up of the voice. Thus, "the entrance of thy word giveth
light; it giveth understanding to the simple." (Ps. cxix. 130.) God
keeps the key of the treasure-house in his own hand. "For this he
will be enquired of" (Ezek. xxxvi. 37) to open it unto thee. We look
for no other inspiration than Divine grace to make his word clear and
impressive. Every verse read and meditated on furnishes material for
prayer. Every text prayed over opens a mine of "unsearchable riches,"
with a light from above, more clear and full than the most intelligent
exposition. David (Ps. cxix. 18, &c.) and his wise son (1 Kings, iii.
9-12) sought this learning upon their knees; and the most matured
Christian will continue to the end to lift up his voice for a more enlarged
knowledge of God. (Eph. i. 17, 18.)
But prayer must not stand in the stead of diligence. Let it rather
give energy to it.‡ The miner's indefatigable pains ; his invincible
* Chap. xxii. 17; xxiii. 12. The Emperor Constantine stood hours to hear the word;
replying, when asked to sit, ‘that he thought it wicked to give negligent ears, when the
truth handled was spoken of God.'--(Euseb. de Vita Constant. lib. iv.) Foxe records of
Edward VI. ‘That never was he present at any sermon commonly, but would excerp
them, or note them with his own hand.'—Vol. v. 700. Yet Bishop Hooper thought, that
his royal master's love for the preached word needed to be quickened. — Sermon 7th on Jonas.
† Chap. xx. 12. "Thou giving me the ear, I have heard, as thou wouldest thy word to
be heard."—JEROME on Hab. iii. 2.
‡ On one side is Luther's inestimable axiom — ‘Bene orasse est bene studuisse.' On
the other side is the balance of the old proverb—'Ora et labora.' Comp. Matt. xi. 12. ‘We
are all,' says the heavenly Leighton, ‘too little in the humble seeking and begging this
Divine knowledge; and that is the cause why we are so shallow and small proficients. "If
thou cry, and lift up thy voice for understanding, search for it as for hid treasures;" sit
down upon thy knees, and dig for it. That is the best posture, to fall right upon the
golden vein, and go deepest to know the mind of God, in searching the Scriptures, to be
CHAP. II. 1-6. 15
resolution; his untiring perseverance; seeking, yea, searching for hid
treasures,—such must be our searching into the sacred storehouse.*
To read, instead of "searching the Scriptures," is only to skim the
surface, and gather up a few superficial notions.† The rule of success
is--Dig up and down the field; and if the search be discouraging, dig
again. The patient industry of perusal and re-perusal will open the
embosomed treasure. "Surely there is a vein for the silver." (Job,
xxviii. 1.) Yet what miner would be content with the first ore? Would
he not search deeper and deeper, until he has possessed himself of the
whole; not satisfied with taking away much, but determined to leave
nothing? Thus let us daily explore "the length, and the breadth, and
the depth" of our boundless stores, until we be "filled with all the
fulness of God." (Eph. iii. 18, 19.)
This habit of living in the element of Scripture is invaluable. To
be filled from this Divine treasury; to have large portions of the word
daily passing through the mind; gives us a firmer grasp, and a more
suitable and diversified application of it. Yet this profit can only be
fully reaped in retirement. We may read the Scriptures in company.
But to search them, we must be alone with God. Here we learn to
apply ourselves wholly to the word, and the word wholly to us. This
enriching study gives a purer vein of sound judgment. The mere
reader often scarcely knows where to begin, and he performs the routine
without any definite object. His knowledge therefore must be scanty
and ineffective. Nor is the neglect of this habit less hurtful to the
Church. All fundamental errors and heresies in the Church may be
traced to this source —"Ye do err, not knowing the Scriptures." (Matt.
xxii. 29.) They are mostly based on partial or disjointed statements of
truth. Truth separated from truth becomes error. But the mind
prayerfully occupied in the search of Divine truth—crying and lifting up
the voice--will never fail to discern the two great principles of godli-
directed and regulated in his ways; to be made skilful in ways of honouring him, and doing him
service. This neither man nor angels can teach him, but God alone.'—Sermon on Ps. cvii. 43.
* ‘Viscera terae extrahimus, ut digito gestiatur gemma, quam petimus. Quot manus
afferuntur, ut unus niteat articulus! Simili studio, industria, constantia, Sapientiae in-
quisitioni incumbendum erat.'—Pram. lib. ii. c. 65.
† Comp. John, v. 39. Gr.— a similar allusion to the miner's toil. ‘I can speak it by
experience'—said a wise man—' that there is little good to be gotten by reading the Bible
cursorily and carelessly. But do it daily and diligently, with attention and affection; and
you shall find such efficacy, as is to be found in no other book that can be named.'
ERASMUS'S Preface to Luke. Peter Martyr gives the same testimony, Epist. Dedic. to Com-
ment. on .Rom. The following relic of our renowned Elizabeth will be read both with
interest and profit. It was written on a blank leaf of a black-letter edition of St. Paul's
Epistles, which she used during her lonely imprisonment at Woodstock. The volume itself,
curiously embroidered by her own hand, is preserved in the Bodleian:—‘August. I walk
many times into the pleasant fields of the Holy Scriptures, where I pluck up the goodli-
some herbs of sentences by pruning, eat them by reading, chew them by musing, and lay
them up at length in the high seat of memorie, by gathering them together, that so, having
tasted their sweetness, I may the less perceive the bitterness of this miserable life.'—MISS
STRICKLAND'S Queens of England, vi. 113.
16 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
ness— The fear and knowledge of God. There is no peradventure nor
disappointment in this search— Then shalt thou understand. The Lord
giveth wisdom; it cometh out of his mouth. None shall search in vain.
(Job, xxxii. 8. Isa. xlviii. 17; liv. 13. Jam. i. 5, 17. Comp. Gen. xli.
38, 39. Exod. iv. 12. Dan. i. 17.) Never has apostasy from the faith
been connected with a prayerful and diligent study of the word of God.
7. He layeth up sound wisdom for the righteous: he is a buckler to them
that walk uprightly. 8. He keepeth the paths of judgment, and pre-
serveth the way of his saints. 9. Then shalt thou understand righteous-
ness, and judgment, and equity; yea every good path.
Vanity (Eccles. i. 18) and foolishness (1 Cor. iii. 19) are the stamp
on the wisdom of this world. Here is sound wisdom. It looks at things
not in their notions, but in their proper substance. It is sound, because
it is practical. It is indeed a hid treasure (Verse 4); so safe, that no
spoiler can reach it; yet so free, that every sinner may have access to
it. Yes; in the Son of God himself "are hid all the treasures of wisdom
and knowledge." All these treasures in him are laid up for the righteous
--made over to them. (Col. ii. 3. 1 Cor. i. 30.) Oh let us draw upon
this infinite treasure daily, hourly, for light to direct an upright walk.
‘To those that are true and upright in heart, he will in his own good
time reveal true: and saving knowledge, and that sound spiritual wisdom,
which shall make them eternally happy.'* Our faithful God is a buckler
to them that walk uprightly. (Chap. xxx. 5. Ps. lxxxiv. 11.) His wisdom
covers is from that subtle sophistry, which would spoil us of our
treasure. (Chap. xxii. 12.) The way of the saints is indeed fraught
with danger; beset with temptation: yet is it safe (Chap. iv. 11; viii.
20. Deut. xxxiii. 26-29. 1 Sam. ii. 9. Ps. xxxvii. 23, 24 lvi. 9)--
kept and preserved by Almighty power. even on the very edge of the
enemy's ground. (1 Sam. xxv. 39; xxvii. 1, with xxix. 2 Cor. xii. 7-9.)
Such also is the completeness of this godly privilege, that not only
does it enlarge our knowledge of God (Verse 5), but it brings us to a
full understanding of every practical obligation. Indeed that only is
sound wisdom, that guides our feet into every, good path; that "makes
the man of God perfect, throughly furnished unto all good works."
(2 Tim. iii. 15-17.) The gracious wisdom that saves the soul, sanctifies
the heart and life. (Tit. ii. 11, 12.)
10. When wisdom entereth into thine heart, and knowledge is pleasant unto
thy soul; 11. Discretion shall preserve thee, understanding shall keep
thee.
We have seen the good that wisdom brings to us. (Verse 5.) Now
see the evil, from which it preserves us. But observe its place —in the
* Bishop Hall.
CHAP. II. 12-45. 17
heart. Here only has it any light, life, or power. (Chap. iv. 23.) Clear
knowledge floating in the head is deep ignorance. While it only
glitters in the understanding, it is dry, speculative, and barren. When
it entereth into the heart, light beams out, all the affections are engaged;
and how pleasant is it to the soul! (Chap. xxiv. 13, 14. Job, xxiii. 12.
Ps. cxix. 103. Jer. xv. 16.) Religion now is no lifeless notion. It is
handled, tasted, enjoyed. It gives a discreet and understanding direction
to the whole conduct. It becomes not only an external rule, but a
preserving, keeping principle (Chap. iv. 6; vi. 22-24. Ps. xvii. 4; cxix.
9-11, 104); like the military guard for the safety of the royal person.
(1 Sam. xxvi. 16. 2 Kings, xi. 11.) Before, it was the object of our
search. Now, having found it, it is our pleasure. Until it is so, it can
have no practical influence. It is "the man, whose delight is in the law
of the Lord," who is preserved from "walking in the counsel of the
ungodly." (Ps. i. 1, 2; comp. ch. vii. 4, 5.) Education, conviction, high
moral principle, are at best only partially operative. The reclaimed
drunkard may be true to his Temperance-pledge; but, if the "root of
bitterness" be untouched, he may be a Socialist or a Chartist, or revel
in some other equally ruinous course. External wickedness may be
exchanged for decent formality. Vagrant affections may be turned
from some object of vanity; yet not fixed upon the Divine centre of
attraction. The mind may be disciplined from utter unprofitableness,
only to indulge in the idolatry of talent, or the fascinations of poisoned
literature. The folly of the pride of life may be resisted; yet pride in
other of its multiform fruits tenderly cherished. In all, these cases, the
principle is unsubdued. The forsaken sin only makes way for some
more plausible, but not less deadly passion. The heart, cast into the
mould of the Gospel, is the only cover from those snares within and
without (Rom. vi. 17, 18. 2 Cor. iii. 18), which so imperceptibly, yet
so fatally, estrange us from God. Never, till the vital principle is
implanted, is their mischief discerned. Never, till then, does the heart
find its proper object, its true resting-place.
12. To deliver thee from the way of the evil man, from the man that speaketh
froward things; 13. Who leave the paths of uprightness, to walk in the
ways of darkness; 14. Who rejoice to do evil, and delight in the fro-
wardness of the wicked; 15. Whose ways are crooked, and they froward
in their paths.
The various snares for the young, about to be detailed, furnish a
fearful picture of the temptations to which our children are exposed.
Will it not awaken our earnest cries for their deep and solid conversion
to God; that wisdom may indeed enter into their hearts, and its pleasures
be really enjoyed; that they may have a religious taste, as well as a
religious education; that they may know the Gospel, not only in the
18 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
conviction of their conscience, or the excitement of their feelings, but
in the entire renewal of their hearts before God? This, and nothing
less, will preserve them from the snare of their cruel foe. Every town
and village swarms with his emissaries; first, initiated themselves into
the mysteries of his art; then, going forth, laborious and practised
teachers, well instructed for his murderous work. Against one of these
enticements we have been before warned. (Chap. i. 10-13.) Another
is here given: The tempter bears his character upon his lips; the evil
man that speaketh proud things against God and his law; like a poisonous
fountain sending up poisoned waters. Oh! how quickly does the con-
tamination spread! He does not sin in ignorance. He and his com-
panions* have probably been trained in the paths of uprightness. Having
come in contact with the pestilential breath, of the ungodly, they have
caught the contagion, and eagerly spread it. Readily do they leave the
paths, which they never heartily loved, to walk in the ways of darkness,
which their hearts do love. (Chap. iv. 16, 17. Job, xiv. 13-16. John,
iii. 19, 20.) Having left the hated paths, they become therefore fore-
most in iniquity. Poisoned themselves, they would poison all around
them. They rejoice, like Satan himself, to do evil † to draw their
fellow-sinners into the net; and they delight in those, who are most
froward in their wickedness.‡ Thus they plunge deeper and deeper
into sin, till they lose all traces of the straight way, and all their ways
become crooked, leading with sure steps to eternal ruin. Is not this the
picture, drawn to the very life, of many a Sunday-scholar, or a child of
godly parents, the subject of deep and tender care; "hardened through
the deceitfulness of sin" (Heb. iii. 13), the neglect of faithful warning,
the stifling of solemn conviction? How do they deserve to be left of
God, who have first left him with such fearful aggravation! Young
man! especially shun companions, who are sinning against better
knowledge and instruction. They are hardened in devotedness to
their master's work. Oh! if misguided sinners could but see sin in its
horrid deformity and certain end, would not "their hearts meditate
terror?" But the crookedness of their ways hides the end from view.
Satan presents the bait, palliates the sin, covers the enormity, closes
the eyes, and conceals the certain end of all—Hell. (Ps. cxxv. 5.
Rom. vi. 21; with 2 Cor. iv. 3, 4.) The froward in their paths cannot
—will not—turn back.
16. To deliver thee from the strange woman, from the stranger, which flat-
tereth with her lips: 17. Which forsaketh the guide of her youth, and
forgetteth the covenant of her God. 18. For her house inclineth unto
* The change to the plural number (the man—who leave) implies confederacy.
† Comp. Isa. iii. 9 ; Jer xi. 15. God's heavy judgment. 2 Thess. ii. 12.
‡ The sin of the heathen, Rom. i. 32.
CHAP. II. 16-22. 19
death, and her paths unto the dead. 19. None that go unto her return
again: neither take they hold of the paths of life.
Another snare of the fowler is here graphically pourtrayed.* Wisdom
hidden in the heart is, as before, the most effectual deliverance; restraining
even the eye from the hurtful object.† Ought not the strange woman,
even if she be born and baptized in a Christian land, to be counted as
a stranger and foreigner among us? One who had forsaken the guide
of her youth,§ and forgotten the solemn bond of the covenant of her God||
—what else could she be to the unwary but a vile flatterer with her
lips? (Chap. v. 3; vii. 5, 21.) The slave of unlawful desire; having
no guide but her own will; no pleasure but sensual gratification;
quickly she becomes her own and her victim's murderer. Her house
is the land of death. (Chap. v. 5.) Eternal death is her doom. (Gal. v.
19-21. Eph. v. 5. Rev. xxi. 8 ; xxii. 15.) Her paths incline to the dead,
with the awful monuments of Divine vengeance in olden time.¶ Some
instances indeed of deliverance are given; not so much examples, as
special miracles, of grace, to show how far the "arm of the Lord" can
reach.** But so rare are they, that it is as if scarcely none†† that go unto
her return again. And what madness is it to rush into the snare upon
so faint and glimmering hope of escape! (Eccles. vii. 26.) The spell of
lust palsies the grasp, by which its victim might have taken hold of the
paths of life for deliverance. He that is "saved, is so as by fire" (1 Cor.
iii. 15), the wonder of heaven and earth. "Is not this a brand plucked
out of the fire?" (Zech. iii. 2.)
20. That thou mayest walk in the way of good men, and keep the path of
the righteous: 21. For the upright shall dwell in the land, and the per-
fect shall remain in it; 22. But the wicked shall be cut of from the
earth, and the transgressors shall be rooted out of it.
Here is the consummating blessing of engrafted wisdom. Not only
* Chap. v. 3-20; vi. 24; vii. 5-23; xxii. 14; xxiii. 27. Some commentators give an
allegorical interpretation to these pictures, as descriptive of idolatry or false doctrine.
'But surely,' as Holden well observes, 'if there be any dependence to be placed upon the
language of the sacred writer, any propriety in his expressions, it is to be understood in its
literal sense, as a warning against the seduction of harlots. The spirit of allegorical inter-
pretation may make the Scriptures speak whatever is prompted by the wildest fancy, or
the deepest fanaticism.'—HOLDEN in loco. Comp. SCOTT in loco.
† Comp. Job, xxxi. 1, and our Lord's rule :—Matt. v. 28.
‡ The strange woman—a stranger. Two different words in the Hebrew, the latter ap-
pearing to mark a foreigner. Comp. Deut. xxiii. 17; Lev. xix. 29. It is, however, but too
evident that this abandoned class was not confined to foreigners. Comp. Gen. xxxviii.
15, 16; Judg. xi. 1; 1 Kings, iii. 18.
§ Though an harlot, she might be (Chap. vii. 5, 10, 19) or might have been (John, iv.
17, 18) a married woman.
|| Mal. ii. 14-16. Comp. Ezra, xvi. 59, 60. Does not this sacred view of the marriage
ordinance rebuke the legislative sanction which has now degraded it to a mere civil contract?
¶ 'The dead.'— SCOTT and Bishop PATRICK in loco. Comp. chap. ix. 18. Heb. MEDE'S
Learned Discourse, vii.
** Solomon's own case. Comp. Luke, vii. 37-50; 1 Cor. vi. 9-11.
†† None in comparison, very few. Comp. Isa. lix. 4; lxiv. 7.
20 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
does it deliver from evil men; but it guides us into the way of good men.
Clad with this Divine armour, thou shalt have courage, like Joseph, to
turn thy face from the enchantment of Sin (Gen.. xxxix. 9, 10), and keep
the paths of the righteous, rugged indeed, yet the only paths of rest and
security. (Cant. i. 7, 8. Jer. vi. 16.) Thus shalt thou dwell and remain
in the land, as its original inheritor (Ps. xxxvii. 9, 11, 22, 29, 34. Matt.
v. 5), having the best portion in earth, and ap infinitely better portion
in heaven ; while the wicked and transgressors, though they may "enjoy
the pleasures of sin for a season," shall be ultimately cut of rooted out,
and "driven away " into everlasting ruin. (Chap. x. 30; xiv. 32; xv. 25.
Ps. lii. 5–7 ; xcii. 7. Matt, iii. 10.)
And now, what serious reader of this chapter can fail to estimate
above all price the privilege of being early enlisted under the banner
of the cross; early taught in the ways, and disciplined in the school, of
the Bible; and early led to hide that blessed book in the heart, as the
rule of life, the principle of holiness, the guide to heaven!
Parents, sponsors, teachers of youth; ponder your deep respon-
sibility with unceasing prayer for special grace and wisdom. Beware
of glossing over sins with amiable or palliating terms. Let young
people be always led to look upon vicious; habits with horror, as the
most appalling evil. Discipline their vehemence of feeling, and all ill-
regulated excitement. Keep out of sight, as far as may be, books cal-
culated to inflame the imagination. To give an impulse to the glowing
passion may stimulate the rising corruption to the most malignant
fruitfulness. Oh! what wisdom is needed to guide, to repress, to bring
forth, develope safely, and to improve fully, the mind, energies, and sen-
sibilities of youth!
Young man! beware! Do not flatter thyself for a moment, that
God will ever wink at your sinful passions; that he will allow for them,
as slips and foibles of youth. They are the "cords of your own sins,"
which, if the power of God's grace break them not in time, will "hold"
you for eternity. (Chap. v. 22.) Shun then the society of sin, as the
infection of the plague. Keep thy distance from it, as from the pit of
destruction. Store thy mind with the preservative of heavenly wisdom.
Cultivate the taste for purer pleasures. Listen to the fatherly, pleading
remonstrance, inviting thee to thy rest---"'Wilt thou not from this
time cry unto me, ‘My Father! thou art the guide of my youth?’"
(Jer. iii. 4.)
CHAP. III. 1, 2. 21
CHAPTER III.
1. My son, forget not my law; but let thine heart keep my commandments;
2. For length of days, long life, and peace shall they add to thee.
THIS is not the stern language of command. It is our Father's voice
in all the endearing persuasiveness of promise—My son—He had
before instructed us to seek and search after wisdom, and set out before
us its invaluable blessings. Now he calls us to bring it into practical
exercise--Forget not my law, The wilful forgetfulness of the heart
(Chap. ii. 17. Ps. ix. 17; x. 4; comp. chap. iv. 5; Deut. iv. 23; Ps.
cxix. 93, 176), not the infirmity of the memory (for which a special,
though we fear too much neglected, help, is provided) (John, xiv. 26)
is here implied. Let thine heart, like the ark of the testimony, be the
keeping place of my commandments. (Chap. iv. 4. Deut. xi. 18. Isa. li. 7;
with Ezek. xi. 20. Heb. ix. 4.) And is not this the child's desire---"0
that my ways were directed to keep thy statutes.?" (Ps. cxix. 6; comp.
verses 69, 129), while his conscious helplessness takes hold of the cove-
nant promise—"I will put my law in their inward parts, and write it
in their hearts." (Jer. xxxi. 33.)
Indeed no laws, but God's, bind the heart. All acceptable obedience
begins here. The heart is the first thing that wanders from God: the
first also that returns. Here is the vital principle, (Chap. iv. 23. Rom.
vi. 17.) All religion without it is a mere name; and, however the
professor may practise a thousand arts to put life into it, all must fail,
" The root being as rottenness, the blossom goes up as the dust."
(Isa. v. 24.) If every moment were filled up with deeds of benevolence,
or external piety; yet, except the heart was quickened to keep the com-
mandments, the voice of rebuke would be heard—"Who hath required
this at your hand?" (Isa. i. 11, 12.) "The inner man's delight"
(Rom. vii. 22) stamps the excellency upon the service. And this plea-
sure and perseverance in duty flow from a gracious change upon the
heart. (See Ezek. xi. 19; xxxvi. 26, 27.)
Herein also lies our interest, not less than our obligation. The
reward of this hearty obedience (need we add--a reward of grace?) is
a long and happy life--the highest earthly good. (Ps. xxxiv. 12;
comp. verse 16; iv. 10; ix. 11; x. 27; Job, x. 12.) The wicked indeed
live long, and the godly often "live out only half their days." The
wicked die in outward comfort; the righteous in outward trouble.
(Eccles. ix. 2.) But length of days is the promise to the righteous;
whether for earth or for heaven, as their Father deems fittest for them.
In itself the promise, as regards this life, has no charm. To the un-
22 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
godly it is a curse (Gen. iv. 11–15. Isa. lxv. 20); to the people of God
a trial of faith and patience (Gen. xxvii. 46; xlvii. 9. 1 Kings, xix. 4.
Job, vii. 16. Philip. i. 23, 24. Rev. xxii. 20); to all a weariness. (Chap.
xv. 15. Ps. xc. 10. Eccles. xii. 1.) But peace added forms the sunshine
of the toilsome way (Ps. cxix. 165. Isa. xxxii. 17; xlviii. 17, 18):
peace with God through the blood of sprinkling" (Rom. v. 1. Eph. ii.
13, 14. Col. i. 20); eternal peace in his home and in his bosom (Ps.
xxxvii. 37. Isa. lvii. 2); where all the fightings of a rebellious flesh,
all the counter-strivings of a perverse and ungovernable will, shall have
ceased for ever. "Blessed are they that do his commandments, that they
might have right to the tree of life, and may enter in through the gate
into the city." (Rev. xxii. 14.)
3. Let not mercy and truth forsake thee; bind them about thy neck; write
them upon the table of thine heart; 4. So shalt thou find favour and
good understanding (marg., success,) in the sight of God and man.
Mercy and truth are the glorious perfections of God; always in com-
bined exercise (Gen. xxxii. 10. Ps. xxv. 10; lxxxv.10; lxxxix.14; c. 5;
cxvii. 2. Mic. vii. 18–20) for his people's good. While we rest upon
them for salvation, let us copy them in our profession. Are not his
children new-created-in his image? Let then our .Father's image be
manifested in us, "as his dear children." (Eph. iv. 24; v. 1, 2, 8.) Let
these graces be, as with God, in combination. ‘The want of one
buries the commendation of the other. Such a one is a merciful man to
the poor; but there is no truth in him. Such a one is very just in his
dealings, but as hard as flint.’* "Put on, as the elect of God, bowels
of mercy. But lie not one to another. Speak every man truth with
his neighbour." (Col. iii. 12, with 9. Eph. iv. 25.) Indeed, ‘as a rich
sparkling diamond added both value and lustre to a golden ring ; so do
these virtues of justice and mercy, well attempered, bring a rich addi-
tion of glory to the crowns of the greatest monarchs.'†
But these virtues must not be in temporary or occasional exercise.
Let them not forsake thee. Bind them as jewels about thy neck. (Chap.
vi. 21 ; vii. 3. Deut. vi. 8.) Let them be “written, not in tables of
stone, but in fleshly tables of the heart.” (Chap. vii. 3. 2 Cor. iii. 3.)
God indeed is not thy debtor; yet none shall serve him for nought.
The man who shows mercy to his neighbour shall find it with him.
(Ps. xviii. 25. Matt. v. 7.) "They that deal truly are his delight."
(Chap. xii. 22.) So shalt thou find favour and good understanding (Ps.
cxi. 10)--(success) (Josh. i. 7, 8. M. R.) —both in his sight, and in
the sight of man. Witness Joseph in Egypt (Gen. xxxix. 2–4, 21–23;
* F. TAYLOR’S Comment on Chap. i.-ix.; 4to. 1655-1657.
† Bishop SANDERSON's Sermon on Chap. xxiv. 10-12.
CHAP. III. 5, 6. 23
xli. 37–43; xlv.16); David in the family of Saul (1 Sam. xviii. 5,14–16);
the servants of God in the eastern courts;* the early Christians with
the people around them. (Acts, ii. 44-47.) What is more lovely than
thus to live down reproach by consistent godliness? What more
acceptable to God, or more edifying to the Church? (Rom. xiv. 16–19.)
The Scripture connects the favour of God with the favour of men, as if
the one was often the fruit of the other. (Comp. chap. xvi. 7.) Such
was the record of the holy child. (Luke, ii. 52.) The highest crown of
a youthful profession is conformity to this Divine pattern. (Comp.
1 Sam. ii. 26.)
5. Trust in the Lord with all thine heart, and lean not to thine own under-
standing. 6. In all thy ways acknowledge him, and he shall direct thy
paths.
This is the polar-star of a child of God —faith in his Father's pro-
vidence, promises, and grace. The unmeaning expression of trust on
the lips of the ignorant and ungodly is a fearful delusion. What
ground of confidence can there be when there is, everything to fear?
Can the sinner's God--a just, avenging God—be an object of trust,
What owe we to that precious atonement, which has opened. up our
way to a reconciled God (Rom. v. 11), and assured our-confidence in
him as our Friend and Counsellor! Nor is this the cold assent of the
enlightened judgment. It is the trust of the heart, of all the heart. It
is a child-like, unwavering (Ps. Ixxviii. 2 Chron. xiv. 11. Contrast
Jer. i. 6–8) confidence in our Father's well-proved wisdom, faithfulness,
and love. Any limit to this confidence is a heinous provocation. (Ps.
lxxviii. 18-21.) He is truth itself. Therefore he would have us take
him at his word, and prove his word to the utmost extent of his power,
But our trust must not only be entire: it must be exclusive. No
other confidence, no confidence in the flesh, can consist with it. (Comp.
Philip. iii. 3.) Man with all his pride feels that he wants something to
lean to. As a fallen being, he naturally leans to himself, to his own
foolish notions and false fancies. Human power is his idol. His
understanding is his God. Many would rather be convicted of want of
principle than want of talent. Many bring God's truth to their own
bar, and cavil at it, as an excuse for rejecting it. In these and other
ways, man "trusteth to himself, and his heart departeth from the Lord."
(Jer. xvii. 5.) This is the history of the fall; they history of man from
the fall; the dominant sin of every unhumbled heart; the lamented
and resisted sin of every child of God. Need we advert to it as the sin
of youth? How rare is the sight of the "younger submitting unto the
elder!" (1 Pet. v. 5.) If advice is asked, is it not with the hope of
* Dan. i. 8, 9; iv. 8, 9; v. 11; vi. 1-3, 27, 28. —His three Companions, iii. 30; Ezra,
vii. 9-12. Neh. ii. 1-6. Mordecai, Esth. x. 3,
24 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
confirming a previously-formed purpose? In case of a contrary judg-
ment, the young man's own understanding usually decides the course.
Great reason then is there for the warning—Lean not to thine own
understanding. Once, indeed, it gave clear unclouded light, as man's
high prerogative, "created in the image of God." (Gen. i 26. Col.
iii. 10.) But now, degraded as it is by the fall (Ps. xlix. 20), and
darkened by the corruption of the heart (Eph. iv. 18), it must be a false
guide. Even in a prophet of God it proved a mistaken counsellor.
(2 Sam. vii. 2–5.) Yet though we refuse to lean to it, to follow it may
be implicit trust in the Lord; because it is a trust in his Divine power,
enlightening it, as his lamp for our direction. The Christian on his
knees, as if he cast his understanding away, confesses himself utterly
unable to guide his path. But see him in his active life. He carefully
improves his mind. He conscientiously follows its dictates. Thus
practical faith strengthens, not destroys, its power; invigorates, not
supersedes, exertion. (Comp. Gen. xxxii. 9-20; Neh. 4–20; iv. 9.).
It is therefore our plain duty not to neglect our understanding, but
to cultivate it diligently in all its faculties in a world of such ex-
tended 'knowledge, ignorance is the fruit of sloth dissipation, or mis-
guided delusion. But lean not to thine understanding. Lean—trust in
the Lord. Self-dependence is folly (Chap. xxviii..26), rebellion (Jer.
ii. 13 ; ix. 23), ruin. (Gen. iii. 5, 6. Isa. dlvii. 10, 11.) 'The great
folly of man in trials'---as Dr. Owen justly remarks—'is leaning to or
upon his own understanding and counsels. What is the issue of it?
Whenever in our trials we consult our own understandings, hearken to
self-reasonings, though they seem to be good, and tending to our pre-
servation; yet the principle of living by faith is stifled, and we shall in
the issue be cast down by our own counsels.'*
Next—let our confidence be uniform— all thy ways acknowledge
him. Take one step at a time, every step under Divine warrant and
direction. (Comp. Ezek. viii. 21–23; Neh. i.11.) Ever plane for your-
self in simple, dependence on God.† It is nothing less than self-idolatry
to conceive that we can carry on even the ordinary matters of the day
without his counsel. He loves to be consulted. Therefore take all thy
difficulties to be resolved by him. Be in the habit of going to him in
the first place—before self-will, self-pleasing,‡ self-wisdom, human
friends, convenience, expediency. Before any of these have been con-
sulted go to God at once. Consider no circumstances too clear to need
his direction.§ In all thy ways, small as well as great; in all thy con-
* Treatise on Temptation, chap. viii. Comp. Job, xviii 7; Hos. x. 8.
† Jam. iv. 15. If the Lord will— as Fuller remarks with his pithy quaintness —'a
parenthesis, and yet the most important part of the sentence.'
‡ See the awful hypocrisy, and judgment of asking counsel of God under this deadly
influence. Jer. xlii. 1-3, 19-22. Ezek. xiv. 1-6.
§ See the evil consequence of this inconsiderate neglect. Jos. ix. 14.
CHAP. III. 7, 8. 25
cerns, personal or relative, temporal or eternal, let him be supreme.
Who of us has not found the unspeakable "peace" of bringing to God
matters too minute or individual to be entrusted to the most confidential
ear?* Abraham thus acknowledged God. Wheresoever he pitched a
tent for himself there was always an altar for God. (Gen. xii. 7; xiii. 18.)
In choosing a wife for his son there was a singular absence of world-
liness. No mention was made of riches, honour, beauty; only of what
concerned the name and honour of his God. (Gen. xxiv. 1–8. Comp.
also his servant, verse 12-27.) Thus did the wise man's father in all
his ways acknowledge God, asking counsel of him in all his difficulties,
and never disappointed.†
Now if we be weaned from the idolatry of making our bosom our
oracle, and our heart our counsellor if in true poverty of spirit we go
every morning to our Lord, as knowing not how to guide ourselves for
this day; our eye constantly looking upward for direction (Ps. v. 3;
cxliii. 8–10; xxv. 4, 5), the light will come down.‡ He shall direct thy
paths. We want no new revelations or visible tokens. (Such as Exod.
xiii. 21, 22.) Study the word with prayer. Mark the Divine Spirit
shedding light upon it. Compare it with the observation of the pro-
vidences of the day (Ps. cvii. 43); not judging by constitutional bias
(a most doubtful interpreter), but pondering with sober, practical,
reverential faith. Let the will be kept in a quiet, subdued, cheerful
readiness, to move, stay, retreat, turn to the right hand onto the left, at
the Lord's bidding; always remembering that is best which is least our
own doing, and that a pliable spirit ever secures the needful guidance.
(Comp. Ps. xxxii. 8, 9; Isa. xlviii. 17, 18, with xxi. 21.) We may "be
led," for the exercise of our faith, "in a way that we know not" (Isa.
xlii. 16; l. 10) —perhaps a way of disappointment, or even of mistake.
Yet no step well prayed over will bring ultimate regret. Though the
promise will not render us infallible; our very error will be overruled
for deeper humiliation and self-knowledge; and thus even this myste-
rious direction will in the end be gratefully acknowledged, "He led me
forth in the right way." (Ps. cvii. 7.)
7. Be not wise in thine own eyes: fear the Lord, and, depart from evil;
8. It shall be health to thy navel, and marrow to thy bones.
This warning against self-confidence is closely connected with the
preceding verse. The wise in his own eyes is he, that leans to his own
* Phil. iv. 6, 7. "In every thing."
† 1 Sam. xxiii. 9-11; xxx. 6-8. 2 Sam. ii. 1; v. 19. Comp. the smarting rod from the
neglect of this godly habit. 1 Sam. xxvii. 1, with xxix.
‡ Matt. vi. 22. Comp. Ps. xxxii. 8; xxxiv. 5. Neh. i. 4-11; ii. 4-8. Sir M. Hale left
it on record, when nearly eighty years old, as his experience, that whenever he had com-
mitted his way simply and unreservedly to the Lord, he had always directed his path.
26 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
understanding.* Such wisdom is folly and self-delusion.† Put it away, and
let it be thy wisdom to fear the Lord, and depart from evil. How striking
is this connexion between the fear of God and the fear of sin. (Chap.
xiv. 27; xvi. 6. Gen. xxxix. 9, 10. Neh. v. 15. Job, xxviii. 28.)
Where God is honoured, sin is hated, loathed, and resisted. (Rom. vii.
18-24.) It lives indeed; but it is conderined to die. (Ibid. vi.-6.) It
cleaves to the child of God; but his heart departs from it. Often is it
the cause of the sickness of the body:‡ always of the soul. (Hos. vii. 9.)
The departure from it in the exercise of self-denial and godly discipline,
is health to the body. (Verses 1, 2.) The soul, drooping under the bane-
ful influence of spiritual disease, revives in fruitfulness. (Hos. xiv. 5-7.)
The man that feareth the Lord, under "the healing beams of the Sun of
Righteousness, goeth forth" (Mal. iv. 2), as from his sick chamber, full
of life and Christian energy. "The joy of the Lord is his strength."
(Neh. viii. 10.)
9. Honour the Lord with thy substance, and with the first fruits of all thine
increase; 10. So shall thy barns be filled with plenty, and thy presses
shall burst out with new wine.
This rule of sacrifice is a costly precept to the worldling and the
formalist. But to the servant of God, is it not a privilege to lay aside
a portion of substance with this sacred stamp,—"This is for God?"
(1 Cor. xvi. 2.) The first-fruits of the increase were the acknowledg-
ment of redemption from Egypt. (Exod. xiii. 12, 13. Deut. xxvi. 1-40.)
And shall we, redeemed from sin, Satan, death, and hell, deny the claim?
(1 Cor. vi. 19, 20.) 'Well, may we think our substance due, where we
owe ourselves.'§ Nay, could we be happy in spending that substance
on ourselves, which he has given us wherewith to honour him? (Luke,
xix. 13. Contrast xii. 16-22.) What a value, what a dignity, does it
give to the talent, that he should condescend to employ it for his own
grand, eternal purposes! This sacred devotedness is, moreover, the
true road to riches. (Chap. xi. 24.) God challenges us to "prove him
now herewith," if the abundant harvest, and the overflowing vintage,
shall not put unbelief and covetousness to shame. (Mal. iii. 10. 2 Chron.
xxxi. 5-10.) A niggardly spirit is, therefore, narrow policy; contract-
ing the harvest, by sparing the seed-corn. (2 Cor. ix. 6. Hag. i. 4-6.)
* Verse 5. Comp. xxiii. 4. Rom. xii. 3-18. See the mind of God expressed in that
solemn woe. (Isa. v. 21.)
† Even a heathen could remark—‘I suppose that many might have attained to wisdom,
had they not thought they had already attained it.' SENECA, de Ira, Lib. iii. c. 36. Comp.
1 Cor. viii. 2; Gal. vi. 3. ‘Our knowledge should hold the light before us, and help us for
the better discovery of our ignorance, and so dispose us to humility, not pride.’—Bp. SAN-
DERSON's Sermon on Rom. xiv. 3.
‡ In sensual indulgence--Chap. v. 8-11. Intemperance—xxiii. 29, 30. As a judicial
infliction — Ps. xxxii. 3, 4; xxxviii. 1-8. 1 Cor. xi. 30.
§ Bishop Hall.
CHAP. III. 11, 12. 27
There is no presumption, or enthusiasm in looking for the literal fulfil-
ment of the promise. If we doubt the temporal, should we not suspect
our assumed confidence in the spiritual, engagements? For if the
Lord's word be insufficient security for our substance: much more must
it be for the infinitely weightier deposit of our soul!
The rule and obligation are therefore clear. The law dealt with
us as children, and prescribed the exact amount. The gospel treats us
as men, and leaves it to circumstance, principle, and conscience. This
consecration of substance, as the seed-corn for the harvest, is as strange
to the world, as would be the casting of the seed in the earth to an
untutored savage. Yet is the result secure in both cases; only with
this difference, that the temper of the earthly sower has no influence on
the harvest; whereas the fruitfulness of the spiritual harvest mainly
depends upon the principles of the work. Most important is it to be-
ware of bye-ends and selfish principles; that we honour the Lord, not
ourselves. Let there be a self-renouncing spirit (1 Chron. xxix. 14-16.
Matt, vi. 1-4; xxv. 37-39), implicit faith (1 Kings, xvii. 12-16), con-
straining love (Rom. xii. 1. 2 Cor. v. 14, 15. Matt x. 42), special
regard to his own people. And doubt not, but he will affix his own
seal—"Those that honour me, I will honour." (I Sam. ii. 30. Comp.
chap. xi. 25; xxii. 9; Heb. vi. 10.)
11. My son, despise not the chastening of the Lord; neither be weary of his
correction; 12. For whom the Lord loveth he correcteth; even as a
father the son in whom he delighteth.
Prosperity and adversity in their wise mixture and proportion, form
our present condition. Each is equally fruitful in opportunity of honour-
ing the Lord; in prosperity—by the full consecration of our substance
(Verses 9, 10); in adversity —by a humble and cheerful submission to
his dispensation. 'In prosperity it is well to expect the rod; and sup-
pose it be his pleasure, let it not make thee either doubt of his gracious
Providence, or out of impatience take any unlawful course to remove
it from thee.’* His "exhortation"---the Apostle reminds us—"speak-
eth to us, as unto children."† And indeed, under no character does
he approach so near to us, and endear himself so closely to us, as that
of a Father, Most precious at all times, especially under correction, is
the privilege of adoption—My son.
Nowhere, indeed, are our corruptions so manifest, or our graces so
shining, as under the rod. We need it as much as our daily bread.
Children of God are still children of Adam; with Adam's will, pride,
* Bishop Patrick.
† Heb. xii. 5. We must not overlook the Apostle's testimony to the Divine inspiration
of the Book; showing the instruction throughout to be the teaching of our Heavenly
Father to his beloved children.
28 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
independence, and waywardness. And nothing more distinctly requires
Divine teaching and grace, than how to preserve in our behaviour the
just mean between hardness and despondency; neither despising the
chastening of the Lord, nor being weary of his correction.*
Too often, while we guard against an error on the right hand, we
forget one not less hurtful on the left; like the man, who, in guarding
against the precipice on the one side, rushes into some fearful hazard on
the other. The middle path is the right path. Doubtless the Lord means
his chastening to be felt. (2 Sam. xv. 26. Ps. xxxix. 10, 11.) A leviathan
iron-heartedness (Job, xli. 24-29. Jer. v. 3) is the stubbornness of the
flesh, not the triumph of the spirit; a frame most offensive to him, and
most unseemly for the reception of his gracious discipline. To be as
though no pain was felt or cared for; sullenly to "kick against the
pricks " (Acts, ix. 5. Comp. chap. xix. 3), and to dare God to do his
worst--this is, indeed, to despise his chastening.† But pride will lift
up the head, stiff and unbending: many a stroke does it require to
bring it down.
Yet, alas! this is not the sin only of the ungodly. Often do we see
the child of God in an undutiful spirit (Job, v. 17. Heb. xii. 6), caring
little whether his Father smiles or frowns. The chastening is lightly
passed over. He considers only second causes, or immediate instru-
ments. (Amos, iii. 6.) He is irritated by looking at the rod, rather than
at the hand that inflicts it. (2 Chron. xvi. 10-12.) He shrinks from
searching into the cause. He disregards his Father's loving voice and
purpose. Hence there is no softening humilation (Ps. xxxii. 3, 4);
no "acceptance of the punishment of iniquity" (Lev. xxvi. 41, 43);
no child-like submission; no exercise of faiths in looking for support.
Is not this to despise the chastening of the Lord?
But while some despise the hand of God as light, others "faint "
under it as heavy. (Heb. xii. 5. Ps. xxxviii. 2, 3; xxxix. 10.) They
are weary of his correction. Beware of yielding to heartless despondency,
or fretful impatience. (Ps. lxxiii. 14; lxxvii. 7.40.) Resist hard and
dishonourable thoughts of God. (Gen. xlii. 3; Judg. vi. 13. Jonah,
iv. 9.) Their very admission spreads destruction. Very apt are we to
judge amiss of our Father's dealings;‡ to neglect present duty; to
cherish a morbid brooding over our sorrows (Job, vi. 1-16): to forget
our title and privilege of adoption (Heb. xii. 5); or in obstinate grief
to "refuse to be comforted" with the "hope of the end" (Ps, lxxvii. 2.
* The philosopher's definition is striking and accurate, but infinitely above his own
Tactical standard-‘Non sentire mala tua, non est hominis; et non ferre, non est viri.’—
(It is inhuman not to feel thine afflictions, and unmanly not to bear them.)—SENECA, Consol.
ad Polyb. c. 36.
† Comp. Pharaoh—Exod. vii. 23. Jehoram—2 Kings vi. 31. Ahaz—2 Chron.
xxviii. 22. Israel--Isa. i. 6. Zeph. iii. 2. Comp. Job, xv. 25, 26.
‡ Chap xxiv. 10. Isa. xl. 27-31; Comp. 1 Sam. xxvii.1; 1 Kings, xix. 4; Job
iii. 1-3; Jer. xx. 14-18.
CHAP. III. 11, 12. 29
Comp. Jer. xxix. 11; xxxi. 15-17.) And is not this to be weary of his
correction?
But these rules imply much more than their negative meaning.
Instead of despising, reverence the chastening of the Lord. Let it be a
solemn remembrance to thee, that thou art under thy Father's correction.
(Lam. iii. 28, 29. Mic. vii. 9.) Receive it then in good part. Instead
of being weary of it, hang upon his chastening hand, and pour thy
very soul into his bosom. (1 Sam. i. 10–15.) Kiss the rod. (Job,
xxxiv. 31, 32. 1 Pet. v. 6.) Acknowledge its humbling, but enriching,
benefit. (Ps. cxix. 67–71.) Expect a richer blessing from sustaining grace,
than from the removal of the deprecated affliction. (2 Cor. xii. 7–10.)
After all we must add, that chastening is a trial to the flesh (Heb.
xii. 11); yet overruled by wonder-working wisdom and faithfulness to
an end above and contrary to its nature. This, very rod was sent in
love to the soul. Perhaps we were living at ease, or in heartless back-
sliding. The awakening voice called us to our Bible and to prayer.
Thus eyeing God in it, we see it to be love, not wrath; receiving, not
casting out. We might perhaps have wished it a little altered; that
the weight had been shifted, and the cross a little smoothed, where it
pressed upon the shoulder. But now that our views are cleared, we
discern blessing enough to swallow up the most poignant smart. We
see the "needs-be," for our preservation from imminent danger (Comp.
Chap. i. 32; Ps. lv. 19), and for "the trial of our faith." We come to
an unhesitating verdict in favour of the absolute perfection of the dis-
pensation. (Ps. li. 4 ; cxix. 75.) Faith understands the reasons of the
discipline (I Pet. i. 6, 7); acknowledges it as a part of his gracious
providence (Deut. viii. 2, 15, 16), and the provision of his everlasting
covenant (Ps. lxxxix. 30–32); waits to see the end of the Lord (Jam.
v. 11); and meanwhile draws its main support fro the seal of adoption.
For indeed it is the declared test of our legitimacy. (Heb. xii. 7, 8.
Rev. iii. 19.) He corrects whom he loves, the son it whom he delighteth.
His discipline is that of the family; not of the school; much less of the
prison. He corrects his children, not as criminal, but as those whom
he beholds without spot, "made accepted in the eloved." (Eph. i. 6.)
Nor is there caprice, as too often with an earthly father, in his chastise-
ment. (Heb. xii. 10.) It is wisdom in the spirit of love. " He
rejoiceth over his child to do him good" (der. xxxi. 41); yet as a wise
and affectionate father, he would not suffer him to be ruined for want
of correction. (Chap. xiii. 24. Deut. viii. 5.) It is correction—this is
for your humbling. It is only correction—this is your consolation.
The intolerable sting of penal infliction is removed. Here then the
child has rest indeed?* The rod is now meekly, yea—thankfully
borne, because it is in the hand of One supreme in wisdom, as in love,
* 1 Sam. iii. 18 2 Sam. xv. 25; xvi. 10, 11. Ps. xxxix. 9. Job, i. 21. Isa. xxxix. 8.
30 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
who knows what is our need, and how to apply the discipline. He
chooses the fittest time (Isa, xxx. 18. I Pet. v. 6), the surest yet
gentlest means, the most considerate measure (Isa. xxvii. 7, 8. Jer.
xxx. 11. Lam. iii. 31-33), the most effective instruments. And, com-
paring our affliction with our sin, is not the marvel that it is so light?
(Ezra, ix. 13. Ps. ciii. 10. Lam. iii. 39.) Have we not more than
deserved it all? 'I love the rod of my heavenly Father'-- exclaimed
the saintly Fletcher---'How gentle are the stripes I feel! How heavy
those I deserve!'* '0 God, I have made an ill use of thy mercies, if
I have not learnt to be content with thy correction.'†
Should he then at any dark season ask —"If it be so, why am I
thus?" (Gen. xxv. 22)—you are thus, because this is your Father's
training discipline for heaven.‡ He loves, thee so well, that he will
bestow all pains upon thee. He will melt thee in his furnace, that he
may stamp thee with his image. (Isa. xxvii. 9; xlviii. 10. Zech. xiii.
9. Mal. iii. 3.) He would make thee "partake of his holiness" (Heb.
xii. 10), that thou mightest partake of his happiness. But unless thou
enter into his mind, thou wilt, so far as thou canst, defeat his purpose,
and lose the benefit— a loss never to be told? (Comp. Jer. vi. 8.)
Look then well into the dispensation. (Job, x. 2. Ps. cxxxix. 23, 24.
Eccles. vii. 14. Lam. iii. 40.) Every rod is thy Father's messenger;
and he will not bear to have his messenger despised. Be anxious to
"hear the rod; and who hath appointed it " (Mic. vi. 9); well knowing
that "the Lord hath not done without cause all that he hath done."
(Ezek. xiv. 23.) Be more concerned to have it sanctified than removed;
yea, above all things deprecate its removal, until it has fully wrought
its appointed work. (Isa. iv. 4.) We can but admire that considerate
dispensation, which uses these "light" afflictions as the means of
deliverance from the most deadly evil. Should flesh and blood rebel;
should the earthly tabernacle shake with "the blow of his hand" (Ps.
xxxix. 10, ut supra): yet shalt thou bless him throughout eternity, that
even by this crushing discipline he should accomplish his most merciful
purpose. Meanwhile, give him unlimited confidence; and if some steps
of the way are hid, wait and "see the end." (Job, xxiii. 8-10; Jam.
v. 11.) Watch for the first whispers of his will, the first intimation of
his Providence, the guidance of his eye. (Ps. xxxii. 8, 9.) Many a
stroke will thus be saved to thy peace and quietness. This indeed is a
golden opportunity, requiring for its due improvement much study,
prayer, and retirement. No communion is so close, so endearing,
so fruitful, as with a chastening God. Never is Christ more precious to
Comp. John, xviii. 11. The heathen philosopher has accurately drawn the line—‘Chastise-
meat is on the sufferer's account. Vengeance is for the satisfaction of him that inflicts it.'
—ARIST. de Rhetor b. i. e. 10.
* Life of Rev. H. Venn, pp. 238, 584. † Bishop Hall.
‡ Job, xxxiii. 14-28; xxxvi. 8-10. Heb. xii. 7, 8, ut supra.---The term refers to the
education of children.
CHAP. III. 13-15. 31
us; his love never more sweet, than in the midst,--yea, in the very
form, of chastening. Never have we so full a manifestation of the
Divine character (Ps. cxix. 75), and perfections. What we have before
learnt in theory, we here learn experimentally; and what we have
before imperfectly understood, is here more filly revealed.* With
regard to the full weight and duration of the trial, and all its minute
circumstances, successively so bitter and piercing—we may ask—
‘Which of them could be spared?' It is quite clear as to the whole
time, the whole weight, the whole number and variety of circumstances
that all and each were as necessary as any part. Where could we have
stopped, without making that stop fatal to the great end? What does
it all mean, but the Lord holding to his determination to save us;
all the thoughts of his heart, every exercise of his, power, centering
in this purpose of his sovereign mercy?
13. Happy is the man that findeth wisdom, and the man that getteth (marg.
draweth out), understanding; 14. For the merchandize of it is better
than the merchandize of silver, and the gain thereof than fine gold; 15.
She is more precious than rubies, and all the things thou canst desire
are not to be compared to her.
Who does not admire this glowing picture of happiness?† The
wisdom of this world affords no such happiness, (Eccles. i. 18.) Yet
cold and barren is admiration, without an interest in the blessing. The
happy man has found a treasure, where possibly the least expected it,
under the chastening of the Lord. David‡ and Manasseh (2 Chron.
xxxiii. 12, 13) found (as who hath not found?) ‘God's house of correc-
tion to be a school of instruction.’§ Under all circumstances, however,
prayerful diligence in the search of wisdom ensues success. (Chap. ii.
1-6.) The naturally wise man is a fool in heavenly wisdom. The man
of prayer getteth understanding, draweth it out to light, as out of the hid
treasure.|| We wonder not at the merchant-man's concentrated interest,
at his untiring toil.¶ Here the wise man, himself enriched with the
* Job, xlii. 5. Comp. the Apostle's most instructive and encouraging exposition, Heb.
xii. There is some slight variation between Heb. xii. 6, and verse. 12. The one describes
the mode and subject of the chastening. The other shows the Father's delight in his chas-
tened child. Some by inverting the first clause, ver. 12, grossly pervert the meaning, and
conclude themselves to be the Lord's children, because they are afflicted. But though every
child is corrected, not every one that is corrected is a child. The same hand—but not the
same character—gives the stroke,' to the godly and the ungodly. The scourge of the
Judge is widely different from the rod of the Father. Comp. I Sam. xxviii. 15-20, with
2 Sam. xii. 13, 14 ; Chap. i. 26. Isa. i. 24, with Jer. xxxi. 18-2. Hos. xi. 7. 8; also Isa.
xxvii. 7-9. Nor is it chastening, but the endurance of chastening, according to the rules pre-
scribed, that seals our adoption. Heb. xii. 7.
† Happy man —Heb. plural. Comp. Ps. i. 1; xxxii. 1. Blessedness—to mark supreme
and perfect happiness. See the beautiful description of Wisdom, Ecclus xxiv. 1-19.
‡ Ps. cxix. 67, 71. Hence he commends it, Ps. xciv. 12. § TRAPP, in LOCO.
|| M. R. Comp. Chap. viii. 35. M. R. Chap. ii. 4. Matt. xiii. 44
¶ Impiger extremos currit mercator ad Indos,
Per mare pauperiem fugiens, per saxa, per ignes. HOR. Epis. i. 1.45.
32 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
merchandize of fine gold (1 Kings, ix. 26-28) points out to us a better
merchandize. It is the search for " the pearl of great price," more precious
than rubies, yea, than all things that could, be desired.* So the Apostle
judged. So upon a trial he found it. All the world's show, all his
former valuable "gain, he counted as dung and dross" for "the true
wisdom"—"the excellency of the knowledge of Christ Jesus his Lord."
(Philip. iii. 4-8.) Never will solid happiness be known without this
singleness of judgment and purpose. This inestimable blessing must
have the throne. The waverer and the half-seeker fall short. Deter-
mined perseverance wins the prize. (Philip. iii. 12-14.)
16. Length of days is in her right hand, and in her left hand riches and
honour; 17. Her ways are ways of pleasantness; and all her paths are
peace; 18. She is a tree of life to them that lay hold upon her: and
happy is every one that retaineth her.
Behold this heavenly Queen dispensing her blessings! Her right
hand presents the promise of both worlds (Verse 2. Ps. xci. 16. 1 Tim.
vi. 8)—the rich enjoyment of the world's lawful comforts (1 Tim. vi. 17),
and the yet higher joy of serving the Lord and his church--a privilege
for which the Apostle was content for a while to be detained from
heaven. (Philip. i. 23, 24.) Add length of days for eternity to the
balance; and the amount sets at nought all computation. Her left
hand offers riches and honour,† so far as may be for her children's good;
yet in their highest splendour, only a faint shadow of her more "durable
riches," and of the honour of a heavenly crown.
But what say we of her ways? Is she a sullen matron, who enter-
tains her followers only on sighs and tears; so that to obtain the joys
of the next life, we must bid eternal adieu to the contents of this life;
‘we must never more expect a cheerful hour, a clear day, a bright
thought to shine upon us?'‡ This is the world's creed--a slander of
the great forger of lies, to deter us from wisdom's ways. They must be
ways of pleasantness, because "Thus saith the Lord." And if we feel
them not to be so, we know them not.
The man of pleasure utterly mistakes both his object and his pursuit.
The only happiness worth seeking is found here; that which will live
in all circumstances, and abide the ceaseless changes of this mortal life.
The ways may be dark and lonely; yet howl does the sunshine of recon-
ciliation beam upon their entrance! Every step is lighted from above,
and strewed with promises; a step in happiness, a step to heaven.
* Matt. xiii. 45, 46, with Chap. xxiii. 28. Comp. Chap. viii. 11, 19; Job, xxviii. 15-18.
Most truly does the great Moralist define Wisdom to be ‘The knowledge of the most
honourable things'—e]pisthmh twn timiwtatwn.—ARIST. Ethic. b. vi. chap. vii.
† See the treasures of right and hand promised to the wise man himself, 1 Kings,
iii. 12-14.
‡ BISHOP HOPKINS' Works, iv 354, 855.
CHAP. III. 16-18 33
Wisdom's work is its own reward (Ps. xix. 11. isa. xxxii. 17)— strict-
ness without bondage. (Matt. xi. 29, 30.) God rules children, not slaves.
They work neither from compulsion, nor for hire; but from an ingenuous
principle of gratitude to their Benefactor; filial delight in their Father.
Pleasant therefore must be the labour—yea—the sacrifices--of love;
short the path; cheerful the way, when the heart goes freely in it.
It is saying far too little, that the trials of these ways are not incon-
sistent with their pleasantness. They are the very principles of the most
elevated pleasure. ‘The verdict of Christ,’— says Dr. South—‘makes
the discipline of self-denial and the cross—those terrible blows to flesh
and blood—the indispensable requisite to the being his disciples.'*
And yet, paradoxical as it may appear, in this deep gloom is the
sunshine of joy. For if our natural will be "enmity to God" (Rom.
viii. 7), it must be the enemy to our own happiness. Our pleasure,
therefore, must be to deny, not to indulge it; to mortify sinful appetites,
that only "bring forth fruit unto death." (Ib. vii. 5.) Even what
may be called the austerities of godliness are mere joyous than "the
pleasures of sin." Far better to cross the will; than to wound the
conscience. The very chains of Christ are glorious. (Acts, v. 41, 42;
xvi. 24, 25.) Moses endured not "his reproach" as a trial. He "es-
teemed it as a treasure--greater riches than the treasures of Egypt."
(Heb. xi. 26.) Our principles are never more consoling than when we
are making a sacrifice for them. Hannah yielded up her dearest earthly
joy. But did she sink under the trial? Did she grudge the sacrifice?
"Hannah prayed and said—My heart rejoiceth in the Lord" (1 Sam. i.
26; ii. 1); while—to show that none serve him for nought—for one
child that was resigned, five were added. (Ib. ii. 20, 21.)
In fact, the world have no just conception of the real character of
wisdom's ways. Religion to them is associated with cold, heartless
forms and irksome restraints—much to do, but nothing to enjoy. But
they only see half the prospect. They see what religion takes away.
But they see not what it gives. They cannot discern, that, while it
denies sinful, it abounds in spiritual, pleasures. We drudge in the ways
of sin. But we "shall sing in the ways of the Lord (Isa. lvii.10; with
Ps. cxxxviii. 5.) Here is the only thing below worth the name of joy
—solid—abiding—overflowing—satisfying (Hab. iii. 18)--God's
own joy. (John, xv. 11; xvii. 13.) It is not a mere impulse of vapid
sentimentalism, but a principle of Christian energy, invigorating for
duty, supporting for trial. (Neh. viii. 10.) Here, then, "we have less
toil, and reap more fruit." For will not any reasonable man, upon the
hearing of the names of the things only, presently yield, that "love, joy,
peace, and gentleness," which are "fruits of the Spirit," are far more
lovely, more easy, fuller of sweetness and calmness, less vexatious, than
* Sermons, vol. i. Matt. xvi. 24.
34 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
are "hatreds, emulations, murders," and those other "works of the
flesh?"*
But ways of pleasantness are not always safe. Yet all wisdom's paths
are peace. The deadly breach is healed. The cloud vanishes. Heaven
smiles. And peace, the Saviour's last bequest, is realised even in the
heat of "this world's tribulation." (John, xvi. 33.) "The feet are shod"
for the rugged path "with the preparation of the Gospel of peace."
(Eph. vi. 15; with Deut. xxxiii. 25.) The subjugation of the will, the
sorrow of contrition, the weariness of the (cross--all end in peace.
(Ps. xxxvii. 37. Isa. lvii. 2, with 20, 21.)
Yet nothing can make wisdom's ways palatable to a carnal mind.
"They that are after the flesh do mind the things of the flesh;" so that,
as "they cannot please God," God's ways cannot please them. (Rom.
viii. 5, 8.) Nor again—though wisdom's ways are ways of pleasantness,
are wisdom's children always happy. Sometimes a naturally morose
temper gives a gloomy tinge to religion. Professors forget, that it is
no matter of option, whether they should be happy or not; that it is
their obligation no less than their privilege to be so; that the commands
of God on this duty† carry weight, and demand obedience. The pro-
phets in the burst of their rapture search heaven and earth, bring forth
the most beautiful objects of nature; nay— call the inanimate creation
into glowing sympathy with the joys of the Gospel. (Ps. xcvi. 11-13;
xcviii. Isa. xliv. 23; lv. 12, 13.) A rejoicing spirit is the character of
the servants of God (Phil. iii. 3. Acts, ii. 46, 47), specially in affliction.
(2 Con vi. 10; viii. 2. 1 Pet. i. 6-8.) Is them thy happiness clouded?
Has there not been some deviation from wisdom's paths? Thy God calls
thee to search, to humble thyself, to return. (Jer. ii. 17-19. Hos. v.
15; vi. 1.)
Lastly—to the glory, beauty, and fruitfulness of wisdom, the Para-
dise of God alone can furnish the full counterpart. (Rev. ii. 7.) ‘The
tree of life was the means ordained of God for the preservation of last-
ing life, and continual vigour and health, before man sinned. So true
wisdom maintains man in the spiritual life of God's grace, and the
communion of his Spirit.'‡ Once our way was barred up, and none
could touch her. (Gen. iii. 22-24.) Now our way is opened to her in
a better paradise. (Heb. x. 19-22.) We "sit down under her shadow
with great delight." Her branches bend down upon this world of sin
and misery. Her clusters hang within the reach of the youngest child,
and "the fruit is sweet to the taste" (Cant. ii. 3); sweeter than ever
man tasted, since he became an exile from Eden. For what is so
refreshing, as near communion with God; access to him; boldness in
* Bishop SANDERSON'S Sermon on Gal. v. 22, 23.
† Such as Ps. xxxii. 11; xxxvii. 4. Phil. iv. 4. 1 These. v. 16. Comp. the warning,
Deut. xxviii. 47, 48. ‡ Diodati.
CHAP. III. 19, 20. 35
his presence; admission to his most holy delights? And if the earthly
shadow and fruit be so rich, what will be "on the other side of the
river,"--her monthly fruits, her healing leaves! (Rev. xxii. 2.) And
yet only the weeping, wrestling soul can lay hold upon the beloved
object (Gen. xxxii. 26–28. Hos. xii. 3, 4), and embrace it, in despite of
all the enemy's struggle to loosen the grasp. (Matt. xi. 12.) And
even, when Almighty power has enabled us to lay hold, the same con-
tinual miracle of grace, the same continually-renewed effort of faith, is
needed to retain it. (1 Tim. vi. 12.) There must be "continuance in
the ways" (Isa. lxiv. 5. John, viii. 31); "settled, rooted, and grounded"
(Col. i. 23 ; ii. 7); "keeping the works;" holding the beginning of our
confidence steadfast "unto the end." (Rev. ii. 26. Heb. iii. 6, 14.)
Happy is every one that retaineth her. The promises are "to him that over-
cometh." (Rev. ii. iii.) God honours perseverance in the weakest saint.
This lovely description of wisdom's blessing is no fancy picture, but
Divine reality. Rest not, till thine heart is filled with its substance.
Take it to the Lord in prayer; and ere long, thou shalt rejoice in thy
portion.
19. The Lord by wisdom hath founded the earth: by understanding hath he
established (marg. prepared) the heavens. 20. By his knowledge the
depths are broken up, and the clouds drop down the dew.
We have seen wisdom, as it is in man, with all its enriching bless-
ings. Here we behold its majesty, as it is in the bosom of God, and
gloriously displayed in his works. 'Hereby he showeth, that this
wisdom, whereof he speaketh, was everlasting, because it was before all
creatures; and that all things, even the whole world, were made by
it.’* Behold it founding the earth "upon nothing;" and yet "so sure,
that it cannot be moved." (Job, xxvi. 7. Ps. xciii. 1.) See how this
great Architect hath established the heavens, fixing all their bright lumi-
naries in their respective orbits (Gen. i. 14–16. Ps., cxxxvi. 5. Jer. x. 12;
li. 15)—‘such a glorious canopy set with such sparkling diamonds!'†
Each of these departments declares his knowledge—In the earth, by
breaking up the depths, and gathering them up into rivers and streams
for the refreshment of man. (Chap. viii. 24–29 Gen. i. 9, 10. Job,
xxxviii. 8–12. Ps. civ. 8–13)—In the heavens, by collecting the mois-
ture into dew, and dropping down fatness upon the parched ground;‡
each of these countless drops falling from this Fountain of life. (Job,
xxxviii. 28.) Thus does every particle of the universe glitter with
infinite skill. (Ps. civ. 24.) The earth is its pavement, and the
* Reformers' Notes. † Leighton's beautiful fragment On Ps. viii. Works, vol. ii.
‡ Gen. xxvii. 28, 29. There is a philosophical difficulty in supposing "the clouds to drop
down the dew," which is the moisture rising from the lower re ion, sometimes a very few
feet from the earth. In the East, however, the dew is said to fall from a considerable
height. Gesenius states, that the Hebrew word represents a ‘gentle rain.'
36 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
heavens--its ceiling; both miracles of wisdom, to "declare the glory of
God." (Ps. xix. 1.) How beautiful is the uniformity of the two great
systems of God! Both are the work of the same Architect. Both dis-
play the wisdom and knowledge of God. (John, i. 1-14. Eph. i. 8; iii.
10. Col. i. 13-17.) The universe is a parable, a mirror of the gospel.
The manifestation of these Divine Perfections in the field of Creation opens
a rich provision for our happiness. Much more let their more glorious
exhibition in the great work of redemption fill us with adoring praise
—"O the depth of the riches, both of the wisdom and knowledge of God!”*
21. My son, let them not depart from thine eyes: keep sound wisdom and
discretion: 22. So shall they be life unto thy soul, and grace unto thy
neck.
Again we listen to Wisdom's voice. Her repetitions are not "vain
repetitions;" but well fitted to impress upon youth (Isa. xxviii. 9, 10)
the weight of her instructions. (Philip. iii. 1; 2 Pet. i. 12.) As thy
much-loved treasure, as thy daily guide--let them not depart from, thine
eyes. (Chap. vii. 1-3.) Worse than valueless are they, if received as
notions; of inestimable price, if kept as principles. God's teaching is
sound wisdom (Deut. iv. 9; vi. 8. Josh. i. 7, 8); full of light, and sub-
stance; transfiguring Divine truth with heavenly glory. Therefore
keep it close to thine heart. Exercise it in that practical discretion,
which disciplines all our tempers and duties. Man's wisdom is utterly
devoid of all energy. The soul, "alienated from the life of God" (Eph.
iv. 18), is in a state of death, until "the entrance of God's word giveth
light and understanding" (Ps. cxix. 130)--"the light of life." (John,
viii. 12.) "The excellency of this knowledge is, that," "with this
light and understanding," it giveth life to them that have it. (Eccles.
vii. 12. Comp. Chap iv. 22; vi. 23.) Every truth under its influence
springs up into the new creature with heavenly glow, and with all the
grace of "the beauty of the Lord;"† outshining, even in the most
despised garb, the richest glory of an earthly drown.
23. Then shalt thou walk in thy way safer, and thy foot shall not stumble.
24. When thou liest down, thou shalt not be afraid: yea, thou shalt lie
* Rom. xi. 33. Full of profound thought are the words of our admirable Hooker—
'That which moveth God to work is Goodness; that which ordereth his work is Wisdom;
that which perfecteth his work is Power. All things, which God in these times and sea-
sons hath brought forth, were eternally and before all time in God; as a work unbegun is
in the artificer, which afterwards bringeth it into effect. Therefore whatsoever we do
behold now in this present world, it was enwrapped within the bowels of Divine Mercy,
written in the book of Eternal Wisdom, and held in the hands of Omnipotent Power, the
first foundations of the earth being as yet unlaid. So that all things which God hath
made are in that respect the Offspring of God. They are in him, as effects in their highest
cause. He likewise is actually in them; the assistance and influence of his Deity is their
life.'—Book v. lvi. 5.
† Ps. xc. 17; cxlix. 4. Comp. Chap. i. 9. 'Grace to thy jaws'— is the Douay Version,
with the Marg. Explanation — 'Merit for the words of thy Month.'
CHAP. III. 23-26. 37
down, and thy sleep shall be sweet. 25. Be not afraid of sudden fear,
neither of the desolation of the wicked, when it cometh. 26. For the
Lord shall be thy confidence, and shall keep thy foot from being taken.
The habitual eyeing of the word keeps the feet in a slippery path.
(Chap. iv. 11, 12. Ps. xvii. 4; xxxvii. 23; cxix. 9, 11, 133.) David,
from inattention to wisdom's words, "well-nigh slipped." (Ps. lxxiii.
2-17.) Peter from the same neglect fearfully stumbled. (Matt. xxvi.
33-35, 69-75.) But our sleeping hours, no less than our waking steps,
are divinely guarded. "So he giveth his beloved sleep." (Ps. cxxvii. 2.
Comp. cxxi. 3, 4.) "Underneath them are the everlasting arms." (Deut.
xxxiii. 27. Comp. Lev. xxvi. 6.) They enjoy a child-like repose, sleep-
ing in his bosom without fear. Thus did David 'sleep in God, and in
a state of salvation,' amid the tumultuous warfare with his undutiful
son!* Peter in prison, in chains, between two soldiers, on the eve of
his probable execution, when "there seemed but step between him
and death"--Yet in such a place, in such company, at such a moment,
did he lie down so fearless, and sleep so sweetly; that even the shining
light failed to disturb him, and an angel's stroke was needed to awaken
him.† What would not many in troublous times, waking at every
stir, give for one night of this sweet sleep! And yet bow many such
nights have we enjoyed; waking, as Jacob on his stony—we might
add—downy, pillar, in the consciousness of our Father's 'keeping!
But where has been our renewed dedication to God? (Gen. xxxvii.
11, 18-22.)
But sudden fear may come. Yet be not afraid. (Job, v. 21--24.
Comp. 2 Kings, vi. 16, 17 ; Jer. xxxix. 15-18.) It is the desolation of
the wicked. They must fear. (Isa. lvii. 20, 21.) Child of God ! run you
to your confidence, and "be safe." (Chap. xiv. 26; xviii. 10. Isa. xxvi.
1, 20.) Surely he shall keep thy foot from being taken. (Ps. xci. 1-3.)
Noah found this security in the flood of the ungodly; Lot in the
destruction of Sodom (2 Pet. ii. 5-9); the Christians in Pella, in the
desolation of the wicked city. Luther sung his song of confidence--"God
is our refuge and strength." (Ps. xlvi.) In the consummating desola-
tion, when it cometh--what will then be the sudden fear—the undis-
mayed confidence? "All the-tribes of the earth will mourn" at the
sight of their despised Saviour—then their Judge. (Chap. i. 27. Luke,
xxi. 26. Rev. i. 7; vi. 15-17.) But, "when ye see these thing's, then
look up, and lift up your heads, for your redemption draweth nigh."
(Luke, xxi. 28. Comp. 2 Thess. i. 7-10.)
* ‘Obdormit in Deo, et in statu salutis.'—Lyra.--Ps. iii. iv. 8. Compare the beautiful
picture, Ezek. xxxiv. 25-28, in contrast with chap. iv. 16. Deut. xxviii. 66.
† Acts, xii. 6, 7. Our Martyrologist records of John Rogers, the proto-martyr in the
Marian persecution, that ‘on the morning of his execution, being Found fast asleep, scarce
with much shogging could he be awaked.'—FOXE, vi. 699.
38 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
27. Withhold not good from them to whom it is due (the owners thereof,
marg.), when it is in the power of thine hand to do it. 28. Say not
unto thy neighbour, Go, and come again, and to-morrow I will give;
when thou hast it by thee.
The wise man now comes to practical points. He shows the fruit
of selfishness—withholding dues. Many are the forms of this dis-
honesty—borrowing without payment (Ps. xxxvii. 21), evading the
taxes;* "keeping back the labourer's hire.” (Jam. v. 4. Jer. xxii. 13-17.
Comp. Gen. xxxi. 7; Dent. xxiv. 14, 15.) But the, rule probes deeper
than this surface. If we have no legal debt to any, we have a Gospel
debt to all. (Rom. xiii. 8.) Even the poor is bound by this universal
law to his poorer neighbour. (Eph. iv. 28. Comp. 2 Cor. viii. 1-3.)
Every one has a claim upon our love. (Comp. Luke, x. 29-37.) Every
opportunity of doing good is our call to do so. Our neighbours are the
real owners of our good. (Marg.) The Lord of all has transferred his
right to them, with a special reference to "his own brethren." (Gal. vi.
10. Mark, ix. 41. Matt. xxv. 31-40.) Kindness is therefore a matter,
not of option, but of obligation; an act of justice no less than of
mercy. Not indeed that it may be demanded by our fellow-men. But
the obligation lies upon conscience; and to withhold the due will be our
eternal condemnation. (Matt. xxv. 41-45. Comp. Deut. xxiii. 3, 4.)
Christian benevolence will also do good in the kindest manner.
Delay is an offence against the law of love. Too often the cold repulse
—Go, and come again—is a cover for selfishness. There is a secret
hope that the matter will be forgotten, dropped, or taken up by some
other party. Often an application is put off from mere thoughtlessness.
We have it by us.† But it does not just now suit our convenience.
This is a serious injury to the applicant. A little given in time of need
is more than a larger sum when the time is gone by. We should cul-
tivate a quick sensibility of the wants and sufferings of others; putting
ourselves as much as possible in their place; not only "doing good,"
but "ready to every good work." (Tit. iii. 1. 1 Tim. vi. 18.) If we are
to "do justly"--which sometimes (as in the' punishment of criminals)
may be our sorrow; we are like our gracious God (Mic. vii. 18), to love
mercy (Ib. vi. 8. Comp. Rom. xii. 8; 2 Cor. ix. 7); seizing the pre-
sent, perhaps the only (Chap. xxvii. 1. Gal. vi. 10), opportunity; rather
anticipating the need than wantonly or thoughtlessly delaying to
relieve it. (2 Cor. viii. 10.) The Gospel presents every neighbour
before us as a brother or sister needing our help, and to be loved and
cared for "as ourselves." (Lev. xix. 18.) Whey do we not more readily
* The example and admonition of Christ are evidently directed against this iniquity.
Matt. xvii. 24-27; xxii. 15-21,
† See how Job rebutted his friend's accusation, xxii. 9, with xxxi. 16. Comp. Jam.
ii. 15-16.
CHAP. III. 29, 30. 39
acknowledge this standard? The Lord raise us from our selfishness,
and mould us to his own image of mercy and love!*
29. Devise not evil against thy neighbour, seeing he dwelleth securely by thee.
30. Strive not with a man without cause, if he have done thee no harm.
The command—withhold not good—is naturally followed by the
forbidding to do evil. The treachery here rebuked was a scandal even
to a heathen.† It is generally abhorred by the world, and should be
doubly hated by a godly man. With him all should be clear and open
as the day. An evil device against a neighbour, from whatever cause, is
a cursed sin. (Chap. vi. 14-18. Deut. xxvii. 24. Ps. xxxv. 20; lv. 20.
Jer. xviii. 18-20.) But to take occasion from confidence reposed,
betrays "the wisdom that descendeth not from above—devilish."
(Jam. iii. 15.) Such was the craft of Jacob's sons against the unsus-
pecting Shechemites (Gen. xxxiv. 13-29; xlix. 5-7); Saul's malice
against David, when under his protection (1 Sam. xviii. 22-26); Joab's
murder of Abner and Amasa (2 Sam. iii. 27; xx. 9, 10); Israel's of
Gedaliah. (Jer. xli. 1, 2.) No trial cuts so keenly. (Ps. lv. 12-14.)
This was one of the bitters in the Saviour's cup of suffering. (John,
xiii. 21, with Ps. xli. 9; Matt. xxvi. 46-50). And many a wounded
spirit has been cheered by his sympathy with this poignant sorrow.
(Heb. iv. 15.)
Yet we must guard not only against secret malice, but against
causeless strivings. A propensity to embroil ourselves in quarrels
(Chap. xvii. 14; xviii. 6 ; xxv. 8, 9) kindles strife, instead of following
the rule of peace. (Born. xii. 18.) This spirit is a great hindrance to
holiness (Heb. xii. 14. Col. iii. 12-15), and inconsistent with a true
servant of God. (2 Tim. ii. 24.) Irritable persons, strongly insist upon
their rights, or what they conceive to be due to them from others. "Is
there not"—say they—"a cause?" But impartial observers fre-
quently judge it to be striving without cause; that no harm has been
done; none at least to justify the breach of love; that more love on
one hand, and more forbearance on the other, would have prevented
the breach; that "there is utterly a fault--Why do ye not rather
take wrong?" (1 Cor. vi. 1-7.) How valuable is a close application
* Dr. South's caustic application may be wholesome probing--"Was ever the hungry
fed, or the naked clothed, with good looks or fair speeches? These are but thin garments
to keep out the cold, and but a slender repast to conjure down the rage of a craving appe-
tite. My enemy, perhaps, is ready to starve; and I tell him I am heartily glad to see him,
and should be very ready to serve him. But still my hand is closed, and my purse shut.
I neither bring him to my table, nor lodge him under my roof. He asks for bread, and I
give him a compliment—a thing indeed not so hard as a stone, but altogether as dry. I
treat him with art and outside, and lastly, at parting, with all the ceremonial of dearness,
I shake him by the hand, but put nothing into it. I play with his distress, and daily
with that which was not to be dallied with—want, and misery, and a clamorous
necessity.'—Sermon on Matt. v. 44.
† 'Fallere eum, qui laesus non esset, nisi credidisset.'—CICERO, pro Roscio.
40 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
of the self-denying law of Christ! (Such as Matt. v. 39-41.) How
earnestly should we seek from himself his own meek and loving spirit!
(1 Pet. ii. 21–23.) '0 Lord, pour into our hearts that most excellent
gift of charity, the very bond of peace, and of all virtues without
which, whosoever liveth is counted dead before thee:*
31. Envy thou not the oppressor (a man of violence, marg.) and choose
none of his ways. 32. For the froward is an abomination to the Lord;
but his secret is with the righteous.
What is there--we might ask--to envy in the oppressor? The love
of power is a ruling passion; and the slave of his own will enjoys a
brutish pleasure in tyranny. Yet little reason have we to envy him,
much less to choose his ways. (Chap. xxiv. 1. Eccles. iv. 1.) Can he
be happy, going froward in his way, in perverse contradiction to the
will of the Lord? with the frown of Heaven? 'For he who hateth
nothing that he hath made, abhors those who have thus marred them-
selves. They are not only abominable, but, ‘an abomination in his
sight.’† Really to be envied, or rather ardently, to be desired, is the lot
of the righteous, enriched with the secret of the Lord--"his covenant and
fatherly affection, which is hid and secret from the world."‡ Sinners are
an abomination. Saints are his delight. ‘They are God's friends, to
whom he familiarly imparts, as men used to do to their friends, his
mind and counsels, or his secret favour and comforts, to which other
men are strangers.'§ Communion with himself (John, xiv. 21–23);
peace (Phil. iv. 6, 7); joy (Chap. xiv. 10); assurance (Rev. ii. 17);
teaching (Matt. xi. 25; xiii. 11–17; xvi. 17. John, vii. 17. 1 Cor. ii.
12, 15); confidence (John, xv. 15); an enlightened apprehension of
providence (Gen. xviii. 17, 18. Ps. cvii. 43); yea, all the blessings of
his covenant (Ps. xxv. 14)—this is the secret between God and the
soul, an enclosed portion, hidden from the world, sealed to his beloved
people. Here then--child of God--a dwell in the secret place of the
Most High." (Ib. xci. 1.) If he hath given to thee the knowledge of
himself, and of thine interest in him; and to the froward oppressor only
worldly advantage; is it not the seal of his love to thee, and rejection
of him? Is it not infinitely more to dwell on high with thy God, than
in the vain pomp of an ungodly world? (Ib. lxXxiv. 10.)
33. The curse of the Lord is in the house of the wicked; but he blesseth the
habitation of the just.
The contrast between the sinner and the saint, affects us not only
* Collect for Quinquagesima Sunday. 1 Cor. xiii. 4-7.
† HENRY in loco, chap. vi. 14-18; xi. 20; xv. 9. Mic. i. 1, 2. See the Lord's open
judgment, Exod. ix. 16; xiv. 28. Isa. xxxvii. 21-38. Acts, xii. 1, 2, 23.
‡Reformers' Notes.
§ POOL’S Annotations, 'He loves them dearly as his intimste friends, to whom he com-
municates the very secrets of his heart.'—DIODATI.
CHAP. III. 33. 41
personally, but relatively. The curse or blessing of the Lord follows us
to our homes. Shall we then envy the wicked, with his cup of earthly
joy filled to the brim? The curse of the Lord is in his house (Mal. ii. 2)
— a "curse that never cometh causeless." (Chap. xxvi. 2.) Let him
think —'It is my Maker's curse--how awful, that my being and my
curse should come from the same sacred source!' It is not the impo-
tent wishing of ill. Could we trace its deadly work, we should see the
man wasting, withering, consuming under it. Observe "the roll in the
house of the thief, and of the swearer—twenty cubits long"— a long
catalogue of woes; "flying"—to mark its swiftness; "remaining in
the midst of the house; consuming it even with the timbers and stones
thereof." (Zech. v. 1-4.) Is this an idle dream? Surely— but for the
blindness of the heart, the wicked would see the naked sword hanging
by a hair over his head, or the awful "hand-writing upon the wall,"
solemnly proclaiming —"There is no peace— saith my God— unto
the wicked." (Dan. v. 5, 6. Isa. lvii. 21.) Vainly will the proud worm
resist. Ahab multiplied his house beyond all human average, as if to
set at defiance the curse pronounced against it. Yet at one stroke all
were swept away. (1 Kings, xxi. 20-22. 2 Kings, x. 1-11.) Similar
instances* abundantly prove whose words shall stand — man's or
God's. (Jer. xliv. 28.) "Who hath hardened himself against him, and
prospered? Who hath resisted his will?" (Job ix. 4. Rom. ix. 19.)
But bright is the sunshine of the just. Not only is the secret of the
Lord with their souls, but his blessing on their habitation. And when he
blesseth, who can reverse it? (Num. xxiii. 20. Job xxxiv. 29.) Many
a homely cottage, tenanted by a child of Abraham, shines more splen-
didly than the princely palace of the ungodly.† An heir of glory
dwells here. A family altar of prayer and praise consecrates it as the
temple of Jehovah. (Gen. xii. 8.) Promises, like clouds of blessings,
rest over it. God has been honoured, and God will honour. (2 Sam.
vi. 11. Jer. xxxv. 18, 19. 2 Tim. i. 18.) "They that dwell under his
shadow shall return." (Hos. xiv. 7.) Is then my house under the curse
or blessing of the Lord? Let my God be honoured in his own gifts: that
I and mine may be manifestly sealed with the full tokens of his love.
34. Surely he scorneth the scorners: but he giveth grace unto the lowly.
Two Apostles have combined with the wise man, to set out this
rule of the Divine government.‡ On no point is the mind of God more
fully declared than against pride — the spirit of scorning. It displaces
* JEROBOAM: 1 Kings, xiv. 9—11; Amos, vii. 9. BAASHA: 1 Kings, xvi. 1-4, 12, 113.
JEHU: 2 Kings, xv. 8-12. Hos. I. 4. HAZAEL: Amos, i. 4. JEHOIAKIM: Jer. xxii. 13-19.
CONIAH: Ib. 24-30. ESAU: Obad. 18. Comp. chap. xiv. 11; xv. 25.
† Job, xxix. 4. Isa. iv 5. Enqa kai oi qeoi. ‘The gods are within’— said the Heathen
philosopher of his poor cottage.—F. TAYLOR in loco.
‡ James, iv. 6. 1 Peter, v. 5.—The exact quotation of the LXX. save the substitution of
42 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
man, and would, if possible, displace God himself. Jealous therefore of
his own glory, he sets himself in battle array, as against the usurper of
his prerogative, the rebel against his dominion.* Witness the Babel-
builders (Gen. xi. 1–9); Pharaoh (Exod. xiv. 13); Sennacherib (Isa.
xxxvii. 33–38); the proud opposers of his Gospel (Ps. ii. 1–4)--all the
objects of his scorn. But most hateful to him is the sinner, that will not
submit to his righteousness, that scorns the corner-stone of salvation.
How fearfully does it then become "a rock of offence," of eternal ruin!
(Rorn. x. 3, with ix. 32, 33. Matt. xxi. 41–44.) Surely without doubt,
without way of escape from his frown, he scorneth the scorners.
A lowly spirit--a deep conviction of utter nothingness and guilt--
is a most adorning grace. Nor is it an occasional or temporary feeling,
the result of some unexpected hateful disclosure, but an habit, "cloth-
ing" the man (1 Pet. v. 5) "from the sole of the foot to the head." It
combines the highest elevation of joy with the deepest abasement of
spirit. And those who sink the lowest, stand nearest to the most
exalted advancement. For "he that scorneth the scorners, giveth grace to
the lowly"—"more grace" (Jam. iv. 6), till his work is perfected in
them. ‘He pours it out plentifully upon humble hearts. His sweet
dews and showers of grace slide off the mountains of pride, and fall on
the low valleys of humble hearts, and make them pleasant and fertile.' †
The centurion (Matt. viii. 5–10); the Canaanite (Ib. xv. 21–28); the
penitent (Luke, vii. 44–50); the publican (Ib xviii. 13, 14); such as
these are the objects of his favour. (Isa. lxvi. 2.) Their hearts are his
dwelling-place. (Ib. lvii. 15.) Their inheritance is his kingdom.
(Matt. v. 3.) The soul, swelling with its proud fancies, has no room
for his humbling grace. Blessed exchange of the little idol of self-
esteem for Him; who alone has the right! when even his own graces
are only desired, as instruments to set out his glory.
35. The wise shall inherit glory: but shame shall be the promotion of fools,
(exalteth the fools, marg.)
This is the last contrast drawn to restrain our envy at the prosperity
of the wicked. (Verse 31.) It carries us forward to the coming day,
when all shall "discern" in the full light of eternity. (Mal. iii. 18.) The
wise--the heirs of glory--are identified with the lowly (Verse 34; xi. 2)
—the heirs of grace. Self-knowledge--the principle of lowliness--
is the very substance of wisdom. Their inheritance also is one--grace
and glory. (Ps. lxxxiv. 11.) For what higher glory can there be than
qeoj for Kurioj. ‘The Apostle's quotation of this passage, though somewhat different in
the words, is the same in the sense with the original. For scorners in Scripture are proud,
insolent, wicked men. And to resist such persons, by rendering their schemes abortive, and
by humbling them, is emphatically called a scorning of them.'--MACKNIGHT on James, iv. 6.
* antitassetai, LXX.
† Leighton on 1 Pet. v. 5. Compare also on Chap. iii. 8.
CHAP. IV. 1, 2. 43
the grace, which “hath redeemed” a vile worm of, the earth, "and made
him a king and priest unto God?" (Rev. v. 9, 10.) Oh! let the re-
deemed cherish honourable thoughts of their present glory. Be careful
to clear it from the defilement and degradation of the world's dust, and
enjoy it in adoring praise to Him, who hath chosen thee to this so un-
deserved grace. (Ib. i. 5, 6.)
But who can tell the glory, of the after inheritance—not like this
world's glory—the shadow of a name; but real, solid; ‘an infinite
gain, in the exchange of dross for down-weight of pure gold.’* All
occasion of sin and temptation is shut out for ever; ‘The tree of know-
ledge shall be without enclosure. There shall be neither lust, nor
forbidden fruit; no withholding of desirable knowledge, nor affectation
of undesirable. The glorified spirits touch nothing that can defile, and
defile nothing they touch.'† But after all, the glory of this glory will
be communion and likeness with our Lord---"to be with him—to
behold his glory." (John, xvii. 24. 1 John, iii. 2.) We need not pry too
minutely. Thus much is clear. The value of our inheritance is beyond
all price; its happiness unspeakable; its security unchangeable; its
duration eternity. The wise shall inherit glory. "They that be wise
shall shine as the brightness of the firmament forever and ever." (Dan.
xii. 3. Matt. xiii. 43.)
Oh! will not the fools then discover the vanity of this world's
glory, too late to, make a wise choice? Shame is their present fruit.
(Chap. xiii. 18; x. 9.) Honour even now sits unseemly upon them.
(Chap. xxvi. 1.) But "what fruit will eternity bring" of those things,
whereof they will "then be ashamed?" (Rom. vi, 21.) Truly shame
will be their promotion. Their fame will be infamous, their disgrace
conspicuous; lifting them up, like Haman upon his elevated gallows
(Esther, vii. 9)—'a gazing-stock to the, world.' How solemn and
complete will be the great separation for eternity! "Many that sleep
in the dust of the earth shall awake; some to everlasting life, and some to
shame and everlasting contempt." (Dan. xii. 2.)
CHAPTER IV.
1. Hear, ye children, the instruction of a father, and attend to know under-
standing. 2. For I give you good doctrine, forsake ye not my law.
SURELY these frequent repetitions are as the angel's visit to the prophet
—"waking him, as a man that is wakened out of his sleep." (Zech. iv. 1.)
A mind like Solomon's, "large even as the sand that is on the sea-
shore" (1 Kings, iv. 29), might readily have made every sentence a
* Leighton on 1 Pet. v. 10.
† Howe's Blessedness of the Righteous. Chap. v. xi.
44 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
fresh discovery of his knowledge. But more suitable to our sluggish
and forgetful heart is "the word of the Lord, precept upon precept."
(Isa. xxviii. 13.) Children are often bereft of destitute of a parental
instructor. Here these orphans are taken up, and called to hear the
instruction of a father. For truly does the wise man, like the Apostle
in after days, "exhort and charge, as a father cloth his children."
(1 Thess. ii. 11.)
Solomon evidently speaks from the mouth of God, declaring his
doctrine--his law. Therefore he claims attention to know understanding,
for I give you good doctrine. (Eccles. xii. 9-11.) To many, exciting
(Ezek. xxxiii. 31, 32), curious and speculative (2 Tim. iv. 3, 4),
compromising (Isa. xxx. 10. Jer. v. 31), self-righteous, self-exalting
doctrine (Gal. i. 6, 7), is more attractive. But--young people!—
remember—that which humbles the soul before God; that which
exhibits the free grace of the Gospel; which melt’s down the will,
consecrates the heart, imbues' with the spirit of the cross--however
unpalatable to the flesh—is alone good doctrine for the soul. Therefore
forsake it not. Do not be carried away with the senseless cry,--’Every-
body thinks contrary.' What is the judgment of the mass of mankind
worth on the great subject of religion? "This their way is their folly."
This is God's stamp upon man's "saying," however applauded and
"approved" by successive generations. (Ps. xlix. 13.) Shall this world's
judgment be preferred to the word of God?" The morning" of the
resurrection will reflect the glory of eternity upon the choice of the
narrow path. (Ib. v. 14.)
3. For I was my father's son, tender and only beloved in the sight of my
mother. 4. He taught me also, and said unto me, Let thine heart
retain my words: keep my commandments, and live. 5. Get wisdom,
get understanding; forget it not; neither decline from the words of my
mouth. 6. Forsake her not, and she shall preserve thee: love her, and
she shall keep thee. 7. Wisdom is the principal thing; therefore get
wisdom; and with all thy getting, get understanding. 8. Exalt her, and
she shall promote thee: she shall bring thee to honour, when thou dost
embrace her. 9. She shall give to thine head to ornament of grace; a
crown of glory shall she deliver to thee.
Solomon here claims our attention as a teacher of youth, on account
of his own godly education by such a father. He was a tender child
(1 Chron. xxii. 5: xxix. 1), well-beloved, as an only son.* The more
dearly he was loved, the more carefully was he taught. Thus we are
brought into the family of "the man after God's heart," to hear him
* Not really the only son. 2 Sam. v. 14. 1 Chron. iii. 5. Thus Isaac was called the only
son (i.e. most beloved), when Ishmael was another son: Gen, xxii. 2, 12, 19, with xvii. 19.
So the Church is called "the only one—the choice"—implying others, out of which the choice
was made. Cant. vi. 9.
CHAP. IV. 3-9. 45
"commanding his child" in the fear and service Of the Lord. (Comp.
also 1 Kings, ii. 2-4; 1 Chron. xxii. 6-16; xxviii. 9, 10, 20. Comp. Gen.
xviii. 19. Deut. vi. 7.) A special mercy is it to us, if we can tell of an
Abraham or a David—of a Lois or an Eunice, having taught and bound
us to the ways of God! (2 Tim. i. 5; iii. 14, 15.) Parents remember,
a child untaught will be a living shame. (Chap. xxix. 15.) Training
discipline, not foolish indulgence, is the truest evidence of affection to
our tender and beloved ones. (Chap. xiii. 24; with 1, Kings, i. 6.)
But let us examine this beautiful specimen of parental instruction.*
Observe the anxiety for his son's heart-religion. Let thine heart retain my
words. Often (and this is a comfort to a weak memory) words may be
lost to the memory, yet practically retained in the heart. This heart-
keeping is the path of life (Verse 13; vi. 23; viii. 34, 35. Isa. lv. 3.
Zech. iii. 7), without which all is dead. Observe again, the extreme
earnestness of the exhortation. Many a parent, like Augustine's father,†
insists—‘Get wealth, worldly honour, or wisdom.’ This godly parent
inculcates "line upon line"— Get heavenly wisdom; get it with all thy
getting--at any cost and pains (Chap. xxiii. 23. Comp. 1, Kings, x. 1;
Matt. xii. 42), as the principal thing; and when thou,hast got it--forget
it not—decline not from it—forsake it not‡—love§--embrace--exalt
—her. Such a keeping is she for thy soul! (Chap. 10-18.) Such a
treasure for thy happiness! Such a promoting honour even in this life!
Such an ornament of grace in the Church! Such, a crown of glory in
heaven! This is not the style of a cold pleader, enforcing with decent
seriousness some unimportant truth. It is the father, feeling that his
child's soul is perishing, unless it be taught and led in wisdom's ways.
Parents! do we know this stirring concern, anxiously looking out for
the first dawn of light upon our child's soul? Do we eagerly point
out to him wisdom as the principal thing, to be gotten first (Matt. vi. 33.)
Is it our own first choice, infinitely above this world's glitter (1 Kings,
iii. 5-12. Phil. iii. 7, 8); not only important, but all-important? It
can have no place, if it has not the first place. If it be anything, it will
be everything. Earthly wisdom may be "a goodly pearl." But this
"wisdom from above is the pearl of great price;" worth getting
* Where David's instruction begins, is obvious. Where it ends, is not so clear—Whether
it be ver. 6, 10, 12, or 13 ; or as F. Taylor asserts, at the close of the ninth chapter. But as
Geier observes—'Let the reader form his own judgment; provided that we pay due obedi-
ence to the instruction, it matters little, whether we have it in the words of David or
Solomon.'
† Of whom he records —'This father of mine never troubled himself with any thought
of— How I might improve myself towards thee, so that I proved eloquent, though I were
withal left undrest by thy tillage.'— Confess. ii. 3.
‡ See the great importance of this continuance, John, viii. 30, 31. Col. i. 22, 23. Heb.
iii. 6, 14, contrasted with Matt. xiii. 20, 21.
§ Thus Jerome wrote to a friend —'Beg now for me, who am grey-headed, of the Lord,
that I may have Wisdom for my companion, of which it is written—‘Love her, and she shall
keep thee.’"
46 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
indeed; but only to be got, by "selling all that we have, to buy it."
(Matt. xiii. 45, 46.)
10. Hear, 0 my son, and receive my sayings; and the years of thy life shall
be many. 11. I have taught thee in the ways of wisdom; I have led
thee in right paths. 12. When thou goes, thy steps shall not be
straitened; and when thou runnest, thou shalt not stumble. 13. Take
fast hold of instruction: let her not go: keep her; for she is thy life.
It is instructive to see a king (whether David or Solomon) not for-
getting in the midst of his royal cares his domestic responsibilities.
We are told—'Youth will have its swing.' ‘So’--adds an old Com-
mentator solemnly—'it may—to hell.'* For where else can a way-
ward will lead? Let us see the need of guidance of every step, both
to take and to avoid. The ways of wisdom assure a happy life in the
favour of God. (1 Tim. iv. 8, with chap. iii. 1, 2. Ps. xxxiv. 12–14.
1 Pet. iii. 10–12.) And what rest to the parent's conscience on the death-
bed will be the recollection of children, not brought up for the world,
but taught in these ways! Yet this cannot be, if the rod, when needed,
has been spared; if the will has been indulged; the love of the world
cherished. This will be--if godly discipline has been exercised; if
the Bible has been laid down as the rule of lifer if habits of prayer, love
to the service of God, fellowship with his people, have been encouraged.
The path, though rough and sometimes lonely, is a right path, and a path
of liberty. (Ps. cxix. 32, 45.) The single eye will preserve a steady
walk. (Chap. x. 9. Isa. xlviii. 17, 18. Matt. Vii. 22.) Thou shalt run,
and shalt not stumble. (Chap. iii. 21–26. Hos. xiv. 9.)
And yet the animated exhortation to take fast hold, shows the
struggle necessary to retain our principles. Feeble, indeed, is our hold,
when connected merely with the excitement of novelty (Matt. xiii. 20, 21),
temporary convictions (Ps. lxxviii. 34–36; cvi. 12, 13), the restraint of
education (2 Chron. xii. 1; xxiv. 2, 15–18), unestablished knowledge
(Gal. iii. 1–4), or the indulgence of sin. (Mark, vi. 18–26.) Truths
received only in the understanding, not becoming the daily nourish-
ment of the soul, never fix on the heart. The fast hold of instruction is
by a personal living faith; including an intense interest, and persever-
ing pursuit; "continuing in the things which we have heard and been
assured of;" cleaving with purpose of heart unto the Lord. (2 Tim.
iii. 14. Acts, xi. 23; ii. 42.) As Jacob detained the angel (Gen.
xxxii. 26–29); as the spouse held fast hold of her Beloved (Cant. iii. 4);
as the disciples "constrained the Saviour to abide with them" (Luke,
xxiv. 28, 29)—So—young Christian—let her not go, Keep her, as the
man "for joy" guarded his precious treasure. (Matt. xiii. 44.) So let
thy heavenly treasure stand above every earthly blessing. Thus will
* Taylor.
CHAP. IV. 14-17 47
it be thy life. (Chap. iii. 18. Eccles. vii. 12.) And while others "turn
back, and walk no more" in the way, thine heart will turn to its only
spring of happiness—"Lord, to whom shall I go? ''Thou hast the words
of eternal life." (John, vi. 67-69.)
14. Enter not into the path of the wicked, and go not in the way of evil men.
15. Avoid it, pass not by it, turn from it, and pass away. 16. For
they sleep not, except they have done mischief: and their sleep is taken
away, unless they cause some to fall. 17. For they eat the bread of
wickedness, and drink the wine of violence.
How often does fellowship with the wicked loosen the fast hold of
instruction! Their path is so contrary to the way of instruction, that
the very entrance into it is forsaking the way of God. Their character
is here drawn in their Father's image—first sinners, then, tempters.
Mischief is their meat and drink. (Job, xv. 16. Ps. xiv. 4.) 'To do
evil is more proper and natural than to sleep, eat, or drink.'* With
sleepless eagerness do they pursue their work (Job, xxiv. 15, 16. Ps.
xxxvi. 4. Mic. ii. 1), caring little for any lengths of violence, so that
they do mischief, or cause some to fall. (Chap. i. 10-14, 16; ii. 14; xxiv. 2.
Ps. x. 8. 2 Pet. ii. 14.) Judas with his midnight torches (John, xviiii. 3);
the early morning assemblage of the Jewish rulers (Luke, xxii. 66); the
frenzied vow of the enemies of Paul;† and many a plot in after ages
against the Church—all vividly pourtray this unwearied wickedness.
Yet if we be preserved from this undisguised malignity, what are
all the allurements for every rank and circumstance of life, but the more
subtle poison of the murderer? A light-minded young person pours
into his companion's ear—simple and inexperienced in the ways of
sin—perhaps filthy conversation; or presents before him images of
lasciviousness. What but a rooted principle of grace can save his
unsuspecting victim? Or again—the venomous infidel, intent upon
"spoiling" (Col. ii. 8) his fellow-creature of his most precious treasure,
drops into his bosom the repetition of the first lie (Gen. iii. 4.) No
principle appears to be given up, no fundamental doctrine denied; yet
the foundation of an unwavering confidence is shaken to pieces. And
is not this mischief and violence as the murderer's stab?
Surely then it is mercy, that forbids needless intercourse with the
evil man. (Eph. v. 11.) With a constitution prone to evil, when the
alternative is, whether we shall shun or dare the danger, can we doubt
our path? The whole Scripture is on the side or caution, to hazard
nothing, except on a plain call of Providence. ' Because we are free,
* Reformers' Notes.
† Acts, xxiii. 12. Such a spirit is graphically described by the Classics:—
Et si non aliqua nocuisses, mortuus esses. —VIRGIL, Eclog. iii. 15.
Ergo non aliter poterit dormire; quibusdam
Somnum rixa facit. —JUVENAL, Sat. iii. 278-202.
48 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
we may not run wild.’* Half our virtue we owe to being out of the
way of temptation. Observe how the wise man heaps up his words—
Enter not into the path—no—not so much as set thy foot into it. If
some accident throws thee into it, go not on in it; avoid it with detesta-
tion.† Pass not by it, lest thou shouldest unwittingly turn in. (Chap. v. 8.)
Not only avoid it when near, but avoid nearness to it. It is like living
in the atmosphere of contagion, in the midst of virulent and fatal dis-
ease. The earnest repetition of the warning shows at once the imminency
of the danger, and the certainty of the injury. The world around us is
the action of mind upon mind. We are continually, through the
medium of intercourse, moulding ourselves by other minds, and other
minds by our own. Intercourse with the ungodly must, therefore, be
fraught with fatal contamination. (1 Cor. xv. 33. Ps. cvi. 35. Chap.
xxii. 24, 25.) The occasions, the company, the borders of temptation
-- all must be avoided. (Chap. ix. 10, 15. Gen. xxxi. 9, 10.)
Young people are apt to plead with those who have the charge of
their best interests--'What harm is there in this or that path?' Apart
from other evils--this is plain. It is a contagious atmosphere. You
are drinking in poison. It is far more easy to shun the occasion of
sin, than the sin when the occasion presents it; to resist the begin-
nings, than the progress, of sin. There must, therefore, be no tam-
pering with it; no trial of strength, to see how far our resolutions will
keep us. Let the examples of Lot (Gen. xiii; 10-13; xiv. 12), Dinah
(Gen. xxxiv. 1, 2), Solomon (1 Kings, xi. 1-5), Peter (Matt. xxvi. 58,
69-74), warn us, how far only the entrance into the path of the wicked
may carry us; lengths that we could never have contemplated in pro-
spect without horror. It may appear an harmless outset. But how far
on? The entrance is fatally connected with the next step onward. The
frightful extent of the probability of falling might make the boldest
tremble. Those at least, that know their own corruption and weak-
ness, will shrink back, where you tread lightly. Here and there, in-
deed, there may be some special miracle of preservation. But no one
comes out of the path without hurt (2 Chron. xviii. 1–3; xix. 2; xx.
35–37); and the general issue is an open door to ruin. To pretend to
dread sin without fearing temptation, is self-delusion. Satan has too
nearly allied them for us to separate them. The evil company is loved,
then the evil of the company.‡ To pray "not to be led into tempta-
* Bishop HALL'S Contempl. B. xv. 3. † LEIGH'S Critica Sacra. See CARTWRIGHT.
Eusebius mentions a young man, whom St. John committed to the special charge of
the Bishop of Ephesus; but who by evil company was drawn away to be a captain of rob-
bers. until St. John went after him, and brought him back. B. iii. c. 20.--Augustine's
recollections of his youthful theft was—'By myself alone I would not have done it. It was
the company that I loved, with whom I did it.' He adds —'O nimis iniqua amicitia!'
When they said—'Come, let us go and do it, I was ashamed not to be as shameless as
they.'— Confess. Lib. ii. 8, 9.
CHAP. IV. 18. 49
Lion;" yet not to "watch, that we enter not into it"-- is practically to
contradict our prayers; to mock our God, by asking for what we do
not heartily wish. "Walk then with God and with his people, separate
from an ungodly world." (Chap. ix. 6. 2 Cor. vi. 17.) Yet do not
presume upon safety, even in separation from the ungodly. The whole
tempting world may be presented to your imagination. The unsearch-
able deceitfulness of the heart may bear fearfully upon you. The
tempter may in solitude, as with our Lord, put forth his special power.
(Matt. iv. 1.) Walk closely with God in secret, and he will spread his
almighty covering over you for your security. Avoid fellowship with
them, who hinder your fellowship with God. (Ps. cxix. 63, 1.14, 115,
also xvii. 4; xxvi. 4, 5.)
18. The path of the just is as the shining light, that shineth more and more
unto the perfect day.
This is a fine contrast of the Christian's path of light with the dark
and dangerous path of the wicked. It is not the feeble wasting light of
a taper, nor the momentary blaze of the meteor; but the grand lumi-
nary of heaven, "coming out of his chamber, and rejoicing as a strong
man to run his race" (Ps. xix. 5), from earliest dawn to his noon-day
glory. And a beautiful sight it is, to see the Christian thus rising out
of darkness; not indeed with'uniform brightness, but deepening from
the first faint beginning of his course; rising higher and higher;
widening his circle; advancing onward with increasing brightness unto
the perfect day. Knowledge, faith, love, holiness; irradiate every step.
It is at first but a glimmering ray, the first dawn of day. He does not
come at once into the "marvellous light." There is much--often
long-continued—struggle with his own wisdom and self-righteousness.
And even when brought to a simple dependence on the great work of
Christ, it is long ere he sees the fitness and proportion of its several
parts, providing for the honour of every perfection of God, as well as
the supply of every want of Man. Long also is it, ere he marks the
just balance of promise and precept; the sure connection between
justification and sanctification; the accurate arrangement, by which,
while we are not saved by works, we cannot be saved without them;
and while we work of ourselves, our strength and trust is in another.
Nor is it at the outset that we discern the identity of happiness with
conformity to Christ, and find heaven in communion with God, and
consecration to his service. Thus also, in the indistinct beginning of
the course, sin lies within a narrow compass. It includes little besides
the grosser enormities. Many things are thought harmless, which the
spiritual law condemns. But as the line becomes more marked, old
habits and associations, hitherto unsuspected, become convicted by a
clearer light, and are ultimately relinquished. It is in this path that
50 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
as the Christian "follows on," the eye is more unveiled (Hos. vi. 3.
Comp. Mark, viii. 22-25), the heart more enlightened, the truth more
vividly impressed upon the conscience, the "understanding" more
quick in "the fear of the Lord," the taste more discerning between
good and evil. Faith now becomes more strong in the Saviour's love,
more simple in the promises of God.
Obviously also love will increase as light expands. In proportion
to knowledge of our sinfulness and ruin must be the gratitude for the
remedy. The view of heaven — in proportion to the clearness of our
apprehension of it--must enlarge our love to him, who has obtained
our title to it. Thus our knowledge converts itself into a motive,
expanding our love more widely to all the legitimate objects of it. We
cannot, indeed, always compare its warmth at different periods. But
knowledge and love, like the light and heat, must go together under
the beams of knowledge; subjection to the Redeemer's sceptre becomes
more unreserved; love rises to a higher estimation, to a closer union
with him, to a more intimate complacency in him. Experience may
be confused. But light will clear away the mists. Practice in some
points may be inconsistent. But the advances, however weak, will be
sure. "Beholding as in a glass the glory of the Lord, we are changed
into his image from glory to glory, even as by the Spirit of the Lord."
(2 Cor. iii. 18. Job, xvii. 9. Ps. lxxxiv. 7.) Such is the path of the just.
The devout Nathanael was cheered with the promise of a brighter day.
(John, i. 46-51.) The clouds on the minds of the Apostles gradually
melted away before a brighter sun. (Mark, vi. 52; x. 35; xvi. 14, with
John, xvi. 13; Acts, ii.) The Eunuch and Cornelius, sincerely seek-
ing, rejoiced in the full sunshine of Gospel light. (Acts, viii. 27-39; x.)
The Thessalonian Church shone more and more with Christian graces.
(1 Thess. i. 3. 2 Thess. i. 3.)
But is this shining light the picture of my path? There is no com-
mand given—"Sun, stand thou still." (Josh. x. 12.) Therefore it re-
bukes a stationary profession. It is a rising and advancing, not a
declining, sun. Therefore it rebukes a backsliding state. It, is not
necessary that every thing should be perfect at once. There may be an
occasional cloud, or even (as in the cases of David and Peter) a tempo-
rary eclipse. But when did the sun fail of carrying its early dawn unto
perfect day? Despise not, then, "the day of small things." (Zech. iv.
10.) But be not satisfied with it. Aim high, and you will reach nearer
the mark. A fitful, fluctuating course, instead of illustrating this beau-
tiful figure, throws around the profession a saddening uncertainty.
Religion must be a shining and progressive light. We must not mis-
take the beginning for the end of the course. We must not sit down
on the entry, and say to our soul—"Soul—take thine ease." There
is no point, where we may repose with complacency, as if there were no
CHAP. IV. 19. 51
loftier heights, which it was our duty to climb. Christian perfection is
the. continual aiming at perfection. (Sep Phil. iii. 12-15.) Let us
hasten on to the perfect day, when the path of the just shall be eternally
consummated; when ‘they shall come to full perfection, which is --
when they shall be joined to their Head in the heavens.’* "Then
shall they shine forth as the sun in the kingdom of their Father."
(Matt. xiii. 43.) And yet even here will not the path of eternity, no
less than of time, be shining more and more? Shall we not be exploring
that unsearchable "height, and depth, and length, and breadth, that
passeth knowledge," until we be filled with all the fulness o God?"
(Eph. iii. 18, 19.) Will not light therefore he more glorious, and love
more full of praise and adoration? Yes, surely, the world of eternity
will be one perfect day of ever-increasing light and joy. "Their sun
shall no more go down--for the Lord shall be their everlasting light.
The city had no need of the sun, neither of the moon, to shine in it,
for the glory of the Lord did lighten it, and the Lamb is the light
thereof." †
19. The way of the wicked is as darkness; they know not at what they
stumble.
The contrast is more clearly repeated.‡ Each has his own way.
The path of the just is glowing light and joy. The way of the wicked is
darkness; without direction, comfort, safety, or peace, till "his feet at
last stumble on the dark mountains;" till he falls into "the blackness
of darkness for ever." (Jer. xiii. 16. Jude, 13. Comp. Job, xviii. 5, 6,
18.) His way is not only dark, but as darkness, a compound of igno-
rance, error, sin, and misery. The love of sin "rebels against the
light." (Job, xxiv. 13. John, iii. 19. Comp. Isa. v. 20.) The darkness
is wilful, and therefore accountable. There is no stumbling in the path
of the just. So far as he is upright, the Lord keeps him. (Verse 12;
iii. 23. Ps. xci. 11, 12.) The wicked go on, "groping on as if they had
no eyes" (Isa. lix. 10); hurrying on blindly into misery, that they can
neither foresee nor avoid. (Job, v. 14; xii. 25. Jer. xxiii. 12. Zeph. i.
17.) They know not at what they stumble. Oh! if they did, would they
not startle, and shrink back? For they stumble on the very foundation
of the Gospel! making the rock of salvation a rock of offence. (Rom. ix.
32, 33. 1 Pet. ii. 8.) Would they but listen to the merciful warning
* Reformers' Notes. Comp. Diodati in loco.
† Isa. Ix. 20. Rev. xxi. 23. The LXX. version is very beautiful—‘The ways of the
righteous shine like the light; they go on shining, until the day be perfected.' Dr. Watts'
Hymn on the Summer Evening—written for the infant mind, but glowing to the finest
taste— furnishes a most exquisite exposition of this verse,
'How fine has the day been; how bright was the sun,' &c.
‡ See the same contrast drawn by our Lord, Matt. vi . 22, 23. — Schultens considers the
original to express increasing darkness, answering to the increasing light of the opposite
path. Comment. in Prow. 4 to. 1748. Comp. Job, xv. 23.
52 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
of their Lord--"Yet a little time the light is with you: walk while ye
have the light, lest darkness come upon you; for he that walketh in
darkness knoweth not whither he goeth." (John, xii. 35, 36)
20. My son, attend to my words; incline thine ear unto my sayings.
21. Let there not depart from thine eyes: keep them in the midst of
thine heart. 22. For they are life unto those that find them, and health
to all their flesh.
These repeated injunctions (Chap. iii. 1; v. 1; vi. 20, 21; xxii. 17)
are an admirable pattern to the Christian Parent or Minister. The
desire of wisdom, the first step in the path, is encouraged. The means
of obtaining, and the privilege when obtained, are pointed out. Eye,
then, the treasure of wisdom habitually. A neglected Bible is the
melancholy proof of a heart "alienated from God." For how can we
have a spark of love to him, if that Book, which is the full manifes-
tation of his glory, be despised? And yet a superficial acquaintance
with it is of no avail. If our ears were bored to the doors of the sanc-
tuary; if the words never departed from our eyes; yet, except they were
kept in the heart, our religion would be a notion, not a principle; specu-
lative, not practical; conviction, not love. Nor even here must they
possess the mere threshold. Let the word be kept in the midst of the
heart. Here only can it be operative (Chap. xxiii. 26. Ps. xl. 8;
cxix. 11); "for out of the heart, are the issues of life." (Verse 23.)
Here it becomes lively and substantial truth. Here, then, let a home be
made for it,* a consecrated sanctuary in the most honoured chambers
of the heart. This inhabitation of the word is a covenant promise ---
the test of our interest in the Lord. (Jer. xxxi. 33.)
This keeping of the word will be life to those that find it. (Verses 4,
10, 13 ; iii. 18.) ‘Some medicines are good for one part of the body;
some for another. This is good for all the body, and all the soul.†
Vigorous and healthy (Chap. iii. 8) shall we be, in feeding upon this
heavenly manna. We shall net then bear our religion as our cross---
as a cumbrous appendage. We shall not drag on in Christian duties as
a chain. Godliness will be to us an element of joy. Its functions will
be free and lively. The spirit will be a vital glow. The mind will be
enriched with Divine wisdom. The heart will be established with
gospel grace.
23. Keep thy heart with all diligence (above all keeping, marg.); for out
of it are the issues of life. 24. Put away from thee a froward mouth,
and perverse lips put far from thee. 25. Let thine eyes look right on,
and let thine eyelids look straight before thee. 26. Ponder the path
of thy feet, and let all thy ways be established (all thy ways: shall be
* Enoikei<tw en u[mi?n. Col. iii. 16. † Cartwright.
CHAP. IV. 23-27. 53
ordered aright, marg.) 27. Turn not to the right hand nor to the left:
remove thy foot from evil.
Invaluable are these rules as our safeguard. Assaulted as we are
at every point, every inlet of sin must be strongly guarded — the heart
— the mouth — the eye — the feet.
First—the heart— the citadel of man* — the seat of his dearest
treasure. It is fearful to think of its many watchful and subtle assail-
ants. Let it be closely garrisoned. Let the sentinel be never sleeping
on his post. "Take heed to thy way, and keep thy soul diligently."
(Dent. iv. 9.)
But the heart must be known in order to be effectually kept. No-
thing is more difficult, while nothing is more necessary. If we know
not our hearts, we know nothing to any purpose. Whatever else we
know, to neglect this knowledge is to be a fool at the best. If we know
not our weak points, Satan knows them well--"the sins that most
easily beset us."
Then when I know my heart, and feel it to be so dangerous, and in
such dangers, the question forces itself upon me —‘Can I keep my
heart?' Certainly not. But, though it be God's work, it is man's
agency. Our efforts are his instrumentality. He implants an active
principle, and sustains the unceasing exercise. (Phil. ii. 12, 13. Jude,
24 with 21.) Conscious faith "commits the keeping of the heart to our
faithful Creator." (1 Pet. iv. 19. Ps. xxv. 20.) This done—in his
strength and guidance diligently improve all the means of preserva-
tion. Watch unto prayer. Cherish an humble dependent spirit. Live
in the atmosphere of the word of God. Resist the admittance of an
evil world, even in its most plausible forms. (Judges, viii. 22, 23.
2 Kings, v. 5, 16.) Here lies the conflict to the end. ‘The greatest
difficulty in conversion is to win the heart to God, and after conversion
to keep it with him.'† 'What is there'— asks Mede—‘that will not
entice and allure so fickle a thing as the heart from God?’‡ Above all
keeping — exhorts the wise man — keep thine heart. Here Satan keeps
—here therefore must we keep— special watch. If the citadel be
taken, the whole town must surrender. If the heart be seized, the
whole man— the affections, desires, motives, pursuits—all will be
yielded up. The heart is the vital part of the body. A wound here is
instant death. Thus — spiritually as well as naturally—out of the
heart are the issues of life. It is the great vital spring of the soul, the
fountain of actions, the centre and the seat of principle,§ both of sin
and of holiness. (Matt. xii. 34, 35.) The natural heart is a fountain of
poison. (Ib. xv. 19.) The purified heart is "a well of living water."
(John, iv. 14. Compare chap. xiv. 14.) As is the fountain, so must be
* Schultens. † FLAVEL'S Saint Indeed—a searching and valuable Treatise.
‡ See his valuable sermon on this text. § Schultens.
54 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
the streams. As is the heart, so must be the mouth, the eyes, the feet.
Therefore, above all keeping, keep thine heart. Guard the fountain, lest
the waters be poisoned. (Comp. Gen. xxvi. 18-21.) Many have been
the bitter moments, from the neglect of this guard. All keeping is
vain, if the heart be not kept.
But with this keeping, let us not forget to guard the outlets of sin!
(Chap. xiii. 3.) What a world of evil does 'the heart, pour out from the
froward mouth! (Jam. iii. 5, 6.) Commit, therefore, both heart and
mouth to Divine discipline. (Ps. xix. 13 ; cxli. 3, 4.) Then let prayer
and faith be the practical principles of Christian watchfulness. Not
only shun, but put away—yea—far from thee—the perverse lips.
Their evil--be it remembered—extends beyond ourselves. Even
should the peace-speaking blood speak peace to ourselves, still will
remain the painful sense of injury to our fellow-creatures, perhaps
without remedy.
Next to the heart and mouth—keep thine eyes—"the light of the
body" (Matt. vi. 22), the directive faculty of the soul. Yet too often
are they a most dangerous inlet to sin. (Gen. iii. 6; vi. 2; xxxix. 7.
Matt. v. 28. 2 Pet. ii. 14.) Therefore, like Job, "make a covenant with
them." (Job, xxxi. 1.) Place them under heavenly restraint. (Ps.
cxix. 37.) Let them look right on, 'like one ploughing, who must not
look back.'* Look straight before us. Had Eve done so, she would
have looked on the command of her God; not on the forbidden tree.
(Gen. iii. 3-6.) Had Lot's wife looked straight before, instead of
behind her," she would, like her husband, have been a monument of
mercy. (Gen. xix. 17, 26.) Achan was ruined by neglecting this rule
of wisdom. (Josh. vii. 21.) David's example calls the holiest of us to
godly jealousy.† In asking the way to Zion, be sure that your "faces
are thitherward." (Jer. i. 5.) The pleasure of sin, and the seductions of
a tempting world, do not lie in the road. They would not therefore
meet the eye looking right on—straight before us. They belong to the
bye-paths on the right hand and on the left, or to some backward track.
It is only, therefore, when the Christian lingers, turns aside, or turns
back, that they come in sight. Take the racer's motto--"This one
thing I do." Eye the mark, and press to it. (Philip. iii. 12-14.)
Onwards-- upwards—heavenwards.
Lastly, keep your feet. Oh! has not experience, no less than Scrip-
ture, shown your need of a circumspect walk? (Eph. v. 15.) Snares
are laid out for every path, yea for every step in your path; for your
meat, your think, your calling--perhaps more than all—for the
service of God. What deep pondering should there be in a path so
beset with danger! Every step should be carefully weighed. (Gen.
xxiv. 5. Ps. xxxix. 1. Dan. i. 8; vi. 3, 4.) Joseph pondered, and thereby
* Cartwright. Comp. Luke, ix. 62. † 2 Sam. xi. 2. Mede, ut supra.
CHAP. IV. 23-27. 55
established his way. (Gen. xxxix. 9, 10. Comp. verses 14, 15.) Peter,
neglecting to ponder, was fearfully sifted. (Matt. xxvi. 58, 69-75.)
David also, looking at the trial of the path, instead of pondering its
direction, brought shame upon himself (1 Sam. xxvii.-xxix.); like the
trouble, which Christian made for himself in the smooth exchange of
Bye-path meadow for the rough and strait road. 'The habit of calm
and serious thinking makes the real difference between one man and
another.'"
Here, then, is the voice of wisdom. Beware of mistaking presump-
tion for faith, temptations for Providential appointments. Never for-
sake a plain for a doubtful command. (1 Kings, xiii. 18-22.) Estimate
every step by its conformity to the known will of God. Dare not to
advance one step without God. (Josh. ix. 14.) In his path you may
"tread upon the lion and adder" without hurt. (Ps. xci. 11-13.) But
who shall venture into a path of his own choosing, without a wound?
See that "your feet are straight," like those of the Cherubim.† "The
pleasures of sin" lie on the right hand and on the left. The eyes there-
fore, looking right on, escape the sight. The pondering foot is established
in steady perseverance; and, by marking small deviations (See Ecclus.
xix. 1), and never turning out of the straight path to avoid a cross, is
removed from evil.
May we all have grace and wisdom to ponder these sound practical
rules! The man of God must only have one standard. (Isa. viii. 20.)
He must "know no man after the flesh." (2 Cor. v. 16.) He must
often put aside the Church, no less than the world, that he may listen
more closely to the command— Walk before me. (Gen. xvii. 1.) He
must discern and crush the first motions of corruption; guarding every
avenue of sin—the senses--the memory—the imagination—the
touch—the taste. He must walk by the straight rule of the Gospel;
else will he not only bring discomfort upon himself, but stumbling to
the Church. (Gal. ii. 11-14.) A single eye, steadily fixed upon the One
Object, will make the path luminous. (Matt. vi. 22.) Straightforward
progress will insure prosperity. (Deut. xvii. 20. Josh. i. 7, 8.) Keeping
the middle path, and daily lifting up the voice for restraint and
guidance. (Ps. cxix. 37; cxliii. 8-10.)
"Thine ears shall hear the word behind thee,, saying, This is the
way: walk ye in it, when ye turn to the right hand, and when ye turn
to the left."‡
* Dr. Abercrombie.
† Ezek. i. 7-9. Comp. Heb. xii. 13. Nearly the LXX. translation of the last clause of
verse 26.
‡ Isa. xxx. 21. Comp. Deut. ii. 27; v. 32. The LXX. and Vulgate add here— ‘For
God knows the ways on the right hand. But those on the left axe crooked. But he shall
make straight thy paths, and advance thy goings in peace.' Geier remarks — ‘we have no
ear for these words, as not belonging to the holy fountain. We leave them to the Papists.’
Cartwright's exposition of this middle path is valuable. ‘It is as if the royal way was
56 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
CHAPTER V.
1. My son, attend unto my wisdom, and bow thine ear to my understanding :
2. That thou mayest regard discretion, and that thy lips may keep
knowledge. 3. For the lips of a strange woman drop as an honey-
comb, and her mouth is smoother than oil: 4. But her end is bitter as
wormwood, sharp as a two-edged sword. 5. Her feet go down to
death: her steps take hold on hell. 6. Lest thou shouldest ponder
the path of life, her ways are moveable, that, thou canst not know them.
7. Hear me now, therefore, 0 ye children, and depart not from the
words of my mouth. 8. Remove thy way from her, and come not near
the door of her house: 9. Lest thou give thine honour unto others, and
thy years unto the cruel: 10. Lest strangers be filled with thy wealth,
and thy labours be in the house of a stranger; 11. And thou mourn at
the last, when thy flesh and thy body are consumed, 12. And say, How
have I hated instruction, and my heart despised reproof; 13. And have
not obeyed the voice of my teachers, nor inclined mine ear to them that
instructed me! 14. I was almost in all evil in the midst of the con-
gregation and assembly.
PONDER this chapter—ye that know not the poison and corruption of
fleshly lusts. Perhaps painful experience (1 Kings, xi. 1-8. Eccles. vii.
26) had given the wise man wisdom and understanding. Therefore at-
tend to it with fear and trembling. Man's own strength, the restraint
of education or self-discipline, is powerless, as the green withs to bind
the giant. (Judg. xvi. 9.) Engrafted wisdom is the only effectual safe-
guard. This heavenly influence teaches us, both to regard discretion
for the covering of our souls, and to keep knowledge for the warning of
our fellow-sinners. (Chap. ii. 10, 11, 16; vi. 20, 24; vii. 1-5. Ps. xvii.
4; cxix. 9, 11.)
The extreme plausibility of the temptation calls our attention. The
deluded victim only tastes, or expects to taste, the honeycomb: only
hears the wily smoothness of the charmer's voice. (Chap. ii. 16; vi. 24;
vii. 21.) But never is the beginning so sweet as the end is bitter.
God shows the wormwood— the two-edged sword (Comp. Ps. lv. 21)--
her path of death—every step taking hold of hell, as if invading it with
a high hand; grasping it as her home. One feature of the tempter's
wiliness is most remarkable.* She winds herself in a thousand moveable
ways, to meet the varying humours and circumstances (Chap. vii. 21);
she works upon every weakness; seizes every unguarded moment--
hemmed, in by the sea, and a fall over either side were danger of drowning. Some are too
greedy; others too ascetic. Some are too bold; others too diffident. Some neglect the
Mediator; others seek new Mediators. Some flee the cross; others make one. Some
tamper with Popery; others, from the dread of it, hazard the loss of valuable truth.'
* Schultens in loco. Chap. ii. 18; vii. 17; ix. 18. 1 Cor. vi. 9, 10. Rev. xx i. 8.
CHAP. V. 1–14. 57
all with one deeply-hidden object — lest thou shouldest ponder the path of
life. The checks of conscience must be diverted. No time must be
given for reflection. The intrusion of one serious though might break
the spell, and open the way of escape. (See Ps. cxiix. 59. Ezek. xviii. 28.
Luke, xv. 17.)
Can we wonder then at parental earnestness, forcing back the child-
ren playing on the brink of a precipice? Hear now, 0 ye children!
We mean no austere restraint upon youthful pleasures. Only avoid
the tempter's touch, her word, even her look. Remove thy way far from
her. Not only go not in to her; but--such is the contagion—come not
near the door. (Comp. ch. iv. 14, 15; vi. 27, 28.) To thrust ourselves
into temptation, is to throw ourselves out of God's protection. The
snare as it approaches becomes more enticing. The voice of wisdom
therefore is —"Flee youthful lusts."
The loss of honour (Chap. vi. 32. 33. Gen. xxxviii. 23–26), taking
the crown from the victim's head (2 Sam. xii. 11; xv. 30. Neh. xiii. 26);
years given to the cruel mockers of his misery (Chap. vi. 26; xxxi, 3.
Judg. xvi. 18–21); the waste of the family wealth (Chap. vi. 26, 35;
xxix. 3. Job, xxxi. 12. Hos. vii. 9. Luke, xv. 13, 30. Comp. Eccius. v.
6) ; servitude in a stranger's house (Luke, xv. 15, 16): consumption,
slowly bringing the body to the grave (1 Cor. vi. 18) — such is the
bitter fruit of the neglected warning. Add to this the voice of con-
science at the last; telling of slighted privileges, stifled convictions,
abused knowledge. And will not this be the sting of thousands
instructed in our schools, or the children of godly parents, now despising
the reproofs of God, and the voice of their teachers; proclaiming their
shame openly; perhaps making Christian assemblies the scenes of almost
all evil? (Num. xxv. 6, 7. Ezek. viii. 5–16.)
Such is the picture of sin. Its "pleasure is but for a season;" "its
wages death eternal." (Heb. xi. 25. Rom. vi. 23.) Every sin unre-
pented here will bring its perpetual torment in eternity. Impenitence
does not put away its sorrow. It only delays it to mourn at the last,
when mercy shall have fled away for ever (Chap. i. 24–31), and nothing
will remain, but the piercing cry of the accusing conscience —"Son!
remember." (Luke, xvi. 25.) There are no infidels in eternity, and
but few on a death-bed. Sinner! the path of life is now open to thee.
Ponder it anxiously, prayerfully. The light of the word, and the teach-
ing of the Spirit, guide thee to it.
15. Drink waters out of thine own cistern, and running waters out of thine
own well. 16. Let thy fountains be dispersed abroad, and rivers of
waters in the streets. 17. Let them be only thine own, and not strangers'
with thee. 18. Let thy fountain be blessed: and rejoice with the wife
of thy youth. 19. Let her be as the loving hind and pleasant roe; let
58 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
her breasts satisfy thee at all times; and be thou rvished always with
her love.
Desire after forbidden enjoyments naturally springs from dissatisfac-
tion with the blessings in possession. Where contentment is not found
at home — drinking out of our own cistern*-- it will be sought for, how-
ever vainly, abroad. Conjugal love is chief among the earthly goods
in mercy granted by God to his fallen and rebellious creature. Enjoy
then with thankfulness thine own, and desire not thy neighbour's well.
(Exod. xx. 17. 2 Sam. xi. 2, 3.) If a happy issue is given (Ps. cxxvii.
3-5; cxxviii.), let it be as fountains (Comp. Num. xxiv. 7; Deut. xxxiii.
28; Ps. lxviii. 26; Isa. xlviii. 1) dispersed abroad, to fertilize with
godly influence the way through which their course may be directed.
(Comp. Zech. viii. 5.) Rejoice with the wife of thy youth. (Deut. xxiv. 5.
Eccles. ix. 9.) Regard her as the special gift of thy Father's hand.
(Chap. xix. 14.) Cherish her with gentleness and purity (Gen. xxiv. 67),
as the loving hind and pleasant roe.† Whatsoever interrupts the strictest
harmony in this delicate relationship, opens the door to imminent
temptation. Tender, well-regulated, domestic affection is the best
defence against the vagrant desires of unlawful passion. Yea—it is
consecrated by the Word of God itself to the high purpose of shadowing
out "the great mystery—loving and cherishing our own flesh, even as
the Lord the Church." (Eph. v. 25, 29.)
20. And why wilt thou, my son, be ravished with a strange woman, and
embrace the bosom of a stranger? 21. For the ways of man are
before the eyes of the Lord, and he pondereth all his goings. 22. His
own iniquities shall take the wicked himself, and he shall be holden with
the cords of his sins. 23. He shall die without instruction; and in the
greatness of his folly he shall go astray.
With such a view as we have had of the deadly enticement of sin
on the one hand (Verses 9–11), and the calm happiness provided on the
other by the ordinance of God (Verses 15-19), surely none but the
infatuated would leave the wholesome fountain for the poisoned and
forbidden spring. If he were not stupified, would he slight the
"honourable" state of marriage (Heb. xiii. 4), to embrace the bosom of a
stranger, 'loveless, joyless, unendeared?' Would not the thought, that
* The beauty of the figure is illustrated from the circumstance, that the houses of the
East appear each to have had their own cistern. 2 Kings, xviii. 31.
† Comp. 2 Sam. xii. 3. The hind and the roe were objects of special delight (Cant. ii.
17; iii. 5) and endearment—a picture of the lively delight, which the wife naturally
engages; relaxing in her society from severer duties; and taking the liveliest pleasure in
her company. As Bishop Davenant beautifully observes—‘Abroad the man may consider
himself as tossing in the waves; but at home with his wife, in repose, as in a desired
haven.'—On Col. iii. 19.
CHAP. V. 20-23. 59
the ways of man are before the Lord, arrest him in his course?* But no.
Practical atheism is the root of human depravity. (Ps. xiv. 1-3.) The
eye of man, even of a child, is a check upon him (Job, xxiv 1,15. Isa.
xxix. 15); but the thought of an all-seeing God, even if it enters his
mind (Ps. x. 4), inspires no alarm, conviction, or restraint. Oh! if
men would but read—would but believe--their Bibles, how would this
solemn truth — he pondereth all his goings--flash upon their consciences!
Not only does he see and mark them as the Omniscient God (Job, xxxi.
4. Ps. cxxxix. 1--4); but he ponders them as the just Judge. (Chap.
xvi. 2. 1 Sam. ii. 3. Dan. v. 27.) Not one is hidden from his piercing
eye. (Heb. iv. 13.) "He will bring every secret thing to judgment."
(Eccles. xii. 14.) He "will be a swift witness against the adulterers.
No unclean person shall enter into his kingdom." (Mal. iii. 2. Eph. v. 5.)
But if no regard to reason, or to the all-seeing Eye, will restrain the
sinner, let him think of the trouble that he is bringing upon himself.
God needs no chains or prison to bring him under his hand. Wher-
ever he goes, his sins go with him, as cords to hold him for judgment.
(Chap. xi. 3, 5, 6; xxix. 6. 1 Sam. xxviii. 5-10.) Does he think that he
can give them up when he pleases? Repetition farms the habit. The
habit becomes a ruling principle. 'Every lust deals with him, as
Delilah with Samson—not only robs him of his strength, but leaves
him fast bound.'† Shutting his eyes against the light, he dies without
instruction (Verse 12. Chap. i. 29; x. 21. Job, iv. 21; xxxvi. 12. Hos.
iv. 14, 17) -- The greatness of his folly leads him astray--to perdition.
(2 Pet. ii. 14, 15.)
But is there no remedy for this deadly curse? Thanks be to God!
cleansing is provided for the impure (Lech. xiii. 1. 1 Cor. vi. 11);
"deliverance is proclaimed to the captive." (Isak lxi. 1.) Blessed
Saviour! cleanse the leper in thy precious fountain. Perform thy
mighty commission. Set the captive free.
CHAPTER VI.
1. My son, if thou be surety for thy friend, if thou hast stricken thy hand
with a stranger, 2. Thou art snared with the words of thy mouth,
thou art taken with the words of thy mouth. 3.Do this now, my son,
and deliver thyself, when thou art come into the hand of thy friend: go,
* Job, xxxiv. 21, 22. Ps. xciv. Jer. xiii. 25-27; xvi. 17; xxix. 23. Hos. vii. 2 See
some striking thoughts in MEDE'S Sermon on iv. 23.
† Archbishop Tillotson quoted in NICHOLL’S Commentary. Jude. xvi. 19-21. ‘Thus I,’
—said Augustine adverting to this hateful sin—‘delighted with the disease of the flesh,
and with the deadly sweetness of it, drew my shackles along with one, much afraid to have
them knocked off; and, as if my wound had been too hard rubbed by it, I put back my
friends' good persuasions, as it were the hand of one that would unchain me.'— Confess.
b. vi. c. 12. Comp. chap. xxiii. 29-35.
60 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVIERBS.
humble thyself, and make sure (so shalt thou prevail with, marg.)
thy friend. 4. Give not sleep to thine eyes, or slumber to thine eye-
lids. 5. Deliver thyself as a roe from the hand of the hunter, and as a
bird from the hand of the fowler.
THE son has just been warned against the deadly wound of a stranger.
He is now cautioned against a hurt from an imprudent friend. So gra-
ciously has our God made his book, not only our guide to heaven, but
the directory of our common life. We must, however, often take its wise
rules with some restriction. We are here earnestly warned against
suretyship. Yet in some cases it is plainly allowed and approved.*
"A man that hath friends must show himself friendly." (Chap. xviii. 24.)
And the passing of our word, or giving a bond, may be an act of pru-
dent friendship, and of solid and permanent advantage. The caution
is evidently directed against rash engagements (Comp. also chap. xi. 15;
xvii. 18; xx. 16; xxii. 26, 27), to which the young and inexperienced
are especially exposed; striking with hands (the usual mode of plighting
faith) (Chap. xvii. 18; xxii. 26. Job, xvii. 3), in an unguarded moment.
Often may they be snared and taken by the words of their mouth, by
entering into virtual promises, without knowing how far they were
pledged, or what might be the issue. Christian prudence will keep us
clear from such engagements, which bring distress upon our families,
dishonour upon our name, and reproach upon our religion. (Comp.
Ecclus viii. 13.) While the "good man showeth favour, and lendeth,
he must guide his affairs with discretion;"† however grating it may
be to incur the suspicion of unkindness. If, however; by any incon-
siderate bond, thou hast come into the hand of thy friend; the instant
duty is, to humble thyself for thy imprudence, and make sure thy friend,
if thou cant prevail with him to answer for himself; and, give thyself
no rest, till, like as the roe and the bird, thou be disentangled from the
snare.
Our God, while he warns us against suretyship, has taken it upon
himself. Praised be his name! He has give his word, his bond,
yea—his blood—for sinners—a security, that no powers of hell can
shake.
6. Go to the ant, thou sluggard; consider her ways, and be wise: 7. Which
having no guide, overseer, or ruler, 8. Provideth her meat in the
summer, and gathereth her food in the harvest. 9. Flow long wilt thou
sleep, O sluggard? when wilt thou arise out of thy sleep? 10. Yet a little
* Reuben and Judah for Benjamin. Gen. xlii. 37; xliii. 9 ; xliv. 32, 33. Paul for
Onesimus. Philem. 18, 19.
† Ps. cxii. 5. P. Henry always cautioned sureties not to be bound for any more than
they knew themselves able to pay, nor for more than they would be willing to pay, if the
principal failed.— Life, chap. v.
CHAP. VI. 6-11. 61
more sleep, a little more slumber, a little folding! of the hands to sleep:
11. So shall thy poverty come as one that travelleth, and thy want as an
armed man.
'It is a shame'-- said the heathen philosopher--'not to learn morals
from the small animals.’ Yet what a proof is it of the degradation of
the fall, that "man, created in the image of God," and made wiser than
the creation (Gen. i. 26. Job, xxxv. 11), should be sent, as here, to this
insignificant school for instruction! The ant, having no guide to direct
her work, no overseer to inspect her, or ruler to call her to account
(Comp. chap. xxx. 27, and contrast Exod. v. 13, 4; 1 Kings, v. 16);
yet gathereth with diligent foresight the summer and harvest store for her
winter need.† Let the sluggard consider her ways, and be wise. He
sleeps over his work, and, if for a moment half-startled by some rousing
call, still pleads for a little more sleep, and folds his hands to sleep. Pre-
sent ease is all he calculates on, all he provides for. The future he
carefully keeps out of sight, to be provided for, like the present, when
it comes. Thus life runs to waste. Poverty comes step by step as one
that travelleth, and, like an armed man, with irresistible violence. (Chap.
x. 4; xiii. 4; xix. 15, 24; xx. 4; xxi. 25; xxiv. 33, 34.)
Perhaps he perverts his Master's word to excuse his sloth. But, if
we are to "take no anxious thought for the morrow " (his true mean-
ing),‡ are we to take none at all? Care is a duty, parental obligation
(2 Cor. xii. 14. Comp. Gen. xxx. 30; xli. 33), and, therefore, a com-
ponent part of godliness.§ Carefulness is a sin (Luke, x. 41. 1 Cor. vii. 32),
a needless burden to ourselves, an unworthy distrust of God. (Matt. vi. 25-33.)
The diligent use of providential means honours God. (Chap. x. 5; xxiv. 27.)
But much more loudly would we call to the spiritual sluggard.
Thou that art sleeping away the opportunities of grace; not "striving
to enter in at the strait gate" (Luke, xiii. 24); taking thy salvation for
granted; hoping that thou shalt "reap that which thou hast not sown,
and gather where thou hast not strawed" (Matt. xv. 26) -- Go to the
ant, thou sluggard; consider her ways, and be wise. Improve, after this
pattern, the summer and harvest season—the time of youth, the present,
* Pudeat ab exiguis animalibus non trahere mores.—SENECA, De Clementia. Lib. i.
† Chap. x. 5; xxx. 25. Horace's miser quotes this example as an excuse for hoarding.
But—as the poet replies—it was to use the hoard in the winter prudent care, not covet-
ousness. Sat i. 32. See also Virgil's exquisite picture, AEn. iv. 402, &c. The hoarding
spirit of the ants, though attested by numerous writers and naturalists, does not charac-
terise those known to us ; though the habits of the species in a warmer climate would
probably widely differ from our own. Some, however, have thought, that Solomon only
refers to their wisdom and prudence in preparing suitable food in summer and harvest,
when it is most plentiful.—See KIRBY and SPENCE's Entomology, ii. 46.
‡ Merimnaw. Matt. vi. 34.—Solicite et anxie cogito; at plus est solicitum esse, quam
cogitare, as Erasmus notices, and that of Tully confirms,—Solicitudo est aegritudo cum
cogitatione. ‘The root of the word expresses the dividing of the mind into divers thoughts.’
-LEIGH'S Critica Sacra. Comp. Philip. iv. 6.
§ 1 Tim. v. 8. Our Lord had a bag for the provision of his family. John, xiii. 29.
62 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
perhaps the only, moment. The ant hath no guide. How many guides
have you—conscience—the Bible—ministers! (Job, 8. Ps.
cxix. 105. Mal. ii. 7.) She has no overseer. You are living before Him,
whose "eyes are as a flame of fire." (Chap. xv. 3. Rev. i. 14 ; ii. 18.)
She has no ruler calling her to account. “Every one of us must give
account of himself unto God.” (Rom. xiv. 1 .) How long then wilt thou
sleep, 0 sluggard?—is the solemn remonstrance of thy God. (Comp.
chap. i. 22; 1 Kings, xviii. 21.) Thy sleep is not like that of the body,
refreshing at the dawn of day; but it is that of the poisoned draught,
heavier and heavier; the slumber of death. "Awake, thou that sleepest,
and Christ shall give thee light." (Eph. v. 4.) Slight not the call of
the present moment. The spell grows stronger, as resistance is delayed.
Every day's slumber makes it more improbable, whether thou wilt
ever awaken at all. The intended struggle of to-morrow is a delusion.
A thousand such to-morrows there may be; and yet thou mayest be
found at last perishing in thy poverty, and he King of terror will come
as an armed man to summon thee to judgment.
But how one is made to feel that from his deep slumber no voice
but Omnipotence can rouse! Enter the sluggard's chamber; put aside
his curtain; hang over his bed; sound a solemn cry in his ears—How
long? endeavour even to open his eyelids to the light of day ; and yet
the spell is too strong for man. He shifts his posture, murmurs his cry
—a little more sleep—and slumbers again. Christians! you feel the
helplessness of your work. Then call in the power of God in your
brother's behalf—"Lighten his eyes, lest lle sleep the sleep of death."
(Ps. xiii. 3.)
And then, as for thyself—grow intense energy in thy high
calling. Remember, faith without diligence is slumbering delusion.
Faith is the practical energy of a living faith. Always, therefore, look
at sloth, not as an infirmity, but as a sin, affecting the whole man:
growing upon us with unperceived power. Allow it therefore no rest,
no time to root itself. Resist it in all its forms—bodily, mental,
spiritual: indulgence of sleep and appetite: self-pleasing in all its
subtle and plausible workings. Live by rule. Have your time strictly
arranged. Be employed in early work for God. Store the mind with
useful knowledge; ever reserving the first place for an industrious and
prayerful study' of the book of God. "Mortify" this baneful lust
"through the Divine Spirit" (Rom. viii. 13); drawing all your motives
from the death (Ibid. vi. 6), the life (Mark, i. 2-35), the rules of Christ.
(Luke, ix. 23. Rom. xiii. 11-14.) Victory will soon declare for you;
and how enriching will be the spoil!
12. A naughty person, a wicked man, walketh with a froward mouth. 13.
He winketh with his eyes, he speaketh with his feet, he teacheth with his
fingers. 13. Frowardness is in his heart; he deviseth mischief con-
CHAP. VI. 12-19. 63
tinually; he soweth discord. 15. Therefore shall his calamity come
suddenly; suddenly shall he be broken without remedy.
What a contrast between the inactivity of the sluggard and the
unwearied diligence of the naughty person! This man of Belial (Heb.)
—as if his froward mouth—itself "a world of iniquity" (Jam. iii. 6)—
could not give sufficient scope for his malice, makes every member--
eyes, feet, and fingers—vocal and significant (Isa. iii. 16), an active
"instrument of unrighteousness." (Chap. x. 10. Rom. vi. 13-19.) These,
however, are only the external manifestations. Seep within lies the
laboratory of evil—"the chambers of imagery," terming with "greater
and yet greater abominations." (Ezek. viii. 8-15. Matt. xv. 19.) Fro-
wardness* is in the heart. Here is the restless devising of mischief,†
sowing discord, instead of piety and love. (Chap. x. 12.) Such a pest to
society brings on himself his own ruin, suddenly and without remedy.
The sight of this all-pervading power of sin is truly affecting. How
utterly powerless is any remedy save that involved in the solemn
declaration—"Ye must be born again!" (John, iii. 7. Tit. iii. 3-5.)
16. These six things doth the Lord hate; yea, seven are an abomination
unto him: (of his soul, marg.) 17. A proud look, a lying tongue, and
hands that shed innocent blood, 18. An heart that deviseth wicked
imaginations, feet that be swift in running to mischief, 19. A false
witness that speaketh lies, and he that soweth discord among brethren.
Man conceives of God in his heart as "such a one as himself"
(Ps. 1. 21), looking with indifference at sin. Here therefore Solomon
names six--yea—seven (Comp. chap. xxx. 15-18) abominations (most
of them mentioned in the preceding list) which the Lord--hateth—a proud
look,‡ a lying tongue,§ a blood-stained hand.|| And, lest we should
think, that he "looketh only on the outward appearance;" the heart,
active in devising wickedness,¶ is brought out ; and is ready organ, the
feet swift in running to mischief. (Chap. i. 16. Isa. ix. 7. Rom. iii. 1.5:)
How hateful also is the false witness (Zech. viii. 17), surely reserved by
him for judgment! (Chap. xix. 5. Zech. v. 4. Mal. ii 5.) Let the self-
willed separatist remember the double stamp (Vers:s 14, 19) upon him
that soweth discord among brethren. if the heavenly "dew descends
* ‘Frowardness,’ Heb. See POOLE's Synopsis—not one but many; the heart so filled
with them, that the vessel cannot hold more. Gen. vi. 5. Acts, x ii. 10.
† Ps. x. 7-9; xxxvi. 2-4. Compare the striking figure, Hos. vii. 6. Chap. xvi. 28.
Ps. lii. 2.
‡ Chap. viii. 13 ; xxx. 13. Ps. xviii. 27. Isa. ii. 12. Jer. i. 31—the examples of Pharaoh
—Ex, ix. 16. Haman—Esth. vii. 10. Nebuchadnezzar—Dan. iv. 28-33. Herod—Acts,
xii. 21-23.
§ Chap. xii. 22. Ps. v. 6. Rev. xxi. 8. Gehazi--2 Kings, v. 25-27. Ananias and Sapphira
—Acts, v. 1-10.
|| Gen. ix. 6. Cain—iv. 8-12. Manasseh— 2 Kings, xxi. 15, 16. Specially the mur-
derers of his dear Son—Matt. xxiii. 31-38.
¶ Ahithophel—2 Sam. xvi. 20-23; xvii. 23. Mic. ii. 1. 2 Pet. ii. 14.
64 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
upon the brethren that dwell together in unity" (Ps. cxxxiii.), a
withering blast will fall on those, who, mistaking prejudice for principle,
"cause divisions" for their own selfish ends. (Rom. xvi. 17, 18.) Fearful
is the Lord's mark upon them—"sensual, having not the Spirit."* If
we cannot attain unity of opinion—"perfectly joined together in the
same mind, and in the same judgment;"† at least let us cultivate unity
of spirit—"Whereto we have already attained, let us walk by the same
rule; let us mind the same thing." (Philip. iii. 16.)
20. My son, keep thy father's commandment, and forsake not the law of thy
mother: 21. Bind them continually upon thine heart, and tie them about
thy neck. 22. When thou goest, it shall lead thee; when thou sleepest,
it shall keep thee: and when thou awakest, it shall talk with thee.
23. For the commandment is a lamp; and the law is light; and
reproofs of instruction are the way of life; 24. To keep thee from the
evil woman,‡ from the flattery of the tongue of a strange woman.
The authority of parental instruction is again enforced. (Chap. i.
8, 9; iv. 1.) God never intended young people to be independent of
their parents. Instruction from every quarter is valuable. But from
parents—always supposing them to be godly parents—it is the ordi-
nance of God. They will bring you God's word, not their on. There-
fore bind it continually about thine heart (Chap. iii. 3; iv. 21; vii. 3), as
thy rule; about thy neck (Chap. iii. 3. Comp. Job, xxxi. 36), as thine
adorning. Let the law be thy friend for all times and circumstances
—a guide by day (Chap. iii. 22, 23; iv. 12); a solace by night (Chap.
iii. 24. Ps. lxiii. 5), yea—a friend for thy waking moments. (Ps. exxxix.
17, 18.) Take care that nothing hinders thy early converse with this
faithful counsellor before the world comes in; as the best means of
keeping the world out. ‘Happy is the mind to which the word is an undivided
companion.'§ A lamp, so full of light, in this dark world|| is an inestimable gift.
Its reproofs of instruction, the discipline of our wayward will, are to us as the way
of life. (Ps. xix. 11. 2 Tim. iii. 16, 17. Comp. Matt. vii. 13, 14.)
* Jude, 19. 1 Cor. iii. 3, 4. Let the wisdom of experience given by an accurate observer
of himself and the Church, be seriously pondered—'I am much more sensible of the evil of
schism, and of the separating humour, and of gathering parties, and making several sects
in the Church, than I was heretofore. For the effects have shown us more of the mischiefs.
I am much more sensible, how prone many young professors are to spiritual pride and self-
conceitedness, and unruliness, and division, and so prove the grief of their teachers, and
firebrands in the Church. I am much more sensible than heretofore of the breadth, and
length, and depth of the radical, universal, odious sin of selfishness, and the excellency and
necessity of self-denial, and of a public mind, and of loving our neighbour as ourselves.'—
BAXTER'S Narrative of his Life and Times.
† 1 Cor. i. 10—'A text'—says the godly Flavel—'to be commented upon rather by
tears than by words.'—Sermon on Text.
‡ Heb. Woman of wickedness—the woman full of wickedness—wholly given to it.
Comp. Zech. v. 7, 8.
§ Felix mens, cui verhum individuus comes.'—BERNARD, Serm. xxxii. in Cant.
|| Ps cxix 105. See Bishop Patrick’s note quoted in Scott.
CHAP. VI. 25-29. 65
Specially valuable are this lamp and light in sensual temptation.
(Chap. ii. 10, 11, 16-19; v. 1-8; vii. 1-5.) Those who choose their
own light fall into a flattering snare. (Chap. ii. 16; vii, 21. The neglect
of parental warning will furnish in the end bitter matter for unavailing
repentance. (Chap. v. 11–13.) Oh! let the Father's instruction be
heard betimes —"Wherewithal shall a young man cleanse his way?
by taking heed thereto according to thy word." (Ps. xix. 9. Comp. v.
11; xvii. 4.)
25. Lust not after her beauty in thine heart; neither let her take thee with
her eyelids. 26. For by means of a whorish woman a man is brought
to a piece of bread: and the adulteress will hunt for the precious life.
27. Can a man take fire in his bosom, and his clothes not be burned?
28. Can one go upon hot coals, and his feet not be burned? 29. So he
that goeth in to his neighbour's wife; whosoever toucheth her shall not
be innocent.
Solomon here gives our Lord's own rule. (Matt. v. 28. Comp. Jam. i.
14, 15; Job, xxxi. 1; Ps. cxix. 37; also, Ecclus. ix. 3–5.) Resist lust
in its first rising in the heart. By vain beauty,* and wanton eyes,†
many a deluded victim has been brought to a piece of bread.‡ Like the
insatiable huntsman, who never loses sight of his prey, till he has
pursued it to death; never does the seducer cease to solicit, till she has
hunted for the precious life. (Gen. xxxix. 14. Judg. xvi. 18-21. Comp.
Ezek. xiii. 18, 20, 21.) Yet neither the present miseries, nor the certain
end, of this wretched course, can draw away the foot, that has dared to
tread the forbidden path. 'Self-confidence sees and fears no danger. ‘I
can look to myself; I need not go too far, and I shall get no harm.’
But the temptation acts upon a congenial nature like fuel, not water,
on the fire. As well might we expect to take fire into our bosom, and
our clothes not be burned, or to go upon hot coals, and not be burned; as to
go wilfully into sin, and to escape the punishment.§ Sin and punish-
ment are linked together by a chain of adamant. ‘The fire of lust
kindles the fire of hell.'|| He cannot afterwards plead the strength of
the temptation. Why did he not avoid it? Who that knows how
much tinder he carries about him, would wilfully light up the sparks ?
Heedlessly to rush into temptation, is to provoke the corruption, which
is too ready to stir of itself. The influence of temptations though not
* Chap. xxxi. 30. Gen. vi. 2; xxxix. 6. 2 Sam. xi. 2. Comp. Ecclus. xxv. 21.
† Gen. xxxix. 7. 2 Kings, ix. 30. Marg. Isa. iii. 16. 2 Pet. ii. 14. Comp. Paradise Lost,
book xi. 1, 620.
‡ Chap. v. 10; xxix. 3. 1 Sam. ii. 26, 36. Job, xxxi. 9, 12. Luke, xv. 13, 30. Comp. the
difference between Solomon's chaste and unholy age. I Kings, x. 21, 27, with xii. 4.
§ Exod. xx. 14, 17. Lev. xx 10. 2 Sam. xii. 9. Mal. iii. 5. Even as a sin of ignorance
it was liable to be visited. Gen. xii. 15-15; xx. 1-6; xxvi. 10. So strictly has the holy
Lord fenced his own ordinance! See MEDE'S Sermon on Chap. iv. 23.
|| Henry in loco. Comp. Job, xxxi. 12; Jam. i. 14, 15.
66 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
always sensible, is immediate. The man must be in haste, who would
effectually resist it. Beware of suspicious familiarities on the borders
of sin. (Gen. xxxix. 10. Rom. xiii. 13. 1 Thess. v. 22.) The temptation
to criminality in this atmosphere is fearful. (2 Sam. xi. 2-4. Comp.
Eccius. ix. 8, 9.) Whosoever toucheth shall not be innocent. (Gen. xx. 6;
xxxix. 9. 1 Cor. vii. 1.)
30. Men do not despise a thief, if lie steal to satisfy his soul, when he is
hungry; 31. But if he be found, he shall restore sevenfold; he shall
give all the substance of his house. 32. But whoso committeth adultery
with a woman lacketh understanding: he that doeth it destroyeth his
own soul. 33. A wound and dishonour shall he get; and his reproach
shall not be wiped away. 34. For jealousy is the rage of a man;
therefore he will not spare in the day of vengeance. 35. He will not
regard (accept the face of, marg.) any ransom; neither will he rest
content, though thou givest many gifts.
Here is no excuse or impunity for the thief. The full restitution that
he is compelled to make*—perhaps sweeping away all his little sub-
stance—proves that no extremity can excuse "the transgression of the
law." (Comp. 1 Cor. vi. 10, with 1 John, iii. 4.) Let him earn his bread
by honest industry. If the fruits of industry fail, let him, trusting in
God, seek the help of his fellow-creatures. If he have faith to trust, he
will never be forced to steal. (See Matt. vi. 25-33.) Yet his extreme
temptation renders him an object rather of pity than of scorn—Men do
not despise him.
But the sin of the adulterer claims no sympathy. His plea is not
the cry of hunger, but of lust; not want, but wantonness; not the lack
of bread, but of understanding. (Comp. Eccles. vii. 25, 26; Jer. v. 8, 21.)
He is wilfully given up to his sin. He destroyeth his own soul. (Lev.
xx. 10. Chap. ii. 18, 19; v. 22, 23; vii. 22, 23. Eph. v. 5.) He gets a
wound—not like the soldier or the martyr for Christ—full of honour;
but rankling on his conscience (Ps. xxxii. 3, 4), and bringing dishonour
and indelible reproach upon his name.† The tremendous passions of
jealousy and rage shut out all forgiveness.‡ The face of no one who
offered a ransom would be accepted. No compensation (Gen. xxxix.
19, 20. Judg. xix. 29, 30), however costly, will content.
Such are the many sins (2 Sam. xi. 6-24), the awfully destructive
* Exod. xxii. 11-4. Seven-fold—not literally. Four or five-fold was the extent of the
Divine requirement. Comp. Luke, xix. 8. It means full (ver. 3) and satisfactory—an
indefinite number. Comp. Gen. iv. 15, 24; Ps. lxxix. 12, and cilia passim. Comp.
Job, xx. 18.
† Chap. v. 9. Gen. xxxviii. 23; xlix. 4. 2 Sam. iii. 13; xiii. 13. 1 Kings, xv. 5, with
Matt. i. 6. Neh. xiii. 26. Comp Deut. xxiii. 2.
‡ Gen. xxxiv. 7; xlix. 5-7. Num. v. 14. Esth. vii. 7-10. Ezek. xvi. 38. Schultens
remarks that no version fully expresses the strength of the original. Rage; ‘Ignitio.’
In loco
CHAP. VII. 1-5. 67
miseries,* flowing from the breach of God's holy commandment. ‘Oh!
how great iniquity'—exclaimed the godly Augustine—'is this adul-
tery! How great a perverseness! The soul, redeemed by the precious
blood of Christ, is thus for the pleasures of an hour given to the devil;
a thing much to be lamented and bewailed; when that which delighteth
is soon gone, that which tormenteth remaineth without end.'†
And shall not this fearful picture of sin and its consequences (which
Solomon, alas! was too well fitted to draw) teach us to avoid every-
thing that may be temptation; to be sensitive to the first intimations of
its becoming so; to close every avenue of sense to the entrance of this
seductive poison; to shun all communications that taint the purity of
taste, that familiarise the mind with impurity, that give a vivid interest
to associations from which a chaste imagination recoils with disgust?
Let us learn to seek Divine strength to "watch and pray" continually;
and, while we "think we stand, to take heed lest we fall." (1 Cor. x. 12 )
CHAPTER VII.
1. My son, keep my words, and lay up my commandments with thee. 2.
Keep my commandments, and live; and my law as the apple of thine
eye. 3. Bind them upon thy fingers, write them upon the table of thine
heart. 4. Say unto wisdom—'Thou art my sister,' and call under-
standing thy kinswoman: 5. That they may keep thee from the strange
woman, from the stranger that flattereth with her words.
THE study of wisdom in the word of God is here commended to us with
affectionate earnestness, and with a beautiful variety of imagery. Let
us ponder these valuable rules for practical application.
Let the whole mind and heart be occupied with it. Keep it as the
daily means of life. (Chap. iii. 21, 22; iv. 4, 13. Isa.lv. 2, 3. Jer. xxii. 15.)
Sir Matthew Hale told his children—'If I omit reading a portion of
Scripture in the morning, it never goes well with me through the day.'
Lay it up (Chap. x. 14. Deut. xi. 18. Luke, ii. 19, 51) carefully, not on
our shelves, but on our hearts. Let the whole Word of God be our
precious treasure. Receive the promises from his grace with simple
affiance, and the commandments from his holiness with ready obedience.
Stand with your eye in the land of promise; but with your feet "in the
land of uprightness." (Ps. cxliii. 10.)
Maintain a jealous regard for the law. What care is necessary to
keep the apple of the eye—that most tender part of the most tender
* The quaint lines of an old Chronicler give an awful picture--
'Corpus, opes, animum, famam, vim, lumina. scortum
Debilitat, perdit, necat, aufert, eripit, orbat.'
Quoted by Trapp on verse 26.
† Lib. de Honest. Mulier. quoted by Lavater on verse 26.
68 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
member! (Deut. xxxii. 10. Ps. xvii. 8. Zech. ii. 8.) With the same
care preserve the integrity of the law. Let every part of it have its
full weight. To explain it away, or to lower its requirements, breaks
down the barrier, and gives an easy entrance to temptation. The sen-
sual sinner is often a covert infidel.
Let it be at hand for constant use. Bind them upon thy fingers (Chap.
iii. 3. Deut. vi. 8; xi. 18); that, being always in sight, they may be
always ready for the present moment. And for their practical influ-
ence, write them upon the table of thine heart. Oh! my God! this is thy
Almighty work. (Isa. xxvi. 12. 2 Cor. iii. 3.) But thou hast engaged
to do it for thy people. (Jer. xxxi. 33.) I "take hold of thy covenant."
Lord! seal thy promised grace.
Let it be the object of tender affection—as our sister--our kinswoman.
It is her embrace that throws the harlot's beauty into the shade. Man
must have his object of delight. If wisdom is not loved, lust will be
indulged. The Bible therefore—not merely read, but the cherished
object of familiar intercourse—proves a sacred exorcist to expel the
power of evil. (Chap. ii. 10, 16; vi. 23, 24; xxiii. 26, 27.)
6. For at the window of my house I looked through my casement, 7. And
beheld among the simple ones, I discerned among the youths a young
man void of understanding, 8. Passing through the street near her
corner; and he went the way to her house, 9. In the twilight, in the
evening, in the black and dark night: 10. And, beholds there met him a
woman with the attire of an harlot, and subtil of heart. 11. (She is
loud and stubborn; her feet abide not in her house: 12. Now is she
without, now in the streets, and lieth in wait at every corner.) 13. So
she caught him, and kissed him, and with an impudent face said unto
him, 14. ‘I have peaces-offerings with me; this day have I paid my
vows. 15. Therefore came I forth to meet thee, diligently to seek thy
face, and I have found thee. 16. I have decked my bed with coverings
of tapestry, with carved works, with fine linen of Egypt. 17. I have
perfumed my bed with myrrh, aloes, and cinnamon. 18. Come, let us
take our fill of love until the morning: let us solace ourselves with loves.
19. For the goodman is not at home, he is gone a long journey: 20.
He bath taken a bag of money with him, and will come home at the day
appointed.' 21. With her much fair speech she caused him to yield;
with the flattering of her lips she forced him. 22. He goeth after her
straightway, as an ox goeth to the slaughter, or as a fool to the correction
of the stocks: 23. Till a dart strike through his liver; as a bird hasteth
to the snare, and knoweth not that it is for his life.
Solomon paints the deadly snare of the strange woman with a master's
hand, and with exquisite fidelity of colouring. A young man without
understanding (Chap. i. 4, 22 ; xiii. 16) in company with youths as simple
CHAP. VII. 6-23. 69
as himself, takes in the dark of evening the way to the harlot's house. She
meets him. Her attire (Gen. xxxviii. 14, 15): her subtilty (Chap. xxiii.
27. Eccles. vii. 26., Judg. xvi. 4–20); her loud and stubborn voice (Chap.
ix. 13); her feet at this late hour not abiding in her house (Comp. 1 Tim.
v. 13 ; Tit. ii. 5); lying in wait at every corner of the street;* her impudent
face and conduct—all show the harlot's forehead. (See Gen. xxxix. 7,
12. Jer. iii. 3.) She allures her victim with the garb of sanctity. She
had just been engaged in special religious duties. Now she was come
forth to seek diligently her lover, that they might feast together upon her
peace-offerings,† and solace themselves with love, with every indulgence.
‘The goodman (perhaps the name of husband might have awakened con-
science) is gone a long journey till the time appointed. Meanwhile, there-
fore, we may take our fill of love without fear of interruption.' Unarmed
with principle, the weakness of resolution yields to the seduction of lust;
and her unsuspecting prey rushes on to ruin.
Trace this sad end to its beginning. Was not idleness the parent of
this mischief? (2 Sam. xi. 2.) The loitering evening walk; the un-
seasonable hour (Job, xxiv. 15. Rom. xiii. 12, 13); the vacant mind—
all bringing the youth into contact with evil company (Chap. xiii. 20.
1 Con xv. 33)—was not this courting tempting the tempter?
"The house was empty," and therefore ready for his reception, and soon
altogether in his possession. (Matt. xii. 44, 45.) How valuable are
self-discipline, self-control, constant employment, active energy of pur-
suit, as preservatives under the Divine blessing from fearful danger !
See also the base varnish of religion. It is often a cover for sin!
(1 Sam. ii. 22. 2 Sam. xv. 8–11. John, xviii. 28.) ‘She durst not play
the harlot with man till she had played the hypocrite with God, and,
stopped the mouth of her conscience with her peace-offerings.'‡ Nay—
she seems to have emboldened herself in her wickedness, as if her
meeting was a happy providence, the reward of her religious services.
(Verses 14, 15. 1 Sam. xxiii. 7. Zech. xi. 5.) Beware of any voice,
though from the most revered quarter, that manifestly encourages for-
bidden indulgence.
Observe also the infatuation of the snare. ‘Man cannot be ruined
till he has been made confident to the contrary. A man must get into
his victim's heart with fair speeches and promises, before he can come
* Chap. ix. 14, 15; xs:iii. 28. Dr. Richardson mentions seeing "these wretched women
in a large commercial town in Egypt, in the harlot's attire, sitting at the doors of their
houses, and calling on the passengers as they went by, in the same manner as we read in
the Book of Proverbs."—Travels, vol. i. p. 270.
† See Holden. Comp. Lev. vii. 16; xix. 6; Dent. xii. 6. Scott takes the same view—
adding— ‘that it is no wonder, that these sacred ordinances should have given occasion
to carnal indulgence, when our Christian festivals (Christmas especially) are abused for
similar profanations.’
‡ Gurnal. It is a well-known fact, that the favourite mistress of Louis XIV. was so
rigid in her religious duties, that her bread was weighed during Lent, lest she should
transgress the austerity of fasting.
70 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
at it with a dagger.'* Thus the harlot's flattering speech chained the
youth blindfolded for destruction. As the ox goeth to the slaughter,
unconscious of his fate, perhaps dreaming of rich pasture: or as a fool
goeth to the stocks (Eccles. vii. 26. Judg. xvi. 16-19), careless and un-
feeling; so does this poor deluded victim rush on with pitiable mirth
or indifference, till the dart strikes through his liver. (Hos. iv. 11, 14.)
He hasteth as a bird to the snare (Eccles. ix. 12), thinking only of the
bait; and he knoweth not that it is for his life. (Chap. ix. 18.) What
will recollection bring, but the fragrance of exciting perfume (Verses
16, 17), changed into the bitterness of wormwood and gall; the short
night of pleasure succeeded by the eternal night of infernal torment!†
for a cup of pleasure drinking an ocean of wrath! (Verse 27; ix. 18.)
Lastly—mark the danger of venturing into temptation. Could we
expect any other results, when we saw the youth going the way to the
harlot's house? (Chap. iv. 15; v. 8. Judg. xvi. 1.) He intended merely
his own idle gratification; and when he yielded, it was probably not
without some struggle. But it is a just judgment, that those who fear
not temptation should fall. 'Who would avoid danger must avoid
temptation to sin. Who would avoid sin must avoid temptation to
sin.'‡ The force, to which the youth's own folly subjected him, he
could not plead as an excuse. When the first bounds of modesty are
broken through, the door of the fancy is opened to the tempter for the
kindling of lust. Thus to rush into the very jaws of ruin is to "enter
into temptation" by our own will; instead of being led or falling into
it, under the providential discipline and dispensation of God. (Matt.
xxvi. 41, with iv. 1. Jam. i. 2.) Self-confidence has ruined many a pro-
mising profession. Tenderness of conscience, sensibility of weakness,
dependence on Divine strength and promise --in this frame "he that
is begotten of God keepeth himself, and that wicked one toucheth him
not." (1 John, v. 18.)
24. Hearken unto me now therefore, 0 ye children, and attend to the words .
of my mouth. 25. Let not thine heart decline to her ways, go not
astray in her paths. 26. For she bath cast down many wounded: yea,
many strong men have been slain by her. 27. Her house is the way to
hell, going down to the chambers of death.
In the hand of a licentious poet or painter, this picture might serve
to contaminate the unsanctified imagination. But as it stands on the
page of inspiration, it is God's solemn warning to children, whether in
years, understanding, or experience. Now, therefore, that you have seen
the end of sin (Verses 22, 23), hearken unto me. That you may not go
astray in her paths, let not thine heart decline. (Chap. iv. 23; v. 8.) An
impure thought, a polluted fancy, an idle book, filthy conversation,
* SOUTH's Sermons, iii. 130.
† ‘Delectat in momentum; cruciat in aeternum'—JEROME. ‡ Geier on verse 9.
CHAP. VII. 24—27. 71
foolish company, theatres or places of vain resort—these are her ways.
Dread the first step, and dream not that you can stop yourself at pleasure
in her course. Familiarity with sin weakens abhorrence. Soon will
you begin to love the object of detestation. And what! should you
find too late, that you have chosen as your home her house, which is the way to
hell, and to the chambers of death?* Many, not of the meaner sort, but strong
men has she cast down wounded and slain. And a miracle it is of Almighty
power and grace, that plucks the child of God from the brink of destruction.
Let not then the most established Christian dismiss this subject as
of no personal concern. Be it so—that "you are risen with Christ;"
that you have “set your affections on things above;” that "your life is
hid with Christ in God;" that you are looking for the glorious hope of
his "appearing." It is to you, in whom "fleshly lusts are yet warring
against the soul" (1 Pet. ii. 11), that the exhortation is given—Mor-
tify, therefore, your members that are upon the earth—even the worst
members of the old man--fornication, uncleanness, evil concupiscence.†
And who, with the picture of the wounded and slain before him will
revolt?—"Is thy servant a dog, that he should do this thing?"
(2 Kings, viii. 13)--that he should need this warning? Look at the
footsteps of the strong men who have gone in.‡ Whom do we see come
out whole? "Behold! kings stood not before her; how then shall we
stand?" (2 Kings, x. 4.)
Nor let present steadfastness, or seclusion from temptation, blind
our eyes to the liability of yielding to the vilest indulgence. The eye
of God discerns a far deeper corruption than appears in the outer man
—such a total depravation, that even the affections, designed to be the
sources of our holiest delight, become the principle and occasion of the
most awful departures from the ways of purity and peace.
The gospel presents the only remedy. The love of Christ is the
counteracting principle to the love of lust. ‘If impure love solicits,
remember the holy love of thy Saviour to thee, proved by his most
shameful death. Think of him, as looking into thy heart boiling over
with corruption, showing thee his wounds, and exciting thee to a
reciprocal love of himself.’§ The crucifixion of the flesh by a living
union with Him will "keep us from our iniquity." (Gal. v. 24, with
* Chap. ii. 18; ix. 18. The plural number (the ways, Heb.) seems to imply ‘many other
ways of guilt branching out, alaity other paths of ruin coinciding.'—HERVEY's Theron and
Aspasio. Letter v. Schultens insists, that the present most wretched state, full of all
horror and execration, is included; so that the man who hath entered the seducer's house,
may be said to have entered alive into hell, and gone down to the chamber of death.—
Chap. v. 5.
† Col. iii. 1-5. Compare the exhortation to the flourishing Thessalonian Church, 1 Thess.
iv. 3-5; and to a Christian Bishop, 2 Tim. ii. 22.
‡ Samson—David—Solomon. Neh. xiii. 26.
Vestigia terrent.
Felix, quern faciunt aliena pericula cautum!
§ Geier on verse 18. Comp. 1 Cur. vi. 18, 20; 2 Cor. v. 14, 15.
72 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
Ps. xviii. 23.) "How shall we, that are dead to sin, live any longer
therein?" (Rom. vi. 2, 3.) "The flesh will still lust against the Spirit."
(Gal. v. 17.) But the man, who walks with God in Gospel liberty, and
Christian discipline and watchfulness, is safe. (Rom. vi. 14, with 1 Cor.
ix. 27.)
But if sin be not mortified by these principles, sooner or later it will
break out; if not, as here, to open disgrace; yet so as to defile the con-
science, to "quench the Spirit," and by a sure, though perhaps imper-
ceptible, course, to bring soul and body to hell—to the chambers of
eternal death. (Rom. vi. 21. Jam. i. 14, 15.)
CHAPTER VIII.
1. Doth not wisdom cry? and understanding put forth her voice? 2. She
standeth in the top of high places, by the way in the places of the paths.
3. She crieth at the gates, at the entry of the city, at the coming in at the
doors. 4. Unto you, 0 men, I call: and my voice is to the sons of man.
LISTEN we now to the calls of heavenly Wisdom—to the voice of the
Son of God.* Careless soul! shall thy Divine call be slighted, when
the allurements of sin and vanity have had power to arrest thine ear?†
Can ignorance be pleaded? Doth not wisdom cry? and that—not in
the hour of darkness, and in the secret corners, but in the high places—
the paths of the city—the doors of thy house? Has she not followed
thee to thy places of business—of diversion—of sin? Has she not
put forth her voice in the Bible—in the family—in the preached ward?
The loudness--the perseverance of the cry betokens earnestness in thy
* We assume the speaker to be personal—essential Wisdom. Apart from the general
reasons before given (Notes on chap. i. 20, 21, 24), this description could not without un-
natural force apply to an attribute It set out, I. Personal existence—brought forth—brought
up—in conjunction with Deity—by Him (verses 24, 30.) II. Personal properties (1.) set up
(anointed, Heb.) from, everlasting, for distinct office. (verse 23), (2.) The efficient cause in the
work of creation (verses 27-30), (3.) Having wisdom (verse 14) which, as an attribute itself,
could not be the property of an attribute ; and strength (verse 14) an independent quality,
not a property of wisdom, (4.) Personal authority (verses 15, 16), (5.) Leading into the
ways of truth (verses 19, 20), (6.) Causing to inherit. (Verse 21.) III. Personal affections—
hatred (verse 13), love (verse 17), joy. (Verses 30, 31.) IV. Giving personal promises.
(Verse 21.) V. Commanding obedience as a matter of life and death. (Verses 32-36.) Whe-
ther Solomon fully understood his own words, may be a question. 1 Pet. i. 10, 11. But
receiving the words as from God; weighing their natural force; comparing them with
Scripture parallels, we doubt not that they describe—not an attribute, but a Person—
Eternal—Omniscient—in the most endearing relation to man--his Creator—Mediator—
Saviour.
† Chap. vii. ‘Imagination cannot form to itself a more exquisite and affecting piece of
scenery, than that exhibited by Solomon in the Book of Proverbs. In his seventh chapter
he introduces the world, by its meretricious blandishments alluring the unwary to the
chambers of destruction. In the succeeding chapter, by way of perfect contrast, appears
in the beauty and majesty of holiness, the Son of the Father, the true and eternal Wisdom
of God, with all the tender love and affectionate concern of a parent, inviting men to the
substantial joys and enduring pleasures of immortality, in the house of salvation.’—Bishop
HORNE's Sermon on the Tree of Knowledge.
CHAP. VIII. 5—11. 73
friend, and danger in thy condition. For would she have cried so loud,
or continued so long, if she had not loved thy soul; if she had not
known the wrath that was hanging over thee—the hell that was before
thee?
The call is unfettered; not to devils, but to men: not to the right-
eous, but to the sons of men. Every child, therefore, of guilty Adam has
his name in the warrant. It is the proclamation of the Gospel "to
every creature." (Mark, xvi. 15.) Wherever the word reaches, the offer
is made. Wherever a lost sinner be found on this side of the grave,
the free welcome of the Gospel meets him. If he be not saved, he is
more lost than ever. His ruin lies at his own door. (Matt. xxiii. 37.)
5. O ye simple, understand wisdom: and, ye fools, be ye of an understand-
ing heart. 6. Hear; for I will speak of excellent things; and the
opening of my lips shall be right things. 7. For my mouth shall speak
truth; and wickedness is an abomination to my lips. 8. All the words
of my mouth are in righteousness; there is nothing froward or perverse
in them. 9. They are all plain to him that understandeth, and right to
them that find knowledge. 10. Receive my instruction, and not* silver;
and knowledge rather than choice gold. 11. For wisdom is better than
rubies: and all the things that may be desired are not to be compared
to it.
The great Teacher calls the simple and fools to hear. (Chap. i. 23;
ix. 4, 5.) And where else can they hear such excellent things. Worthy
are they of the attention of princes† —his glorious person; his ever-
lasting covenant; his rich and sovereign love to sinners. (Verses 12–31.)
Often does the truth of God, by the tradition of men,‡ or the subtilty of
the father of lies (Comp. Matt. iv. 6, 7, with Ps. xci. 11), become virtually
a principle of error. (Gal. i..7–9.) But here all is unchangeable right-
eousness. There is no froward perversion. Every such wickedness is an
abomination. (Chap. xxx. 5. Ps. xix. 9; xxxiii. 4; cxix. 152, 160.)
But are they within the reach of the multitude? They who "lean
to their own understanding" (Chap. iii. 5. 1 Cor. i. 20; iii. 18); who care
more to be learned than to be holy; who value the tree of knowledge
more than the tree of life; who desire "meat for their lust," rather
than manna for their souls. Such, indeed, make difficulties for them-
selves. The "voice out of the whirlwind" rebukes them, as "darken-
ing counsel by words without knowledge." (Job, xxxviii. 1, 2.) Scrip-
ture difficulties belong not to the Book itself, but to man's blind and
* Rather than silver. See next clause, and Comp. Hos. vi, 6.
† Heb. princely.
‡ It was a keen reply of one of the Martyrs, when asking of Bonner's chaplain—‘Is not
God's book sufficient for my salvation?’—the answer was—'Yes, it is sufficient for our
salvation; but not for our instruction.' ‘God send me the salvation, and you the instruc-
tion.’—Exam. of Thomas Hawkes. FOXE, vii. 100.
74 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
corrupt heart. The carnal man cannot understand it, any more than
the blind can see the noon-day light of the sun. But ‘it is easy to all
that have a desire to it, and which are not blinded by the prince of this
world.’* The "babes" are taught of God. (Matt. xi. 25; xviii. 4.)
He not only unfolds the truth, but opens their hearts to receive it.
There will be, indeed, great depths. But they will grasp important,
saving truths. Here ‘the wisest Solomon may fetch jewels for orna-
ment, and the poorest Lazarus bread for life.’† Come then—sinner—
"sit," with one of old, "at the feet" of thy Divine Teacher. (Luke,
x. 39.) Receive his instruction more precious than silver or fine gold.
(Verse 19 ; xvi. 16. Job, xxviii. 15–19. Ps. xix. 10; cxix. 127.) Enrich
thyself with his satisfying and enduring treasures, compared with which
all the things that may be desired are lighter than vanity. (Chap. iii. 15.)
And will not the children of God daily draw more abundantly from
these treasures? Oh! let them not be, like the pomp of this world,
the object of gaze, but of active desire and increasing enjoyment.
12. I wisdom dwell with prudence, and find out knowledge of witty in-
ventions.
How adorable is the Being here before us! His glorious perfec-
tions, each dwelling with the other in such harmonious combination!
All the witty inventions of science are ultimately traceable to this hea-
venly source. (Exod. xxxi. 3–6; xxxv. 30-35. 1 Chron. xxviii. 19. Isa.
xxviii. 24–29.) But his great mind was soaring far beyond. The vast
discovery of man's salvation was now before his eyes (Verses 22–31)
found out, not by laborious investigation, but by the intuition of the
Infinite Godhead. Here is his most splendid display of wisdom (Eph.
iii. 10) dwelling with prudence—wisdom contriving for the highest end
prudence directing the most effective means. The same perfect com-
bination controls all his arrangements, both as "the Head of the
Church" (Col. i. 18), and "the Head over all things to his Church "
(Eph. i. 22), for her present good, and his eternal glory. ‘And what’
owe we individually, to "the riches of his grace, wherein," by the
removal of insuperable difficulties, and the communication of suitable
grace," he hath abounded towards us in all wisdom and prudence!"
(Ib. i. 7, 8.)
Prudence is commonly thought to be only a moral quality. Here
we see it to be an attribute of Deity. The humanity of our beloved
Lord was filled with this perfection. (Isa. xi. 2.) With what Divine
acuteness of wisdom did he find out the knowledge of the inventions of his
* Reformers' Notes. Comp. chap. xiv. 6; xvii. 24. ‘What wonder, if the unlettered
and despised Christian know more of the mysteries of Heaven than the naturalists, though
both wise and learned? Christ admits the believer into his bosom, and He is in the bosom
of the Father.'—LEIQHTON'S Sermon on Heavenly Wisdom.
† Bishop REYNOLDs on Hos. xiv. 9.
CHAP. VIII. 13, 14. 75
enemies, and put them to shame! (Matt. ix. 4-8; xxii. 15-46.) And
how did this combination of prudence restrain him from hasty confidence
(John, ii. 23, 24), remove him from premature danger (Matt. xii. 14-16.
John, vi. 15), and preserve him from giving needless offence! (Matt.
xvii. 27.) Praised be our God for such "treasures of wisdom," hid in
our glorious Head," ready for distribution for every emergency of his
people's need! (Col. i. 19; ii. 3.)
13. The fear of the Lord is to hate evil: pride, and arrogancy, and the evil
way, and the froward mouth, do I hate.
Such is the holiness of Divine wisdom! She dwells with prudence.
But she cannot dwell with evil. Therefore, the fear of the Lord, which
is her very nature, is to hate evil. (Chap. iii. 7; xvi. 6.) Thus of pride
in all its branches —arrogancy of spirit, the evil way and the froward
mouth—the Wisdom of God declares without reserve—I hate them.
(Chap. vi. 16-19; xvi. 5. Ps. xlv. 7. Zech. viii. 17.) How clearly did
he mark his hatred in the days of his flesh by the full exhibition of the
opposite grace! "The Son of man came not to be ministered unto,
but to minister." (Matt. xx. 28. Luke, xxii. 27.) A proud disciple of a
lowly Saviour! how offensive is this contradiction to our Master! What
a cause of stumbling to the world!
14. Counsel is mine, and sound wisdom; I am understanding; I have
strength.
This counsel, as we have just hinted (See on verse 12), is not, as
with man, the fruit of deliberation, but Divine intuition. It is not that
it flows from him; but that he is himself the essence—the fountain-
head. (Isa. xl. 13, 14. Rom. xi. 34.) It is not that he hath understanding
to order and govern the world. But he is understanding. All is in
him. All is derivable from him. (John i. 9.) "His understanding is
infinite; his strength Almighty, everlasting." (Ps. cxlvii. 5. Isa. xl. 28
xxvi. 4.) Thus we adore him—we rest in him — as the great "Coun-
sellor" (Isa. ix. 6); One with his Father in the everlasting plan of
salvation (Zech. vi. 12, 13); One with his Church, undertaking her
cause (Ib. iii. 1), guiding her in all her difficulties and perplexities.
(Isa. lxiii. 9-14.) His self-existent power is ever ready to execute the
purpose of his counsel. (Ib. verses 1-6. Ps. lxxxix. 19. Job, ix. 4;
xii. 13, 16. Dan. ii. 20.) Behold him then, surrounded with the majesty
of his mighty perfections—"Christ, the power of God, and the wisdom
of God." (1 Cor. i. 24.) In all thy doubts and anxieties—counsel is
mine, and sound wisdom. (Isa. xlviii. 17.) In all thy conflicts and
weariness—I have strength. (Ib. xl. 28, 29.) See him as man filled
with these Divine perfections. (Ib. xi. 2.) Remember—his fulness
is thy portion. (1 Cor. i. 30. Col. ii. 10.)
76 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
15. By me kings reign, and princes decree justice. 16. By me princes rule,
and nobles, even all the judges of the earth.
Another glorious contemplation of this Divine Person! He pro-
claims himself to be the source of power and authority, no less than of
counsel and wisdom. "KING OF KINGS was" the mysterious name
written upon his vesture. (Rev, xix. 16; i. 5; xvii. 14.) Yet his crown
does not displace the regal diadem from the brow of earthly princes; nor
is the sceptre to fall from their hands. These ensigns of power are to be
held, but in subordination to his own. By me kings reign; not only by
my permission, but by my appointment. They bear my name. They are
stamped with my authority. (Exod. xxii. 28. Ps. lxxxii. 6. John, x. 35.)
Proud anarchy disputes the prerogative, and traces the authority to the
people; only that they may cast off the yoke of God, and "do that
which is right in their own eyes." (Judg. xvii. 6; xix. 1. Hos. viii. 4.
2 Pet. ii. 10. Jude, 8.) Scripture polities lay down the offensive truth
—"There is no power but of God; the powers that be are ordained of
God. They are ministers of God," not servants of the people. (Rom.
xiii. 1-6.) Government in all its administrations—kings, princes,
nobles, judges—is a Divinely-consecrated ordinance.* Every king-
dom is a province of the universal empire of the "King of kings."
Men may mix their own pride, folly, and self-will with this appoint-
ment. But God's providential counter-working preserves the sub-
stantial blessing. Yet, if "the power be exclusively of God," then is
Wisdom, by whom kings reign, the very essence and person of God. And
here is our rest, our anchor in this world's agitating storm. "The
government of the world is on the shoulders" of "the Head of the
Church." (Isa. ix. 6.) All things— all power in heaven and in earth
—is delivered unto him of his Father.† The Lord reigneth; let the
earth rejoice." (Ps. xcvii. 1.)
17. I love them that love me; and those that seek me early shall find me.
Now behold the grace of this Divine Person to his loving children.
None by nature are interested in it. (Rom. viii. 7.) But his free grace
first implants love in their hearts, and then cheers them with the assu-
rance of his own love. (1 John, iv. 19. John, xiv. 21.) The first kindling
of the flame is of him. We love, because we are drawn. (Jer. xxxi. 3.)
* Ps. lxxv. 7. Jer. xxvii. 5-7. Dan. ii. 37, 38; iv. 25; v. 18. Comp. John, xix. 11. It is
interesting to trace this acknowledgment even in the darkness of Heathenism. Kings in-
herited their sceptre from Jove; Magistracy was consecrated by Augurs, the Assessors and
Counsellors of Jove.
† Matt. xi. 27; xxviii. 18. Scott remarks the future tense in the original, as seeming
to agree with the prediction of righteous kings and rulers in the latter times of the Church.
Comp. Ps. lxxii. 1-3; Isa. xlix. 23; lx 16, 17. See the national blessing of godly rulers—
2 Chron. ix. 8. Isa. i. 26.
CHAP. VIII. 17. 77
We seek, not by the impulse from within, but by the grace from above
(Chap. xvi. 1. Ps. cxix. 32); and seeking, we find. (Isa. xlv. 19. Jer. xxix.
13. Matt. vii. 7, 8.) But it must be early seeking--the first desire and
choice of the heart. (Chap. xxiii. 26. Ps. lxiii. 1. Hos. v. 15. Matt. vi. 33.)
It must be early in the day (Ps. v. 3; cxix. 147 . Isa. xxvi. 9. Mark, i. 35),
the first-fruits of our time. Consecrate the whole to him. Take care that
God is the first person we speak to; that we see his face first before
any other; else will our lamp be untrimmed, our soul estranged from
his presence, our heart unready for his service. Let it be the early
breaking in of the day of grace (Job, viii. 5–7. Isa. Iv. 6. 2 Cor, vi. 2)—
the improvement of the first—who knows that they be not the only—
opportunities of salvation? (Chap. xxvii. 1. Heb. iv. 7.) Every present
opportunity for the soul is worth worlds. Mercy is in it—grace and
glory are in it—heaven and eternity are in it. But remember—the
door of grace, that is opened to-day, may he shut to-morrow—for ever.
Again—this early seeking. Oh! let it be the early spring and
morning of life (1 Kings, xviii. 12. 2 Chron. xxxiv. 3.) —when the eye
is full of life, and the heart of gladness. Let it be "the kindness of
youth" (Jer. ii. 2) "the first love:" before it has been devoted to the
world; before the hardening habits of sin have been formed and fixed.
Is he not the greatest—the most desirable—the most satisfying good?
Therefore, let him be to us—as he deserves to be—the first of the first
—the best of the best.
Children! Here is a special encouragement for you, added to the
general one. It can never be too early for you. Even now it is too
late. God has claimed you from the moment that you passed from
unconscious infancy to the dignity of a responsible being. The time
spent, so long estranged from God, has been all too long. Early de-
votedness saves from many follies and mistakes, retracing of steps, and
the after misery of being " made to possess the iniquities of our youth."
(Job, xiii. 26.). Early satisfaction—the pure fruit of early seeking—
(for they that thus seek shall find) will be the joy of your whole life
(Ps. xc. 14, with verses 34, 35)—the dawn of your blessed eternity.
Remember—the bud and bloom of life is specially acceptable to God
(Hos. xi. 1–4); specially honoured by him. (1 Sam. ii. 18; iii. 19. Ps.
xcii. 12–15.) But is it reasonable—nay—is it not a most abasing
thought—to offer the flower of youth to Satan; and, when you have
well worn yourself out in his service, to reserve only the dregs and
sweepings of life for your Saviour? (Mal. i. 8.) Every day you lose a
world of happiness; you bind a chain of sin; you take a step to hell.
Come, then, and answer the call that is drawing you to Him, who is
worthy of all. (1 Sam. iii. 9. Ps. xxxii. 8. Jer. iii. 4.) Never will you
regret that you have come too soon. But many have been the sor-
rowing cries—Lord, ‘I have loved thee too late!’ (Matt. xxv. 6–12.
78 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
Luke, xiii. 24, 25.) Come, then, by his help, and in dependence on his
grace make him your first, your present choice. Lay claim by faith to
this promise to early seekers, and you shall find.
18. Riches and honour are with me: yea, durable riches and righteousness.
19. My fruit is better than gold, yea, than fine gold; and my revenue
than choice silver. 20. I lead in the way of righteousness, in the midst
of the paths of judgment: 21. That I may cause those that love me to
inherit substance; and I will fill their treasures.
What a treasure do early seekers find! This fading world is too
poor a portion. (Ps. xvii. 14, 15.) Theirs are durable riches of eternity
(Matt. vi. 19, 20. Luke, x. 42. Rev. iii. 18); the honour of " reigning"
as kings "in life" (Rom. v. 17; viii. 17. Rev. i. 6); a righteousness, in
which they are accepted with God, and conformed to his image. (Rom.
iii. 22; xiii. 14. Eph. iv. 24.) Is not this fruit and revenue better than
choice silver? (Verses 10, 11; iii. 14, 15. Eccles. vii. 12.) And then,
when our way is shut up, how valuable is Wisdom's counsel! (Chap.
iii. 6; iv. 11, 12; vi. 22. Isa. xlviii. 17; xlix. 10) so carefully leading in
the midst of the paths; ‘at a distance from the extreme’* on either side
of the narrow way. The sober-minded Christian is equally remote from
formal service and enthusiastic delusion. His apprehensions of truth
are alike distinguished from the dryness of system, and from loose
unconnected principles. The intelligent and spiritually-minded Church-
man is alike separate from exclusiveness or idolatry on the one side,
and from indiscriminate Christianity on the other. He values highly
his Scriptural ordinances; yet he neither mistakes them for the sub-
stance of the gospel, nor does he substitute self-willed effervescence in
their room. This is the Via Media—Christian unity, consistency, and
fruitfulness. Here also is substance—things that have a being, in con-
trast with "things that have not" (Chap. xxiii. 5. Ps. xxxix. 6. 1 Cor.
vii. 31); solid realities (Isa. xxix. 8, contrasted with Isa. lv. 2); "faith
substantiating things hoped for." (Heb. xi. 1.) Sin pardoned: the
Father smiling acceptance; the Comforter witnessing our peace; a new
moulding of our mind and spirit. Here is no yawning vacuum, but a
grand object to give interest to life, to fill up every vacancy in the
heart—'perfect happiness.'† All that we could add from the world
would only make us poorer, by diminishing that enjoyment of God, for
the loss of which there is no compensation. There is one point—only
one— in the universe, where we can look up, and cry with the saintly
Martyn—'With thee there is no disappointment.'‡
Now contrast the portion in this life—of the men of this world.
Mark how the word of God pictures it—a fashion (1 Cor. vii. 31) — a
* Scott. Chap. iv. 23-27. See Bunyan's fine description of the middle path.
† Cartwright. ‡ Journals, vol. ii. 130.
CHAP. VIII. 22-31. 79
dream (Ps. lxxiii. 20)—a nonentity (Chap. xxiii. 5. Amos, vi. 13)—a
lie. (Jonah, ii. 8.) Thus men are spread over the world, "feeding upon
ashes, a deceived heart turning them aside." (Isa. xliv. 20.) The inlet
of their misery is, that they walk in a vain shadow, and "therefore they
are disquieted in vain." The child of God finds substance in "returning
to his "true" rest. Now, Lord, what wait I for? my hope is in thee."
(Ps. xxxix. 6, 7.)
But how does he come to his portion? Has he any part in de-
serving it? Far from it. Free grace, not free will, is the procuring
cause. It is an inheritance, now indeed "obtained," while "the earnest"
is in hand (Eph. i. 11); but to be fully enjoyed at the great consumma-
tion-day. Then, indeed, what here he promises will be fully make
good. His joyous welcome "to them on his right hand" will indeed
be causing them that love him to inherit substance (Heb. x. 34)—eternal,
unfading. (Matt. xxv. 34.) Even now from his royal bounty does he
fill their treasures. But what will be the burst of joy at that day—
what the unbounded delight throughout eternity, when, endowing them
with such a royal--yea—Divine bounty, the glorious Giver shall pro-
claim—I will fill their treasures! (1 Pet. i. 4, 5.) And the countless
throng of the redeemed shall unite in the testimony--One Christ hath
abundantly filled us all!
22. The Lord possessed me in the beginning of his way, before his works of
old. 23. I was set up from everlasting, from the beginning, or ever the
earth was. 24. When there were no depths, I was brought forth: when
there were no fountains abounding with water. 25. Before the moun-
tains were settled, before the hills was I brought forth: 26. While as
yet he had not made the earth, nor the fields, nor the highest part of the
dust of the world. 27. When he prepared the heavens, I was there;
when he set a compass upon the face of the depth: 28. When he esta-
blished the clouds above: when he strengthened the fountains of the
deep: 29. When he gave to the sea his decree, that the waters should
not pass his commandment: when he appointed the foundations of the
earth 30. Then I was by him, as one brought up with him: and I
was daily his delight, rejoicing always before him; 31. Rejoicing in the
habitable part of his earth: and my delights were with the sons of men.
It must be a perverted imagination that can suppose an attribute
here. So glorious are the rays of eternal supreme Deity, distinct per-
sonality, and essential unity, that the mysterious, ever-blessed Being—
"the Word, who was in the beginning with God, and was God" (John,
i. 1, 2) —now undoubtedly stands before us. Curiously to pry into the
mode of his subsistence, would be "intruding into those things which
we have not seen." (Col. ii. 18. 1 Tim. vi. 16.) To receive his own
revelation of himself is our reverential privilege.
80 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
How clear is his essential unity with the Father! The Lord pos-
sessed* me—present with him in the bosom of Deity. Every movement
of the Divine mind was infinitely known—every purpose of Divine
counsel eternally present—fully developed, I was by Him†—in the
same essence and blessedness. (John, x. 30.) Such was "the glory
which he had with the Father before the world was!" (lb. xvii. 5.)
Neither man nor angel could declare it. No created intelligence could
tread one footstep in the course, that realises any conception of the
mystery. The mode of his existence in the Godhead (and this is all
that is revealed of this inscrutable subject) is generation—I was brought
forth—"the only-begotten Son"‡—a term which it is much safer to
adore than to expound; expressing, as it does, what is unsearchable.
‘Take care’—saith an old expositor—‘that in this generation we
invent nothing temporal, carnal, or human. But rather let us worship
this generation, beholding it by faith; and let us take heed from
searching further than Scripture doth teach us thereof. Otherwise we
should deserve to be blinded and punished for our great curiosity.’§
Not less clear is his eternal existence—in the beginning|| of the way of
God—coeval with his eternal counsels—before his works of old ¶ set
up or anointed** from everlasting for his covenant offices (1 Pet. i. 20);
‘destined and advanced to be the Wisdom and Power of the Father, Light and
Life, and All in All, both in the creation and the redemption of the world.’††
Connected with his eternity was his agency in the work of Creation.
Before the works was he brought forth. But when they were in operation
he was there—and that, not, like "the sons of God," an interested
* LXX. and Syriac Translation—‘created’—most unwarrantable—one of the main
pillars of the Arian heresy.
† John, i. 2. Geier remarks, that out of above sixty instances, where this preposition
occurs, not one can be produced, where vicinity is not supposed between two distinct per-
sons or substances.
‡ John, i. 18 ; iii. 16. Col. i. 15— ‘begotten before every creature.'—Bishop MIDDLETON.
§ CopE (MICHAEL), Exposition of Proverbs. 4to. 1580.
|| Holden strongly advocates the Translation—supported by many Ancient Versions,
and some of the best critics (see POOLE's Synopsis)—‘the beginning of the way’—and
expounds it—‘That Jehovah possessed by an eternal generation Wisdom or the Son, who
is the origin, or efficient cause, of all the works of God.’—Comp. Col. i. 18. Rev. iii. 14, also
i. 8; xxii. 13. Geier and other accredited authorities prefer the received version upon
critical grounds. Holden's remark, however, holds good on either hypothesis:—‘It is
scarcely possible in the whole compass of the Hebrew language to select terms more
expressive of the eternity of Wisdom than those which Solomon employs from this verse
to the thirtieth.’
¶ Contrast Job, xxxviii. 4, 5. Comp. verses 23-25, with Ps. xc. 2—the sublime adora-
tion of the eternity of God. Comp. also Exod. iii. 14, with John, viii. 58. Mic. v. 2.
Rev. i. 11.
** Heb. Anointing was the inaugurating ceremony in the consecration of prophets,
priests, and kings—a figure of the eternal consecration of Messiah to those high offices.
Comp. 1 Kings, xix. 16, with Isa. xli. 1; lxii. 1. Exod. xxix. 7, with Ps. cx. 4. 1 Sam. x. 1;
xvi. 13. 2 Kings, ix. 6, with Ps. ii. 6, marg. x1v. 6, 7.
†† HENRY in loco. Comp. Eph. iii. 9.
CHAP. VIII. 22-31. 81
spectator (Job, xxxviii. 6, 7), but an efficient cause.* The whole detail
of the creative work is brought out—the highest part or summits of the
dust of the world, with its deep and unsearchable foundations. Thus is
uncreated Wisdom displayed in clear and undoubted glory—'the
Divinity and eternity of Wisdom, meaning thereby the eternal Son of
God, Jesus Christ our Saviour.'†
Next he describes his unspeakable blessedness in communion with his
Father. I was by him, as one brought up with him— embosomed in him
as the object of daily delight;‡ rejoicing before him as the Fountain
and Centre of infinite joy. All this mutual intimate satisfaction and
delight had respect to the beginning of the way of God.—his eternal pur-
pose, and "the counsel of peace, which was between them both."
(Zech. vi. 13.) Here it was that the Father once and again proclaimed
him to be his delight; "His elect, in whom his soul delighted; his
beloved Son, in whom he was well pleased" (Isa. xlii. 1. Matt. iii. 17
xvii. 5. Comp. Col. i. 13, Gr.); ‘willing that by the Son we should ap-
proach to him; in the Son we should honour and adore him; and honour
the Son as himself.'§
Yet how deeply interesting is it to see him rejoicing, not only before his
Father, but in the habitable part of the earth! And what was it that
here attracted his interest? Man had been created in the image of
God—free to stand or fall. This freedom was the perfection of his
nature. His fall was permitted as the mysterious means of his higher
elevation. His ruin was overruled for his greater security. This
habitable earth was to be the grand theatre of the work, that should fill
the whole creation with wonder and joy. (Ps. xcviii. Isa. xliq. 23.) Here
"the Serpent's head was to be visibly bruised" (Gen. iii. 15. Heb. ii.
14, 15. 1 John, iii. 8), the kingdom of Satan to be destroyed, precious
"spoil to be divided with the strong." (Isa. liii. 12. Luke, xi. 21, 22.)
Here was the Church to be framed, as the manifestation of his glory,
the mirror of all his Divine Perfections. (Eph. iii. 10, 21.)
Considering the infinite cost at which he was to accomplish this
work—the wonder is — that he should have endured it —a greater
wonder that, ere one atom of the creation was formed— ere the first
blossom had been put forth in Paradise, he should have rejoiced in it.
But the wonder of wonders yet remains—that he, who was his
* John, i. 3. Col. i. 16. Even in the creation of man he was a co-worker, Geri. ii. 7,
with i. 26.
† Reformers' Notes.
‡ Comp. John, i. 18—the only-begotten Son, who is in the bosom of the Father—‘exhibiting
at once,’ as Dr. Jamieson admirably observes—'the idea conveyed by both the terms—
brought forth, and brought up.'—Vindication of Doctrine of Deity of Christ, i. 224. Holden
with some others prefers the rendering ‘Fabricator’ for brought up, But the scope appears
to be—not the power of Messiah, but the mutual delight and communion between himself
and his Father, as it were, never absent from each other.
§ Quoted by Scott.
82 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
Father's infinite delight, and infinitely delighting in him, should find
his delights from all eternity in the sons of men; that he should, as it
were, long to be with us; that he should solace his heart with the
prospect; that he should anticipate the moment with joyous readiness
(Ps. xl. 6—8. Heb. x. 7); that he should pass by the far nobler nature of
angels "to take hold of man" (Heb. ii. 16, marg.), to embrace man as
one with his All-perfect self! But though he foresaw how they would
despise, reject, and put him to shame; yet they were the objects of his
everlasting love (Jer. xxxi. 3.), the purchase and satisfaction of the
"travail of his soul" (Isa. liii. 10, 11), the eternal monuments to his
praise (Ib. lv. 13). Yet for their sakes did he make humanity a temple
of the Deity, for them did he exchange the throne of glory for the
accursed cross (Philip. ii. 6-8) — the worship of the Seraphim for the
scorn and buffeting of men (Isa. vi. 1, 2, with Matt. xxvii. 22-31).—
inexpressible joy for unknown sorrow. (John, xvii. 5, with Matt. xxvi.
38; xxvii. 46.) Yes — thou adorable Redeemer, nothing but the
strength of thine own love could have brought thee out from the
bosom of ineffable delight to suffer such things for such sinners! But
this was "the joy set before thee, for" which — unfathomable love! —
thou wast content "to endure the cross, despising the shame." (Heb. xii.
2.) For this love dost thou inherit thy Father's justly proportioned
reward. (Philip. ii. 8-11.) On this foundation is thy people's confidence
— rest — security.
32. Now therefore hearken unto me, 0 ye children: for blessed are they that
keep my ways. 33. Hear instruction and be wise, and refuse it not.
Now therefore hearken. It is no mean and undeserving person that
calls. It is none other than the Wisdom of God; the source of all light
and knowledge (Verses 12-14); the King of kings (Verses 15, 16);
the loving rewarder of his children, especially of his young children
(Verse 17. Comp. Heb. xi. 6); the rich portion and unfailing guide of
his people. (Verses 18, 19.) Look at him once again in his Divine
glory, as "the only-begotten Son of God " (Verses 22, 24); the Medi-
ator in the everlasting Councils of Redemption (Verse 23); the Al-
mighty Creator of the world (Verses 27-30); the adorable Friend of
sinners (Verse 31). How should his Divine Majesty and condescending
love endear his instruction to us!* Yet his promised blessing belongs
only to practical hearing—to those that keep his ways (Isa. lv. 2, 3.
Luke, xi. 28. John, xiv. 21-23. Jam. i. 25) with godly fear, con-
stancy, and perseverance; keeping their eye on them, their hearts
towards them, their feet in them. Such are truly blessed. They choose
rightly; they walk surely; they live happily; they progress honour-
* See how the Father manifested the glory of his Divine Son to give constraining force
to his instruction. Matt. xvii. 1-5.
CHAP. VIII. 34-36. 83
ably; they end gloriously. Is it not therefore our wisdom to hear in-
struction with "the obedience of faith"—not doing what he commands
— (in which we may sometimes do — not his will, but our own) but
doing because he commands — doing his will in it--obeying as well
when it crosses our nature, as when it is more congenial with it? But
for this cheerful, child-like obedience, sovereign grace must open the
heart, and give the ear. (Chap. xx. 12, with Acts, xvi. 14.) The guilt
of refusing is inexcusable — a resolved will against the most gracious
call. (Acts, iii. 22, 23. Heb. ii. 1-3.)
Now therefore hearken, 0 ye children. Oh! happy moment, when
the soul is made "willing in the day of his power" (Ps. xc. 3); when
"the bands of love are drawing" (Hos. xi. 4) unto him! The cold,
dead indifference is gone. The enmity is slain. And who will not now
joyfully swear fealty; yea, count it his unspeakable delight to take
such a yoke; to be bound to such a service, where there is nothing but
for our good? (Dent. x. 12, 13.) Oh, my Prince—my Saviour! thou
hast based thy dominion on thy blood. Thou hast purchased thy right
by thy cross. (1 Cor. vi. 19, 20. Rom. xiv. 9.) Thou rulest, only that
thou mightest save. Take to thyself the glory of thy victory. I am
thine — not my own — for ever.
34. Blessed is the man that heareth me, watching daily at my gates, waiting
at the posts of my doors. 35. For whoso findeth me, findeth life, and
shall obtain favour of the Lord. 36. But he that sinneth against me
wrongeth his own soul: all they that hate me love death.
This is the hearing of faith—the voice of Christ to the inmost ear—
the impression of his word upon the heart. (John, v. 25. Rev. iii. 20.)
The effect is unwearied diligence and patient expectation; like the priest
waiting at the doors of the tabernacle for the assured blessing (Exod. xxix.
42); or the people watching at, the temple gates for his return from his
holy ministrations. (Luke, i. 10, 21.) This free and habitual attend-
ance upon Sacred Ordinances indicates an healthy appetite for Divine
nutriment. The superficial professor excuses himself from this "weari-
ness" (Mal. i. 13) by the fear of legality, or the danger of overvaluing
the means. But is there not at least equal danger of undervaluing the
means, to which our gracious Lord has engaged his blessing? (Exod.
xx. 24. Isa. lvi. 7. Matt. xviii. 20.) In gazing on the heavenly Jeru-
salem, the Apostle "saw no temple therein." (Rev. xxi. 22.) But what
right-hearted Christian will doubt that the life-blood of his soul while
on earth consists in watching, like the servants of the temple, daily at
her gates (Ps. lxxxiv. 1, 4, 10), when not involving the neglect of imperative
obligations. Wisdom's child will ever be familiar with Wisdom's gates.
The Weekly as well as the Sabbath assemblies will be his delight.
Most thankful will he be for the service, which invigorates him in the
84 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
midst of the toils of his worldly calling. "The way by the footsteps of
the flock, beside the Shepherds' tents," will be his constant resort. (Cant.
i. 7, 8.) And never would he wound the feelings of his Shepherd by
wilfully absenting himself from the well, when he comes to water his
flock. All the ordinances of prayer, meditation, Scripture reading, or
godly conference, will be his salutary provision. When it is not so;
when the common routine satisfies; when the intervals between the
Sabbath pass without any appetite for food, or any effort to seek the
bread of the sanctuary — Christian, is not thy pulse beating feebly ?
Hast thou not lost many a precious message from thy Lord (see John,
xx. 19, 24) —the fruit of thy Minister's special study, a word of distinct
application to thy state, and which might have guided and comforted
thee to the end of thy days? Oh, listen to thy Lord's rebuke —"Be
watchful and strengthen the things that remain that are ready to
die?*
Observe the blessing breathed down upon the Lord's waiting ones.
They find life. (Isa. lv. 3. John, v. 24.) For he on whom they wait is
the Author (John, i. 4 ; xi. 25 ; xiv. 6), the Dispenser (lb. x. 10), the
Keeper of life. (Col. iii. 3. 1 John, v. 11. Jude, 1.) "He therefore that
hath him, hath life" (1 John, v. 12), with all its present privileges of
favour of the Lord. (Isa. lxiv. 5.) ‘The smiles of God make heaven;
and they that obtain favour of the Lord, have a heaven upon earth.'†
Set then this expectation before thine eyes in waiting on thy God. ‘I
am seeking life for my soul; I will wait at the post of his doors, missing
no opportunity of a means of grace; I shall not wait in vain.'
Would that the sinner—the thoughtless sinner—not the daring
and ungodly only—pondered how his heartless neglect of wisdom
wronged his own soul! (Chap i. 17-19, 31; ix..12. Jer. viii. 19. Acts,
xiii. 46. Num. xvi. 38.) How cruel he is to himself, while he is despis-
ing his Saviour. Every bait of sin is the temptation to suicide—soul-
murder. The snatching at it is as if men were in love with damnation.
‘They that hate me love death. They love that which will be their death,
and put that from them which would be their life. Sinners die, because
they will die; which leaves them inexcusable, makes their condemna-
tion more intolerable, and will for ever justify God when he judges.
"0 Israel, thou hast destroyed thyself.'"‡
* Rev. iii. 2. ‘The places where the Gospel is faithfully preached, are "the gates, and
the posts of the doors of wisdom," at which Christ would have his disciples to "wait
daily." And may not Christians, consistently with other duties, redeem time for this
waiting, as well as the children of this world find time for their vain amusements, who yet
do not neglect their one thing needful? Is not the time spared from attending on a week-
day, often spent in unprofitable visits or vain discourse? Ought Ministers to be "instant
in season, and out of season," in preaching the word; and ought not the people to be glad
of an opportunity of hearing it?' — SCOTT.
† Lawson (George) Exposition of Proverbs. 2 vols. 12mo. 1821.
‡ Hos. xiii. 9 Henry in loco.
CHAP. IX. 1-6. 85
CHAPTER IX.
1. Wisdom* hath builded her house, she hath hewn out her seven pillars:
2. She bath killed her beasts;† she hath mingled her wine; she hath
also furnished her table. 3. She hath sent forth her maidens: she
crieth upon the highest places of the city. 4. Whoso is simple, let him
turn in hither: as for him that wanteth understanding, she saith to him,
5. Come, eat of my bread, and drink of the wine which I have mingled.
6. Forsake the foolish, and live; and go in the way of understanding.
WE have delighted to contemplate the Divine Saviour in his
glorious majesty, and specially in his wondrous love to the sons of men.
(Chap. viii. 22-31.) Here his love is poured out before us. The
parable of the marriage-feast clearly identifies the speaker. Then the
King made the feast, and sent his servants to invite the guests. (Matt.
xxii. 1-4, also Luke, xiv. 16, 17.) Here Wisdom is a Queen, according to
Eastern custom, attended by her maidens (Exod. ii. 5. Esth. iv. 4), and
she sends them forth to bid to the feast. She hath builded her house—
"the church of the living God"— firm upon the pillars of eternal truth.
(1 Tim. iii. 15. Eph. ii. 20-22. Heb. iii. 3, 4. Matt. xvi. 18.) The great
sacrifice supplies her feast. (1 Cor. v. 7. Ps. xxxvi. 8. Isa. xxv. 6.) She
hath killed her beasts, mingled her wine with the choicest spices,‡ and
plentifully furnished her table. And now she cries to the simple—igno-
rant of his danger (Chap. xxii. 3), and easily deceived (Chap. xiv. 15)
—to him that wanteth understanding (Hos. vii. 11)—who has no appre-
hension of his need, or desire for the blessing—Let him turn in hither.
Here is a feast, not to see, but to enjoy. Come, eat of the bread of life
drink of the wine of gospel grace and joy.§ Is there not besides a special
invitation for her children—a table richly furnished for their refresh-
ment; where they eat of the bread, and drink of the wine, such as "the
world know not of " (Matt. xxvi. 26-28.)
But are not all corners welcome to the Gospel feast? The Master's
heart flows along with every offer of his grace. His servants are
ministers of reconciliation. (2 Cor. v. 18-20.) Their message is to tell
of the bounty of Messiah's house, and to bid sinners welcome to Him.
Here, sinner, is thy warrant—not thy worthiness, but thy need, and
the invitation of thy Lord. All the blessings of his Gospel are set
before thee—love without beginning, end, or change. Honour the
freeness of his mercy. Let him have the full glory of his own grace,
* Wisdoms. Heb. Comp. note Chap i. 20. † Comp. Gen. xliii. 16. Marg.
‡ Bishop Lowth remarks the difference between the Classics and the Hebrews The one by
mingled wine understand wine diluted with water; the other intend wine made stronger by
spices, or other exhilarating ingredients. Note on Isa. i. 22. Comp. chap. xxiii. 29-31. Cant.
viii. 2.
§ Matt. xxii. 44. Isa. lv. 1. Comp. Bishop Hall's note.
86 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
who invites thee to a feast, when he might have frowned thee to hell.*
Let his heavenly hope be enthroned in the soul, displacing every sub-
ordinate object from its hold on thine affections, eclipsing the glories of
this present world, absorbing thy whole mind, consecrating thy whole
heart.
Here only are the ways of peace. The very severities of the Gospel
prepare the way for its consolations. But never can these blessings be
valued, till the path of the foolish be forsaken. Thou must forsake
either them or Christ. (Jam. iv. 4.) To abide with them, is to "remain
in the congregation of the dead." (Chap. xxi. 16.) To forsake them, is
the way of life and understanding. (Chap. xiii. 20. Ps. xxvi. 3-6; xxxiv.
12–14; cxix. 115. Amos, v. 15.) Are they more to you than salvation?
To "be the friend of the world is to be the enemy of God." "Come
out, and be separate, and touch not the unclean thing; and I will
receive thee, saith the Lord Almighty." (2 Cor. vi. 17, 18.)
7. He that reproveth a scorner getteth to himself shame: and he that rebuketh
a wicked man getteth himself a blot. 8. Reprove not a scorner, lest he
hate thee: rebuke a arise man, and he will love thee. 9. Give instruc-
tion to a wise man, and he will yet be wiser: teach a just man, and he
will increase in learning.
Wisdom's messengers must discriminate in the proclamation of their
message. If the simple welcome it, the scorner and wicked will rebel.
Yet we must distinguish between the ignorant and the wilful scorner.
Paul "did it ignorantly, in unbelief." (1 Tim. i. 13.) His countrymen
deliberately refused the blessing, and shut themselves out from the free
offers of salvation. (Acts, xiii. 45, 46, 50; xviii. 6. Matt. x. 14, 15.)
One cannot think of the scorner without compassion. He cannot
bear to commune with himself. Under an assumed gaiety, he would
envy—as did Colonel Gardiner—the dog his existence. ‘I hate life’
— said Voltaire—‘yet I am afraid to die.’ Such is the bitterness of
soul linked with rebellion against God! Wretched indeed must he be,
when the thought of God is an abomination, and when it is necessary
to his peace to expunge all idea of him from his creed. (Ps. xiv. 1.)
Yet, in dealing with him, Solomon here gives us the rule of Christian
prudence. The gospel is a thing too holy to be exposed to scoffing
fools. (Matt. vii. 6.) Why should we reprove, where more harm than
good may be occasioned? Avoid irritations. Await the favourable
opportunity. Sometimes a sad, serious, intelligible silence is the most
effective reproof. (Amos, v. 13; vi. 10.) Whereas open rebuke might
stir up a torrent of hatred (Chap. xv. 12; xxiii. 9. 1 Kings, xxii. 8.
* Calvin speaks of the pleading invitations of Christ, as ‘his sweet and more than
motherly allurements,' and beautifully adds—that ‘the word of God is never opened to us,
but that he with a motherly sweetness opens his own bosom to us.' On Matt. xxiii. 37.
CHAP. IX. 10, 11. 87
2 Chron. xxv. 16) and abuse (Gen. xix. 9. Amos, vii. 10. Matt. vii. 6);
and under provocation of spirit, the reprover might get to himself a blot.
(Isa. xxix. 21.)
Yet this prudence must not degenerate into cowardice, and compro-
mise the primary obligation boldly to rebuke sin (Eph. v. 11. 1 Thess.
v. 14. 1 Tim. v. 20. Matt. xiv. 3, 4), and confess our Master. (Matt. x.
32, 33. Acts, iv. 19, 20.) Every sinner is not a scorner. And a "word
spoken in due season, how good is it!" (Chap. xv. 23.) That false
delicacy, therefore, which recoils from an unflinching profession, is
treachery to our Lord, and deep—perhaps eternal—injury to our
fellow-sinners. Have not each of us a tongue to speak? To suffer any
therefore to rush into perdition without opening our mouths to save
them, is a sin of omission, which will cause a bitter pang to the
awakened conscience.
The wise and just man gladly encourages well-timed reproof.
(Chap. xxviii. 23.) Conscious of his own failings, he loves his reprover as
a friend to his best interest (Lev. xix. 17. Ps. cxli. 5. 1 Sam. xxv. 33.
2 Sam. xii. 7-14); and he would receive instruction from the lowest, as
a means of becoming yet wiser, and increasing in learning. (Chap. i. 5.
Exod. xviii. 17-24. Acts, xviii. 26.)
After all—wisely to give, and humbly to receive, reproof, requires
much prayer, self-denial, love, and sincerity. But where the mind of
Christ is mutually exhibited, it cements a bond of the warmest affection.
(1 Sam. xxv. 32-42.) "Faithful are the wounds of a friend." (Chap.
xxvii. 6.) Happy is that church which receives the loving admonitions
of the Christian pastor with humility and thankfulness.*
10. The fear of the Lord is the beginning of wisdom: and the knowledge of
the holy is understanding. 11. For by me thy days shall be multiplied,
and the years of thy life shall be increased.
The repetition of this weighty sentence (Chap. i. 7. Job, xxviii. 28.
Ps. cxi. 10) deepens our estimate of its importance. The fear of the
Lord was a lovely grace in the perfect humanity of Jesus. (Isa. xi. 2, 3.)
Let it be the test of our "predestination to be conformed to his image."
(Rom. viii. 29.) It is the genuine spirit of adoption. The child of God
has only one dread—to offend his Father; only one desire—to please
and delight in him. Thus is the fear of the Lord connected with his
love. ‘The heart that is touched with the loadstone of Divine love,
trembles still with godly fear.’† If this temper is the beginning, it is
* 2 Cor. ii. 1-9. Mr. Martyr — his Biographer observes— ‘felt reproof to be ‘a duty of
unlimited extent and almost insuperable difficulty.’ But, said he, ‘the way to know when
to address men, and when to abstain, is to love.’ And, as love is most genuine, where the
heart is most abased, he resolved not to reprove others, when he could conscientiously be
silent, except he experienced at the same time a peculiar contrition of spirit.’—Life, chap. ii.
† Leighton on 1 Pet. ii. 17.
88 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
also (as the word imports) the head—of wisdom—not only its first
rudiment, but its matured exercise. It is obviously combined with the
knowledge of the Holy One.* For if men did but know his holiness--
who would not fear thee, 0 Lord?" (Rev. xv. 4.) Days multiplied
were the Old Testament reward. (Chap. iii. 2, 16; iv. 10; x. 27.) And
truly the value of life is only realized in the knowledge and service of
God. Inconceivably joyous to us is the prospect of years of life increased
into a boundless eternity—infinite desires; fully satisfied, yet excited
unceasingly to more full and heavenly enjoyment.
12. If thou be wise, thou shalt be wise for thyself: but if thou scornest, thou
alone shalt bear it.
The consequences of our conduct, good or bad, chiefly reflect on
ourselves. (Chap. xvi. 26.) God cannot be profited by us (Job, xxii.
2, 3. Ps. xvi. 2. Luke, xvii. 10); and he is infinitely above our injury.
(Job, xxxv. 6, 7.) The wise man's light is a blessing to the Church and
to the world. (Matt. v. 14, 16.) But he is wise for himself— for his own
advantage. (Chap. iii. 13-18; xxiv. 3. Eccles.. viii. 1.) The scorner is
a grief to his minister, and a stumbling to his church. But he hurts
no one so much as himself. He alone shall bear it. (Chap. viii. 36.
Ezek. xviii. 20. Luke, vii. 30.) A surety indeed there is. But his
scorning rejects him. He sinks therefore into perdition under a mill-
stone of guilt without remedy. (Chap. xxix. 1. Heb. x. 28, 29. Lev.
xxiv. 15.) This then is the ordinance of God. "Every man shall bear
his own burden. Whatsoever a man soweth, that shall he also reap:"
life or death—a double harvest—for time and for eternity. (Gal. vi. 5, 7, 8.)
13. A foolish woman is clamorous; she is simple, and knoweth nothing.
14. For she sitteth at the door of her house, on a seat in the high places
of the city. 15. To call passengers who go right on their ways:
16. Whoso is simple, let him turn in hither: and as for him that
wanteth understanding, she saith to him, 17. Stolen waters are sweet,
and bread eaten in secret (of secresies, marg.) is pleasant. 18. But he
knoweth not that the dead are there; and that her guests are in the
depths of hell.
Wisdom's free and gracious invitation has been before us. And we
* The parallelism with the former clause seems to demand this meaning. The applica-
tion of the plural number to the sacred name is elsewhere used by Solomon (verse i. 1-20.
Eccles. xii. 1) as well as by others of the inspired Writers. Gen. i. 26. Job, xxxv. 10. Isa.
liv. 5. Compare the Heb. of Hos. xii. 1. Josh. xxiv. 19. Bishop Horsley remarks— God
is the only Being, to whom the same name in the singular and in the plural may be indis-
criminately applied. And this change from the one number to the other, without any
thing in the principles of language to account for it, is frequent in speaking of God in the
Hebrew tongue, but unexampled in the case of any other Being.' Sermon xxix. on the
Watchers. The reason of this peculiar usage—we may add—is obvious to any one, who
receives with implicit and reverential faith the Scriptural revelation of the Divine Essence.
CHAP. IX. 13-18. 89
might almost ask—who could resist it? Now we have an allurement
from the opposite quarter. For sin is no less earnest to destroy, than
wisdom is to save. The distinct character of folly here alluded to,
may be gathered from the pictures formerly given. (Chap. ii. v. vii.)
Fleshly lusts are in open opposition to Divine wisdom. ‘The delight
of the soul fixed on anything but God and his grace, is but spiritual
adultery.'* The woman of foolishness is clamorous (Chap. vii. 11), and,
though "subtil in heart" (Ib. verse 10) in the devices of Satan, she is
simplicity itself in her utter ignorance of right. So fearfully do sensual
pleasures darken the understanding, that the tempter, from the very
habit of deceiving, becomes the victim of her own delusion! (Hos.
iv. 11. 2 Tim. iii. 13.) With a shameless front she dares to present
herself in the highest places of the city (Gen. xxxviii. 14, 21. Jer. iii. 2, 3.
Ezek. xvi. 24, 25, 31), alluring, not only those who are "going the way
to her house " (Chap, vii. 8), but the inexperienced who are going right
on their ways. Thus, even the highway of God, though a path of safety
(Chap. x. 9), is beset with temptation. Satan is so angry with none as
with those, who are going right on. When Israel was in the straight
path, quickly did he turn them aside by the golden calf. (Exod. xxiv. 7,
with xxxii.) And now enticements or assaults wait on every step.
The temptation to open sin would be revolting. But must you give up
all your pleasures? May not some stolen waters (Chap. v. 15-17. 2 Sam.,
xi. 2), some secret indulgences (Chap. xx. 17. Job, xx. 12-14), be
allowed? Ah! sinner—there is no such thing as secret sin. All is
naked and open as day before the eye of God. (Job, xxiv. 15; xxxiv.
21, 22.) All will soon be proclaimed before the assembled world.
(Luke, xii, 1, 2.) But the strength of this temptation is, that they are
forbidden pleasures. (Gen. iii. 1-6.) Restraint provokes the dormant
power of sin;† as children will do that which is forbidden, because it is
forbidden. But what will be the end? Satan shows only the sparkling
cup, and the glaring light. Ask to look into the inner chamber. The
blinded fool hath wilfully closed his eyes (Chap. vii. 22. Isa. i. 3. 2 Pet.
iii. 5); else might he know that the dead are there; and that her guests
—the wilful despisers of wisdom, are in the very depths of hell. (Chap.
ii. 18; vii. 27.)
Reader— the wisdom of God, and the great deceiver of man—stand
* Diodati.
† Rom. vii. 8. 1 Cor. xv. 56. See Augustine's description of his robbing the pear-tree —
not for the gain of the fruit (the greater part of which he threw away), but for the mere
pleasure of sin as sin—as breaking God's law. Truly affecting also is it to see him, like the
Psalmist (Ps. li. 5) tracing the sin to its root—'Behold my heart, 0 Lord, behold my heart,
which thou hadst pity upon in the very bottom of the bottomless pit!'—Confess. iii. 4, 6.
‘Nitimur in vetitum semper, cupimusque negata :
Sic interdictis imminet aeger aquis.
Quidquid servatur, cupinius magis, ipsaque furem
Cura vocat pauci, quod sinet alter, amaut.'—OVID.
90 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
before you. Both are wooing thine heart; the one for life--the other
for death. Both are intensely anxious for success. Wisdom crieth.
The foolish woman is clamorous. (Verse 3 with 13.) Both take their
station in the high places of the city. (Verse 3 with 15.) Both spread
out their feast for the simple and ignorant (Verse 4 with 16), smiling
and happy on the brink of ruin. But how opposite their end? The
one makes the simple wise unto eternal life. The other bears away her
willing captive into unutterable misery. Which voice arrests thine
ear, and allures thine heart? Which feast excites thine appetite?
Whose guest art thou? Wilt thou not open thine eyes to the infatua-
tion and pollution of this house of horror and death? Oh! remember
that every listening to the enticement rivets thy chain, rejoices thy
grand enemy, cheats thee out of thy present, no less than of thine
eternal, happiness, and will banish thee for ever from the paradise re-
opened as thy home. Thou mayest sink into the grave and perish.
But it will be with the Saviour's voice crying in thine ears, "How long,
ye simple ones, will ye love simplicity?" (Chap. i. 22.) The voice of
mercy now warns thee against estranging thyself from thy God. But
mercy is limited to time. Then justice, without mercy, will hold the
scales with relentless severity, and the sentence of condemnation will
bind thee in the lost and blasted kingdom of eternal death. What
then is our heart's desire and prayer, but the free grace and love of the
Gospel may draw and fix thine heart; and that the Lord may preserve
thee from the tempter's snare, by keeping thee closely walking with
himself.
CHAPTER X.
1. The proverbs of Solomon. A wise son maketh a glad father: but a
foolish son is the heaviness of his mother.
THE former chapters have beautifully set forth in continuous discourse
the nature and value of heavenly wisdom, contrasted with the fascina-
tions of sinful folly. We now come to what are more properly (not
excluding the foregoing) (Chap. i. 2) the Proverbs of Solomon. They
are for the most part unconnected sentences, remarkable for profound
thought, and acute observation, expressed in an antithetical or illustra-
tive form; the whole comprising a Divine system of morals of universal
application; a treasury of wisdom in all its diversified details, personal,
domestic, social, civil. The previous chapters form a striking introduc-
tion to the book. The glorious description of the Great Counsellor (Chap.
i. viii.) commends to us his gracious instruction as the principles of
true happiness and practical godliness.
Perhaps this first sentence may have been placed in the front, to
CHAP. X. 2. 91
point to the value of a godly education in its personal, social, national
influence, connected both with time and eternity. We naturally look
for rest in our children, as the choicest gift of God. (Gen. v. 28, 29;
xxxiii. 5. Ps. cxxvii. 3.) Faith, indeed, may he tried, perhaps severely
tried. (Eccles. xi. 1.) But the child, watched, prayed over, instructed,
and disciplined, shall, in the Lord's best time, choose wisdom's paths
(Chap. xxii. 6), and be the gladness of his father's heart. (Chap. xv. 20;
xxiii. 15, 16, 24, 25; xxvii. 11; xxix. 3. Gen. xlv. 28; xlvi. 30.)
Many a mother, alas! is chastened with the heaviness of a foolish son.
(Gen. xxvi. 34, 35; xxvii. 46.) In such cases, has not indulgence, in-
stead of wholesome restraint; pleasure, instead of godliness; the world,
instead of the Bible—educated the child? Want of early discipline;
passing over trifles; yielding when we ought to command—how little
do we think to what they may grow! (1 Sam. ii. 24; iii. 13. 1 Kings,
i. 5, 6; ii. 25.) God has laid down plain rules, plain duties, and plain
consequences flowing from their observance (Chap. xxii. 6; xxiii.
13, 14) or neglect. (Chap. xxix. 15.) To forget a daily reference to
them; to choose our own wisdom before God's (1 Sam. ii. 29);— can
we wonder that the result should be heaviness?*
2. Treasures of wickedness profit nothing: but righteousness delivereth from
death.
The most substantial earthly treasures profit nothing. (Chap. xxiii. 5.
Matt. vi. 19.) Much inore do treasures of wickedness. (Jer. xxii. 13.
Ezra, vii. 19. Amos, iii. 10, 11. Hab. ii. 6-9.) ‘A man may seem to
profit by them, and to come up wonderfully for a time.’† But what
was the profit of Naboth's vineyard to Ahab, when in his "ivory palace"
he was withering under the curse of God? (1 Kings, xxi. 4-24, with
xxii. 39.) What was the profit of the thirty pieces of silver to Judas?
Instead of delivering from death, their intolerable sting plunged him
into death eternal. (Matt. xxvii. 5.) What else will be the fruit of
covetousness, but shame (2 Kings, v. 23-27. Rom. vi. 21), disappoint-
ment (Jer. xvii. 11), and ruin? (Chap. xxi. 6, 7. Josh. vii. 20-26. Dan.
v. 1-6.) "Thou, O man of God, flee these things, and follow after
righteousness." (1 Tim. vi. 11.) This is "the breast-plate" (Eph. vi. 14.
1 Thess. v. 8), that covers the vitals in the fearful conflict. This is the
path-way to eternal life. (Chap. xii. 28. Ps. xv.; xxiv. 3-5. Isa. xxxv. 8.
* Bishop Lowth supposes an antithesis between the relative terms (Prelim. Dissert.
Isaiah), which Bishop Jebb illustrates by the distinctive character of the father's gladness,
whose affections are more disciplined, and the mother's grief, whose tenderness might bind
her to the faults of her children, or lead her weakly to excuse them. — Sacred Literature,
Sect. ii. But, probably, this refinement of criticism is beside the meaning of the inspired
Writer, who interchangeably ascribes these exercises of feeling to both parents. Chap. xvii.
24, 25; xix. 13; xxiii. 24, 25. Comp. Gen. xxvi. 35. 2 Sam. xiii. 37-39. Comp. Glass. Phil.
Sacr. Lib. iv. Tract ii. Obs. 13. Schultens in loco.
† Bishop SANDERSON's Sermon on 1 Sam. xii. 3.
92 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
Matt. v. 8.) This is the deliverance from the sting, the terror, the taste
of death. (Chap. xi. 4. John, viii. 51.) We must not flinch from this
scriptural statement from fear of legality. Lay the foundation of accept-
ance deep and clear upon the righteousness of Christ. But upon this
foundation fear not to raise the superstructure of inherent righteousness.
Take up the prayer and confidence of the man of God—"Let integrity
and uprightness preserve me; for I wait on thee.” (Ps. xxv. 21.)
3. The Lord will not suffer the soul of the righteous to famish; but he
casteth away the substance of the wicked.
To spiritualize the temporal promises would be to lose great en-
largement of faith. They are not restricted to the Old Dispensation.
If David was preserved from famishing, and that too by those most
unlikely to help him,* Paul could also in similar trial "set to his seal"
—"I have all, and abound, I am full." (Philip. iv. 18.) How does our
gracious God double and redouble his engagements!† He sends us to
the fowls of the air for the confirmation of our little faith. "Are not ye
much better than they?" (Matt. vi. 25, 26.) ‘Yet the promises require
faith, whereby we believe that God helpeth us.’‡ He may for the
exercise of faith suffer us to hunger (1 Cor. iv. 11. 2 Cor. xi. 27, with
Deut. viii. 3. Matt. iv. 2-4); yet not to famish. (Ps. xxxvii. 3. Isa.
xxxiii. 16. Matt. vi. 32.). And does not his unfailing care for temporal
provision convey the assurance, that he will not suffer the soul to famish?
"The good Shepherd knows his sheep." He "seeks them out in the
cloudy and dark day," and brings them into his fold, where "they go in
and out, and find pasture." (John, x. 9. Ezek. xxxiv. 12.) Awful
indeed is the contrast of the wicked—their substance cast out (Job, xx.
15); themselves buried in the ruins of their own family. (Ps. xlix. 6,
&c. Luke, xii. 19, 20; xvi. 23.)
4. He becometh poor that dealeth with a slack (deceitful, marg.) hand: but
the hand of the diligent maketh rich.
Every day's observation confirms the fact, that a slack hand im-
poverishes (Chap. xix. 15; xx. 4; xxiii. 21; xxiv. 30-34. Eccles. x. 18),
and the hand of the diligent enriches (Chap. xiii. 4; xxi. 5), the harvest's
lord. Justly is the slothful condemned as, deceitful; because he
pretends,to serve his Master, when in truth be has been doing nothing.
(Matt. xxv. 26. Jer. xlviii. 10. M.R.). He becometh poor by wasting his
trust. (Chap. xviii. 9. Comp. Matt. xxv. 28, 29.) His life, which might
have been a continued feast, is a continual vexation. Industry was the
law of Paradise (Gen. ii. 15); and though now it bears the stamp of
* By Shobi the brother of his bitter enemy. 2 Sam. xvii. 27, with x. 4. Machir also of
the house of Saul. Ib. ix. 4. Comp. Ps. xxxvii. 25.
† Heb. xiii. 5; five negatives in the original. ‡ Cope in loco.
CHAP. X. 5. 93
the fall (Ib. iii. 19), it is overruled as a blessing; and in the ordinary
course of Providence maketh rich. (Chap. xii. 24, 27 ; xxii. 29.) The
Lord's visits of favour were never given to loiterers. Moses and the
Shepherds of Bethlehem were' keeping their flocks. (Exod. iii. 1, 2.
Luke, ii. 8, 9.) Gideon was at the threshing-floor. (Judg. vi. 11.)
‘Our idle days’—as Bishop Hall observes—‘are Satan's busy days.’
Active employment gives us a ready answer to his present temptation
—"I am doing a great work, and I cannot come down." (Neh. vi. 3.)
Is then the man of God waxing low in his store? Has there not
been a slack hand in drawing upon the sacred treasury? Has not he
gazed upon the heavenly treasures, with "his hand in his bosom?"
(Chap. xix. 24.) Has he not become poor by slighting his rich con-
solations? The Lord gives his blessing, as he gives the fruits of the
earth, not to those that wish (Chap. xiii. 4; xx. 4), but to those that
"labour" (Verse 3 with 4. John, vi. 27); not to sentimental indolence,
but to Christian energy and perseverance. The trade of the world is
uncertain. The trade of godliness is sure. There are no bankrupts
here. The diligent servant is honoured with an increase of his grace
(Matt. xxv. 29), and the enlargement of his confidence.*
5. He that gathereth in summer is a wise son: but he that sleepeth in
harvest is a son that causeth shame.
Indolence has just been contrasted with diligence. Forethought is
here opposed to improvidence. (Chap. vi. 6-8.) The importance of
opportunity is practically admitted in temporal matters. (Eccles. iii. 1;
viii. 5.) Joseph wisely gathered in summer and harvest for the coming
need. (Gen. xli. 46-56.) The woman of Canaan (Matt. xv. 22-28) —
the blind men (lb. xx. 30) —improved their present opportunities.
The wise son will thus gather his blessing at the fittest time. The fresh-
ness of youth is a summer harvest. It is as much the will of God, that
the young should gather knowledge, as that the farmer should gather
his harvest. The wise gathering in this summer gives substance, vigour,
high tone and power of usefulness in after-life! How often may we
trace poverty of mind, enervation of character, unprofitable habits, to
sleeping in this fruitful harvest! ‘He who idles away the time of his
youth will bear the shame of it when he is old.’† Specially looking at
this, as the season of Christian instruction, anxious promise, our Father's
* 2 Pet. i. 5-11. Bp. SANDERSON'S Sermon on 1 Cor. vii. 24.
† Henry in loco. See Bp. HORNE's Sermon on the Redemption of Time. Sir Walter Scott's
testimony in his Auto-Biography is most instructive—’If it should ever fall to the lot of
youth to peruse these pages. let such a reader remember, that it is with the deepest regret
that I recollect in my manhood the opportunities of learning which I neglected in my
youth; that through every part of my literary career I have felt pinched and hampered by
my own ignorance: and that I would at this moment give half the reputation I have had
the good fortune to acquire, if, by doing so, I could rest the remaining part upon a sound
foundation of learning and science.'
94 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
pleading time with the wayward heart (Jer. iii. 4), ere yet it be
hardened in habits of sin—is not the sleeper in such an harvest a son
that causeth shame? Look again at the large harvest of opportunity in
labouring for God—the great and diversified machinery of religious
societies, needing direction and energy; the mass of fellow-sinners
around us, claiming our sympathy and helpfulness—"While we have
time, let us do good." (Gal. vi. 10.) How high is the privilege of
gathering with Christ in such an harvest! (Matt. xii. 30.) How great
the shame of doing nothing, where there is so much to be done! What
a harvest also is the present "accepted time!" (2 Cor. vi. 2.) Mark the
abundance of the means of grace, the living verdure of the gospel. The
Bible opens the way. The Saviour invites. The Holy Spirit strives
with the conscience. The Sabbath also is a golden gathering time for
the week. It draws us aside from the world, and beams with the peace,
joy, and hope of heaven. Now, am I diligently improving this harvest?
or am I sleeping—perhaps in the very house of God--instead of
listening to the voice from heaven—a shame to my minister, to my
church, to my Lord?
The Lord preserve me from the ruin of sleeping (Matt. xxv. 5. Comp.
Isa. lv. 6. Luke, xiii. 28, 29. Chap. i. 24-28) away the invaluable hours
of " the day of salvation!" Can I bear the thought of that desponding
cry of eternal remorse—"The harvest is passed; the summer is ended—
and I am not saved?" (Jer. viii. 20. Comp. chap. v. 11-13.)
6. Blessings are upon the head of the just: but violence covereth the mouth
of the wicked. 7. The memory of the just is blessed: but the name of
the wicked shall rot.
Is not affliction the lot of the just? (John, xvi. 33. Acts, xiv. 22:
2 Tim. iii. 12.) Yet how abundantly is it compensated by the blessings
that are upon his head (Chap. xxviii. 20. Gen. xlix. 26) —blessings tem-
poral (Deut. xxviii. 1-6. 1 Tim. iv. 8) and spiritual (Isa. xxxii. 17);
from man (Chap. xvi. 7. Job, xxix. 11-13) and from God. (Ps. iii. 8;
v. 12. Isa. lxiv. 4, 5. Matt. v. 3-12.) His very memory is a blessing to
his family and to the Church. (Ps. cxii. 6.) Fragrant is the "good
report of the elders" immortalized in the Apostolic Book of Martyrs.
(Heb. xi. 2.) Truly blessed is the memory of a godly parent (Chap. xxxi.
28); of a faithful minister (Heb. xiii. 7); of a righteous king (2 Chron.
xxxv. 24, 25); of a public benefactor (2 Chron. xxiv. 6); of a self-
denying Christian.*
No such honour belongs to the wicked. Often some outward stroke
* Mark, xiv. 9 ‘No spices can so embalm a man; no monument can so preserve his
name and memory, as a pious conversation, whereby God bath been honoured, and man
benefited. The fame of such a person is, in the best judgments, far more precious and
truly glorious, than is the fame of those, who have excelled in any other deeds or qualities.'
—BARROW'S Sermons.
CHAP. X. 8. 95
of violence covers their mouth (Ps. cvii. 42), and marks them for con-
demnation (Esth. vii. 8. Job, ix. 24), as they will all be so marked at
the day of retribution. (Rom. iii. 19.) And even now their memory rots
in corruption. (Job, xviii. 17. Ps. xlix. 11, 12; cix. 13. Eccles. viii. 10.
Isa. lxv. 15. Jer. xxii. 18, 19; xxix. 22, 23.) Contrast the memory of
the "man after God's heart," with that of "Jeroboam the son of Nebat"
(1 Kings, xi. 26; xiv. 14-16. 2 Kings, xiv. 3); or in later times, Ridley
and Latimer with the name of their wicked persecutors. Such is the
blessing and curse of God, long after the men had passed into eternity.
‘Thou mayest choose’— said godly Bishop Pilkington—'whether thou
wilt be remembered to thy praise or to thy shame.’*
8. The wise in heart will receive commandments; but a prating fool will
fall, (be beaten, marg.)
The heart is the seat of true wisdom, and a teachable spirit is the
best proof of its influence. For who that knows himself would not be
thankful for further light? No sooner, therefore, do the commandments
come down from heaven, than the well-instructed Christian receives
them, like his father Abraham (Heb. xi. 8. Gen. xxii. 1-3), with un-
disputing simplicity; welcomes the voice of his heavenly teacher
(1 Sam. iii. 10. Acts, x. 33. Ps. xxvii. 8; lxxxvi. 11; cxliii. 10); and,
when he knows that "it is the Lord, girds himself " with all the ardour
of the disciple to be found at his feet. (John, xxi. 7.)
But look at the professor of religion destitute of this heart-seated
wisdom. We find him a man of creeds and doctrines, not of prayer;
asking curious questions, rather than listening to plain truths (Ib. verses
21, 22); wanting to know events rather than duties; occupied with
other men's business, to the neglect of his own. (Luke, xiii. 23, 24.
1 Tim. v. 13.) In this vagrant spirit, with all his thoughts outward
bound, he wanders from church to church, and from house to house, a
prating fool upon religion; bold in his own conceit (3 John, 10), while
his life and temper fearfully contradict his fluent tongue. Too blind
to respect himself (Chap. xviii. 2), too proud to listen to counsel (Verse
17; xv. 32), he will surely fall into disgrace, beaten with the rod of his
own foolishness. (Chap. xviii. 6, 7. Eccles. x. 12. 2 Kings, xiv. 8-14.)
Let me look at this picture as a beacon against the folly of my own
heart. Young Christian! beware of a specious religion, without
humility, consistency, love; because separated from close walking
with God.
9. He that walketh uprightly walketh surely; but he that perverteth his
ways shall be known.
An upright walk is Christian, not sinless, perfection (Job, i. 8);
* Works, Parker Society, p. 36G.
96 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
"walking before God," not before men. (Gen. xvii. 1.) Impurity
indeed defiles the holiest exercise. But if the will be rightly bent, the
integrity will be maintained. ‘Show me an easier path’—is nature's
cry. ‘Show me’—cries the child of God—‘a sure path.’ Such is the
upright walk under the shield of the Lord's protection (Chap. ii. 7. Ps.
lxxxiv. 11) and Providence (Chap. i. 33. Eccles. viii. 5. Isa. xxxvii. 15,
16); under the shadow of his promises (Ps. xxiv. 3-6); in the assurance
of his present favour (1 John, iii. 18-22), and in its peaceful end. (Ps.
xxxvii. 37. Isa. lvii. 1, 2.) There will be difficulties. But a deliver-
ance will be wrought through them; as the Babylonish captives were
delivered through the fire from the infinite greater danger of apostacy.
(Dan. iii. 21-29.)
From the want of this uprightness of walk, Peter denied the founda-
tion of the Gospel. (Gal. ii. 14.) Learn then the value of this principle
for an enlightened and full reception of the truth; that we may wel-
come " a Prince as well as a Saviour" (Acts, v. 31); combine his
sceptre with his sacrifice, his holy precepts with his precious promises
and prove the influence of a vital faith in godly practice. We shall
thus carry out the rule of the Gospel into everything, making God the
master of every thought, word, temper, motive, not less in our secular
calling than in our spiritual devotedness. (1 Cor. x. 31. Col. iii. 17.)
Such an upright walk will bring a happy confidence. ‘The man, con-
scious to himself of an honest meaning, and a due course of prosecuting
it, feeleth no check or struggling of mind, no regret or sting of heart.
He therefore briskly moveth forward with courage, there being within
him nothing to make him halt, to distract or disturb him.'*
But to bend our rule to our own humour; to pervert our ways to
escape trouble, or for some interested end, will shake our confidence far
more than the heaviest cross. The eye of God knows the deviation
already (John, vi. 70, 71), and will bring it to shame. (Luke, xii. 1, 2.
1 Tim. v. 24.) Thus was Jacob chastened to the end of his days. (Gen.
xxvii. with xlii. 36-38.) Peter was openly rebuked. (Gal. ii. 11-44.)
Judas (Matt. xxvii. 3-5) and Ananias (Acts, v. 1-40) are known in
the records of the church as a beacon to the end of time. "Let my
heart be sound in thy statutes, that I be not ashamed. I will walk
in my integrity; redeem me, and be merciful unto me." (Ps. cxix. 80;
xxvi. 11.)
10. He that winketh with his eye causeth sorrow; but a prating fool
shall fall.
The contrast here intended seems to be between the man who
brings trouble on his fellow-creatures, and one who brings it upon
* Barrow.
CHAP. X. 11, 12. 97
himself.* Mischievous sport indeed is it to cause sorrow for selfish
gratification (Verse 23; xxvi. 18, 19); to make the eye an instrument
of wanton sin. (Chap. vi. 13. Ps. xxxv. 19.) Scarcely less affecting is
it to see the tongue a world of foolishness. But not a trace is visible of
the likeness, in which man was first created. Every member is per-
verted from its proper use and glorious end. Man is a plague to his
neighbour, because he is an enemy to his God. And because "the fool
despises wisdom" (Chap. i. 7), he falls the victim of his own folly.
11. The mouth of a righteous man is a well of life; but violence covereth
the mouth of the wicked.
The Indwelling Spirit—"a well of living water"—is the glorious
privilege of the righteous. (John, iv. 14; vii. 38.) Hence his mouth,
replenished from the heavenly source, is a well of life, sending forth
refreshing waters. (Chap. xvi. 23.) The precious talent of speech is
thus consecrated to His service, "who made man's mouth." "Grace in
its measure is poured upon our lips" (Ps. xlv. 2); and our "tongue"
becomes "our glory." (Ps. lvii. 8 ; cviii. 1.) Wit, originality, imagin-
ation may furnish ‘the feast of reason, and the flow of soul.’ But how
poor is this pleasure compared with the godly instruction—perhaps
with little intellectual attraction—that pours forth from a well of life!
Servant of God! honour your high privilege of thus ministering a
blessing to the Church. (Verse 21; xv. 7. Eph. iv. 29.) Enlarge its
exercise by increasing your spiritual store, and walking in closer fel-
lowship with your God. What owe you to His grace, who hath made
your mouth a well of life; while the violence of the wicked falls back upon
themselves, and covers their mouth with confusion?
12. Hatred stirreth up strifes: but love covereth all sins.
A simple but forcible contrast! Hatred, however varnished by
smooth pretence, is the selfish principle of man. (Tit. iii. 3.) Like a
subterraneous fire, it continually stirs up mischief, creates or keeps
alive rankling coldness, disgusts, dislikes, "envyings and evil sur-
misings;" carps at the infirmities of others; aggravates the least slip
(Isa. xxix. 21); or resents the most trifling, or even imaginary, pro-
vocation. These strifes are kindled (Chap. xv. 18; xvi. 27, 28; xxviii.
25; xxix. 22) to the great dishonour of God, and the marring of the
beauty and consistency of the gospel. Is not here abundant matter
for prayer, watchfulness, and resistance? Let us study 1 Cor. xiii. in
all its detail. Let it be the looking-glass for our hearts, and. the
standard of our profession. Love covers, overlooks, speedily forgives
and forgets. (Chap. xvii. 9. Gen. xlv. 5-8.) Full of candour and inven-
tiveness, it puts the best construction on doubtful matters, searches out
* See Bishop Hall.
98 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
any palliation, does not rigidly eye, or wantonly expose (Gen. ix. 23)
a brother's faults; nor will it uncover them at all, except so far as may
be needful for his ultimate good. To refrain from gross slander, while
abundant scope is left for needless and unkind detraction, is not covering
sin. Nor is the "seven-times forgiveness" the true standard of love
(Matt. xviii. 21), which, like its Divine Author, covers all sins. And
who does not need the full extent of this covering? What is our
brother's all against us, compared with our all against God? And
how can we hesitate to blot out a few pence, who look for the covering
of the debt of ten thousand talents? (Ib. verses 22-35.) Oh! let us
"put on the Lord Jesus" in, his spirit of forbearing, disinterested, sacri-
ficing love—"Even as Christ forgave you, so also do ye."*
13. In the lips of him that hath understanding wisdom is found; but a rod
is for the back of him that is void of understanding.
Solomon and his son admirably illustrate this contrast. Such
wisdom was found in his lips--the fruit of an understanding (1 Kings,
iii. 12) heart—that "all the world came to hear of it." (Ib. iv. 31;
x. 1.) And "happy were they" justly pronounced, which stood con-
tinually before him, and "heard his wisdom." (Ib. x. 8.) Rehoboam
was as void, as his father was full, of understanding. His folly prepared
a rod for his back.† Learn then to seek for wisdom at the lips of the
wise. (Verses 11, 21; xiii. 20; xv. 7.) The want of this wisdom, or
rather the want of a heart to seek it, will surely bring us under the rod.
In many a chastisement we shall feel its smart, for the loose education
of our children (Chap. xxix. 15); for the neglect of family discipline
(Ib. verse 21); for carnal indulgence. (2 Sam. xii. 9-11.) And how
different is this rod from our Father's loving chastisement! That—
the seal of our adoption (Chap. iii. 11, 12. Feb. xii. 6, 7)—This the
mark of disgrace. (1 Pet. ii. 20.) Will not the children of God cry—
"Turn away the reproach that I fear, for thy judgments are good."
(Ps. cxix. 39.)
14. Wise men lay up knowledge: but the mouth of the foolish is near
destruction.
Did not Solomon prove his title as a wise man by his diligence in
* Col. iii. 13. Comp. I Pet. iv. 8. The first clause of the verse, compared with the
Apostle's application of the second, clearly proves that the subject is the covering our bro-
ther's sin before men. Este—one of the most evangelical of the Romish interpreters—
thus limits the application. The gloss, therefore, of man's covering sins before God is
utterly groundless. Comp. chap. xvii. 9. Calvin and Geier conceive Jam. v. 20 to be only
an allusion to the Proverb. The latter adds—'It is one thing to cover sin before men;
another thing to cover it before God. The first is the act of love. (1 Cor. xiii. 4. Gal. vi. 2.)
The last requires an infinite price, equal to the turning away of the eternal wrath of God.'
Rom. iii. 25. 1 John, i. 7. Ps. xxxii. 1, &c.
† 1 Kings, xii. 13-24. Comp. chap. xix. 29; xxvi. 3. The rod was the usual corporal
punishment under the Mosaic law. Deut. xxii. 18; xxv. 2, 3.
CHAP. X. 15. 99
laying up knowledge? (Eccles. xii. 9, 10.) No wonder that wisdom is
found in the lips, where "out of the abundance of the good treasure of
the heart the mouth speaketh."* It is "the householder" storing his
mind not for selfish gratification, but for liberal and useful distribution.
(Matt. xiii. 52.) If the hoarding wisdom be cultivated in youth (Chap.
vi. 6; xviii. 1, 15), what a store of valuable treasure would be laid up!
yet all little enough to meet the coming trial. Let every day add
something to the stock. So inexhaustible is the treasure, that no doubt,
difficulty, temptation, or duty, will be found unprovided for!
Wise men lay up knowledge, for their own use—Fools lay it out.
For want of sound wisdom, they only open their mouths for their own
mischief, in profane rebellion (Exod. v. 2. Ps. xii. 3-5; lii. 1-5); gro-
velling selfishness (1 Sam. xxv. 10, 11, 38); ungodly worldliness (Luke,
xii. 18-20); or hateful pride (Acts, xii. 21-23)—near to destruction.
(Chap. xii. 13; xiii. 3; xviii. 7. Eccles. x. 12, 13.) How near--who
can say?—But if they be not " taken away with a stroke" without
remedy (Job, xxxvi. 18); they only stand out as monuments of the
"much long-suffering of God, enduring the vessels of wrath fitted to
destruction." (Rom. ix. 22.)
15. The rich man's wealth is his strong city; the destruction of the poor is
their poverty.
This is as it appears on the surface. The rich man's wealth fences
him from many invading evils (Eccles. vii. 12), obtains for him influ-
ence and respect (Chap. xix. 4, 6. Gen. xxiii. 6), and serves to him as a
talisman against all sorrows. (Eccles. x. 19.) Thus "in his own con-
ceit" it is his strong city. (Chap. xviii. 11.) So prone are we to rest on
the creature as the stay and comfort of life. (Ps. xlix. 6; lxii. 10. Jer.
ix. 23. 1 Tim. vi. 17.) All notions of God are blotted out, and man
becomes a god to himself. The poor, having no such defence, dwell as
"in a city without walls," exposed to every assault. (Chap. xiv. 20;
xix. 7; xxii. 7. John, vii. 48, 49.) "Poverty comes upon them as an
armed man" (Chap. vi. 11), and sinks the spirit in consternation.†
How secure--how happy then—we are ready to say—are the
rich! How wretched the condition of the poor! But the glass of
God's word discovers a more even balance. "Hath not God chosen the
poor of this world, rich in faith, and heirs of his kingdom?" (Jam. ii. 5.
Zeph. iii. 12.) Think of Jesus sanctifying the state of poverty by his
own blessed example. (Luke, ii. 7-12; iv. 22; viii. 3. Matt. viii. 20.)
Think of the riches of his grace, raising the poor out of the dunghill,
* Matt. xii. 34. Jerome mentions of his friend Nepotian, that, ‘by daily reading and
meditating in the sacred volume, he had made his soul a library of Christ.’— Letter to
Nepotian.
† This is the accurate rendering.—See Schuiteus, Holden, Scott.
100 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
that he may set him with the princes of his people. (Ps. cxiii. 7, 8.
1 Sam. ii. 8.)
Both states however have their besetting temptations, needing
special grace. (Chap. xxx. 8, 9.) The safety of both is, when the rich
are poor in spirit (1 Chron. xxix. 14) and large in heart; and the poor
"rich in faith," and "contented with the gain of godliness." (Job, i. 21.
1 Tim. vi. 6-8.) "Let the brother of low degree rejoice, in that he is
exalted; but the rich, in that he is made low." (Jam. i. 9, 10.)
16. The labour of the righteous tendeth to life: the fruit of the wicked
to sin.
Labour, not idleness, is the stamp of a servant of God: thus cheered
by the glowing confidence, that it tendeth to life. (John, vi. 27.) "Occupy
till I come--Do all to the glory of God" (Luke, xix. 13. 1 Cor. x. 31)
--this is the standard. Thus the duties even of our daily calling tend
to life. (Chap. xi. 19. Jer. xxii. 15, 16.) God works in us, by us, with
us, through us. (Isa. xxvi. 12.) We work in and through him. Our
labour therefore is work--wrought in dependence on him; not for
life, but to life. (Rom. viii. 13. 1 Cor. xv. 10. Philip. ii. 12, 13.) And
this is life indeed; the only exercise deserving the name; the only
object worth living for. (Philip. i. 21.) Lord! quicken us to "life
more abundantly." Thus sowing "to the Spirit, of the Spirit we shall
reap life everlasting." (Gal. vi. 8.) With the wicked, self is both the
object and the end. His fruit therefore is sin. (Chap. xxi. 4. Tit. i. 15.
Matt. xii. 33 j xv. 19.) His Master, so long as he serves him faithfully,
cares little how or in what sphere. "He that soweth to the flesh, shall
of the flesh reap corruption." Each tendeth to its own end. "What-
soever a man soweth, that shall he also reap." (Gal. vi. 7.)
17. He is in the way of life that keepeth instruction: but he that refuseth
reproof erreth.
Mercy unspeakable is it, that the way of life is opened! Instruction
sets the way before us. He that keepeth instruction cannot fail of finding
and enjoying it. (Chap. viii. 34, 35.) The more we value that most
needful part of instruction-discipline (Chap. vi. 23; xxii. 17), the
more shall we regard every practical lesson in the heavenly school.
To refuse the reproof; to be deaf to the voice that would save us from
ruin--is a most fearful error--the proof of a foolish and unhumbled
heart (Chap. xii. 1. 2 Chron. xvi. 7-10; xxv. 15, 16); the certain fore-
runner, if not corrected, of irremediable destruction. (Chap. i. 25, 26,30;
v. 12; xv. 10 ; xxix. 1. Jer. vi. 10. Zeph. iii. 2.) Child of God! is it
not matter of shame and sorrow, that you should be so slow to keep
such irestimable instruction; so prone to err from the way of life; and,
CHAP. X. 18. 101
though having the full promise of Divine guidance, still so often acting
as the slave of your own will?
18. He that hideth hatred with lying lips, and he that uttereth a slander is
a fool.
Scripture history from the first chapter of fallen man abundantly
illustrates this proverb. Cain talking with his brother (Gen. iv. 8);
Saul plotting against David (1 Sam. xviii. 21, 22, 29); Joab's treachery
to Abner and Amasa (2 Sam. iii. 27; xx. 9, 10. Comp. xiii. 23, 29; Ps.
v. 9; lv. 21); the enemies of the Church on the return from Babylon
(Ezra, iv. 1-16. Neh. vi. 2)--all hid hatred with lying lips. Such was
also the smooth tongue of the Herodians (Luke, xx. 20, 21), and more
than all--the deadly kiss of Judas. (lb. xxii. 47,48, with Ps. lv. 12-14;
xli. 9.) So perfectly, yet with the most exquisite sensibility of pain,
did our Blessed Lord identify himself with the trials of his people!
Closely allied with the hypocrite is the slanderer (Ps. 1. 16-20)--both
stamped by God with the mark of fools. For of what avail is this
mask? Is there not an Eye that looks through, and a Hand that will
tear off, the flimsy cover? (Chap. XXVI. 23-28. Comp. Ps. 1. 21; Luke,
xii. 1,2.) And if their hatred be vented against the godly, is not the
day at hand, when their "rebuke and slander shall be taken away from
the earth?" (Isa. xxv. 8.)
But is this "root of bitterness" thoroughly mortified in the Christian's
heart? Is there no insincerity in our intercourse with those, to whom
we feel, if not hatred, at least strong repugnance? In the language of
polite courtesy, there is much that is hollow, if not false. Do we really
mean what we say? Or rather is not the profession of regard often ill
absolutely contrary to our real feelings? Do we never bring them
under ridicule, set them out in an unfavourable light, assert things upon
mere suspicion,* or attempt to raise our own name upon the ruin of
their reputation? In common society, how is it often considered the
acme of disappointment, when this conversation flags, or comes to a
pause; whereas the reverse ought to be the true subject of regret.
This spirit surely in the eyes of God is slander; an offence against the
"new commandment of love"--which is the badge of all the disciples
of Jesus. (John, xiii. 34, 35.) These noxious humours are the bane of
* Occasions of evil report can never be wanting to them who seek, or are ready to embrace
them. No innocence, no wisdom, can anywise prevent them; and if they be admitted as grounds of
defamation, no man's good name can be secure. It is not every possibility, every seeming, every
faint show, or glimmering appearance, which sufficeth to ground bad opinion, or reproachful
discourse concerning our fellow-creature. The matter should be clear, notorious, and palpable,
before we admit a disadvantageous conceit into our head, a distasteful resentment into our heart, a
harsh word into our mouth about him…. Justice requireth full proof, "Charity thinketh no evil,
and believeth all things" for the best. Wisdom is not forward to pronounce before full evidence.'
BARROW'S Sermons.
102 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
true godliness. They must not only be restrained, but "laid aside," if
ever we would, ''as new-born babes, desire the sincere milk of the
word, that we may grow thereby." (1 Pet. ii. 1,2. Jam. i. 21.) Lord,
purge our hearts from these hateful hidden corruptions; even though
it be by "the Spirit of judgment and the Spirit of burning." (Isa. iv. 4.)
19. In the multitude of words there wanteth not sin: but he that refraineth
his lips is wise.
Hypocrisy and slander are not the only sins of the tongue. Indeed,
considering the corrupt fountain from whence they flow (Gen. vi. 5.
Matt. xii. 34), we cannot conceive of words, much less a multitude of
words, without sin. There is the sin of egotism. "Our own mouth
praises us, not another." (Chap. xxvii. 2.) We love to hear ourselves
talk; and present our own judgment intrusively)". There is also the sin
of vain babbling, a canker to the vital principle. (2 Tim. ii. 16, 17.
Eccles. x. 13, 14. 1 Tim. v. 13.) The fool talks for ever upon nothing;
not because he is full, but because he is empty; not for instruction, but
for the pure love of talking. This wantonness is a sin of the flesh,
trifling with the most responsible talent, when conversation is, as
Bishop Butler truly remarks, 'merely the exercise of the tongue; no
other human faculty has any place in it.'* The government of the
tongue is therefore a searching test of the soundness of our religion.
(Jam. i. 26; iii. 2.) Considering, therefore, the sin connected with the
multitude of words, it is surely our wisdom to refrain our lips (Chap. xvii.
27, 28. Job, xiii. 5. Eccles. v. 3. Jam. i. 19), not indeed in silence, but
in caution; to weigh our words before uttering them; never speaking,
except when we have something to say; speaking only just enough;
considering the time, circumstances, and person (Job, xxxii. 4-7); what
is solid, suitable, and profitable. (Chap. xv. 23. Eph. iv. 29. Col. iv. 6.)
Indeed a talent for conversation is valueless both to the possessor and
to the auditors, except it be connected with a talent for silence. The
sphere of social intercourse, that stimulates the conversational powers,
at the same time teaches the wholesome discipline of the tongue--that
beautiful accomplishment of silence; which however, alike with its
opposite grace, derives its chief loveliness, as the fruit of Christian
humility and kindness. The wisdom is especially valuable under pro-
vocation. (1 Sam. x. 27. 2 Kings, xviii. 36.) And even in the unbend-
ing of innocent recreation, the discipline of godly sobriety is of great
moment. The sins of this "little member" are not trifles. They need
the full application of the gospel? What but "the blood of sprinkling,"
* Sermon on the Government of the Tongue. ‘One meets with people in the world, who
never seem to have made the wise man's observation, that "there is a time to keep
silence." These times, one would think, should be easily distinguished by everybody;
namely, when a man has nothing to say, or nothing but what is better unsaid.' Ib. Comp.
Ecclus. xix. 6; xx. 5-7.
CHAP. X. 20, 21. 103
could enable us to meet "the account for every idle word at the day
of judgment?" ‘Light words weigh heavy in God's balance.'* Woe
to us, if the great Surety did not bear the sins of our vain words, no less
than of our grosser wickedness! Never let us think of these sins as
anything less than the nails that pierced his hands and his feet. And
will not this sensibility of sin quicken our prayer for an increase of this
refraining wisdom? "Set a watch, 0 Lord, before my mouth, and keep
the door of my lips." (Ps. cxli. 3.)
20. The tongue of the just is as choice silver: the heart of the wicked is
little worth. 21. The lips of the righteous feed many: but fools die for
want of wisdom (of heart, marg).
The wisdom of refraining our lips must always be connected with
diligence in improving our talent. If our tongue be our shame in the
overflowing of sin (Verses 18, 19): is it not also our glory? (Ps. lvii.8;
cviii. 1.) When "speaking of the things touching the king" (Ib.
xlv. 1), or sketching the features of his transcend ant loveliness (Ib. 2.
Cant. v. 10-16); is it not then as choice silver, refined from this world's
dross, and shining with heavenly brightness? Who would not eagerly
gather up the silver scattered in the streets? And shall not we enrich
our store from the choice silver of the just man's tongue, pouring out its
precious instruction before us? If, as regards this world's wealth, the
Lord's poor must say--"Silver and gold have I none;" at least they
may scatter choice silver with a widely-extended blessing--"As poor,
yet making many rich." (Acts, iii. 6. 2 Cor. vi. 10.)
Observe also the usefulness of this member. If we be living with
God, it will diffuse a salt, a heavenly leaven, a rich propagation of
holiness in our various circles. The lips of the righteous feed many from
the rich stores of "the indwelling word" (Col. iii. 16); "ministering to
them grace," the soul's true and proper nourishment! (Eph. iv. 29. Job,
iv. 3, 4; xxix. 22, 23.) ‘Their breath is food to others, as well as life
to them.'† When "the priest's lips keep knowledge, and they seek the
law at his mouth," he feeds the church of God.‡ And as our great
Master broke the bread, and gave it to his disciples for their distribution
( John, vi. 11); so does he now dispense to his servants heavenly pro-
vision, suitable, and abundantly sufficient for tile need of their charge.
And every Sabbath is the wondrous miracle displayed before our eyes.
The imperishable bread multiplies in the breaking. The hungry, the
* Nicholls. Matt. xii. 36.
† FLAVEL On Soul of Man.- Works, 8vo. ii. 551.
‡ Mal. ii. 7, with Jer. iii. 15. John, xxi. 15. Acts, xx. 28. 1 Pet. v. 2. Of Bishop
Ridley our Martyrologist records in his own beautiful style, that ‘to his Sermon
the people resorted, swarming about him like bees, and coveting the sweet flowers
and wholesome juice of his fruitful doctrine.'-Foxe, vii. 407.
104 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
mourners, the weary and fainting; yea, all that feel their need, are
refreshed and invigorated.
The wicked – his coffers may be full. But his heart, being empty
of the choice silver, is little worth. (Jer. xxii. 28.) So far from feeding
others, the fool dies himself for want of wisdom; or rather for want of
heart to seek it. He despises the lips that would feed him, and 'dies of
famine in the midst of the rich pastures of the Gospel.'* Oh! how
often are we reminded that sin is self-destruction! (Hos. xiii. 9.)
22. The blessing of the Lord, it maketh rich, and he addeth no sorrow
with it.
We have been told (Verse 4), that the hand of the diligent--here we
see that the blessing of the Lord--maketh rich. Both are consistent.
The one marks the primary, the other the instrumental and subordinate,
cause. Neither will be effective without the other. The sluggard looks
for prosperity without diligence; the practical atheist from diligence
alone; the sound-hearted Christian from the blessing of God in the
exercise of diligence. This wise combination keeps him in an active
habit; humble, and dependent on God. (John, vi. 27.) For "except
the Lord build the house, they labour in vain that build it. The race
is not to the swift, nor the battle to the strong." (Ps. cxxvii. 1. Eccles.
ix. 11.) The rich then may receive their portion (Eccles. ii. 24-26;
iii. 13; v. 18-20) as the blessing of the Lord (Gen. xxiv. 35; xxvi. 12.
1 Chron. xxix. 14. Deut. viii. 17, 18); carefully using it as a talent for
his service (Luke, xix. 13), and for the good of their fellow-creatures.
(I Tim. vi. 17, 18) The poor may enjoy the same enriching blessing in
the "gain of godly contentment." (Ib. verse 6.) Their cottage is a
palace, as the habitation of the King of kings; and neither life nor
death, neither time nor eternity, can separate them from their God.
(Rom. viii. 38, 39.)
The blessing of the Lord moreover hath this prerogative. He addeth
no sorrow with it; at least no sorrow, but what turns to a blessing.
Accumulation of riches may be the accumulation of sorrows. (Chap.
xx. 21; xxviii. 22. 1 Tim. vi. 9, 10.) Lot's covetous choice was fraught
with bitterness. (Gen. xiii. 10, 11; xiv. 12; xix. 15. 2 Pet. ii. 8.) Ahab
wore a crown and "lay sick on his bed" in discontent. (1 Kings, xxi. 4.)
Gehazi was laden with his bags; but the plague of leprosy was on him.
(2 Kings, v. 27.) Haman's mortification was the canker in his boasted
glory. (Esth. v. 13.) The rich youth's rejection of Christ was the source
of present- must we not fear?--everlasting sorrow. (Luke, xviii. 23.)
The worldling's recompense for his daily toil is "eating the bread of
sorrows. So"--mark the striking contrast--"he giveth his beloved
* Schultens. Comp. Acts, xiii. 41, 45, 46.
CHAP. x. 23, 24. 105
sleep." (Ps. cxxvii. 2. Eccles. ii. 26; v. 12.) Happy portion of the
children of God! They "know both how to be abased, and they know
how to abound." (Philip. iv. 12.) "All things are theirs." (1 Cor. iii. 21.)
"Thy blessing is upon thy people." (Ps. iii. 8.)
23. It is as sport to a fool to do mischief: but a man of understanding hath
wisdom.
The wanton sport of putting others to pain argues the perverseness
of a fool both in judgment and heart. (Chap. xxvi. 18, 19. 2 Sam. ii.
14-16.) Sometimes this cruel amusement may engage a man in the
tempter's work. (Chap. i.11-14.) For fools, who make sport of mischief,
may heedlessly go on to "make a mock of sin." (Chap. xiv. 9.) But
even without going so far, should not we guard against mischievous
jokes, tending to wound a neighbour's character, or to give him
uneasiness? Are we sufficiently careful against indulging our wit
or humour at his expense? All this is not less unmanly, than it is
inconsistent with the sobriety and gravity of a Christian profession. It
is the pure native selfishness of the human heart. Should not also
children's play be sometimes under restraint? Young people cannot
be too strongly disciplined to thoughtfulness and consideration of
others. Never let their hilarity of spirits lead to make sport of that,
which ought to call forth sympathy and tenderness. A man of under-
standing is too wise to find a reckless delight in his neighbour's injury.
The spirit of our Divine Master was according to his own law (Gal. vi.
2)--eminently considerate and sympathizing. (Luke, vii. 13.) Let
us who bear his name, cultivate his self-denying, loving mind.
(Philip. ii. 4, 5.)
24. The fear of the wicked, it shall come upon him: but the desire of the
righteous shall be granted.
The sport of the wicked: how soon is it gone! (Eccles. vii. 6.) But
his fear--the evil which he feared--comes upon him. The Babel
builders were punished with the evil, which they had laboured to
prevent. (Gen. xi. 4,8.) Ahab's device could not shelter him from
his foreboded judgment. (1 Kings, xxii; 28-37.) The rebellious Jews
rushed into the ruin from which they fled. (Jer. xlii. xliii.) Belshazzar's
trembling was realized in his speedy destruction. (Dan. v. 6,30.) Thus
are "the wicked" tossed, "like a troubled sea." (Isa. lvii. 20, 21.) Do
not "their hearts" in solitude "meditate terror?" (Ib. xxxiii. 18. Comp.
Deut. xxviii. 67. Job, iii. 25; xv. 21.) Do not their consciences turn
pale at the question--"Where shall the ungodly and the sinner
appear?" (1 Pet. iv. 18.) And will it not be the constrained confession
at the great day--"According to thy fear, so is thy wrath?" (Ps. xc.
11. Mal. iv. 1.) Unwilling are they now to be reckoned among the
106 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
righteous. Much more will they then be to be found in their sins--
fear their portion--ruin their doom--without hope--without end.
But if the fear of the wicked--so also will the desire of the righteous
--be fully realized. As the one cannot fear anything so bad, so the
other cannot desire anything so good, as what is really in store for them.
Desires bounded by the will (1 John, v. 14), and centered in the enjoy-
ment, of God (Ps. iv. 6; xxxvii. 4), will be granted to their utmost
extent. (lb. lxxxi. 10. Jer. xxxiii. 3. John, xvi. 23, 24.) God did not
raise them to be our torment, but our rest.
Granted they are upon the principle, that they "are only good."
(Chap. xi. 23.) Yet too often the desires of the righteous are not righteous.
The defilement of a worldly spirit (Mark, x. 37), or the hastiness of an
impatient spirit*--far better that they should be denied than granted.
(Ps. cvi. 15. Jam. iv. 3.) So generally indeed are they mixed with
infirmity, that their unreserved gratification might be our destruction.
(Exod. xxxiii. 18, 20.) But he is no less wise than kind: he separates
the evil, and fulfils the good (lb. verse 19); answering, not according
to our wishes, but our wants; not as in our ignorance we may have
asked, but as an enlightened regard to our best interests would have
led us to ask.
But 'I have desired a thousand times on my knees, and yet it has
not been granted.' Yet is it not worth being upon our knees for it a
thousand times more? May not the blessing be withheld a while, till
our sensibility of need be quickened (Isa. xli. 17); or to prepare us
ultimately for a richer enjoyment? (Chap. xiii. 12.)
But if our desires be granted, and even exceeded (Gen. xlviii. 11.
1 Kings, iii. 13. Eph. iii. 20); faith and patience will be tried in the
very grant. Growth in grace is given by deep and humbling views of
our corruption. Longings for holiness are fulfilled by painful affliction.
Prayers are answered by crosses. Our Father's dispensations are not
what they seem to be, but what he is pleased to make them.† Yet in
the darkest cloud the ground of our confidence is firm. All things
needful will be given, and at the grand consummation every desire will
be eternally fulfilled--‘As for me, I shall behold thy face in righteous-
ness; I shall be satisfied, when I awake, with thy likeness." (Ps. xvii.
15, xvi. 11.)
25. As the whirlwind passeth, so is the wicked no more: but the righteous is
an everlasting foundation.
Thus suddenly, as the whirlwind,‡ does the fear of the wicked often
* Elijah, 1 Kings, xix. 4. Jonah, iv. 1-4. The disciples, Luke, ix.54-56.
† See a beautiful hymn in Olney Collection.--Book iii. 36.
‡ See note* p. 11. Comp. Jer. xxiii. 19. Hos. xiii. 3; also Job, xx. 8, 9; xxi. 13,19-21. Ps. lxxiii.
19, 20.
CHAP. X. 26, 27. 107
come upon him. All his hopes, pleasures, and dependencies; all his
opportunities of grace, and offers of mercy, are swept away in a moment
for ever. Such a whirlwind was the destruction of the old world, of the
cities of the plain (Luke, xvii. 26-29); of Sennacherib's army. (2 Kings,
xix. 35.) And such a whirlwind, infinitely more terrible, will be the
coming of the Lord. (Luke, xvii. 30. 1 Thess. v. 2, 3.) "But he that
doeth the will of God abideth ever" (1 John, ii. 17), as an everlasting
foundation. Faith hath fastened him to the Rock of Ages; hath built
his house upon this Rock; and no storm can root him up. (Matt. vii.
25. Ps. cxii. 7.) But remember, this is the confidence of the righteous.
Sin allowed and indulged will shake this foundation far more than all
the outward assaults of earth and hell. "Hold fast then thy rejoicing"
in a jealous godly fear. Thy portion is secure. Thy hopes, joys, and
prospects are unchangeable. Thou canst look at trouble-yea, at
death itself--without dismay, and feel--'I am safe.' But while "thou
standest by faith, be not high-minded, but fear." (Rom. xi. 20.)
26. As vinegar to the teeth, and as smoke to the eyes, so is the sluggard to
them that send him.
A lively figure of the vexation of the sluggard to his employers!
(Contrast Chap. xxvi. 6, with xiii. 17; xxv. 13.) Suppose a fire to be
extinguished, medical assistance needed, a message of urgent haste to
be conveyed--he is worse than unserviceable. Common prudence
dictates the selection of active and industrious servants. And such
when influenced by godly principles, are "worthy of double honour."
(Chap. xxii. 29. Gen. xxiv. 1-14. 1 Tim. v. 17.)
Does then the sluggard disappoint and provoke his earthly master?
See that we be not such sluggards to our heavenly Master. Laodicean
professors are specially hateful in his sight. (Rev. iii. 16.) The slothful
Minister carries in a tremendous account to him that sent him. No more
pitiable object is found, than the man who has time to spare; who has
no object of commanding interest; and is going on to the end, as if he
had spent his whole life in children's play, and had lived for no useful
purpose. He may probably have parcelled out a portion of his time
for some miscalled religious duty. But he might as well be asleep as
on his knees; in idleness as in meditation--so little pains--so little
heart, is connected with his duties! Why "standeth he idle in the
market-place?" It cannot be--"No man hath hired him." His
Master's call sounds in his ears--"Go ye into the vineyard." (Matt. xx.
7.) And at his peril he disobeys it. (Ib. xxv. 30.)
27. The fear of the Lord prolongeth days: but the years of the wicked shall
be shortened.
The fear of the Lord is not a single grace. It includes the substance
108 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
of all godly tempers. For all are radically one principle, from one
source. It essentially differs from the fear of the wicked. They fear
those whom they hate. The child of God-whom he loves. Whether
his temporal life be shortened or prolonged, he lives long in a little
time. He is an infinite gainer by the contraction of life; when his
days are prolonged and swallowed up in the one unclouded day, of
which "the sun shall no more go down." (Chap. ix. 11. Ps. xci. 16.
Isa. Ix. 19.) Justly is the fear of the Lord contrasted with the wicked;
because the absence of this grace is their distinguishing mark (Ps.
xxxvi. 1), the principle of all their ungodliness. (Rom. iii. 10-18.) And
often do we see the letter of this curse realized in the shortening of their
years. Excessive worldliness wears out the spring of life (Eccles. v.
10-12), and often brings it to an untimely end.* Sometimes the God
of vengeance breaks out, and "takes away" the daring offender "with
his stroke." (Job, xxxvi. 18. 1 Sam. ii. 32; iv. 11. Acts, v. 1-10.) Yet,
if he be "visited after the visitation of all men," awful indeed is the
course of a long life wasted in folly and sin; living little in a long
time--"The sinner, being an hundred years old, shall be accursed."
(Isa. lxv. 20.)
28. The hope of the righteous shall be gladness: but the expectation of the
wicked shall perish.
The fear of the Lord, so far from being opposed to, is often con-
nected with, the hope of the righteous. Ps. xxxiii. 18; cxlvii. 11.) And
well may this hope be gladness; for it is 'accompanied with sweet
patience, joyful hope, and crowned with a happy issue.'† It has its
origin in eternity. (Tit. i. 2.) Its substance is Christ and heaven.
(Rom. v. 2. 1 Pet. i. 3,4. Col. i. 27.) The foundation is the work of
Christ. (1 Pet. i. 3, 21.) The security, the unchangeable engagements
of God. (Heb. vi. 17, 18.) "Who then but must see it to be "a hope
that maketh not ashamed; sure and stedfast?" (Rom. v. 5. Heb. vi. 19.
2 Thess. ii. 16.) Instead of, as is commonly supposed, bidding fare-
well to gladness, it brings the only sunshine of the soul. Beaming from
the precious cross, how does it dry up the penitent's tears. (Isa. xii. 2.)
Or, if the gladness be withheld for a time, yet it is sown: and the
"sheaves of joy shall doubtless " follow the "weeping." (Ps. xcvii. 11;
cxxvi.6. Isa. xxxv. 10.) And then-carrying as it were heaven in
and about us (Heb. x. 34)-how refreshing is this hope in its clear
insight into eternity! as Bunyan describes, in one of his beautiful
touches, his feelings on witnessing Christian and Hopeful's welcome
* Impurity, Chap. v. 9-11. Drunkenness, xxiii. 29-32. Malice, Ps. Iv. 23.
1 Kings, ii. 31-44. Wickedness, Ps. xxxvii. 9, 20. Eccles. vii. 17. Jer. xvii. 11.
Comp. Job, xv. 32, 33; xxii. 15, 16.
† Diodati.
CHAP. X. 29. 109
into the heavenly city--'which when I had seen, I wished myself
among them.' Oh! there must be a reality in that hope, which bears
us away from earth, and makes its meanest heir richer and happier,
than if he were the sole possessor of this world's glory. Let me hasten
towards it, longing, yet not impatient. For how can I but desire to
change my traveller's lot for my home; my toil for rest; my sorrow
for joy; my body of sin for the likeness to my Lord; "the tents of
Kedar" for "the innumerable company of angels, and the church of the
first-born?" (Ps. cxx. 5, with Heb. xii. 22, 23.) Do I grasp this hope?
Then--as a godly man exclaimed--'Let who will be miserable; I will
not--I cannot!'
But the wicked--they too have their expectation. For none have a
stronger hope than those, who have no ground for hope. (Deut. xxix. 19.)
And this delusion often reaches to the moment of eternity (Matt. xxv.
10)--nay, even to the "day" of the Lord (Ib. vii. 22, 23); expecting
the door to be "opened to them," after it has been "shut " for ever
(Ib. xxv. 11); dreaming of heaven, and waking in hell! The expecta-
tion of the wicked shall perish.*
Christian! make sure the ground of your hope. (2 Pet. i. 10.) Then
set out its gladness, as becomes an heir of glory. Let not a drooping
spirit tell the world the scantiness of your hope. But show that you
can live upon its gladness, until you enter into its perfect and everlast-
ing fruition. (Ps. xvi. 11.) Doubtfulness leaves believers and infidels
nearly on the same level. A clear apprehension of its infinite joy
stimulates our "diligence to make our calling and election sure."
29. The way of the Lord is strength to the upright: but destruction shall be
to the workers of iniquity.
Observe how the gladness of the righteous is "their strength." (Neh.
viii. 10.) In the roughness of the way "Go in this thy might"--is
the cheering voice--"Have not I sent thee?" (Judg. vi. 14.) "He
giveth power to the faint, and to them that have no might he increaseth
strength." (Isa. xl. 29.) This promise, however, implies help for our
work, not rest from our labour. We shall have strength for the conflict.
But "there is no discharge from the war." There is supply for real,
not for imaginary, wants; for present, not for future, need. The health-
ful energy of the man of God is also supposed. He is alive in the way.
His heart is set in it. This makes it practicable. What before was
drudgery is now meat and drink. Indeed, the more godly we are, the
more godly we shall be. The habit of grace increases by exercise.
One step helps on the next.
Thus was the way of the Lord strength to the upright Nicodemus.
* See the hope of the worldling. Ps. xlix. 6-14. Luke, xii. 19, 20. Of the wicked, Job, xi. 20;
xviii. 14. Of the hypocrite, Ib. viii. 13, 14; xxvii. 8.
110 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
His first step was feebleness and fear. Walking onwards, he waxed
stronger (Job, xvii. 9); standing up in the ungodly council, and ulti-
mately the bold confessor of his Saviour, when his self-confident dis-
ciples slunk back. (John, iii. 2; vii. 50, 51; XIX. 39.) Innate sufficiency
we have none. The strongest in their own strength shall "faint and
be weary." The weakest in the Lord's strength shall "march on, and
not faint."* Thus, in the hour of temptation, the upright will find their
way to be strength. (2 Chron. xv. 2.) Joseph in Potiphar's house
(Gen. xxxix. 10); Obadiah in Ahab's house (1 Kings, xviii. 3); Daniel
in the Persian court (Dan. vi. 10), held on a fiery trial, sustained from
on high. Thus--thus alone--"the righteous shall hold on their way;
going from strength to strength; strengthened in the Lord, and walk-
ing up and down In his name." (Job, xvii. 9. Ps. lxxxiv. 5-7. Zech.
x. 12.) When we look at our own resources, we might 'as well
despair of moving sin from our hearts, as of casting down the moun-
tains with our fingers.'† Yet none of us need to shrink from the con-
fession--"I can do all things through Christ which strengtheneth me."
(Philip. iv. 13.)
No such resources support the workers of iniquity. Captives instead
of soldiers, they know no conflicts; they realize no need of strength.
Even now "destruction is in their ways” (Isa. lix. 7. Rom. iii. 16. Isa.
l. 11), and the "voice of the Judge will fearfully seal their doom.
Depart from me, ye workers of iniquiy." (Luke, xiii. 27. Chap. xxi. 15.
Job, xxxi. 3. Ps. xxxvi. 12.)
30. The righteous shall never be removed: but the wicked shall not inhabit
the earth.
The frailty of our present condition, common to all (Eccles. ix. 2, 11),
was not in the wise man's eye; but the state of the two classes as in
the purpose and mind of God. His way is strength to the upright. The
righteous, walking steadily in the way, shall never be removed. (Ps. xv.;
xxxvii. 22; cxii. 6; cxxv. 1. 2 Pet. i. 5-11.) 'They enjoy in this life
by faith and hope their everlasting Life."‡ "No weapon that is formed
against them shall prosper. The mountains shall depart, and the little
hills shall be removed: but my loving-kindness shall not depart from
I thee; neither shall the covenant of my peace be removed; saith the Lord
I that hath mercy on thee." (Isa. liv. 10.) Is not this a confidence, that
earth nor hell can never shake? (Rom. viii. 38, 39.)
The wicked--have they any such confidence? So far from being never
removed, they shall never inhabit. They have no title, like the righteous
(Matt. v. 5. 1 Cor. iii. 22), as sons and heirs, to the blessings of earth; no
hope or interest in the land, of which the earth is the type.
* Isa. xl. 31. Bishop Lowth's version † Bishop Reynolds.
‡ Reformers' notes.
CHAP. x. 31, 32. 111
(Ps. xxxvii. 29.) Often are they cut off from inhabiting the one. (Verse
27; ii. 22. Ps. xxxvii. 22. Ezek. xxxiii. 24-26.) Never will they be
suffered to inhabit the other. (1 Cor. vi. 9. Rev. xxi. 27.) As our cha-
racter is, so is our hope and prospect. We gain or lose both worlds.
31. The mouth of the just bringeth forth wisdom: but the forward tongue
shall be cut out. 32. The lips of the righteous know what is acceptable:
but the mouth of the wicked speaketh frowardness.
Another image (Comp. Verses 11, 20, 21) of the fruitfulness of a
gracious tongue! It bringeth forth wisdom (Ps. xxxvii. 30), and that
too in the practical exercise of knowing what is acceptable. This gift
needs to be deeply pondered, and carefully cultivated (Chap. xv. 23;
xxv. 11. Job, vi. 25), to give it a free scope, while we jealously confine
it to its own sphere of influence. There is evidently much diversity
of application. The same statement of truth does not suit all. And
how--what--when--to whom--to speak--is a matter of great
wisdom. (Eccles. viii. 5.) Yet this consideration of acceptableness must
involve no compromise of principle. Let it be a considerate accom-
modation of mode to the diversity of tastes; a forbearance with lesser
prejudices and constitutional Infirmities; avoiding--not all offences
(which faithfulness to our Divine Master forbids), but all needless
offences; all uncalled-for occasions of design and irritation. "The
meekness of wisdom" (Jam. iii. 13) should be clearly manifested in
Christian faithfulness. Thus Gideon melted the frowardness of the
men of Ephraim. (Judg. viii. 2, 3.) Abigail restrained David's hands
from blood. (1 Sam. xxv. 23-33.) Daniel stood fearless before the
mighty monarch of Babylon. (Dan. iv. 27.) Their lips knew what was
acceptable, and their God honoured them.
But most of all--let the Minister of God study to clothe his most
unpalatable message in an acceptable garb. Let him mould it in all
the sweetness of persuasion (2 Cor. v. 11, 20), compassion (Rom. ix.
1-3. 2 Cor. ii. 4), and sympathy. (Tit. iii. 2, 3. 2 Cor. xi. 29.) With
what parental earnestness does the 'Preacher of Jerusalem,' in his
introductory chapters, allure us to Wisdom's voice and instruction!
Yet were his "acceptable words upright, even words of truth." (Eccles.
xii. 10.) And thus must "the priest's lips keep knowledge," if he
would have his people "seek the law at his mouth, as the messenger of
the Lord of Hosts." (Mal. ii. 7.) He must discriminate his statements,
without diluting them. The "truth is to be proclaimed upon the
housetop" to the multitude. But it is to be refrained from ungodly
scorners. (Matt. x. 27, with vii. 6.) Always must he gain his people's
ears, that he may win their hearts.
The froward tongue, pouring forth its own frowardness, provokes its
112 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
own ruin. It shall be cut out. (Chap. viii. 13; xviii. 7. Ps. xii, 3; lii.
1-5; cxx. 3, 4. Num. xvi. 1-33.) 0 my God, what do I owe thee for
the bridle of discipline, that restrains me from self-destruction!
CHAPTER XI.
1. A false balance is abomination to the Lord: but a just weight (a perfect
stone,* marg.) is his delight.
How valuable is the Book of God in its minute detail of principles for
every day's conduct! Commerce is a Providential appointment for
our social intercourse and mutual helpfulness. It is grounded with
men upon human faith, as with God upon Divine faith. Balances,
weights, money, are its necessary materials. Impositions; double-
dealings; the hard bargain struck with self-complacent shrewdness
(Chap. xx. 14)--this is the false balance forbidden alike by the law
(Lev. xix. 36) and the gospel. (Matt. vii. 12. Philip. iv. 8.) Men may
"commend its wisdom" (Luke, xvi. 8); God not only forbids, but he
abominates it. (Chap. xx. 10. Deut. xxv. 13-16. Amos, viii. 5.) The just
weight often passes unnoticed. But such a perfect stone is a perfect
jewel, and a precious stone in the sight of God.† It is his delight
(Chap. xvi. 11; xii. 22)--a testimony infinitely above all human
praise!
We must not put away this proverb as a mere moral maxim. It
was given as a warning to a flourishing Christian Church (1 Thess. iv.
6); and the sin here reprobated has been a leprous spot upon many a
highly-gifted professor. (1 Cor. vi. 8.) Is it not a solemn thought,
that the eye of God marks all our common dealings of life, either as an
abomination or a delight! Have we never found, when upon our knees,
the frown of God upon some breach in our daily walk? (Ps.lxvi. 18.)
Look and see, whether the "conscience has been void of offence to-
wards man." (Acts, xxiv. 16.) "The righteous Lord loveth righteous-
ness; his countenance doth behold the upright." (Ps. xi. 7.) They--
they only--“shall dwell in his presence." (Ib. xv. 1,2; xxiv. 3-5;
cxl. 13.)
2. When pride cometh, then cometh shame: but with the lowly is wisdom.
Pride was the principle of the fall (Gen. iii. 5), and therefore the
native principle of fallen man. (Mark, vii. 22.) When pride had
stripped us of our honour, then--not till then--cometh shame. (Gen. iii.
* In many shops in Palestine now, the only weights in the balance are smooth stones.
Narrative of the Scottish Mission to the Jews. Saphet, p. 274. Comp. chap. xvi. 11, marg.
† Jermin in Loco
CHAP. XI. 3-7. 113
7, with ii. 25.) This is the wise discipline of our God to scourge the
one by the other. The Babel-builders (Gen. xi. 4); Miriam (Num. xii.
2, 10); Uzziah (2 Chron. xxvi. 16-21); Haman (Esth. v. 11; vii. 10);
Nebuchadnezzar (Dan. iv. 29-32); Herod (Acts, xii. 22,23); all are
instances of shame, treading upon the heels of pride. Even in common
life, a man will never attempt to raise himself above his own level--
but then cometh shame (Luke, xiv. 11)--the most revolting recompense.
And thus our God puts to shame the man, who knows not his bounds,
and who refuses to stand on the low ground, on which he has placed
him. "Every one that exalteth himself shall be abased." (Luke, xviii.
14. Isa. ii. 17.)
Such is the folly of pride. With the lowly is wisdom. What a splen-
dour of wisdom shone in the lowly child, "sitting at the doctors' feet,
astonishing them at his understanding and his answers!" (Luke, ii.
47.) And will not this spirit be to us the path of wisdom? For the
Divine Teacher "reveals to the babes, what he hides from the wise and
prudent." (Ib. x. 21.) There is no greater proof of proud folly, than
believing only what we understand. Faith is thus grounded on know-
ledge, not on testimony: as if the word of God could not be implicitly
received, except as corroborated by other witnesses. Happy is that
lowliness of spirit, that comes to God's revelation, as it were without
any will or mind of our own; humbly receiving what he is pleased to
give; but willing—yea--thankful--to be ignorant, when he forbids
us to intrude! (Col. ii. 18.)
3. The integrity of the upright shall guide them; but the perverseness of
transgressors shall destroy them. 4. Riches profit not in the day of
wrath: but righteousness delivereth from death. 5. Their righteousness
of the perfect shall direct his way: but the wicked shall fall by his own
wickedness. 6. The righteousness of the upright shall deliver them:
but transgressors shall be taken in their own naughtiness. 7. When a
wicked man dieth, his expectation shall perish: and the hope of unjust
men shall perish.
Integrity or righteousness is a most valuable guide in all perplexities.
(Matt. vi. 22.) The single desire to know the will of God, only that
I we may do it (Ps. cxliii. 10), will always bring light upon our path.
It is also a covert from many dreaded evils. "God is a buckler to
them that walk uprightly. Who therefore is he that will harm you, if
ye be followers of that which is good?" (1 Pet. iii. 13.) Let the
Christian "stand, having on the breast-plate of righteousness; and that
wicked one toucheth him not." (Eph. vi. 14. 1 John, v. 18.) Often
indeed does it deliver from temporal, always from eternal, death.
"Whoso walketh uprightly shall be saved. In the pathway thereof
114 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
there is no death. If a man keep my sayings, he shall never see--
never taste of--death." (Gen vii. 1; 2 Kings, xx. 3-6.)
The perverseness, that neglects this godly principle, is the sinner's
own snare and destruction. (Chap. xxviii. 18. John, viii. 51. Ezra, xviii.
27.) And when the day of wrath cometh--as come it will--"a great
ransom will not deliver." (Deut. i. 43, 44. Num. xxii. 32. Isa. i. 28.
Ezra, ix. 9, 10. Hos. xiv. 9.) Riches will profit, nothing (Job, xxxvi. 18,
19); not even will they obtain "a drop of water to cool the tormented
tongue." (Luke, xvi. 19-24.) In vain will "the rich men of the earth"
seek a shelter from "the wrath of the Lamb." (Rev. vi. 15-17.) They
and their hopes will perish together.* 'They were not living, but lying
hopes, and dying hopes.'† What a contrast to that "hope, which is as
an anchor of the soul, both sure and steadfast, and which entereth into
that within the veil!"‡
8. The righteous is delivered out of trouble, and the wicked cometh in his
stead.
Thus do these two classes change places in the dispensations of
God. The same providence often marks Divine faithfulness and retri-
butive justice. The Israelites were delivered out of the trouble of the Red
Sea; the Egyptians came in their stead. (Exod. xiv. 21-28.) Mordecai
was delivered from the gallows; Haman was hanged upon it. (Esth.
v. 14; vii.10.) The noble confessors in Babylon were saved from the
fire; their executioners were "slain" by it. (Dan. iii. 22-26.) Daniel
was preserved from the lions; his accusers were devoured by them.
(Ib. vi. 22-24.) Peter was snatched from death; his jailors and perse-
cutors were condemned. (Acts, xii. 6, 19, 23.) Thus "precious in the
sight of the Lord is" the life, no less than "the death, of his saints."
(Ps. cxvi. 15.) For the deliverance of one precious soul out of trouble he
will bring a nation into distress. (1 Sam. xxiii. 25-28.) Yea--for the
ransom of his own chosen people, he gave not only "Egypt" of old,
but in later times "Ethiopia and Seba--men for them, and people for
their life."§ To what source but his own free and sovereign love can
we trace this special estimation? "Since thou wast precious in my sight,
* Chap. x. 28. Job, viii. 13, 14; xl. 20; xviii. 14-18. Ps. xlix. 17, 18; cxlvi. 4. One of
Bunyan's graphical and accurate sketches represents Ignorance ferried over the river
by one Vain Hope, ascending the hill alone, without encouragement, and ultimately bound
and carried away. 'Then I saw'--adds he with fearful solemnity--'that there was a way to Hell,
even from the gates of Heaven! '
† LEIGHTON on 1 Pet. I. 3.
‡ Heb. vi. 19. Does not this verse prove the knowledge of a future state; since, as
respects this life, the expectation of the righteous -alike with that of the wicked-–perisheth?
Comp. 1 Cor. xv. 19.
§ Isa. xliii. 8; 4, with 2 Chron. xiv. 9-11. 2 Kings, xix. 9. Comp. chap. xxi. 18 How
different their estimation in the eyes of man, when an Eastern autocrat was willing to cut
them off at a single blow as a worthless thing! Esth. Iii. 8-15. Comp. I Cor. iv. 13.
CHAP. XI. 9. 115
thou hast been honourable, and I have loved thee." (Isa. xliii. 4, ut
supra.) We do not always mark the same outward manifestation. But
the love is unchangeably the same. And how should it at once lay us
in the dust, and build our confidence upon an unshaking foundation!
9.An hypocrite with his mouth destroyeth his neighbour: but through
knowledge shall the just be delivered.
Haman under the pretence of loyalty would have destroyed a whole
nation. (Esth. iii. 8-13.) Ziba under the same false cover would
have destroyed his neighbor. (2 Sam. xvi. 1-4.) The lying prophet
from mere wilfulness ruined his brother. Such is the hypocrite's mouth!
“a little member;” but "a world of iniquity: set on fire of hell." (Jam.
iii. 5, 6.)
Then look at him in the church--"a ravening wolf in sheep's
clothing," devouring the flock (Matt. vii. 15); "making merchandize
with feigned words" (2 Pet. ii. 1-3); an apostle of Satan, so diligent
is he in his Master's work of destruction! (2 Cor. xi. 3, 13.) "These
false Christs"--we are warned—“deceive many; if it were possible
the very elect.” (Matt. xxiv. 24.) But they--the just--are delivered
through knowledge- 'by the light and direction of the Holy Ghost, and
by the lively knowledge of God's word, which giveth unto the faithful
man wisdom sufficient for his preservation.'* Learn the value of solid
knowledge. Feeling, excitement, imagination, expose us to an unsteady
profession.† Knowledge supplies principle and steadfastness. "Add
to your faith knowledge." (2 Pet. i. 5.) Guard against plausible error,
Usually built upon some single truth, separated from its connection, and
pressed beyond its due proportion. Do not the many delusions of our
day give force to the earnest exhortation--"Take fast hold of instruc-
tion; let her not go; keep her, for she is thy life?" (Chap. iv. 13.)
10. When it goeth well with the righteous, the city rejoiceth: and when the
wicked perish, there is shouting. 11. By the blessing of the upright the
city is exalted: but it is overthrown by the mouth of the wicked.
The world, in despite of the native enmity of the heart, bears its
testimony to consistent godliness (Chap. xvi. 7; Mark, vi. 20), and
rejoices in the prosperity of the righteous. Their elevation to authority
is a matter of general joy. (Chap. xxix. 2. Esth. viii. 15.) A godly
king;‡ a premier, using his authority for the glory of God (2 Chron.
xxiv. 16); a man of God of high influence in the church (2 Kings, ii.
* Diodati. Comp. Heb. v. 14. 1 John, ii 20, 27. 2 Pet. iii. 17, 18.
† Such as Eph. iv. 14.
‡ Chron. xxx. 25, 26. ‘All things prosper in every respect, so long as thou rulest
well'--was the speech of the Senate to the emperor Severus. Comp. Isa. xxxii. 1, 2.
1 Tim. ii. 1, 2.
116 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
12)--these are justly regarded as a national exaltation. Their prayers
(Exod. xxxiii. 12. Isa. xxxvii. 14-36. Jam. v.16-18), wisdom (Gen. xli.
38-42), disinterestedness, and example (Job, xxii. 30), are a public
blessing.
The wicked--they are only a curse to the community. Often has
it been overthrown; or endangered by their mouth. (Num. xvi. 3, 41.
2 Sam. xv. 1-14; xx. 1.) So that their perishing is a matter of present
exultation. (Job, xxvii. 23.) Such was the joy of Rome on the death
of Nero, and the public rejoicings in the French Revolution at the
death of Robespierre. The people of God unite in the shouting; not
from any selfish feeling of revenge; much less from unfeeling hardness
towards their fellow-sinners. But when a hindrance to the good cause
is removed (Chap. xxviii. 28. Eccles. ix. 18); when the justice of God
against sin (2 Sam. xviii. 14-28) and his faithful preservation of his
church (Exod. xv. 21. Judg. v. 31), are displayed, ought not every
feeling to be absorbed in a supreme interest in his glory? Ought they
not to shout? (Ps. lii. 6, 7; lviii. 10. Rev. xviii. 20.) The "Alleluia" of
heaven is an exulting testimony to the righteous judgments of the
Lord our God, hastening forward his glorious kingdom. (Rev. xix. 1, 2.)
12. He that is void of wisdom (destitute of heart, marg.) despiseth his
neighbour: but a man of understanding holdeth his peace.
Pride and uncharitableness show a man to be void of wisdom; igno-
rant alike of himself, his neighbour; and his God. For could he de-
light in magnifying "the mote in his neighbour's eye," had he wisdom
to "consider the beam that is in his own eye?" (Matt. vii. 3-5.) Could
he despise his neighbour, did he really know him to be his own flesh
(Isa. lviii. 7. Mal. ii. 10. Acts, xvii. 26); perhaps even "a member of
the body, and of the flesh, and of the bones of his Lord?" (Eph. v. 30.)
Could he look down upon him in the plenitude of pride, did he realize
the consciousness; that, if he differs, it is God--not himself, “that
hath made him to differ?" (1 Cor. iv. 7.) Surely this blindness is to
be void of wisdom, and destitute of heart. 'It denotes the want of a
right state of mind, judgment, and affections. Such a man is without
heart to what is wise and good.'*
A man of understanding may see much in his neighbour to excite
his pity, and stir up his prayers, but nothing to despise. He may be
called openly to condemn him. But his general course will be loving
forbearance; holding his peace; 'keeping himself from speaking or
doing anything in scorn of another;† "considering thyself, lest thou
also be tempted." (Gal. vi. 1.) Self-knowledge shows the man of
understanding, and forms the man of love.
* Scott in loco-Comp. chap. xiv. 21. John. vii. 47-49.
+ Diodati
CHAP. XI. 13, 14. 117
13. A tale-bearer revealeth secrets: but he that is of a faithful spirit
concealeth the matter.
Another breach of love is here reproved. (Lev. xix. 16,17.) The
gospel does not shut us up in our own private interests, as if we had
no sympathy with our neighbour. It is an universal brotherhood of
love. Yet it rebukes the tale-bearer, who, having no business of his
own, traffics with his neighbour's name and honour, and vends his
wares of scandal, as it may be, whether for gain or wantonness. (Neh.
vi. 17-19.) It is most unsafe to be within the breath of this cruel
trifler with the happiness of his fellow-creatures. (Chap. xvi. 28; xxvi.
22.) For as readily as he reveals our neighbour's secrets to us, will:
he reveal ours to him.* All the bonds of confidence and friendship
are broken in pieces. Let ears and lips be closed against him. If
there be no vessel to receive his base matter, his words will fall to the
ground, and die away. Children, servants, and visitors in the family,
should guard most carefully against revealing secrets, that have been
spoken before them in the unreserved confidence of domestic life. The
tale-bearer having much time on his hands, worms out family secrets.
He is always delighted to make a discovery. The most idle rumour is
a treasure. A quarrel made up before he had time to reveal it, is a
disappointment. This busy idleness has always been a sore in the
church. (2 Thess. iii. 10-12. 1 Tim. v. 13. 1 Pet. iv. 15.) It is a reli-
gion always abroad, occupied impertinently with foreign interference;
while at home it is "the field of the slothful, grown over with thorns."
(Chap. xxiv. 30, 31.) Would we have our friend rest his anxieties on
our bosom (Chap. xvii. 17), let him not see the results of misplaced
confidence dropping out of our mouth. It is of great moment to our
peace, that those about us should be of a faithful spirit, to whom it is
not necessary on every occasion to enjoin secrecy; true to our interest
as to their own; who would rather refuse than betray a trust; whose
bosom is a cover of concealment, except when the honour of God and
the interests of society plainly forbid. (1 Sam. iii. 17, 18. Jer. xxxviii.
24-27. Contrast Judg. xvi. 16-20.) Invaluable is such a friend, but
rare indeed in this deceitful world. (Chap. xx. 6.) Yet Christian consist-
ency includes the faithful spirit; and its habitual absence makes it
most doubtful, whether the spirit and mind of Christ is not alto-
gether wanting.
14. Where no counsel is, the people must fall: but in the multitude of
counselors there is safety.
Even in private matters the value of wise counselors is generally
* Chap. xx. 19. Horace has given us this same warning:
Percontatorem fugito; nam garrulus idem est;
Nec retinent patulae commissa fideliter aures.--Epistle I. 18. 1 69, 70.
118 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
admitted. The agreement of the multitude gives safety to our decision.
And even their difference, by giving both sides of the question, enables
us to ponder our path more safely. The nation, therefore, without coun-
selors is like a ship in the midst of the rocks without a pilot, in immi-
nent peril. God has given to some the gift of government--"wisdom
that is profitable to direct." (Eccles. x. 10.) Where there is no counsel,
the people mush fall. In the dark time of the Judges, the want of a king
led to anarchy, and the people fell into the enemies' hands. (Judg. ii.
8-23; xxi. 25.) Ten parts of the people fell when Rehoboam listened to
evil counsel.* A fall again was there of the people, when the counsel of
godly Jehoiada was removed! (2 Chron. xxiv. 17-21.) The good Lord,
deliver us from the deserved national judgment of weak and blinded
counsellors! (Eccles. x. 16. Isa. iii. 1-4; xix.11-14.)
David and Solomon, though themselves specially endowed with
wisdom, governed their kingdoms prosperously by wise counselors.
(Ps. cxix. 98-100, with 2 Sam. xv. 12; xvii. 14, also 1 Kings, xii. 6.)
The larger the multitude of such counselors (contrast Isa. xlvii. 13), the
greater the safety. To one such, a heathen monarch owed the safety
of his kingdom from desolating falling. (Gen. xli. 38-57.)
Often has the Church been preserved by this blessing. (Acts, xv.
6-31: Comp. chap. xv. 22; xxiv. 6.) Shall we not now plead for her safety
in this day of her distress, that her people may not fall by the want of
counsel (Ezra, xxxiv. 4-6. Matt. xv. 14); that her ordained counselors
may be largely filled with the "spirit of power, and of love, and of a
sound mind" (2 Tim. i. 7), to establish her people more firmly in the
pure faith of the gospel? (Acts, xvi. 4, 5.)
15. He that is surety for a stranger shall smart (be sore broken, marg.)
for it: and he that hateth suretyship is sure.
This repeated warning against suretyship (Chap. vi. 1-5) is intended
to inculcate considerateness; not to excuse selfishness, or to dry up the
sources of helpful sympathy. It must not be for a stranger (Chap. xxvii.
13), whose character and responsibilities are unknown to us. For such
incautious kindness, too often done to the injury of our family, we shall
smart, if not be sore broken. To hate such engagements is therefore our
prudent security.
But one exception we can never forget. The blessed Jesus, from
his free grace--unsought, unasked (John, x. 15, 17, 18. Philip. ii. 6-8)--
became surety--not for a friend (in which case we should have had no
interest), but for a stranger. He became One with us in nature, that
he might be One with us in law. He took our place under the curse of
the broken law. (Gal. iii.13.) He put his soul to the fullest extent in
our soul's place; and then made our nature pay the debt, which all the
* 1 Kings, xii. 16:-19. ‘Fall like leaves,'--LXX.
CHAP. XI. 16. 119
angels of heaven could never have discharged. Oh! this was a smart
indeed. Yea--sore broken was he under the stroke of his Father's
hand.* The Upholder of the universe was prostrate in the dust (Mark,
xiv. 35, with Heb. i. 3); his own creature strengthening his sinking
frame., (Luke, xxii. 43.) Had he hated suretyship, he would have been
sure; (for what could have disturbed his self-existent happiness?) but
we should have perished. Glory to his name! Though from all
eternity he knew the bitterness of the smart, instead of hating, he "re-
joiced and delighted" in his work. (Chap.viii. 31. Heb. x.7. Ps. xl.
6-8.) His was no rash engagement. For it was the arrangement of
the everlasting covenant. (Isa. liii. 10-12. 1 Pet. i. 20.) Every way it
was lawful. There was an infinite treasure to discharge the liabilities.
The claims of justice were fully satisfied. (Isa. i. 27; xlii. 21. Rom. iii.
26.) Sin was as thoroughly punished, as it was thoroughly pardoned.
There was no injury, but rather direct benefit to the family of God.
(Eph. i. 10. Col. i. 20.) What then remains for us, but to fall down
before this grace, and to spend our days, as we shall spend our eternity,
in adoring this wondrous manifestation of Divine glory! (Rev. i. 5, 6;
v. 12.)
16. A gracious woman retaineth honour: and strong men retain riches.
Everywhere the excellency of godliness meets our eyes. What
loveliness, dignity, and influence does it impart to the female character!
(Chap. xxxi. 10.) A gracious woman is known, not by her outward
beauty (lb. 30), but by her "inner becoming ornaments" (1 Tim. ii.
9, 10. 1 Pet. iii. 3, 4); which remain in full lustre, when external
accomplishments have faded away. (Chap. xxxi. 25.) And though "the
weaker vessel," she retaineth honour, as firmly as strong men retain riches.
She preserves her character unblemished. (Ruth, iii. 11.) She wins
her children (Chap. xxxi. 28)--perhaps her ungodly husband (Ib.
verses 12, 28. 1 Pet. iii. 1, 2)--into the ways of holiness. Thus
Deborah retained honour as "a mother in Israel," the Counselor and the
stay of a sinking people. (Judg. iv. 4; v. 7.) Esther retained her
influence over her heathen husband for the good of her nation. (Esth.
ix. 12, 13, 25.) And still the gracious woman retaineth honour long after
she has mingled with the dust. Sarah the obedient wife (1 Pet. iii. 5,
6); Hannah the consecrating mother (1 Sam. i. 28); Lois, Eunice, and
"the elect lady" (2 Tim. i. 5; iii. 15. 2 John, 1-4), in the family sphere;
Phoebe and her companions in the annals of the Church (Rom. xvi. 2-6.
Philip. iv. 3); the rich contributor to the temple (Mark, xii. 42-44);
the self-denying lover of her Lord (Ib. xiv. 3-9); Mary in contem-
plative retirement (Luke, x. 39); Dorcas in active usefulness (Acts, ix.
* Isa. liii. 5, 10—bruised--sore broken.
120 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
36):--Are not these "good names" still had in honourable remembrance?
(Ps. cxii. 6.)
17. The merciful man doeth good to his own soul: but he that is cruel
troubleth his own flesh.
Mercifulness is not natural benevolence, without God or godliness.
It is the "fruit of the Spirit" (Gal. v. 22); the image of our Father
(Luke, vi. 36); the constraint of the love of Christ (2 Cor. viii. 9); the
adorning of "the elect of God." (Col. iii. 13.) It is not pity in words
and looks. It is when our neighbour's trouble descends into the depths
of our hearts, and draws out thence bowels of kindness and practical
sympathy. (Luke, x. 33.) The merciful man will ever find a merciful God.
(Ps. xli.1. Matt. v. 7.) The widow of Sarepta and the woman of Shunam,
each for their kindness to the Lord's prophets, "received a prophet's
reward." (2 Kings, iv. 16; viii. 1-6.) The alms of Cornelius brought
good to his own soul. (Acts, x. 2-4.) In watering others with our mercy,
ourown" souls will become a watered garden." (Isa. xxxii. 8. Ps. cxii. 4.)
Even now" God is not unrighteous to forget our work and labour of
love." (Heb. vi. 10. Matt. x. 42.) At the great day he will honour it
before the assembled universe. (Matt. xxv. 34.)
But not less certainly will cruelty bring its own mischief. (Jam. ii.
13. Matt. xviii. 34, 35.) Unsubdued passion is carrying about us the
very element of hell, wanting nothing but immortality to perfect the
misery. Cain found his brother's murder an intolerable trouble to his
flesh. (Gen. iv. 13, 14.) Joseph's brethren severally smarted for their
unfeeling wantonness. (lb. xlii. 21.) Adoni-bezek was constrained. to
acknowledge the justice of his chastisement. (Judg. i. 6, 7.) The doom
of Ahab and Jezebel was the curse of their own cruelty. (1 Kings, xxii.
38. 2 Kings, ix. 36, 37.) The treasures of selfishness will eat as doth
a canker in our own flesh. (Jam. v. 1-3.) 0 my God, save me from the
tyranny of my own lust, and may thy perfect image of mercy be my
standard and my pattern!
18. The wicked worketh a deceitful work: but to him that soweth righteous-
ness shall be a sure reward. 19. As righteousness tendeth to life, so
he that pursueth evil pursueth it to his own death.
Both the Masters that claim the heart put forth their promise of
reward. Did Satan fulfill all his promises, truly his servants would be
abundantly enriched. (Gen. iii. 4, 5. Matt. iv. 8, 9.) But the wicked
worketh a deceitful work, ending in disappointment. (Heb. ii. 13. Rom.
vi. 21.) Pharaoh's exterminating project against Israel deceived him in
its result, issuing in their increase, and the ruin of himself and his peo-
ple. (Acts, vii. 19. Exod. i. 20.) Abimelech doubtless expected peace
CHAP. XI. 18, 19. 121
as the result of his murderous work. (Judg. ix. 22-51.) But he pursued
evil to his own death. Ahab anticipated rest from the riddance of
Naboth. But the words of his troublesome reprover were to him as the
"piercings of a sword." (1 Kings, xxi. 19.) How little did Gehazi
contemplate the plague of the leprosy, as the issue of his well-contrived
plan! (2 Kings, v.27.) Were the temptation presented in a naked
form--'For this pleasure sell thy soul--thy God--thy heaven'--
who would not fly with horror from the most enticing bait? But the
tempter worketh a deceitful work, painting the present pleasure, and
hiding the certain reality of ruin. (Chap. i. 15-18.) Oh! it is affecting
to see his poor victim eagerly pursuing evil (Chap. iv. 16, 17)--yet to
his own death. Not only his open acts, but his thoughts, motions, pur-
suits, ends--all tend to death. (Chap. v. 1-5; ix. 18.) God has no
place in his heart. And what else can be the end of a life without
God? Thus the religious professor deceives others, perhaps himself.
But his deceitful work will be the delusion of a moment, an eternity of
confusion.
The sure reward of righteousness stands out in bright contrast. The
"seed is precious;" and "the sheaves shall doubtless" follow. (Ps.
cxxvi. 6.) No sinner since the fall of man has ever known the full
reward of righteousness even in this life. It may be given as an afflic-
tive dispensation--grace to support under trouble, and to triumph in
the issue of it. It will probably be given as the harvest to the sower
--after trying and anxious waiting. (Jam. v. 7, 8.) But whenever
vouchsafed, or however delayed, it is a sure reward. Righteousness is
the seed. Happiness is the harvest. The reward indeed is not from
cause, but by consequence; not of debt, but of grace; depending upon
a free promise; mercifully, yet surely, linked with Christian persever-
ance. (Eccles. xi. 6. Hos. x. 12. 1 Cor. xv. 58. Gal. vi. 7, 8.) It must
however be true righteousness--not according to man's profession, but
according to the Divine standard. A routine of duties may skirt the
borders of religion, at the utmost distance from the Spirit of God, and
equally remote from the vital principle of the heart. But righteousness
not only "delivereth from death" (Verse 4) (a special mercy even with
the loss of all) (Gen. xix. 16. Jer. xlv. 5); but it tendeth to life (Chap.
x. 16. Isa. iii. 10. Rom. ii. 7. Gal. vi. 8); full of living enjoyment, of
infinite, eternal pleasure. What importance then attaches to every
godly principle! All have reference to eternity. If righteousness be
our main end, God will make it our best friend; nor will he, as the
world has done, reward us with ciphers instead of gold. Who will
not love and serve thee when "in keeping thy commandments there is
a sure reward?" (Ps. xix. 11; xxxvii. 3-6. Isa. xxxii. 17.) Irresistible
will be the conviction of the wicked at the last.-- 'Had I but sown right-
eousness in the service of God, it would have been infinitely happy for
122 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
me to eternity!' But inconceivably joyous will be the great consum-
mation to the righteous--"Behold, I come quickly, and my reward is
with me, to give every man according as his work shall be." (Rev.
xxii. 12.)
20. They that are of a froward heart are abomination to the Lord: but
such as are upright in their way are his delight. 21. Though hand
join in hand, the wicked shall not be unpunished: but the seed of the
righteous shall be delivered.
The froward and the upright are often contrasted, as God looks at
them. (Verse 3. Chap. iii. 32. Ps. xi. 5-7.) Frowardness is abomination
to the Lord. (Chap. viii. 13.) All the contests between God and man
are--whose will shall stand? (Exod. v. 2; ix. 17. Jer. xliv. 16, 28.)
Most thankful should we be for the school of discipline, that makes us
feel the privilege of "subjection to the obedience of Christ." (Ps. cxix.
67, 71.) Frowardness in the heart is specially hateful (Chap. xvi. 5);
most of all under the garb of external religion. (Isa. lxv. 2-5. Luke,
xvi. 15.) Sinners encourage one another in sin (Chap. i. 11-14. Isa.
xli. 7)--hand joining in hand. But all such "confederacies shall be
broken in pieces." (Isa. viii. 9. Gen. xi. 8. Num. xvi. 1-33. Josh. ix. 1,
2.) For as "it is the same with him to save by many or by few"
(1 Sam. xiv. 6); so when he lifts his arm of vengeance, it is the same,
"whether it be against a nation or a man only." (Job, xxxiv. 29.)
The flood; the judgment on Egypt; the chastenings of rebellious
Israel in the wilderness; the destruction of Sennacherib's army-
plainly prove, that hand joining in hand is a vain resistance to the hand
of God. (Chap. xvi. 5.)
The upright are those, whom God makes upright. They are his own
workmanship. The upright in the way are contrasted with the froward
in heart: because as the heart is, so is the way. Yet he is not said to
delight in their way (though this is an undoubted truth). They them-
selves are his delight. (Chap. xii. 22. Ps. lxxxiv. 11.) He singles them
out from the ungodly world. (Gen. vii. 1. Num. xiv. 24.) Nay, he
even points to one of them as a challenge to Satan to do his worst.
(Job, i. 8.) Such is the condescension of his sovereign love–accept-
ing his own word; stamping with open honour the graces of his people,
sullied though they be with such "base defilement! "He knoweth
their days"--the first day of going to their Bibles, the first day of
prayer; all their after "cloudy and dark days." Nor does he put them
off with a "portion in this life." Their inheritance shall be for ever.
(Ps. xxxvii. 18.) It is but a moment, and they that love him shall be
with him for ever.
Nor is their blessing confined to themselves. The seed of the right-
eous shall be delivered. (Chap. xx. 7. Ps. xxxvii. 26. 1 Kings, xv. 4.)
CHAP. XI. 21, 22. 123
‘The best way for any man to do his children good, is to be godly him-
self.'* They have then a place in their father's covenant. (Gen. xvii.
7. Acts, ii. 39.) And is not this an encouragement--not indeed to
indolence and presumption--but to parental faith, in leaving our
children in this naughty world unprotected and alone? (Ps. ciii. 17.)
"The children of thy servants shall continue, and their seed shall be
established before thee." (Ib. cii. 28.)
22. As a jewel of gold in a swines snout, so is a fair woman which is with-
out (departeth from, marg.) (Chap. vii. 10; ix. 13) discretion.
A most distasteful, and yet an apt comparison! Let us see things
as the Bible shows them to us. If a fair, light-minded young woman
should see her own face in this mirror, she might well start aside with
horror. Beauty indeed is to be honoured, as the gift of God.† Yet in
itself it is a fading vanity (Chap. xxxi.30); and, without discretion, it is
as misplaced, as mis-becommg, as a jewel of gold in a swine's snout.‡
Would the ornament beautify the filthy animal? Rather would not
the unnatural combination make it more than ever an object of disgust?
All the charms of beauty are lost upon a foolish woman. Instead of
"retaining honour" (Verse 16), she only brings upon herself disgrace.
For just as the jewel is soon employed and besmeared in racking the
mire; so too often does the beauty of the indiscreet woman become sub-
servient to the vilest passions. (2 Sam. xi. 2.) No ornament can give
comeliness to a fool (Chap. xxvi. 8); but "wisdom maketh the face to
shine." (Eccles. viii. 1.)
‘Lightness and fantastic garb in apparel is the very bush or sign
hanging out, that tells a vain mind lodges within. The soul fallen
from God hath lost its true worth and beauty; and therefore it basely
descends to these mean things, to serve and dress the body, and take
share with it of its unworthy borrowed ornaments, while it hath lost
and forgotten God, and seeks not after him, knows not that he alone is
the beauty and ornament of the soul, and his Spirit, and the grace of it,
his rich attire.'§
Learn then to value far beyond beauty of face, the inner "orna-
ments" of grace, "which are in the sight of God of great price." (1 Pet.
iii. 4, 5.) Many a lovely form enshrines a revolting mind. All ex-
ternal even all intellectual, accomplishments without discretion issue in
barrenness. So entirely do we depend upon God's grace, for a fruitful
improvement of his own gifts!
* Exposition of Proverbs, by JOHN DODD and ROBERT CLEAVER, 4to. 1614.
†+ See Moses, Acts, vii. 20. Joseph, Gen. xxxix. 6. David, 1 Sam. xvi. 12. Esth. ii. 7.
Job's daughters, xlii. 15.
‡ Isa. iii. 21. See Bishop Lowth's interesting note
§ LEIGHTON on 1 Pet. iii 3, 4.
124 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
23. The desire of the righteous is only good: but the expectation of the
wicked is wrath.
‘Desire is the wing of the soul, whereby it moveth, and is carried
to the thing which it loveth, as the eagle to the carcase, in the Scripture
Proverbs (Job, xxxix. 30. Matt. xxiv. 28), to feed itself upon it, and
to be satisfied with it.* The desire of the righteous must be good, be-
cause it is God's own work. (Ps. x. 17. Rom. viii. 26,27.) It must be
only good, because it centres in himself. (Ps. lxxiii. 25. Isa. xxvi. 8, 9.)
God in Christ is his portion: and what earthly portion can compare
with it? (Ps. iv. 6, 7)--his object; and what object is worth living
for--worth half a serious thought--besides? (Rom. xiv. 8,9. 1 Cor.
vi. 19, 20. Philip. i. 21.) Only let me subordinate my desires to his will
(1 John, v. 14); and I shall be equally happy, whether they be granted
or withheld. (1 Kings, viii. 17, 18.) As a physician, "he knoweth my
frame" (Ps. ciii. 14); what is, what is not, expedient for me. "As a
Father, he pitieth" my weakness. (Ib. verse 13.) As a God, he fully
supplies my real need. (Philip. iv. 19.) The desire, therefore, in-
wrought by him, fixed on him, submitted to his will, must be good.
But might not an angel weep to see the corrupt mixture† of worldliness
(Mark, x. 35-37), selfishness (2 Sam. xxiii. 15. Jonah, iv. 8, 9), pride?
(1 Chron. xxi. 1, 2.) Yet is this against our better will. (Rom. vii. 15.)
The main strength of the desire is to God; even though the tossing
tempest of sin and Satan may combine to drive it out of its course.
(Rom. vii. 22.) In despite of this mighty assault--"Lord, all my
desire is before thee; thou knowest all things; thou knowest that I
love thee." (Ps. xxxviii. 9. John, xxi. 17.) 'Thou didst put into my
mind good desires; and thou wilt bring the same to good effect!'‡
But the exepectation of the wicked is discontent and opposition to God.
Often is it indulged, but with the fearful accompaniment of wrath.
(Num. xi. 18. Ps. lxxviii. 29-31; cvi. 15.) And how shortly will the
deluding dream end in inexpressible, eternal wrath! (Verse 7. Luke,
xvi. 23. Rom. ii. 8, 9. Heb. x. 27.) Oh! let me daily test my desires by
the true standard, and discipline them, that they may be fixed upon the
true object; so that, "delighting myself in the Lord," I may find
them "granted" "exceedingly abundantly above" my largest expecta-
tions. (Chap. x. 24. Ps. xxxvii. 4. Eph. iii. 20.)
24. There is that scattereth, and yet increaseth; and there is that with-
holdeth more than is meet, but it tendeth to poverty.§ 25. The liberal
* Bishop REYNOLDS' Treatise on the Passions.—Works, p. 666. † Comp. Article ix.
‡ Collect for Easter Day.
§ There are those, who, sowing their own, make it more: and those who gather, and
are impoverished'--LXX.
CHAP. XI. 24, 25. 125
soul (soul of blessing, marg.) shall be made fat: and he that watereth
shall be watered also himself.
God has put a mark of distinguishing favour upon the exercises of
that mercy, which is his own attribute. He scatters his blessings richly
around (Ps. xxxiii. 5; xxxvi. 5-7); and those that partake of his
spirit do the same. Men may scatter in improvidence and sin, and it
tendeth to poverty. (Chap. xxi. 17.) But there is that scattereth, and yet
increaseth. The husbandman, scattering his seed "plentifully" over his
field, expects a proportionate increase. And shall not the man of God,
"dispersing abroad" the seed of godliness (Ps. cxii. 9); consecrating
his substance and influence to the Lord; ''as he has opportunity, doing
good unto all men" (Gal. vi. 10)--shall not he receive a plentiful
increase? (2 Cor. ix. 6, 11.) The men of the world hazard all in un-
certain, and often, ruinous, speculations. But in this scattering there
is no uncertainty, no speculation. Bounty is the way to plenty. Have
faith in God; and laying out for him will be laying up for ourselves.
(Chap. iii. 9, 10; xix.17.) This will be abundantly manifest, either in
a visible enlargement of earthly blessings,* or in a satisfying enjoy-
ment of a more limited portion. (Deut. xv. 10.) The reward of grace
will be given in the gracious acceptance of our God (Heb. xiii. 16),
and in a blissful reception into "everlasting habitations." (Luke, xvi. 9.
1 Tim. vi. 18, 19.)
But is the covetous worldling happier nay--is he richer--in
withholding more than is meet? (Hag. i. 4-10.) 'Seldom does he prosper
much even in the world. For God metes to men in their own measure;
and bad crops, bad debts, expensive sickness, and a variety of similar
deductions, soon amount to far more than liberal alms would have
done.'†
Still more clearly does the Lord mark his blessing and his blast in
the Spiritual dispensation. The liberal soul is made fat in the health-
ful vigour of practical godliness (Verse 17. Isa. xxxii. 8. M.R.): and
while he is the soul of blessing to others, he is watered himself with the
descending showers.‡ The Minister is refreshed by his own message
of salvation to his people. The Sunday School Teacher learns many
valuable lessons In the work of instruction. The soul of the District
Visitor or the Christian friend glows in carrying the precious name of
Jesus to a fellow-sinner. Every holy temper, every spiritual gift,
every active grace is increased by exercise; while its efficiency withers
by neglect. (Matt. xxv. 29.)
* Luke, vi. 38, into thy bosom--the sensible experience of the blessing'
† Scott in loco.
‡Isa. lviii. 10, 11. 'How often, when my heart has been cold and dead, have I been
quickened by the loving-kindness of the Lord, upon doing something kind and loving
for a fellow-creature, and more especially for a fellow-Chnstian!--VENN Life, pp. 501, 502.
126 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
26. He that withholdeth corn, the people shall curse him; but blessings
shall be upon the head of him that selleth it.
This is a piece of sacred 'political economy.' It reminds us, that
we are the stewards of the gifts of God. (2 Cor. ix. 11.) To use them
therefore for our own interest, without a due regard to our neighbour,
is unfaithfulness to our trust. (Matt. xxv. 26, 27.) A flagrant sin,
therefore, is it to withhold the very "staff of life" (Isa. iii. 1); holding
back the hand of God stretched out in bounty over our land. This
may indeed be a prudential restraint in the time of scarcity. (Gen. xli.
46-49.) Private interest may also claim a measure of consideration.
But a grinding spirit; a spirit of selfish monopoly; raising the price for
gain, with manifest suffering to the poor--will bring a piercing curse.*
And here the curse of the people may be the curse of God. For if the
cry of oppressed individuals (Exod. xxii. 22-24. Jam. v. 4)--much
more that of an oppressed people--will "enter into the ears of the
Lord of Sabaoth." (Amos, viii. 4-8.) His withering blast upon with-
holden corn has often scourged this merciless covetousness.
The point of the antithesis apparently fails, only to give stronger
security to the blessing. The curse comes directly from the people; the
blessing from above. To him that subordinates his own interest to the
public good--blessings shall be upon his head (Chap. x. 6), descending
immediately from the fountain of all grace.
Would that the cry for the "bread of life" were as earnest and uni-
versal as for the bread that perisheth! But if he be justly cursed that
withholds the one; much more he, that unfaithfully and cruelly with-
holds the other. And if blessings be upon the head of him, that selleth the
corn of this life; what is his privilege, who sells not indeed the bread
* The original implies the piercing of a sword, or dagger; as if the selfish spoiler was,
as it were, pierced through and stabbed to death by the curses of the people. --Cartwright
in loco. The system of speculating in corn, ill cruel disregard of the poor, was rebuked by
a popular preacher in the latter days of Elizabeth, in the true spirit of Latimer--'The
poor man must needs sell presently to maintain his family, to pay his rents. And that
which he sells the rich cormorant buys that hath money enough lying by him, to hoard it
up, that he may sell it dearer after. These buyers commonly dwell ill market-towns, and
wait to get into their hands all the com (if it were possible) in the country. Nay--they
will not only wait at home, but they will travel abroad into the country to those men,
whom they know have great plenty of corn to sell, and will bargain aforehand with them
for as much as they can spare, and so will prevent the market And when they have it
in their garners, they make the price at their pleasure. Surely this is a wolf of the soul.
Some others will sell at home to their poor neighbours; but they will make them pay for
their ease. They shall pay, above the market something; or else they will let them have
none. They know the poor man must need have it. He cannot buy it in the market,
because he cannot then convey it home; and knowing this his necessity, they will make
him pay above all reason. And that also which makes their sin more heinous; if they
send any corn to market, they will dress it very clean, and it shall be of their best corn.
But if they sell at home, they which buy shall be constrained to take their worst or
meanest and not so well dressed.' A godly and fruitful sermon, preached at Grantham
A.D. 1592, by FRANCIS TRIGGE.
CHAP. XI. 27. 127
of life, but freely dispenses it to his fellow-sinners! "The blessing
of him that was ready to perish shall come upon him." (Job, xxix. 13.)
The supply is abundant. Let the invitation be welcomed. (Isa. Iv. 1.)
27. He that diligently seeketh good, procureth favour; but he that seeketh
mischief, it shall come unto him:
There is no negative existence. Man is born for action, ''as the
sparks fly upward," or the stone tends downward. All of us are living
with a stupendous measure of vital activity for good or for mischief. Man
was never intended--least of all the Christian--to be idle. Our Divine
Master "went about doing good;" always in motion; active in bene-
ficence. And he is a counterfeit, who does not live after this pattern.
Usefulness is everything. We must not rest in life received. We
should feel ashamed of our depravity, that we could ever spend a day
without the great object--seeking good. Nor must we wait to have
it brought to us. We must seek it diligently, rise up early, and spring
with joy to the work. Let us awake to the conscious responsibility of
having the means of blessing our fellow-sinners in our own hands.
Every talent finds its suitable sphere, and may be "put out to usury"
with large returns. There is the practical exercise of "pure and
undefiled religion" (Jam. i. 27. Matt. xxv. 35, 36); the teaching of the if
ignorant; the instruction of the young--the rising hope of our Church
--a work of deepening interest and anxiety. Let each of us try what
we can do; and, whether it be little or much, do it prayerfully, faith-
fully, heartily; not damped by trifling hindrances (Eccles. xi. 4); nor
making the incapacity of doing much an excuse for doing nothing.
In living for others, we live for our true happiness. In seeking dili-
gently their good, we procure favour; often from man (Chap. xvi. 7)
always from God. (Chap. xii. 2. Neh. v.19.) He honours a little
strength (Rev. iii. 8), the single talent (2 Cor. viii. 12), laid out for
him. And ‘filling up every hour with some profitable labour, either of
heart, head, or hands' (as. Brainerd justly observed) 'is an excellent
means of spiritual peace and boldness before God."*
The ceaseless energy of Satan's servants in seeking mischief (Ps.
xxxvi.4) puts to shame our indifference! Yet their own mischief often
comes to them. (Esth. vii. 10. Ps. lvii. 6.) Satan himself found the
mischief that he brought upon man come unto him. (Gen. iii. 1-6, 14, 15.)
His servants often become the victims of their own delusions (2 Thess.
ii.l0, 11), with the fearful aggravation of having dragged multitudes
with them Into the pit of ruin. What then will be the fruit of my
* Life of Brainerd--Edwards' Works, 8vo. vol. iii. 148. Religious people are heavy,
and moping, and cast down, principally because they are idle and selfish-Living and
working for God and to save souls, is the only way to knowing more and more of his truth
and his salvation.'--VENN'S Lift, pp. 321, 354.
128 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
diligence? Will it be a blessing or a curse to my fellow-sinners? 0
my God! may it be from thee, and for thee!
28. He that trusteth in his riches shall fall: but the righteous shall flourish
as a branch.
Here is the cause and misery of the fall. Man seeks his rest in
God's blessings, in opposition to himself. (Jer. ix. 23, 24.) Riches are
one of his grounds of trust. (Chap. x. 15. Luke, xii. 19.) He depends
on them, as the saint upon his God. (Chap. xviii. 10, 11.) And is not
this the "denial of the God that is above?" (Job, xxxi. 24, 25, 28.) A
revolting truth indeed! such as only the heart crucified to the world,
by the cross of Christ can receive. Not that the possession of riches is
sin,* but the trusting in them. (Mark, x. 24.) Nor may it be always
wrong to improve an opportunity of increasing them. But no one
that cares for his own soul, and believes the testimony of God (Mark,
x. 25-27. 1 Tim. vi. 9, 10), will seek the opportunity; or even avail
himself of it without a plain call, and clear advantage for the glory of
God. (1 Tim. vi. 18, 19.) Let God be our satisfying portion. Let him
be supremely loved and honoured, and he will determine for us, whether
the worldly advantage be a Providence or a temptation.
Disappointment will be the certain end of this trust. (Ps. xlix.
6-12. Eccles. v. 10, 11.) "'Then we need a staff we shall find a piercing
spear. (1 Tim. vi. 10.) Or we shall fall, like the withered leaf or
blossom before the blast. (Deut. viii. 17-19.) And how many lovely
blossom has this fallen! (Mark, x. 21, 22.) Thus does "the rich man
fade away in his ways!" (Jam. 1. 10, 11.)
But the righteous is the branch; not like the leaf or blossom, easily
shaken and withered;† but abiding In the true vine: full of life and
fruit. (John, xv. 5.) There may be, as in nature's winter, times of
apparent barrenness. But the spring returns, and with it the branch
flourishes never ceasing from yielding fruit; yea--"filled with the
fruit of righteousness" (Jer. xvii. 8): the branch of "the Lord's plant-
ing; the work of his hands, that he may be glorified; "to be trans-
planted in his own best time to the other side of the river, where "the
leaf shall not fade, neither shall the fruit thereof be consumed." (Isa.
lx. 21. Ezra, xlvii. 12.) Shall not this prospect fill us with lively joy
and praise?
29. He that troubleth his own house shall inherit the wind: and the fool
shall be servant to the wise of heart.
A house at unity with itself, flourishes under the special favour of
* See the gift of God to Abraham, Gen. xxiv. 35; to David, 1 Chron. xxix. 12; to
Solomon, 2 Chron. i. 11, 12; to Job, xlii. 11, 12.
† See the same contrast, Ps. Iii 7, 8.
CHAP. XI. 30. 129
God. (Ps. cxxxiii.) But a house troubled with division, "cometh to
desolation." (Matt. xii. 25.) Often also the irreligion or ungoverned
passion of the head blights the comfort of the family. (1 Sam. xxv. 17.)
Indeed he cannot neglect his own soul without injury to his house. He
deprives them of the blessing of holy prayers and godly example;
while he troubles them with the positive mischief of his ungodliness,
and himself inherits the wind in utter disappointment. (Hos. viii. 7.)
Thus did the rebellion of Korah (Num. xvi. 32,33); the sin of Achan
(Josh. vii. 24, 25); the neglect of Eli (1 Sam. ii. 32, 33); the wicked-
ness of Jeroboam and Ahab (1 Kings, xiv. 9-11; xxi. 20--22); the per-
verseness of the re-builder of Jericho (Ib. xvi. 34) trouble their house to
its ruin. Prayerless, careless Parents! ponder the responsibility, of
bringing a curse, instead of a blessing, upon your families. What!
if your "root should be as rottenness, and your blossom go up as
dust?" (lsa. v. 24.) What! if a man, instead of building up his house,
should be 'so foolish as to mispend himself, and come to be a servant at
the last to him that is wise to get and keep his own?'* Such retribu-
tions have been known (Luke, xv. 13-15) for the abuse of the gifts of
God and the neglect of Christian responsibility.
30. The fruit of the righteous is a tree of life: and he that winneth
(taketh, marg.) souls is wise.
Here is the fruit of the flourishing branch. (Verse 28.) The whole
course of the righteous--his influence, his prayers, his instruction, his,
example--is a tree of life. What the tree of life was in paradise;
what it will be in heaven, that he is in this wilderness, fruitful (Rev.
xxii. 2, with chap. x. 11, 31, 32), nourishing (Rev .ii. 7, with chap. x. 21),
healing. (Chap. xii. 18; xv. 4.) 'And surely he, who by these means
winneth souls to righteousness and salvation, is wise indeed.'† He only,
who purchased them by his blood, can win them to himself (and who
that knows the work, but will give him all the praise!); yet has he
set apart men for the work of 'drawing souls to God, and to the love
of him; sweetly gaining, and making a holy conquest of them to
God.'‡ This was the wisdom of our Divine Master. He "taught the
people as they were able to hear it" (Mark, iv. 33); accommodating
himself to their convenience (Ib. vi. 31-34), and their prejudices (Matt.
xi. 16-19) if that he might win their souls. And truly were these
opportunities "his meat and drink." For when "wearied with this
journey, he sat down on the well," thirsting for water; far more in-
tensely did he thirst for the soul of the poor sinner before him; and,
having won her to himself, he forgot his own want In the joy of her
salvation. (John, iv. 6, 32-34.) In close walking after this pattern of
* Bishop Hall. Comp. chap, xvii, 2.
† Bishop HORNE'S Sermon on the Tree of Life ‡ Diodati
130 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
wisdom, did the great Apostle "become all things to all men, that he
might by all means gain some." (1 Cor. ix. 20-22; x.33.) God grant
that no Minister of Christ may spend a day, without labouring to win at
least one soul for heaven!
But--blessed be God!--this fruit--this wisdom--is not confined
to the Sacred calling. Do we love our Lord? Arise; let us follow in
this happy work, and he will honour us. The righteous--wife wins her
husband's soul by the wisdom, of meekness and sobriety. (1 Pet. iii. 1,2.)
The godly neighbour wins his fellow-sinner by the patient energy of
faith and love. (Jam. v. 19, 20.) "No man" in the true Church of
God "liveth unto himself." (Rom. xiv. 7.) The Christian who neglects
his brother's salvation, fearfully hazards his own. He is gone back to
his native selfishness, if he does not exhibit that "love and kindness of
God, which hath appeared unto men." We should be diamonds in the
lustre of grace, loadstones for our attractive power in winning souls.
How poor is the mitre or the crown; how debasing the wisdom of the
philosopher, the scholar, or the statesman, compared with this wisdom!
For wise indeed we must be to win souls; so hard are they to be won!
If only one soul be taken, the honour passes thought. 'A soul is a king-
dom. As many as we can bring back to God are so many kingdoms"
reconquered.'* No ambition so great, no results so glorious. "They
that be wise shall shine as the brightness of the firmament; and "they
that turn many to righteousness as the stars for ever and ever." (Dan.
xii. 3.) Every soul won by this wisdom, will be a fresh jewel in the
Saviour's crown; a polished stone in that temple, in which he will be
honoured throughout eternity.
31. Behold! the righteous shall be recompensed in the earth; much more
the wicked and the sinner.
The inspired application of this proverb infallibly expounds the
mind of God.† It is introduced to us with a special call to attention.
--Behold! Let the righteous expect from their relation to God--not
immunity, but strict recompense. (Amos, iii. 2. 1 Pet. iv. 17.) They
are under the discipline, though not under the curse, of the rod. Such
is our too high estimation of the world, conformity to its ways and
spirit, and forgetfulness our inheritance and home; that but for the
rod we should soon backslide to our stubborn wantonness. The righteous
therefore are recompensed in the earth.‡ Every perfection of God is
* Quesnel. Luke, xv.
† Pet. iv. 18, is verbatim, LXX translation of this version-So also the Syriac--'Si
justus vix vivit, impius et peccator--ubi reperietur?'
‡ Jacob, Gen. xxvii. with xxxiii. Moses and Aaron, Num. xx. 12, with Deut. iii. 23-26;
xxxiii. 48-52. Ps. xcix. 6-8. Eli, 1 Sam. ii. 27-36. David, 2 Sam. xii. 9-12. Ps. xxxii.
3, 4; xxxviii.1-5. Solomon, 1 Kings, xi. 9-18. The disobedient prophet, Ib. xiii. 21-24.
Hezekiah, Isa. xxxix. 1-7.
CHAP. XII. 1. 131
glorified in this dispensation. As a wise Father, he will not indulge
them in sin. As a holy God, he must show in them his abhorrence of
it. As a faithful God, he will make the chastisements of his rod the
means of their restoration. (Ps. lxxxix. 30-32.) But--blessed be
God--all the penal curse is subtracted. We are recompensed in the
earth; not, as we deserve to be, in hell. Nay--"we are chastened of
the Lord, that we might not be condemned with the world" (1 Cor.
xi. 32); punished here, that we might be spared for ever; recompensed
in the earth, to be made meet for heaven. (Heb. xii. 10.)
Much more then will the wicked and the sinner be recompensed.
If the children be scourged, much more the rebels. If the fatherly corrections
be so terrible, even when the child be accepted; what must be the
unmingled wrath for the willful sinner? "If the righteous scarcely be
saved; where shall the ungodly and the sinner appear?" (1 Pet. iv. 18.)
"If they do these things in the green tree, what shall be done in the
dry?" (Luke, xxiii. 31.) "Behold the day of the Lord cometh, that
shall burn as an oven; and all that do wickedly shall be as stubble."
(Mal. iv. 1.) Let the wicked tremble. Let the child of God be humbled
in the dust--"My flesh. trembleth for fear of thee, and I am afraid of
thy Judgments." (Ps. cxix. 120.)
CHAPTER XII.
1. Whoso loveth instruction loveth knowledge: but he that hateth reproof
is brutish.
Instruction, as the contrast teaches, chiefly implies discipline (Judg.
viii. 16: Jer. vi. 8).--that most needful course for acquiring spiritual
knowledge. (Ps. CXIX. 67, 71.) For so contrary is it to our proud hearts,
that the submission of the will is our only road to Christian attainment.
(Matt. xviii. 3, 4.) Yet the value of this attainment abundantly covers
the cost. (Philip. iii. 8.) A faithful Ministry, therefore, is a most
valuable blessing; and all instructive discipline may well be loved as
the way of life." (Chap. ix. 8. Ps. cxli. 5, with chap. vi. 23. Comp. Ps.
xvi. 7; xciv. 12; Jer. xxxi. 18.)
But that irritable pride, that hates reproof, as if it were an affront
to be told of our faults, argues not only want of grace (Chap. x. 17;
xv. 10), but want of understanding--brutish folly (Isa. i. 3. Jer. viii.):
like the horse, which bites and kicks at the man, who performs a pain-
ful operation upon him; tough absolutely necessary for removing a
dangerous distemper. He is surely a brute, and not a rational creature,
who has swallowed poison, and will rather suffer it to take its course,
than admit the necessary relief of medicine, lest he should be obliged
132 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
to confess his folly, in exposing himself to the need of it.'* 0 for a
teachable spirit to "sit at the feet of our Divine Master" and learn
of Him!
2. A good man obtaineth favour of the Lord: but a man of wicked devices
will he condemn.
Goodness is "the fruit of the Spirit." (Gal. v. 22.) The good man
therefore is a man filled with the Spirit. He reflects the munificent
goodness of God. (Matt. v. 44, 45.) He is not only the subject, but the
almoner, of grace; not only "enriched" with all blessings for himself,
but "unto all bountifulness" (2 Cor. ix. 11) for the service of his fellow-
creatures. As a benefactor to mankind, he commands our devoted
gratitude. But as a far richer reward (of grace indeed, not of debt)
(Luke, xvii. 10) he obtaineth favour of the Lord. (Isa. lviii. 8-11. Neh.
xiii. 14. 1 Pet. iii. 12.) What are all this world's treasures compared
with it? (Ps. iv. 6, 7.) Is it not the joy of our salvation; our soothing
mercy (Ib. cxix. 76); our covering shield (Ib. v. 12); in the near
prospect of eternity, our absorbing interest? (2 Cor. v. 9, 10.) And if
here, in a world of sin, it be "life, yea, better than life " (Ps. lxiii. 3);
what will be that unclouded sunshine; "the path of life;" "the fulness
of joy in his heavenly presence; the pleasures at his right hand for
evermore!" (Ib. xvi. 11.)
The contrast to the good man is--not the man--(which alas! may
be a child of God) (2 Sam. xi. 12-15) in whom, wicked devices are found,
but the man of these devices. He lives in them as his element; his mind
is set upon them. He contrives them. He follows them as his course
and delight. (Chap. i. 10-12; vi. 18. Isa. xxxii. 6, 7.) Instead of favour,
he "is condemned already." (John, iii.19, 20.) His sting of conscience
and the curse of God is present condemnation. (Zech. v. 3, 4. 1 Kings,
xii. 25-30; xiv. 10.) And in the great day, the All-seeing Judge
"shall be a swift witness against him!" (Mal. iii. 5. Ps. l. 16-21.)
3. A man shall not be established by wickedness: but the root of the
righteous shall not be moved.
The man of evil devices may prosper for a time, but he shall not be
established by wickedness; except as God may permit it, in the sovereignty
of his purposes, and the judicial chastening of his wrath. But how soon
was the successful treason of Abimelech (Judg. ix. 54-57); and the
Israelitish kings (1 Kings, xvi. 9, 10. 2 Kings, xv. 10-14. 2 Chron. xxi.
4, 13-15), brought to an end! Ahab strove to establish himself in
despite of the threatened curse of God. He increased his family, trained
them with care under the tutelage of his choicest nobility. And surely
one at least out of seventy might remain to inherit his throne. But
* Lawson in loco. Comp. Ps. xxxii. 9.
CHAP. XII. 4. 133
this was the vain "striving" of the worm "with his Maker." One hour
swept them all away; and not a word of the threatening fell to the
ground.* The evil device of Caiaphas also, to establish his nation by
wickedness, was the means of its overthrow. (John, xi. 49, 50; with
Matt. xxi. 43, 44.) Such is the infatuation of sin!
Firm and unshaken is the condition of the righteous. Their leaves
may wither in the blast. Their branches may tremble in the fury of
the tempest. But their root--the true principle of life-shall not be
moved. They "are scarcely saved," not without many tossings. But
they are surely saved, beyond the powers of hell to destroy. Does not
thy faith--Christian--sometimes faint in the wearisome assaults of
thy implacable enemy? Rejoice in the assurance, that it cannot fail.
(Luke, xxii. 31, 32.) Thou art "rooted and grounded" in a sure
foundation. (Eph. iii. 17. Col. ii. 7.) Let "the Lord, who is thy
strength,"- be "thy song."--'He only is my Rock and my salvation;
I shall not be greatly moved: I shall not be moved at all.' (Isa. ii. 2.
Ps. lxii. 2, 6. Mic. vii. 8. Rom. viii. 31-39.)
And how bright is this prospect for the Church! It shall not be
moved. (Ps. cxxv. 1, 2. Isa. xxvi. 1.) Triumphant is her confidence in
the day of conflict. "The gates of hell shall not prevail. No weapon
that is formed against her shall prosper." (Matt. xvi. 18. Isa. liv. 17.)
4. A virtuous woman is a crown to her husband: but she that maketh
ashamed is as rottenness to his bones.
Faithful (Chap. xxxi. 11, 12), chaste (Tit. ii. 5. 1 Pet. iii. 2), reve-
rentially obedient (Eph. v. 22, 23. 1 Pet. iii. 1, 4-6),"immovable in
affection (Tit. ii. 4), delighting to see her husband honoured, respected,
and loved; covering, as far as may be, his failings; prudent in the
management of her family (Chap. xiv. 1), conscientious in the discharge
of her domestic duties (Chap. xxxi. 27,28); kind and considerate to all
around her (lb. verses 20, 26); and as the root of all--"fearing the
Lord" (Ib. verse 30)--such is the virtuous woman; "the weaker vessel"
indeed, but a woman of strength,† with all her graces in godly energy.
She is not the ring on her husband's finger, or the chain of gold around
his neck. That were far too low. She is his crown; his brightest
ornament;‡ drawing the eyes of all upon him, as eminently honoured
and blessed. (Chap. xxxi. 23.)
Truly affecting is the contrast of a contentious (Chap. xix. 13; xxi. 9,
* 1 Kings, xxi. 21. with 2 Kings, x. 1-7. Compare the striking figures in the book of
Job. xv. 29; xx. 5-9; xxvii. 13-17.
† Heb. 1 Pet. iii. 7. with Chap. xxxi. 10. Ruth, iii. 11. gunh andreia--LXX. Strenua,
Schultens, Fortis, Geier. The etymology of areth in Greek, and virtus in Latin, gives the
meaning of manly courage. In the first ages of barbarism this was the 'primary virtue'
and therefore it naturally became the generic term of virtue.
‡ Perhaps there may be some allusion to the crown on the nuptial day. Comp. l Cor. xi. 7.
134 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
19), imperious, extravagant, perhaps unfaithful, wife; in the levity of
her conduct forgetting her proper place and subjection: seeking the
admiration of others, instead of being satisfied with her husband's
regard. This is indeed a living disease-rottenness in his bones;*
marring his usefulness; undermining his happiness; perhaps driving
him into temptation, and "a snare of the devil." Let a young woman,
in contemplating this holy union, ponder well and in deep prayer its
weighty responsibility. Will she be a crown to her husband, or one that
maketh ashamed? Will she be what God made the woman--"an help
meet" (Gen. ii. 18); or--what Satan made her--a tempter--to her
husband? (Ib. iii. 6. 1 Kings, xxi. 25. Job, ii. 9.) If she be not a crown
to him, she will be a shame to herself. If she be rottenness to his bones,
she will be a plague to her own. For what is the woman's happiness,
but to be the helper of her husband's joy? Oh! let their mutual
comfort be sought, where alone it can be solidly found, in "dwelling
together as heirs of the grace of life." (1 Pet. iii. 7.) Better never to
have seen each other, than to live together forgetful of this great end
of improving their union as an indulgent gift of God, and an important
talent for his service, and their own eternal happiness.
5. The thoughts of the righteous are right: but the counsels of the wicked
are deceit. 6. The words of the wicked are to lie in wait for blood:
but the mouth of the upright shall deliver them. 7. The wicked are
overthrown, and are not: but the house of the righteous shall stand.
The workings of good and evil are here traced to the fountain-head.
(Gen. vi. 5.) The thoughts of the righteous, "renewed in the spirit of his
mind" (Eph. iv. 23), are right. (Chap. xi. 23.) He learns to measure
everything by the unerring rule, and to lean upon his God in the
careful distrust of himself. Many indeed are his deviations. But there
is an overcoming law within, that, in despite of all oppositions, fixes
his thoughts, with delight on God and his law (Ps. cxxxix. 17, 18. Rom.
vii. 15-23), and gives to them a single bias for his service. Widely
different are the thoughts of the wicked, ripening into counsels fraught
with deceit. Such were the counsels of Joseph's brethren to deceive
their father; of Jeroboam, under a feigned consideration of the people;
of Daniel's enemies, under pretence of honouring the king; of San-
ball at, under the guise of friendship; of Haman, under the cover of
patriotism; of Herod, under the profession of worshipping the infant
Saviour.† Indeed from such "a corrupt fountain" as man's heart,
what else can be expected but "bitter waters?" (Jer. xvii. 9. Matt.
xv. 19.)
* Jerome aptly compares it to the worm eating into the heart of the tree, and destroying
it, Trapp in loco.
† See Gen. xxxvii. 18-20. 1 Kings, xii. 26-28. Dan. vi. 4-7. Neh. vi. 2. Esth. iii.8-10.
Matt. ii. 7, 8.
CHAP. XII. 5-8. 135
Then look at words--the natural organ of the thoughts. How mur-
derous were the words of Ahithophel; the trap laid for our beloved Lord;
the conspiracy against the great Apostle*--all lying in wait for blood!
(Chap. xxix. 10. Ps.xxxvii. 12, 14.) The fiercer ebullitions of hu-
manity may indeed be softened down and restrained.† But the prin-
ciples remain the same. The fiery elements only lie in slumbering
cover, and often break out, wasting the very face of society. Yet
even in this bursting storm the mouth of the upright preserves them.
(Chap. xi. 9.) The wisdom of our Divine Master was an unfailing
preservative. (Matt. xxii. 34, 35, 46.) The same mouth was a cover to
his upright disciples, with little of man's help, and much of man's
opposition; "None could gainsay or resist." (Luke, xxi. 14, 15. Acts,
iv. 13, 14.)
We cannot but wonder at the long-suffering, that suffers the wicked
thus to load the earth with such a mass of guilt and misery. Yet their
triumphing is but for a moment. (Job, xx. 5. Ps. xxxvii. 35, 36.) Look
at Haman--his deceitful counsels, his bloody words. He is overthrown,
and is not. (Esth. vii. 10.) "And shall not God avenge his own elect?"
(Luke, xviii. 7.) Their house, feeble as it often is, and brought low
(Verse 3. 1 Kings, xv. 4), shall stand. They shall "have a place in the
Lord's house" immovable here (Isa. lvi. 4, 5), and in eternity. (Rev.
iii. 12.) Yes--those, whose thoughts and words are upright, shall stand,
when all is sinking around--"They shall be mine, saith the Lord,
in that day when I shall make up my jewels." (Mal. iii. 17.)
8. A man shall be commended according to his wisdom: but he that is of a
perverse heart shall be despised.
The ordinary judgment of this world is to "put darkness for light"
(Isa. v. 20), and therefore to commend according to folly, rather than
according to wisdom. And yet even hated wisdom often carries its voice
of conviction both to conscience and judgment; and a man is com-
mended according to it. Hence the elevation of Joseph and Daniel; the
honour paid to David in private life; and the universal respect shewn
to his wise son.‡ Our Lord's wisdom was also commended, not only by
the popular voice (Matt. vii. 28, 29), but even by the testimony of his
enemies. (John, vii. 46.) the wisdom of Stephen, "making his face to
shine," overpowered his beholders with solemn awe. (Acts, vi. 10, 15.)
How thrilling will be the commendation of wisdom before the assembled
universe! (Luke, xii. 42-44.) Who will not then acknowledge the
wise choice of an earthly cross with an heavenly crown? (Matt. v. 11,
12.) Wisdom (2 Sam. xx. 18-22) then--not dignity, riches, or talent
* 2 Sam. xvii. 1-4. Luke, xx. 19-21. Acts, xxiii. 14, 15.
† See Rom. iii. 15, as the proof of universal and total depravity, verses 9, 10.
‡ Gen. xli. 39. Dan. i. 19, 20; ii. 46. 1 Sam. xvi. 18; xviii. 30. 1 Kings, iii. 28; iv. 29-34.
136 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
--brings honour. This is the Lord's commendation. It must be right.
(2 Cor. x. 18.) It will stand for eternity.
What then makes a man despised? Not his poverty, obscure cir-
cumstances, or misfortune; but perverseness of spirit (1 Kings, xii. 16.
Mal. ii. 8, 9), too proud to be taught: following a mad course to ruin.
Perverse Nabal was despised by his own family (1 Sam. xxv. 17, 25); the
prodigal by his former companions. (Luke, xv. 15, 16.) And of all
such, shame will be their present promotion (Chap. iii. 35; xi. 2; xviii.
3), their eternal doom. (Dan. xii. 2.)
9. He that is despised, and hath a servant, is better than he that honoureth
himself, and lacketh bread.
A man, who has only a competency, sufficient to have a servant
(Chap. xxx. 8, 9), and making no appearance, may be despised by his
richer neighbours. (1 Sam. xviii. 23.) But his state is better than the
proud show of rank, or family, without the means of sustaining it; or
than one humbled by Providence, yet unhumbled in heart. (Chap. xiii.
7. Luke, xiv. 11.) Nothing is so despicable as to be proud, where
there is nothing to be proud of. Sometimes from 'a shabby gentility'*
--the foolish vanity of keeping up appearances--a man debars him-
self from the common comforts of life--honouring himself, and lacking
bread. Such slaves are men to the opinion of the world! Principle is
sacrificed to pride; and men rebel against Him, who makes no mistake
in his allotments, and often appoints a descent from worldly elevation
as a profitable discipline. (Jam. i. 10, 11. Dan. iv. 32-37.) Yet it is
hard, even for the Christian, as Bunyan reminds us, 'to go down
the Valley of Humiliation, and catch no slip by the way.' We need
our Master's unworldly, elevated spirit (John, vi. 15) to make a safe
descent. Remember--"the pride of life is not of the Father, but is of
the world." (1 John, ii. 16.) "Let our moderation be known unto all
men," under the constraining recollection--"The Lord is at hand."
(Philip. iv. 5. Mark, xiii. 1, 2.) How will the dazzling glare of man's
esteem fade away before the glory of his appearing!
10. A righteous man regardeth the life of his beast: but the tender mercies
(bowels, marg.) of the wicked are cruel.
The minuteness of Scripture is one of its most valuable properties.
It shows the mind of God on many points apparently trivial. Here it
tests our profession by our treatment of the brutes. They were given
to man, as the lord of the creation, for his use, comfort, and food (Gen.
i. 28; ix. 3); not for his wantonness. A righteous man regardeth the life
of his beast, duly attends to its comfort (Gen. xxiv. 32), and never
presses it beyond its strength. (lb. xxxiii. 13, 14.) The brutal habits,
* Bp. Sanderson.
CHAP. XII. 10, 11. 137
therefore, the coarse words, inhuman blows (Num. xxii. 27), and hard
tyranny on the public roads, are disgraceful to our nature. The delight
of children in putting animals to pain for amusement, if not early
restrained, will mature them in cruelty, demoralize their whole cha-
racter, and harden them against all the sympathies of social life. For,
as Mr. Locke wisely observed, 'they who delight in the sufferings and
destruction of inferior creatures, will not be apt to be very compas-
sionate and benign to those of their own kind.'* Thus the tender
mercies of the wicked are cruel, having no right feeling (Gen. xxxvii.
26-28); only a milder exercise of barbarity (1 Sam. xi. 1, 2. Luke,
xxiii. 13-16); and usually meted out for some selfish end.†
But why is this humanity marked as the feature of a righteous man?
Because it is the image of our heavenly Father, who spreads his
cherishing wings over his whole creation. (Ps. xxxiii. 5; cxlv. 9, 16;
cxlvii. 9.) As though the field of man was too small for his goodness,
he regardeth the life of the beast. (Ib. xxxvi. 6, 7.) Witness the sanctions
of his law (Exod. xxii. 30. Deut. v. 14; xxv. 4), and the dispensations
of his judgments. (Jonah, iv. 11.) Nay, even did he by miracu-
lous interference put into the mouth of the stupid ass to plead as it
were the cause of the dumb creation. (Num. xxii. 28-30.) Must not
then his children reflect his whole image of love? (Matt. v. 44, 45.). And is not
the want of any feature of this image a mark of doubtful relationship to him?
11. He that tilleth his land shall be satisfied with bread: but he that
followeth vain persons is void of understanding.
Special honour is given to the work of tilling the land. God
assigned it to Adam in Paradise. (Gen. ii.15.) It was the employment
of his eldest son. (Ib. iv. 2.) Its origin appears to have been under
immediate Divine Teaching. (Isa. xxviii. 23-26.) In ancient times it
was the business or relaxation of kings.‡ A blessing is ensured to
* Thoughts concerning Education
† Acts, xxiv. 26, 27.-- 'We have been used to hear much of the benevolence of infidels,
and the philanthropy of deists. It is all a pretence. Self is the idol, and self-indulgcnce
the object, in the accomplishment of which they are little scrupulous about the means.
Where self is the idol, the heart is cruel. While they talk of universal charity, they regard
not the cruelty of robbing millions of the consolation of religion. While they clumour
about reform, they would with unfeeling barbarity exult in the demolitionist of venerable
establishments. While they speak of harmless gaiety and pleasure, they would treache-
rously corrupt piety, and pollute unsuspecting innocence' --Holden in loco.
‡ 2 Chron. xxvi. 10. 'Omnium rerum, ex quibus aliquid acquiritur, nihil est agricul-
tura melius, nihil uberius, nihil dulcius, nihil homine libero dignius.' Such was the judg-
ment of the Roman Moralist.--Cicero De Offic. B. I. xlii ‘Of all the arts of civilized
man, agriculture is transcendently the most essential and valuable. Other arts may contribute
to the comfort, the convenience, and the embellishment of life. But the cultivation of the
soil stands in immediate connexion with our very existence. The life itself, to whose com-
fort, and convenience, and the embellishment, other arts contribute, is by this sustained: so
that others without it can avail nothing.'--WARDLAW on Eccles. v. 9.
138 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
diligence; sometimes abundant (Gen. xxvi. 12); always such as we
should be satisfied with. (Chap. xxvii. 23-27.).
The principle applies alike to every lawful calling. Industry is
an ornamental grace (Chap. xxxi. 13-22), and a Christian obligation.
(Rom. xii. 11. 1 Thess. iv. 11.) Most ample is its reward in the work
of God. How rich is the harvest for the diligent student of the Scrip-
tures! Truly he shall be satisfied with bread. But idleness is a spot
upon our royal name, (2 Thess. iii. 10-12.) As an old writer observes
The proud person is Satan's throne, and the idle man his pillow, He
sitteth in the former, and sleepeth quietly on the latter.'* The man
therefore that followeth vain persons, instead of honest labour, proves
himself to be void of understanding, and will reap the fruits of his folly
(Chap. xiii. 20. Acts, v. 36, 37)--perhaps throughout eternity.†
12. The wicked desireth the net of evil men: but the root of the righteous
yieldeth fruit.
Man is always restless to press onwards to something not yet
enjoyed. The Christian reaches forth to higher privileges and in-
creasing holiness. (Philip. iii, 12-14.) The wicked emulate each other in
wickedness; and if they see evil men more successful than themselves,
they desire their net (Ps. x. 8-10. Jer. v. 26-28); to discover their plans,
in order to imitate them. Not satisfied with the honest "gain of god-
liness," they desire a net, in which they may grasp richer treasures of
this world's vanity. (1 Tim. vi. 10.) The history of the Church strongly
illustrates this energy of sin; Infidelity and Popery; one net following
another with more crafty device. Such is the root of evil, fraught with
destruction. But the root of the righteous yieldeth fruit--true, solid,
abundant fruit; not always visible, but always acceptable. (Heb. xiii.
15, 16.) Dependence on Christ is the source of this blessing; neces-
sary in order to fruit,‡ and never failing to produce it. (John, xv. 5.)
The spiritual branches ‘are nourished and increased by the living root
of God's grace and blessing.'§
13. The wicked is snared by the transgression of his lips: but the just shall
come out of trouble.
We have seen the intense desire of the wicked to snare others in the
net. Here he is snared himself: The transgresions of his lips become
* SWINNOCK'S Christian Man's Calling, Part I. 346.
† The LXX gives a curious addition to this verse, not without some wholesome applica-
tion to young votaries of pleasure--'He that is sweet in wine-parties shall leave behind dis-
grace in his strong places.'
‡ John, xv. 4. Rom. vii: 4. It was the remark of a. venerable relative of the Writer's,
who was never suspected of enthusiasm--'As surely as the vine-branch can have no
powers, independent of the root; so surely cannot the Christian think, act, or live, as such,
but only so far as he derives his abilities from the stock, on which he is engrafted.'--The
Rev. WILLIAM JONES' (Nayland) Enquiry upon the Spring, p.36. § Diodati
CHAP. XII. 13, 14. 139
the snare of his life. (Chap. xviii. 7. Ps.lxiv. 8.) 'Many have felt the
lash upon their backs for the want of a bridle on their tongues.'*
Such a snare were the lips of the Amalekite bringing the tidings of
Saul's death. Expecting a reward, he found his death. (2 Sam. iv.
9-12.) Such also was Adonijah's deceitful petition (1 Kings, ii. 22,23);
the hypocritical loyalty of Daniel's enemies (Dan. vi. 7, 8, 24); the
fearful imprecation of the devoted nation. (Matt. xxvii. 25.) The lips of
the wicked miss their mark, and become the instruments of his ruin.
(Ps. xxxv. 8.)
On the other hand, the godly exercise of the lips often delivers out
of the trouble, into which the wicked rush headlong. (Jer. xxvi. 12-16.)
The noble confession of Caleb and Joshua brought them safe out of the
trouble which was frowning upon their rebellious brethren. (Num. xiv.
6-10, 24.) And even when the just "are overtaken with" a transgression
of the lips, still their faithful God makes a difference. He will not
indeed wink at sin in his own children. (Amos, iii. 2.) But while his
covenant provides stripes for their transgressions, it ensures deliverance
in the end. (Ps. lxxxix. 32, 33.) Thus a presumptuous confidence is
restrained; and a humbling, self-abasing, tender confidence is esta-
blished.
14. A man shall be satisfied with good by the fruit of his mouth; and the
if recompense of a man's hands shall be rendered unto him.
We have seen the snare of the tongue. Here is its blessing, not to
others (Chap. x. 20, 21) only, but to ourselves. Have we the mark of
"the saints of God, to speak of the glory of his kingdom?" (Ps. cxlv.
10, 11.) What a dignity will this grand subject give to our conver-
sation! What a preservative from that frivolous "talk of the lips,
which tendeth only to penury!" (Chap. xiv. 23.) What a tone of
elevation to our whole character! (Mal. iii. 16,17.) How shall we be
satisfied with good by the fruit of our consecrated lips! (Chap. xiii. 2;
xv: 23.) When our God becomes, not our visitor, but our inmate, the
fruit of our mouth is no constrained effort, but "out of the abundance of
heart"
From the devotedness of the lips flows the ready exercise of the
hands. Every member of the body is his purchased possession. (1 Cor.
vi. 19, 20.) And here also is a sure recompense. For who ever served
God "for nought?" (Job, i. 9, 10.) " He is not unrighteous to forget
our work and labour of love. A cup of cold water given to a disciple
in his name shall in no wise lose its reward." (Heb. vi. 10. Matt. x.42.)
The meanest exercise of love will be abundantly and eternally recom-
pensed.
* Henry in loco.
140 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
15. The way of a fool is right in his own eyes: but he that hearkeneth
unto counsel is wise.
The fool's conceit hinders his wisdom. (Job, xi. 12.) 1 discou-
raging case! (Chap. xxvi. 12.) His way is right in his own eyes. (Chap.
xvi. 2.) He needs no direction, asks no counsel, is stubborn in his own
way, because it is his own (Judg. ii. 19), and follows it to his own ruin.
His chief danger is his security. (Deut. xxix. 19.) There may be no
flagrant sin, nothing that degrades him below the level of his respect-
able neighbour. He has no doubt of heaven. Instead of the way
being so narrow, that few find it (Matt. vii. 14); in his view it is so
easy of access, that few miss it. Thus all his religion is self-delusion.
(Chap. xiv. 12.) 0 my God! save me from myself--from my own
self-deceitfulness.
What a proof of wisdom is a teachable spirit! What an excellent
means of increasing it! (Chap. i. 5.) Was not Moses wiser for heark-
ening to Jethro's counsel (Exod. xviii. 14-24); and David for listening to
the restraining advice of Abigail? (1 Sam. xxv. 23-32.) How precious
then to the child of God is the office of the Divine Counsellor! (Isa. ix.
6.) How wise the reverential faith, that hearkens to his counsel! Whom
does he ever disappoint? Whom does he "upbraid?" (Jam. i. 5.)
16. A fool's wrath is presently (in that day, marg.) known: but a prudent
man covereth shame.
Let the tongue be ever under discipline. An unbridled tongue is
the proof of an unrenewed heart. (Ib. ver. 26; iii.2.) But specially
never let it be loose in a moment of wrath. How readily is the fool
known by his wrath! He has no command of himself. On the first
rising, he bursts out with an ungovernable impulse. (Chap. xiv. 17, 29;
xxv. 28.) Truly is wrath called shame. For is it not a shame, that
unruly passions should, as it were, trample reason under foot, disfigure
even the countenance, and subjugate the whole man to a temporary
madness? (Dan. iii. 19.) What else were Saul's unseemly sallies
against David and Jonathan;1 Jezebel's boiling rage against Elijah;2
Nebuchadnezzar's unreasonable decree to kill his wise men, because
they could not interpret his vision?3
Yet far more painful is the sight of the fool's wrath in the children
of God; in Moses, the meekest of men;4 in David, "the man after
God's own heart;5 in "Asa, whose heart was perfect with God all his
days."6 Nothing more excites the scoff of the ungodly, than the sight
of these gross ebullitions, which Divine grace ought to restrain. But
1 1 Sam. xviii. 10, 11; xix. 9-11; xx 30-34. 2 1 Kings, xix. 1,2
3 Dan. Ii. 12,13. 4 Num. xx. 10, 11.
5 1 Sam. xxv. 21, 22. 6 2 Chron. xvi. 10.
CHAP. XII. 16-18. 141
what is "man in his best estate," left to himself! animated with the
spirit of a wild beast! in that day he becomes an object of shame.
(Chap. xvii. 12.)
Self-controul, that covers the shame, and represses the rising fermen-
tation, is true Christian prudence. (Chap. xxix. 11. Judg. viii. 2, 3.) Even
as a matter of policy, it is most commendable. (1 Sam. x. 27.) But as
a gracious principle, it is indeed a victory more honourable than the
martial triumph (Chap. xvi. 32; xix. 11; xx. 3); not only subduing
our own spirit, but melting the hardness of our adversary. (Rom. xii.
18-21.)
Do we feel our temper at any time ready to rise? Cry instantly to
Him, who quiets the storm. (Matt. viii. 26. Ps. lxv. 7.) Keep before
our eyes his blessed example, "who, being reviled, reviled not again"
(1 Pet. ii. 23); and be what we behold. (2 Cor. iii. 18.)
17. He that speaketh truth sheweth forth righteousness: but a false witness
deceit.
This proverb may appear almost too obvious to need remark. But
the Scripture not only sets out what is deep and searching, but stamps
the every-day truths with the seal of God for our more reverential
obedience. Yet there is here more than lies on the surface. It might
seem enough for a faithful witness to speak truth. But no--he must
shew forth righteousness; what is just, as well as what is true. The
best-intentioned purpose must not lead us to conceal what is necessary
to bring the cause to a righteous issue; "rejoicing not in iniquity, but
rejoicing in the truth." (1 Cor. xiii. 6.)
A false witness does not always deal with open lying, but with deceit
--truth misrepresented, concealed, and thus turned into falsehood.
Thus was Doeg a false witness against the priests. He states the fact,
but by suppression of circumstances gives a false impression. (1 Sam.
xxi. 1-7; xxii. 9, 10.) The false witness condemned our Lord by a
similar perverse misconstruction of his words. (Matt. xxvi. 60, 61.
John, ii. 19-21.) Oh, cherish a deep abhorrence of deceit in all its
forms and beginnings. (Chap. xiii. 5. Ps. cxix. 163.) Christian obliga-
tion and privilege alike forbid it. (Eph. iv. 22, 25.) Truth and deceit
are not mere moral qualities, but the distinctive mark of the two classes
of the world. Look to it, that the broad stamp of truth and righteousness
brings out the testimony--"Behold! an Israelite indeed, in whom is
no guile." (John, i. 47.)
18. There is that speaketh like the piercings of a sword: but the tongue of
the wise is health.
Who has not felt the piercings of false, unkind, inconsiderate
speeches? How keenly have the servants of God suffered from this
142 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
sword!* Many will speak daggers without compunction, who would
be afraid to use them. Surely it was not without reason, that our Lord
charges an angry word or tongue with the guilt of murder. (Matt. v.
21, 22.) The source of this mischief demonstrably shews its malignity.
"The tongue is a fire, a world of iniquity, and it is set on fire of hell."
(Jam. iii. 6.) Indeed, ‘a great and almost incredible calamity is it,
that man, who was created for humanity, should be so corrupted, that
no animal in the world is more ferocious and malignant.'†
Yet is the little member no less powerful to heal than to wound.
It gives instant healing to the piercings of the sword (Judg. vii. 1-3.
1 Sam. xix. 1-7; xxv. 32, 33), even to the very wound, which it may
have constrained to inflict.‡ But it is the tongue of the wise, that is health.
Its unrestrained and unregulated vent might be hurtful. Wisdom is
the guiding principle; not a loose loquacity, but a delicate discriminat-
ing tact, directing us, how, when, what, to whom to speak; sometimes
repressing; sometimes quickening: "the tongue of the learned, to
speak a word in season to him that is weary." (Isa. 1.4.) This is no
negative responsibility. It is not enough, that there is no poison in
the tongue. It must be healing, not only purified from "corrupt com-
munication," but "ministering grace unto the hearers." (Eph. iv. 29.)
What need have we of the "indwelling of the word in all wisdom,"
that in "teaching and admonishing one another, our speech may be
always with grace," wholesome and edifying, to the glory of our com-
mon Lord! (Col. iii. 16; iv. 6.)
19. The lip of truth shall be established for ever; but a lying tongue is but
for a moment.
How important is it to eye eternity in all our words! Truth would
then be seen in its permanent value and results. The profession may
bring us into present trouble. (Matt. x. 32-39.) But its lip shall be
established for ever. Who will gainsay the martyr's testimony--'Be of
good comfort, Master Ridley; play the man? We shall this day light
such a candle by God's grace in England, as, I trust, shall never be put
out.'§ The lip also of the faithful minister of God is established for ever.
For "whatsoever he binds and looses on earth, shall be bound and
loosed in heaven." (Matt. xviii. 18. John, xx. 23.)
Truth then is eternal. Lying, even if it suits our purpose as an
easy escape from difficulty (a miserable--short-lived policy!) is but
for a moment. (Ps. Iii. 4, 5.) Nay--should it escape detection for a
whole life; yet with eternity before us, what a moment is that! And
* Job, xiii. 4; xvi. xix. David, Ps. xlii. 10; lii. 2. Jeremiah, xviii. 18-23. Lam. iii. 14.
Paul, 2 Cor. x. 1, 2, 10; xiii. 2, 3.
† DAILLE on Col. iii. 8.
‡ Ps. cxli. 5. Comp. the healing counsel, 2 Cor. ii. 6-11, with 1 Cor. V.
§ Foxe, vii. 550.
CHAP. XII. 19, 20. 143
what will be the relief of this short moment under the tremendous
wrath of God? (Rev. xxi. 8; xxii. 15.) God's own people have always
found this momentary escape from trouble to be followed by shame and
confusion.* The lie of the Gibeonites ended in their confusion (Josh.
ix.) The fruit of Gehazi's lie was the pleasure for a moment. The
shame endured under the end. (2 Kings, v. 25-27.) Under the same
withering curse, the lying tongue of false teachers passes away (2 Tim.
iii. 6-9); while truth remains constant. 'None are so visibly blasted
as those who make no conscience of a lie.'† Children! ponder it well
--Eternity is at once the gain of truth, and the cost of a lie. (Ps. xv.
1, 2. Rev. xxi. 8.) But oh! the infinite difference between heaven and
hell!
20. Deceit is in the heart of them that imagine evil: but to the counsellors
of peace is joy. 21. There shall no evil happen to the just; but the
wicked shall be filled with mischief. 22. Lying lips are abomination to
the Lord: but they that deal truly are his delight.
The principle of deceit is here traced to its fountain--the heart.
How early it is found there, the first lispings of infancy too plainly
prove. A lie is ready upon the child's lips, when the temptation is
presented to it; though nothing is to be gained by it, but the hateful
pleasure of sin. Yet though deceit is the native fruit of the heart, all are
not equally ready in imagining evil--"inventors of evil things." (Chap.
xiv. 22. Mic. ii. 1.) The principle is not equally active, or equally
developed in all. But when it does operate, the wicked are filled with
mischief, and reap the full harvest in disappointment and ruin. (Esth.
vii. 10. Job, v. 12, 13.)
How frightful also is it to remark the outward expression of deceit
in lying lips! Diversified indeed are its forms--falsehood, exaggera-
tion, colouririg, wilful perversion, wrong impressions produced or
encouraged.‡ No part of Christian Education is more important, than
the training of children in the deepest reverence for the simplicity of
truth.--Dr. Johnson has well observed, that the prevalence of falsehood
arises more from carelessness about truth, than from intentional lying.
If a child was relating what he had seen in the street, 'do not'--he
* Abraham, Gen. xx. 1-16. Isaac, xxvi. 7-10. Peter, Matt. xxvi. 69-75.
† Matthew Henry's Life, chap. xiii.
‡ 'As one common but most responsib1e instance of this,' (observes Mr. Goode in his
va1uable Sermon on this text), 'is instructing servants to say- 'Not at home.' Great is their
guilt, who thus tempt a fellow-creature to litter a palpable untruth for the paltry conve-
nience of a master. No Christian servant will consent to defile his conscience by acqui-
escing in any such iniquity. 'It is a matter of common consent, and everyone understands
it.' Be it so--it is untruth still, and lying lips are abomination to the Lord. Moreover, if it
be so generally understood, and admitted without offence; then how much more honourable
and Christian to say at once--'We are engaged. We wish to be alone!' Who that
accepts one excuse will not readily accept the other?' Comp. Ecclus. vii. 13.
144 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
advises--'suffer him to say, that he had seek it out of one window, if
he has seen it out of another.' Let them know that every wilful devia-
tion from strict accuracy bears the stamp of lying lips, which are (and
let the sentence be pondered, not only by children, but by all*) an
abomination to the Lord. (Chap. vi. 16, 17. Pi. v. 6.) With this sin were
Ananias and Sapphira hurried into eternity. (Acts, v. 1-10.) The
wilful liar proves his parentage (John, viii. 44), and will be classed in
eternity with all that is hateful. And fearfully will a righteous God,
even in forgiving his own child, "take vengeance of his inventions."†
Here however is peace--the contrast to evil inventions: and, instead
of that sorrow which is connected with deceit (Judg. ix. 2 Sam. xv. 6;
xviii. 15), to them that "seek and pursue it," there is joy. Thus doubt-
less did Jonathan and Abigail rejoice in the success of their good
counsels. (1 Sam. xix. 4-7; xxv. 23-32.) And most responsible is the
obligation of Christians to be counsellors of peace, breathing their
Master's spirit of peace and love. (Col. iii. 14, 15.) A blessed office
indeed is it! pouring in the balm of peaceful counsel upon irritated
feeling. They will mediate, explain, and cover with considerate pru-
dence all the little causes of excitement. They will bring out the
strong and unchangeable obligations of Christian love. They will
seize the happy moment of softening to rekindle confidence. Happy
indeed are they, in the joy of their own conscience, in their dignity as
"the children of God" (Matt. v. 9), in the rich harvest of their Christian
exertions. (Jam. iii. 17, 18.) Instead of being filled with mischief, no
evil shall happen to them. Evil, whenever permitted, will become their
good. (Rom. viii. 28.) They shall be supported in it,1 delivered out
of it,2 sanctified by it.3 Its sharpness will pierce their corruptions.
Its bitterness will wean them from the creature. Its furnace
will mould them into the image of their Lord. Thus, what to the
ungodly would be a mass of sorrow, to the just becomes a world of
blessing.
Freedom from deceit is their broad mark in the promiscuous crowd.
They not only speak, but they deal truly: uniform in light and life.
(John, iii. 21.) They bear the image of a God of truth, and he delights
in them. (Chap. xi. 1.) "They are children that cannot lie. So he is
their Saviour." (Isa. lxiii. 8; xxxiii. 15, 16.)
23. A prudent man concealeth knowledge: but the heart of fools proclaimeth
foolishness.
Knowledge is a talent to be wisely, not promiscuously, communicated.
* Lavater in loco.
† Ps. xcix. 8. Comp. the example of Jacob, Gen. xxvii. with xxxvii. 31-35. David's
He Punished with such dreadful results, 1 Sam. xxi. 2; xxii. 18, 19.
1 1 Cor. x. 18. 2 Cor. xii. 7-10. 2 Verse 13. Ps. xxxiv. 19. 3 Ps. cxix. 67, 71.
CHAP. XII. 24. 145
(Chap. ix. 9. Matt. vii. 6.) In Scriptural knowledge indeed there must be
no concealment of fundamental truths (Ps. xl. 9, 10. 1 Cor. xv. 3); or in
declaring on suitable occasions, or to suitable persons, the gracious
dealings of God to our own souls. Much harm would be done by
obtruding upon the ungodly those interior matters of Christian experi-
ence, which we are invited to tell to those "that fear God." (Ps. lxvi.
16.) Every truth is not therefore fitting for every person, or for every
time. (Eccles. iii. 7. Amos, v. 1.3.) Our blessed Lord charged upon his
disciples the prudent concealment of knowledge, after his example, till a
more favourable season. (Matt. xvi. 20; xvii. 9. John, xvi. 12.) The
Apostle concealed his knowledge for fourteen years, and even then men-
tioned it reluctantly, to vindicate his own rightful claims of Apostle-
ship. (2 Cor. xii. 1-6.) Elihu, though "full of matter," and longing to
give vent, yet prudently concealed his knowledge, till his elders had
opened his way. (Job, xxxii. 6, 18, 19.)
Circumstances also may sometimes prudently dictate concealment.
Abraham spared the feelings of his family, and cleared his own path, by
hiding the dreadful message of his God.* Joseph concealed his kindred
for the discipline of his brethren (Gen. xlii. 7); Esther from a prudent
regard to consequences to herself. (Esth. ii. 10.) Nothing can justify
speaking contrary to the truth. But we are not always obliged to tell
the whole truth. Jeremiah answered all that he was bound to speak;
not all that he might have spoken. (Jer. xxxviii. 24-27.) In all these
cases "the wise man's heart will discern both time and judgment"
(Eccles. viii. 5. Chap. xv. 2); cherishing at once a sound judgment and
an ardent love for truth.
The fool however everywhere proclaims his foolishness. (Eccles. x. 3,
12-14.) He imprudently opens his heart. (Judg. xvi. 17.) He is
dogmatical in dispute, when wiser men are cautious. He is teaching,
when he ought to take the learner's place; his self-confidence proclaiming
his emptiness. (1 Tim. vi. 3,4.) Self-distrust and humility are most
important, to enable us to improve the gifts of God for his glory.
24. The hand of the diligent shall bear rule: but the slothful shall be
under tribute.
Diligence is the ordinary path to advancement. Pharaoh required
men of activity for the charge of his cattle (Gen. xlvii 6); Solomon for
the administration of his kingdom. (1 Kings, xi. 28.) This was Joseph's
road to bearing rule. (Chap. xxii. 29.) But if it does not raise in the
world it will command influence in its own sphere. The faithful
steward is made ruler over his Lord's household. (Matt. xxiv. 45-47.)
The active trader bears rule over many cities. (lb. xxv. 21.) Diligence
* Gen. xxii. 1-7. Comp. Moses' conduct, Exod. iv. 18.
146 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
therefore is not a moral virtue separate from religion, but rather a
component part of it. (Rom. xii. 11.)
The slothful spirit brings a man under bondage. 'He is perpetually
needing counsel of others, and hanging upon it.'* In the grand concern,
he is the slave of his own lust; in the worst service, under the most
degrading tyranny; "wicked" because slothful," and "cast out and
condemned as an unprofitable servant." (Matt. xxv. 26-30.) Christian
Professor! tremble at this responsibility of doing nothing, of living for
thine own indulgence; neglecting the great object of life--the only
object that tells upon eternity.
25. Heaviness in the heart of man maketh it stoop: but a good word
maketh it glad.
Heaviness in heart is a palsy, that maketh it stoop, as under an
intolerable burden. (Gen. xxxvii. 33, 35; xlii. 38.) And gladdening
indeed is a good word of sympathy and comfort! (Neh. i. 4, with ii.I-8.)
'This maxim therefore points out an easy and cheerful way of being
useful.'† Here we realize the precious efficacy of the Gospel. How
full is it of these good words! Is it distress for sin? "Come unto me,
all ye that labour and are heavy laden; and I will give you rest."
(Matt. xi. 28.) Is it the pressure of affliction? How good is the word,
"that speaketh unto us as unto children;" warning us neither to
"despise, nor to faint, under the chastening of the Lord!" (Heb. xii. 5.)
Is it despondency? Oft is the good word, repeated--"Fear not." (Isa.
xli. 10, 14; xliii. 1.) Know we not the voice--"It is I; be not
afraid?" (Matt. xiv. 27.) Human sympathy may give temporary relief.
But 'that was the grace, softer than oil, sweeter than roses, which flows
from the Saviour's lips into the sinner's wounds; and being poured into
the contrite heart, not only heals, but blesses it, yea, and marks it out
for eternal blessedness. Oh! how sweet is the voice of pardon to a soul
groaning under the burden of sin!'‡ David, but for these good words,
"would have perished in his afiliction." (Ps. cxix. 92.) What beside
made glad the jailor's stooping heart.' (Acts, xvi. 28-34.) Precious
indeed is the privilege, to strengthen the weak hands "with a good word
of God" (Isa. xxxv. 3, 4); to take the chair by the mourner's side, and
“comfort him with the same comfort, wherewith we ourselves are com-
forted of God." (2 Cor. i. 4.) Precious is the ministry of the gospel,
commissioned with the gladdening word to the heavy of heart. (Job, xxxiii.
23-26. Isa. xl. 1, 2.) Yet more precious the office of the Beloved
Saviour, "gifted with the tongue of the learned," and called with the
unction of the Spirit, for the express purpose of "comforting them that
* Dathe in loco. 'The slothful shall become subservient to others.'--FRENCH and
SKINNER'S Translation of Proverbs, with notes, 1831. Comp. Chap. x. 4; xi. 29.
† Scott.
‡ LEIGHTON'S Meditations on Ps. cxxx. 4.
CHAP. XII. 26. 147
mourn." (Isa. 1.4; lxi. 1, 2.) How tenderly did he perform this office
let his last sermon testify. (John, xiv.-xvi.) See then the provision
for joy, so rich, so free, so ready. Beware "lest Satan should get
advantage" by a brooding spirit. (2 Cor. ii. 7.) Think on thy obligation
and thy privilege to "rejoice in the Lord." (Philip. iii. 1; iv. 4.)
26. The righteous is more excellent, (abundant, marg.) than his neighbour:
but the way of the wicked seduceth him.
God and the world are at issue in their estimate of his own people.
The righteous is low indeed in man's scale. But place him beside the
wicked (Mark, vi. 20)--even upon the same level (2 Kings, iii. 14),
and his superiority is acknowledged. More excellent is he in character,
more abundant in privilege, than his neighbour, be his external advantage
and endowments ever so great. Look at his birth, a child of God;1
his dignity, a king;2 his connections, a member of the family of
heaven;3 his inheritance, a title to both worlds;4 his food, the bread
of everlasting life;5 his clothing, the righteousness of the Saviour;6
his prospects, infinite and everlasting joy.7 Mark the honor which his
God puts upon him. He is the fulness of Christ;8 "the temple of the
Holy Ghost,"9 throwing the splendour of Solomon's temple into the
shade.10 Angels, while "beholding the face of their Father which is
in heaven," count it an honour to "minister to him as an heir of salva-
tion."11 How can his neighbour's most exalted privileges compare with
his? Contrast his high walk with God in "the holiest;"12 his heavenly
profession before men (Philip. ii. 15); his Christian victory over himself
(Chap. xvi. 32. Matt. xvi. 24), with his grovelling neighbour. For
'what an unprofitable drudgery is the service of the greatest prince in
the world, in comparison with the work of a poor Christian, that liveth
in communion with God!* And then--passing to the last contemplation,
--see him in the full enjoyment of his present prospects, "carried by
the angels into Abraham's bosom;”13 "entering into the joy of his
Lord;"14 welcome before the assembled world;15 then fixed on the
throne of his Lord16 to be with him,17 near him,18 like him,19 for ever
--what are his neighbour's prospects, but as hell compared, with
heaven?20 Can we doubt this testimony--The righteous is more
excellent than his neighbour?
1 John, i. 12,13. 2 Rev. i. 6. 3 Heb. xii. 22, 23.
4 Matt. v. 5. I Cor. iii. 22, 23. 5 John, vi. 35-58. 6 Isa. lxi. 10.
7 lsa. xxxv. 10. 8 Eph. i. 23. 9 I Cor. vi. 19.
10 Isa. lxvi. 1,2. 11 Matt. xviii.10. Heb. i. 14. 12 Heb. x. 19, 20.
13 Luke, xvi. 22. 14 Matt. xxv. 21. 15 Ib. v.34.
16 Rev. iii. 21. 17 John, xiv. 3. 18 Rev. vii. 15.
19 I John, iii. 2. 20 Prov. xiv 32. Matt. xxv. 41.
* MANTON on Ps, cxix. 45. 'God knows how much rather I would be the obscure tenant
of a lath-and-plaster cottage, with a lively sense of my interest in a Redeemer, than the
most admired object of public notice without it.'--COWPER'S Private Correspondence.
148 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
But we must not decide this character according to the standard of
this world. It includes all that is meant in that important but despised
word--conversion. What is commonly meant by amendment comes
very far short of it. That is only an external work. Conversion is an
inward change. That is only partial. This is total. That concerns
only the outward conduct, and leaves the heart untouched. But what-
ever good may be in it of moral restraint, the principles are to be found
with a far higher standard and tone in the inward change, which
reaches the heart, infuses there a new and heavenly principle, and turns
it to God by Christ, as its centre of rest, peace, and holiness. Here
alone is the real excellence, bearing the stamp of God, and commanding
often the reluctant admiration of the world.
But though wicked Balaam acknowledged the higher excellence of
the righteous, his own way seduced him? to his own ruin. (Num. xxxi. 8.)
Saul's testimony to David, and Joash's reverence for Elisha, still left
them seduced by the power of their own corruptions. (Isa. xliv. 20.)
Always is this way more pleasant to flesh, and therefore more generally
approved. Hence is the wicked easily seduced with the appearance of
the right way, and blinded to his own ruin. (1 Sam. xxiv. 17. 2 Kings,
xiii. 14, with 11.) Let me weigh my path most carefully--With whom
am I walking? In what way?
27. The slothful man roasteth not that which he took in hunting: but the
substance of a diligent man is precious.
How miserable and ruinous is the habit of sloth! It is a dead
palsy, under God only to be checked by early discipline and constant
resistance. Sometimes however the man makes a vigorous and suc-
cessful effort. He rouses himself even to the toil of hunting. But his
fit of exertion is soon over. He cannot be at the pains of preparing his
prey for his repast. (Contrast Gen. xxvii. 30, 31.) He leaves it to
others, perhaps even to his dogs; and quickly relapses into his beloved
habit.
Is not this a graphical picture of the slothful professor? He will
take up religion under a strong excitement. He begins a new course,
and perhaps makes some advances in it. But “having no root in
himself," his good frames and resolutions wither away. (Matt. xiii. 20,
21.) The continued exertion required (Ib. xi. 12); the violence that
must be done to his deep-rooted habits; the difficulties in his new path;
the invitations to present ease; the delusive hope of better success at a
future day--all these hang as a weight upon his efforts. So that, not
knowing the only secret of resistance to his powerful enemy-earnest
and persevering prayer; he grows slack, and with just life enough to
feel himself dying, he sits down upon his little attainments; thus
virtually throwing them away; content to lose heaven itself, if it is to
CHAP. XII. 28. 149
be gained at such a cost. (Chap. xiii. 4; xxi. 25; xxvi.15.) What use
--professor! Is it to make an effort, if you do not seek the grace of
perseverance? No present blessing can be enjoyed without grasping
something beyond. (Philip. iii. 12-14.) Godliness without energy loses
its full reward. (2 John, 8.) The enfeebling influence of doubts and
ears often arises, not from a deep feeling of corruption, but from an
indolent habit, and a want of a realized conviction of the infinite stake
of the soul, calling for instant and persevering labour.
Real substance (Chap. viii. 21; xv. 6) is the reward of the diligent;
precious, as the fruit of his toll; and increasing by his unwearied
exercise. (Matt. xxv. 16, 28, 29.) Live then—Christian--more in thy
work--"spend and be spent" in it. Thy privileges will be enlarged.
Thy substance will be enriched. Thy God will be honoured. (John xv.
8. Philip. i. 11.) Thy crown will be secured. (2 Pet. i. 11.)
28. In the way of righteousness of life; and in the pathway hereof there
is no death.
Righteousness is here crowned with "life and immortality."* So
clearly did the wise man see beyond this dying world; and catch the
sun-beams of glory "brought to light by the Gospel!" (2 Tim. i. 10.)
The way of righteousness is the way of God's salvation (John, xiv. 6), in
which his children come to him; the way of his commandments, in
which they love to walk with him. (Isa. xxxv. 8.) In this way is
present life (Chap. viii. 35; x. 16), "a passage from death unto life"
eternal. (John, v. 24.) Enjoying the sense of God's love; confiding in
his unspeakable, satisfying friendship; consecrating ourselves in spiritual
devotedness to his service; anticipating the fulness of his eternal joy--
this is life indeed for eternity.† For where the life of grace is possessed,
"the life of glory is secured. It is "hid with Christ in God" (Col. iii. 3);
so that--"Because I live, ye shall live also." (John, xiv. 19.)
In this pathway, there is no death. (Ib. viii. 51; xi. 25.) The curse
of the first death hath passed away. (Rom. v. 21.) The power of "the
second death cannot hurt." (Rev. ii. 11; xx. 6.) "The body is dead
because of sin." (Rom. viii. 10; v. 12.) Yet it "sleeps," rather than
dies, under the care of Jesus. (Acts, vii. 60. 1 Thess. iv. 14.) "Surely
the bitterness of death is passed." Now, "0 death! where is thy
sting?" (1 Cor. xv. 55.) Sheathed in the body of Jesus.
And is not this cheering privilege, this glorious hope, an infinite
recompense for all the crosses of the way? Contrast the was of
sin, full of death (Rom. viii. 6. Eph. ii. 1. 1 Tim. v. 6), ending in death
eternal. (Matt. vii. 13. Rom. vi. 21.) Then wonder at the multitudes
* 'In the path (If righteousness is life; yea--the highway is immortality.'--MSS. Trans-
lation of Proverbs, by the late Dr. GOOD. See also Schultens.
† ‘Those who seek after righteousness preserve, and increase in themselves the spiritual
life of God's grace, and the presence of his Spirit, and so attain to life everlasting,'--Diodati.
150 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
"loving death." (Chap. viii. 36.) Pity, pray for them, "pull them out
of the fire." (Jude, 23.) Adore the riches of that Sovereign grace, which
has brought you to righteousness, to life, to salvation.
CHAPTER XIII.
1. A wise son heareth his father's instruction: but a scorner heareth not
rebuke.
SUCH a wise son in filial reverence was Solomon himself. (Chap. iv. 3, 4.)
The connection however of instruction with rebuke mainly points us to
that instruction, which is obtained by discipline.* Here then we turn
to our great Exemplar. Was not he a wise son, when his ears were
opened to his Father's discipline? (Isa. 1. 5.) How did he con-
descend to this painful school to "learn obedience!" (Heb. v. 8.)
How good is it in our daily practical walk to keep our eyes steadily
fixed on him, followihg him closely in this child-like habit!
But the proud spirit does not easily bend. He has never heard his
father's instruction with deference. Soon therefore he takes "the scorner's
seat." (Ps. i. 1.) When rebuke becomes necessary, he hears it not (Chap.
xv. 12); turns from it to his own course at the extreme point from
wisdom (Chap. xii. 1; xv. 5), on the brink of ruin (Chap. xv. 10;
xxix. 1); carrying about him a fearful mark of reprobation! (1 Sam.
ii. 25.) Let me remember--If I am reluctant to hear the faithful
rebuke of men, I am prepared to resist the rebuke of God. And how
soon may this stubborn revolt bring his long-suffering to an end
(2 Chron. xxxvi. 16), and my soul to destruction! (Jer. v. 3. Zeph.
iii. 2.) 'From hardness of heart, and contempt of thy word and com-
mandment, Good Lord, deliver me.'†
2. A man shall eat good by the fruit of his mouth: but the soul of the
transgressors shall eat violence.
The first clause has been lately before us. (Chap. xii. 14.) But let
it ever be fixed in our minds, that, if the Christian is walking with
God, his tongue will pour out godly communication. Whatever be
the effect on others, at least his own soul will be warmed, refreshed and
edified. He shall eat good by the fruit of his mouth. Never shall we
carry upon our lips that Beloved Name to our fellow-sinners in simpli-
city, but its "savour" to our own souls will be ''as ointment poured
forth." (Cant. i. 3.) We shall feed ourselves in the Christian distribution
of the heavenly manna.
The transgressor also eats the fruit of his mouth--yet not good.
* Chap. xii. 1. Schultens. † Litany.
CHAP. XIII. 3, 4. 151
His soul sets his tongue on a flame. He loves violence, and therefore
eats it to his own ruin. (Ps. lxiv. 8.) "Death as well as life are in the
power of the tongue." (Chap. xviii. 21.) Let us look, that it be under
the influence of Divine grace, restrained from evil, disciplined for
usefulness, the fruitful instrument of our own happiness.
3. He that keepeth his mouth keepeth his life: but he that openeth wide his
lips shall have destruction.
The last Proverb contrasted a fruitful and mischievous—this a
cautious and ungoverned—tongue. "Keep thine heart." (Chap. iv. 23.)
This guards the citadel. Keep thy mouth. This sets a watch at the
gates. If they be well guarded, the city is safe. Leave them unpro-
tected—Thus was Babylon taken. ‘He that looketh carefully to his
tongue takes a safe course for preserving his life, which is oft in danger
by much and wild talking.'* Think before we speak; ponder our
words, their substance, manner, time, place, audience. The unruly
member needs a strong bridle, and a strong hand to hold it. (Jam.
iii. 2, 3.) Though it be necessary to open our lips; yet to open them,
wide; to let all come out; is a fearful hazard. (Chap. x. 14; xii. 13.)
For if "in the multitude of words there wanteth not sin" (Chap. x. 19),
this evil must bring us within the jaws of destruction.
"Set a watch, 0 Lord, before my mouth; and keep the door of my
lips" (Ps. cxli. 3) —was the prayer of one, who knew the danger of an
ungoverned tongue, and the only way to tame it. Shall we not call in
God's help, in the recollection, how often has our unguarded tongue
"given place to the devil" (Eph. iv. 27), and "grieved the Holy Com-
forter?" (Ib. verse 30.) How much more matter do we make for
repentance by our speaking than by our silence! Let the practical
power of faith quicken watchfulness and prayer, self-abasement and
self-discipline, godly fear and energy of conflict. Two things are clear.
But for the blood of Christ, the mass of guilt from the sins of the tongue
would have condemned us for ever; and in proportion as the "little
member" is bridled, "the peace of God rules in the heart."
4. The soul of the sluggard desireth, and hath nothing: but the soul of the
diligent shall be made fat.
Another vivid contrast of the sluggard with the diligent! (Chap. x. 4;
xii. 24.) The sluggard desires the gain of diligence, without the dili-
gence that gains. He would be wise without study, and rich without
labour. His religion is of the same heartless character. He desires to
overcome his bad habits, to enjoy the happiness of God's people. So
* Bishop Hall, Chap. xxi. 23. Ps. xxxiv. 12, 13.
152 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
far well. Desires are a part of religion. There can be no attainment
without them. Many have not even the desire. They ridicule it as
enthusiasm. Yet the sluggard hath nothing, because it is desire without
effort. ‘He ever desireth; but he taketh no pains to get any thing.'*
He would fain go to heaven, if a morning dream would carry him
there. And many a wish (alas!--of prayer he knows nothing) he sighs
for "the death of the righteous." (Num. xxiii. 10.) He would gladly
be a Christian, if it cost him no trouble. His duties are a force upon
him; and when they are over, he feels as if relieved from a heavy
weight. This is no rare case. Often do we hear the cry—and that
year after year—'I desire to be a child of God.' And yet the soul
continues at the same point; or rather settles down more resolutely in
a lifeless profession. 'Hell'—says an old writer--' s paved with such
desires.'
Oh! be industrious—if anywhere—in religion. Eternity is at
stake. Hours, days are lost. Soon they come to years; and for want
of energy, all is lost. Heartless wishes will not give life. The halt-
ing step will not bring us to God. A few minutes' cold prayers
will not seize the prize. To expect the blessing without diligence is
delusion.
Diligence brings its own reward in the world (Chap. xxii. 29);
nuch more in religion. It will not be content with desiring, without
the reality of possession. The "exercise of godliness" tends to health
and profit. (1 Tim. iv. 8.) Useful habits are formed; dormant energy
is excited. The conflict of faith, and the violence of prayer, ensure
success. (Matt. xi. 12.) God honours the trading of talents, where he
has the full revenue of his own gifts. (Ib. xxv. 14-29.) He gives,
not the wisdom only, but "the manifestation;" not for selfish indul-
gence, but "to profit withal." (1 Cor. xii. 7.) The "talent must not
be hid in a napkin" (Luke, xix. 20), or "the light under the bushel."
(Matt. v. 15.) False humility--a cover for indolence—must not
hinder the faithful discharge of our trust.
Child of God! shake off the dust of sloth. Take care that the bed
of ease cloth not pall thine appetite, and hinder thee from seeking food
for thy soul; or from active exercise for God. Let thy graces be
vigorous and radiant. Let thy profession be always progressing,
deepening, expanding. If thou be in Christ, seek to be "rooted and
grounded in him." (Col. ii. 7.) Let there be "life more abundantly."
(John, x. 10.) "Be strong in the grace that is in Christ Jesus."
(2 Tim. ii. 1.) Let "the joy of the Lord be thy strength." (Neh. viii. 10.)
Then thy soul shall be made fat, healthful, vigorous in all fruit and
grace. (Ps. xcii. 12-14.)
* Reformers' Notes.
CHAP. XIII. 5, 6. 153
5. A righteous man hateth lying: but a wicked man is loathsome, and
cometh to shame.
Observe the accuracy of Scripture. It is not that a righteous man
never lies. David lied.l Peter lied.2 Yet David could say—"I hate
and abhor lying."3 He prayed to have it " removed from him."4 He
would not suffer the " liar in his 'sight."5 Peter in the painful remem-
brance of his sin earnestly shewed the happiness of departure from it.6
The child of God, though always a sinner, maintains an holy antipathy
against sin —"What I hate, that do I."7
Nor is it a proof of a righteous man that he avoids lying. Selfish
motives, regard for character, may dictate restraint, without any hatred
of the sin as sin. But true religion brings in the new taste, conformity
to the mind of God. Therefore, as "lying lips"—however common,
profitable, convenient, or pardonable, they may be counted—"are
abomination to the Lord," the righteous man hateth them. (Chap. xii. 22.
Rom. xii. 9.) He would rather suffer by truth,, than sin by lying.
(Dan. iii. 16-18.)
And yet how often, even in the Church, is this feature of godliness
obscured! Is not strict truth often sacrificed to courtesy? Is not
lying sometimes acted, insinuated, or implied, where we should be
ashamed of plainly speaking it? Is not the simple truth often coloured
with exaggeration? "Abstain from alp appearance of evil" (1 Thess.
v. 22)—is the rule for the man of God. Commit the tongue to the
only safe ordering, the restraint and guidance of the God of Truth.
(Ps. xix. 14; cx1i. 3.)
A wicked man indeed takes pleasure in deceit. Scripture gives him
his right name. His base means often bring him to shame on this side
of the grave. (2 Kings, v. 27. Acts, xii. 21-23.) But however this be,
shame will be his "everlasting recompence." (Dan. xii. 2. Rev. xxi. 8.)
6. Righteousness keepeth him that is upright in the way: but wickedness
overthroweth the sinner.
Would that this repetition of the aphorism (Chap. xi. 3, 5, 6) might
deepen its impression! It is indeed a straight way to heaven. "Lead
me in it, 0 my God " (Ps. v. 8), and keep me there. The many devia-
tions even of the children of God prove our need of Divine keeping.
The fear of man,8 the flinching of the flesh from positive duty;9 the
grasp of some desired object;10 the subtle allurements of sin11 — all
these have turned him out of the path; embracing his Father's will in
1 1 Sam. xxi. 2; xxvii. 9, 10. 2 Matt. xxvi. 70-74. 3 Ps. cxix. 163.
4 Ib. verse 29. 5 Ps. ci. 7; xxvi. 4. 6 1 Pet. iii. 10; ii. 1.
7 Rom. vii. 15, 19. 8 Gen. xii. 11-13; xx. 2. 9 Jonah, i. 1-3.
10 Gen. xxvii. 19-24. 11 2 Sam. xi. 2. 1 Kings, xi. 1-4.
154 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
many things; in others preferring his own. Righteousness—steady
conformity to the mind of God--keeps the soul upright, and so keeps it
in the way. (Ps. xxv. 21.) Not that we exalt it to any meritorious
efficacy, or put it in the place of simply "looking unto Jesus" (Heb.
xii. 2) for life and salvation. The Christian, while "walking in his
integrity " (Ps. xxvi. 11), never loses his sense of sin, or forgets his need
of mercy. Yet his "righteousness is a breastplate" (Eph. vi. 14) keep-
ing him from many assaults of sin (Gen. xxxix. 9), and covering him
from threatening wrath. (Gen. vii. 1. 2 Pet. ii. 7-9.) But this is
righteousness, not perfection, mixed with much cleaving infirmity. Yet
—blessed be God—the uprightness is accepted, and the fault is
covered. (2 Chron. xv. 17.)
But while ‘saints are secured from ruin, sinners are secured for
ruin.'* The sinner's own wickedness overthroweth him. (2 Chron. xxviii.
23.) He is bent upon his own way, the sure road to destruction. 'Let
him not blame the Lord, or any mortal man beside himself, inasmuch
as he is the author of ruin to himself.'†
7. There is that maketh himself rich, yet hath nothing; there is that
maketh himself poor, yet hath great riches.
What a bubble are the world's riches! Yet some will affect their
shew, in order to gain the respect usually connected with them (Chap.
xii. 9); making themselves rich, yet having nothing. Others make them-
selves poor, ‘and live as if they were so,'‡ having great riches. In all
cases riches are more justly estimated by their use than by their pos-
session. But both persons here practise a deceit upon God; the one
by pretending to have received, the other by virtually denying, his
gracious gifts. Both dishonour his wisdom and goodness; the one by
discontent with his dispensations; the other by neglecting the com-
munication of his blessings. (1 Tim. vi. 18.)
The Church presents the counterpart of both these classes. The
boasting Pharisee,l the gifted Corinthian;2 the proud beggarly
Laodicean3--all admire their nothing, as if it were great riches.
Others again make themselves poor in "voluntary humility." Describ-
ing their whole course as unmingled sin, they deny the Almighty work
of grace. They give excuse for lying under the power of their corrup-
tions; instead of quickening the energy of a successful conflict. Thus
they promote the very evil which they deprecate, and sink the soul
into a hopeless despondency, alike prejudicial to their happiness and
usefulness. Sometimes, indeed, the Christian, from the deep sense of
remaining corruption, may be blind to what is evident to every one
else, and known to his God. (Rev. ii. 9.) But if it is the ruin of the
1 Luke, xviii. 11, 12. 2 1 Cor. iv. 8, 10. 3 Rev. iii. 17, 18.
* Henry in loco. † MUFFET's (Peter) Commentary on Proverbs, 12mo. 1596. ‡ Scott.
CHAP. XIII. 8. 155
self-deceiver to think himself better, it is at least the hindrance of the
upright to think himself worse, than he is.
The true path of simplicity is to renounce all dependence on the
flesh, and gladly to welcome the gospel of grace. (Philip. iii. 3-9.)
Such disciples, rich in their holy poverty, are honoured of the Lord.
(Isa. lxvi. 2. Luke, xviii. 13.) ‘0 blessed Lord, who resistest the
proud, and givest grace to the humble, give me more humility, that I
may receive more grace from thee. And thou, whose gracious rain
shelves down from the steep mountains, and sweetly drenches the
humble valleys, depress thou my heart more and more with true lowli-
ness of spirit; that the showers of thy heavenly grace may sink
into it, and make it more fruitful in all good affection and all holy
obedience.'*
8. The ransom of a man's life are his riches: but the poor heareth not
rebuke.
The last Proverb rebuketh discontent with our lot, whether of riches
or poverty. The wise man here strikes the balance between these two
conditions. A man's riches may be the ransom of his life. Extortion of
money may prompt false accusation, and riches may be a ransom cheer-
fully paid.† Or they may be the price of deliverance from his enemies.
They may save him from the punishment of the law (Exod. xxi. 29, 30.)
or from imminent danger of his life. (Jer. xli. 8.) Yet if "money is
a defence" (Eccles. vii. 12), so also is often want of money. If "the
rich man's wealth is a strong city" (Chap. x. 15), the poor man's poverty
is often his safeguard. He is beneath notice. He hears not many a
rebuke; he escapes many a danger, which is destruction to his richer
neighbour. (2 Kings, xxiv. 14; xxv. 12.) Had Isaac's flocks been
less numerous (Gen. xxvi. 13, 14), or Jacob less prosperous (Ib. xxxi. 1),
they would not have heard so much rebuke from their selfish enemies.
The poor with his empty pocket travels with security. His cottage
offers little temptation to the nightly robber. "A man's life" therefore
—his true happiness—"consisteth not in the abundance of things
which he possesseth." (Luke, xii. 15.)
His riches may be the ransom of his life. But "what shall he give
in exchange for his soul?" (Matt. xvi. 26.) Too "precious" is it to be
"redeemed with corruptible silver and gold." (1 Pet. f. 18.) So far as
he is concerned, "it ceaseth for ever." (Ps. xlix. 8.) Praised be the
Lord! when all the treasures of earth would have been beggared in
the ransom, the riches of heaven were freely poured out. (1 Pet. i. 19.
* Bishop HALL's Devotional Works, vol. viii. 276.
† See Job, ii. 4. The Apostle refused to avail himself of this ransom. Acts, xxiv. 26.
‘The primitive Christians quoted this proverb in defence of their occasional habit of giving
money to restrain the fury of their persecutors.'— Geier in loco.
156 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
Heb. x. 5-8.) The blood of the Son of God was the acceptable price.
The voice was heard from heaven—"Deliver him from going down to
the pit, I have found a ransom." (Job, xxxiii. 24.)
9. The light of the righteous rejoiceth: but the lamp of the wicked shall
be put out.
Who can estimate the worth of a Christian's bright shining light?
(Matt. v. 14-16. Philip. ii. 15. Chap. iv. 18.) Happy in his own soul,
like his counterpart in the heavens, he sheds a joyous light around him.
But how glowing, then, is the light of the Church in the combined
shining of all her members! Many of them have no remarkable
individual splendour; yet, like the lesser stars forming the milky way,
they present a bright path of holiness in the spiritual firmament. This
happy heavenly light "shineth into perfect day," and that day will
never set. (Isa. lx. 19, 20.) Sometimes it may be obscured, but only
that it may break out more gloriously. (Mica vii. 8); and soon will it be
a day without a cloud. (Rev. xxi. 23, 24.)
But it is the light of the righteous that rejoiceth. Sin therefore will
bring the cloud. Do we hope to shine in the heavenly firmament?
Then must we shine with present glory in the firmament of the Church.
So delicate is the Divine principle, that every breath of this world dims
its lustre.
The wicked have their lamp, a cold profession of the name of
religion. But being without oil, it will soon be put out (Job, xviii.
5, 6, Matt. xxv. 8.) Even while it lasts, it rejoiceth not. It sheds no
light upon the soul. It guides no fellow-pilgrim with its light. Fear-
ful will be the end. He takes his leave of the light of this world, only
to enter into eternal darkness, without even a flickering ray to cheer
"the blackness of darkness for ever." (Ps. xlix. 19. Matt. xxii. 13.)
10. Only by pride cometh contention: but with the well advised is wisdom.
Most accurately is contention here traced to its proper source.
(Chap. xxviii. 25.) All the crudities of the day, all the novelties of
doctrine producing contention (1 Tim. i. 4. 2 Tim. ii. 23), originate in
the proud swelling of "the fleshly mind." (Col. ii. 18. 1 Tim. vi. 3, 4.)
Men scorn the beaten track. They must strike out a new path. Sin-
gularity and extravagance are primary charms. They are ready to
quarrel with every one, who does not value their notions as highly as
they do. The desire of pre-eminence (Matt. xx. 21. 3 John, 9); revolt
from authority (Num. xii. 2) or sound doctrine (2 Tim. iv. 3, 4); party
spirit, with the pride of knowledge and gifts (1 Cor. iii. 3, 4, with iv. 8)
--all produce the same results. Is it too much to say, that vain-glory
hath lighted up all the sinful contentions, that have ever kindled in the
Church? We must indeed "contend for the faith" (Gal. ii. 5. 1 Thess.
CHAP. XIII. 11. 157
ii. 2. Jude, 3), though it be with our own compromising brethren.
(Gal. ii. 11.) But even here how yet imperceptibly may pride insinuate
itself under the cover of glorifying God! Truly ' is it the inmost coat,
which we put on first, and put off last.'*
This mischievous principle spreads in families, or among friends.
‘Some point of honour must be maintained; some affront must be
resented; some rival must be crushed or eclipsed; some renowned
character emulated; or some superior equalled and surpassed.'† Even
in trifling disputes between relatives or neighbours—perhaps between
Christians— each party contends vehemently for his rights, instead of
satisfying himself with the testimony of his conscience, and submitting
rather to be misunderstood and misjudged, than to break the bond of
the Divine brotherhood. (1 Cor. vi. 7.) In the wide field of the world
we may well ask—"From whence come wars and fightings among
you? Come they not from this lust?" (Jam. iv. 1.) Often has wounded
pride (Judg. xii. 1), even without any proved injury (2 Kings, xiv. 10),
brought destructive contention upon a land.
The proud man conceives himself wise enough. He asks no
counsel, and thus proves his want of wisdom. But with the modest,
well-advised, there is the wisdom that is from above, "which is first
pure, then peaceable." (Jam. iii. 17, with 14-16.) Many a rising con-
tention has it quelled, (Gen. xiii. 8. Judg. viii. 1-3. Acts, vi. 1-6.) "Let
nothing be done through strife or vain-glory; but in lowliness of mind
let each esteem other better than themselves." (Philip. ii. 3.) Christian
wisdom will keep us within our own line; knowing our own measure
and bounds (2 Cor. x. 13-16); and—whatever be our place, parts,
or gifts—humble, active, loving, constant, thankful, in the improvement
of them.
11. Wealth gotten by vanity shall be diminished: but he that gathereth
by labour shall increase.
This Proverb does not imply the means, by which wealth has been
gotten;‡ but the impoverishing use, to which it is applied. However
large, by vanity it will soon be diminished. Frivolous and expensive
pursuits, empty amusements, and the vain pomp and shew of dress, will
soon prove, that "riches certainly make themselves wings" (Chap.
xxiii. 5); that the treasure is "put into a bag with holes" (Hag. i. 6);
and that nothing remains but the awful account of unfaithfulness to a
solemn trust.
On the other hand—God's blessing is upon Christian industry;
and, so far as is good, he that gathereth with his labour shall increase.
* Bishop Hall. † Scott in loco.
‡ The interpolation of our translators is uncalled for, and misleads the reader. The
word ‘vain' is of very frequent occurrence, and always implies, not what is sinful, but
what is empty and unsubstantial.— See Parkhurst.
158 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
Only let him remember, that the security for his increasing wealth is the
dedication of himself and his substance to the Lord; the ready acknow-
ledgment, that he "is not his own," but God's property for God's glory.
(1 Cor. vi. 19, 20.) 'All that man can have, we have it on this con-
dition; to use it, to have it, to lay it out, to lay it down unto the
honour of our Master, from whose bounty we received it.'* The Lord
deliver us from the guilt of wasting on vanity what is due to Himself!
12. Hope deferred maketh the heart sick: but when the desire cometh, it
is a tree of life.
The first springing of hope is a pleasurable sensation, yet not unmixed
with pain. It is the hunger, that makes our food acceptable. But
hope deferred, like hunger prolonged, brings a kind of torture. It
maketh the heart sick. (Ps. cxix. 82, 123 ; cxliii. 7.) Yet when the desire
—the fulfilment of the hope--cometh, what a tree of life it is—so
invigorating! (Verse 19.)
We must however limit this application to the spiritual world.
Elsewhere the fulfilment of the desire, instead of a tree of life, is vanity.
(Eccles. ii. 11.) Here however the child of (trod is often tried in his
faith, but never disappointed of his hope. Long we may have to wait.
But never let us despair. "The patience of hope" issues in "the full
assurance of hope." What was it to Abraham, when, after long deferred
hope, the desire came, and he called the child of promise--Laughter!
(Gen. xv. 3; xxi. 3-6.) What was it "when the Lord turned again
the captivity of Zion, and they were like unto them that dream!"
(Ps. cxxxvii. with cxxvi.) What was it to old Simeon and the waiting
remnant, when "the desire of all nations" came! (Luke, ii. 25-30, with
Hag. ii. 7. Comp. Matt. xiii. 16, 17.) What to the disciples, when at
the manifestation of their risen Lord, their sickening hearts "believed
not for joy, and wondered!" (Luke, xxiv. 41.) What to the little flock
met together in the faintness of deferred hope to plead for Peter's
deliverance, When the desire came—the answer to prayer, so marvel-
lously vouchsafed! (Acts, xii. 12-16.)
To come to more personal experience. Such was the trial of faith
appointed for our Beloved Lord. Such was the joyful issue. (Ps. xxii.
1-3, with 22-25; lxix. 1-3, with 30-35.) Many a waiting, sickening
heart has been thus refreshed from a tree of life. But what will be the
joy of the grand consummation of hope! (Rom. viii. 23-25. 2 Cor. v.
1-4.) "The earnest expectation of the creation waiteth for the mani-
festation of the sons of God." (Rom. viii. 19.) Time seems long, trials
heavy, hearts failing. But "yet a little while, and he that shall come,
will come, and will not tarry." (Heb. x. 37, 38. Hab. ii. 3. Rev. xxii.
7, 12, 20.) The first moment of'the glorious manifestation will blot
* SWINNOCK's True Christian, 4to. 1663, p. 169.
CHAP. XIII. 13, 14. 159
out the remembrance of all toils, weariness, and trial. Yes—the desire
cometh--come it will in God's best time--"quickly." One moment
sick; the next—"the inhabitant of that land," where sickness is no
more. (Isa. xxxiii, 24. Rev. xxi. 4.) One moment clad in the rags of
the flesh; "in the twinkling of an eye" arrayed in the glory of the
Saviour's image. (1 Cor. xv. 51-54.) "Come, Lord Jesus! Come
quickly." (Rev. xxii. 20.)
13. Whoso despiseth the word shall be destroyed: but he that feareth the
commandment shall be rewarded.
God as a God of holiness will not be trifled with. As a God of
grace, none "serve him for nought." The presumptuous despiser of his
word cannot escape. The world before the flood was the object of his
long-suffering. "A preacher of righteousness" warned them of their
danger. But the despisers provoked their own ruin. (1 Pet. iii. 20.
2 Pet. ii. 5.) Pharaoh, often reproved, sometimes half-resolved, yet at
length despising the word, was destroyed. (Exod. v. 2; x. 16,17; xiv. 28.)
Jehoiakim's daring rebellion met with its righteous recompense Jer.
xxxvi. 23-32.) The warnings of Sinai are as a voice of thunder--
"If every transgression of the word spoken by angels received its just
recompence of reward; how shall we escape, if we neglect so great
salvation, spoken by the Lord? If they escaped not, that refused him
that spake on earth; much more shall not we escape, if we turn away
from him that speaketh from heaven. See that ye refuse not him that
speaketh." (Heb. xii. 25.)
Let God and his word be our fear, not our terror. Faith is the
principle of fear, of reverential child-like obedience. (Ib. xi. 7.) Indeed
the heart can never be right, till it fears the commandment above every
earthly consideration. The slave fears the penalty; the child the com-
mandment. And this he fears more, than if an angel from heaven were
standing in his way with a flaming sword. He fears the father, not
the Judge. Here is no bondage, no legality. It brings its own reward.
The "heart that stands in awe of God's word," rejoices in it, "and is
largely enriched with its spoil." (Ps. cxix. 161, 162.) Here too is sun-
shine in the special favour of God--"To this man will I look, even to
him that is poor, and of a contrite heart, and that trembleth at my word."
(Isa. lxvi. 2. Comp. Ezra, x. 3.)
14. The law of the wise is a fountain of life, to depart from the snares of
death.
Reverence to God's commandment has just been enforced. The bless-
ing of the law or instruction (Chap. iii. 1; iv. 2) of the wise is here
shown. It is a fountain of life (Chap. x. 11) to a teachable and thirst-
ing heart. It is a grand conservative principle in a world full of
160 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
snares, not of danger only, but of death. There is no safe treading, but
in the ways of God. The word of God gives the necessary warning.
(Ps. xvii. 4; cxix. 9, 11.) The law of the wise--his instruction with
all the authority of a law—applies it. This was David's season-
able instruction to Solomon (Chap. iv. 4); Solomon's to us. (Chap. v.
1-13; vii. 24-27.) Hear this warning law of the wise from an Apostle's
mouth. The love of money was fearfully destroying souls.--"Thou,
0 man of God, flee these things." (1 Tim. vi. 9-11.) This is the grand
end of the Ministry of the Gospel; to "deliver them from the snares
of the devil, who taketh men captive at his will." (2 Tim. ii. 24-26.)
Let the young take heed to their feet, where every step is a snare of
death. Let the instruction of thy God and his Ministers be the law of
the wise to keep thy path in safety. Even in defect of literal prescript,
the spirit of the law will supply practical rules for keeping the heart
and life — e.g. to do nothing, of which the lawfulness is questionable--
to consider everything as unlawful, which indisposes for prayer, and
interrupts communion with God—never to go into any company,
business, or situation, in which the presence and blessing of God cannot
be conscientiously asked and expected.* Such rules are in the spirit
of the law, and well worthy of adoption. "Ponder the path of thy feet,
and let all thy ways be established." (Chap. iv. 26.)
15. Good understanding giveth favour; but the way of transgressors is
hard.
Hence the value of that "good thing, bearing the yoke in the
youth." (Lam. iii. 27.) The exercise in this yoke, under Divine grace,
hardens the character to all manly virtues and practical godliness.
This is a good understanding (Ps. cxi. 10) — not a cold and dry appre-
hension, but the glow of heavenly light and love in all the discipline of
Christian habits. Natural conviction is often constrained to do homage
to it, as the image of God stamped upon his servants. Joseph in this
exercise acquired many of those valuable rules, which gave him favour,
and were of essential service to him in his various and important
responsibilities. (Gen xxxix.—xli.) And well was it for himself, for his
people, and for the whole Church of God, that he had been trained in
this school of understanding. The histories of Samuel (1 Sam ii. 6),
David (Ib., xviii. 14—16), attest the same point. Good understanding
the effect of early discipline gave Daniel favour, even when past his
ninetieth year, the premier of the largest empire of the world.† Our
blessed Lord, as "he increased in wisdom, increased also in favour
* ‘By the help of these three rules, I soon settle all my doubts, and find that many
things I have hitherto indulged in, are, if not utterly unlawful, at least inexpedient, and I
can renounce them without many sighs.'—Life of Rev. Dr. PAYSON, chap. iii.
† Dan. i. 9, 19, 20; vi. 1-3, 28. See also Abraham, Gen. xxiii. 10, 11. Paul, Acts,
xxvii. 43; xxviii. 2. Comp. Rom. xiv. 18.
CHAP. XIII. 15. 161
both with God and man." (Luke, ii. 52.) Thus the way of wisdom,
with all its crosses, is cheered with sunshine. 'Wisdom exalteth her
children.' (Ecclus. iv. 11.)
Can we say this of the way of transgressors? They dream of a
flowery path; but they make to themselves a hard way; perhaps
pleasing at first, as the spell to fasten them to the end. 'Wicked men
live under a hard task-master.'* 'I was held before conversion'--
said Augustine—‘not with an iron chain, but with the obstinacy of
my own will.' The philosophical infidel bears the same testimony
I begin to fancy myself in a most deplorable condition, environed with
the deepest darkness on every side.' (Essays, i. 458.) Voltaire, judging
of course from his own heart, pronounces—‘In man is more wretched-
ness than in all other animals put together. Man loves life, yet knows
he must die.' 'I wish'—concludes this wretched witness for his
Master—'I had never been born.' The worldly infidel adds his seal to
the record. Col. Gardiner declared, that in his course of wickedness,
he had often envied the existence of a dog. Wretch indeed must he
be, who cannot endure to commune with himself, and to hose peace
it is necessary that he should rid himself of every thought of God and
his soul!
In every shape and form, the service of this merciless tyrant is a
hard way.† Men fight their way to hell, as they do to heaven (Acts,
xiv. 22)—"through much tribulation." The native perverseness of
the will (Num. xxii. 32); the continual warfare with conscience;‡ the
absence of peace (Isa. lvii. 20, 21; lix. 8); the sting of sin (Chap. xxiii.
29-32. Jer. ii. 17-19); the certainty of destruction (Isa. lix. 7) —all
prove a way of thorns.§
Which then is the way of my choice? Lord, do thou choose for
me. Help me under thy guidance, to choose the safe and pleasant path
of wisdom (Chap. iii. 7), the rich portion of godliness for both worlds.
(1 Tim. iv. 8.) The way of transgressors is hard. The end of that way
is death. (Rom. vi. 21.) The task-master will have his full "tale" of
work. The paymaster will pay down his well-earned wages to the
utmost farthing—Death eternal. (Rom. vi. 23.)
* CARYL on Job, xv. 20. † Isa. v. 18; xlvii. 13; lvii. 10. Jer. ix. 5.
‡ Acts, ix. 5. See a fine passage in ARISTOTLE'S Ethics, B. ix. c. iii.; also
SHAKESPEARE'S King John:
'Hostility and civil discord reign
Betwixt my conscience,' &c.
§ ‘The pain of wickedness is grievous, and, apart from all other consequences, the most
painful.'—CICER. De Leg. ii. § 17. 'Nothing makes a man so wretched as impiety and crime.'
—Ib. De Finib. lib. iv. § 24. `His own iniquity and inward dread, remorse, and agitation
of conscience-these are the untiring and domestic furies of the guilty mind.'—Ib. Pro.
Rom. Amer. The philosopher, utterly ignorant of the spiritual character of sin, probably
only intended an application to heinous crimes. But the admission of the principle is
important, that the path of sin is present misery.
162 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
16. Every prudent man dealeth with knowledge: but a fool layeth open
(spreadeth, marg.) his folly.
How often is even valuable knowledge frittered away from the want
of prudent application! We must ponder the time, measure, helps, and
means of dealing with it, so as to put it out to its full advantage. (Chap.
xv. 2.) And how wide is the sphere for trading with this responsible
talent! In daily life it provides against foreseen dangers (Chap. xxii.
3), and makes a way to escape in trying difficulties).1 Not less useful
is it in the family economy; in the training of children (Judg. xiii. 8-1:2);
in the "guidance of affairs" (Chap. xiv. 1); in looking well to house-
hold occupations. (Chap. xxxi. 27.) Must we not also deal with it in
the Church; in a wise accommodation to circumstances (Gal. ii. 2);
in the conviction of gainsayers (Tit. i. 9); in forbearing with the
prejudices of the weak (Acts, xv. 22-29); in the exercise of Christian
admonition? (Rom. xv. 14.) The want of it is the source of an unstable
profession. In understanding we are children, not men. (1 Cor. xiv. 20.)
Most precious therefore is "the word of knowledge," as "the manifesta-
tion of the Spirit given to us to profit withal." (1 Cor. xii. 7.) Greatly
also do we need this gift in our intercourse with the world; to avoid
occasions of stumbling;2 to mark seasonable times of reproof;3 to
refrain from needless offence.* Nay—even in the political world what
need have we of " understanding of the tithes, to know what Israel
ought to do!" (1 Chron. xii. 32.) Thus to deal with knowledge in this
diversified application, is the responsibility of a prudent man of God.
(Chap. xiv. 8, 15.)
From the want of this prudence, the fool layeth open his folly, he pours
out his wrath. (Chap. xii. 16. Num. xxii. 29, 30.) He vaunts out his
vanity. (1 Sam. xvii. 44.) He exposes his thoughtlessness. (Matt. xiv.
7.) He exercises no judgment (Chap. xviii. 13), and fills his sphere of
influence with mischief.
Let us study the minute details of our Master's well-filled life. He
shall deal prudently. (Isa. lii. 13.) This was his distinctive character.
The Spirit of prudence was the furniture for his work. (Ib. xi. 2, 3.)
How gloridusly did it shine forth in the confounding of his enemies
(Matt. xxi. 24; xxii. 42-46), and in tender sympathy with his afflicted
people! (Isa. 1. 4.) How good is it to have our knowledge disciplined
by his teaching, and consecrated to his service!
17. A wicked messenger falleth into mischief: but a faithful ambassador
is health.
A messenger proves his character by his neglect or discharge of his
1 Acts, xvi. 37, 38; xxii. 25; xxiii. 7. 2 Ezra, viii. 22. Neh. vi. 11.
3 Chap. ix. 7, 8; xv. 23. 1 Sam. xxv. 86. Amos, v. 13. Matt. vii. 6.
* Neh. ii. 5. Speaking of his land before a heathen King, in reference not to the God of
Israel, but to the sepulchres of his fathers.
CHAP. XIII. 18. 163
trust. A wicked messenger betrays his trust (Luke, xvi. 1), damages his
master (Chap. x. 26. Matt. xxv. 26), and, as a just recompense, falls into
mischief Faithfulness is the servant's glory, and his master's gain. He
brings and receives a blessing. Gehazi's unfaithfulness brought him
into mischief. (2 Kings, v. 26–27.) Eliezer, "spewing all good fidelity,"
was blessed himself, and health to his master. (Gen. xxiv. 33–56.)
But to speak of the messenger and ambassador of the Lord. (Mal. ii.
7. 2 Cor. v. 20.) What words can tell the awful mischief of the wicked
messenger, ignorant of the worth of his commission, and utterly careless
in the discharge of it! Yet the mischief returns upon his own head;
laden as he is with the guilt of the blood of souls; himself overwhelmed
in the eternal damnation of those, who have perished through his
neglect. (Ezek. iii. 17, 18. 1 Cor. ix. 16.)
Faithfulness marks the true ambassador. (1 Cor. iv. 1, 2. 1 Thess. ii.
3–6.) He "shuns not to declare the whole counsel of God" (Acts, xx.
27); not obtruding offensive truths in unnatural prominence; but not
withholding them in their just scriptural proportion. He condescends
to the capacities of his people: but he will not humour their prejudices
or antipathies. He "handles not the word of God deceitfully; but by
manifestation of the truth he commends himself to every man's con-
science in the sight of God," (2 Cor, iv. 2; ii. 17.) "The tongue of
such an ambassador" is health (Chap. xii. 18), both to himself and to
his people. (Job, xxxiii. 23–26.) "The wilderness rejoices" under his
fertilizing blessing (Isa. xxxv. 1); and the burst of joy and peace is
heard on every side—"How beautiful upon the mountains are the feet
of him, that bringeth good tidings, that publisheth peace!"
18. Poverty and shame shall be to him that refuseth instruction: but
he that regardeth reproof shall be honoured.
The instruction of discipline is God's ordinance. Little do those who
refuse it know, what a blessing they cast away! (Heb. xii. 10, 11.)
Poverty and shame are often the Lord's rod for his wayward children
(Luke, xv. 12–16); two dreaded evils—the one bringing them to
want; the other hiding their heads; both disappointing "the lust of
the flesh, the lust of the eye, and the pride of life." (1 John, ii. 16.)
Young persons! learn to dread the liberty of being left to your own
choice. Dread the first step in the downward course, refusing instruction
—Remember your birth, "as the wild ass's colt." (Job, xi. 12.) Know
your besetting temptation, "as the horse and the mule" (Ps. xxxii. 9),
impatient of restraint. If godly remonstrance be slighted, all may end
in poverty and shame, embittered with the poignant sting of death-bed
remorse. (Chap. v. 11.)
But here is honour contrasted with shame. For reverently to regard
reproof will ensure honour from man. (Chap. xxv. 12.) Honour from
164 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
God will be abundant. "If ye endure chastening, God dealeth with
you as with sons." (Heb. xii. 7.) If we be humbled under his reproof,
we shall be raised to his throne. (1 Pet. v. 6.) Pleasant indeed are his
words to his well-disciplined child. To have our ears open to receive
discipline, is to walk in the path of life and happiness (Chap. vi. 23.
Job, xxxvi. 10-12); the honour of conformity to our Divine Saviour.
(Heb. v. 8.) Man's pride deems it a degradation to receive reproof.
God counts it "brutish to hate it." (Chap. xii. 1.) Which judgment is
according to truth and right?
19. The desire accomplished is sweet to the soul: but it is abomination
to fools to depart from evil.
This must be limited to "the desire of the righteous."* As that is
"only good," it "will be granted" (Chap. xi. 23; x. 24); and the
accomplishment is sweet to the soul. Infinitely sweeter will be the full,
the eternal, accomplishment--"I shall be satisfied, when I awake, with
thy likeness." (Ps. xvii. 15.)
May not all enjoy this sweetness? All might, but all will not, be
happy. The object is so revolting to the "enmity of the carnal mind."
Perhaps those, who have been early trained in the ways of God, cannot
experimentally estimate the bitterness of this enmity. But what can
give a more awful view of this principle than the truth, that what is
abomination to God to see, is abomination to the fool to depart from!
(Chap. xv. 21.) A striking figure of heaven and hell, in full contrast;
with the great gulf that is fixed between them! Holiness makes
heaven ; sin makes hell. See then for which place the ungodly are.
fitting. Hatred of holiness is meetness for hell. Oh! what a mighty
change must that be, that can slay the enmity, and make it to the soul
an abomination to commit evil, as it now is to depart from it!
20. He that walketh with wise men shall be wise: but a companion of
fools shall be destroyed.
Every one desires to engrave his own image upon his companions.
We naturally therefore take our mould from their society. It is not
left to us to determine, whether there shall be any influence; only,
what that influence shall be. Walking with the wise—under their
instruction, encouragement and example—we shall be wise. Our prin-
ciples and habits will be fixed, our interest excited, and the resolution
formed—"We will go with you, for we have heard that God is with you."
(Zech. viii. 23.) See here the blessing of living in a godly family,
hearkening daily to "the wise man's learning" (Chap. xvi. 23. 1 Kings,
x. 8), or in membership with a Church, where each imparts from his
store for the increase and edifying of the body. (Eph. iv. 15, 16.) Mark
* See on verse 12.
CHAP. XIII. 21. 165
—young people—the responsibility of the choice of friends. How
much hangs upon the determination to be "a companion of all them
that fear God, and keep his precepts?" (Ps. cxix. 63.) The world may
allure, the ungodly may mock, the evil heart may consent to their voice.
But seek you strength from God, and resolve to walk with the wise--
as the Lord liveth, and as my soul liveth, I will not leave thee."
(2 Kings, ii. 4.) Walk with those, whose acquaintance (as Bp. Burnet
testified of his intercourse with Abp. Leighton), will be a special talent,
to give account of to God.
Joash, while he walked with his wise guardian, was wise. But when,
after his guardian's death, he became a companion of fools, he was
destroyed. (2 Chron. xxiv.) And how often does the scaffold warn us
of the "corruption from evil communications!" (1 Cor. xv. 33. Ps. i.
18-21; cvi, 28, 35.) Many a promising professor has been brought
step by step to destruction. The horror of sin, the instinctive recoil
from it, gradually abates. The fear of God—that cover from sin (Gen.
xxiix. 9. Neh. v. 15)—is weakened. The hold on the great hopes of
the gospel is relaxed. Other objects gain the ascendancy from this
disastrous commerce, and the ruin is complete. And when—we might
ask—have the godly companied with fools, without injury to their pro-
fession, and hazard to their souls? (2 Chron. xviii. 3; xix. 2.) If we
can live in a worldly element, without feeling out of ourrpwn element;
if we can breathe a tainted atmosphere, without sensibility of infection;
if we can familiarize ourselves with the absence of religion in the
ordinary intercourse of life, is there no ground of alarm, lest unsubdued
worldliness should be regaining dominion?
The first warning to sinners just plucked out of the fire, was---
"Save yourselves from this untoward generation." (Acts, ii. 40.) And
the rule will be to the end—"Have no fellowship with the unfruitful
works of darkness, but rather reprove them." (Eph. v. 11. 2 Cor. vi.
14-16.) Connection we must often have with them. (1 Cor. v. 10.)
But let our delight be with the saints of God. (Ps. xvi. 3.) God may
soon decide for an halting professor. His patience may be exhausted.
His justice may take its course; and those, who are now his companions
in folly, will be his tormentors in hopeless misery.
21. Evil pursueth sinners; but to the righteous good shall be repaid.
‘Sinners are sure to find evil at last; the righteous, good:'* The
histories of sin from the beginning--Cain,l Achan,2 Abimelech,3 Ahab,4
and his wicked wife,5 with many others—are solemn demonstrations,
that evil pursueth sinners, even when they seem to have found a refuge.
1 Gen. iv. 10-13. 2 Josh. vii. 20-26. 3 Judg. ix. 24, 56, 57.
4 1 Kings, xxi. 19; xxii. 38. 2 Kings, ix. 26. 5 1 Kings, xxi. 23. 2 Kings, ix. 30-36.
* Jermin in loco.
166 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
(1 Kings, ii. 28-31.) The delay even of centuries does not weaken the
certainty. (Exod. xvii. 14. 1 Sam. xv. 3-7.) As sure as the shadow
follows the substance, as the avenger of blood pursued "the manslayer"
(Num. xxxv. 19), "evil shall hunt the violent man to overthrow him."
(Ps. cxl. 11.) Yet often the sinner goes on in his blinded infatuation.
'No one has been witness to his sin. Or no one will make account of
it. Or his accusers, being as guilty as himself, will hold their peace;
or, should he be discovered, prudence or pleading will secure him from
punishment.'* And then, though a the iniquity of his heels com-
passeth him about" (Ps. xlii. 5), he thinks only of present gratification,
never looks back, and therefore sees not the evil pursuing him. His
blindness thus makes his ruin more certain. (Dent. xxix. 19, 20. Job,
xi. 20. 1 Thess. v. 3.) And how clearly are his momentary pleasures
purchased at the cost of eternity! (Eccles. xi. 9.)
Not less sure is the good, which shall he repaid to the righteous. (Isa.
10, 11. Rom. ii. 6-10.) The evil follows in just retribution. The
other is the reward of grace. Not the smallest good—even "a cup of
cold water to a disciple" (Matt. x. 42), or honour shewn to his servants.
(Ib. verse 41. 1 Kings, xvii. 16-23)--shall "lose its reward." (Heb. vi.
10.) And if a single act is thus remembered, much more "a course, a
fight," held out to the end. (2 Tim. iv. 7, 8.) How manifestly is this the
constitution of grace; that when perfect obedience can claim no recom-
pence (Luke, xvii. 10), such unworthy, such defiled, work should be so
honoured with an infinite, overwhelming acceptance!
22. A good man leaveth an inheritance to his children's children: and the
wealth of the sinner is laid, up for the just.
Here we have particular instance of the good to be repaid to the
righteous. It cannot however be meant as an universal statement.
Many good men have no inheritance to leave; or they have no children;
or none that survive them; or no children's children; or this generation
may be in poverty. The wealth of the sinner also, instead of being laid
up for the just, descends to his posterity for successive generations.
(Ps. xvii. 14.) Yet Scripture gives many examples of this dispensation
of Providence; shewing the blessing of personal godliness to unborn
posterity. Abraham left his covenanted inheritance to his children's chil-
dren.1 Caleb's children inherited their father's possession.2 "Although
David's house was not so with God" as he could have desired yet his
lamp continued to burn for upwards of seventeen generations.3 Often
also has the Divine blessing upon the discreet guidance of his affairs
(Ps. cxii. 5), and the special promise to Christian liberality (Chap. iii.
9, 10), preserved the good man's inheritance. And if there is no earthly
1 Gen. xvii. 7, 8. Ps. cxii. 2. 2 Josh. xiv. 14. 3 2 Sam. xxiii. 5. 2 Chron. xxi. 7.
* Lavater in loco.
CHAP. XIII. 23. 167
substance to leave; yet a church in the house; a family altar; the
record of holy example and instruction; and above all, a store of be-
lieving prayer laid up for accomplishment, when we shall be silent in
the grave—will be an inheritance to our children of inestimable value.
For though no trust can be placed in hereditary religion (John, i. 13);
yet the recollection of the path in which their fathers walked, and in
which they themselves were trained, may, under God's grace, continue
a godly entail in our families, so that "instead of the fathers may be
the children." (Ps. lxxviii. 5, 6; xlv. 16.)
But the good man's inheritance is also increased from the wealth of the
sinner. Laban's wealth was laid up for Jacob;1 the spoils of Egypt
and Canaan2 for Israel; Haman's wealth for Esther and Mordecai.3
Indeed this appears to have been a prominent feature of the Old Dis-
pensation (Chap. xxviii. 8. Job, xxvii. 16, 17); and it will be openly
renewed in the latter-day glory of the Church. (Isa. lxi. 6.) Probably
therefore the fulfilment is far more frequent than meets the eye. Often
also the wealth of the sinner, laid up for the aggrandizement of his own
name in his posterity, becomes the portion of the just in their own
holy seed; consecrated to the service of their Lord and his Church.
(Eccles. ii. 26.)
23. Much food is in the tillage of the poor: but there is that is destroyed
for want of judgment.
The produce of the soil is the fruit of industry. Chap. xii. 11. Gen.
iii. 19.) Much food is in the tillage of the poor; because, being wholly
dependent on their own exertions, they spare no pains or labour. So
that by careful husbandry they may gain support from a small plot;
while a large and fertile estate may be destroyed for want of judgment.
(Chap. xxiv. 30-34.) Indeed, for want of prudent management the
richest tillage may come to waste. Egypt with her abundant crops
would have been destroyed, but for Joseph's judgment in preserving the
much, food in the tillage. (Gen. xli. 33-36.) Solomon's prudent adminis-
tration of his household restrained waste and extravagance. (1 Kings,
iv. 27, 28.) Even our Divine Master, in the distribution of the food,
directed, that "the fragments should be gathered up, that nothing be
lost" (John, vi. 12), or destroyed for want of care and judgment.
But what is the practical and extended application? If talents lie
inactive, or if their activity is not wisely directed, a rich harvest is
destroyed for want of judgment. The same ruin flows from the neglect
of religious advantages. The harvest of grace withers into a famine.
Slothful professor! rouse thyself to till the ground; else wilt thou starve
for want of food. Then let thy roused energy be directed by a sound
1 Gen. xxxi. 1, 9, 18. 2 Exod. iii 35, 36. Josh. xi. 14. Ps. cv. 44. 3 Esth. viii. 1, 2.
168 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
judgment; for want of which, the fruits of industry, temporal, intel-
lectual, and spiritual, will run to waste.
24. He that spareth his rod hateth his son: but he that loveth him,
chasteneth him betimes.
Among the many modern theories of education, how often is God's
system overlooked! Yet should not this be our pattern and standard?
The rod of discipline is its main character; not harsh severity, but a
wise, considerate, faithful exercise; always aiming at the subjugation
of the will, and the humbling and purifying of the heart. Here how-
ever God and man are at issue. Man often spares the rod, because he
loves the child. This at least he calls love. But is not our Father's
love to his children inconceivably more yearning than that of an
earthly parent? Yet does he not spare the rod—"What son is he,
whom the Father chasteneth not?” (Heb. xii. 7.) Is the rod the proof
of his hatred? "Whom the Lord loveth, he chasteneth." (Ib. verse 6.
Deut. viii. 5. Rev. iii. 19.) Nay—he gives us his Divine judgment—
He that spareth the rod, hateth the child. Does he not act at least as if
he hated him; omitting a duty so necessary for his welfare; winking at
the indulgence of vicious habits and a wayward will, so surely issuing
in bitter sorrow?1 Is not this delivering him up to his worst enemy?
Better that the child had been trained in tile house of strangers, than
that he should thus be the unhappy victim of the cruelty of parental
love.
The discipline of our children must therefore commence with self-
discipline. Nature teaches to love them much. But we want a con-
trolling principle, to teach us to love them wisely. The indulgence of
our children has its root in self-indulgence. We do not like putting
ourselves to pain. The difficulties indeed can only be known by expe-
rience. And even in this school one parent cannot measure the trials
of another. But all our children are children of Adam. "Foolishness
is bound up in their hearts." (Chap. xxii. 15. Gen. viii. 21.) All choose
from the first dawn of reason, the broad road of destruction. (Isa. liii. 6.)
And can we bear the thought, that they should walk in that road?
We pray for their conversion. But prayer without teaching is mockery,
and Scripture teaching implies chastening.* Discipline therefore must
be. All need the rod, some again and again. Yet it must be the
father's rod, yearning over his chastened child. (Ps. ciii. 13), even while
he dares "not spare him for his crying." (Chap. xix. 18.) The rod
without affection is revolting tyranny.
But often do we hear mourning over failure. And is not this the
1 Chap. xxix. 15. 1 Sam. iii. 13. 1 Kings, i. 6; ii. 25. Comp. 2 Sam. xiii. 39; xviii. 33.
* The Scripture term combines chastening with instruction— LXX. Verse 18. Eph.
vi. 4. Heb. xii. 6. Comp. Ps. xciv. 12; cxix. 67, 71.
CHAP. XIII. 25. 169
grand reason? We do not chastise betimes. (Ib.), Satan begins with
the infant in arms! (Ps. lviii. 3. Isa. xiviii. 8.) The cry of passion is
his first stir of the native corruption. Do we begin as early? Every
vice commences in the nursery. The great secret is, to establish autho-
rity in the dawn of life; to bend the tender twig, before the knotty oak
is beyond our power.* A child, early trained by parental discipline,
will probably preserve the wholesome influence to the end of life.
But fearful indeed is the difficulty, when the child has been the
early master; to begin chastening, when the habit of disobedience has
been formed and hardened; to have the first work to do, when the
child is growing out of childhood, and when the unreserved confidence
needs to be established. Rarely indeed does this late experiment suc-
ceed: while the severity necessary to enforce it is not less dangerous
than painful. "It is good for a man that he bear the yoke in his
youth." (Lam. iii. 27.)
25. The righteous eateth to the satisfying of his soul: but the belly of the
wicked shall want.
This is one of the many proofs, that "the righteous is more excellent
than his neighbour." (Chap. xii. 26.) Temporal blessings are assured,
so far as they are really good for him; whether little or much; enough
to satisfy his wants, not to "fulfil his lusts." (Chap. x.. 3. Ps. xxxiv. 10;
xxxvii. 3, 18.) Indeed ‘he can never want a sufficiency, because his
desires are moderate, and he makes a temperate use of God's blessings.'†
He therefore shall eat to his satisfying, while the wicked shall want.
Jacob was fed with the best of the land, while the Egyptians were
destitute. (Gen. xvvii. 11-13.) Elijah was fed, first by ravens, after-
wards by a widow, when the wicked nation were in extremity. (1 Kings,
xvii. 1-11; xviii. 5.) The fare of the righteous maybe coarse, and that
of the wicked "sumptuous." But did not Daniel and his friends eat
their pulse with more satisfaction, than their fellow-captives did their
richer dainties? (Dan. i. 12-16.) And—as to higher food and hea-
venly satisfaction, Christ is a substitute for everything; nothing for
Him.—‘If then'—as the noble Luther declares—'we live here by
begging our bread, is not this well recompensed, that we are nourished
with the food of angels, with eternal life, and Christ himself?‡'
Such a chaos of desires is the soul of the wicked, that no abundance
can satisfy his want. Ahab's crown could give him no rest, without
Naboth's vineyard. (1 Kings, xxi. 1-4. Job, xx. 20, 22.) So full is the
ungodly heart of insatiable cravings! (Ps. xvii. 14. Isa. lxv. 13, 14.
Hos. iv. 10. Mic. vi. 14.) But how intolerable will be this conscious
* Principiis obsta; sero medicina paratur,
Cum mala per longas convaluere moras.--OVID.
† Bishop Patrick. ‡ LUTHER on Ps. cxxxii. 16. Comp. Ps. xxxvi. 8. John, vi. 35, 55.
170 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
want throughout eternity, when a drop of water to cool the tormented
tongue shall be denied! (Luke, xvi, 24.)
CHAPTER XIV.
1. Every wise woman buildeth her house: but the foolish plucketh it down
with her hands.
WE have seen the wife to be a blessing or a curse to her husband.
(Chap. xii. 4.) Such is She to his house. Her wisdom may supply
many of his defects ; while all the results of his care and prudence may
be wasted by her folly. The godly matron is the very soul of the house.
She instructs her children by her example, no less than by her teaching.
She educates them for God and for eternity; not to shine in the vain
show of the world, but in the Church of God. Her household order
combines economy with liberality (Chap. xxxi. 13, 18-27); strict inte-
grity in the fear of God. (Ib. ver. 30.) Thus, as godly servants bring a
blessing to the house (Gen. xxx. 27; xxxix. 5), so does the wise woman
build her house (Chap. xxiv. 3) under the blessing of God, 'establishing
it in a firm and durable state.'* Who can estimate the worth of a
Christian mother -- a Hannah1--an Eunice?2
But mark the foolish woman—her idleness waste, love of pleasure,
want of all forethought and care, her children's wills allowed, their
souls neglected, their happiness ruined! We see her house plucked down
in confusion. A sad issue, if an enemy had done this! But it is the
doing, or rather the undoing, of her own hands. In proportion to her
power and influence is her capability of family mischief. Such was
Jezebel, the destroyer of her house.3
What responsibility then belongs to the marriage choice, linked
with the highest interests of unborn generations! If ever there was at
matter for special prayer and consideration, this is it. Here to err
once, may be an undoing of ourselves and of our house. Of how little
account are birth, fortune, external accomplishments, compared with
godly wisdom!†
1 1 Sam. 1. 27, 28. 2 2 Tim. i. 5; iii. 15.
3 1 Kings, xvi. 81-33; xxi. 24, 25. Comp. 2 Kings, xi. 1.
* Diodati. Chap. xxxi. 28-31.
† Mr. Scott here, aptly quotes the proverb — that ‘a fortune in a wife is better than a
fortune with a wife.' ‘For the building of a house three things are principally necessary;
first, a holy coming together; secondly, a special fitness in the head of the family; and
lastly, a holy living together. As many order the matter, they so provoke God by the first
entering upon a family, that the family travels ever after under the burden of God's anger.
— BYFIELD on Col. iii. 18.
CHAP. XIV. 2-4. 171
2. He that walketh in his uprightness feareth the Lord: but he that is
perverse in his ways, despiseth him.
There can be no stream without the fountain. Grace in the heart
is the spring of the upright walk. (Chap. iv. 23. Matt. xii. 33-35.) The
proof that we believe the reality of religion, is that we walk in the
power of it. The proof of the influence of the fear of God is, that we
"are in it all the day long" (Chap. xxiii. 17); not saints in our prayers,
and worldlings in our conduct; not substituting active zeal for per-
sonal devotedness; not teaching our families half of religion, to read
and pray; but "whatsoever things are true, honest, just, pure, lovely,
and of good report, to think on these things." (Philip. iv. 8.) Man may
boast of his moral uprightness, that he would scorn a mean action. But
the heart-searching Saviour lays open the root of worldly selfishness,
and spews his way to be perverse before him. (Luke, xvi. 14, 15.) Does
he remember, or does he know, while he slumbers in the delusion of
external decency, that the allowed supremacy of any earthly object
(1 Sam. ii. 29, 30), or the indulgence of a secret lust (2 Sam. xii. 9, 10),
brings him under the fearful guilt of despising God?
3. In the mouth of the foolish is a rod of pride: but the lips of the wise shall
preserve him.
How many figures does the wise man employ to sew the destruc-
tive evils of the tongue! Here it is a rod (Ezek. vii. 10, 11), a rod of
pride. The rod in the mouth is often sharper than the rod in the hand.
(Jer. xviii. 18.) Sometimes it strikes against God (Exod. v. 2. Ps. xii.
3, 4. 2 Kings, xix. 10); sometimes it is "the rod of his anger" (Isa. x.
5) against his people; permitted (Rev. xiii. 5), yet restrained. (Ps.
cxxv. 3.) Always in the end is it the rod for the fool himself. (Ib. lxiv.
8.) Yet when the heart is humbled, and filled with wisdom, the tongue
becomes the preservative from imminent dangers (Chap. xii. 6), even
from the threatened scourge of the rod of pride. (Job, v. 21. Ps. xxxi. 20.)
Were this iron rod to rule the earth, who could tolerate the abodes
of men? (Ps. lvii. 4; cxx. 5.) But adored be the grace, which converts
this unruly boasting member of unrighteousness, to be "an instrument
of righteousness unto God!" (Rom. vi. 13.)
4. Where no oxen are, the crib is clean: but much increase is by the strength
of the ox.
Oxen are used in husbandry. (Deut. xxv. 4. 1 Kings, xix. 19.) Where,
therefore, no oxen are, to till the ground, the crib is clean. (Amos, iv. 6.)
Because, where is no labour, there can be no food wherewith to supply
it. God works by means, not by miracles. There must be good hus-
bandry, in order to an abundant harvest. Let the ox be put to his
172 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
work, and much increase will be by his strength. (Ps. cxliv. 14.) In the
spiritual husbandry, where there are no labourers, all is barrenness and
desolation. But see the much increase—the harvest of precious souls
—the fruit of their strength and effectiveness.* "In all labour," both
in the natural and spiritual husbandry, "there is profit." (Verse 23.) But
God will never acknowledge a slothful servant.
5. A faithful witness will not lie: but a false witness will utter lies.
This might seem to be a truism, unworthy of inspiration. But a
closer inspection brings out a valuable maxim of practical wisdom. A
faithful witness is moved neither by entreaties nor bribes, neither by
promises nor threats, to swerve from truth. He is the man to trust. He
will not lie. But a false witness has lost all principle of truth. He will
utter lies, without any inducement but his own interest or pleasure.
Flee from his very breath. (Chap. xxv. 19.)
The faithful witness answers God's requirements. (Ps. li. 6.) He is
therefore his delight. (John, i. 47.) He is the citizen of the heavenly
Zion (Ps. xv. 2; Isa. xxxiii. 15), and the ornament of godliness. (Philip.
iv. 8.) In the Sacred Office he will not lie. His spirit is firm and inde-
pendent. His message is full and transparent truth. (1 Thess. ii. 3, 4.)
But the false witness is a true child of "the father of lies." (John, viii.
44. 1 Kings, xxi. 13.) Awful indeed is his utterance in common life
(Chap. xxv. 18); more awful in the profession of the gospel (Acts, v.
1-4); awful beyond conception in the Sanctuary. (Jer. v. 31.) A
minister of God in his commission! a minister of Satan in his work!
(2 Cor. xi. 13-15) delivering a lying message "subverting the gospel
of Christ" (Gal. i. 7), to the destruction of his people, to the double
destruction of his own soul.
Thus "the good and the corrupt tree," each brings forth its own
fruit. (Matt. vii. 17, 18.) Let us remember, that our principles, good
and evil, are exemplified in the most trivial transactions, and gather
strength from the slightest, as well as from the most important, exer-
cise. (Luke, xvi. 10.)
6. A scorner seeketh wisdom, and findeth it not: but knowledge is easy to
him that understandeth.
What then?—Is the promise belied--"He that seeketh findeth?"1
The failure lies at the scorner's own door. He seeks indeed, but without
seriousness;2 without honesty of purpose;3 without delight;4 solely
for his own interest.5 He finds therefore matter enough for his
1 Matt. vii. 7, 8. Isa. xlv. 19. 2 John, xviii. 38.
3 Jer. x1ii. 1-3 ; xliii. 1-4. Ezra, xiv. 1-4; xx. 1-3. Matt. xxii. 15, 16.
4 Chap. xvii. 16; xviii. 2. 5 Acts, viii. 18-23.
* 1 Cor. iii. 9 ; ix. 9, 10. 1 Tim. v. 18, and the image of the Minister, Rev. iv. 7, seem to
warrant this application of the proverb.
CHAP. XIV. 7. 173
humour, but none for his instruction!* He charges the darkness upon
the Scripture, not—where it really belongs--to his own heart. He
feels himself able to comprehend the subject, and therefore free to
reject what is beyond his conception, or contrary to his prejudices. He
scorns the humbling submission of faith, so that the glory even of the
wisdom of God is foolishness with him. (Rom. ix. 31, 32; x. 3.) No
wonder that, while he makes an effort to seek, he findeth not. (Chap.
xxiv. 7. 2 Tim. iii. 7.) He seeks his object, but neglects the means, and
perishes in the scornfulness of his own unbelief (1 Cor. iii. 19.)
To another class of seekers, knowledge is easy. (Chap. viii. 9.) The
Ethiopian Eunuch gathered his knowledge from simplicity. (Acts, viii.
31.) God gave him a ready will, a right taste; and in " doing his will
he knew his doctrine." (John, vii. 17.) Obedience is the path of under-
standing. " Whosoever shall humble himself as a little child, the same
is the greatest in the kingdom of heaven." (Matt. xviii. 4.)
Shall not we thus unite with our Divine Master in adoring the
gracious Sovereignty of this dispensation?—"Thou hast hid these
things from the wise and prudent, and hast revealed them unto babes."
(Matt. xi. 25.) Shall not we seek for deeper humility, as the pathway
to higher instruction? While we "are in our Father's hands" as the
object of his love, think of the privilege of "sitting down at his feet,
every one to receive of his words." (Deut. xxxiii. 3.)
7. Go from the presence of a foolish man, when thou perceivest not in him
the lips of knowledge.
Fellowship with the ungodly is absolutely forbidden, and it is never
safe to contradict a plain command. (Chap. ix. 6. 2 Cor. vi. 17.) Let us
labour to win their souls to Christ. But the rule of prudence directs--
"Cast not your pearls before swine." ‘Avoid'--says the holy Leigh-
ton—'the mixture of an irreverent commonness of speaking of holy
things indifferently in all companies.'† Therefore when we perceive not
in the foolish man the lips of knowledge, go from his presence. Some may
be called to dispute with him. But take care that the call is clear. It
is at least the safest path to dispatch your business with him as in
a shower of rain, and not to loiter in his society.
Sweet indeed is the glow of the Saviour's name upon the young
Christian's lips. Its warmth may put elder Christians to shame. But
we must warn him--Harm may be got in an imprudent endeavour to
do good. Confess your Master, wherever he may open your door and
your mouth. But better retreat from cavillers. (Chap. xxvi. 4. 1 Tim.
vi. 4, 5.) You may be foiled by specious reasonings. Beware of tam-
pering with your simplicity by the hazardous experiment, how much
poison your constitution may bear. (1 Cor. xv. 33.) If our Lord. exposed
* Lord Bacon, quoted by Bishop Patrick. † Matt. vii. 6. Leighton in loco, vol. iii.
174 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
himself to moral danger; yet think of the impenetrable cover of his
sanctity, his perfect self-government, his rules of godly prudence. Do
we feel secure in the strength of our Christian habits? None are so
confirmed, as to be safe in relaxation of watchfulness, and wanton
rushing into danger. There is a perpetual warfare with the old prin-
ciples of corruption. No dependence can be placed upon any habits,
that do not produce right conduct, and right apprehension of present
duty. The path of sin is much more easily avoided than relinquished.
We can far more readily keep out of the course of the stream, than
stem the torrent. Walk closely with God; and under his cover and
shield bear a protest against the ungodly. (Ps. cxix. 114, 115.) Com-
mune much with his people. The very sight of a man of God is
refreshing. (Chap. xxvii. 9.)
8. The wisdom of the prudent is to understand his way: but the folly of
fools is deceit.
This is not the wisdom of the learned, but of the prudent; not
abstract and speculative, but sound and practical. It is self-knowledge
and self-controul looking upward for Divine guidance. And how much
is this wisdom needed to understand our way! The restless professor
eagerly follows his own impulse. His constitutional bias interprets
Providences, and makes openings for himself. Everything is out of
place. He is so "fervent in spirit," that he becomes a slothful in busi-
ness." He conceives himself to be doing good; the more so, because
it is different from his brethren. He pleads the constraint of zeal as
an excuse for indiscretion; as if religion was meant to destroy, and not
rather to rectify, his judgment.
But "God hath made everything beautiful in his time." (Eccles.
iii. 11.) Religion is an orderly thing, as wise as it is warm. What-
ever be the excitement to an irregular course, more good is done in
steady consistency. To break the ranks in disorder; to "busy our-
selves in other men's matters" (1 Pet. iv. 15. 2 Thess. iii. 11, 12); to
be eager to understand our neighbour's way (John, xxi. 21, 22), obscures
the light upon our own. The true wisdom is to understand what belongs
to us personally and relatively. (1 Kings, iii. 6-9. Eccles. viii. 5.)
"As God hath distributed to every man, so let him walk, and abide
with God." (1 Cor. vii. 17.) Let the eye do the work of the eye, and
the hand of the hand. If Moses prayed on the Mount, and Joshua
fought in the valley (Exod. xvii. 10, 11), it was not because the one
was deficient in courage, or the other in prayer; but because each had
his appointed work, and understood his own way. Many steps of our way
are different from our neighbour's, and may-often be difficult to discern;
being rather involved in the principles, than expressed in the detail, of
Scripture. But the wisdom of the prudent will "understand what the
CHAP. XIV. 9, 10. 175
will of the Lord is." (Eph. v. 17. Col. i. 9, 10.) " A single eye" and a
sound heart will make our way plain. (Matt. vi. 22.)
But while the attention of a truly wise man is occupied in under-
standing his way; 'the arts of deceit engross the polluted minds of the
wicked.'* Their wisdom of deceit is really folly. Gehazi's overreach-
ing wisdom proved folly in the end. Daniel's accusers "were taken in
their craftiness." (Dan. vi. 24. 1 Cor. iii. 19.) Ananias and Sapphira
vainly endeavoured to hide their covetousness under the cover of
liberality. (Acts, v. 1–10.) Who can deceive a heart-searching God?
The attempt to do so is fearful provocation, certain confusion.
9. Fools make a mock at sin : but with the righteous there is favour.
What! Are there such, as will count sin a sport? They have
never seen the sight, never felt the weight. Look into eternity. It is
thought a grave matter in heaven. It is felt so in hell. Why should
it be made a mockery on earth? ‘It brought death into the world, and
all our woe.'† And is this a worthy matter of jest? How does God
feel it?1 Go to Gethsemane. Go to Calvary. Learn there what sin
is. Shall we make a mock at that, which was a crushing burden to the
Son of God?2 Ask converted souls, awakened consciences, dying sin-
ners—do they speak lightly of sin? How will the wretched mocker
call himself in eternity what God calls him now—a fool! The mock-
ing cannot be beyond the grave; except it be the sport of the cruel
enemy at the unchangeably hopeless torments of his deluded victim.
The damnation of souls is sport in hell. Is not then the poor mocker,
rushing into this woe, the object of our pity and prayer? We warn,
we weep, we would yearn over him.
The righteous cannot mock, like this hardened fool. While ‘he
makes himself merry with his sin, and scoffs at the reproof and judgment
which pertains thereunto;‡ "they have the mark of those that sigh
and cry for the abominations of the land"--the sure seal of the Lord's
favour.§ Soon does the sport of the fool come to an end. Here is
favour abundant and unchangeable. Our God looks over, pities, bears
with, guides, loves, saves, eternally. What are crowns and kingdoms
compared with such a portion!
10. The heart knoweth its own bitterness: and a stranger doth not
intermeddle with his joy.
A graphical illustration of man's proper individuality! "What man
knoweth the things of a man, save the spirit of man that is in him?"
1 Isa. xliii. 24. Jer. xliv. 4. Ezek. vi. 9. Amos, ii. 13. 2 Matt. xxvi. 37, 38; xxvii. 46.
* FRENCH and SKINNER'S Translation of Proverbs. † Milton. ‡ Bishop Hall.
§ Ezek. ix. 4-6. 2 Kings, xxii. 19, 20. Dan. ix. 4-21. See the contrast set out by God
himself. Isa. lxvi. 2-6.
176 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
(1 Cor. ii. 11.) The history of the soul is only fully known and felt by
the conscious subject. Each knoweth his own bitterness, deep, interior.*
The most poignant sufferings often arise from causes, which cannot be
told to our dearest friend.† No two of us are framed alike; and this
diversity of mind and character precludes a perfect reciprocity even in
the warmest glow of human sympathy. Each only knows where the
heart is wrung. Each therefore must in a measure tread a solitary
path, and in that path often submit to be misunderstood. Hannah,
knowing her own bitterness, was rashly rebuked by him, who ought to
have been her comfort. (1 Sam. i. 10-43.) Gehazi harshly repelled the
Shunamite, through ignorance of her bitter sorrow. (2 Kings, iv. 27.)
Job's friends, from misconception, proved to be "miserable comforters,
physicians of no value." (Job, xiii. 4 ; xvi. 2.)
But think of Him, who made himself " a man of sorrows," that he
might be "touched with the feeling of our infirmities." '(Isa. liii. 3.
Heb. iv. 15.) This is not the common love to the whole family, but an
individual interest of fellowship, as if each, had his whole heart, and
each was loved alone. The heart's bitterness is experimentally known,
and effectually relieved. (Isa. 1. 4, 5.) Man—very man as he is even
on the throne of God—he is alive to all our sorrows. (Ib. lxiii. 9.)
None of his members are too low for his highest and most endearing
thoughts. Into this bosom we may pour the tale of woe, which no ear
besides can receive. We may not be able to comprehend it. But he
will make us feel, that his sympathy with sorrow is no fiction, but a
precious reality. My Saviour! Has my heart a bitterness, that thou
dost not know, that thou dost not feel with me, and for which thou dost
not provide a present cordial and support?
No less individual is the heart's joy. It lies deep within itself. A
stranger doth not intermeddle with it. Michal could understand David's
bravery, not his joy. She knew him as a man of war, not as a man of
God. (1 Sam. xviii. 20. 2 Sam. vi. 16.) Indeed, joy is a plant in "a
garden enclosed," a stream from "a fountain, sealed." (Cant. iv. 12.) It
is "the secret of the Lord, which is with the righteous." (Chap. iii. 32.
Ps. xxv. 14.) It is the indwelling" Comforter, whom the world cannot
receive." (John, xiv. 16, 17.) Yes truly----that is the highest joy, that
the man hides in his own bosom, covered from observation. There is
no noise, or froth on the surface. But they are deep waters of a Divine
spring. Christ takes the believer apart from the crowd, feeds him on
hidden manna (Rev. ii. 17), and makes him partaker of his own joy.
Whatever cause there may be for mourning, there is "joy from our
* 1 Kings, viii. 38, 39. ‘Every one is inwardly the only true and faithful judge of his
own joys and sorrows, and none also can truly perceive them.'—DIODATI in loco. ‘Each
mind has an interior apartment of his own, into which none but itself and the Divinity can
enter.'—FOSTER On a Man writing Memoirs of himself, Letter vii.
† Thus the Saviour separated himself even from his chosen disciples. Mark, xiv.32-35.
CHAP. XIV. 11, 12. 177
sorrow" (Jer. xxxi. 13), in the midst of it (Rom. v. 3), and as the ever-
lasting fruit of it. (Isa. lx. 20.)
11. The house of the wicked shall be overthrown: but the tabernacle of the
upright shall flourish.
The feeblest state of the upright is more stable than the prosperity of
the wicked. They build a house. The earth is their home, where they
would settle, and take their rest. The upright—knowing the uncer-
tainty of earth, and seeking a better house—only set up a tabernacle
(Heb. xi. 9) -- weak and trembling. Yet the house is overthrown, and
the tabernacle flourishes. (Chap. iii. 33; xii. 7.) The strongest support
of man totters. (Job, viii. 15. Ps. xlix. 12.) The support of God to the
weakest is Omnipotence. (Isa. xl. 29; xli. 10.) The eye of sense seems
however to see the contrary—the flourishing of the wicked, and the
overthrow of the upright. And a sore trial is it to the servant of God.
(Jer. xii. 1.) But " we must walk by faith, not by sight." (2 Cor. v. 7.)
"The sanctuary"—the word of God—will explain. (Ps. lxxiii. 16, 17.
Job, xviii. 14-21.) Wait awhile. The great day will set all in order
before us, and show that "the Judge of all the earth doeth right."
(Gen. xviii. 25. Ps. lviii. 11.) Meanwhile let us leave him to do his
own work, and to fulfil his own word in his own time.
12. There is a way that seemeth right unto a man; but the end thereof are
the ways of death.
No one can doubt the end of open ungodliness. (1 Cor. vi. 9. 1 Tim.
v. 24.) But other paths in the broad road, seemingly right, are not less.
certainly in their end the ways of death. Vice passes under the cover
of virtue. Covetousness is disguised under the name of prudence.
Indeed it is the fearful property of sin to hide its own character and
tendency. The blindness increases in proportion to our familiarity
with it. The self-deceiver has often been "a backslider in heart." (Ps.
xxxvi. 2, 3.) He lost his humility, relaxed his watchfulness, neglected
"the diligent keeping of the heart." Sin soon found admission. When
it could not be wholly covered, it was excused. Appearances were
kept up; misgivings gradually vanished, and the fool mistook death for
life. (Dent. xxix. 19. Isa. xliv. 20. Rev. iii. 17, 18.) But oh! how soon
will the cover drop off, and the discovery be made, that all along sin
was cherished in self-delusion.
‘Take care then'—as the saintly Leighton warns us—of sleeping
unto death in carnal ease.' (On 1 Pet. iii. 21.) Look well to the foun-
dation and soundness of thy faith. (2 Cor. xiii. 5.) Search carefully
both thy Bible and thine heart. Go to the Lord in prayer, and to his
Ministers, to shew you the true way. (1 Sam. xii. 23. Mal. ii. 7.)
"Prove thine own work." (Gal. vi. 4. Ps. cxxxix. 23, 24.) If not a bold
178 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
rebel against thy God, hast thou yielded freely thine heart to him? If
thou be free from open wickedness, art thou not equally free from vital
godliness? The most moralized unrenewed professor is the slave of
sin. Terrible indeed will it be to meet the bridegroom with a bright,
but unfurnished lamp; to fall from high expectations of heaven into
the depths of hell! (Matt. xxv. 1–12.) The Lord keep our eye steadily
on the end of our way, and make that end sure for heaven!
13. Even in laughter the heart is sorrowful: and the end of that mirth is
heaviness.
Many a sigh is heaved amid the loud laughter of folly. (Esth. v.
9–13.) As soon might true joy be found in hell, as in the carnal heart.
As soon might we "gather grapes of thorns, or figs of thistles," as this
"fruit of the Spirit" (Matt. vii. 16.) from ‘nature's barren soil.' As
soon might the tempest-tossed ocean be at rest, as the sinner's con-
science. (Isa, lvii. 20, 21.) He may feast in his prison, or dance in his
chains. He may drink away his trouble. But it is a vain show of
happiness. Ask him what is in his bosom. Is not his smile a counter-
feit to hide a reality of woe? The voice of conscience and experience
will make itself heard--"It is mad—what doeth it?" (Eccles. ii. 2.)
If he has found a diversion from present trouble, has he found a cover
from everlasting misery? It is far easier to drown conviction, than to
escape damnation. And to be merry for a day, and to be in torment for
eternity—who would envy—who would not fee from—such a portion?
Nor do we speak only of the coarse mirth of the vulgar. Take the
fullest cup of earth's best joys. What is this to satisfy desire, to allay
trouble, to meet eternity? Even the present end of this short-lived
mirth is heaviness (Amos, vi. 3–7); sometimes so intolerable, that death
is fled to, as the cure of the anguish; and to avoid the fear of hell, the
wretched sinner leaps into it. (Matt. xxvii. 3–5.) And at best eternity
will change the face of this mirth, when that will remain, which would
be the most desirable riddance—the sting of conscience, as enduring
as the pleasures of sin were momentary. (Luke, vi. 24; xvi. 21-24.
Rom. vi. 21.)
But the end of that mirth implies another mirth with a different end.
Contrast the prodigal's mirth in the far country, with his return to his
father's house, when "they began to be merry." (Luke, xv. 13–24.) The
fruit of carnal mirth ends in heaviness. Penitential sorrow begets a
mirth, that ends in everlasting joy. (Ps. cxxvi. 5, 6. Isa. xxxv. 10.)
Lord! choose mine inheritance for me among thy weeping people.
14. The backslider in heart shall be filled with his own ways: and a good
man shall be satisfied from himself.
Every spot is not the leprosy. Every mark of sin does not prove a
CHAP. XIV. 14, 15. 179
backslider. "A man may be overtaken in a fault" (Gal. vi. 1); or it
may be the sin of ignorance (Lev. iv. 2. Heb. v. 2); or sin abhorred,
resisted, yet still cleaving. (Ram. vii. 15-24.) Backsliding implies a
wilful step; not always open, but the more dangerous, because hidden.
Here was no open apostasy, perhaps no tangible inconsistency. Nay
— the man may be looked up to as an eminent saint. But he is a back-
slider in heart. A secret canker of unwatchfulness worldly conformity
(Hos. vii. 8), neglect, or indulgence, has insensibly "devoured his
strength." (Hos. vii. 9. Judg. xvi. 20.) He was once pressing onward.
A languor has now stolen upon him. His heart beats unsteadily. He
has become formal and hurried in his prayers; lukewarm in the means
of grace: reading his Bible to soothe his conscience, rather than to feed
his soul. The first steps, instead of alarming, and bringing him to
secret weeping (Matt. xxvi. 75), hurried him onwards from one liberty
to another, till he lost all power of resistance. His unsoundness was
known to God, long before it was manifested to the Church. Before
the matter of Uriah, indolence and security had probably unhinged the
man of God, and laid him open to the tempter. (2 Sam. xi. 1, 2.)
Perhaps this dispensation may be permitted to teach the child of God
his need of watchfulness and dependence. (2 Chron. xxxii. 31. Philip.
ii. 12.) The backslider's folly and wretchedness is graphically pour-
trayed, as a merciful warning to the church. He needs no other
rod than his own ways. To be filled with them; thus to become the
fountain of his own misery; is the most fearful of all Divine judgments.1
The good man is also filled from himself;* yet not as the backslider,
with misery, but with solid satisfaction. God has gives him a fountain
fed from a higher fountain; a living spring within himself (John, iv.
14); the witness of the Spirit (Rom. viii. 16); the life and joy of the
Heavenly Comforter (John, xiv. 16, 17); the rejoicing testimony of his
conscience (2 Cor„ i. 12); the assured hope of glory. (Col. i. 27.) This
is not independent of God, the one source of self-sufficiency. But it is
Himself dwelling in the heart and filling it with his fulness. Let the
sinner compare the satisfaction of sin and godliness--the curse and the
blessing; and lift up his heart for the direction of a right choice. Let
the backslider return to the gospel to awaken his contrition, and to
reanimate his faith. (Hos. xiv.) Let the good man invigorate his soul
daily from his well of consolation.
15. The simple believeth every word; but the prudent man looketh well to
his going.
To believe every word of God is faith. To believe every word of man
is credulity. Faith is a principle of infinite moment. Eternal life and
1 Ps. xxxii. 3, 4. Jer. ii. 19; iv. 8. Comp. 1 Sam. xxviii. 15; Matt. xxvii. 3-5.
* au]ta<rkhj, Philip. iv. 11, self-sufficiency. Comp. 2 Cor. ix. 8.—Gr.
180 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
death hang upon it. (Mark, xvi. 16. John, iii. 36.) But it must be
grounded upon evidence, and it can only be exercised according to the
character and measure of the evidence. An indiscriminate faith is there-
fore fraught with mischief. The world was ruined by this weakness.
(Gen. iii. 1-6.) And often since has it been the occasion of sin (2 Sam.
xvi. 1-4. Esth. iii. 8-11), and even of downfall. (1 Kings, xiii. 11-19.)
Look at the fruit of this folly in the Church, when "our faith stands
in the wisdom of men, not in the power of God." (1 Cor. ii. 5.) Men
become loose in fundamental principles. They are "carried about with
divers and strange doctrines," and never know "the good thing of a
heart established with grace." (Heb. xiii. 9. Eph. iv. 14.) The novel-
ties of fancy, accredited by some favourite name, readily pass for the
revelation of God. We do not thus sit down to our food blindfolded;
not knowing whether we take food or poison. But here men are ready
to drink of any cup that is presented to them, like children, who think
everything good that is sweet. Thus are "unstable souls beguiled,"
and "corrupted from the simplicity that is in Christ." (2 Cor. xi. 3.)
Errors, never solitary, are built upon some partial, insulated, or per-
verted truth. Feeling and excitement come in the place of solid
practical principle.
But the prudent looketh well to his going. Cautious consideration
should mark our general conduct; trying before we trust; never trust-
ing an uncertain profession. (Neh. vi. 2-4. John, ii. 24.) Specially in
the Church, carefully ponder whom we follow. Sift the most plausible
pretensions. (1 Thess. v. 21. 1 John, iv. 1.) Never set a great name
against the Divine testimony. (Isa. viii. 20. Admit only the one
standard; like the noble Bereans, who would not believe even an
apostle's word, except it was confirmed by the written testimony. (Acts,
xvii. 11.) Ask wisdom of God. Carefully regulate the energy of
religion by the Divine rule. Enlist feeling on the side, and under the
direction, of sound judgment. This prudent carefulness will exhibit a
well-ordered Christian profession.
16. A wise man feareth, and departeth from evil: but the fool rageth, and
is confident.
Fear is sometimes thought to be an unmanly principle. But look at
the terrible extent of the evil dreaded. Without—it is vanity and dis-
appointment.1 Within—it is the sting of guilt.2 Upward—we see
the frown of God.3 Downward--everlasting burnings.4 Surely then
to depart from this evil,5 yea —to fear it worse than death,6 is true
wisdom.
1 Rom. vi. 21. 2 Chap. xiii. 15. 1 Cor. xv. 56. 3 John, iii. 36.
4 Ps. ix. 17. Mark, ix. 44. 5 Gen. xxxix. 9, 10.
6 Dan. iii. 16-15; vi. 10. Luke, xii. 5.
CHAP. XIV. 17. 181
The fool however, stout and stubborn in his mind, never fears till
he falls. The voice of God is unheard amid the uproar of passion, like
a raving tempest. Bravely independent, he sits amid the threatenings
of God as unalarmed, as Solomon amid his brazen lions; ‘carried by his
rash will, and blind passion, without apprehending the end and issue
of things.'* His character is here drawn to life. He rageth, and is
confident. Such a fool was Rehoboam, when his self-willed confidence
rejected the counsel of wisdom and experience. (1 Kings, xii. 13–15.)
Such a fool was the raging Assyrian, blindly confident in his own might,
till the God whom he despised turned him back to his destruction.
(2 Kings, xix. 28–37.) And will not the child of God bless his Father's
painful discipline, so needful to curb his raging will, and bring down
his high confidence—"Thou hast chastised me, and I was chastised, as
a bullock unaccustomed to the yoke: turn thou me, and I shall be
turned; for thou art the Lord my God?" (Jer. xxxi. 18.)
17. He that is soon angry dealeth foolishly: and a man of wicked
devices is hated.
Different gradations of sin are here opposed to each other—the
sudden passion, and the deliberate purpose; the gust and the continu-
ance of the storm. A hasty temper convicts us of foolishness before
our fellow-men. (2 Kings, v. 11–13.) What frightful mischief may be
the consequence of an angry word! (Jam. iii. 5.) How fearfully did
the "man after God's own heart" suffer the fire to burst out! (1 Sam.
xxv. 21.) Who then, with this example before us, will dare to relax the
watch? But are these sins of temper matters of sorrow and humilia-
tion? Does the remembrance of their cost to our crucified Friend
exercise our constant watchfulness, and prayerful resistance? Is not
our loving Father's rod sometimes needful to bring conviction of their
guilty foolishness? (Num. xx, 10–12) Oh, for a rich vouchsafement
of that " charity, that is not easily provoked!" (1 Cor. xiii. 5.) 'Let
us give our hearts no rest, until we have purged their gall, and
tempered them with the sweetness and gentleness of our Lord and
Saviour.'†
But sin grows from weakness to wilfulness. ‘The first makes a
man contemptible; the second, abominable.'‡ Wicked devices;1
cherished malice;2 one act preparing for another; almost aiming at
the uttermost3 — all this shews the true picture of man, "hateful, and
hating one another."4 Such a man is hated of God, as "an abomina-
tion."5 Man holds him up to his righteous scorn.6 Absalom's pillar,
1 Ps. xxxvi. 2-4; lxiv. 2-9. Jer. v. 26. 2 Gen. iv. 8; xxvii. 41. 3 2 Sam. xv. 2-12.
4 Tit. iii. 3. 5 Chap. vi. 16-18. 6 Ps. lii. 2-7.
* Diodati, 2 Chron. xxv 15-20. † DAILLE on Col. iii. 8. Comp. Col. iii. 13.
‡ Diodati.
182 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
the monument of his name, is to this day the object of universal con-
tempt.* The hatred of Haman's wicked devices is perpetuated from
generation to generation. (Esth. ix. 23-28.) Why are these warnings,
if we regard them not? Our dignity is our likeness to God! What
shame and degradation must there be in this contrariety to him!
18. The simple inherit folly: but the prudent are crowned with knowledge.
The simple and prudent are again contrasted. The child of Adam is
born to folly. (Job, xi. 12.) That is his inheritance. He "received it
by tradition from his fathers" (1 Pet. i. 18): yea, from his first father.
(Gen. v. 3. Ps. li. 5.) So long as he remains simple, he confirms his
title. Unlike an earthly inheritance, he cannot relinquish it. He holds
it in life; and, when he "returns naked to the earth, from whence he
came" (Job, i. 21. 1 Tim. vi. 7), he still holds it firm in death, and
reaps its bitter fruits throughout eternity. Here is no injustice, no just
cause of complaint. Sinner! is not wisdom freely offered to thee in
asking for it? (Jam. i. 5.) Dost not thou therefore continue simple
only by thy wilful neglect? If knowledge is at hand, to be satisfied
with ignorance, is to throw away a talent of inestimable price. 'I con-
fess'--says Doctor South--'God has no need of any man's learning;
but certainly then he has much less need of his ignorance.'† The pru-
dent, instructed in heavenly knowledge, are enabled to behold Divine
objects in a Divine light. Is not this knowledge therefore their crown,
not of laurel, not of perishing gold; but beautifying the man with all
the light, holiness, joy, and glory of life eternal? This is not that
religion of eccentric singularities, which obscures the glory of the
Divine image. Steady consistency is stamped upon it, such as en-
thrones its possessor in the conviction and regard even of those, who
are unfriendly to his principles. (1 Pet. ii. 12.) Thus "the wise" in
this life "inherit glory.” (Chap. iii. 35.) What shall be their glory in
eternity, sitting on the throne of God, crowned with the hand of God
himself!
19. The evil bow before the good: and the wicked at the gates of the
righteous.
This is not the general rule of the present dispensation. Righteous
Lazarus bowed at the wicked man's gate. (Luke, xvi. 20.) Thus faith is
tried (Ps. lxxiii. 12), and the foundations of our heavenly hopes more
deeply grounded. (2 Cor. iv. 17, 18.) And yet often has the very
letter of the proverb been verified. The Egyptians and Joseph's
* Calmet mentions the habit of passing travellers throwing stones at Absalom's pillar,
to shew their hatred of a son's rebellion against his father and that now the accumulation
of stones hides the lower part of the monument. This tradition is confirmed by recent
travellers.
† Sermon on 1 Kings, xiii. 33, 34. Vol. i.
CHAP. XIV. 20. 183
brethren bowed before Joseph;1 the proud Pharaoh and his people
before Moses;2 Saul to David;3 Jehoram and Naaman before Elisha;4
Haman before Esther;5 the magistrates before the apostles.6 More
often still is the spirit of this proverb illustrated in the constrained
testimony of the wicked to the pre-eminence of the righteous. (Rev. iii.
9.) The millennial era will exhibit a more glorious fulfilment. (Isa.
xlix. 23; lx. 14. Rev. xx. 4.) The grand consummation will set all
things right, and shed a Divine splendour over this profound aphorism.
"The upright shall have dominion over the wicked in the morning."
(Ps. xlix. 14. Mal. iv. 1-3.) "The saints shall judge the world." (1 Cor.
vi. 2) They shall there appear in their suitable rank, exalted with
their glorious Head over the whole creation. (Rev. ii. 26.) Oh! let the
sunshine of this glory irradiate every clouded morn. If this be not
enough to counter-balance the scorn of the ungodly, where is our faith?
Had we a clear apprehension of this glory, should we have an eye for
anything else? Would not all besides, except as it had a reference to
this day, be an utter impertinence?
20. The poor is hated even of his own neighbour: but the rich hath many
friends.
An humbling, but how common an illustration of native selfishness
Sometimes however we hear of cheering exceptions. "Ruth clave to
Naomi" in her poverty;7 Jonathan to David, when stripped of royal
favour.8 But too generally the poor, instead of being pitied and com-
forted (Job, vi. 14. Isa. lviii. 7), is hated or neglected of his own neigh-
bour.* Yet the rich is not in a more enviable condition. He has many
friends indeed to his money and favour, but few to his interest. Many
would be the deserters, should a change of circumstave cut off sup-
plies for their appetites, pleasures, or covetousness. (Chap. xix. 4, 6.)
But how endearing is the love of Jesus! He was emphatically the
Poor man's Friend. (Ps. lxxii. 12, 14.) He sought his many friends
among the wretched and forlorn (Matt. iv. 18–22); and still does his
powerful compassion plead for those hated ones among their fellow-
sinners. (Ps. cix. 31.) Shall not we then, like the tried saint of old,
learn to look off from earthly destitution in a cleaving confidence on
Him, as the Rock of our salvation? (Job, xix. 13-27.) The practical
exercise of this confidence will be an overcoming of our selfish propen-
sity; cultivating that tenderness, which, instead of shrinking from the
1 Gen. xli. 43; xlii. 6. 2 Exod. viii. 8; ix. 27, 28; xi. 8.
3 1 Sam. xxiv. 16-21; xxvi. 21. 4 2 Kings, iii. 12; v. 9.
6 Esth. vii. 7. 6 Acts, xvi. 39.
7 Ruth, i. 14, 21, 22. 8 1 Sam. xix. 1-7; xxiii. 16.
* Chap. x. 15; xix. 4, 7. Luke, xvi. 21.
Nil habet infelix pauipertas durius in se,
Quam quad ridiculos homines facit.—JUVENAL, iii. 152, 153.
184 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
sight of misery, hastens, though at the expense of personal sacrifice, to
its sympathizing relief. (Luke, x. 33-35.)
21. He that despiseth his neighbour sinneth but he that hath mercy on the
poor, happy is he.
The last proverb sheaved the general standard of selfishness. Here
we see its positive sinfulness. Some men are so high, that they cannot
see their lower brother. Yeti infinitely precious and honoured may be
this despised one in the Saviour's eyes, as the purchase of his blood.
And what a span is the distance between him and his most elevated
fellow-creature, compared with the infinite space between him and his
God! Yet doth he "that dwelleth on high," instead of despising, write
his name upon him, "raise him from the dust, and lift him out of the
dunghill, that he may set him with the princes of his people." (Ps.
exiii. 7, 8.) The plain command is--"Honour all men" (1 Pet. ii. 17),
not all with equal measure; but in all honour our own nature, the re-
mains, however defaced, of the image of God. To look therefore upon
the meanest, as if he were made to be despised, shews a want of wisdom,
and a want of heart. (Chap. xi. 12.) 'Because we think we over-top
him, therefore to think we may overlook him,* and neglect to have
mercy on him (Chap. xxi. 13. Jam. ii. 16)--this is reflecting on God's
own Providence (Verse 31); forgetting his example (2 Cor. viii, 9);
setting up our own judgment against his; sinning against his law of
love. (Jam. ii. 1-9.) And most fearfully will he visit this sin at the
day of recompense. (Job, xxxi. 13-15. Matt. xxv. 42-45.)
But oh! the felicities of him that hath mercy on the poor;1 "hoping
for nothing again " (Luke, vi. 35); constrained by love to Christ and
his fellow-sinners! 'He shall be happy beyond expression.'† Does
not every exercise of love enlarge our own happiness? (Chap. xi. 17.)
Do we not ourselves richly feed on the bread, with which we "feed the
hungry?" (Isa. lviii. 8.) And will not the great day declare and
honour every act of love for our Divine Master? (Matt. xxv. 35-40.)
22. Do they not err that devise evil? but mercy and truth shall be to them
that devise good.
Scripture traces actions to principles. Wicked as it is to do evil, it
is far more hateful to devise it. (See verse 17.) Devising is the incipient
working of the principle. Devising evil therefore, if it comes not to the
act, shews the purpose. (Chap. xxiv. 8.) They, may be men of con-
summate wisdom in other matters; but here at least do they not err?
They miss either their object, or their anticipated happiness from it.
1 Comp. Ps. xli. 3; cxii. 9. Jer. xxii. 16. Dan. iv. 27. Matt. v. 7.
* Bishop SANDERSON on Rom. xiv. 3.
† Scott. 'At qui miseretur inopum, 0 beatitudines illius!'--SCHULTEMS. Holden also
marks the peculiar emphasis of this pronoun.
CHAP. XIV. 23. 185
Witness the shame of the Babel-builders (Gen. xi. 9); the confusion of
Haman's device (Esth. vii. 10); the over-ruling of the wicked plot against
our beloved Lord. (Ps. ii. 1–4. Matt. xxi. 41-44.) How did the devisers
thwart their own purpose to their fearful cost! How little did Judas
estimate the result of his devising of evil--"A little matter kindling an
unquenchable fire!" (Matt. xxvi. 14–16; xxvii. 3-5.)
Children of God! Do you exhibit the same diligence and deter-
mination in devising good? Even if your fruit be frustrated, your work
will be accepted. (1 Kings, viii. 18.). Mercy and truth are often set out
as reward of grace, the cheering encouragement to practical godliness.
What can be more joyous than the glorious perfections of Jehovah,
pouring into the soul the quickening energy of Divine blessing; mercy
the fountain-head, truth the pledge and fulfilment of unchangeable
mercy!*
23. In all labour there is profit: but the talk of the lips tendeth only to
penury.
This is not universally true. What profit is in the labour of sin
(Rom. vi. 21), or of ill-timed work? Fruitful also is the talk of teach-
ing lips (Chap. x. 21; xv. 7.) But the contrast is intended between
what is solid on the one hand and what is shadowy on the other,
between lawful, well-directed labour, and empty talk. "Bread eaten in
the sweat of the face" is the profit of bodily labour. (Gen. iii. 19.) But
the idler is condemned to penury upon the talk of his lips. (Chap. xx. 4;
xxi. 25.) Enlargement of mind is also the profit of mental labour.
(Eccles. xii. 9, 10.) But the "prating fool" (Chap. x. 8) ‘cuts himself
off from all advantage, except that of being entertained by his own
talk; his business in coming into company not being, at all to be
informed, to hear, to listen, but to display himself, and to talk without
any design at all.'† Clearly therefore the talk of his lips tendeth only to
penury. Rich beyond conception is the profit of spiritual labour. (Chap.
x. 16.) "The Son of man gives to the labourer enduring meat. The
violent take the kingdom of heaven by force. The labour of love God
is not unrighteous to forget." (John, vi. 27. Heb.6, 10.) But the talk
of the lips gives husks, not bread. Where there are only shallow con-
ceptions of the gospel, and no experimental enjoyment of Christian
establishment, it is ‘all running out in noise.'‡ There ids no instruc-
tion, because there is no "good treasure" within. (Matt. xii. 35.)
"What manner of communications are these that ye have one to
* Gen. xxiv. 27. 2 Sam. xv. 20. Ps. xxv. 10; lxi. 7; cxvii. 2. Mic. vii. 20. ‘Note'—
says an old expositor—'that Solomon here is no lawgiver, but an evangelist, leading us
unto Jesus Christ. For we can obtain no mercy but in him only. For "the promises of
God are yea and amen in him.”'—Cope in loco.
† Bishop BUTLER'S Sermon on the Government of the Tongue.
‡ Henry. 1 Tim. v. 13. See Bunyan's graphical portrait of Talkative.
186 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
another?" (Luke, xxiv. 17) —is a searching question. Ministers,
doctrines, the externals, circumstantials, disputations on religion--all
may be the mere skirts and borders of the great subject, utterly remote
from the heart and vitals. And indeed, the discussion of the substance
of religion without reverence, without a sense of the Divine presence,
and a single eye to edification, is only a profanation of holy things, and
at best must alienate the precious truths from their true purpose.
Nothing comes from a broken heart. It is only the deluding indul-
gence of a refined lust, a religious tongue without a godly heart--all
tending only to penury. Take care that religious conversation deserves
the name. Let the stamp of the profession of the saints of God be
visible. (Ps. cxlv. 10-12.) Let the burning theme of the Saviour's love
flow from the heart. (Luke, xxiv. 14-32.) Let that "name, which is
above every name," be upon our lips, "as ointment poured forth;" so
that "the whole house"— all that are living with us —"may be filled
with the odour of the ointment." (Cant. i. 3. John, xii. 3.)
24. The crown of the wise is their riches: but the foolishness of fools is
folly.
The godly first are made wise by being "crowned with knowledge."
(Verse 18.) Then the crown of the wise are their riches. For though, as
a fearful temptation (Matt. xiii. 22; xix. 23), no wise man would desire
them; yet as the gift of God (1 Kings, iii. 13. Ps. cxii. 3) (the gift
indeed of his left hand) (Chap. 16) they may become his crown.
They enhance his reputation, and enlarge his usefulness as a consecrated
talent for God. What a crown were they to David and his wise Son, as
the materials for building the temple;1 and to Job, as employed lbr the
good of his fellow-creatures!2 So that, though wisdom "under all
circumstances is a blessing, it is specially pronounced to be "good with
an inheritance." (Eccles. vii. 11, 12.) ‘It is necessary to distinguish be-
tween the thing itself, and the abuse of it. Wealth is in fact a blessing,
when honestly acquired, and conscientiously employed. And when
otherwise, the man is to be blamed, and not his treasure.*
But if riches are the crown of the wise, they cannot disguise fools.
They only seem to make their folly more open. Wasted on their selfish
gratifications they become, not their crown, but their foolishness.3 The
foolish son of this wise father, with all his riches, only exposed his folly
more egregiously, and lost ten precious jewels from his royal crown,
(1 Kings, xii. 16.) Whatever be our talents, let us trade with them for
eternity, and they will be our everlasting crown. (Luke, xix. 13; xvi.
9. 1 Tim. vi. 19.)
1 Chron. xxix. 1-5. 2 Chron. v. 1. 2 Job, xxix. 6-17. Comp. Ps. cxii. 9.
3 I Sam. xxv. 36-33. Ps. xlix. 1.0-13. Luke, xii. 19, 20.
* COWPER's Cursory Remarks on Carracioli. Southey's Ed. viii. 273.
CHAP. XIV. 25-26. 187
25. A true witness delivereth souls : but a deceitful witness speaketh lies.
How weighty is the responsibility of testimony! (Chap. xxiv. 12.)
Every Christian has in him a principle of conscientious faithfulness.
As a true witness he would deliver the innocent from oppression or ruin.
But an ungodly man would prove a deceitful witness, the agent of
Satan (1 Kings, xxi. 13), speaking lies for his neighbour's destruction.
(Matt. xxvi. 60. Acts, vi. 13. Comp. chap. xii. 6, 17.) What need have
we to "walk before God" in our words, ready to hazard all for the
interests of truth (Ps. xv. 2; xxiv. 3-5); considering our obligations to
one another (Eph. iv. 25); ‘mindful of that true and faithful witness,
which every man carries in his own bosom, which no gift can blind, no
power can silence;'* realizing our solemn appearing before the God
of truth, when "by our words we shall be justified or condemned!"
(Matt. xii. 37.) If the responsibility be so great to the witness in court,
how much more to the witness in the pulpit!† Oh! is the minister of
God a true witness, by the declaration of his message, assured, that no
other truth, no adulteration of this truth, will deliver souls? (1 Tim. iv.
16.) Or is he speaking lies, holding back or denying truth, to the ruin
of the soul, whom he was charged to deliver? (Jer. v. 31. Exod. xiii.
17. Comp. verse 5.) ‘As they are the most profitable witnesses, which
preach to us Jesus Christ; even so, the most exquisite deceivers are
they, who under the shadow of religion do set forth men's traditions.'‡
26. In the fear of the Lord is strong confidence: and his children shall
have a place of refuge.
"Fear hath torment." (1 John, iv. 18. Acts, xxiv. 25.) It is the
trembling of the slave (Rom. viii. 15); the dread of wrath, not of sin.
There is no confidence here. It is pure selfishness. It ends in self.
There is no homage to God. But the true fear of God a holy, happy
(See Ps. cxii. 1; xxxiii. 18; cxlvii. 11), reverential principle; not that
which "love casts out" (1 John, iv. 18), but which love brings in. It.
is reverence tempered with love. We fear, because we love. We
"fear his goodness" (Hos. iii. 5. Ps. cxxx. 4) no less than his justice;
not because we doubt his love, but because we are assured of it. (Heb.
xii. 28. 1 Pet. i. 17, 18.) We fear, yet we are not afraid. (Ps. cxii. 1, 7.)
The holiest and humblest is the most fixed and trusting heart. The
fear of man produces faintness. (Chap. xxix. 25. Jonah, i. 3. Gal. ii. 12.)
The fear of the Lord—such is the Christian paradox —emboldens. Its
child-like spirit shuts out all terrors of conscience, all forebodings of
eternity. Confidence—strong confidence—issues out of it. Abraham
sacrificed his son in the fear of God; yet fully confident, "that God was
able to raise him up from the dead." (Gen. xxii. 12, with Heb. xi. 17-19.)
* Bishop HORNE's Sermon on the Great Assize.
† Lavater and Scott in loco. ‡ Cope in loco.
188 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
The fear of God led the Babylonish captives with unshaken confidence
into the fiery furnace. (Dan. iii. 16-18.) And thus does the child of
God, while walking in godly fear, rejoice in confidence, even in the most
frowning dispensation.1 His covenant privilege covers him;2 "and
that wicked one toucheth him not."3
And how happy is the change wrought on our profession! Before,
as criminals, we fled from God—now, as his children, we "flee to him
—to hide us." (Gen. iii. 8, with Ps. cxliii. 9) The atonement, which
has "made an end of sin;" the righteousness, which hath brought in
the sunshine of favour; the intercession which maintains our standing
of acceptance—this is our ground of confidence, strong as death,
stronger than hell. (Rom., viii. 31-39.) Yes—if heaven and earth
shake, God hath ordained and secured, that his children shall have a place
of refuge, such as they need, and when they need (Ps. xlvi. 1; xxviii. 3.
Isa. xxxii. 2) when the enemy is most strongly assaulting (Ps. lvi.
1-4. Isa. xxv. 4); at the last extremity, when every other refuge shall
have been swept away. (Isa. xxviii. 16, 17.) Oh! does not every act
of faith strengthen our confidence, and realize more sensibly the peaceful
security of our refuge? (Chap. i. 33; xviii. 10. Isa. xxxii. 18, 19.) But
remember— nothing short of a full application of the atonement can
establish our confidence, and deliver us from slavish fear and uncertainty.
27. The fear of the Lord is a fountain of life, to depart from the snares of
death.
How glowing is this Divine principle! refreshing like the springs
of Canaan; 4 full of life,5 temporal,6 spiritual,7 eternal.8 It is the
influence of the heavenly Comforter, as a fountain "springing up into
everlasting life." (John, iv. 14.) Its preserving tendency is invaluable.
It is always connected with the fear of sin (Chap. iii. 7; xvi. 6), as
grieving our most beloved friend, and separating from our only happi-
ness; while it keeps us from the snares of death (Eccles. vii. 26), "the
end and wages of sin." (Rom. vi. 23.) How complete then is its
application! Not only is it a refuge from danger, but a fountain of life.
Not only does Christian confidence open a cover from the guilt, but its
holy influence roots out the power, of sin. For among the countless
throng of the redeemed not one finds a cover, from condemnation, who
is not renovated unto spiritual life. Thus does this invaluable grace
flow with the full streams of gospel blessing. How much of that
worldliness that soils our profession, and of the restraint that contracts
our spiritual joy, may be traced to the sparing or defective application
of this Christian principle!
1 Job, 1. 1, with xiii. 15. Mic. vii. 7-9. Heb. iii. 16-19. 2 Jer. xxxii. 40.
3 1 John, v. 18. Comp. chap. iii. 21-26; xix. 23. 4 Deut. viii. 7. Josh. xv. 19.
5 Chap. xxii. 4. 6 Chap. x. 27. 7 Chap. xix. 23. Mal. iv. 2.
8 Ps. viii. 17.
CHAP. XIV. 28, 29. 189
28. In the multitude of people is the king's honour; but in the want of
people is the destruction of the prince.
The Bible is a book for all. Even the King is interested in it, and
was commanded to treasure it. (Dent. xvii. 18.) It describes him as
a curse or a blessing to his people, as he is led by his own caprice
(1 Kings, xii. 13), or directed by Divine wisdom. (2 Chron. ix. 8.) ‘He
is not appointed for luxury or for pleasure; but that as a Head he may
preside over his members; as a Shepherd, he may care for his flock; as
a tree, he may nourish those who dwell under his shadow.'* In the
multitude of people is his honour. They are the stay and strength of his
kingdom.† In the want of people is his destruction. His revenue fails.
His, strength is enfeebled. His enemies take advantage of his weak-
ness. (2 Kings, xiii. 4-7.) His interests and his people's are one. In
promoting their happiness, the prince secures his own honour. (Ps. lxxii.)
If he be the father of his numerous family, he will always have "a
quiver full of arrows to meet his enemies in the gate." (Ib. cxxvii.)
How great then is the honour of our heavenly King in the countless multi-
tude of his people! How overwhelmingly glorious will it appear, when
the completed number shall stand before his throne (Rev. vii. 9, 10)
each the medium of reflecting his glory (2 Thess. i. 10); each with a
crown to cast at his feet (Rev. iv. 10, 11), and a song of everlasting joy
to tune to his praise! (Ib. v. 9.)
29. He that is slow to wrath is of great understanding: but he that is
hasty (short, marg.) of spirit exalteth, folly.
The world judge very lightly of a hasty spirit, except when it
touches themselves. ‘It is a fit of passion, soon over and forgotten.'
But does God judge so? See how his word stamps the native rooted
principle. It is "giving place to the devil;1 grieving the Holy
Spirit;"2 contrary to the mind and example of Christ;3 inconsistent
with the profession of the Gospel;4 degrading human nature;5 a work
of the flesh, that shuts out from heaven,6 and condemns to hell?
Surely then to be slow to wrath--such a fruitful source of sin and
misery — is a proof of great understanding. (Chap. xx. 11; xx. 3. Jam.
iii. 17.) It is as if we felt our just dignity, and high obligations.
But too often, instead of being slow to wrath, the spirit is hasty, and
finds a short way to wrath. It is as tinder to every spark of provoca-
tion, and at one step hurries into the midst of wrath. There is
often a sourness of spirit, that sits upon men, by which they are
1 Eph. iv. 26, 27. 2 Ib. verse 30. 3 Matt. xi. 29. Phil. 11.3-6. 1 Pet. ii. 23.
4 Col. iii. 8, 12, 13. 5 Chap. xvii. 12; xxv. 8 ; xxix. 20.
6 Gal. v. 19-21. 7 Matt. v. 22.
* Geier.
† 1 Kings, iv. 20. 2 Chron. xvii. 14-19. Yet this honour had well nigh proved the de-
struction of the prince in the chastisement of his pride. 2 Sam. xxiv.
190 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
angry at they know not what; lighting into a flame at the most
trifling matters, such as in cooler moments we shall be ashamed at
having contended for. Terrible flames have arisen from these trifling
sparks.* This is indeed exalting folly on an eminence to be seen by all.
(Chap. iii. 35.) Yet too often passion serves instead of law and reason,
and this folly is deemed high-mindedness and proper spirit. Oh! it is
a mercy to be delivered from the standard of this world, and to live,
act, and judge by the standard of God and his word.
But let the children of God remember, that a hasty spirit con-
demned the meekest of men. (Ps. cvi. 32, 33.) Never was folly more
exalted, than by the fretful selfishness of a prophet of the Lord. (Jonah,
iv.) The gentlest spirit needs to be cast into a deep mould of lowliness
and love for communion with God. (Isa. lvii. 15. 1 John, iv. 16.) Who
can plead inability to resist? Has not God given understanding to
shew the temper; reason to govern it; his Word and Spirit to crucify
it? Realize our obligations to sovereign grace, as the effective disci-
pline for this baneful propensity. (Jam. i. 18, 19.)
30. A sound heart is the life of the flesh: but envy the rottenness of the
bones.
Many will admit religion to be good for the soul. But they con-
ceive its fancied gloom to be injurious to the body. The wise man,
however, teaches, that it is the life of the flesh. (Chap. iii. 7, 8.) And
surely a sound heart, freed from corroding passions, and imbued with
Christian habits, though it will not bring immortality, must be
eminently conducive to health.† The contrast, however, here distin-
guishes a sound heart by the absence of selfishness,‡ and rejoicing in
another's happiness or honour. (Num. xi. 29.) Envy, on the other hand, is
wounded by our neighbour's prosperity. (Gen. xxvi. 14. 1 Sam. xviii. 9.)
His ruin, or at least his injury, would give pleasure. It sickens at hearing
of his praises, and repines at his very virtues. Something is always
wrong in his conduct, something at least, which, if it does not deserve
blame, greatly detracts from his intolerable praise. This evil is indeed
the deadliest fruit of selfishness. Nothing flourishes under its shade.
(Jam. iii. 16.) Often is it a fretting sickness (Esth. vi. 6, 12), or a
pining despondency (Ps. cxii. 10), like the destruction of the bodily
system by the rottenness of the bones. 'Truly'-- as Bishop Hall
observes —‘this vice is executioner enough to itself!'§ Such a hell
does the man carry in his own bosom! Alas! that this plant should
be the growth of our own soil.|| So contrary is it to the mind of Christ
* See on verse 17.
† The soul disburdened of passions and perturbations, helpeth strength and liveliness
of body very much.--DIODATI.
‡ ‘Cor senator' SCHULTENS—a benevolent heart.
§ Sermon on Rom. xii. 2.—Works, v. 251. || Mark, vii. 22, ‘evil eye,' James, iv. 5.
CHAP. XIV. 31, 32. 191
(Rom. xiii. 13), and to the spirit of his gospel. (II Cor, xiii. 4.) So
surely will it exclude from heaven! (Gal. v. 21.)
31. He that oppresseth the poor reproacheth his Maker: but he that
honoureth him hath mercy on the poor.
Are not the poor no less than the rich "made in the image of God?"
(Gen. ix. 6.) Both "meet together" before their Maker without respect
of persons. (Chap. xxii. 2. Job, xxxi. 15.) Both carry the same undying
principle in their bosom. Both sink to the same humiliating level of
death. Both rise to the same eminence of immortality. Besides--
have not the poor a special interest in, the Gospel?1 Was not the
Gospel first spread by the poor?2 Has not the voluntary poverty of
the Son of God for us put high honour upon the lowly condition?3
Then what ground is there to oppress the poor, as if they were of a
lower grade than ourselves? This involves the guilt of reproaching our
Maker. (Chap. xvii. 5.) It is slighting his own work; despising his
own ordinance (Deut. xv. 11), and charging him with injustice, as if he
had formed the poor to be the footstool of their oppressors. (1 Sam. ii. 7.)
Would we honour God? We must not only refrain from oppressing;
but we, must have mercy on the poor. Sure and large is the interest of
this mercy (Chap. xix. 17. Ps. xli. 1) in the case of the Lord's poor.
High indeed is the privilege, and everlasting the recompense, of
honouring the Saviour in his own person. (Matt. xxv. 40.)
32. The wicked is driven away in his wickedness: but the righteous hath
hope in his death.
We cannot judge men by their outward condition, for "there is one
event to the righteous and to the wicked." (Eccles. ix. 2.) Such a judg-
ment would often throw the balance on the wrong side. (Ps. lxxiii. 12.)
The standard of the world is not less erroneous. While men rarely
give an unqualified commendation of their neighbours in mutual
intercourse; yet—as respects God--all are good enough for heaven.
A hope is entertained of the most criminal, that they, will be taken to
mercy at last. And thus the distinctive terms — righteous and wicked
--so confounded, and brought so near each other, that there is
little meaning in either.
But now let us turn to this striking picture before us, which sweeps
away all human standards. Eternity is here realized before us—the
wicked and the righteous— each "going to his own place." (Acts, i. 25.)
Let us ponder the sight with deep-toned solemnity. 0 my soul, "make
thy calling sure! "The wicked includes a diversified mass of character.
Many are amiable, useful, and in a variety of ways exelmplary. Others
1 Matt. xi. 5. Jam. ii. 5. Ps. lxviii. 10. 2 Matt. xxviii. 191, 20. Acts, iv. 13.
3 Luke, ii. 7. Phil. ii. 7. 2 Cor. viii. 9. Matt. viii. 20.
192 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
are Absorbed in vanity; or they wear themselves away by the lamp of
study; or they are given up to selfish indulgence. But whatever be
the external shape or feature, the stamp is every way broad--"forget-
fulness of God"--and the condemnation sealed--"turned into hell."
(Ps. ix. 17.)
Truly is the wicked pictured as driven away in his wickedness. He
is dragged out of life, like a criminal to execution; torn away from his
only heaven here, with no joyous heaven beyond. (Job, xviii. 18;
xxvii. 21.) Dreadful beyond imagination to the thus forced out of the
body, to die a violent death. Fain would he stay. But he cannot. He
cannot live. He dares not die. Sometimes he departs with a horror
that no words can paint. Hell is manifestly begun on this side eter-
nity. (1 Sam. xxviii. 15.) He is driven out of a world, which has
cheated and damned his soul for ever. And even where he has “no
bands in his death, but his strength is firm” (Ps. lxxiii. 4), where do we
hear of "a desire to depart?" (Philip. i. 23.) Though he may fall
asleep as softly as lambs, he will wake to live for ever "with the devil
and his angels." His few moments of peace are only the respite from
hopeless, never-ending torments. His wickedness was his element in
life. It will cleave to him still, the sting of the undying worm, the fuel
of unquenchable fire.
But is the righteous driven away? He dies by his own consent. It
is a glad surrender, not a forcible separation. (Ps. xxxi. 5.) The taber-
nacle is not rent or torn away, but “put off.” (2 Pet. i. 14.) He can
take death by his cold hand, and bid him welcome. ‘I can smile on
death'—said a dying saint —‘because my Saviour smiles on me.'
There, is courage to face "the King of terrors," and delight in look-
ing homeward to his God.* There is loveliness and sunshine in his
death, such as flashes conviction upon the most hardened conscience.
(Nuns. xxiii. 10.) The righteous hath hope in his death. His death is
full of hope. Job pierced his dark cloud of sorrow with this joyous hope.1
David rested his way-warn spirit upon the Rock of salvation.2 Stephen
anchored within the vail, undisturbed by the volley of stones without.3
Paul triumphed in the crown, as if it was already on his head.4 And
hear we not daily "the voice from heaven," assuring to us the "blessed-
ness of them that die in the Lord?" (Rev. xiv. 13.) Praise to our
Immanuel! 'When thou hadst overcome the sharpness of death, thou
didst open the kingdom of heaven to all believers.'† By thee as the
way to the Kingdom we go freely, gladly, out of life. We go to what
we love, to our native home, to our Saviour's bosom, to our rest, our
1 Job, xix. 25-27. 2 2 Sam. xxiii. 5. 3 Acts, vii. 55-60. 4 2 Tim. iv. 6-8. 2 Cor. v. 1.
* 2 Cor. v. 8. qar]r[ou?men—undaunted boldness. Eu]dokou?men—we are well pleased.
—Comp. Matt. iii. 17.
† Te Deum.
CHAP. XIV. 33. 193
crown, our everlasting joy. "Now, Lord, what wait I for? I have
waited for thy salvation, 0 Lord."*
33. Wisdom resteth in the heart of him that hath understanding: but that
which is in the midst of fools is made known.
Often does the wise man spew the blessing of wisdom on the lips.
(Chap. x. 11, 20, 21; xv. 2, 7.) Here we trace it to its home. It flows
from the head, and rests in the heart. Thus did it rest without measure
in the humanity of Jesus (John, iii. 34); and most glorious was its
manifestation.1 When it rests in our hearts, incalculable is its value, as
a fixed principle. It preserves us from the tossing of "divers and
strange doctrines," and gives us "the good thing of a heart established
with grace." (Heb. xiii. 9.) We see now the vital difference between
speculation and experience; between the convictions of the judgment
and the movement of the will.
It differs widely from mere worldly disputation. This--as Bishop
Taylor observes — ‘covers no vices, but kindles a great many. Though
men esteem it learning, it is the most useless learning in the world.'†
True wisdom, while it fixes its rest, sets up its throne, in the heart. All
is therefore Christian order and holiness.
But there is another fountain always bubbling up.2 The fool's mul-
titude of words,3 selfish indulgence,4 uncontrolled passions,5 make mani-
fest what is in the midst of him.6 Let him stand out as a warning
beacon against display, self-conceit, self-ignorance. Never let our
prayers cease, until He who is the Wisdom of God (1 Con i. 24) "takes
his rest in our hearts." Have we received the precious gift? Then let
us seek the increase by a close union with him, and an entire depend-
ence upon him. (Ib. ver. 30.)
1 Luke, ii. 47, 52; iv. 22. Matt. xxii. 46. John, vii. 46.
2 Chap. xv. 2, 28; xxix. 11. 3 Eccles. v. 3; x. 14. 4 1 Sam. xxv. 10.
5 1 Sam. xx. 30-34. 1 Kings, xix. 1, 2. Comp. ver. 16; xii. 16.
6 Chap. x. 9; xii. 23; xiii. 16; xviii. 2. Eccles. x. 3.
* Ps. xxxix. 7. Gen. xlix. 18. Does not this text clearly prove that, while "life and
immortality were brought to light by the gospel" (2 Tim. i. 10), the dawn of the day
beamed upon the Old Testament saints? What could this hope of the righteous be, but the
consummating prospect of the Gospel? Bishop Warburton (Div. Leg. B. vi § 3) expounds.
‘that they shall be delivered from the most imminent danger.' That sagacious mind could
never have confounded two things so essentially distinct, as hope in death, and hope of
escape from death had it not been necessary to subserve a favourite hypothesis. Equally
satisfactory and beautiful is the note of a learned German critic —'A splendid testimony of
the knowledge of the Old Testament believer in a future life. The wicked in this calamity
is agitated with the greatest terror. He knows not where to turn. But the godly in this
last evil has no fear. He knows to whom to flee, and where he is going.'—DATHE in loco
Again—‘He (the righteous) dieth in God's grace, and in an fissured confidence of the salva-
tion of his soul, and of the glorious resurrection of his body.'—DIODATI.
† Via Intelligentiae--Preached before the University of Dublin.
194 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
34. Righteousness exalteth a nation: but sin is a reproach to any people.
If it be not beneath statesmen to take lessons from the Bible, let
them deeply ponder this sound political maxim, which commends itself
to every instinct of the unsophisticated mind; Indeed it would be a
strange anomaly in the Divine administration, if the connection be-
tween godliness and prosperity, ungodliness and misery, established in
individual cases, should not obtain in the multiplication of individuals
into nations. The Scripture records however--confirmed by the result
of impartial and extended observation—clearly prove this to be the
rule of national, no less than of personal, dispensation. The annals of
the chosen people, as they were a righteous or sinful nation, are marked by
corresponding exaltation or reproach.* Not the wisdom of policy, extent
of empire, splendid conquests, flourishing trade, abundant resources—
but righteousness—exalteth a nation. It is both ‘he prop to make it sub-
sist firm in itself, and a crown to render it glorious in the eyes of others.'†
Greece in her proud science; Rome in the zenith of her glory—both
were sunk in the lowest depths of moral degradation. Their true
greatness existed only in the visions of poesy, or the dream of philosophy.
Contrast the influence of righteousness, bringing out of the most debased
barbarism a community, impregnated with all the high principles, that
form a nation's well-being.§ Thus to Christianize, is to regenerate, the
community; to elevate it to a more dignified position; to exalt the
nation (Deut. xxvi. 16-19), and that, not with a sudden flash of shadowy
splendour, but with solid glory, fraught with every practical blessing.
But sin is a reproach to any people. No nation is so low, as not to sink
low under it; while to the mightiest people, it is a blot in their
escutcheon, that no worldly glory can efface. What an enemy is an
ungodly man to his country! Loudly as he may talk of his patriotism,
and even though God should make him an instrument of advancing
her temporal interest; yet he contributes, so far as in him lies, to her
deepest reproach.
* Exaltation, Deut. xxviii. 13. Josh. x. 42. 1 Kings, iv. 20-24. 2 Chron. xvii. 2-5, 11, 12;
xxxii. 22, 23. Reproach, Dent. xxviii. 43, 44. Judg. ii. 715. 2 Kings, x. 31, 32; xviii.
11, 12. 2 Chron. xv. 2-6; xxxvi. 11-17. Jer. vii. 29. See the name of reproach given by God
himself. Isa. i. 10; lvii. 3. Hos. i. 6-9. Zeph. ii. 1. Comp. Wisd. v. 23.
† Bishop SANDERSON'S Sermon on Erod. xxiii. 1-3. Even an heathen sage spoke of moral
righteousness—e]rma polewj—the pillar and support of the city. —PLATO de Legibus, book
vi. ‘Those princes and commonwealths, who would keep their governments entire and
uncorrupt, are, above all things, to have a care of religion and its ceremonies, and preserve
them in due veneration. For in the whole world there is npt a greater sign of imminent
ruin, than when God and his worship are despised.' Such was the testimony of the infidel
and profligate politician — Machiavel. — Discourses on Livy.
‡ Rom. i. 22-32, was a picture of the heathen world in the best ages of refinement.
§ The Missionary Records of New Zealand and the South Sea furnish ample proof of
this statement.
CHAP. XIV. 35. 195
Beloved Britain! nation highest in the profession of righteousness!
For thee we "rejoice with trembling." The combined effort of a little
band, to promote the honour of the Sabbath;* to resist the encroach-
ments of Popery; to enlarge the usefulness and efficiency of the Church;
to train the young in the sound principles of the Gospel;† to circulate
the word and preaching of the gospel to the ends of the earth —this is
thy national exaltation. But the evil example among the Heathen,‡ the
accredited influence of Romish heresy:§ the flood of infidelity, lawlessness, and
ungodliness; the want of a full recognition of God in thy public acts—this is thy
reproach. Let the little remnant in the midst of thee remember their high
responsibility. (Matt. v. 13.) Let them take care, that their personal and relative
profession add to the righteousness, not to the sin, of the nation. Let them plead
for their country's true prosperity with humiliation, faith, and constancy.|| Let
them labour for her exaltation with more entire union of heart.
35. The king's favour is towards a wise servant: but his wrath is against
him that causeth shame.
The administration of the wise servant is often the working cause of
national exaltation. (2 Chron. xxiv. 1-16.) The king's favour towards
him1 is therefore the rule of sound policy. Not less so is his wrath
against him that causeth shame (Esth. vii. 6-10) ‘to the office which he
beareth, and to the Prince's choice.' ¶
Thus is it with the great King. All of us are his servants, bound
to him by the highest obligations;2 animated by the most glowing
encouragements.3 All of us have our responsibilities, our talents, our
work, our account. Towards "the faithful and wise servant," who has
traded with his talents, who has been diligent in his work, and who is
ready for his account—his favour will be infinitely condescending and
honourable. (John, xii. 26.) But against him that causeth shame--
1 Gen. xli. 38-40. Dan. vi. 3. Comp. chap. xvi. 13; xxii. 29.
2 Ps. cxvi. 16. 1 Cor. vi. 19, 20 ; vii. 23. 3 Matt. xxv. 21, 23; xxiv. 44-46.
* See how heavily the honour of the Sabbath weighs in the scale of national dispensa-
tion. Neh. xiii. 15-18. Isa. Iviii. 13, 14. Jer. xvii. 24-27. Ezra, xx. 15-24.
† Mr. Addison, in one of his papers, after drawing a lively picture of the procession of
children on a day of thanksgiving for the triumphs of the Queen's arms, gives his decided
testimony, that these unprecedented victories were God's national' blessing for the religious
instruction of the poor. This was the testimony of a Secretary of State.— Guardian, No. 105.
‡ Ezra, xxxvi. 20-23 Rom. ii. 23. ‘What a God must he be'—said a poor Indian of
the Spaniards—‘who had such bloody men for his servants and children!'
§ What must be the national guilt connected with the annual dedication of 100,000 l. of
our revenue (including the ungodly grant to Maynooth) to the support of Popery! Who
that receives implicitly the Scripture testimony, Rev. xviii. 4, must not tremble at the
consequence of our nation madly going into Babylon, instead of coming out of her? Expe-
diency may plead plausibly. But Burke's golden maxim is the soundest policy—'What is
morally wrong can never be politically right.'
|| What a pattern does Dan. ix. furnish for this exercise of Christian patriotism!
¶ Diodati.
196 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
reflecting upon his Master, neglectful of his work, and unprepared for
his account—his wrath will be tremendous and eternal. (Matt. xxv.
24-30.) What will the solemn day of reckoning bring to me? May
I--may we all--be found wise servants to the best of Kings! looking
with confidence for his welcome!
CHAPTER XV.
1. A soft answer turneth away wrath, but grievous words stir up anger.
WHAT a mine of practical wisdom is this Book of God! Let us ponder
this valuable rule for self-discipline, family peace, and Church unity.
Scripture often illustrates the different effects of the tongue. The soft
answer is the water to quench*--Grievous words are the oil to stir up,
the fire.† And this is, alas! man's natural propensity, to feed rather
than to quench, the angry flame, We yield to irritation; retort upon
our neighbour; have recourse to self-justification; insist upon the last
word; say all that we could say; and think we "do well to be angry."
(Jonah, iv. 9.) Neither party gives up an atom of the will. Pride and
passion on both sides strike together like two flints; and “behold! how
great a matter a little fire kindleth!” (Jam. iii. 5.) Thus there is the
self-pleasing sarcasm; as if we had rather lose a friend, than miss a
clever stroke. All this the world excuses as a sensitive and lively
temper. But the gospel sets before us our Saviour's example;1 imbues.
with his spirit;2 and imparts that blessed "charity, that is not easily
provoked;"3 and therefore is careful not to provoke a chafed or wounded
spirit. If others begin, let us forbear from continuing the strife.‡
'Patience is the true peace-maker.'§ Soft and healing words 4 gain a
double victory—over ourselves 5 and our brother.6
2. The tongue of the wise useth knowledge aright: but the mouth of fools
poureth forth foolishness.
Before we had the tongue of love. Here is the tongue of wisdom.
1 Pet. ii. 23. 2 2 Cor. iii. 18. Philip. ii. 3-5. 3 1 Cor. xiii. 5.
4 Chap. xxv. 15. Comp. Eccles. vii. 8. Jam. iii. 17, 18. 5 Chap. xvi. 32.
6 Rom. xii. 19-21.
* See Jacob with Esau, Gen. xxxii. xxxiii.: Aaron with Moses, Lev. x. 16-20: the
Reubenites with their brethren, Josh. xxii. 15-34: Gideon with the men of Ephraim,
Judg. viii. 1-3: David with Saul, 11 Sam. xxiv. 9-21; xxvi. 21: Abigail with David,
xxv. 23-32.
† See the instances of Jephthah, Judg. xii. 1-6: Saul, 1 Sam. xx. 30-34: Nabal,
xxv. 10-12: Rehoboam, 1 Kings, xii. 12-15: the Apostles, Acts, xv. 39. Comp. chap.
xxx. 33.
‡ Chap. xvii. 14. Even a Heathen could give this excellent advice—‘Let dissension
begin from others, but reconciliation from thee.'—SENECA.
§ Bishop SANDERSON'S Sermon on Rom. xv. 5.
CHAP. XV. 2, 3. 197
The tongue chews the man. The wise commands his tongue. The fool
—his tongue commands him. He may have a mass of knowledge in
possession. But from the want of the right use, it runs to waste.
Wisdom is proved, not by the quantum of knowledge, but by its right
application. Observe "the Spirit of knowledge resting upon our Divine
Master."1 In condescending to the ignorance of the people;2 in
commanding their respect;3 in silencing the gainsayers;4 in alluring
sinners to himself5--how did his wise tongue use knowledge aright!
Thus did his great Apostle give to all the same knowledge, but wisely—
not the same form or gradation. (1 Cor. iii. 2.) Instead of exasperating
his Heathen congregation by an open protest, he supplied their acknow-
ledged defect, by bringing before them the true God, "whom they were
ignorantly worshipping." (Acts, xvii. 23.) He pointed an arrow to
Agrippa's conscience, by the kindly admission of his candour and
intelligence. (Ib. xxvi. 27-29.) This right use of knowledge distinguishes
the "workman approved of God, and that needeth not to be ashamed."
(2 Tim. ii. 15.) The want of it often gives out. truth so loosely and
unsuitably, as to open, rather than to shut, the mouth, of the gainsayer;
rather to bring discredit upon the truth, than conviction to the adver-
sary. Specially will the tongue of the wise direct a right application of
knowledge to those, who have newly entered the path of God. May we
not sometimes in our present stature, forget our former feeble infancy?
If now we "strike our roots as Lebanon," was it not once with us only
"the least of all seeds?" (Hos. xiv. 5. Matt. xiii. 32.) Let our con-
siderate instruction pluck the thorn out of their tender feet, "lest that
which is lamed be turned out of the way; but rather let it be healed."
(Heb. xii. 13.)
But to judge of the waters flowing from a fool's fountain; listen to
Baal's worshippers;6 Rabshakeh's proud boasting;7 the fretting mur-
murings of the people of God8 all pouring out foolishness. Oh! for a
large infusion of sound knowledge in the treasure-house within, that the
tongue may be at once disciplined and consecrated!
3. The eyes of the Lord are in every place, beholding the evil and the good.
Adored be this All-seeing God!9 His inspection of the universe so
minute, exact, unwearied!10 The first mark of the apostacy was a dread
of his presence.11 The ungodly try to forget it,12 and often succeed in
banishing him out of their thoughts. (Ps. x. 4.) Yet in despite of all their
efforts to hide, he does see them. His eyes are in every place. Heaven,
hell, the secret places of the earth, are all open before him.13 He beholds
1 Isa. xi. 2. 2 Mark, iv. 33. 3 Matt. vii. 29. John, vii. 46.
4 Matt. xxii. 15-46. 5 Ib. xi. 28-30. John, iv. 1-26. 6 1 Kings, xviii. 26.
7 2 Kings, xviii. 26-29. 8 Num. xiv. 2-10; xvi.-13. 9 Ps. c1xxix. 1-6.
10 Jer. xxiii. 24. Ps. xi. 4. 11 Gen. iii. 8. 12 Ps. x. 11. Ezra, viii. 12.
13 Verse 11. Ps. exxxix. 8.
198 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
the evil; whether the king on his throne;1 or in his palace;2 or the
servant indulging his secret sin.3 Yes—he may shut out the sun from
his retreat, but he cannot shut out the eye of God, "from whom the
darkness hideth not."4 Reckless indeed is he to do or think what he
would hide from God; and then—such is the secret root of atheism!5
—thinking he can do so. (Isa. xxix. 15.)
But his eyes also behold the good. He sees them in outward destitu-
tion,6 in secret retirement,7 in deep affliction.8 He pierces the prison
walls.9 He "covers their heads in the day of battle."10 He is with
them in the furnace,11 and in the tempest.12 His eye guides them as
their journeying God, and will guide them safe home;13 full of bless-
ing,14 protection,15 and support.16 ‘He fills hell with his severity,
heaven with his glory, his people with his grace.'
But how shall I meet these eyes? As a rebel or as a child? Do
they inspire me with terror, or with love? Do I walk carefully under
their lively impressions? (Gen. xvii. 1.) Conscious corruption leads
me to shrink from the eyes of man. But oh! my God! I would lay
myself naked and open to thee. Search me; try me; shew me to myself.
Bring out my hidden iniquities, and slay them before thee. (Ps. cxxxix.
24.) How is the overwhelming thought of this piercing eye more
than counterbalanced by the view of the great High Priest, who covers
and cleanses all infirmities and defilements, and pleads and maintains
my acceptance notwithstanding all discouragement! (Heb. iv. 13, 14.)
4. A wholesome tongue (The healing of the tongue, marg.) is a tree of
life: but perverseness therein is a breach in the spirit.
Wisdom is finely pourtrayed as a tree of life. (Chap. iii. 18.) So is
also the genial influence of the righteous (Chap. xi. 30)--here the
fruitfulness of this "little member." A high image of what it ought
to be; not negative, not harmless, but wholesome. As the salt, cast
into the spring, cleansed the bitter waters (2 Kings, ii. 21); so when
there is grace in the heart, there will be healing in the tongue. (Chap.
xii. 18.) "The speech will be with grace, seasoned with salt." (Col.
iv. 6.) Large indeed is the sphere, and abundant the blessing. When
employed in soothing the afflicted, calming the troubled waters with
words of peace, it creates a paradise around. It is not like ‘the thorny
bush, pricking and hurting those that are about us, but a fruitful tree--
a tree of life.'†
1 Acts, xii. 23. 2 Dan. v. 5. 3 2 Kings, v. 20.
4 Job, xxxiv. 21, 22. Jer. xvi. 17. 5 Ps. xiv. 1. 6 Gen. xvi. 7, 13.
7 John, i. 48. 8 Exod. iii. 7. Ps. xci. 15.
9 Gen. xxxix. 21. 2 Chron. xxxiii. 12, 13. 10 Ps. cxl. 7. 11 Dan. iii. 25.
12 Acts, xxvii. 23. 13 Ps. xxiii. 4; xlviii. 14. Isa. xlii. 16.
14 Gen, xxvi. 3. 15 2 Chron. xvi. 9. 1 Pet. iii. 12. 16 Isa. x1i. 10.
* Charnock. † LEIGHTON'S Exposition of the Ninth Commandment, vol. iv.
CHAP. XV. 5, 6. 199
But if the gracious tongue be healing, the evil tongue is wounding.
The meekest of men felt perverseness a breach in the spirit. (Num. xvi.
8-15.) The tongue of Job's friends broke "the bruised reed," which
needed to be bound up. (Job, xiii. 1-5.) Even our Beloved Lord, who
never shrunk from external evil, keenly felt the piercing edge of this
sword to his inmost soul. (Ps. lxix. 19, 20.) May "grace be poured
upon my lips," as upon my Divine Master's (Ib. xlv. 2), so that it may
be a wholesome tongue, full of blessing and of good fruits! ‘Everlasting
benediction be upon that tongue, which spake, as no other ever did, or
could speak, pardon, peace, and comfort to lost mankind! This was
the tree of life, whose leaves were for the healing of the nations:*
5. A fool despiseth his father's instruction, but he that regardeth reproof
is prudent.
Alas! we cannot wonder at this folly. Remember the birth of
the fool, "as a wild ass's colt " (Job, xi. 12), despising discipline and
restraint. Yet subjection to parents is the law of nature, recognized by
the most uncivilized nations. Much more is it the law of God.† The
authority of parents is the authority of God. ‘The wayward resistance
of the ungodly will be fearfully scourged.' (1 Sam. ii. 22-25.) And
even the Christian penitent has felt the smart of the rod to the end of
life.‡ If example would put this folly to shame, do we not read of One
child, able to teach, yea to command, his parents, who yet exhibited
the lovely pattern of filial subjection?§ But pride must be broken
down, and the "clothing of humility" worn (1 Pet. v. 5), before the
child will see that his parents know better than himself, and that to
count their word law,—to "bear the yoke in his youth" (Lam. iii. 27),
—and to regard reproof, is the path of prudence (Verses 31, 32; xix. 20),
no less than of honour. (Chap. xiii. 18.) Solomon's wisdom, though the
special gift of God, was doubtless connected with his filial regard to his
father's instruction. (1 Chron. xxii. 11-13; xxviii. 9, 20.) Will those,
who despise their earthly father's instruction, listen to their Heavenly
Father? How surely therefore will this untractable spirit exclude from
the Kingdom of God! (Matt. xviii. 3, 4.)
6. In the house of the righteous is much treasure: but in the revenues of
the wicked is trouble.
The comparison between the righteous and the wicked, always turns
in favour of the righteous. Even in treasure (Verses 16, 17; iii. 33),
* Bishop HORNE's Sermon on the Tree of Life.
† Exod. xx. 12. Eph. vi. 1, 2. Comp. Deut. xxi. 18—21. Timh>n, kaqaper qeoij.
ARIST. Eth. ix. 2. E. Comp. viii. 14. PLATO De Leg. Lib. iv.
See Memoirs of Mrs. Hawkes, p. 524. —A most instructive biography.
§ Luke, ii. 49-51. `Who was subject? And to whom? God to men.'—BERNARD,
Homily i.
200 EXPOSITION OF TIE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
the world's idol, he exceeds. For though his house may be destitute of
money, yet is there much treasure; often unseen (2 Cor. vi. 10), yet
such, that the revenues of the wicked, compared with it, sink into nothing.
Divine Teaching alone can convey any just apprehension of it. (1 Cor.
ii. 9.) Even eternity cannot fully grasp it; as throughout eternity it
will be progressively increasing. 'Drop millions of gold, boundless
revenues, ample territories, crowns and sceptres; and a poor con-
temptible worm lays his One God against all of them.'* The treasures
of the wicked are too much for their good, and too little for their lust.
They cannot satisfy their senses, much less their souls. (Eccles. v. 10.)
They may "take wings" (Chap. xxiii. 5) at any moment; and, while
they continue, unlike the treasures of the righteous (Chap. x. 22), they
are burdened with trouble. (Eccles. iv. 6.) But is it not the crown of
the Christian's crown, and the glory of his glary, that his portion is so
full, that he cannot desire more? All the excellences of the creation
are only dark shadows of its more substantial excellency. What a
mercy to be delivered from the idolatrous bait, so ruinous alike to our
present peace and eternal welfare! (1 Tim. vi. 9, 10.) But a greater
mercy still, to be enriched with that treasure, beyond the reach of harm,
that raises to heaven; a portion in God, his favour, his image, his
everlasting joy.
7. The lips of the wise disperse knowledge: but the heart of the foolish
doeth not so.
The "right use of knowledge" is, first to "lay it up" in a store-
house (Chap. x. 14); then out of the store-house to disperse it. The
sower scatters the seed in the furrow, and calculates upon a propor-
tionate harvest. (2 Cor. ix. 6.) Thus the lips of the wise disperse the
precious seed, "giving a portion to seven, and also to eight;" not dis-
couraged by trifling difficulties, but "sowing morning and evening,"
and committing the result to God. (Eccles. xi. 2, 4, 6.) Our Lord thus
dispersed the heavenly knowledge of his gospel. (Matt. iv. 23; ix. 35.)
He commanded his Apostles to scatter the seed through the vast field
of the world. (Matt. xxviii. 19, 20.) The persecution of the Church
was overruled for this great end. (Acts, viii. 4.) The Reformers widely
dispersed their treasures both by preaching and writing, and rich indeed
was the fruit. Do we remember, that our gifts and talents are the
riches of the Church (1 Cor. xii. 7. 1 Pet. iv. 10); that, like our father
Abraham, we are blessed, not for our own sakes, but to "be a blessing?"
(Gen. xii. 2.) And does not conscience speak of the waste of many,
even important, opportunities of intercourse with our fellow-sinners or
fellow-Christians, when not an atom of knowledge has been dispersed?
We contend for no eccentric irregularity, no passing of our proper
* Bishop HOPKINS' Works, i. 43. Treatise on Vanity of the World.
CHAP. XV. 8, 9 201
boundary, no entrenchment upon paramount obligations. But be care-
ful, lest in quenching unnatural fire, we inadvertently quench some
genuine spark of holy flame. Be mindful of small opportunities. The
careful cultivation of the smallest field ensures an abundant harvest.
The acceptance is not to the number, but to the improvement of the
talents; not noly "where much has been given;" but where we "have
been faithful in a few things." (Matt. xxv. 21.)
The sin of the wicked is not always, that they "pour out foolishness "
(Verse 2); but that they do not so. They neglect to disperse. If they
do not abuse their talent, they omit to improve it. If not blots, they
are blanks in the Church. If they do no harm, they do nothing. (Matt.
xxv. 25-28.) Indeed, they can disperse nothing from their empty store-
house. They can only trade with the trash of the world, not with the
commerce of substantial knowledge--The end of both is according to
their works--"Unto everyone that hath (actively improves) shall been
given, and he shall have abundance; but from him that hath not (uses
not) shall be taken away, even that which he hath." (Matt. xxv. 29.)
8. The sacrifice of the wicked is an abomination to the Lord: but the prayer
of the upright is his delight. 9. The way of the wicked is an abomina-
tion unto the Lord: but he loveth him that followeth after righteousness.
Let the reader ponder this awful question 'What am I--what is
my service-when upon my knees before God? an abomination or a
delight! Man judges by acts; God by principles. The sacrifice of the
wicked, though it be part of God's own service, yet 'will be found in his
register in the catalogue of sins to be accounted for.'* 'At best little is
said or done, where nothing would be lost. But it is "the sacrifice of
fools' (Eccles. v. 1)--heedless and unreflecting, performed without
interest, with the heart asleep. Nay more--where the heart is deli-
berately and habitually absent (Isa. xxix. 13)--it is the acting of a lie.
And whether it be smoothly fashioned to impose on man, or whether
it be forced by the sting of an awakened conscience--instead of pos-
sessing the virtue of a sacrifice, it is an insulting provocation; not
only vain (Matt. xv. 7-9), but abominable--yea abomination itself.
(Chap. xxi. 27.) That is wanting, "without which it is impossible
to please God; "the lack of which stamped the sacrifice of Cain as
an abomination. (Gen. iv. 3-5, with Heb. xi. 4.) It is a 'work, that doth
not flow from a lively faith, and therefore hath in it the nature of sin.' (Art. xiii.)
Not that prayer itself is a sin. 'It is,' as Archbishop Usher expounds
--‘a good duty, but spoiled in the carriage.'† And far indeed would
we be from discouraging the wicked from prayer. (Acts, viii. 22.) We
* Bishop HOPKINS' Works, ii. 481 Comp. lsa. lxvi. 3; Hag. ii. 12-41.
† Eighteen Sermons on Eph. ii 1.
202 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
would only press the awakening conviction, that it must be done in
God's order and way; else never can it find his acceptance.
But not only the sacrifice but the way, of the wicked; not only his
religion, but his common course, natural as well as moral, is abomi-
nation. (Chap. xxi. 4. Tit. i. 15.). All is the course of a rebel against
God. All his doings are the corrupt stream from a corrupt fountain. Awful,
indeed, is the thought of every step of life as being hateful to God!
Is he then finally rejected? Far from it. His desire to seek the
Lord would be the beginning of the prayer, that ensures acceptance.
The prayer of the upright, from its first, feeblest utterance, is not only
acceptable to the Lord, but his delight. (Cant. ii. 14; iv. 11. Dan. ix.23;
x. 12.) Here is that which brings acceptance--not the perfection, but
the simplicity of uprightness. The man feelingly knows his own defile-
ment. If he has not fathomed the depths of his corruptions, he has
made the discovery, that to him at least they are unfathomable. (Jer.
xvii. 9.) This consciousness of hidden sins only makes him more con-
cerned to tear them from their hiding-place. His sacrifice therefore is
that of truth, as contrasted with that of falsehood. That was the service
of the outer--this of the inner--man. That seems what it is not, and
covers what it is. This, “cometh to the light,” and "the deed is made
manifest," with all its infirmities, "that it is wrought in God." (John,
iii. 21.) This prayer of the upright is the Lord's delight. It is suited to
his own spiritual nature. "The Father seeketh such to worship him."
(Ib. iv. 23, 24.) The golden censer above (Heb. x. 19-22), and the
gracious intercession within (Rom., viii. 26, 27), combine with fragrant
odour before our God. Never could we faint in prayer, did we realize
more habitually this pure ground of acceptance. Not less pleasing to
him is the course of the upright. He has given him a measure of
righteousness, and an effort for more. And though he fulfils it not, he
follows after it, cheered with the smile of his Father's gracious love.
(Chap. xxi. 21. Philip. iii. 12.)
10. Correction is grievous unto him that forsaketh the way: and he that
hateth reproof shall die.
But is it not also "grievous for the present" to the child of God?
He knows his need of it, kisses the rod, bows his will, and reaps a
fruitful blessing. (Heb. xii. 11.) But grievous indeed is it to him that
forsaketh the way. He is humbled by force, not in spirit. He kicks at
it and like an untractable child under the rod, only increases his own
chastisement. There is no surer step to ruin than this hatred of reproof.*
* Chap. i. 30; v. II, 12, 23; xxix. 1; Pharaoh, Ex. x. 24-29; Ahab, 1 Kings, xviii. 11;
xxi. 20; xxii. 8, 31; Amaziab, 2 Chron. xxv. 15, 16, 27; Ahaz, xxviii. 22, 23; the Jews.
xxxvi. 15-17. Jer. vi. 16-19.
CHAP. XV. 11. 203
How do "the spots of God's children" (2 Chron. xvi. 10) here warn us
--“Cease ye from man!" (Isa. ii. 22.)
But correction turns back him, who had forsaken the way. Then it
is grievous no more. Had not Manasseh more cause to bless God for
his fetters than for his crown, for his dungeon than for his palace?*
"This man was born there." We would always look hopefully at a
sinner under correction. For surely so long as the physician administers
the medicine, there is no ground for despondency.
Child of God! Dost not thou still need the correction, to perfect
thee for more difficult and refined obedience? This costly teaching
brings us on wonderfully. The Lord teach thee, when the thorn is in
the flesh, to pray for grace in the heart! (2 Cor. xii. 7.) Seek thy
Father's favour, more than thine own ease. Desire the sanctifying,
rather than the removal, of his rod. Mock him not by the empty
ceremonial of repentance. But in true penitence look up to thy smiter
to be thy healer (Hos. vi. 1); yet not till his correction has fully accom-
plished his gracious work. Lord! let me know the smart of thy rod,
rather than the eclipse of thy love. Show me thy love; then do with
me what thou wilt.
11. Hell and destruction are before the Lord: how much more, then, the
hearts of the children of men.
Once more (Verse 3) behold we an Omniscient--Omnipresent God.
Hell and destruction; every recess of the vast Hades; the state of the
dead, and the place of the damned--are before the Lord,† before his
eye; open to his cognizance. How much more, then, the hearts of the
children of men (1 John, iii.20), unsearchable though they be! (Jer.
xvii. 9, 10.) No depth is there within, that he cannot fathom; no
manner of deceit so complicated, that he cannot track them. Words
are not necessary with him to lay open the heart. Aaron's rebellious
feelings were as cognizant to his eye as Moses's angry words. (Num.
xx. 12, 24.) The inward hypocrisy of his people was as open before
him, as if it had been stamped upon their foreheads. (Deut. v. 28, 29.
Zeph. i. 12.)
Yet what a mass of practical unbelief is there in this plain demon-
strative truth! For would men dare to indulge their vain thoughts,
their light notions, their trifles, their impurities, did they really believe
that the Lord searched their hearts? Would they attempt a forced
concealment from his eye (Isa. xxix. 15); as if outward service, lip-
worship, would avail, while the heart was cherishing its unrepented
sin? Would they not be afraid to think before him what they would
* Chron. xxxiii. 11-13. Comp. David, Ps. cxix.. 67, 71: Ephraim, Jer. xxxi. 18-20:
the Prodigal, Luke, xv. 12-20.
† Job, xxvi. 6. Pa. cxxxix.. 7, 8. Destruction, Heb. Abaddon. Comp. Rev. ix. 11
204 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
shrink from doing before men? Oh! is it not an awful moment in
privacy to stand the test of this searching eye? Awful indeed is the
thought to the idolatrous sinner, the lover of pleasure, distinction, or
low ambition. Thine heart is open before thy God. Never will he
stoop to occupy the second place there. Thy covering of deceit is
swept away. The refuges of lie are pierced and laid bare.
The conscious sinner shrinks from this appaling view. The believer
walks undismayed in the sight of this "consuming fire." His godly
fear is the exercise of filial confidence. (Heb. xii. 28, 29.) The sins,
that are opened to his Father's knowedge, are covered from his justice.
(Ib. iv. 13. Ps. xxxii. 1.) When he “finds the law, that when he would
do good, evil is present within him;" he can look up--"All my desire
is before thee." (Rom. vii. 21. Ps xxxviii. 9.) Thus does the Gospel
clothe the Divine attributes with light and love.
And see we not here a testimony to the Divine Glory of Immanuel?
For are not hell and destruction before him (Rev. i. 18) as his vast empire?
And did not he often prove his prerogative of searching the hearts of the
children of men; charging sin in the inner world, beyond the ken of
any, but the One all-seeing eye? And this indeed is the confidence of
his people. Each of them appeal to this Omniscient eye, in despite of
all accusing from the enemy--"Lord! thou knowest all things; thou
knowest that I love thee!" (John, xxi. 17. Rev. ii. 23.)
12. A scorner loveth not one that reproveth him: neither will he go
unto the wise.
How different from David's spirit, thankful for the "kind smiting of
the righteous" (Ps. cxli. 5); and from the lovely humility of an Apostle,
who shewed before the Church his honour and love to his reprover!
(Gal. ii. 11-14, with 2 Pet. iii. 15.) Yet he had need to be wise with
“the wisdom that is from above" to give reproof aright. So closely
does the mixture of our own spirit cleave to every Christian exercise!
Not less grace and wisdom does it require, instead of revolting from our
Reprover, to go unto him, and ask the continuance of his faithful offices.
That most sensitive, delicate, and unvarying of all feelings, self-love--
has been wounded, and the wound is not easily healed. The scorner
has been his own flatterer so long, that he cannot bear to be brought
down to his proper level. The truth-telling friend therefore he counts
as his enemy. (Gal. iv. 15, 16.) He loveth not—yea--he hateth--one
that reproveth him,* though before he might have reverenced him.
(Mark, vi. 17-20.) "The Pharisee derided" our Lord with external
scorn, when he struck at their right eye, and reproved their hypocrisy.†
* Chap. ix. 8. 1 Kings, xxi. 20; xxii. 8. Amos, v. 10; vii. 10-13.
+ Luke, xvi. 13, 14. ecemukthrizon, from mukthr, nostril--contempt shewn by the
nostrils--mussw, to blow the nose--'They blowed their nose at him.' See LEIGH'S Critica
Sacra, and PARKHURST on mukthrizw.
CHAP. XV. 13 205
"Everyone that doeth evil hateth the light; neither cometh to the
light, lest his deeds should be reproved.” (John, iii. 20.)
13. A merry heart maketh a cheerful countenance, but by sorrow of the
heart the spirit is broken.
How close is the sympathy between the body and soul, though
framed of such opposite elements! A man's countenance is the index
of his spirit. In the sensation of joy, the heart sits smiling in the face,
and looks merrily out of the windows of the eyes.'* Yet too often this
high exhilaration, this countenance lighted up, is a matter of sadness
rather than of pleasurable contemplation; as connected with a happi-
ness, that estranges the heart from God. Who has a true right to a
merry heart, but he that is walking in the joy of Divine acceptance?
(Ps. xxxii. 1, 2, 11.) This spring of joy lighted up Hannah's sorrowful
countenance into godly cheerfulness. (1 Sam. i. 18.) Stephen stood
before his judge, with his heavenly prospects beaming in his "angel
face." (Acts, vi. 15; vii. 55.) Everywhere does the hearty reception
of the gospel "give beauty for ashes," sunshine for gloom. (Isa. lxi. 3.)
Sad, indeed, is the contrast of a heart broken by worldly sorrow.
(1 Sam. xxviii. 16. 2 Cor. vii. 10.) Too often does a mischievous gloom
worm itself into the vitals of the child of God. (Chap. xviii. 14.)The
melancholy victim drags on a weary, heavy-laden existence, clouding
a distinct feature of his character (Philip. iii. 3), and one of the most
attractive ornaments of his profession.(Ps. xxxiii. 1. Philip. iv. 4.) His
hands slacken; his whole energies are paralyzed for, the work of God;
and he sinks into desponding apathy and indolence, as if he had taken
leave of life and the sun. (Chap. xvii. 22.)
Every effort should be made to sweep away this black hovering
cloud. Let sense and feeling be kept within their bounds; and the
Saviour's voice, encouraging confidence, will be practically regarded.
(lsa. l. 10.) Even our very "sighing and crying for the abominations
of the land" (Ezek. ix. 4) must not issue in heartless complaints, but,
rather stimulate to the diligent improvement of present opportunities.
Did we realize, as we ought, our present privilege, and grasp our eternal
prospects; no sorrow of the heart would break our spirit. 'I wonder
many times'--says Rutherford--'that ever a child of God should
have a sad heart, considering what his Lord is preparing for him.' The
gleam of the present sunshine is the earnest of what it will be, when--
as he again beautifully observes--'we shall be on the sunny side of
the Brae.'† Meanwhile the first step in religion is, not only beginning "
to be serious, but to be happy. To maintain our Christian balance,
* Trapp in loco. This merriment, however, widely differs from the noisy mirth of the
ungodly. (Chap xiv. 13.) The word is of frequent use among our old writers, It is Foxe's
favourite description of the holy joys of the martyrs. Comp. Eccles. ix, 7.
† RUTHERFORD's, Letters.
206 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
even "godly sorrow" must be disciplined; lest it break the heart which
it was intended only to humble; lest it give advantage to the enemy,
and bring hindrance to the Church. (2 Cor. ii. 7.)
14. The heart of him that hath understanding seeketh knowledge, but the
mouth of fools feedeth on foolishness.
Observe the man of natural understanding. Every apprehension
quickens the thirst to seek knowledge. He is ready to learn from any
quarter, even from a child. He is all eye, all ear, all heart, for his
object. Much more will spiritual understanding stimulate the desire.
(Chap. i. 5; ix. 9.) Repress the appetite to be "wise above what is
written." But make vigorous effort to be wise to the full extent of the
Revelation. David, with his his attainments, was ever crying for
Divine Teaching.1 His wise son sought knowledge upon his knees,2 and
not less in the diligent habit of application.3 The Queen of Sheba,
"coming from the utmost parts of the earth;"4 Nicodemus and Mary,
"sitting at the feet of Jesus;"5 the Eunuch, journeying to Jerusalem;6
Cornelius and his company, drinking in the precious message of salva-
tion;7 the Bereans, carefully "searching the Scriptures"8--all these
shew the understanding heart, seeking a larger interest in the blessing.
Invaluable, indeed, is the gift. Warm affections need the discipline
of knowledge to form Christian consistency and completeness (Philip. i.
9. Ps. cxix. 66): seeking for wholesome food, not intoxicating draughts;
not deeming novelty the most desirable thing; but rather, with the
wise Sir M. Hale, desiring ‘to be impressed and affected, and to have
old and known truths reduced to experience and practice.'
But while the man of understanding is never satisfied with knowledge,
the fool is fully satisfied with folly. His brutish taste feeds upon foolish-
ness, as his meat and his drink. His spirit "is of the earth, earthly."
Young people! guard against this folly at every turn. Avoid trifling
amusements, frivolous reading, profane merriment. In religion, beware
of preferring empty speculations and disputings on matters indifferent,
to the rich pasture of the children of God. (Verse 21; Acts, xvii. 21.)
Let us all ponder the responsibility or "going on to perfection; that,
being of full age, we may have our senses exercised to discern both
good and evil." (Heb. vi. 1; v. 14)
15. All the days of the afflicted are evil: but he that is of a merry heart
hath a continued feast.
Affliction, as the fruit and chastening of sin, is an evil. Hence all
the days of the afflicted are evil. (Gen. xlvii. 9. Ps. xc. 7-9.) Yet a solid
1 Ps. cxix.98-100, with 33, 34, &c. 2 1 Kings, iii. 5-10. 3 Eccles. xii. 9, 10.
4 1 Kings. x. 1. Matt. xii. 42. 5 5 John, iii. 1, 2. Luke, x. 39. 6 Acts, viii. 28.
7 Ib. x. 33. 8 Ib. xvii. 11.
CHAP. XV. 16, 17. 207
principle of inward satisfaction will bring real comfort in most trying
circumstances. Though therefore the abounding consolation of Christian
affliction does not blot out his penal character; yet the child of God is
not so miserable as he seems to be. (2 Cor. vi. 10.) The darkest of
these evil days can never make "the consolations of God small with
him."1 He can sing in the prison, as in a palace.2 He can "take
joyfully the spoiling of his goods."3 He can praise his God, when he
hath stripped him naked."4 He can rejoice in him as his portion in
earthly destitution.5 'Who is it'--said the heavenly Martyn in a
moment of faintness--'that maketh my comforts to be a source of
enjoyment? Cannot the same hand make cold, and hunger, and
nakedness, and peril, to be a train of ministering angels conducting
me to glory?'*
What real evil then can affliction bring? Or rather, what does it
bring, but many feast days'? (Eccles. ix. 7.) A few days' feasting would
soon weary the epicure. But here the merry heart hath a continual feast.
His temporal mercies are fraught with cheerfulness. And 'all his
trouble is but the rattling hail upon the tiles of his house,'† not dis-
turbing his enjoyment. Fed with this heavenly portion, shall I not
thank my God, that he hath rooted me up from present satisfactions?
"Let me not eat of this world's dainties. Thou hast put gladness into
my heart, more than in the time that their corn and their wine increased."
(Ps. cxli. 4; iv. 6, 7.)
16. Better is little with the fear of the Lord, than great treasure, and trouble
therewith. 17. Better is a dinner of herbs where love is, than a stalled
ox and hatred therewith.
Here are the sources of the merry heart--the fear of the Lord, and
love to man. And here also is the continual feast, so satisfying, that the
saint's little is better than the worldling's all.6 It is his Father's gift;7
the fruit of his Saviour's love;8 enjoyed by special promise,9 and
sweetened with the "great gain of godly contentment."10 If it be only
little, it is not from lack of his Father's care and love; but because his
wisdom knows what he really needs,11 and that all beyond would be a
temptation and snare. Truly "a man's life consisteth not in the
abundance of the things which he possesseth."12 ‘Riches and poverty
are more in the heart than in the hand. He is wealthy, that is con-
tented. He is poor, that wanteth more.'‡ The universe will not fill a
worldly,13 while a little will suffice for an heavenly,14 heart. "The
1 Job, xv. 11. 2 Acts, xvi. 25. 3 Heb. x. 34.
4 Job, i. 21. 5 Hab. iii. 17, 18. 6 Chap. xvi. 8. Ps. xxxvii. 16.
7 Matt. vi. 11. 8 2 Pet. i.3. 9 Ps. xxxiv. 10; xxxvii. 3, 19. lsa. xxxiii. 15, 16.
10 1 Tim. vi. 6. Philip. iv. 11, 12. 11 Matt. vi. 32.
12 Luke, xii. 15. 13 Eccles i.8. 14 Gen. xxviii. 29
* Life, Chap. ii. † LEIGHTON on 1 Pet. i. 2; iii.17. ‡ Bishop Hall.
208 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
children of light" content themselves willingly with the small pittances,
which their Father allows them during the time of their minority;
knowing that their main portion is reserved for them in safe keeping
unto the "full age." (1 Pet. i. 4.) They are well satisfied on their way
home to live rather more scantily by the way; like Joseph's brethren,
who were provided with food for their journey; but their full sacks
were unopened, till they reached their home. (Gen. xlii. 25.) Here
their God compensates for everything. But what would compensate
for him?
On the other hand, there must be trouble with great treasure, without
the fear of the Lord. (Eccles. iv. 6; v. 12.) And far more destitute is
its possessor in his unsubstantial happiness, than the man of God, who
is "eating his bread in the sweat of his brow." 'Jacob's ladder, which
conveys to heaven, may have its foot in the smoking cottage.'* And
as to this world's comforts--the dinner of herbs, the homely meal of
love, is better than the stalled ox, preparing for a sumptuous, but un-
brotherly, feast.1 Love sweetens the meanest food. Hatred embitters
the richest feast.2 How did the presence and converse of the Lord of
angels dignify the humble fare!3 How much more refreshing were
the social meals of the Pentecostal Christians, than the well-furnished
tables of their enemies!4 When the Lord's ordinance of marriage is
marred by man's selfishness; when wealth, rank, or adventitious ac-
complishments govern the choice of life's companion, rather than the
fear of the Lord; what wonder if the stalled ox, and hatred therewith, be
the order of the house? Mutual disappointment is too often the source
of criminal indulgence abroad; always the bane of peace and unity at
home.
Few, alas! practically believe this divine testimony. Parents! do
you seek the solid happiness of your children? Then lead them to
expect little from the world; everything from God.
18. A wrathful man† stirreth up strife, but he that is slow to anger
appeaseth strife.
This Proverb requires no explanation. But observe the principles
of hatred and love, contrasted in active exercise. Some persons make
it their occupation to sit by the fire, to feed and fan the flame, lest it be
extinguished. An useful and friendly employment, were it a fire to
warm. But when it is an injurious, consuming, and destructive
element, it would seem difficult to discover the motive of these
incendiaries (Chap. x. 12; xvi. 27, 28; xxvi. 21), did we not read, that
1 Chap. xvii. 1; xxi. 19; xxiii. 6. 2 1 Sam. xx. 24-34. 2 Sam. xiii. 23-29.
3 John, xxi. 9-12. 4 Acts, ii. 4-6. Comp. Ps. cxxxiii.
* Bishop REYNOLDS' Sermon on 1 Tim. vi. 17-19.
† A man of wrath, Heb. constantly indulging it; unwilling to put it away; a firebrand,
Vir flagrantiae.'--SCHULTENS. Comp. xxix. 22.
CHAP. XV. 19 209
"out of the heart proceed evil thoughts, murders, wickedness, an evil
eye, pride, foolishness." (Mark, vii. 21, 22.)
What then is the Christians exercise? Instead of stirring up, to
appease, strife; to bring water, not fuel, to the fire; by “a soft answer
to turn away wrath;”* by a yielding spirit to melt, subdue, and bring
peace. (Gen. xiii. 7-9. Eccles. x. 4.) Let me remember, that I owe my
very salvation to this attribute, slow to anger. (Ps. ciii. 8. 2 Pet. iii. 15.)
And shall I not endeavor to imbue my profession with this lovely
adorning, and to "be a follower of God, as his dear child, walking in
love?" (Eph. v. 1,2.) Will not this temper of the gospel secure my
earthly enjoyment of godliness? (Matt. v. 5.) Will it not also seal my
title as a child of God? (Ib. ver. 9.)
19. The way of the slothful man is as an hedge of thorns; but the way of
the righteous is made plain (raised up as a causey, marg.†)
Another picture of the slothful man drawn to life! He plants his
own hedge, and then complains of its hindrance. He is always at a
stand. Every effort is like forcing his way through a hedge of thorns,
where every thorn-bush tears his flesh. Indecision, delay, and sluggish-
ness, add to his difficulties, and paralyze his exertion; so that after a
feeble struggle of conscience, with much to do, but no heart to do any-
thing, he gives up the effort.
This sloth is ruinous in temporals. One or two hills vigorously
climbed make the way plain for future triumph. But to put half the
soul to the work; to drag to it as an unavoidable task; to avoid
present difficulties in order to find a smoother path, makes a hedge of
thorns, harassing to the end of the journey.
Much more ruinous is this evil in the Christian life. The sluggard
in religion is never at ease. He knows that he needs a change. He
makes an effort to pray; or he takes up a good book. But all withers
for want of purpose of heart. Exertion is to him impossible. He sees
no hope of overcoming, and sinks again.
Nor is this merely the beginning of his path. It is his way--his
whole course. The righteous may loiter or decline, but it is not his
way. The slothful man may have a fit--sometimes an astonishing fit
--of exertion; but he relapses to his former state (Chap. xii. 27), still
surrounded by a hedge of thorns, unable to force his way, pierced, dis-
heartened to the end.
Observe God's estimate of him. He contrasts with him, not the
diligent, but the righteous, marking him as a "wicked, because a
slothful servant." (Matt. xxv. 26.) The difficulties are far more in the
* Verse 1. References.
† ‘A highway--a path so formed, as to be easy to the foot of the traveler'--FRENCH and
SKINNER. Comp. Isa. xxxv. 8. Also 2 Chron. ix. 11, marg.
210 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
mind than in the path. For while the slothful sits down by his hedge-
side in despair, the way of the righteous, in itself not more easy is made
plain. He does not expect God to work for him in an indolent habit.
But he finds that God helps those that help themselves. Working
with diligence, he finds that he can work in comfort. Following his
commands, feeding upon his promises, continuing in prayer, in waiting
and watching for an answer to prayer--his way is raised up, before
him. He believes what is written, and acts upon it without disputing,
without delay. As soon as ever the light comes into his mind--at
the very first dawn--this determines the direction of his steps, and the
order of his proceedings. Thus his stumbling-blocks are removed.
(Num. xiii. 30; xiv. 6-9. Isa. lvii. 14.) Industrious wisdom performs
what lazy foolishness deemed impossible. Thorns there are doubtless
in the way, but not an impassable hedge of thorns; only such, as while
they pierce his flesh, are overruled as a blessing to his soul. (2 Cor. xii. 7, 8.)
Now to apply this to myself--to my great work. Of infinite
moment it is for me to have my way made plain. For this--confidence
of success is indispensable. Let me then examine my ground. Suppose
up to this moment I have been living in enmity with God; yet now
he "willeth not my; death;"1 he invites me to come to him;2 he
assures my acceptance."3 I have his word to depend upon. Why
should "I stagger in unbelief?" His truth claims my confidence, and
warrants my expectation of the certain blessing. I do not begin, hoping
to amend for past neglect, but, believing in him for free pardon and
strength. The physician heals my helplessness. Faith expels slavish
fear, and "the way of the Lord," instead of a hedge of thorns, is “strength
to the upright." (Chap. x. 29.) The prospect brightens, and instead of
"the hard man," which the slothful pictures to himself, a reconciled God
appears before me. (Matt. xxv. 24. 2 Cor. v. 19.)
This is no easy way. What fluctuation of faith!--What weariness
and discouragement! But at length the way is made plain. Difficulties
are faced, surmounted, carried by assault, and what cannot be removed
is endured. The mountains are leveled before Zerubbabel. (Zech. iv.
7.) The feeble worm threshes them by the energy of faith. (Isa. xli. 15.)
Hope, love, and joy, are conquering principles. Religion, with all its
crosses, is found to be a practicable thing. (Philip. iv. 13.) The victory
over sloth opens a happy and triumphant way to heaven. (Matt. xi. 12.)
The slothful man has enjoyed the same advantages. But he has
not gone through the thorn-hedge of his own corruptions. He has never
learnt, that the cross is the discipline to the end of the way. He does
not think what is spoken to faith, but what is agreeable to feeling. He
has never broken through the thorn of unbelief. He has compromised
1 Ezek. xxxiii 11. 2 Matt.. xi 28. 3 John, vi, 37.
CHAP. XV. 20. 211
and failed in the unreserved trust and surrender of himself to his
Saviour. He never therefore comes to God in confidence. All his
service is with a festering conscience, and with that timidity and delay
which ensures defeat. His way at every turn is restless trouble;
struggling with a hedge of thorns to the very last.
Child of God! beware of a sluggish spirit. Even the morbid,
scrupulous strife about your state may sometimes be a slothful indul-
gence in direct opposition to the plainest declarations of God. Let not
unbelief wrest the promise from your hand, or paralyze the hand that
holds it. If the way has been made plain, sit not down in the indulgent
comfort of it. But "go in this thy strength" to more important ad-
vantage. Prize every particle of success obtained by exertion. Oh!
it is worth everything, if we have suffered ourselves to be entangled by
spiritual sloth, to rise, though it be at the setting of the sun, and clear
away the clouds, that "in the evening time there may be light." (Zech.
xiv. 7.) Happy indeed will it be to be quickened, though at the last,
to a firmer confidence; to be brought, though only a step nearer to
Christ,--to have one thorn less to conflict with in the struggle of
death.
20. A wise son maketh a glad father; but a foolish man despiseth his
mother.
Do not the brightest joys,1 and the bitterest sorrows2 in this world
of tears, flow from parents' hearts? Whatever be the delight to see a
son prospering in life; the Christian father finds no rest, until a wise
son maketh him glad. And here we need not any development of talent,
or superior attainment, but the true wisdom; humble and docile, marked.
(as the contrast suggests) by filial reverence, specially by the cordial
choice of that, which "is the beginning of wisdom--the fear of the
Lord." Such a son does indeed rejoice his father, as he watches, with
equal pleasure and thankfulness, the daily growth and healthiness of
his choice vine.
But what if folly, instead of gladdening, despise a mother3--her,
whose tender love,4 and yearning faithfulness,5 are a faint picture of the
heart of God? The law of God commands honour6 and reverence,7
and the transgression of the law will not be forgotten.8 But is not this
neglect a chastening rebuke for capricious indulgence? What grace
and wisdom is needed, that the parents may be a valuable blessing to
their children for their highest interests! A single eye is the primary
concern.
1 Chap. x. 1; xxiii. 24. 1 Kings, i. 48. 2 Chap. xvii. 25. 2 Sam. xviii. 33.
3 Chap. xix. 26; xxiii. 22. 4 Isa. lxvi. 13. 5 Ib. xlix. 15.
6 Exod. xx. 12. 7 Lev. xix.3. 8 Chap. xx. 20; xxx. 17. Ezek. xxii. 7.
212 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
21. Folly is joy to him that is destitute of wisdom: but a man of
understanding walketh uprightly.
This Book of instruction probes our profession. What think we of
folly! Not only does the ungodly practise it. But it is joy to him.
He sins without temptation or motive. He cannot sleep without it.1
It is "the sweet morsel under his tongue."2 He "obeys it in the lusts
thereof."3 He "works it with greediness."4 He hates the gospel,
because it “saves from it."5 But hear the humbling confessions of a
child of God--"I am carnal, sold under sin. 0 wretched man that I
am! who shall deliver me?" Verily would he sink under his hated
burden, but for the confidence--"I thank God--There is no con-
demnation." (Rom. vii. 24, 25; viii. 1.)
This appetite for sin proves the man to be destitute of wisdom. That
which hath turned this fair world into a sepulchre; nay--that which
hath kindled "everlasting burnings," is his joy. And thus he goes on,
intent upon the trifles of the day; and trifling with eternal concerns;
preferring shadowy vanities to everlasting glory. Will he not open his
eyes to the discovery, that "they that observe lying vanities, forsake
their own mercy?" (Jonah, ii. 8.) The Lord save him, ere it be too
late, from reaping the bitter fruit of his foolish choice!
But the man of understanding gives himself to the word of God. He
has joy in wisdom (Chap. xxi. 15), as the sinner in folly. Even his
painful discoveries of indwelling corruption ground him deeper in solid
religion, than those who know only the surface. He is taught of God,
and his upright walk is a bright “shining path.” (Chap. iv. 18.) Give
me, 0 my God, understanding, that my joy may be in thy wisdom, not
in my own folly.
22. Without counsel purposes are disappointed: but in the multitude of
counsellors they are established.
The value of this proverb as a political truth is sufficiently obvious.
A nation without counsel can never be established. (Chap. xi. 14.) A
multitude of counsellors is an indispensable advantage to the Sovereign
for his own purposes. (Chap. xx. 18; xxiv. 6.) And by the neglect of
them many good purposes have been disappointed.* In the Church, also,
combined counsel has greatly tended to Christian establishment. (Acts,
xv. 6, 31.) Its influence also in our religious institutions is of the
highest moment. Clear and commanding is the duty of godly and able
men as a multitude of counsellors, to take an active part in their purposes.
1 Chap. iv. 16, 17. 2 Verse 14; ix.17. Job, xx. 12. 3 Rom. vi. 12.
4 Eph. iv. 19. 5 Matt. i. 21. Acts, iii. 26.
* Rehoboam, 1 Kings, xii. 13-19. Ahab, xxii. 18-39. Even David, 2 Sam. xxiv. 1-4, 15.
CHAP. XV. 23. 213
In many individual perplexities we are led highly to estimate this
advantage. For how weak and ignorant we are! Were our judgment
perfect, the first impressions would be infallibly right. But feeble and
of shaken as it is by the fall, every dictate needs pondering. How much
evil has been done by acting upon impulse in a hasty moment, or by a
few warm words or lines without consideration! (Chap. xix. 2.) Our
wisdom lies in self-distrust; at least leaning to the suspicion that we
may be wrong. Yet, while guarding on the other side, against that
indecision of judgment, which is carried about by every person's
opinion; the expediency, especially in important matters, of experienced
counsel will be generally felt. But even here the wisest is fallible, and
often erroneous. In the use of human means, let us mainly look up to
the great "Counsellor" (Isa. ix. 6) of his Church for guidance, and in
reverential thankfulness take "his testimonies as the men of our
counsel." (Ps. cxix. 24, M.R.) Blessed be God for this special privilege
of counsel always at hand! In humility and confidence we shall not
materially err. (Chap. iii. 5, 6.)
23. A man hath joy by the answer of his mouth; and a word spoken in
due season, how good is it!
This is a true Proverb, when the mouth is under Divine discipline.
A word for our Great Master to our fellow-sinners he will condescend
to bless. The remembrance--“Who made man's mouth?" (Exod. iv.
11)--puts away pride. But have we not joy by the answer of our
mouth? (Chap. xii. 14; xiii. 2.) The pain that every right-minded
Christian feels in giving "open rebuke," is abundantly compensated by,
the joy of the happy issue. (Chap. xxvii. 5. 2 Sam. xii. 1-13.) Even an
unsuccessful effort brings the joy in "the testimony of our conscience."
It must however be a word spoken in due season (Chap. xxv. 11), though
it be from feeble lips.* For--though ‘there are some happy seasons,
when the most rugged natures are accessible;'† yet many a good word
is lost, by being spoken out of season. Obviously a moment of irritation
is out of season. We must wait for the return of calmness and reason.
(1 Sam. xxv. 37,) Sometimes indeed the matter forces itself out after,
lengthened and apparently ineffectual waiting. It has been long
brooded over within, and must have its vent. But this explosion
sweeps away every prospect of good, and leaves a revolting impression.
* Chap. xxiv. 26. Thus Luther, after the pattern of the great Apostle, gladly acknow-
ledged his obligation.--'The word of a brother, pronounced from Holy Scripture in a time
of need, carries an inconceivable weight with it. The Holy Spirit accompanies it, and by
it moves and animates the hearts of the people, as their circumstances require. Thus
Timothy, and Titus, and Epaphroditus, and the brethren who met St. Paul from Rome,
cheered his spirit; however much they might be inferior to him in learning and skill in
the word of God. The greatest saints have their times of faintness, when others are
stronger than they.'--SCOTT'S Contin. of Milner, i. 332: See the ministry of Christ, Isa. vii. 4.
† Bishop HOPKINS' Works, iv. 485. 'Mollissima fandi tempora.'--VIRG. AEn. iv. 293, 294.
214 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
Instead of a fertilizing shower, it has gathered into a violent and
destructive tempest.
It is most important, that our whole deportment should bring con-
viction, that we yearn over the souls of those whom we are constrained
to reprove. The general rule is, to give reproof privately (Matt. xviii.
15); not exasperating, except when the occasion calls for it (1 Tim. v.
20. Acts, xiii. 6-11), by public exposure. Never commence with an
attack; which, as an enemy's position, naturally provokes resistance.
Study a pointed application. A word spoken for everyone, like a coat
made for everyone, has no individual fitness. When "the wise man's
heart discerneth both time and judgment" (Eccles. viii. 5), the word is
doubly effective. Manoah's wife upheld her husband's faith.1 Abigail
restrained David's murderous intent.2 Naaman's servants brought their
master to sober reason.3 Paul withheld the jailor's hand from self-
destruction, and opened salvation to his soul.4 Sweet indeed also is
the Minister's joy from the answer of his mouth, when the "gifted tongue
of the learned speaks a word in season to him that is weary." (Isa. l. 4.)
And will it not be an element of his consummating joy "at that day,"
when he shall welcome those instrumentally saved by the answer of his
mouth, as his "glory and joy?" (1 Thess. ii. 19, 20.)
24. The way of life is above to the wise, that he may depart from hell
beneath.
Another beam of light and immortality here shines upon the Old
Testament Dispensation. For if the life above is beyond animal sen-
sation, it must be the life eternal. The hell beneath, opposed to it, must
stretch beyond the grave into eternity. But the way of life--the way
in which alone life is formed, the way to God, the way to glory--is but
one. That way is Christ. (John, xiv. 6.) If therefore I come to him,
renouncing all other hope, casting all my hope on him, and every step
of my way "looking unto him" (Heb. xii. 2)--am not I in this way?
And if I follow him in "the obedience of faith," is not my course, my
daily walk, advancing in that way? (John, viii. 12.)
This way is above--of heavenly origin--the fruit of the eternal
councils--the display of the manifold wisdom of God. Fools rise not
high enough to discern it, much less to devise and walk ill it. Their
highest elevation is groveling. God does not allow them even the
name of life. (1 Tim. v. 6.) Cleaving to the dust of earth, they sink
into the hell beneath. But this way of the wise is above. They are born
from above; taught from above; therefore walking above, while they
are living upon earth. A soaring life indeed! The soul mounts up,
looks aloft, enters into the holiest, rises above herself, and finds her
resting-place in the bosom of her God. A most transcendent life! to
1 Judg. xiii. 23. 2. 1 Sam. xxv. 32, 33. 3. 2 Kings, v, 13, 14. 4. Acts, xvi. 28-31.
CHAP. XV. 24. 215
be "partaker of the Divine nature!" (2 Pet. i. 4) the life of God him-
self (Eph. iv. 18); in humble sublimity, ascending above things under
the sun, above the sun itself. Not only is it out of the reach of carnal
men, but beyond the comprehension of all. (Job, xi. 7-9.) It is such
a way as neither men nor angels could ever have cast up, such as can
never be contemplated but with reverential faith. The wise in their
most favoured moments cannot fully conceive their present privileges;
how much less the glorious unfolding, when the clouds shall never
more be known.
The further we walk in this way above, the further we depart from
hell beneath. Heaven and Hell are here before us. Soon will our state
be fixed for eternity.--What then am I? Where am I? Those "who
mind earthly things, their end is "the hell beneath Those who walk in
the way above--"their conversation is in heaven;" their hope is fixed
on the Lord's coming from thence; their everlasting joy will be the
complete transformation into his own image.1 There is no downward
tendency. It is still upwards. It is all rising ground. Mount ever so
high, the ascent is ever before us; an immense distance still appears,
ere we gain the summit. Yet the moment we desire this heavenly
state, we have begun to know it, and we shall rise higher and higher
heavenward, till we take .our place before the throne of God. Thus
‘he that is truly wise, In this holy way of obedience, walketh to
eternal life.'*
Children of God! walk like yourselves; with "your hearts lifted
up in the ways of the Lord;"2 with a holy loftiness above the debasing
pleasure of earth; "looking at the things that are unseen;"3 "having
respect unto the recompence of the reward;"4 walking in the way above,
where your hope is,5 where your treasure,6 where your home,7 above
all--where your ascended Saviour is;8 and where one golden ray of
his favour, one reflected beam of his glory, will outshine all the glare
of a shadowy world. Had we more of heaven in our hearts, we should
have more of its spirit in our profession. We should think less of the
roughness of the way, if we more fully realized the rest beyond. But
except we know--in its measure--heaven as our state now, how can
we hope to enjoy it as our everlasting home? 'Grant, we beseech
thee, that, like as we do believe thy only-begotten Son, our Lord Jesus
Christ, to have ascended into the heavens; so we may also in heart and
mind thither ascend, and with him continually dwell.'†
1 Philip. iii. 19-21. Comp. Ps. xvii. 14, 15.
* Bp. Hall.
2 2 Chron.11. xvii. 6. Comp. lsa. xxxiii. 16; xl. 31; lviii. 14.
3 2Cor. iv.18. 4 Heb.xi.24-26. 5 2 Cor. v. 1-5. Col. i. 27.
6 Matt. vi. 20. 7 2 Cor. v. 6-8. Heb. xi. 19; xiii. 14.
8 Col. iii. 1.
* Bp. Hall. † Collect for Ascension day.
216 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
25. The Lord will destroy the house of the proud: but he will establish the
border of the widow.
The administration of the Divine Government is to humble the
proud, and to exalt the humble. (Luke, i. 51, 52.) The contrast marks
the proud oppressor, an usurper of God's rights. Therefore as a traitor,
he destroys not only his person, but his house.1 And who can but
acknowledge the retributive vengeance of the Judge of the earth?2
But the widow, whom many care not for, many are ready to trample
on--what a Friend and Protector has she!3 "Let thy widows trust in
me."4 God condescends to link himself with them in a special rela-
tion; concentrating all his care and tenderness on their bereaved con-
dition.5 Did not he provide fur sorrowing Naomi a staff in her faithful
daughter, and ultimately establish her borders in Israel?6 (Did he not
supply the pressing need of the Minister's widow7 (a cheering warrant
of faith in similar affliction), and take up the Shunamite's oppression,
and again establish her border,8 And shall we forget how he teaches
the returning penitent to plead the gracious manifestation--"In thee
the fatherless findeth mercy?" (Ps. xiv. 2, 3.)
26. The thoughts of the wicked are an abomination to the Lord; but the
words of the pure are pleasant words (words of pleasantness, marg.)
How lightly do most men think of the responsibility of their
thoughts! as if they were their own, and they might indulge them
without restraint or evil. One substantial sin appals men, who quietly
sleep under the mighty mass of thinking without God for months and
years, without any apprehension of guilt. But thoughts are the seminal
principles of sin.* And as the cause virtually includes its effects; so
do they contain, like the seed in its little body, all the after fruit. They
are also the index of character. Watch their infinite variety; not so
much those that are under the control of circumstances, or thrown up
by the occasion, as the voluntary flow, following the habitual train of
our associations. "For as a man thinketh in his heart, so is he." (Chap.
xxiii. 7.) Let the Christian yield himself up to the clear radiance of
"the word, as a discerner of the thoughts and intents of the heart:"†
and what a mass of vanity does only one day, one hour, bring to
1 Esth. vii. 10; ix.10. Jer. xxii. 13-30. 2 Ps. x. 14, 18; xii. 5; l,iii. 11.
3 Chap. xxiii 10, 11. 4 Jer. xlix. 11. Comp. 1 Tim. V. 5.
5 Ps.lxviii. 5; cxlvi. 9. Deut. x.17, 18. 6 Ruth. i. 7-18; iv.14-17.
7 2 Kings, iv. 1-7. 8 Ib. viii. 1-6.
* Chap. xxiv. 9. Gen. vi. 5. Even an Heathen accurately described them. Autoxqonaj
phgaj thj kakiaj. 'The indigenous fountains of evil.' PLUTARCH. Moral--Again--' If
thou wouldest unlock the door of thine heart, thou wilt find a storehouse and treasury of
evils diversified, and full of numberless passions.' Ibid
† Heb. iv. 13. xritikoj--a critic, censuring the errata with the most minute accuracy.
CHAP. XV. 27. 217
account! As to the wicked? "Evil thoughts" are the first bubbling
of the corrupt fountain. (Matt. xv. 19.) The tide; of evil rolls on
unceasingly in "thoughts of iniquity" (Isa. lix. 7), in order to give
effect to the malevolent temper; dwelling on wickedness with com-
placency; pursuing it with determined purpose. What can such
thoughts be, but an abomination to the Lord?
Very different is his mind towards his own people. The words of
the pure, as the expression of their thoughts (Matt. xii. 34. Ps. xxxvii.
30, 31), are pleasant words. How pleasant, is manifest from his inviting,
call to their intercourse with him (Verse 8. Cant. ii. 14); yet more
from the open reward prepared for them before the assembled world.
"They that spake often one to another--and thought upon his name--
they shall be mine, saith the Lord, in that day when I make up my
jewels." (Mal. iii. 16, 17.)
27. He that is greedy of gain troubleth his own house; but he that hateth
gifts shall live.
What an awful stamp has God fixed upon covetousness! Idolatry;1
abomination;2 an evil eye: the cause of poverty;3 "the root of all
evil!"4 Not only is it a curse to the sinner, but often a trouble to his
house. So did Lot,5 Achan,6 Saul,7 Ahab,8 Gehazi,9 Jehoiakim,10 and
the Jews,11 find it. And often in our own day, has greediness of gain
plunged whole families into misery by ruinous speculations!12 For
where the enriching blessing of God is not desired or sought, we cannot
wonder that it is withheld!
Can the man of God do so? Not only would he refuse, but he
hateth gifts, not only in the corruption of bribes,13 but in any case, that
would bring dishonor upon his God. Abraham refused the gifts of
the king of Sodom,14 and Peter the enticement of Simon15 The man
who thus walks in integrity, lives on high in the special favour of his
God.16 He, who hateth this world's gifts for the affliction of the cross,
shall receive an hundred-fold recompence in this life, and in the world
to come, everlasting life." (Heb. xi. 24-26. Matt. xix. 29, 30.) ‘Let
their money perish with them' (was the noble confession of the Marquis
of Vico, nephew to Paul V. 'that prefer all the world's wealth before
one day's communion with Jesus Christ, and his despised people.'*
1 Eph. v. 5. Col. ill. 5. Job, xxxi. 24. 2 Ps. x. 3. 3 Chap. xxviii. 22.
4 1 Tim. vi. 9, 10. 5 Gen. xiii. 10,11; xiv. 12; xix. 14, 30.
6 Josh. vii. 1, 15, 24. Deut. vii. 26. 7 1 Sam. xv. 19-26.
8 1 Kings, xxi. 1-14, 19-22. 2 Kings, ix. 24-26. 9 2 Kings, v. 20-27.
10 Jer. xxii. 13, 18-30. 11 Ib. vi. 12, 13; viii. 10. 12 Hab. ii. 9, 10.
13 Exod. xviii. 21; xxiii. 8. Deut. xvi. 19. 14 Gen. xiv. 22, 23.
15 Acts, viii. 18-20.
16 Ps. xv. 5. lsa. xxxiii. 15. 16. Jer. xxii. 15, 16. Ezek. xviii. 5-9.
* See his interesting history in Dr. M'CRIE'S Reformation in Spain.
218 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
28. The heart of the righteous studieth to answer; but the mouth of the
wicked poureth out evil things.
Consideration is an important part of the Christian character;
nowhere more important than in the discipline of the tongue. Think
twice, before we speak once. The wise man's heart is at his right
hand" (Eccles. x. 2), that he may weigh his words, and study how to
answer (Chap. x. 31, 32; xvi. 23), and "be ready always to give an
answer to him that asketh a reason of the hope that is in him." (1 Pet.
iii. 15.) Though there may be "good treasure" within, yet we must
carefully ponder to draw from it "a word in due season." (Verse 23.)
Often may we reflect upon ourselves for speaking hastily. And indeed,
when that comes out which is uppermost, nothing but the dross of evil
can be looked for. Many stumblings have been made by speaking
from the impulse of the moment, from warm feelings, rather than from
a well-balanced and considerate judgment. (Ps. xxxi. 22; cxvi. 11.)
In this haste, Joshua was beguiled by the Gibeonites;1 David indulged
a burst of murderous revenge;2 Peter would fain have dissuaded his I
Master from the work,3 which he came down from heaven to do, and
without which we should have been a world eternally lost. Cultivate a
pondering mind. If ever asked to open an important subject, throw it
not off hastily, nor give an answer, till we have obtained it from God.
For the heart's study to answer necessarily implies prayer, the only medium
of receiving the "wisdom that is profitable to direct." (Chap. ii. 1-6.
Eccles. x. 10. Jam. i. 5.) Nehemiah darted up his prayer; and how
graciously was the answer for the moment vouchsafed! (Neh. ii.1-6.)
This is especially a ministerial responsibility for the many cases of con-
science, that require "the tongue of the learned"--a word of wisdom,
conviction, or consolation. How can "the priest's lips keep knowledge"
(Mal.ii. 7), unless the heart under his Master's teaching studieth to answer
The wicked has no such restraint. He cares not what he says. It is
of little consequence to him, whether it be true, or well-timed, or whom
it wounds. His poisoned fountain poureth out poisonous waters. (Eccles.
x. 3, 12-14.) Yet fearful is it to think, how every light word brings
its account (Matt. xii. 36), and will be found a 'hot coal to make the
fire of hell burn more fiercely.'* Such a plague often infests the
Church. (Tit. i. 10, 11.) "From such withdraw thyself." (1 Tim. vi. 5.)
Separation is the keeping of the soul.
29. The Lord is far from the wicked: but he heareth the prayer of the
righteous.
Such is the Lord's difference between these two classes! He is
1 Josh. ix. 14, 15. 2 1 Sam. xxv. 13-21 3 Matt. xvi. 22.
* Cartwright, in loco.
CHAP. XV. 29. 219
equally near to them both in his essence.1 But in his favour he is far
from the wicked,2 and reflects their prayer.3 He is near to the righteous,
and heareth them.4 His distance from the wicked is to their hearts'
desire.5 Yet does he sometimes make them groan,6 as they will sink
hereafter under its everlasting curse.7 But who can estimate the
grace, that calls these "stout-hearted, that are afar off, to hearken,
and brings near righteousness and salvation to them?"8 Inexpressible
must be the guilt of despising such abounding mercy.9
But to the righteous, he is most graciously near.10 He heareth their
breath, when there is no voice;11 their desire and weeping, when there
are no words;12 their stammering, when there is no gift.13 Wonderful
indeed is it, that he should hear such prayers, polluted as they are in
their very breath. Yet does our compassionate High Priest wait for
these vile offerings at the door of the oracle; and in his golden censer
they appear spotless before the throne.14 For his sake we are not only
borne with, but accepted. Our sighs are the breathings of faith. Our
broken words his own Spirit has indited. (Rom. viii. 26, 27.) How then
can he turn away from them?
Yet the enemy will suggest the doubt. Does he hear? Well he
knows, what a shelter prayer is from his assault; and gladly would he
drive us from it. 'Am I righteous?' Be it so, that thou art not. But
is not thine advocate so? (1 John, ii. 1.) Then put thy prayer in his
hands. Thou canst not doubt his access to God; that the ear, if it be
shut to thee, is open to him. "Wouldst thou he spoken for to the
king?" (2 Kings, iv. 13.) Stammer out the prayer to thy Friend--"0
Lord, I am oppressed; undertake for me." It would tire the hands
of an angel to write down the pardons, that God bestows upon one
penitent sinner.'*
'But I see no answer.' Correct the errors of sense by faith in his
word, which declares, whatever appearances may be--He heareth.
Judge not by thy feelings or conceptions, but by his own unchangeable
word, by the manifestation of his name (Ps. lxv. 2); that he will refuse
thee nothing that is really good; that thou dost obtain, If not what
thou desirest yet what upon the whole is best and fittest for thee.
Have patience with God. Dictate nothing. Commit thy will to him.
Say not--"I will that thou give me by and by." (Mark, vi. 25:) Leave
time and all to him. If he does not answer in thy time, he will in his
own far better season. (Isa. xxx. 18.) He has clearly shewn his
1 Jer. xxiii. 24. Acts, xvii. 27, 28. 2 Ps. xxxiv. 16. Jer. xviii. 17. Amos, ix. 4.
3 Isa. i. 11. Jer. xiv. 12. Ezek. viii. 18. 4 Isa. i. 11. Jer. xiv. 12. Ezek. viii. 18.
5 Job xxi. 14. 6 Exod. xxxiii. 1-7. 1 Sam. xxviii. 6. Hos. v. 15. Mic. iii. 4.
7 Ps ixxiii.27. Matt. xxv. 41. 2 Thess. i. 9. 8 Isa. xlvi. 12, 13. 9 Acts, xiii. 38-46.
10 Ps. xxxiv. 18; cxlv. 18,19. 11 Lam. iii. 56.
12 1 Sam. i. 13. Ps. xxxviii.9; vi. 8. 13 Isa. xxxviii. 14. 14 Rev. viii. 3, 4.
* Dr. Bates.
220 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
Sovereign appointment, that those who pray must wait his time, and
his will. (Luke, xviii. 1-7.)
Yet let us look out, and see how our prayers speed. The husband-
man looks for his harvest. And when we have sown in a fruitful soil
--in the very bosom of God--shall not we look for the return, wait in
hope, strengthen our heart in the--Divine promises, and never cease to
look up, till the answer come down? No prayer will be without God's
fruit.
Study the character of God. It is not the judge on his seat; or
the king on his throne of state; but the Father in the full flowing of
his love. Is not this attraction? In the sharpest trial, not all the
world, not all the power of hell, can bar thine access to him. No child
runs to his father with such a confidence as thine. Never will he chill
the heart, that throws itself upon his love.
Then honour him in this confidence. Shew that you really mean
what you say. Bring to him no general petitions (the signs of an
heartless frame), but definite objects. Tell him what you want, and all
that you want. Shew that prayer is no penance, or irksome endurance,
but a pleading exercise; a conscious reality, a living soul speaking to
a living God. Prize his presence supremely--the pleasures of the
closet above all privileges. No creature, not even the company of
Apostles, can compensate for the loss of him. Wrestle in prayer, but
sit still in faith. He has bound himself by his own promises. And
the fulfillment of them in answer to prayer will quicken confidence and
praise.
30. The light of the eyes rejoiceth the heart; and a good report maketh
the bones fat.
The eye is the medium of the most rational enjoyment. Most
elevating is the sight of the wonders of the creation! (Ps. xix. 1;
cxi. 2.) The Psalmist's hymns of praise finely pourtray his delight.
(Ib. cviii. civ.) Glowing was the joy, which, burst from the wise
man's heart in the sight of the morning glory--"Truly light is sweet,
and a pleasant thing it is for the eyes to behold the sun." (Eccles.
xi. 7,) Look also at his gracious and unexpected providence--How
did the light of the aged Patriarch's eyes rejoice his heart, when he
embraced his long-lost son! A sunbeam truly was it in the cloud of
despondency! And when the eye fastens upon the one object of attrac-
tion; even one look casts a glory on the soul, and fills it with life and joy.
(Gen. xlvi. 29, 30. Chap. xiii. 12.) "They looked unto him, and were
lightened." (Ps. xxxiv. 5.) And what will it be, when the whole soul,
animated with Divine Power, shall centre in the eye; when the light of
the eyes shall present him to unclouded view, whom all heaven adores
with everlasting praise!
CHAP. XV. 31, 32. 221
But let us look at the joy of hearing. How did the Patriarch's
heart bound at the good report of his beloved Joseph! (Gen. xlv. 27, 28.
Chap. xxv. 25.) The absent Minister seems to live again in the good
tidings of his thriving people. (1 Thess. iii. 8.) 'How delightful must it
be to the humbled sinner to hear the good report of salvation, and to
have his eyes enlightened to behold the glory of God in the face of
Jesus Christ!'* The animating delight, with which the Shepherds
saw the good report realized before their eyes, can scarcely be conceived.
(Luke, ii. 15-17.) So joyful is it still to the humbled sinner, that
the very "feet of its messengers are beautiful" in his eyes. (Isa. lii. 7.)
"Blessed are the people that know the joyful sound." (Ps. lxxxix. 15.)
31. The ear that heareth the reproof of life abideth among the wise.
32. He that refuseth instruction (correction, marg.) despiseth his own
soul: but he that heareth reproof getteth understanding--(possesseth
an heart, marg.)
What a contrast to the "scorner" lately described, who "goeth not
unto the wise!" (Verse 12.) Naturally we are unteachable, neither
knowing, nor caring to know. But the Lord gives humility and self-
knowledge. Our unteachableness yields. Light pours in. We learn
the meaning of words before familiar to us only in sound. The
circumcised ear now heareth the reproof that tends to life (Chap. vi. 23),
and welcomes the medicine. (Verse 5; xii. 18. Ps. cxli. 5.) This
exercise of reproof is the law of social life; a component part of the
love of our neighbour (Lev. xix. 17, 18); the bounden obligation to be
"our brother's keeper" to the utmost of our power.† The mode of
receiving reproof is a test of principle. Humility, sincerity, self-
knowledge--the exercise or the defect of these graces--is brought
out to our honour or dishonour. Beautiful indeed is the sight of "a
wise reprover upon an obedient ear."1 The man of God abode with the
wise. He took his meek reprover to be his wife.2 He honoured the
faithful messenger of his Father's rod with his highest confidence. The
Apostle's affectionate testimony to his reproving brother shewed, that
he had heard the reproof of life.3 This considerate and humble temper
always gets understanding.4 Nothing teaches like experience; and no
experience is more useful, because none so abasing, as rebuke.5
Reproof indeed may be considered one of the wholesome bitters of
life.6 Thoughtless gaiety may prefer "the song of fools" to "the
rebuke of the wise."7 But after-reflection will shew the wisdom of
honouring those, who deal faithfully with our faults, though it may be
with somewhat of severity; rather than those, who would soothe us
1 Chap. xxv. 12. 2 1 Sam. xxv. 39-42.
3 2 Sam. xii. 7-12. 1 Kings, i. 32. Comp. chap. xxviii. 23. 4 Gal. ii. 11, with 2 Pet. iii. 15.
5 Chap. i. 5; ix. 9; xii. 1. 6 Chap. xxix. 15. Rev. iii. 19 7 Comp. Eccles. vii. 5.
* Scott. † This obligation was repudiated by the first murderer. Gen. iv. 9.
222 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
with the poisoned sweets of flattery, and wink at or encourage our
wayward follies. (Chap. xxvii. 5, 6.) Unhappily however for a man, a
want of real sincerity is his nature. He has no hearty desire to be set
right. He concludes a hollow truce with his conscience, dreading its
painful disturbance. He throws a protective cover over all his faults,
thus shielding his most dangerous enemies. In this unfavorable
state of mind he refuseth instruction, because contrary to flattery, and
despiseth his own soul. (Verse 10.) Many are the examples of this
ruinous folly.* The fool will not indeed own the charge. But does he
not underrate its high value and imminent danger, when he despises
God's warning and provision for its salvation? (Matt. xvi. 26.) “Be
thou instructed, 0 Jerusalem, lest my soul depart from thee." (Jer.
vi. 8. Zeph. iii. 2.)
33. The fear of the Lord is the instruction of wisdom: and before honour
is humility.
The fear of the Lord is elsewhere described as the substance (Job,
xxviii. 28), and the beginning or principal part (Chap. i. 7; ix. 10;
Ps. cxi. 10), of wisdom. Here it is set forth as the instruction of wisdom.
The Teachers, inspired by Divine wisdom, inculcated it as a grand
subject of their instruction.† Nor is it less important under the new
dispensation, linked as it is with the full privileges of the Gospel.
(Acts, ix. 31. Heb. xii. 28.) The fear of terror melts away. The fear
of reverence fills the soul. God rejoices in his mercy; the child of
God in his confidence. But as it realizes the presence of a holy God,
it must always be connected with humility. Indeed no Christian grace
can exist without this conservating principle. Every dispensation of
God strikes at the root of self-exaltation, and tends to that real absence
of self-esteem and self-sufficiency, which most of us rather long after
than attain.
Most wise therefore is our Father's discipline--Humility before
honour. Indeed, without humility, honor would be our temptation,
rather than our glory. Had not the Apostle been kept down by a
most humbling trial, his honour would have been his ruin. (2 Cor. xii
7-9.) The exaltation of the Lord's people in Providence, is therefore
often conducted through the valley of Humiliation. Joseph was raised
from the prison to the throne.1 Moses and David were taken from the
Shepherd's fold to feed the Lord's inheritance.2 Gideon acknowledged
himself to be of "the least of the families of Israel."3 Ruth was
humbled by adversity, ere she was raised to the high honour of a Mother
1 Gen. xli. 14-44. 2 Exod. iii. 1-12. Ps. lxxviii. 70-72. 3 Judg. vi. 15, 16.
* The young man, Chap, v. 11-13; Korah and his party, Num. xvi. 12-14, 31-33;
Zedekiah. Jer. xxvii. 17; xxxviii. 14-23, with xxxix. 1-7.
† Moses, Deut. x. 12; Joshua, xxiv. 14; Samuel, I Sam. xii. 14, 20, 24; David, Ps.
xxxiv. 9-11; Solomon, Eccles. xii. 13.
CHAP. XVI. 1. 223
in Israel, and progenitor of the Saviour.1 Abigail confessed herself un-
worthy to wash the feet of her lord s servants, before she was honoured if
to be his wife.2 And in the daily walk of life, the lowest place is the
path-way to honour.3
The same principle obtains in the dispensations of grace. "He that
humbleth himself shall be exalted---In due time."4 Not that in the
forgetfulness of our high privileges and confidence, we are to be
weighed down in a sense of degradation. The true humility, which
realizes our vileness, casts us most simply upon the full resources of the
gospel, so that the most humble is the most triumphant believer.
'The lower then any descend in humiliation, the higher they shall
ascend in exaltation. The lower this foundation of humility is laid, the
higher shall the roof of honour be over-laid.'*
And was not this the track of our beloved Lord--Before honour,
humility--the cross before the crown? How deep was that descent,
by which he, who was infinitely more than man, became "a worm and
no man" (Ps. xxii. 6.) And yet the honour, which rewarded this
humility, what tongue can tell! (Phil. ii. 9.) ‘We must not disdain
to follow Jesus Christ.† Is it a light privilege to follow in the path-
way consecrated by his steps, irradiated by his smile? (Matt. xi. 29; ii,
xx. 28. John, xiii. 14.)
CHAPTER XVI.
1. The preparations (disposings, marg.) of the heart in man, and the
answer of the tongue, is from the Lord.
The grand question is here decided--'Who is the first mover in
the work of conversion? Can man prepare his own heart for the grace
of God?' The preparations of the heart in man are from the Lord.‡ He
takes the stone out of the heart, that it may feel (Ezek. xxxvi. 26);
draws it, that it may follow; quickens it, that it may live. He opens
the heart, that he may imprint his own law, and mould it into his
image. (Acts, xvi. 14. Jer. xxxi. 33.) He works, not merely by moral
suasion, or by the bare proposal of means of uncertain power; but by
invisible Almighty agency. The work then begins with God. It is
not, that we first come, and then are taught. But first we learn; then
1 Ruth, ii. iv. 13-22. Matt. I. 5. 2 1 Sam. xxv. 41, 42. 3 Luke, xiv. 7-11.
4 Ibid. xviii. 14. 1 Pet. v. 6.
* Trapp in loco. ‘The more humble, the fitter to come to God, and he the more willing
to come into the soul, and dwell in it. The highest heavens are the habitation of God's
glory; and the humble heart hath the next honor, to be the habitation of his grace.'--
LEIGHTON.
† Cope in loco.
‡ Ps. x. 17. 'From whom all holy desires, all good counsels, and all just works do pro-
ceed.'--Liturgy
224 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
we come. (John, vi. 45.) His grace both prevents and co-operates
(Art. x.): not working upon a stone, and leaving it in its dead con-
dition; but as when in Paradise he breathed into the lifeless earth
principle of life and energy. (Gen. ii. 7.)
Shall we then indolently wait until he works? Far from it. We
must work, but in dependence upon him. He works not without us,
but with us, through us, in us, by us; and we work in him. (Phil. ii.
13. Job, xi. 13.) ours is the duty; his is the strength. Ours the
agency; his the quickening life. His commands do not imply our
power to obey, but our dependence upon him for the grace of obedience.
The work, as it is a duty, is ours; but as a performance, it is God's.
He gives what he requires, and his promises are the foundation of our
performances.'* Our works are not the cause, but the effect, of his
grace; and never could they come out of us, until God had first put
them in us.
The fruit also, as well as the root--the answer of the tongue, no less
than the preparation of the heart--is from the Lord. The tongue of the
ungodly is under Divine restraint. (Num. xxii. 18.) And when the
Christian's thoughts are marshalled in due order, does not he depend
upon the Lord for utterance? (Eph. vi. 19.) Often in prayer, the more
we speak, the more we leave unspoken, till the answer of the tongue is
fully given, "crying, Abba, Father." (Gal. iv.6.) But the fluency of
the tongue without the preparation of the heart; when prayer is with-
out special business; when we read the precious promises, and carry
not a word to plead before the throne--this is man's dead formality; not
from the Lord; an abomination in his sight.
This habit of dependence must continue to the end. We can no
more prepare ourselves after grace received, than before it.† He who
"is the Author," must be "the Finisher, of faith." (Heb. xii. 2.) He is
"Alpha and Omega, the beginning and the end" (Rev. i. 8), in this
Almighty work. Our happiness and prosperity is in the humbling
acknowledgment of praise--"By the grace of God I am what I am."
(1 Cor. xv. 10.) Dependence is not the excuse for indolence, but the
spring of active energy.‡
And if man's reason disputes--'If God does not give me grace,
how can I come?'--we ask--Did you ever desire, did you ever ask
for, grace? If not, how can you complain, that you have never received it?
* Bp. REYNOLDS' Works, p. 129.
† Isa. xxvi. 12. 2 Cor iii. 5. 'I beg '--said Jerome--'that I may receive; and when
I have received. I beg again.'
‡ Quamvis enim, nisi adjuvante illo, sine quo nihil possumus facere, os non possumus
aperire; tamen nos aperimus illius adjumento, et opere nostro.'-- Aug. contra duas Epist.
Pelag ad Bonif. Commentators appear to be much perplexed on the translation of this
verse. Many give it, as if the preparntions or disposings (marg.) of the heart were in man,
but the answer of the tongue from the Lord. But Holden, as the result of a minute and
critical examination, has substantially vindicated the received translation.
CHAP. XVI. 2. 225
If helplessness is really felt, if it brings conviction, grace is ready to be
vouchsafed." Ask, and it shall be given you." (Matt. vii. 7.)
2. All the ways of a man are clean in his own eyes, but the Lord weigheth
the spirits.
If man were his own judge, who would be condemned? But man
judges by acts; God by principles. His eye therefore beholds a mass
of corruption; while all the ways of a man are clean in his own eyes.
(Gen. vi. 5. Ps. xiv. 3.) In fact--man will never believe his real
character, until the looking-glass is held to his face will convincing
light (Rom. vii. 9), or some subtle temptation unfolds the hateful dis-
covery. He confesses himself indeed to be a sinner. But what his
sins are, he knows not; probably only venial, and abundantly com-
pensated by his fancied virtue. "Ye are they"--said our Lord to
men of his stamp--"which justify yourselves before men: but God
knoweth your hearts; for that which is highly esteemed among men is
abomination in the sight of God." (Luke, xvi. 15.)
Sometimes we see this delusion under the most shadowy cover:
Pilate washed his hands, and was clean in his own eyes, from the blood
of his condemned victim. (Matt. xxvii. 24.) The murderers of Christ
were clean, by refraining from the defilement of the judgment-hall, and
by eating the passover. (John, xviii. 28.)
The persecutors of the Church blinded their consciences in the
sincerity of unbelief. (Acts, xxvi. 9.) Often has the self-deceiver passed
into eternity under a creditable profession. But how does he stand
before God? He never acted from principle. He had the form and
shape of a Christian, so drawn to life as to pass for a living man. But
the eyes that are as a flame of fire, bare witness--"Thou hast a name
that thou livest, and art dead." (Rev. iii. 1.)
External form without a sanctified heart is a baseless religion. Our
real worth is, what we are in the sight of God. He weighs, not "the
actions"1 only, but the spirits. His eye discerns, if but one grain too
light, and pronounces the sentence. Saul was thus "weighed in the
balances, and found wanting."2 And "if thou, Lord, shouldest mark
iniquities "--the short-comings of thy full and righteous demands-
"0 Lord, who shall stand?"3 Must we not fly from Omniscience to
satisfied justice, and there find, that "there is forgiveness with God?”4
Joyous, indeed, is it to mark the even balances of our Judge; in one
scale, his own perfect law; in the other, his Son's perfect obedience.
Here, 0 my God, is my peace, my security. "Thou, most upright, dost
weigh the path of the just." (Isa. xxvi. 7.) But oh! place the blood of
1 1 Sam, ii. 3; xvi.7. 2 Ib. xv. 11. Dan. v, 27.
3 Ps. cxxx. 3; cxliii. 2. 4 Gal. iii. 10, 13, with Ps. cxxx. 4.
226 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
thy beloved Son even in the scale of thy justice; and we will render to
thee the glory of thy wondrous work of grace.
3. Commit thy works unto the Lord, and thy thoughts shall be established.
An unsettled mind is a serious evil--a canker to Christian peace.
Every faculty is thrown into disorder. The memory is confused, the
judgment undecided, the will unsteady. No moral rules can discipline
the tossing exercise. Faith is the only principle of solid establishment.
(Ps. cxii. 7. Isa. xxvi. 3.) Here was our original happiness and
security. Independence was the destruction of our well-being. (Gen.
iii. 5.) The return to this humble simplicity is the privilege of the
gospel. "In all thy ways acknowledge him" (Chap. iii. 6)--is the
rule of peace. Eliezer's thoughts were established in committing his work
to the Lord. (Gen. xxiv.) This confidence was the stay of our beloved
Lord in his great work. (Isa. xlix. 4; 1. 7-9.) Prayer was the exercise
of his faith. Establishment was the issue. (J ohn, xvii. 4.) Has the
fretting spirit ever tried this true remedy? Actively engage the two
hands of faith and prayer in making over our burdens to our Father.
To have a sanctuary to flee to--a God, on whom to roll our cares;*
to lean to his wisdom, and rest on his faithfulness--Here is a chamber
of quietness in the most distracting anxieties--"So he giveth his
beloved sleep." (Ps. cxxvii. 2.)
Commit then all thy works to him. Seek to him for strength and
guidance in all. Look to him for success in all. Roll on him the great
work of thy soul's salvation. Be satisfied with his management of thy
concerns. Put thy works, as thou wouldest put thy children, with
confidence into the hands of God. Christian self-possession will be the
result. Let thy heart habitually turn to the throne of grace; so that in
a crisis of trouble instant faith, instant--perhaps speechless (Neh.
ii. 4)--prayer, may bring instant composure and resolution. This
active energy of faith will enable us to collect our thoughts, establish
them in the peace of God, and keep our souls in fortified security.†
Indeed a great part of our worship is to commit our works to him " with-
out carefulness;" not in a general dependence on his goodness or
wisdom, but in a particular dependence for our special need. The
burden being now cast upon one who is better able to bear it (1 Pet.
v. 7), the mind is easy, the thoughts composed, quietly waiting the issue
of things; knowing that all, that is for our good, and the glory of our
God, shall be brought to pass. (Ps. cxii. 7.) Thus "we which have
believed do enter into rest.” (Heb. iv. 3.) But if we will not believe
* M. R. ‘Volve in Dominum quae tibi facienda sunt.'-MICHAELIS, Ps. xxxvii. 5. M. R.
+ Phil. iv. 6, 7, frourhsw.
CHAP. XVI. 4. 227
- -so speaks the solemn warning--"surely we shall not be estab-
lished."*
4. The Lord hath made all things for himself; yea, even the wicked for the
day of evil.
Every workman has some end for his work. God has the highest
end. As the Apostle reasons concerning the oath of God--"because
he could sware by no greater, he sware by himself" (Ib. vi. 13); so
here--because he could propose no higher end, he proposed himself.
Indeed it is his exclusive prerogative, that, as he has been "the Begin-
ning" (Col. i.18. Rev. iii. 14), so he should be the end of all his works.†
The Lord hath created all things--all the works of the creation--all
the events of nations--all the dispensations of Providence--for him-
self, not to fill up a vacuum (for what vacuum could there be to the
fountain of sufficiency?); but for the manifestation of his glory to his
intelligent creatures. (Isa. xliii. 21; Ix. 21.) Nor Indeed can it be
doubted, but that from his immense power and wisdom, from his bene-
volent and diffusive goodness he displayed, an infinite weight of glory
is reflected upon the great source of all these perfections. "The Lord
rejoices in his works" (Ps. civ. 31) with inexpressible delight and
satisfaction. And thus all things return to that boundless ocean, from
whence they sprung. Even the wicked, whose existence might seem
scarcely reconcilable to the Divine perfections, he includes in the
grand purpose of setting out his Name. 'It is the greatest praise of
his wisdom, that he can turn the evil of men to his own glory!'‡ He
hath made even the wicked for the day of evil.--Wicked they are of them-
selves. He made them not so.1 He compels them not to be so.2 He
abhors their wickedness. But he foresaw their evil. He permitted it;
and though "he hath no pleasure in their death,"3 he will be glorified
1 Gen, i. 27, Eccles. vii. 29. 2 John, iii. 19. 3 Ezek. xxxiii. 11.
* 2 Chron. xx. 26. Isa, vii. 1-9. Nothing can be more erroneous than for those who fear
God, to suppose themselves as liable as ever to “the changes and chalices of this mortal
life." Change, if God see good, they may experience; but the sincerely religious have
done with chance. Having once cordially committed themselves to God's paternal care,
they can meet nothing in their course, which is not the result of Divine adjustment, of
wisdom which cannot err, of love, to which the tenderness of the tenderest parent bears
no comparison. Under such a management what can we rationally fear? Let us,
through Divine grace, only keep within the circle where these movements are carried on,
and we need not doubt, that, though we see nothing remarkable in our course, an unseen
hand is directing every circumstance, so as in the most effectual manner, to avert what
might hurt us, to ensure what will benefit us, and to direct all our concerns to the best
possible issue'--ALEXANDER KNOX'S Remains, Vol. ii. 'Divine Providence,'--a work full
of instructive thought, but deeply tinctured with unsound principles",
† lsa. xliii. 7; xlviii. II, 12. Rom. xi. 36. Rev, iv. 10,11. See President Edwards's pro-
found and interesting reasoning, -'God's chief end in Creation.' Chap. i. Works? i. Could
there be a clearer demonstrotion of the Divinity of Christ, than the representation of him
as the great end of creation--"All things were made by Him, and for Him?”. Col. 1. 16.
‡ Bishop Hall. Comp. Exod. xiv. 17.
228 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
in them in the day of evil;1 and when they sin by their own free-will,
he ordains them to punishment, as the monuments of his power, his
justice, and his long-suffering.2
Clearly God is not the Author of sin; He cannot impart what he
has not--what is contrary to his nature. Infinite perfection cannot
impart imperfection. Absolute holiness cannot be the cause of sin;
though, like the law,3 it may be the innocent occasion or excitement of
it. If he foreknows--'infinite foreknowledge'--as Edwards pro-
foundly observes--'proves the necessity of the event foreknown; yet
it may not be the thing, which causes the necessity.'* He can decree
nothing but good. If he permits evil, so far as not to hinder it, he hates
it as evil, and permits it only for, the greater good--the greatest of all
good--the more full manifestation of his own glory in it, and out of it.
He will be glorified in, or on, all his creatures. "All thy works shall
praise thee, 0 Lord!" (Ps. cxlv. 10.) His retributive justice, no less
than the riches of his grace, sets out his glory. (Rom. ix. 22, 23.) It
would seem as if the redeemed are permitted to see this, and to partici-
pate with Divine satisfaction. The flames of hell excite the reverential
praises of heaven.--"And again they said--Alleluia. And her smoke
rose up for ever and ever."†
5. Every one that is proud in heart is an abomination to the Lord; though
hand join in hand, he shall not be unpunished,--(held innocent,
marg. )
The hatefulness of a proud look has been mentioned. (Chap. vi. 17.)
But the Searcher of hearts marks pride in heart under a humble look.
(Matt. vi. 16.) Men see no abomination in this spirit. It brings no dis-
grace. Nay, it is often thought to be high-minded. But it keeps back
the heart from God. It lifts up the heart against him. It contends for
the supremacy with him. (Ezek. xxviii. 2.) When it thus strikes at God, what
wonder that God strikes at it (1 Pet. v. 5), as an abomination to him?
How unseemly moreover is this sin! A creature so utterly depen-
dent, so fearfully guilty, yet proud in heart! A true child of a fallen
1 Job, xxi. 30, 2 Pet, ii. 9. 2 Rom. ix. 17, 22. 3 Ib. vii 5, 8, 11-18. 1 Cor. xv. 56.
* Treatise on Will, Part ii. Sect. 12. See also Doddridge's valuable note on Luke, xxii. 22.
† Rev. xix. 3. 'God made man neither to save nor damn him, but for his own glory.
And it is secured, whether in his salvation or damnation. (See 2 Cor. ii. 15.) Nor did, nor
does, God make man wicked. He made man upright. Man makes himself wicked; and
being so, God may justly appoint him to damnation for his wickedness; in doing which he
glorifies his justice.' GILL in loco. ‘Those two great acts of his most secret and unsearch-
able' counsel, than the one whereof there is not anyone act more gracious--the destination
of those that persevere in faith and godlliless to eternal happiness; nor anyone act more
full of terror and astonishment than the other--the designation of such as live and die in
sin to eternal destruction; the Scriptures in the last resolution refer them wholly to his
glory, as the last end. The glory of his rich mercy being most resplendent in the one, and
the glory of his just severity in the other.'--Bishop SANDERSON's Sermon on Rom xv. 6.
CHAP. XVI. 5, 6. 229
parent, who, in dreaming to be as God, made himself like the devil.
(Gen. iii. 5.) Many are the forms of this hateful spirit. Some are proud
of their beauty; some of their talents; some of their rank; some of
their goodness--all forgetting, that they "have nothing which they
have not received (1 Cor. iv. 7); all unconscious, that they are an
abomination to the Lord.
Perhaps, however, this declaration applies more distinctly to proud
combinations against God--hand joining in hand.1 "That is all this
force, but the worm "striving with his Malter?2 "who is the Lord?"
--was the boast of haughty Pharaoh. Let him and his people go to
the Red Sea, and learn.3 Hand joining in hand shall not be held innocent
--shall not be unpunished. The Babel combination was blasted with
confusion.4 The "associations" against the holy child Jesus were
"broken In pieces."5 The infidel conspiracies of Voltaire and his
school have been overthrown. And thus in our own day, "will all Social
and Chartist banding together for wickedness, Only manifest more
gloriously--"There is no wisdom, nor understanding, nor counsel
against the Lord." (Chap. xxi. 30.)
6. By mercy and truth iniquity is purged: and by the fear of the Lord,
men depart from evil.
The true exposition of this verse requires much care and consider-
ation. We protest against that false principle of theology, which sub-
stitutes the grand doctrines of the gospel in the place of its practical
statements. The purging of iniquity seems here however to direct us to
expiation.* Therefore to connect it with man's mercy and truth is to
overturn the foundation of the gospel. These are duties to be per-
formed (Chap. iii. 3); not atonement for sin: and often are they per-
formed by men destitute of the grace of God, whose iniquity therefore is
not purged. They may indeed in the dispensation of God be available
for averting national judgments. (Dan. iv. 27.) But there is a wide
difference between this "lengthening tranquility," and in purging iniquity.
On the other hand--considering that divine mercy and truth are
frequently exhibited in connection with this invaluable blessing;6 the
analogy of faith appears to link it here with these combined perfec-
tions, 'which kiss in Christ the Mediator (Ps. lxxxv. 10), and with that
covenant of grace, in which they shine so brightly.'† Should this view
be thought not to cohere with the general tenor of this book, which
'deals more with practical points and matters of common life, than
1 Chap. xi. 21. Ps.lix. 3,12,13. 2 Isa. xlv. 9. 3 Exod. v. 2; xiv. 26-30.
4 Gen. xi. 1-9. 5 Isa. viii. 9. Ps. ii. 1-5.
6 Exod. xxxiv. 6. Ps.lvii. 3; 1xxxvi.15. Mic. vii. 18-20. John, i. 17. Comp. ch. xiv. 22.
* It is the ordinary sacrificial term. Exod. xxx. 10. Lev. iv. 20; v.6. xvi. 6. Dan.ix.
24. Also Ps. lxv.3.
† Henry. Comp.lxxxix. 2, 3, 14. Ps. cxvii. 1.
230 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
with the deeper articles of faith; '* it may be observed, that, when
some of its pages are so fully illuminated by evangelical sunshine
(Chap. viii. 9), we might naturally expect--besides this connected
splendour--occasional rays of doctrinal light to rest upon this system
of Christian morals.
Taking, therefore, in accordance with most of our best critics and
soundest expositors,† this ground of interpretation--we observe the
great controversy between God and man. Men would purge iniquity by
repentance or external ceremonials. God determines it by sacrifice;
not nullifying the sanctions of the law by a simple deed of mercy; but
combining the manifestation of his truth, by fulfilling these sanctions
upon the Surety, which mercy provided. (Isa. liii. 6. 2 Cor. v. 21.) No
display of mercy can be conceived in force and emphasis to compare
with that awful moment when "God spared not his own Son" (Rom.
viii. 32), but permitted blameless love and purity to agonise upon the
cross. Yet was this wondrous display of mercy a display of truth not
less wondrous; inasmuch as it was the means, by which inflexible
justice could justify the guilty. (Rom. iii. 26.) So gloriously do these
two attributes harmonise! We enquire not, to which we owe the
deepest obligation. Mercy engages, truth fulfils--the engagements.
Mercy provides, truth accepts--the ransom. Both sat together in the
Eternal council. Both made their public entrance together into the
world. Both, like the two pillars of the temple (1 Kings, vii. 21), com-
bine to support the Christian's confidence; that, though there is abun-
dant material for condemnation even in the holiest saint; actual
condemnation there is not--there cannot be. (Rom. vii. 14 -25;
viii. 1.)
But if in the first clause of the verse we see how the guilt of iniquity
is purged, the second clause shews, how its power is broken. The very
exercise of forgiveness is to implant a conservative principle.1 By the
fear of the Lord, men depart from evil.2 The supposition of pardon for a
sinner continuing impenitent, would be to unite the two contraries of
reconciliatien and enmity. Iniquity is not purged, that we should wallow
again in the mire.3 The beam of light, which scatters every record of
condemnation, is convincing, sanctifying, healing to the soul. Indeed
God shews the deepest abhorrence of sin in the very act of its expia-
tion. Yet the implanted principle of obedience is no legal bondage.
The fear of the Lord is at once a bridle to sin, and a spur to holiness.
* Geier.
† Junius and Tremellius, Cartwright, Schultens, Holden, Henry, Scott, Comp. Glass'
beautiful exposition. Lib. iii. Tract. iii. Can. xxvi. The LXX omit the verse in its place,
and add it to Ch. xv. 27, connecting the blessing with man's moral virtues, not with God's
perfections.
1 Ps. cxxx. 4. Comp. Jer. xxxii. 40. 2 Chap. iii.7; viii. 13; xiv. 16, 27.
3 Luke, i. 74, 75. Comp. Rom. vi. 1. 2 Cor. vii. 1.
CHAP. XVI. 7. 231
It changes the slave into a child. Filial confidence--its twin-grace
--like a seven-fold shield-covers from sin. Sin's very touch is
hateful; and all its ways are abhorred and forsaken.
7. When a man's ways please the Lord, he maketh even his enemies to be at
peace with him.
Often is the favour of God and man combined to the man of God.
(Chap. iii. 3, 4. Rom. xiv. 18.) Yet he will always have his enemies, if
from no other source, from "his own household." (Matt. x. 36.) To seek
peace with them by compromise of principle, would be to forfeit his
character at a dreadful cost. Let him hold fast his principles in the face
of his enemies. 'Though they mean him no good, they shall do him no
harm.'*
How then do we explain the persecution of the saints (2 Tim. iii. 12),
of Him especially, whose ways always pleased the Lord? (John, viii. 29,
37.) Each statement limits the other. The one shews the native
enmity of the heart: the other its Divine restraint. It shall be let
loose, so far as is for the glory of God. Beyond this, it shall be
restrained. (Ps. lxxvi. 10.) His Church had her season of rest. (Acts,
ix. 31.) He hath all tongues, all hands, all hearts, under his power.
Who then needs to fear man, that walks in the fear of God?
(Rom. viii. 31.)
'The best way for our enemies to be reconciled to us, is for us to be
reconciled to God.'† All our danger lies in his wrath, not in their
anger. No creature can touch us without his permission.1 Laban
followed Jacob as an enemy, but was constrained to be at peace with him.2
Esau when about to execute his long-brooded threat, was melted down
into brotherly endearment.3 Israel's lands were preserved from invasion,
while they were engaged in the service of God."4 The enemies of the
godly kings were manacled, and bowed before them.5 Often has the
majesty of the godly brow commanded the reverence, and even bound
up the hands of the wicked.‡ And such will be the ultimate victory
of the Church over all opposition.6
But even if the enemies be let loose; yet if their harm be overruled
to larger good, is not the promise substantially fulfilled? 'No wise
man will tax him with breach of promise, who, having promised a
pound of silver, giveth a talent of gold. Or who can truly say, that that
man is not so good as his word, that is apparently much better than his
* Bishop SANDERSON'S Sermon on Text † Bishop Patrick.
‡ David, 1 Sam. xxiv. 17. Daniel and his fellow-captives, i. 6-21; iii. 26-30; vi. 24-28.
1 See Job, i. 9-12. Ps. cv.13-15. 2 Gen. xxxi. 24. 3 Ib. xxvii. 41; xxxii. 1-4.
4 Exod. xxxiv. 23, 24. 5 1 Kings, iv. 21-25; x.23-29. 2 Chron. xvii. 10.
John the Baptist, Mark, vi. 20. Paul, Acts, xxvii. 43.
6 Rev. iii. 9.
232 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
word?'* God will take care of his people. Peace or war shall turn
to their everlasting good. (Rom. viii. 28. Philip. i. 12-19.)
8. Better is a little with righteousness, than great revenues without right.
We have before had this Proverb in substance (Chap. xv. 16); save
that the treasures are more distinctly shewn to be revenues without right.
It seems almost too plain to need illustration. Yet so blind is the love
of gain, that it looks only at its own selfish end, and the present
moment; and fancies, what never can be, enjoyment1 and security.2
Retributive justice is at hand.3 Far better is the little with righteousness.
Was not the widow of Zarephath richer with her scanty fare, than
Jezebel in her royal attire;4 the poor prophet, sharing her pittance,
than the King with his revenues without right;5 Zaccheus, when reduced
to his comparative little with righteousness, than with his former abun-
dance of "the unrighteous Mammon?"6 If the sight of a man's
possession stirs envy, his scantiness of enjoyment might shortly melt it
away in compassion. We learn the valuable lesson--The fewer desires,
the more quiet. This is the present manifestation. Much more clearly
will the day declare it. The little righteously employed will then find a
gracious acceptance.7 The treasures of wickedness will be found
treasures of wrath eternal.8
Few however possess great revenues. But the most trifling acquisi-
tions without right will canker. Beware of the hair-breadth deviation
from straight principle. "Mortify that member of the earth," which
"is idolatry" (Col. iii. 5) against God, and "the root of all evil" to
ourselves. (1 Tim. vi. 10.) Godliness is great riches in this life; what
will it be in eternity! (1 Tim. v. 6; iv. 8.)
9. A man's heart deviseth his way: but the Lord directeth his steps.
A fine description of the Sovereign government of God! Inscrutable
indeed is the mystery, how he accomplishes his fixed purpose by free-
willed agents. Man without his free will is a machine. God without
his unchangeable purpose ceases to be God. (Mal. iii. 6.) As rational
agents we think, consult, act freely. As dependent agents, the Lord
exercises his own power in permitting, overruling, or furthering our
acts.9 Thus man proposes; God disposes. Man devises; the Lord
directeth. He orders our will, without infringing our liberty, or
disturbing our responsibility. For while we act as we please, we
must be answerable.
* Bishop Sanderson ut supra.
1 Ps. cxxvii. 2. Eccles. v. 12. 2 Chap. x. 8; xxi. 6, 7. Jer. xvii. 11.
3 Jam. v. 4. 4 1 Kings, xvii. 10. 2 Kings, ix. 32-37.
5 1 Kings, xxi. 19, with xvii. 15. 6 Luke, xix. 2, 8.
7 Matt. xxv. 34-40. Luke, xvi. 9. 8 Hab. ii. 6, 9, 12. Jam. v. 1-8.
9 Chap. xix. 21; xxi. 30. Ps. xxxiii. 11. lsa. xlvi. 10, Lam. iii. 37.
CHAP. XVI. 9 233
We observe this supremacy, in directing, not only an important end,
but every step towards it; not only the great events, but every turn;*
not only in his own people,1 but in every child of man.2 How little
did Joseph's brethren contemplate the overruling direction to their evil
devisings!3 When Saul's heart was devising "slaughter against the
disciples of the Lord;"4 when the renegade slave was running in his
own path,† little did they think of that gracious direction of their steps,
to the salvation of their souls. When David simply went at his father's
bidding, little did he know the grand crisis, to which the Lord was
directing his steps.5 As little did the captive girl calculate upon the
weighty results from her banishment from her country.6 Often also
hath the path of the Lord's people been encouraged by the counter-
acting of their enemies' devising, and the backward direction of their
steps, at the moment when they were ready to grasp their prey!
(1 Sam. xxiii. 27; Isa. xxxvii. 7, 8.) In fact--as Bp. Hall remarks-
'Every creature walks blindfold. Only he that dwells in light, sees
whither they go.' (2 Kings, v. 2, 3.)
This doctrine of Providence is not like the doctrine of the Trinity-
to be received by faith. Experience gives a demonstrable stamp of evi-
dence--even in all the minutiae of circumstances which form the parts
and pieces of the Divine plan. A matter of common business;7 the
indulgence of curiosity;8 the supply of necessary want;9 a journey from
home10--all are connected with infinitely important results. And
often, when our purpose seemed as clearly fixed, and as sure of ac-
complishment, as a journey to London, this way of our own devising has
been blocked up by unexpected difficulties, and unexpected facilities
have opened an opposite way, with the ultimate acknowledgment--
"He led me forth in the right way." (Ps. cvii. 7. Isa. xlii.. 16.) The
Divine controul of the Apostle's movements, apparently thwarting their
present usefulness, "turned out rather to the furtherance of the gospel.
Philip was transferred from an important sphere in Samaria, from
preaching to thousands, into a desert. But the Ethiopian Eunuch
was his noble convert, and through him the gospel was doubtless
widely circulated. (Acts, viii. 37-39.) Paul was turned aside from a
wide field of labour to a more contracted ministry. A few women, and
a family, were his only Church. Yet how did these small beginnings
issue in the planting of flourishing Churches!11 After all, however, we
need much discipline to wean us from our own devices, that we may
seek the Lord's direction in the first place. The fruit of this discipline
1 Ps. xxxvii. 23. 2 Chap. xx. 24. Jer. x. 23. 3 Gen. xxxvii. 26-28; xlv. 5.
4 Acts, ix. 1-6. 5 1 Sam. xvii. 17, 18, 23, 58. 6 2 Kings, v. 2, 8.
7 1 Sam. ix. 3, 15, 16. 8 Luke, xix. 4, 6, 9. 9 John, iv. 7.
10 Acts xvi. 14. 11 Ib. xvi. 6-15, 34, with Philip. i. 1. 1 Thess. i. 1.
* What vast results hung upon the sleepless night of the Eastern autocrat! Esth. vi. 1.
† Epistle to Philemon.
234 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
will be a dread of being left to our own devices; as before we were
eager to follow them. (Ps. cx1iii.10.) So truly do we find our happiness
and security in yielding up our will to our Heavenly Guide! He
knows the whole way--every step of the way--"the end from the
beginning." And never shall we miss either the way or the end, if
only we resign ourselves with unreserved confidence to his keeping
and direction of our steps.
10. A Divine sentence (Divination,* marg.) is in the lips of the king; his
mouth transgresseth not in judgment. 11. A just weight and balance
are the Lord's; all the weights of the bag are his work. 12. It is an
abomination to kings to commit wickedness; for the throne is established
by righteousness. 13. Righteous lips are the delight of kings; and they
love him that speaketh right.
Here is a manual for kings; shewing, not what they are, but what
God requires them to be, that they may be a blessing to their people,
and benefactors to the world. (2 Sam. xxiii. 3, 4.) If this standard be
neglected, the wisely-arranged ordinance fails of its end. "One man
ruleth over another to his own hurt" (Eccles. viii. 9); and ruler and
people may each become a curse to the other. (Judg. ix. 20.)
The king is not indeed wiser by birth than his subjects; but he is
under stronger obligations to seek wisdom.1 And when God's law is his law, a
divine sentence is in his lips. Such was the wisdom of Solomon, when in a
delicate and difficult cause his mouth transgressed not in judgment.†
Such a King (and this is the glory of royalty) will have no interest
of his own, apart from the public good. The remembrance that the
balances and weights are the Lord's, his work--made by his appointment
--dictates an even-handed justice.‡ Not only will he refrain from
wickedness; but it will be abomination to him to commit it. Not only will
he be careful to remove all evil from his person; 2 but he will surround
himself with faithful counsellors.§ Righteous lips will be his delight.
* Not Divination--strictly so called, which was absolutely forbidden (Deut. xviii. 10);
but penetration in discovering truth. See PARKHURST.
† 1 Kings, iii. 26-28. 'Who would have expected to have found in this Proverb a proof
of the Pope's infallibility! 'If Kings are infallible, much more Popes.' 'Arguments must
be extremely scarce, when such are alleged.'--SCOTT.
‡ Deut. xxiv. 15, 16. Ezek. xlv. 10, The Jews used to keep their weights in bags.
Mic. vi. 11.
§ Chap. xxii. 11. Ps. ci. 6, 7. Dan. iii. 28-30; vi. 24-28. Constantius, the father of
Constantine, tested the character of his Christian servants, by the imperative command to
offer sacrifices to his gods. Some sunk under the trial. Those, who had really "bought
the truth," would sell it for no price. (Chap. xxiii. 2:1.) They were inflexible. He banished
the base compliants from his service. The the confessors he entrusted with the care of his
own person. 'These men'--said he--'I can trust. I value them more than all my treasures.'
This was sound judgment. For who are so likely to be faithful to their king, as those that
have proved themselves faithful to their God!
1 Chap. xxv. 2. 1 Kings, ili. 9. 2 Sam. xiv. 17. 2 Chap. xx. 8, 26, contrast xxix. 12.
CHAP. XVI. 14, 15. 235
Admirable was Eli's, regard to Samuel's lips, even when they spoke
daggers to his heart.*
Nothing is wanting to such a reign but stability. And thus speaks
the word, unnoticed indeed by worldly statesmen, but well-warranted
by experience--The throne is established by righteousness.1 Thus 'the
Polity acknowledges itself indebted to religion. Godliness, being the
chiefest top and well-spring of all true virtues,' is the foundation of
national prosperity.† The righteous are the pillars of the earth,2 the
lions around the King's throne, his glory and defence.3
And shall we not plead for our Beloved Queen, that she may embody
this royal standard in her personal character and high responsibilities?
(1 Tim. ii. 1, 2. Ps. lxxii. 1.) And may we not see here some faint
delineation of the glorious King of Zion? What Divine sentences of
discriminating judgment dropped from his lips! (Matt. xxii. 15-46.)
How even are the balances of his perfect standard!4 How fully is his
throne established by righteousness!5--himself "loving righteousness,
and hating iniquity!" And what and who are his delight?--righteous
lips--He that speaketh right.6
14. The wrath of a king is as messengers of death; but a wise man will
pacify it. 15. In the light of the king's countenance is life; and his
favour is as a cloud of the latter rain.
The vast power of a King is here developed in a graphic picture of
Eastern despotism. Life and death is in his hands. His will is law.
(Eccles. viii. 4.) Every sign of his wrath--even the frown of his face, or
the word out of his mouth--is a messenger of death. (Esth. vii. 7-10.)
The despot issues his order, and the executioner performs his warrant
without delay or resistance.‡ No common wisdom was needed to
pacify his wrath. Jonathan appeased his father's wrath.7 Daniel
pacified the outrageous autocrat of Babylon.8 What a blessing, in con-
trast with this tyranny, is our own constitution! Such an admirable
counterpoise between the power of the people and the caprice of the
Sovereign! The just authority of the crown is preserved, without
invading the due liberty of the subject.
1 Kings, ii. 3. 2 Chron. xxxii. 22, 23. Jer. xxii. 13-20. 2 Ps. 1 xxv. 3.
3 1 Kings. x. 19, 20. 4 Ps. xlv. 6, 7. lsa. xi. 3, 4; xxxii. 1. 5 Isa. ix. 7. Jer. xxiii. 5.
6 Chap. xi. 1; xii. 22; Ps. xv. I, 2; xxiv. 3-5. 7 1 Sam. xix. 4-6.
8 Dan. ii. 15, 16. Comp. Acts, xii. 20-22.
* 1 Sam. iii. 15-18. Contrast 1 Kings, xxii. 8; 2 Chron. xv. 7-10; xxv. 15, 16; Mark,
vi. 17, 18. Clarendon perhaps was the finest example in modern times of unbending recti-
tude, boldly reproving his flagitious master, and beseeching him 'not to believe, that he
had a prerogative to declare vice to be virtue.' Well had it been for Charles, had these
righteous lips been his delight.
† HOOKER, Eccl. Pol. B. v. c. i. 2. Chap. xiv. 34.
‡ 1Sam. xxii. 16-21. 1 Kings, ii. 24, 25, 46. 2 Kings, vi. 31-33. Matt. xiv. 10. Comp.
PAXTON'S Sacr. Geogr. 405.
236 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
The king's favour marks the same absolute power. The restoration
of Pharaoh's butler to his place was as ' life from the dead.”1 The
captive monarch found renewed life in the light of his Master's counte-
nance;2 Nehemiah's depression was cheered by his Sovereign's kind
manners and still kinder indulgence.3 And was not the golden sceptre,
held out to Esther,4 as the reviving cloud of the latter rain--the security
of "the joy of harvest?"*
But think of the King of kings, before whom the mightiest Monarch
is as dust. (Isa. xl. 22.) How much more is his Wrath to be dreaded as
a messenger of death!5 The Kings themselves will fly to the rocks in
vain for a shelter from its fury.6 Wise indeed is the man who pacifies it.
What owe we to that blood, which speaks our peace?7 Sinner--ere it
be too late--listen to the pleading call--"Be ye reconciled unto
God."8 And then whose wrath need he fear, who knows that God is
propitious to him?
For truly, if in the light of the earthly King's countenance, much more
"in his favour is life." (Ps. xxx. 5.) One smile scatters the thickest
cloud, and brings "gladness" infinitely more than all the treasures of
earth;9 refreshing as the latter rain.10 'Christ liveth'--said the noble
Luther--'else I would not desire to live one moment.' Yea--
Christian!--bitter and deep as thy sorrow may be, dread above all
thy troubles the clouding of thy Lord's countenance. Watch every
interval to obtain a glimpse of it. Seize every leisure to exchange a
word or a look. Count every moment of separation irksome to thee.
Above all--look and hasten to that time, when thou shalt walk up
and down in the unclouded light. Oh, my Lord! 'let the splendour of
that day irradiate my soul, even at this distance from it, and leave no
space void of its light and comfort. Yea--let it eclipse all other joys,
and by its glistening beauty cause the small contentment of this world
to be so many glow-worms, which shine only in the night. Impress
on my heart such a lively sense of thee, and of thy glory, that I may
sooner forget myself, than thee and thine appearing.'†
16. How much better is it to get wisdom than gold! and to get understand-
ing rather than chosen silver!
This apart from inspiration, must be considered to be a competent
judgment. It was formed by one, who had the largest portion of both
1 Gen. xl. 20.21. 2 2 Kings, xxv. 27-30. 3 Neh. ii. 1-8.
4 Esth. v. 2, 3, with iv. 16. 5 Matt. xxii. 13. Luke, xii. 6 Rev. vi. 15.
7 Col. i. 20: Heb. xii. 24. 8 2 Cor. v. 200; vi. 2. 9 9 Ib. iv. 6, 1; xxi. 6.
10 Ib. lxxii. 6. Hos. vi. 3.
* Deut. xi. 14. Job, xxix. 23. Joel, ii. 23. Zech. x. 1. Jam. V.7. As the Jews began
their civil year after the Autumnal Equinox, the latter rain fell in the spring; 'and the
more wet the spring '--says Dr. Russel--'the later the harvest, and the more abundant the
crop.' HARMER'S Observ. i. 71.
† Bishop PATRICK'S Glorious Epiphany, pp. 110, 114
CHAP. XVI. 16, 17. 237
blessings, that ever fell to the lot of man. (1 Kings, iii. 12, 13.) Cal-
culate in the balances of the sanctuary the overwhelming interests of
heaven above earth, of the soul above the body, of eternity above time;
and who will dispute this verdict? One who had made the choice
counted all things but loss and dung in comparison. (Phil. iii. 8.) It
is more valuable,1 more abiding,2 more fruitful,3 more satisfying. It is
inexpressibly better. The question implies admiration and delight--
How much better to get wisdom than gold? understanding than silver!4
It is the only thing under the sun exempted from the universal verdict
--"All is vanity."5 The spiritual apprehension of it is like the sudden
discovery of a rich treasure ready for immediate use.
The security of the possession also heightens its value. Multitudes
labour night and day for gold; yet miss the treasure. But who was
ever disappointed in the effort to get wisdom?6 When has earnestness
and prayer failed of success?7 "Wisdom is the principal thing; there-
fore get wisdom; and with all thy getting, get understanding."8 No-
thing less than salvation is the great end.9 How rich must be that
blessing, of which the Son of God is the storehouse! For "in him are
hid all the treasures of wisdom and knowledge." (Col. ii. 3.) And none
shall spoil us of our portion.
17. The highway of the upright is to depart from evil: he that keepeth his
way preserveth his soul.
The highway is the plain beaten path. The highway of the upright--
his ordinary course of profession--is "the way of holiness" (Isa. xxxv.
8. Ps. cxix. 1-3)--departing from evil. Here let him be seen, peculiar
in his practice as in his principles. Each of us have our own world of
evil--an inner circle, where the conflict is far more sharp; where the
need of divine discipline is far more sensibly felt, than in the grosser
form of sin. Shew great forbearance to others, but none to ourselves.
Admit no foibles or infirmities. Count nothing small, that hinders the
completeness or consistency of profession. The real injury is not from
our living in the world, but from the world living in us. So delicate is
the vital principle, that it never can emit its glowing influence, except
in the atmosphere of heaven.
To keep therefore this way is to preserve our soul. (Chap. iv. 23-27;
xix. 16.) Indeed 'if religion did possess sincerely and sufficiently the
minds of all men, there would need no other restraint from evil.'*
Joseph was thus saved (Gen. xxxix. 9, 10): while David, forsaking the
path, fell into a grievous sin. (2 Sam. xi. 2.) The quick perception of
evil--the sensibility of danger from lawful things--at once proves
1 Chap. iii. 13-15; viii. 10, II, 18. 2 Chap. xxiii. 5. 3 Ecc. vii. 12.
4 Ib. v. 10. 5 Eccl. i. 2. 6 Matt. xi. 12.
7 Chap. ii. 3-5. Jam. i. 5. 8 Chap. iv. 7. 9 2 Tim. iii. 15.
* HOOKER, Eccl. Pol. B. v. c. i. 2.
238 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
our heavenly birth, and covers, us from many subtle devices. (1 John, v.
18.) "The unclean shall not pass over this highway; but the redeemed
shall walk there." (Isa. xxxv. 8, 9.)
18. Pride goeth before destruction, and a haughty spirit before a fall. 19.
Better is it to be of an humble spirit with the lowly, than to divide the
spoil with the proud.
What more vivid exposition of these Proverbs is needed than our
own ruined condition? Our father's pride, desiring to "be as God"
hurried his whole race to destruction. '0 Adam'--was the exclamation
of a man of God, 'what hast thou done!'* 'I think,'--said another
holy man--'so far as any man is proud, he is kin to the devil, and a
stranger to God and to himself.'† The most awful strength of Divine
eloquence seems to be concentrated to delineate the character and ruin
of pride.1 Example abounds throughout the Scripture;‡ each sound-
ing this solemn admonition--"Be not high-minded, but fear."2 Fear-
ful indeed is our danger, if the caution be not welcomed; if the need for
it be not deeply felt!
The haughty spirit§ carries the head high. The man looks upward,
instead of to his steps. What wonder therefore, if, not seeing what is
before him, he falls? He loves to climb. The enemy is always at
hand to assist him (Matt. iv. 5, 6); and the greater the height, the
more dreadful the fall. There, is often something in the fall, that
marks the Lord's special judgment. God smites the object, of which
the man is proud. David gloried in the number of his people, and the
Lord diminished them by pestilence. Hezekiah boasted of his trea-
Sure; and the Lord marked it to be taken away. At the moment that
Nebuchadnezzar was proud of his Babel, he was banished from the en-
joyment of it. "The vain daughters of Zion," priding themselves on
their ornaments, were covered with disgrace. (Isa. iii. 24.) Yet after all,
the state of heart that prepares man for the fall, is the worst part of his
condition. For what is our pride is our danger, 'Why'--a wise man
asks--'is earth and ashes proud? Pride was not made for man.'
But have we been preserved from open disgrace? Examine secret
faults. Trace them to their source--a subtle confidence in gifts,
attainments, and privileges. And then praise thy God for his painful
discipline--the preserving mercy from ruinous self-exaltation. Truly
the way down to the valley of Humiliation is deep and rugged. Hu-
1 Isa. xiv.4-19. Ezek. xxviii. xxix. Job, xl. 11,12.
2 Rom. xi. 20. Comp.l Cor. x. 12; 1 Tim. iii. 6.
* ADAM'S Private Thoughts † BAXTER'S Narrative.
‡ Pharaoh, Ex. ix. 16,17; Amaziah, 2 Chron. xxv. 15-20; Haman, Esth. v. 11; vii. 10;
Pharaoh, Ezek. xxix. 3-5. Nebuchadnezzar, Dan. iv. 29-33; Herod, Acts, xii. 21-23; In
the Church, David, 2 Sam. xxiv. 1; Uzziah, 2 Chron. xxvi. 4-16; Hezekiah, xxxii.
25; 1sa. xxxix.; Peter, Matt. xxvi 33, 69-74.
§ Altifrons elatio spiritus.--SCHULTENS.
CHAP. XVI. 20. 239
mility, therefore, is the grand preserving grace. The contrite publican
was safe, when the boasting Pharisee was confounded. (Luke, xviii. 14.)
Better then--more happy, more honourable, more acceptable to God
and man--is a humble spirit, companying with the lowly, than the spoil
of the haughty conqueror, ministering only to his destruction. (James, i.
9.) Better is an humble spirit, than a high condition; to have our
temper brought down, than our outward condition raised. But who
believes this? Most men strive to rise; few desire to lie low! May
thy example--blessed Saviour--keep me low! 'When Majesty'--said
pious Bernard--'humbled himself shall the worm swell with pride?'
20. He that handleth a matter wisely shall find good; and whoso trusteth
in the Lord, happy is he.
Two things are needed for the success of a matter--wisdom and
faith. One teaches us what to do for ourselves; the other what to expect
from God. "Wisdom is profitable to direct" (Eccles. x. 10), specially
in important matters. Joseph's wise management in a great emergency
found good.* The Apostles wisely handled the matter of the ministra-
tion of the widows, relieving themselves from the secular work, and for
the greater satisfaction choosing the officers (as seems probable from
the original of the names)† from the complaining party. And great
good did they find from the arrangement.‡ Let the young Christian
earnestly study this wisdom. His first glowing impulse would cast
away every relic of his former course, and stamp his religion with
needless singularity. But he may learn, that true self-denial is more
an internal exercise than an external badge of difference; that there
may be a martyred singularity without the genuine love; that the dis-
tinction between enthusiasm and zeal is not the energy, but the direc-
tion, of the principle. This wisdom will be profitable for Christian
humility and consistency.
After all, however, the most profound human wisdom may be out-
witted. (2 Sam. xvii. 14.) Prudence without faith, will come to nought.§
True wisdom handles the matter in self-distrusting dependence. (Chap.
iii. 5, 6.) Eliezer's discreet handling was in the spirit of faith. In the
same spirit did Jacob conduct his prudential defence against his
brother. (Gen. xxxii. xxxiii.) Esther wisely handled her delicate
matter; using a fast to call upon God, and a feast to obtain favour
* Gen. xli. 25-44. Hence the removal of wise men is a national judgment. lsa. iii. l, 2.
Comp. also Chap. xiii. 16, xvii. 2, xix. 8.
† SCOTT in loco.
‡ Acts, vi. 1-7. Similar good result was obtained in the wise handling of the difficult
matter of circumcision. Ib, xv.
§ Isa. xxii. 5-11, Comp. 2 Kings, xviii. 13-17, Man at his best estate vanity, Verses 5, 6.
240 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
with the King.'* This is in all cares true wisdom--to make man the
excitement to diligence; God the object of trust.
And where, as in this practical trust, shall we find so Divine, so
simple, a recipe of happiness? Never did God intend to create our
happiness out of our own resources. To feel that we know nothing,
that we can do nothing, contrive nothing; then to look up to him,
our supreme Good, and to trust him as our only Friend--when was
such reliance and expectation ever disappointed? We feel that we,
and all that we have, are in his hands. This is our peaceful security.
'I have had many things'--said Luther--'in my hands, and I have
lost them all. But whatever I have been able to place in God's, I still
possess.'† In this quiet confidence we have nothing more to do with
ourselves. A thousand perplexing thoughts are scattered to the winds.
God now takes the place once filled by most unquiet agitations. The
soul is fixed in God. He reigns over all with an all-seeing eye, and an
all-moving hand. The eye of faith pierces through the darkest cloud
and reads God's thoughts of peace and love. All the world cannot rob
us of one word of God, Providence may seem to oppose his promises.
But there is more reality in the least promise of God, than in the
greatest performance of man. 'I will therefore ever trust him on his
bare word; with hope, beside hope, above hope, against hope, for small
matters of this life. For how shall I hope to trust him in impos-
sibilities, if I may not in likelihoods?'‡ This simple habit of faith
enables us fearlessly to look an extremity in the face. Thus holding
on, it is his honour to put his own seal to his word--whoso trusteth in
the Lord, happy is he. (Ps. ii. 12. Jer. xvii. 7,8.)
21. The wise in heart shall be called prudent; and the sweetness of the
lips increaseth learning.
The heart is the proper seat of wisdom.1 There "it dwells with
prudence."2 Their combined exercise is essential to the completeness
of a Christian profession. Intellectual wisdom without a prudential
application tends to no practical end. The pervading want of prudence
gives needless offence to the gospel, and destroys influential weight of
character. Often also do spiritual affections run to waste for want of
prudent direction or discipline. Moral habits from this defect become
either morbid or hardened. There is either a superstitious scrupulous-
ness, or a reckless indifference; sometimes conscience about every-
thing, sometimes about nothing. Prudent wisdom gives consistency to
* Esth. iv. 16; v. 5; vii, 1-7. Bishop REYNOLDS on Hos, xiv 3,
† D'AUBIGNE'S History of the Reformation Book xiv. chap. vi.
‡ Bishop HALL'S Works viii, S
1 Chap. ii. 10; x, 8. 2 Chap, viii. 12. Hos. xiv. 9.
CHAP. XVI. 22. 241
the whole system. The eye directs the foot, and we walk safely upon
firm ground. 'Bright and sparkling parts are like diamonds, which
may adorn the proprietor, but are not necessary for the flood of the
world. Whereas common sense' (substantially identified with prudent
wisdom) 'is like current coin. We have every day in the ordinary
occurrences of life occasion for it. And if we would but call it into
action it would carry us much greater lengths than we seem to be
aware of.'*
These internal qualities gain increasing acceptance from external
gifts. "When we are enriched with all utterance, as well as with all
knowledge" (1 Cor. i. 5); when we are enabled to clothe our thoughts
in a flowing style and clear expression; this doubtless gives a great
advantage in communicating knowledge. (Eccles. xii. 10, 11.) The
sweetness of the lips increaseth learning! Ambrose's mellifluous eloquence
arrested and gradually brought conviction to Augustine's mind.†Yet
much more does this advantage belong to 'the sweet words of consola-
tion, which come forth of a godly trust.'‡ Wisdom is in the heart, as
in a treasury; and "out of the abundance of the heart the mouth
speaketh."1 When therefore "the heart is inditing a good matter,
speaking of the things touching the King; the tongue, "like the
Apostle's2--without any adventitious attractiveness, is "the pen of a
ready,vriter."3 And when without measure "grace was poured upon
the lips"4 of the King himself what wonder that he should have con-
strained the admiration,5 and fixed the attention,6 of his hearers! How
inestimable the privilege of his true disciples to sit at his feet, increasing
learning from the sweetness of his lips!
22. Understanding is a well-spring of life unto him that hath it: but the
instruction of fools is folly.
A religion of notions--what is it? A dreaming theory! All is
death. There is no pulse in the affections, no motion in the heart.
But when the understanding is enlightened, to apprehend spiritual
things in their spiritual glory, notions become principles. Feelings
flow from light, and are filled with life. The Book of God shines forth
with new glory. Every verse is a sunbeam. Every promise is
irradiated with Divine love. What before was unmeaning sound
becomes now "spirit and life." (John, vi. 63.) This spiritual under-
standing is indeed a well-spring of life (lb. iv. 14; vii. 38), not a work
on the surface; not a mere forced impulse; not the summer stream,
but a deep-flowing fountain. (Chap. xviii. 4.) If it be not always
bubbling, there is always a supply at the bottom-spring.
1 Matt. xii. 34. Comp. verse 23; also Ecclus. xl. 21. 2 1 Cor. ii. 1-4. 3 Ps. xlv. 1.
4 Ib. verse 2. 5 Matt. vii, 28. Luke, iv. 22. John, vii 46. 6 Luke, xix. 48.
* SEED'S Sermons † Confess. Lib. v. c. 13, 14. ‡ Reformers' Notes.
242 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
But the contrast leads us to speak of this well-spring, as not only
refreshing to him that hath it, but a blessing to all around him. And
indeed every Christian will feel the responsibility of fertilizing his
sphere, be it narrow or wide. The fountain in the Apostle's heart,
filled with knowledge and spiritual understanding, "communicated a
widely-extended blessing. (Acts, xiv. 21, 22;) Let the meanest member
of the Church attend to the valuable advice of one of the Ancients;
and 'by the daily reading of the Scriptures pour oil into his faculties,
and prepare the lamp of his mind; so that, according to the precept of
the gospel, it may give light to all that are in the house.'*
Yet the stream cannot rise above its level. It must be only as the
fountain. What then but folly can be the instruction of fools?1 Such
in the fullest sense was the whole system of Heathenism;2 the instruction
of its dark philosophy;3 and the creed of the sensual Epicureans.4
Justly did our Lord stamp with his rebuke the senseless instruction of
the Scribes and Pharisees.5 What else could it be, but "the blind
leading the blind, and both falling into the ditch?"6
Christian professor! ponder--Unless thy understanding be filled
with heavenly light, it will be a poisoned fountain, not a well-spring of
life. What if thy understanding be clear, and thy heart be dark; if
thou be learned in the truth of Christ, yet not "taught by him, as the
truth is in Jesus" (Eph. iv. 20, 21); if like Balaam, thou be sound in
theology, yet damned in sin! (Num. xxxiii. 19-23. 2 Pet. ii. 15.) 'Let
us not think much of ourselves'--says the excellent Bishop Reynolds
though God should have adorned us with the most splendid natural
gifts; with quickness of understanding, almost like that of angels;
unless at the same time he adds to all the gift of his spiritual grace,
by which we may attain to a knowledge and delight in the heavenly
mystery.'†
23. The heart of the wise teacheth his mouth, and addeth learning
to his lips.
The well-spring of life, however silently it may flow, cannot be con-
cealed. The weighty instruction, pouring out from a Divinely-
instructed heart, shews the heavenly source, from whence the well-spring
is supplied. While the "talk of the lips impoverishes" (Chap. xiv.
23), the teaching of the heart addeth learning. Who does not know the
difference between one, who speaks of what he has read or heard, and
one who speaks of what he has felt and tasted? The one has the
1 Chap. xv. 2. 2 Isa. xliv. 9-20. Jer. x. 1-8. 3 Rom. i. 21-25. 1 Cor. i. 19, 20.
4 1 Cor. xv. 82. 5 Matt. xxiii. 16-26. 6 Ib. xv. 14.
* Theophilus of Alexandria, quoted by Nicholls.
† Animalis Homo--an admirable Sermon preached before the University of Oxford.
Works, p. 822.
CHAP. XVI. 28. 243
knowledge of the gospel--dry and spiritless. The other has "the
savour of this knowledge" (2 Cor. ii. 14)--fragrant and invigorating.
The theorist may exceed in the quantum (for Satan-as an angel of
light--is a fearful proof, how much knowledge may be consistent with
ungodliness;) but the real difference applies, not to the extent, but to
the character, of knowledge; not to the matter known, but to the mode
of knowing it. 'Unbelievers'--as Dr. Owen admirably observes--
may know more of God, than many believers; but they know nothing
as they ought; nothing in a right manner; nothing with an holy and
heavenly light. The excellency of a believer is, not that he hath a
large apprehension of things; but that what he doth apprehend (which
perhaps may be very little) he sees it in the light of the Spirit of God,
in a saving, soul-transforming light. And this is that, which gives us
communion with God.'* It is not therefore the intellectual knowledge
of Divine truth that makes the Divine. The only true Divine is he,
who knows holy things in a holy manner; because he only is gifted
with a spiritual taste and relish for them. His apprehensions therefore
are manifestly of God. His object has a real existence. Without any
theological aid, he comes to the enjoyment of "all the riches of the full
assurance of understanding" (Col. ii. 2); to a clearer certainty of the
truth, than by the most demonstrable theorism. (1 John, ii. 27; v.20.)
And this experimental theology gives a rich unction to his com-
munications. Divinity is not said by rote. The heart teacheth the
mouth.
Take as an illustration the doctrine of the Trinity--that mystery,
of which every letter is mysterious. The disputant of the schools, in
attempting to expound it, only "darkens counsel by words without
knowledge." (Job, xxxviii. 2.) The heart of the wise--heaven--taught
--realizes the indwelling of the three sacred persons in undivided
essence; and every act of prayer is through God--by God--to God.
(Eph. ii. 18.) Conscious weakness needs Divine breath. Conscious
guilt trusts in Divine advocacy. The heart, thus taught in the school
of experience, expounds the doctrine in simplicity, and addeth learning
to the lips. How much better is faith understood in the practical
exercise than in the accurate definition! He who lives most simply
"a life of faith on the Son of God" (Gal. ii. 20. 1 John, v. 10) will
explain most clearly its office and influence. Contrast also proud
reasoning man replying to the Sovereignty of God, with the heart
humbled, and teaching the mouth the adoration of wonder and praise.
(Rom. ix. 19, 20; xi. 33.)
This heart-teaching gives the Minister "the tongue of the learned"
for the refreshment of the weary soul, when he "declares," not only
"what he has seen and heard" (Isa. 1. 4, with 2 Cor. i. 4), but "what
* On the Mortification of Sin in Believers, Chap. xii.
244 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
his hands have handled of the Word of life." (1 John, i. 1-3.) He then
speaks, not only the message of God, but from the mouth of God; and
his "gospel comes not in word only, but in power, and in the Holy
Ghost, and in much assurance." (1 Thess. i. 5.)
In fine--man's religion begins, with the head; God's with the
heart. "Out of the heart are the issues of life." (Chap. iv. 23.) Let me
be careful, in what atmosphere, under what teaching I live. The vivid
theory brings me into the icy zone: cold, and clear and cold.* The
experimental application realizes the glow of evangelical light and
warmth. Let me look mainly, not to intellectual or theological attain-
ments, but to heavenly teaching. Let me seek that my heart be first
taught. Then let it teach my mouth, and add learning to my lips for the
praise of my God, and the edifying of his Church.
24. Pleasant words are as honeycomb: sweet to the soul, and health to
the bones.
The sweets of pleasure are not always health. (Chap. v. 3-5.) The
honeycomb combines both. Description may give a fancied notion of it.
But the taste affords the only true apprehension. Such is the mysterious
delight and refreshment conveyed to us in pleasant words. When they
are words of counsel, sympathy, or encouragement, they are medicinal
also; not only sweet to the soul, but health to the bones. Much more are
the pleasant words of God both sweet and wholesome. The professor
may enjoy a passing sweetness in them.1 But it is only "the drinking
in of them,"that realizes their solid pleasure,2 "sweeter than honey or the
honeycomb"3 We go on our way, like Samson, eating our honeycomb;4
like Jonathan, revived.5 We take the Lord's words to the throne of
grace; and, pleading them humbly and thankfully, most pleasant are
they to our taste. Yea, so overwhelming often is their richness, that
we can only ask, as concerning the manna--"What is it ?"6 Not less
healthful are they than pleasant; invigorating to our inner principles,
the strength--the bones--so to speak--of our spiritual system. (Chap.
iii. 8; iv. 22.)
The like pleasure and health flow from the words of man in the
things of God.7 How did "David and Jonathan in the wood strengthen
each other's hands in God!"8 How was the Eunuch cheered by Philip's
exposition of the precious Scripture!9 What health did Paul's most
1 Ezek. xxxiii. 32. Matt. xiii. 20. Heb. vi. 4, 5. 2 Heb. vi. 7.
3 Ps xix. 10. Comp. cxix. 103. 4 Judg. xiv. 8, 9. 5 1 Sam. xiv. 27.
6 Exod. xvi. 15, marg. 7 Verses 21, 23; xv. 23; xxvii. 9. 8 1 Sam. xxiii. 16.
9 Acts, viii. 35-39.
* ‘Going over the theory of virtue in one's thoughts, talking well, and drawing fine
pictures about it, this is so far from necessarily or certainly conducing to form the habit
of it in him, who thus employs himself, that it, may harden the mind in a contrary course,
and form an habit of insensibility to all moral considerations.' Such is the weighty and
solemn warning of Bishop Butler, Analogy, part i. chap. v.
CHAP. XVI. 25. 245
pleasant words pour into the heart of the desponding jailor!1 And
how was his own spirit received by the meeting at Appii Forum;2 as
the disciples had been refreshed by the converse of their Divine Master
on the walk to Emmaus!3 When he is the subject, and his Spirit the
teacher, pleasant indeed will be the words of Christian communion beyond
any earthly enjoyment.
25. There is a way that seemeth right unto a man: but the end thereof are
the ways of death.
Again we have this solemn, searching caution. For so fearful is
the danger of self-delusion, that we are only safe by warning upon
warning. (Philip. iii. 1.) Not defect of understanding, but love of sin
is the cause. (John, iii. 19.) The judgment is perverted, because the
heart is blinded.4 It is no proof that a way is right, because it seemeth
right.5 "All the ways of a man are right in his own eyes;"6 yet the
end thereof are the ways of death. The way of disobedience seems to be
necessary; or it is only a small deviation; yet was it punished as
"witchcraft and idolatry."7 The way of deceit seems to be right; an
easy way of escaping difficulty;8 or obtaining some present advantage.9
"But a lying tongue is but for a moment;"10 and the unrepenting liar
finds his "part in the lake, that burneth with fire and brimstone." (Rev.
xxi. 8.) The Pharisee is dazzled with his own goodness. All his
religion is in externals; sufficient ground for his own acceptance with
God.11 He has compounded for the internal work, to add to the pomp
of the heartless ceremonial. He brings to God the formal duty, which
he abhors,12 and he refuses the spiritual service, which he demands.13
Yet his way seems to be right. But his countenance is hated,14 his
prayer is cast out;15 his goodness is an abomination.16 The orthodox
professor takes up his opinion, and puts on appearances, only to keep
the Spirit out of the heart, and to quiet his conscience, without coming
to the true point. Yet his way--with so much doing in religion--
seemeth right unto him. Often there is considerable working of natural
feeling. Joy is mistaken for faith, till the scorching sun has withered
it away. (Matt. xiii. 20, 21.) Alarm is mistaken for penitence; better
indeed than total indifference; yet proving itself to be only a fit.
selfish terror, passing away with the apparent danger. (Ps. lxxviii.
33-37.) Yet thus "he feedeth upon the ashes" of his own delusion,
1 Acts, xvi, 27, 34. 2 Ib. xxviii. 15. 3 Luke, xxiv. 32.
4 Isa v. 20. Eph. iv. 18. 5 Chap. xii. 26. John, xvi. 2. Acts, xxvi. 9.
6 Verse 2; xii. 15. 7 1 Sam. xv. 20-23. 8 Ib. XXI. 2.
9 2 Kings. v. 22. 10 Chap. xii. 19.
11 Chap. xxx. 12, with Rom. ix. 33. Luke, xviii. 11, 12. 12 Isa. i 10-14.
13 Matt. xv. 7-9. 14 Verse 5; chap. vi 16, l7. 15 Luke, xviii. 14.
16 Isa. lxv. 5. Luke, xvi 15.
246 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
grave; yea--even to the presence of his God, when heaven shut, and
hell opened, shew him the truth too late.1 Madness indeed is it to dream
of heaven, when every step is the way of hell. The end tests the safety
of the path. Hence it is the enemy's grand design to shut it out of
view, that he may make his way seem to be right. The ways of death are
many. The way of life is but One--"I am the way; no man cometh
to the Father, but by me." (John, xiv. 6.) Oh! the transcendent mercy
of the eyes opened to see the awful danger of our own way, and our
ears opened to hear the voice behind us, saying--"This is the way;
walk ye in it!" (Isa. xxx. 21. Jer. vi. 16.)
26. He that laboureth, laboureth for himself; for his mouth craveth it of
him.
A state of labour is the penal appointment of God. (Gen. iii. 19.)
It is the law of God in his Church, so that those who are no workers;
are counted "disorderly workers." (1 Thess. iv. 11.) Yet is mercy
mingled with this curse. What if there were no obligation to labour?
"Every imagination of the heart" (Gen. vi. 5)--unmingled, unceasing
"evil"--would, for want of other occupation, be left to its own undis-
turbed energy. Wise then and gracious is the decree--Rest in heaven;
labour on earth. This is the necessary condition of the great mass of
mankind. Their mouth craveth it of them (Eccles. vi. 7), eager as a
suppliant to receive the needful food. This is labouring for ourselves.
The harvest is our rich recompence. Only take care, that we labour
not for vanity,2 or for" evil covetousness."3 This is working our own
ruin.4
But even where we are exempt from bodily toils, the wide-spreading
progress of knowledge fills up daily life with wearisome mental occupa-
tion; which, under Christian discipline, brings its own reward, so that
he that laboureth, laboureth for himself. Barrow severely handles the
popular notion--'What is a gentleman, but his pleasure? If this be
true,'--he remarks--'if a gentleman be nothing else but this; then
surely, he is a sad piece, the most despicable, the most pitiable and
wretched creature in the world. But'--he adds--'in truth it is far
otherwise. To suppose that a gentleman is loose from business, is a
great mistake. For indeed no man hath more to do; no man lieth
under greater obligations to industry than he.'*
And yet all toil, whether bodily or mental, is an evil, if it prevents
concentration of interest on the only satisfying object of labour. This
--need we state it?--is "not for the meat which perisheth, but for
1 Matt. vii. 22, 23; xxii. 11-13; xxv. 10-12.
2 Chap. xxiii. 4, 5. lsa. xlvii. 12, 13. Hab. ii. 13. 3 Hab. ii. 9. Isa.. V. 8.
4 Chap. xxviii. 22. 1 Tim. vi. 9, 10.
* Sermon on Industry in our particular Calling as Gentlemen
CHAP. XVI. 27-30. 247
that which endureth unto everlasting life." (John, vi. 27.) Ponder the
certain harvest--"The Son of man will give it." Look over the field
of labour--the gospel of his grace. Every promise is there to meet
thee, to wait on thee, to "perform all things for thee" (Ps. lvii. 2);
and yet of what avail, if thou dost not apply, and take it to thyself?
Happy indeed for us, when the spiritual appetite is created; and our
mouth craveth this labour of us for satisfaction. All other objects find
their place, when the primary object is rightly determined. We do
not annihilate our interests in this world, which has its due claims, and
will make them good. Our hands and our time are given to the world;
our hearts to God. Our activity is in our calling; our affections above
it. This is in the highest sense labouring for ourselves--for our best,
our most enduring good. All is centered in God. Indeed without him
our life is, cast away. Whatever be its momentary enjoyments, it is
all a gloomy world of emptiness and vanity. Most truly does the
Christian's heart respond to Augustine's confessions 'All other plenty
besides my God is mere beggary to me.'*
27. An ungodly man (a man of Belial, marg.) diggeth up evil: and in his
lips there is as a burning fire. 28. A froward man soweth strife; and
a whisperer separateth chief friends. 29. A violent man enticeth his
neighbour, and leadeth him into the way that is not good. 30. He
shutteth his eyes, to devise froward things: moving his lips, he bringeth
evil to pass.
The man of Belial laboureth hard; but not for himself "certainly not
for his own good. Yet his labour presents a vivid picture indeed of
the energy of sin. He has broken away every yoke of restraint.
Every member of his body, every power of his mind, is "a servant
of iniquity unto iniquity." (Rom. vi. 19.) May we not learn from him
in humiliation the true standard of concentration of mind, singleness of
object, diligence, delight, and perseverance? His pleasure is to dig up
evil; pursuing his evil projects with intense activity,† as if he was
"searching for hid treasure." The tongue is usually the chief instru-
ment of mischief. In what black colour has the Divine pen set out
this vile criminal--a burning fire--"a world of iniquity, set on fire of
hell!"‡ And as he diggeth, so he soweth, evil-seed that comes up
only with a blast. Strife he soweth in every furrow (Chap. xv. 18);
* Confess. Lib. Xiii. C. 8.
† Ps. vii. 14, 15; Saul, I Sam. xviii. 21, 22; Ahab, 1 Kings, xviii. 10; Jeremiah's
enemies, xviii. 18; the chief priests seeking false witnesses against our Lord. Matt.
xxvi. 59.
‡ Jam. ill. 6-8. Ps. Iii. 1-4; lvii. 4. 'His tongue is a burning firebrand, to set all the
world ill combustion.'--Bishop HALL. The LXX Version is very strong--'The perverse
carrieth perdition on his own mouth. The foolish man diggeth up evil to himself; he
treasureth up fire on his own lips.'
248 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
jealousies among nations,1 war between the Sovereign and his people,2
divisions among Churches,3 coldness between Ministers and their
flocks,4 ill-will among friends5--a spirit eminently hateful to God.
(Chap. vi. 16, 19.) Where open contentions might not work, whisper-
ings,* "evil-surmisings," idle and slanderous reports are employed to
separate even chief friends. (Chap. vi. 14; xviii. 8.)
Truly he is a man of mischief. If he deals not in direct falsehoods,
his dark whispers are plain enough to be understood, and sure to be
exaggerated. The well-meant word or act may be misinterpreted.
He has seen or heard probably only a little. He guesses at the rest to
make his story complete. And thus by this report, half true and half
false, he plays with his neighbour's name to his incalculable injury.
No wonder, that this mischievous gossiper should be classed with "the
thief and murderer." (1 Pet. iv. 15.) For the man, who thus loosens
the closest ties, and breaks up the peace of whole families, sins against
those commandments, which charge crime upon the thoughts, the word,
the principle, as well as the outward act. (Matt. v. 21, 22.) Again, we
find him in his father's native work--a tempter--a violent man indeed;
but combining with loud and overbearing speech enticements for his
neighbour, to lead the unwary into the way that is not good.6 His whole
soul is filled with this Satanic object. Sometimes we may see him
shutting his eyes from outward distractions; moving his lips, as if engaged
in deep thought to bring evil to pass;7 all 'expressing the profound
study, with which he contrives his neighbour's ruin!'†
Such is the heavy service of the most cruel Master! He wears out
both the minds and bodies of his slaves, and gives them at the end only
the fearful wages of eternal death.8 If the way to heaven be narrow,
is not "the way of transgressors hard?"9 Is there not more toil in
the way to hell; and that--without one beaming hope of the cheering
home, one staff of the heavenly promise, that upholds the servants of
God in all their weariness and trial? "Gather not my soul with
sinners, in whose hands are mischief," and where "destruction and
misery are in their paths." (Ps. xxvi. 9, 10. Rom. iii. 16.)
31. The hoary head is a crown of glory, if it be found in the way of
righteousness.
The hoary head is the old man's glory (Chap. xx. 29), and claim for
1 2 Sam. x. 3. 2 Ib. xx. 1. 3 1 Cor. i. 11, 12; iii. 3.
4 Ib. iv. 8. 2 Cor. xii. 15. Gal. iv. 16. 5 2 Sam. xvi. 3.
6 Chap. i. 11-14; iv: 16, 17. Acts, xx. 30. 2 Pet. ii. 1, 2. 7 Chap. vi. 12-14; x.l0.
8 Rom. vi. 23. 9 Matt. vii 14, with Chap. xiii. 15.
* 1 Sam. xxiv. 9. Ps. xxxv. 15. 2 Cor. xii. 20. This sin is numbered in the black
catalogue of Heathen abominations. Rom. i. 29. Comp. Ecclus. xxviii. 13.
† Bishop Patrick--'A furnace of mischief'-is the addition of LXX. Comp. Isa.
xxxii. 6, 7.
CHAP. XVI. 31. 249
reverence.1 God solemnly links the honour of it with his own fear.*
“The ancient" are numbered with "the honourable." (Isa. ix.15.) The
sin of despising them is marked (Ib. iii. 5), and, when shewn towards
his own prophet, was awfully punished.2 Wisdom and experience may
justly be supposed to belong to them.3 and the contempt of this wisdom
was the destruction of a kingdom.4
But the diamond in the crown is, when it is found in the way of right-
eousness. Even an Heathen Monarch did homage to it (Gen. xlvii.
7-10); an ungodly nation and King paid to it the deepest respect.†
The Fathers of the Old and New Testament reflected its glory. The one
died in waiting faith in the Lord's salvation. The other was as ready to
"depart in peace" in the joyous sight of it.5 "Zacharias and Elizabeth
walked in all the ordinances of the Lord blameless;"6 Anna--“a
widow indeed" in the faith and hope of the Gospel;7 Polycarp, with
his fourscore and six years in his Master's service.‡ --Crowns of glory
were their hoary heads shining with all the splendour of royalty.
Earnestly does the holy Psalmist plead this crown for usefulness to
the Church (Ps. lxxi. 18); the Apostle, for tile cause of his converted
slave. (Philem. 9:) And who more honourable than those, who, having
been "planted" in youth within the courts of the Lord, grow up to
"bring forth fruit In old age," manifesting the glory of the Lord's
faithfulness and love? (Ps. xcii. 13-15.) Truly is an old man's
'diadem that, which not the art of man, but the kingdom of God, hath
fashioned and set on his head.'§ And is not the earthly glory brightened
by its nearness to the unfading, everlasting crown?
But separate the heavenly virtue from the hoary head. "The crown,
is fallen." It lies dishonoured in the dust. For, what is a more lament-
able spectacle, than a graceless old man, only gaining by his score of
years a proportionate share of guilt? Time is no empty duration. It
is filled up with talents for eternity, a field for their exercise, helps for
their improvement, and account for their neglect or abuse. The white
hairs of ungodliness bespeak ripeness for wrath “wrath treasured up"
with every day's uninterrupted increase "against the day of wrath."
(Rom. ii. 5.) "The Sinner being an hundred years old shall be accursed."||
1 Chap. xxiii. 22. 2 Sam. xix. 32, 39. 2 2 Kings, ii. 23, 24.
3 Job, xii. 12; xxxii. 4-7. 4 I Kings,. xii. 18-20. 5 Ib. xlix. 18. Luke, ii. 28, 29.
6 Luke, i. 6. 7 Ib. ii. 36, 37.
* Lev. xix. 32. The Roman satirist intimates, that the neglect of "rising up before the
hoary head" was punishable with death,.-JUVEN. Satire, 13, 54-56. The reverence paid by
Lacedaemonians to the hoary head is well known. They probably borrowed this law
from the Egyptians, who inculcated this respect to its full extent. HEROD. Lib. ii. c. 26.
Comp. also OVID, Fasti, v. 57, 58. See a serious all dinstructive paper in the Rambler, No. 50.
† Samuel, 1 Samuel xxv. 1. Elisha, 2 Kings, xiii. 14. Jehoiada, 2 Chron. XXIV. 15, 16.
‡ EUSEB. Lib. IV. c. 15. MILNER'S Church History, i. p. 16.
§ Muffet in loco.
|| Isa. lxv. 20. 'There is not on earth a more venerable and delightful spectacle than
250 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
32. He that is slow to anger is better than the mighty; and he that ruleth
his spirit than he that taketh a city.
A great conflict and a glorious victory are here set out; a conflict
not in notion, but in action; hidden from the mighty ones of the earth:
known only to those, who having enlisted under the baptismal banner,
are 'manfully fighting'* against their spiritual enemies. The heart is
the field of battle. All its evil and powerful passions are deadly foes.
They must be met and triumphed over in the strength of God. Those
who are ignorant of God and of themselves make light of them. They
scarcely acknowledge them as such. Instead of being slow to anger,
under provocation, they think that they "do well to be angry." (Jonah,
iv.9.) It is a disgrace to put up with wrong. An hasty temper is an
infirmity. They are hardly responsible for it. Nay--the indulgence
is a relief, and they hope to cool down in time, utterly unconscious of
any sin against God. Thus, instead of having rule over their spirit, they
are captives, not conquerors.
But can a Christian do so?--he who hath "yielded himself unto
God, as one that is alive from the dead?" (Rom. vi. 13.) "How shall
we, that are dead to sin, live any longer therein?" (lb. verse 2.) Must
we not vigorously "keep under the body, and bring it into subjection"
(1 Cor. ix. 27); especially that "little member," which is such a mighty
instrument of evil? To bridle the tongue, so as to check the expression
of passion, or "speaking unadvisedly with our lips"--is a victory
(Jam. iii. 2), that can only be achieved by Almighty strength. The
pains and cost of the conflict are beyond human calculation. But the
victory compensates for all.
The glory of this victory is indeed far above the mighty. The taking
of a city is child's play, compared with this "wrestling with flesh and
blood." That is only the battle of a day. This, the weary, unceasing
conflict of a life. There, the enemy might be mastered with a single
blow. Here, he is to be chained up, and kept down with unremitting
perseverance. The magnifying of the conflict exalts the glory of the
that of an aged pilgrim walking with God; and a more affecting and deeply melancholy
sight can hardly, on the contrary, be imagined, than that of a hoary-headed sinner, who
has lived his fourscore years “without God in the world,”—all that time God calling and
he refusing, and the Almighty “angry with him every day:” his body now bowed down
beneath the wight of years; all his powers of action and of enjoyment decaying; every
hour likely to be his last; time all behind him, and eternity all before him; and his soul
still “dead in trespasses and sins;” the hour of his departure come, and no readiness for
the world to which he is bound. O! with what opposite emotions do we contemplate old
age in this character, and in the saint of God; who in approaching the close of his earthly
pilgrimage is drawing near to what has been the goal of his hopes and desires; who, while
outwardly decaying, is inwardly maturing for heaven; in whom every symptom of coming
death is but a symptom of approaching life; and who, in the final exhaustion of nature,
bids adieu to the world in the words of aged Simeon—“Lord, now lettest thou thy servant
depart in peace, for mine eyes have seen thy salvation.”'—WARDLAW, on Eccles. xii.7.
* Baptismal Service
CHAP. XVI. 32. 251
triumph. Gideon's rule over his spirit was better than his victory over
the Midianites. (Judg. viii. 1-3.) David's similar conquest was better,
than could have been the spoils of Nabal's house. (1 Sam. xxv. 33.) Not
less glorious was that decisive and conscious mastery over his spirit,
when he refused to drink the water of Bethlehem, obtained at the hazard
of his bravest men; thus condemning the inordinate appetite, that had
desired the refreshment at so unreasonable a cost? (2 Sam. xxiii. 17.)
On the contrary, the renowned conqueror of the East lived and died a
miserable slave. He lost more honour at home, than he gained by his
conquests abroad; famous in war, but shamefully degraded by a brutish
foe.* Though valour is commendable, as a natural gift of God (Judg.
vi. 12); yet ‘to be our own master, is far more glorious for us, than if
we were the masters of the world.'† Among all my conquests'— said
the dying emperor Valentinian—'there is but one that now comforts
me. I have overcome my worst enemy—my own haughty heart.'
This then is to subdue an enemy, that has vanquished conquerors--
This surely is to be "more than conquerors." Christian! never forget
the source of victory—"Through him that loved us." (Rom. viii. 37.)
This recollection brings us to the true point. Keep close to the
glorious standard of an Almighty, most loving Saviour. Never is
victory severed from it. Trials may be appointed, yet only to discipline
for triumph; to draw us from our fancied, to our real strength.
Often does the Christian soldier win the day, even when he has
been wounded in the fight. Yet think not the war is ended, because a
battle is won. No quarter can be given, no truce allowed on either
side. The enemy may have been stabbed at the heart; yet will he get
up, and renew the fight. Thou must walk--yea--sleep—in thine
armour. It must be worn, not laid up. There is "no discharge from
this war," till thy body of sin and death is laid in the grave. Meanwhile
victory is declared, before the conflict begins. Let every day then be
a day of triumph. The promises are to present victory.‡ With such
stirring, stimulating hopes, thou shalt surely have rule, if thou wilt but
dare to have it. And if thou hast not courage enough to be a Christian,
thou must be a slave for life to the hardest of task-masters.
This bloodless victory, so contrary to the turmoil of war (Isa. ix. 5),
is the crown of Christian grace. (Rom. xii. 19.) No other grace of the
gospel can be exercised without its influence, Yet the daily conquest
* ‘So old and no older'--wrote Philip Henry in his Diary, when he had completed his
thirtieth year—'Alexander was, when he conquered the great world: but I have not yet
subdued the little world—myself.' ‘Thou art a slave of slaves'--said the proud Philo-
sopher (Diogenes) to this mighty conqueror—‘for thou art a slave to those appetites, over
which I rule.' The complaint of the Czar Peter—‘I can govern my people, but how can I
govern myself?'—was a practical acknowledgment of the difficulty: ‘Quem magis admira-
beris, quam qui imperat sibi; quam qui se habet in potestate!' SENECA De Benef. 7.
† Lawson in loco.
‡ Rev. ii. 7; &c. iii. Him that overcometh.
252 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
anticipates the final victory, the spoils of which will be reaped through-
out eternity.*
33. The lot is east, into the lap; but the whole disposing thereof is of the
Lord.
The lot cast into the lap, or into the bottom of an urn,† often deter-
mined important matters. Officers were thus chosen;1 work deter-
mined;2 dwellings fixed;3 discoveries made;4 contentions caused to
cease:5 Yet the Lord's disposal was manifestly shewn. Canaan was
thus divided, so as to accord fully with Jacob's prophecies.6 The
offender was brought to justice.7 What could be more beyond human
direction? Yet what more entirely under the Divine disposal? No
one doubted the decision. Saul was acknowledged to be King,8
Matthias was numbered among the Apostles9--without disputing.
Even when cast profanely or superstitiously, the same Sovereignty
overruled. Haman's lot was so disposed, as wholly to overthrow his
exterminative project; giving full time for the deliverance of his
victims,10 The soldier's lot was the direct fulfilment of a prophecy,
that could not otherwise have been accomplished.11 The Heathen
sailors cast it in ignorance; yet was it the Divine discovery of the
guilty criminal. (Jonah, i. 7.) Heathen divinations were controuled by
the same absolute power. (Ezek. xxi. 21, 22.)
The lot is however a solemn matter, not to be lightly cast. (Acts, i.
24-26.) It is an acknowledgment of absolute Sovereignty; giving up
our personal responsibility, and virtually appealing to an Omniscient,
1 1 Chron. xxiv. 5. 2 Luke, i. 9. 3 Neh..xi. 1.
4 1 Sam. xiv. 41. 5 Chap. xviii. 18. 6 Num.xxvi. 55. josh. xviii. 8.
7 Josh. vii. 16. 8 1 Sam. x. 20-24. 9 Acts, i. 26.
10 Esth. iii. 7; ix. 1, 2. 11 John, xix. 24, with Ps. xxii. 18.
* Many striking sentiments from Heathen Ethics might illustrate this aphorism. Cato
the elder (in Plutarch) declared him to be the best and most praiseworthy general, who
had rule over his own passious. Livy brings in Scipio speaking to his friend—.'The danger
of our age—believe me—is not so much from armed men, as from the pleasures scattered
all around us. He that has disciplined them by his own temperance, has obtained to him-
self much honour and a greater victory, than we had in the conquest of Syphax.'—Lib.
xxx. c. xv. 'In all ages fewer men are found, who conquer their own lusts, than that
conquer an army of enemies.'—CICER. Ep. Lib. xv. Ep. 4. Thus Seneca writes to a friend
---‘If you wish to subject all things to yourself, subject yourself to reason. You will rule
many, if reason ruleth you.'
Latius regnes avidum domando
Spiritum, quam si Libyam remotis
Gadibus jungas, et uterque Poenus
Serviat uni.. Holt. Od. Lib. ii. Od. 2.
Alas ! that this should be all fine barren sentiment, not Christian principle !
Video meliora, proboque:
Deteriora sequor. Medea in OVID. Metam. vii.
† Parkhurst translates the word to mean the bottom or midst of an urn or vessel, into
which the lots were cast.
CHAP. XVI. 33. 253
Omnipresent, Omnipotent God. It teaches us, that things that we
conceive to be accident are really under Providence. ‘What is chance
to man is the appointment of God.'* The lot, cast 'at peradventure,
carrying a show of casualty,†--is under a certain disposal. Yet admitting
it to be a Scriptural ordinance, its expediency under our more full light
is more than doubtful. "We have" at least "a more sure word of
prophecy, whereunto we do well that we take heed, as unto a light that
shineth in a dark place." (2 Pet. i. 19.) The book of God is given us
expressly as "a lamp to our feet, and a light to our path." (Ps. cxix. 105.)
The rule is more clear in itself, and linked with a most encouraging
promise—"In all thy ways acknowledge him, and he shall direct thy
paths." (Chap. iii. 6.) It is.far better to exercise faith, than indolently
to tamper with personal responsibility.
The instructive lesson to learn, is that there is no blank in the most
minute circumstances. Things, not only apparently contingent, but
depending upon a whole train of contingencies, are exactly fulfilled.
The name of a King (1 Kings, xiii. 2), or of a deliverer (Isa. xliv. 28),
is declared many hundred years before their existence--before therefore
it could be known to any—save the Omniscient Governor of the uni-
verse—whether such persons would exist. The falling of a hair or a
sparrow is directed, no less than the birth and death of Princes, or the
revolutions of empires. (Matt. x. 29, 30.) Everything is a wheel of
Providence. Who directed the Ishmaelites on their journey to Egypt
at the very moment, that Joseph was cast into the pit?‡ Who guided
Pharaoh's daughter to the stream, just when the ark, with its precious
deposit, was committed to the waters? (Exod. ii. 3-5.) What gave
Ahasuerus a sleepless night, that he might be amused with the records
of his kingdom? (Esth. vi. 1.) Who prepared the whale at the very
time and place, that Jonah's lot was cast? (Jonah, i. 17.) Who can
fail to see the hand of God, most wonderful in the most apparently
casual contingencies, overruling all second causes to fulfil his will,
while they work their own? ‘When kingdoms are tossed up and down
like a tennis-ball (Isa. xxii. 18); not one event can fly out of the
bounds of his Providence. The smallest are not below it. Not a
sparrow falls to the ground without it. Not a hair, but it is numbered
by it.'§
* Scott in loco. † Bishop Hall.
‡ Gen. xxxvii. 25. ‘The unparalleled story of Joseph'—as Dr. South remarks in his
striking Sermon on this text—' seems to be made up of nothing else but chances and little
contingencies, all tending to mighty ends.'
§ POLHILL on the Divine Will, p.159.
254 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
CHAPTER XVII.
1. Better is a dry morsel and quietness therewith, than a house full of
sacrifices with strife.
THE allusion is to the Jewish ordinance of feasting at home upon the
remains of the sacrifices.l A house full of sacrifices was therefore a house
of plentiful provision. Yet when the spirit of love does not rule, self
predominates, the fruitful source of strife and confusion. Well may the
Christian be content with his dry and quiet morsel, to be delivered from
such jarrings. ‘Holy love, found in a cottage,'* is better than the most
luxurious feast in the palaces of strife. (Chap, xv. 17.) The happiness
is not adding to our condition, but straitening our desires, and pro-
portioning them to our condition. The secret dew of the Lord's blessing
brings the rich gain of godly quietness (1 Tim. vi. 6). and contentment,
and provides a satisfied meal, and a well-furnished house in the poorest
dwelling.
The marriage-feast perhaps was comparatively a dry morsel. Yet
was this a feast of love better than the Pharisee's house, full of sacrifices
with strife.2 Would we then enjoy our temporal mercies? Welcome
the Saviour to them. Cherish his Spirit. Eye his glory in their enjoy-
ment. The scanty fare or the more abundant store will be alike blessed
with the token of his presence, and the seal of his everlasting love.
Ponder every thought that may quiet to contentment. If you have
not so many comforts as you had, or as you might have, or as others
less deserving enjoy; yet have you not far more than you deserve?
Might not a larger abundance have tempted you to forget God, and to
live for the world? Will not the remembrance of the earthly lot which
thy Saviour chose, turn every thought of discontent into the adoring
rapture of thankfulness and love? Such is the "great gain of godliness
with contentment."
2. A wise servant shall have rule over a son that causeth shame; and shall
have part of the inheritance among the brethren.
Folly naturally tends to shame; wisdom to honour. (Chap. iii. 35;
8.) The son, the heir of the family, may degrade himself by mis-
conduct, and, instead of being the glory of the house, cause shame. A
wise servant, though having only a temporary interest in the house
(John, viii. 35), may be promoted to rule over him. The Scripture path
recorded no literal instances of this interchange of place. But retribu-
tive Providence has ordained, that " the foolish shall be servant to the
wise in heart." (Chap. xi. 29.) The prodigal son, in. conscious shame,
1 Lev. vii. 16; min. 6. 1 Sam. ix. 24. 2 John, ii. 1-3, with Luke, vii 36-39; xi. 87, 38, 45, 53.
* Henry.
CHAP. XVII. 3. 255
was ready to take his place among the "hired servants." (Luke, xv. 19.)
The wise servant has however sometimes shared the inheritance among
the brethren. Jacob, by marrying Laban's daughter, was portioned with
the inheritance.1 Solomon's own servant probably thus verified this
proverb.2 Abraham also would have made his wise servant his heir, but
for the interposing mercy of God.3
Yet this promotion is a dangerous eminence. No one can bear
elevation safely without special grace and painful discipline.4 Great
wisdom, much prayer, and constant watchfulness, are needed to promote
humility and Christian consistency; as well as to silence the envy and
jealousy, which unexpected prosperity naturally excites. (Dan. vi. 3-5.)
Honour from man calls for abasement before God, and careful holiness
in adorning our profession.
3. The fining-pot is for silver, and the furnace for gold; but the Lord
trieth the hearts.
The refiner's fining pot and furnace try his metals. But Jehovah
claims to himself the prerogative of trying the hearts. (1 Kings, viii. 39.
Jer. xvii. 10.) His eyes are as a flame of fire. (Rev. i. 14.) Nothing
deceives him; nothing escapes his probing search. The gold must be
put into the furnace. So mixed is it with dross, that the workman's eye
can scarcely discover it. But for the furnace, the dross would cleave
inseparably. The refiner's process burns it out, and the pure metal is
left behind. No burnishing is of any avail. Till it has undergone the
fire, it is unfit for use. And must there not be a furnace for the child
of God? (Isa. xxxi. 9. Jer. ix. 7.) None of us know ourselves, until
"the fire has tried every man's work, of what sort it is." (1 Cor. iii. 13.)
We can but exclaim in witnessing the result--Lord! what is man!
the heart of man of the holiest saint thus proved—thus laid open to
view?
But the Lord will have the metal cleansed. We cannot do the
work. It is no common power, that can separate the base alloy. No
milder remedy will accomplish the purpose. But by this process the
hidden evil is brought out for humiliation;5 the hidden good for
honour.6 Deep personal or relative affliction; "the knowledge of the
plague of our own hearts;"7 the discovery of secret sins; circumstances
of daily trial in trifles, known perhaps only to the heart that feels them8
—all or any of these are a searching, piercing furnace.
Painful indeed is the purifying process. The flesh trembles at the
fire. Yet shall we not let the refiner do his work, though it be by
Nebuchadnezzar's furnace ?9 Shall we not commit ourselves with well-
1 Gen. xxx. 27-34; xxxi. 1. 2 1 Kings, iv. 7, 11. 3 Gen. xv. 3, 4.
4 2 Cor. xii. 1-7. 5 Deut. viii. 2 2 Chron. xxxii. 31.
6 Gen. xxii. 12. Matt. xv. 23-28. 7 1 Kings, viii. 3 8 3 Chap. xiv. 10.
9 Dan. iii. 19.
256 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
grounded confidence to his wisdom, tenderness and love?--"0 Lord,
correct me; but with judgment." (Jer. x. 24.) Is not any furnace, that
"purges away our dross" (Isa. i. 25) of earthliness, that brings us to
know ourselves, our God, and his dealings with us--a mighty blessing?
The best materials for praise are brought out of this consecrated furnace.
Yet we must carefully examine, ere we shall perceive the value of these
trying dispensations. When the action of fire, upon the metal has
brought it into its best state for use, we now look for the results, in the
displacing of all worldly idols, in the melting away of the stubbornness
of the will, and the entireness of the heart for God. For as gold cast
into the furnace receiveth their new lustre, and shineth brighter when
it cometh forth than it did before; so are the saints of God more glorious
after their great afflictions, and their graces even more resplendent.'*
The refiner's process may be slow, but its results are sure. Nothing
but dross will perish, The vilest earth will be turned into the finest
gold. No refiner ever watched the furnace with such exactness and
care. Many glittering particles may be swept away. But the pure
residue--the solid particles--comparatively scanty in the amount, but
sterling in quality, shall be delivered into the mould. Strange as it
may seem to see the gold-left in the fire, ‘he that put it there will be
loth to lose it. Not one grain, not one drachm, shall be lost.'† He
"sits" in patient watchfulness (Mal. iii. 2, 3), moderating the heat, and
carefully marking the moment, when it "shall be brought through the
fire" (Zech. xiii. 9), and set out in all the purity of the purifying
trial. Every hour of the trial is above gold, and issues in a richer
vein of Christian attainment. A suffering Saviour is realized and
endeared.
Here then in the furnace—child of God—see the seal of thine
election (Isa. xlviii. 10); the ground and establishment of thy con-
fidence (Zech. xiii. 9); thy joyous anticipation, that thy faith that is
here in the furnace shall, when thy Lord shall appear, be then made
up into a crown 'of pure gold, and be found unto praise and honour,
and glory.'‡
4. A wicked doer giveth heed to false lips: and a liar giveth ear to a
naughty tongue.
Here is a black, but true picture of human nature. The wicked doer
is not content with the stirring impulse of his native lust. But such is
his craving appetite for sin, that he seeks foreign stimulants to give it
increasing activity.1 Amnon thus stimulated his own lust, by giving
heed to the false lips of his friend.2 Ahab, to secure his desired object,
* Bp. SANDERSON'S Sermon on Ps. cxix. 75. † LEIGHTON on 1 Pet. i. 7.
‡ 1 Pet. i. 7. Leighton ut supra.
1 Chap. iv. 16, 17. Ps. lxiv. 5, 6. 2 2 Sam. xiii. 5, 6.
CHAP. XVII. 5. 257
eagerly listened to the counsels of his murderous wife.l The Jews
gave delighted ears to the false prophets, who flattered them in their
wickedness.2 Active and intense was the malice of the ungodly, in
suborning false witness for our Lord's condemnation.'3 Yet 'there
would not be so many open mouths, if there were not as many willing
ears to entertain them.'* But be it remembered, that the listening
ears share the responsibility of the naughty tongue; as all are in-
volved in the treason, that are directly or indirectly acquainted with
the plot.
Gladly does the liar give ear to that, which countenances his own
wickedness.4 If he did not "love a lie," he would not listen to it.
But thus he shrinks from the condemning light of truth into his own
atmosphere of darkness. (John, iii. 20.) How unlike is this spirit to
the true "charity" of the Gospel, which "rejoiceth not in iniquity, but
rejoiceth in the truth!" (1 Cor. xiii. 6.) ‘If then'--- saith good Bishop
Hall,† 'I cannot stop other men's mouths from speaking ill, I will
either open my mouth to reprove it; or else I will stop mine ears from
hearing it, and let him see in my face, that he hath no room in my
heart.' (Ps. xv. 3.) Let the guilty talker think,—how certainly will
this "reproach taken up against his neighbour" exclude from the
heaven of light and love! Oh! my God, fill my heart and tongue
with thine own gracious Spirit!
5. Whoso mocketh the poor reproacheth his Maker: and he that is glad at
calamities shall not be unpunished (held innocent, marg.)
The sin against our Maker of "oppressing the poor," has before
been noticed. (Chap. xiv. 31.) In this mocking probably there might
be no power to oppress. The poor is so, not by fortune, but by Pro-
vidence. The reproach therefore falls, not on the poor, but on His
Maker— on Him who made him, and made him poor, "Woe unto him
that" thus "striveth with his Maker!"‡ To pour contempt upon the
current coin with the king's image on it, is treason against the sove-
reign. No less contempt is it of the Sacred Majesty, to despise the poor,
who have, no less than the rich, the king's image upon them. (Gen.
ix. 6.) This view marks the contempt of the poor as a sin of the
deepest dye.
Specially when poverty is brought on by calamity; when the hand
of God is therefore more manifest, then to be glad at calamities is a
fearful provocation. This was the sin of Shimei, scorning his fallen
Sovereign. (2 Sam. xvi. 5-8.) This sin brought the enemies of God's
1 1 Kings, xxi. 4-7. 2 Isa. xxx. 9-11. Jer. v. 30, 31. Mic. ii. 11. 1 John, iv. 5.
3 Matt. xxvi. 59, 60. 4 Chap. xxviii. 4.
* Bp. HALL'S Works, viii. 7. † Works, ut supra.
‡ Isa. xlv. 9. Comp. Job, xl. 2. See Bp. SANDERSON'S Sermon on 1 Pet. ii. 17, § 13.
258 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
people under his severest punishment.* Very different is the spirit of
the Bible: teaching us, even where calamity is the fruit of misconduct,
instead of being glad—to sympathize; instead of crushing, to raise, a
fallen brother, or even a fallen enemy.1
All slight of the poor is evidently here rebuked. And who, that
knows himself and his obligations, could ever disdain? ‘Why should
I'--asks Bishop Reynolds—‘for a little difference in this one particular
of worldly wealth, despise my poor brother? When so many and great
things unite us, shall wealth only disunite us? One sun shines on
both; one blood bought us both; one heaven will receive us both;
only he hath not so much of earth as I, and possibly much more of
Christ. And why should I disdain him on earth, whom haply the
Lord will advance above me in heaven?'†
6. Children's children are the crown of old men; and the glory of children
are their fathers.
This Proverb has its limit. What a crown of thorns to each other
are an ungodly progeny and graceless parents! Little glory indeed
did Rehoboam and his son add to their fathers.2 As little was the
godly Hezekiah dignified by his reprobate parent.3 Gehazi brought
shame, not glory, to his children.4 But in the ordinary course gracious
children and parents reflect honour upon each other. Such parents
rejoice in the number and growth of their children. Such children
regard their father's name as their glory. Joseph was indeed a crown to
his aged father (Gen. xlvii. 11, 12); as was Jacob himself the glory of
his child, even in a Heathen nation. (Ib. xlvii. 7-10.) ‘A good root
maketh the branches to flourish, by virtue of the lively sap that it
sendeth up. And flourishing branches win praise to the root, for the
pleasant fruit which they bring forth.'‡
The Old Testament promise---"length of days" (Chap. iii. 2, 16)--
was enhanced, when accompanied with the blessing of children; yet
more—when crowned with the increase of children's children.5 The
true blessing, however, could only be known, when children, early
brought up into God's covenant, were trained in his ways, and "de-
clared them to their children, that they might set their hope in God."
1 Chap. xxiv. 17, 18. Job, xxxi. 29. Ps. xxxv. 13, 14. Rom.. xii. 20, 21.
2 1 Kings, xii. 3 2 Chron. xxviii. xxix. 4 2 Kings, v. 27.
5 Ib. xlviii. 11; l. 23. Job, xlii. 16. Ps. exxviii. 6.
* Babylon, Lam. i. 21, 22. Ammon, Ezek. xxv. 6, 7. Tyre, xxvi. 2, 3. Edom, Obad.
10-15. Contrast this barbarous delight with the godly tenderness of the Lord's prophets
in foretelling calamities. Isa. xvi. 9-11. Jer. ix. 1; xvii. 16. Mic. i. 8. The gladaess, else-
where expressed in the calamities of the enemies of the Church, was obviously the admiring
discovery of the Lord's faithful keeping of his Church, and of his glory in the deserved
punishment of his irreconcileable rebels. Exod. xv. Ps. xxxv. 8-10, 19-26. Rev. xviii. 20.
† Works, p. 9115.
‡ CLEVER on Chap. i. 1.
CHAP. XVIII. 7, 8. 259
(Ps. lxxviii, 5-7.) "Happy was the man, who had his quiver full of
such children." (Ib. cxxvii. 5.) Happy the children, thus crowned
with the example of such fathers! Abraham was the honourable,
though delusive, boast of his seed.l David was the glory of his children,
preserving to them the throne of Judah for seventeen generations.2
And may not godly parents, under a larger dispensation of grace
educating their children by example, no less than by precept--may
they not look for a "godly seed"—the children of the covenant,3 who
shall acknowledge infinite, eternal obligations to parental faith and
godliness?4
7. Excellent speech (a lip of excellency, marg.) becometh not a fool;
much less do lying lips a prince.
Men naturally speak as they are. The lip is the organ of the heart.
The lip of excellency, to speak suitably of high and lofty things, evidently
becometh not a fool.5 A grave discourse on godliness becometh not an
ungodly man.6 It carries no weight, and, so far from doing good, it
often brings contempt.7 Christ would not accept even a sound confes-
sion from the lips of Satan, lest it should bring an occasion of stumbling.8
So unseemly was excellent speech from so corrupt a source!
Much less do lying lips become a prince—the Minister and Guardian
of truth. (Chap. xvi. 10.) Yet in a world, where self reigns supreme,
such inconsistencies are but too prevalent.* The pure doctrine of our
Divine Master alone secures Christian consistency in heart, lip, and
life. Never let us forget, that, if excellent speech becometh not a fool, it
does become the gospel of Christ—the "saints of God." (Philip. i. 27.)
And oh! let it be fully manifested in all its gracious unction and
power, for "the edifying" of the Church (Eph. iv. 29), and for the con-
viction of gain-sayers." (Col. iv. 6.)
8. A gift is as a precious stone in the eyes of him that hath it;
whithersoever it turneth, it prospereth.
‘A gift is so tempting, that it can no more be refused than a lovely
1 Matt. iii. 9. John, viii. 33. 2 1 Kings, xi. 12, 13; xv. 4. 2 Chron. xxi. 7.
3 Gen. xvii. 7. Ps. exxvii. 3. 4 2 Tim. i. 5 ; iii. 15.
5 Chap. xxvi. 7, 9. Comp. Ecclus. xx. 20. 6 Ps. 1. 16, 17.
7 Matt. vii. 3-5. Rom. ii. 21-24. 8 Mark, i. 34. Comp. Acts, xvi. 16-18.
* Heathen morality from the lips of one of her wisest teachers allowed the lying lips of
princes, because they governed for the public good, ‘All others'— he adds—‘must abstain.'
PLATO, De Repub. ‘Qui nescit dissimulare, nescit regnare'—has been too often a royal
maxim. Far more becoming a prince was the saying of Louis IX. of France—‘If truth be
banished from all the rest of the world, it ought to be found in the breast of princes.'
Alphonsus of Arragon declared (Lavater in loco) that ‘one word of a prince should be a
greater security than a private man's oath.' Undoubtedly the royal character ought to
display a grandeur and dignity of principle, that should shine through every dark cloud of
trial and perplexity.
260 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
jewel, by him to whom it is presented; and such is its power, it com-
monly prevails over all men, dispatches all business, carries all causes,
and—in a word—effects whatever a man desires.'* Such is the
sympathy between a lusting eye and a glittering. gift. The covetous
prophet1--'nay even an apostle2—was wilfully beguiled by its fasci-
nation. The Heathen soldiers sold themselves to its slavery.3 A
King's Minister was won over by its allurement. (Acts, xii. 20.) Even
a King—and such as the man after God's own heart—was sinfully
perverted in the snare. (2 Sam. xvi. 1-4.) Seldom does it fail to
prosper whithersoever it turneth. But who would envy a prosperity for
evil? All ministers of law were wisely directed (like fabled justice)
to give their decisions blindfolded! not looking at this precious stone,
lest they should be dazzled by its sparkling attraction.4 Unfaith-
fulness was always visited with the heavy displeasure of the Great
Judge.5
And is not the child of God often pressed with this temptation?
Does the influence of a gift, the sense of obligation, never repress the
bold consistency of godliness? Does no bias of friendship, no plausible
advantage, entice into a crooked path? Oh! be resolute in a better
strength than thine own in the resistance of the sin. The conflict is
not with violent temptation, or with open sin, but with subtle and
apparently harmless deviations from the strait path. Exercise thy
"integrity and uprightness" in the spirit of faith; and doubt not that
they will "preserve thee." (Ps. xxv. 21.) The man of God, who
"dwells on high" with his God, "shaketh his hands from holding of
bribes;" as the Apostle shook off "the viper that had fastened. on his
hand."6 From this height he looks down upon this corruption with
indignant abhorrence—" Let thy gifts be to thyself--Thy money
perish with thee."7
1 Num. xxii. 7, 8, 21. 2 Pet. ii. 15. 2 Matt. xxvi. 14-16.
3 Ib. xxviii 12-15. 4 Exod. xxiii. 8. Deut. xvi. 10.
5 Deut. xxviii. 25. Isa. v. 22, 23. Mic. vii. 8, 4. 6 Isa. xxxiii. 15, with Acts, xxviii. 5.
7 Dan. v. 17. Acts, viii. 18-20. Comp. 1 Sam. xii. 3.
* Bishop Patrick —'What a description'— adds Mr. Scott--'of the mercenary selfishness
of mankind!' Comp. also verse 23; xviii. 16. Even the Heathen conscience seems to
have had a just perception of this evil. The saying of Philip of Macedon is well known,
that ‘there was no fortress so strong, but it might be taken, if an ass laden with gold was
brought to the gate.' The poet finely illustrates this remark, referring also to the current
report, that—'not Philip, but Philip's gold,— conquered Greece.' HOR. Od. lib. iii. M.
'Auro loquenite, inest omnis Oratio.' GREG. NAZIAN. 'Gold and silver pervert many
things, especially motives of right. Money bath a great power with those that are in
power. A golden key will open any prison door, and east the watchman into a deep
sleep. Gold will break open gates of iron, as well as silence the orator's voice, and blind
the judge's eyes. It will bind the strong man's hands, and blunt the edge of the sword.
It makes war, and it makes peace. What almost can it not do with corrupt minds?'
CARYL on Job, xxxi. 21.
CHAP. XVII. 9, 10. 261
9. He that covereth a transgression seeketh love: but he that repeateth a
matter separateth very friends.
Seeketh love! A beautiful expression, much to be kept in miind!
It shows a delight in the atmosphere of love-- man's highest elevation
in communion with his God. (1 John, iv. 16.) It implies not the mere
exercise of love, where it is presented, but the searching and making
opportunity for it. But how seldom do we rise to the high standard of
this primary grace, exalted as it is pre-eminently above "the best gifts"
(1 Cor. xii. 31; xiii.); and illustrated and enforced by no less than the
Divine example! (Eph. v. 1, 2.) Yet too often it sits at the door of
our lips, instead of finding a home in our hearts; forgetting that the
exhortation is not, that we should talk of love, but that we should " walk
in it;" not stepping over it, crossing it, walking by the side, but "in it,"
as our highway and course. One step of our feet is better than an
hundred words of the tongue.
A forbearing spirit is a fine manifestation of this heavenly grace.
Our motives are often misconstrued. We meet in a world of selfish-
ness, cold reserve, instead of glowing confidence. Prejudice builds a
wall against Christian intercourse. Wounded pride would return un-
kindness with contempt. Resentment stirs up recrimination. Disap-
pointment kindles morbid suspicion. Here is a noble field for Christian
victory; instead of resenting, to cover the transgression with a mantle of
love (Chap. x. 12. 1 Cor. xiii. 7. Gr.); with that act of amnesty, by
which we are saved—the most aggravated transgression, the most un-
provoked injuries, being covered in eternal forgetfulness. (Heb. viii. 12.)
The repeating a matter has often separated friends by uncovering a
forgotten quarrel. (Chap. xvi. 28.) Mischief might not be intended.
But to amuse ourselves with the follies or weakness of our brethren, is a
sinful trifling, fraught with injury. Justly are "tellers and busy-
bodies" described as "speaking things which they ought not." (1 Tim.
v. 13) A disciplined tongue is a gracious mercy to the Church.
10. A reproof entereth more into a wise man, than an hundred stripes into a
fool.
If we should cover transgression, we should not forbear reproof. Re-
proof distingnishes the wise man from the fool. (Chap. xiii. 1.) A word
is enough for the wise. The discipline of stripes is needful for the fool.
Parents and tutors should specially study the character of children, that
they may temper reproof wisely. Many a fine spirit has been spoiled
by unsuitable treatment.
If this be true of man's reproof, much more of God's. A word was
enough for David.1 A look entered more into Peter's heart,2 than an
1 2 Sam. xii. 1-7; iv. 13, 14. 2 Luke, xxii. 61, 62.
262 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
hundred stripes into Pharaoh,1 Ahaz,2 Israel.3 Stripes only scourge the
fool's back. They never reach his heart. He is therefore a fool still.
"Though thou shouldest bray him in a mortar among wheat in a pestle;
yet shall not his foolishness depart from him." (Chap. xxvii. 22.)
What then makes the difference as to the effect of reproof? "The
stony heart is taken away, and an heart of flesh is given." (Ezek. xxxvi.
26.) A needle pierces deeper into flesh, than a sword into Stone. A
wakeful ear, a tender conscience, a softened heart, a teachable spirit--
these are the practical exercises, by which a wise and loving father
disciplines his children for his service, for his cross, and for his crown.
11. An evil man seeketh only rebellion: therefore a cruel messenger shall
be sent against him. 12. Let a bear robbed of her whelps meet a man,
rather than a fool in his folly. 13. Whoso rewardeth evil for good,
evil shall not depart from his house.
Some awful pictures of man are here set out. Look at his wayward-
ness— seeking only rebellion—resisting all authority of God and man.
This is no light sin. (1 Sam. xv. 23.) Therefore a cruel messenger, one
that will not be turned from his work, shall be sent against him. The
disobedient son in the family;4 Korah in the Church,5 Absalom,6
Sheba,7 and Pekah,8 in the kingdom—all stand out as monuments of
retributive justice. Not that rebellion is the only sin, but that it is the
grand outbreaking of the stubborn will. It may be hidden under a
peaceful and amiable cover. But it "is not dead, but sleepeth.”* Let
God remove the restraint; let Satan bring the occasion of temptation ;
and, when all before appeared love and unity, "hateful, and hating one
another" (Tit. iii. 3) — will be the dark features of the prospect.
Look again at man in his folly. The strength and accuracy of the
figure can scarcely be surpassed. The savage beast under the strongest
excitement —a bear robbed of her whelps—is less dangerous to meet.
Witness Jacob's sons putting a whole city to fire and sword for the folly
of one man;9 Saul slaying a large company of innocent priests;10
Nebuchadnezzar heating the furnace sevenfold;11 Herod murdering the
children in Ramah;12 "Saul breathing out threatenings and slaughter
against the disciples of the Lord"13—was not all this the rage of a
beast, not the reason of a man? Humbling, indeed, is this picture of
man, once "created in the image of God." (Gen. i. 27.) More humbling
is it to see this folly in a child of God; to see David binding himself
1 Exod. ix. 34, 35. 2 2 Chron. xxviii. 22. 3 Isa. i. 5; ix. 13. Jer. v. 3.
4 Deut. xxi. 18. 5 Num. xvi. 6 2 Sam. xviii. 7.5, 16.
7 Ib. xx. 1, 22. 8 2 Kings, xv. 27-30. 9 Gen. xxxiv. 25.
10 1 Sam. xxii. 18. 11 Dan. iii. 13-19. 12 Matt. ii. 16.
13 Acts, ix. 1.
* The philosophical remark of Burke — ‘Those who do not love religion, hate it'—is the
spirit of our Divine Master's saying, Matt. xii. 30.
CHAP. XVII. 11-13. 263
with an oath to massacre a whole family, some of whom had taken up
his cause against the sottish offender. Yet the melting away of his
fury under wise remonstrance shewed the man of God covered with the
shame of his folly; not the fool living in it as his nature, habit, and
delight. (1 Sam. xxv. 32, 33.)
But to turn nearer home—are there no households where uncon-
trouled anger governs all at pleasure? Does the self-willed victim
remember, that 'nothing is said or done in a passion, but may be better
said or done afterwards?'* Do we never see the Christian, whom his
Master's discipline and example ought to have transformed to a lamb,
still like the bear robbed of her whelps? Man—the holiest, "left of God
to try him, that he might know all that was in his heart" (2 Chron.
xxxii. 31)—"man," so left to himself, "verily at his best estate is
altogether vanity." (Ps. xxxix. 5.) Abhorred be that vain, but too
common excuse—‘It is my way.' Is not this the very cause of grief
to a contrite soul, calling for deep humiliation and increasing watchful-
ness?
Look again at man in his ingratitude. God forbids to reward evil for
evil; much more evil for good. This sin even the Heathen deemed to
include every other.†--And so hateful is it to God, that he visits the evil,
not only on the sinner himself, but on his house. Israel was punished
for the ill return to Gideon.1 The traitor's house was doomed to a
curse.2 And how fearful the evil to the ungrateful nation, who does not
know?3
This ingratitude is by no means uncommon, though the conscience
is little awake to the guilt. What else is it, when the ungodly resent
an attempt to promote their best interests? David complained of this
unkind and undeserved return, simply because he was pursuing active
benevolence. (Ps. xxxviii. 20.) Such a recompence is marked out for
special reprobation.
And surely evil rewarded for good was the stamp of our father's sin.
(Gen. iii. 5, 6, with ii. 8-18.) And ever since has the curse been fear-
fully verified--Evil shall not depart from his house. Nor is this unjust
severity. What say we to a child, nourished with the tenderest care,
yet casting off all filial regard, and rewarding evil for good? Could any
other appearances of virtue atone for this unnatural abomination, this
awful deformity? And yet is not this sin—the astonishment of heaven
and earth--the mark of every child of fallen Adam? "I have
nourished and brought up children, and they have rebelled against me."
1 Judg. viii. 35; ix. 56, 57. Comp. Jer. xviii. 20-23. 2 Ps. lv. 12-15; cix. 9-13.
3 Matt. xxvii. 25, with xxiii. 32-39.
* MATTHEW HENRY'S Sermon on Meekness.
† ‘Ingraturn si dixeris, omnia dixeris.' Yet was it the aggravation of their own sin.
Rom. i. 21.
264 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOR OF PROVERBS.
(Isa. i. 2.) But for the transfer of this mighty mass of guilt, how could
we stand before God? And who of us still in the consciousness of this
guilt, will not seek for a more full influence of that no less perfect work,
by which the rebel spirit is tamed and humbled into the meekness and
love of the Gospel?
14. The beginning of strife is as when one letteth out water: therefore
leave of contention before it be meddled with.
Both the destructive elements---fire and water—illustrate the
danger of the beginning of strife.1 To neither element can we say--
"Hitherto shalt thou come, and no further!" (Job, xxxviii. 11.) As
well might we command the raging storm, as the uncontrouled passion
--"Peace! be still." (Mark, iv. 39.) The dam may restrain a large
body of waters; but cut the sluices, and the letting out of water may be
a sweeping inundation.* Thus fearfully has the beginning of strife
issued in the murder of thousands,2 and, even in the desolation of
kingdoms.3
No less destructive is it in ordinary life. One provoking word
brings on another. Every retort widens the breach. Seldom, when
we have heard the first word, do we hear the last. An inundation of
evil is poured in, that lays desolate peace, comfort, and conscience.
Does not grace teach us the Christian victory, to keep down the ex-
pression of resentment, and rather to bear provocation than to break
the bond of unity?
Truly it is a wise rule to stop the evil at the beginning. The bank
is much more easily preserved than repaired. The breach once made,
if it only let out a drop of water, is the beginning of an evil, the fruit of
which cannot be calculated. How soon was the indignation of the ten
apostles moved against the two; which, but for the immediate inter-
vention of their Divine Master, might have been productive of serious
issue! (Matt. xx. 24.) For—as one strongly observed—‘Man knows
the beginning of sin; but who bounds the issues thereof?'† Abraham
nobly yielded in the contention with Lot, and the evil was stayed. (Gen.
xiii. 8, 9.) Paul and Barnabas--neither would yield; "and the con-
tention was so sharp between them, that"--sad record!—"they de-
parted asunder one from the other." (Acts, xv. 39.) Moses restrained
himself in the rising provocation with his wife. Israel wisely refrained
from contention with Edom in the churlish refusal of water.4 David
answered gently to his brother's irritating suspicion.5 He "was as a
deaf man" to his enemies, who were seeking contention with him.6
1 Chap. xxvi. 21. Judg. ix. 19, 20. Jam. iii. 2 Judg. xii. 1-6. 2 Sam. ii, 14-27.
3 2 Chron. x. 14-16; xiii. 17; xxv. 17-24. 4 Num. xx. 14-21.
5 1 Sam. xvii. 23, 20, 6 Ps. xxxviii. 12-14.
* See Virgil's elegant picture, AEn. ii. 496-499.
† Francis Spira.
CHAP. XVII. 15. 265
The prompt decision of the Apostles in the ministration of the widows,
preserved the infant Church from a serious schism.l Under similar
threatening circumstances, would it not be well to consider, whether we
are contending for a shadow, or for substance? if the latter, whether it
might not be rather an exercise of forbearance than an handle of dis-
sension (Rom. xiv.); or, if its importance justified the dissension (Gal.
ii. 5), whether our judgment and conscience were fully and intelligently
decided on the real principles involved. "Peace and holiness" are the
main points we are commanded" to follow (Heb. xii. 14); and so
combined are they, that in vain can we expect to advance in holiness,
except we "follow the things that make for peace."2 In watching
against the baneful issue of contention: be it well remembered, that the
time to leave off is not when we see its worst, but its beginning; yea,
before it be meddled with; restraining the first rising in ourselves;
mortifying our own proud tempers, and cultivating our Master's meek
and self-denying spirit.*
15. He that justifieth the wicked, and he that condemneth the just, even they
both are an abomination to the Lord.
Judicial iniquity is an awful abuse of God's authority. (Exod. xxiii.
7.) The judge or magistrate" is a minister of God for good." (Rom.
xiii. 4.) The appeal is to him for justice, as the Representative of God.
(Deut. xxv. 1.) If the great Judge "loveth righteousness and hateth
iniquity,"3 this unrighteousness justifying the wicked must be abomination
to him.† This guilt of Samuel's sons, so contrary to his own integrity,
was the immediate cause of the abolition of the Theocracy.4 The
judges in David's time seem to have been guilty of both these branches
of injustice.5 Ahab's house was ruined by his condemnation of the just.6
"Not this man, but Barabbas"7--combined the double sin. It was the
perfection of injustice, the most aggravated abomination.
Not however to confine the application to official iniquity--Do we
not all need great watchfulness, that we may "judge righteous judg-
1 Acts, vi. 1-4. 2 Rom. xiv. 19. Col. iii. 12-15. Jam. iii, 18.
3 Ps. xlv. 7. Deut. xxxii. 4. 4 1 Sam. viii. 3-5, with xii. 3.
5 Ps. lxxxii. 2; xciv. 20, 21. 6 1 Kings, xxi. 13-19.
7 John, xviii. 40.
* The following remarks from Mr. Burke are well worth consideration — ‘The arms with
which the ill dispositions of the world are to be combated, are moderation, gentleness, a
little indulgence of others, and a great distrust of ourselves; which are not qualities of a
mean spirit, as some may possibly think them; but virtues of a great and noble kind, and
such as dignify our nature, as much as they contribute to our repose and fortune. For
nothing can be so unworthy of a well-composed soul, as to pass away life in bickerings and
litigations, in snarling and scuffling with every one about us.'—Letter to Barry. PRIOR'S
Life of Burke. See an admirable Chapter in PALEY's Moral Philosophy (Book iii. Chap. vii.)
—a work however not to be recommended without very many reserves, on account of its
false philosophy and unsound principles.
† Isa. v. 23. Comp. SOPHOCLIS OEdip. Tyr., verses 622, 623, also Chap. xxiv. 23, 24.
266 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
ment" (John, vii. 24); that no corrupt bias may prejudice the exercise
of our private judgment, either in favour of the wicked, or in the con-
demnation of the just?
But let us place ourselves before the "Judge of all" accused by
Satan, our own conscience, and the righteous law of God; convicted of
every charge; yet justified. Does God then in thus " justifying the
ungodly" (Rom. iv. 5) contravene this rule? Far from it. If he
justifies the wicked, it is on account of righteousness. (Ib. iii. 25, 26.) If
he condemn the just, it is on the imputation of unrighteousness. Nowhere
throughout the universe do the moral perfections of the Governor of
the world shine so gloriously as at the cross of Calvary.1 The satisfac-
tion of the holy law, and the manifestation of righteous mercy, harmo-
nise with the justification of the condemned sinner.2 And this com-
bined glory tunes the song of everlasting praise.*
16. Wherefore is there a price in the hand of a fool to get wisdom, seeing he
hath no heart to it?
A question of wonder and indignation! We often find this reckless
infatuation in temporal things. A young man will spend a, large in-
come at the university in the professed purchase of wisdom, and yet
idle away all his time! Is not the price manifestly in the hand of a fool,
who has no heart to the advantages? The thoughtless rake might be
warned even by his worldly friends. He is losing important opportu-
nities, revolting his best friends, involving himself in debt, injuring
his constitution, blasting his character. Is not this throwing away a
valuable price by reckless folly?
Yet much more affecting is it to see the picture of this folly in reli-
gion. Why is a fool so blessed, seeing he hath no heart to improve his
blessings? Birth, religious privileges, talents, time, influence, oppor-
tunity—all are a price to get wisdom. If the fool throws it away, the
account of unprofitableness seals his sentence. (Matt. xxv. 24-30.) The
grand price of inestimable value is in our hands.3 Yet how many
thousand fools have no heart to buy, would rather lose it, than labour
for it; rather go sleeping to hell, than toiling to heaven! The rem-
nant of the ten tribes despised the opportunity put within their reach
of coming up to the feast of the Lord.4 The town where Jesus was
brought up,5 the cities where he wrought his miracles,6 wilfully
1 Isa. liii. 5-10. 2 Cor. v. 21. 2 Ps. lxxxv.10. Isa. x1ii. 21; x1v. 21.
3 Chap. viii. 4, 6 ; ix. 4-6. Isa. 1v. 1-3. Rom. x. 8. Rev. iii. 20.
4 2 Chron. xxx. 10. 5 Luke, iv. 28. 6 Matt. xi. 21.
* Bishop Davenant justly quotes this text, as an example of the forensic use of the term
justification—‘not the infusion of a quality, but the pronouncing a sentence.' (Dis-
course on Inherent Righteousness, chap. xxii. Allport's Translation.) In this true sense it is
used in reference to our justification before God—pronounced just in God's own court of
judgment.
CHAP. XVII. 16, 17. 267
despised the price of wisdom. The Gadarenes threw away the pearl.1
Herod eyed it with curiosity;2 Pilate with indifference;3 the Jews
with scorn.4 The rich youth preferred his own " goodly pearls " to it.5
Felix hoped to turn it to his own selfish purpose.6 Agrippa dared not pur-
chase it.7 Were not all these pictures of the fool, that every day meets
our eye? 'That which "is more precious than rubies" (chap. iii. 15) is
to him more worthless than a pebble. That which "is more sweet than
honey," is tasteless as the white of an egg.'* He lives for himself, as
if there was no God in the world. His heart is given to the world, as
if it could be a God to him, or could fill up God's vacant place in his
heart! Yet thus the realities of eternity—the mighty things of the
Gospel —things that should drink up our spirits, are like "a tale that
is told." Enough that they should have a place in our creed, though
never in our hearts. The world is preferred to heaven, time to eter-
nity; and the immortal soul, for which such a cost has been paid, and
such prospects prepared, perishes in folly. But lingerers will stop
short of heaven. And will it not be a sword in the awakened con-
science —' I might have been enriched, had I not wasted the golden
opportunities of salvation, and fooled away the glorious days of the Sort
of man?' Yea—will not this be the sting of the never-dying worm
--‘Had I come to Christ when I might, I should not have been in this
place of torment. I would not come then.8 I cannot come now.'9
‘Lord, save me'--- cries the pious Howe —'from trifling with the
things of eternity.'†
But if I have a heart to this wisdom, there can be no doubt the price
will get it. I shall find the inestimable blessing by trading with my
talent, by the diligent improvement of my privileges. I shall find
Him whom my soul needeth above all, and desires to love above all;
whose lovely names are not empty names, but full of truth. Brother
—Husband—Saviour—would but the fool ponder, might not the
picture attract his heart; as One "able to promote him to honour," to
give him an infinite compensation for his toil or loss; whose very
upbraidings are pity, whose strivings are tenderness; whose rebukes
are love, whose smile is heaven.
17. A friend loveth at all times, and a brother is born for adversity.
This beautiful picture of friendship has been drawn by moralists,
sentimentalists, and poets. But the reality is only found, where Divine
grace has melted away natural selfishness into disinterested love. If
virtue is the best ground of friendship, then is this most heavenly virtue
1 Matt. viii. 34. 2 Luke, xxiii. 8. Comp. Acts, xvii. 21, 32.
3 John, xviii. 38. 4 Acts, xiii. 46. 5 Mark, x. 22.
6 Acts, xxiv. 25-27. 7 Ib., xxvi. 28. 8 Matt, xxiii. 37. John, v. 40.
9 Matt. xxv. 10. Luke, xiii, 25-28; xvi. 26.
* Lawson. † Works, iii. 130.
268 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
the firmest ground of all. What passes under the name is too often, as
Bishop Hall* describes it, 'brittle stuff.' This fickle excitement cools
by distance, or by the coldness of our friend. Degradation of worldly
circumstances converts it into indifference (Job, vi. 14, 15), or even into
hatred.† The friend, who hath left the right path, is forsaken, instead
of being followed, watched over, and every opportunity improved for
reclaiming him. But the true friend loveth at all times, through "evil
as well as good report." He does not change, when circumstances
change. He is the same, whether we are in wealth or need. He proves
himself in adversity, by rising in warmth, and exerting every nerve, in
proportion as his aid is needed.1 He is not ashamed of poverty or of
a prison.2 In any jarrings of the flesh, adversity cements love.‡ The
loving friend becomes now a brother born for adversity.§ Such was the
love of Joseph to his brethren; unshaken by vicissitudes, unabated by
ingratitude.3 Such was the firm cleaving of Ruth to her desolate
mother;4 the unity of heart between David and Jonathan;5 the affec-
tionate sympathy of the beloved disciple to the Mother of his Lord (John, xix. 27);
the faithful love of the brethren to the great Apostle in his adversity.||
We must not indeed look for perfection. Can we doubt the sincerity
of the disciples, while we are humbled, instructed, and warned by their
frailty? (Matt. xxvi. 40, 41.) For frailty it was; not wilfulness, nor
hypocrisy. " Ye are they, that have continued with me in my tempta-
tions"--was their Master's kindly acknowledgment at that season of
infirmity, when they all forsook him, and fled.6
But--Ah! it is to him that we must look as the perfect; exemplar.
To see the Son of God in our nature, that he might be our friend and
brother--(Heb. ii. 14); to hear him "not ashamed to call us brethren"
(Ib. verses 11–13) — this is a mystery of friendship -- unsearchable.
Truly is this Friend —he alone, worthy of our unlimited confidence.
Such is the constancy of his love--at all times (John, xiii. 1) even
unto death¶--unaltered by the most undutiful returns--"turning and
1 2 Sam. xv.19-22 ; xvii. 27—29. 2 Phil. ii. 25. 2 Tim. i. 16-18. 3 Gen. xlv. 5-8.
4 Ruth, i. 16, 17. 5 1 Sam. xviii. 3; xix. 2; xxiii. 16.
6 Luke, xxii. 28, with Matt. xxvi. 56.
* Works, viii. 38. Meditations and Vows.
† Chap. xix. 7. Job, xix. 17-20. Comp. Ovid's elegant lines, ex Ponto. Lib. ii. Ephes.
Hi. 5-10, 231-28.
‡ See the melancholy dispute between Bishop Hooper and Ridley upon ceremonials,
and the cementing influence of the prison; with Foxe's beautiful remarks, vi. 640, 641.
§ Bishop Patrick. Comp. Job, ii, 11-13. Ecclus. vii. 18 ; v3. 7, 8, 10, 16.
|| Aquila and Priscilla. Rom. xvi. 3, 4; Epaphroditus, Phil. ii. 25, 26—when a prisoner;
the Philippian Church, Ib. iv. 15.
¶ John, xv. 13.
‘Mine is an unchanging love;
Higher than the heights above;
Deeper than the depths beneath;
Firm and faithful, strong as death.'—COWPER.
CHAP. XVII.18. 269
looking upon "the disciple (a look so full of tenderness and power!)
(Luke, xxii. 61) whom we should have excommunicated. Such the
sympathy of his love--born for adversity; so united to us--the friend
and the brother we need; never nearer to us than when in our lowest
depths of trouble; and, though now our glorified Brother in heaven, yet
still "touched with the feeling of our infirmities" (Heb. iv. 15); still
"afflicted in all our afflictions" (Isa. lxiii. 9); presenting us to, his
Father, as his own elect, the purchase of his blood, "the members of his
body, of his flesh, and of his bones." (Ephes. v. 30.) Here is sympathy
in all its fulness, and all its helpfulness. ‘Here is indeed a Brother born
for adversity. "Trust him," 0 ye trembling believers, "at all times,"
and in all places. You will then be possessed of the happy art of living
beyond the reach of all disappointment.'*
18. A man void of understanding† (heart, marg.) striketh hands, and
becometh surety in the presence of his friend.
Though we are to feel ourselves born for adversity, ever ready to
"bear one another's burdens" (Gal. vi. 2): yet we must not befriend
our brother at the risk or expence of injustice to our family. We have
therefore another warning against imprudent suretyship. (Chap. vi.
1-5; xi. 15.) Beware of striking hands in agreement without ascertain-
ing, whether we can fulfil our engagement, or whether our friend is not
equally able to fulfil it himself. This spews a man void of understand-
ing; specially to do this in the presence of his friend. For why is not
his word taken, but from the suspicion of insolvency or dishonesty? A
prodigal, thoughtless kindness may gain us a popular name. But the
principle, closely examined, will be found to be another form of selfish-
ness. There is no true benevolence in rash engagements, which may
involve our name and family in disgrace or ruin. True indeed—had
not those hands that were nailed to the cross, been stricken in suretyship,
the handwriting that was against us could never have been cancelled.
(Col. ii. 14.) Yet the eternal counsel is no pattern for our simple
folly. Nor is infinite love combined with perfect wisdom, a plea for
our rash generosity. Religion, though it warns its professors against
imprudence, yet too often unjustly bears the blame of them. If we
* HOWELL'S Sermons, ii. 252. ‘Though solitary and unsupported, and oppressed by
sorrows unknown and undivided, I am not without joyful expectations. There is one
Friend who loveth at all times: a Bother born for adversity—the help of the helpless; the
hope of the hopeless; the strength of the weak; the riches of the poor; the peace of the
disquieted; the companion of the desolate; the friend of the friendless. To him alone will
I call, and he will raise me above my fears.'— Memoir of Mrs. Hawkes, pp. 1.7, 128. The
ancient Jews applied this Proverb to Christ, adducing it as a testimony, that the Divine
Messiah would by his incarnation become the Brother of man. Gill in loco.
† Chap. vii. i; x. 13; xi. 12; xv. 21; xxiv. 30 'It denotes the want of all the faculties
of the soul, through ignorance, carelessness, and the prevalence of evil propensities
various kinds.' SCOTT on xi. 12.
270 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
would adorn the Christian profession, and avoid occasions of stumbling
to the ungodly, we must "provide for honest things, not only in the
sight of the Lord, but also in the sight of man." (2 Cor. viii. 20, 21.)
19. He loveth transgression that loveth strife; and he that exalteth his gate
seeketh destruction.
We may indeed fall into strife without loving it. (Gen. xiii. 7, 8.)
But let us always look at it as a branch from the root of sin (Gal. v.
19-21), and the prolific source of sin. (2 Cor. xii. 20. Jam. iii. 16.) The
love of it is therefore the love of transgression. Ye who will own the
charge? The man engaged in strife protests that he loves peace; only
his neighbour's perverseness drives him into strife. And yet if we are
frequently in it; if we take no pains, make no sacrifice of self-will or
interest (1 Cor. vi. 1-7), to avoid the occasion of strife—does not con-
science bring home the charge? Ah! the love of transgression lies
deeper than we often see. It shews itself in forms, that the world may
overlook, but which prove its nature to be "carnal."*
Very generally it proceeds from the root of pride.l The man exalts
his gate† above his neighbour, and affects a style beyond his rank. Or
his ambition would tread his neighbour under his feet. Nay, he will
sometimes rise against his Sovereign,2 or even stand in defiance of his
God.3 The sluggard sees his ruin before him, and indolently waits
for it, without making any effort to avert it.4 But the proud man
seeketh destruction. He puts himself in the road and sooner or later his
day comes; and his name, glory, and honour are swept away.5 Watch
over me, 0 my God, to preserve me from the first rising of my proud
heart. Or if my frailty yield to it, 0 keep me from the prevalence of
this presumptuous sin, that hurries me as a rival against thy throne
into the pit of destruction.
20. He that hath a froward heart findeth no good; and he that hath a
perverse tongue falleth into mischief.
The history of God's ancient people is a picture of frowardness with
all its barren results. Let their long-suffering God do what he would
to them and for them, they found no satisfying good. (Ps. lxxviii.) Self-
will, even in its fullest indulgence, instead of bringing the desired good,
1 Chap. xiii. 10. Mark, ix. 33, 34. 2 2 Sam. xv. 1. 1 Kings, i . 5; xvi. 9-18. 3 Rom. 1 , 2
4 Chap. vi. 11. 5 Chap. xvi. 18. Isa. xxii. 15-19. Jer. xxii. 13-19.
* 1 Cor. iii. 3, 4. ‘I never loved those salamanders that are never well, but when they
are in the fire of contention. I will rather suffer a thousand wrongs, than offer one. I will
rather suffer an hundred, than inflict one. I will suffer many, ere I will complain of one,
and endeavour to right it by contending. I have ever found, that to strive with my
superior is furious; with my equal doubtful; with my inferior sordid and base; with any,
full of unquietness.'—Bishop HALL, Meditations and Vows, Works, viii. 18.
† An allusion to the gates of splendid palaces in the East, generally elevated according to
the vanity of their owner.—MORIER, quoted in BURDER'S Oriental Customs.
CHAP. XVII. 21. 271
always ends in disappointment; and, when, the perverse tongue breaks
out, in frightful mischief.1 The best of us are too often governed by
this waywardness. Even when we seek to walk with God, how does
the froward heart struggle to walk by its own inclination! The good
Lord give us a mortified spirit, to restrain us from the guidance of our
corrupt fancies! Many an erratic course in the Church we trace to
some unhappy bias, not disciplined by the Divine Spirit, not moulded
to reverential faith. Most graciously therefore does our God assert his
own right to supremacy; promising us—not freedom from restraint,
but a yoke (Matt. xi. 29), a binding law, a strict obligation, and--
above all—the heart to love and obey.2 Here is now self-controul and
stability; not impulse and feeling, but fixed and steady principle.
Shall not we then cry with filial simplicity--‘Not my will, 0 Lord.
Let me have anything but my own way. Leave me not to my per-
verse heart.' In proportion as the froward heart is thus subdued, the
perverse tongue is bridled; and we have the "perfect man" in Christian
consistency, humility, and love.
21. He that begetteth a fool doeth it to his sorrow; and the father of a
fool hath no joy.
Among "the vanities, to which the creature is made subject,"
Solomon elsewhere enumerated one, of which he probably had a feeling
experience—leaving the labour of his hand —he knoweth not to whom
—whether he shall be a wise man or a fool. (Eccles. ii. 18, 19.) The
latter prospect is here realized. The weeping parent not only finds no
joy in the fondly cherished object of his expectation; but a cankering
grief embitters all his joys, and often brings him "down with sorrow to
the grave."* And how is this sorrow aggravated, should there be an
unhappy humbling consciousness, that undue indulgence or severity,
injudicious treatment, and more than all--neglect of real prayer for
the child,† and of the diligent improvement of God's appointed means,
virtually suffered the evil propensities to grow to a direful harvest of
ruin!
Yet let the godly parent expect everything from prayer—provided
1 Chap. xi. 20; xviii. 6, 7. Num. xvi. Acts, xiii. 8-11. 2 Jer. xxxi. 33. Ezek. xxxvi. 26, 27.
* Gen. xlii. 38. Has not many an afflicted parent fellowship with the impassioned cry
of Augustus—‘Would that I had lived single, or died childless?'
† Bishop SANDERSON'S Sermon on Rom. xv. 5. ‘Think none of you, you have sufficiently
discharged your parts towards those that are under your charge, if you have instructed
them, corrected them when they have done amiss, and rewarded then when they have done
well, so long as your fervent prayers for them have been wanting. In vain shall you wrestle
with their stubbornness and other corruptions, (though you put forth all your strength) so
long as you wrestle with them only. Then, or not at all, shall you wrestle to purpose,
when you enter the lists with the Father of Spirits, as Jacob did: wrestling with him by
your importunate prayers; and not giving him over, till you have wrung a blessing from
him, either for yourselves, or them, or both.'
272 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
it be not palsied by despondency. (Gal. vi. 9; John, xi. 40.) In the
deepest distress never lose hold of the covenant of grace. (Gen. xvii. 7.)
Let the determined faith of a praying mother encourage perseverance.
(Matt. xv. 22-28.) God exercises faith; but he never fails to honour
it. He delays to answer prayer but every word, every sigh, is
registered for acceptance in his best time. Let Solomon's word be a
quickening—not a discouraging—word; "profitable" indeed "for
reproof, and for correction;" but not less so "for instruction in righte-
ousness." (2 Tim. iii. 16.)
22. A merry heart doeth good like a medicine; but a broken spirit drieth
the bones.
This is not true of all merriment. The wise man justly describes
the loud and noisy mirth of fools to be, no medicine, but "madness;"1
a transient flash, not an abiding source of enjoyment. Probably this
merriment here means nothing more than cheerfulness, which, in its
proper measure, on proper subjects, and at a proper time, is a legitimate
pleasure, especially belonging to religion. Our Lord thus made a
merry heart by his message of Divine forgiveness (Matt. ix. 2-7); and
this doubtless was a more healing medicine to the paralytic, than the
restoration of his limbs. If I be a pardoned sinner, an accepted child
of God, what earthly trouble can sink me? "Paul and Silas sang
praises to God in the inner prison, with their feet made fast in the
stocks." (Acts, xvi. 25.) The martyrs "glorified God in the fire.''
They were "tortured, not accepting deliverance, that they might obtain
a better resurrection." (Heb. xi. 35.) All earthly enjoyments are now
doubly blest with heavenly sunshine. (Eccles. ix. 7-9.)
There is also the Christian flow of natural spirits. For when con-
secrated to the Lord, they become a means of enjoyment, not only to
ourselves (Chap. xv. 13), but to those around us. Often has the mourn-
ing saint been encouraged, often also has the worldling been convicted,
by a brother's cheerful words or looks.2 To the former it has been a
medicine; to the latter a lesson.
A broken spirit in an evangelical sense is God's precious gift;
stamped with his special honour, and always constituting an acceptable
service. But here it describes a brooding spirit of despondency;
always looking at the dark side; and, if connected with religion
(which is not always the case), flowing from narrow and perverted
views, a spurious humility centering in self. The influence drieth up the
bones. The bodily system is sensibly affected. 'It contracts and
enfeebles the animal spirits; preys on our strength; eats out the vigour
of the constitution. The radical moisture is consumed; and the
1 Eccles. ii. 2. Comp. 1 Sam. xxv. 36, 87. 2 Chap. xii. 25. Eccles viii. I.
CHAP. XVII. 22. 273
unhappy subject of this passion droops like a flower in the scorching
heat of summer.'*
Not less baneful is its influence upon the spiritual system. Hard
thoughts of God are induced, as if he had forsaken, neglected, or for-
gotten us. From doubting, the soul comes to chilling fear; thence to
gloomy despondency. The power of the telescope fails in bringing
distant objects nigh. Hence the present hold of the grand object is
feeble. The hope of future enjoyment is dark. Distance too often
lessens communication. Prayer is, less frequently or powerfully sent
up. The answers therefore, and the supplies of cheering grace from
this source, are more scanty. Thus we are not only weakened in com-
fort, but cut short in strength. The mind is clothed in sable. The
chariot's wheels are taken off; so that we "drag heavily." Discontent,
and a querulous unbelieving sadness, take possession of the soul, and
wholly unfit us for the service of God.
Most watchful therefore should we be against this withering influence.
Allow not the imagination to dwell needlessly in gloom. Constitutional
temperament will have its influence. External things act upon the body,
and through the body upon the mind. We are some of us creatures even
of weather, not the same on a misty as on a bright day. There is much
in our physical economy rather within the province of the physician
than the Minister; much perhaps that we may be inclined too hastily
to censure in a brother, when a more accurate knowledge would open
our sympathy. When outward and inward troubles unite, what wonder,
if the vessel, like Paul's ship, "where two seas met" (Acts, xxvii. 41).
give way?† Yet, let it be remembered, that every indulgence increases
the evil; and that allowed prevalence may end in a fixed melancholy.
Turn and see what materials can be gathered for resistance to this
ruinous evil, and inducing a well-regulated cheerfulness. ‘Why am
not I at this moment utterly overwhelmed with distress? How
seldom, if ever, am I in pain all over at the same time! How faith-
fully do our greatest supports combine with our greatest trials!'
(2 Cor. i. 5.) Surely in these recollections some excitement of plea-
surable feeling might be directed into the channel of gratitude to God!
How many rays of collected mercy shine from the great centre of joy!
But to come more immediately to the gospel—Unquestionably
there is abundant matter for the deepest humiliation. No words can
adequately describe the shame, that we ought to feel for our insensi-
bility even on account of one single act of infinite love. Yet the
* Bp. HORNE's Sermon on a Merry Heart. Our English proverb is—‘Dry sorrow drinks
the blood'— sorrow that cannot weep!
† Chap. xii. 25; xv. 13. Job, xxx. 30. Ps. xxxii. 3, 4; cii. 3-5; cxix. 83. Comp.
Ecclus. xxx. 22; xxxviii. 18. Ovid's beautiful lines, Lib. i. ex Ponto. This mixture of
bodily aud mental anguish formed the completeness of our Lord's sufferings. Ps. xxii. 15;
lxix. 3.
274 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
gospel encourages humiliation, not despondency. It deals in the
realities, not of woe and despair, but of hope, peace, and joy. Its life
and glory is he that "bindeth up the broken-hearted" (Isa. lxi. 1),
who "will not break the bruised reed" (Ib. xlii. 3), or crush under his
feet "the prisoners of hope."
If then—Christian—you believe the gospel to be "glad tidings,"
shew that you believe it, by lighting up your face with a smile; not
by "bowing down the head as a bulrush," and as it were "spreading
sackcloth and ashes under you." (Ib. lviii. 5.) Shew that it is the day-
light of your soul; that you really find its ways to be "pleasantness
and peace" (Chap. iii. 17); that you believe their joys, not because you
have read and heard of them, but because you have tasted them. If
they are happy, be happy in them. "Lie not against the truth," by
suffering your countenance to induce the belief, that religion is a habit
of inveterate and incurable gloom. Joy is indeed a forbidden fruit to
the ungodly.1 But let it be the adorning of thy profession.2 It is a
sin against thy God to be without it.3 The gloom of the servant reflects
unjustly upon the Master, as if thou "knewest him, that he was an
hard man."4 Resist then all sorrow, that suggests such dishonourable
thoughts of him. Disparage not his heavenly comfort, by laying
unduly to heart his counter-balancing afflictions. No cloud can cover
you, but the "bow may be seen in the cloud." And in all this world's
afflictions, one beam of his love might scatter all the clouds, and fill
the heart with "joy unspeakable and full of glory." "Let the Lord
then be magnified, which hath pleasure," not in the misery, but in
"the prosperity of his servants." (Ps. xxxv. 27.) He giveth liberty to
be cheerful, ground to be cheerful, and he will give thee an heart. to be
cheerful with animated gladness.
After all, however,--let each be careful to cultivate a just and even
balance. Liveliness needs a guard, lest it should degenerate into levity.
Be much in secret with God. Cherish a solemn, reverential spirit
before the throne of grace. Christian joy is a deeply serious thing.
The froth and lightness that passes for it deserves not the name. The
carnal element must be destroyed, to introduce the heaven-born prin-
ciple, that comes from God, and maintains communion with him.
Yet on the other a grave temperament must be resisted, lest it
should sink into morbid depression. Gloom is not the portion, and
ought not to stamp the character, of the children of God. It may often
be a conflict with a man's own self, either in body or mind. But yet a
little while, and, instead of the broken spirit which drieth up the bones,
our spirits will be so high, that another body must be formed to contain
them. Meanwhile Christian discipline on both sides will be the principle
of enlarged happiness and steady consistency.
1 Hos. ix. 1. 2 Isa, lii.1, 2 ; lx. 1. 3 Deut. xxviii. 47. 4 Matt. xxv. 24.
CHAP. XVII. 23, 24. 275
23. A wicked man taketh a gift out of the bosom, to pervert the ways of
judgment.
Again we are warned of the corruption of gifts. (Verse 8.) No sin
has a deeper stamp of wickedness; none a more awful mark of Divine
visitation. (Isa. i. 23, 24. Ezra, xxii. 13.) The temptation is the test of
principle. Sir M. Hale (as his Biographer writes) ‘had learned from
Solomon, that a gift perverteth the ways of judgment.'* He always there-
fore rejected it with courteous integrity. Not even a good cause will
justify the evil practice. The Apostle, though restrained in bondage
from his great and blessed work, woald not gratify his covetous judge
by purchasing his release. (Acts, xxiv. 26.) The rules of the gospel
are clear and decisive. Let us not "do evil, that good may come.
Let not your good be evil spoken of. Abstain from all appearance of
evil." (Rom. iii. 8 ; xiv. 16. 1 Thess. v. 22.)
Even a corrupt world is ashamed of this sin. The gift is in the
bosom (Chap. xxi. 14), concealed from the eye of man. But how fear-
fully uncovered is it to the eye of God, who will not wink at the
endeavour to pervert his ways of judgment! How will he one day
vindicate his Omniscience from all the insults put upon it in the
world by those foolish men, who were not ashamed to do those things
in the face of God himself, in which they would not have wished the
meanest of his creatures to detect them!'†
Let every child of Abraham hear the command given to his father
—"Walk before me, and,be thou perfect." (Gen. xxii. 1.) "He that
walketh righteously, and speaketh uprightly—he that shaketh his
hands from holding of bribes---he shall dwell on high." (Isa. xxxiii.
15, 16. Ps. xv.)
24. Wisdom is before him that hath understanding; but the eyes of a fool
are in the ends of the earth.
Let us trace our interest in wisdom from the beginning. It first
"enters into the heart." (Chap. ii. 10.) There it "rests in him that hath
understanding" (Chap. xiv. 33), as his principle of conduct. Now it
is before his eyes in the Book of Wisdom, as his rule of faith and life.
(Ib. verse 8.) It is the centre, to which all his thoughts, motives, and
pursuits tend. All is now order. Every faculty, desire, and affection,
finds its proper place. ‘He that hath understanding fixeth his eyes upon
wisdom, and contenteth himself with that object; whereas the eyes of a
fool are constantly wandering everywhere; and his thoughts settle
upon nothing that may avail to his good.'‡ His eyes are in the ends
of the earth, rolling and wandering from one object to another. His
* Bishop BURNET'S Life. What a degrading contrast did Lord Bacon's character display!
† Lawson in loco. ‡ Bishop Hall.
276 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
thoughts are scattered. He has no definite object, no settled principle,
no certain rule. Talent, cultivation of mind, improvement of oppor-
tunity—all are frittered away. He cares for those things which are
furthest from him, and with which he has the least concern.
An original writer thus vividly pourtrays this inconstancy—'To-
day he goes to the quay to be shipped for Rome. But before the tides
come, his tide is turned. One party thinks him theirs; the adverse
theirs; he is with both; with neither; not an hour with himself.
Indifference is his ballast, and opinion his sail; he resolves not to
resolve. He knows not what he doth hold. He opens his mind to
receive notions, as one opens his palm to take an handful of water.
He hath very much, if he could hold it. He is sure to die, but not
what religion to die in. He demurs, like a posed lawyer, as if delay
could remove some impediments.--In a controverted point, he holds
with the last reasoner he either heard or read. The next diverts him,
and his opinion dwells with him perhaps so long as the teacher of it is
in his sight. He will rather take dross for gold, than try it in the
furnace. He receives many judgments, retains none.—He loathes
manna after two days' feeding.—His best dwelling would be his
confined chamber, where he would trouble nothing but his pillow. He
is full of business at Church; a stranger at home; a sceptic abroad;
an observer in the street; everywhere a fool.'*
This diversion is a great engine of the enemy. His great object
is to turn the mind aside from what is immediate to what is indefinite,
from what is plain and important to what is, unsearchable;1 from what
is personal to what is irrelevant.2 Many trifles take the place of the
"One thing needful." And is not this waste of time often a temptation
to the Christian? Where are his eyes, or his thoughts, at prayer?
Alas! too often, instead of "looking unto Jesus" (Heb. xii. 2), his
great object, the life of prayer, the only way to God--are they not
in the ends of the earth, as if there was no nearer, no better object of
attraction? Oh! do not we want simplicity of spiritual understanding
to keep him, the great untreated Wisdom, constantly before our eyes?
Lord! I am ashamed of my base inconstancy. But it is thou alone
canst heal it. "Turn away mine eyes from beholding vanity." (Ps.
cxix. 37.) Fix them—O fix them—on him, on whom all heaven, all
the redeemed, delight to gaze for ever.
25. A foolish son is a grief to his father, and bitterness to her that bare
him.
Surely the Divine Spirit did not repeat the proverb (Verse 21) for
nought. Was it not to deepen our sense of parental responsibility and
1 Deut. xxix. 29. Col. ii. 18. 2 Luke, xiii. 23, 24. John, xxi. 21, 22.
* Works of Rev. THOMAS ADAMS. Folio, 1630--The Soul's Sickness.
CHAP. XVII. 25. 277
filial obligation? Can parents be insensible to the prospect of this
grief? Can children be hardened into the unnatural selfishness of
piercing a parent's heart with such bitterness? (Chap. xix. 13.) The
mother's anguish is here added to the father's grief (Gen. xxvi. 35.)
"As a sword in her bones," is the apprehension of having "brought forth
children to the murderer." (Hos. ix. 13.) How uncertain are the
dearest comforts of earth! Our fallen mother anticipated the joy of
"having gotten a man"—perhaps the promised seed —"from the
Lord." (Gen. iv. 1.) Yet to the bitterness of her soul "he was of that
wicked one, and slew his brother." (1 John, iii. 12.) Her daughter
naturally "remembereth no more her sorrow, for joy that a man is born
into the world." (John, xvi. 21.) Already she grasps the delightful
vision of his infant training, and ripening maturity. And yet too
often he proves in the end a foolish son, and bitterness to her that bare
him.
Absalom was named 'His father's peace.' Yet was he the source
of his most poignant grief. This is not the "weeping of a night,"
succeeded by a "joyous morning" (Ps. xxx. 5); but the "heaviness
that maketh the heart stoop" (Chap. xii. 25), perhaps for years, perhaps
to the end of days. Its connexion with eternity gives to the trial its
keenest edge. To see a foolish son hurried irrevocably into his eternal
doom—Oh! this to the godly parent is an awful conflict. (2 Sam.
xviii. 33.) Strong indeed must be that faith (yet such faith has been
vouchsafed)1 which bows reverentially to the Divine Sovereignty, and
maintains the serenity of peaceful submission.
But parental anxieties and sorrows must stimulate the enquiry--
'How may this piercing thorn be spared, this bitter grief—the bitterest
that ever a parent's heart can know—averted?' The primary root of
this sorrow is the indulgence of the will.2 The vast power of parental
influence must be used wisely, at once, at any cost. We must not
instruct, or entreat only, but command.3 We must allow no appeal
from our authority, no reversal of our decision. This discipline in the
spirit of love, and enforced by example, is God's honoured ordinance.
Then to give power to all other means, there must be a living faith
in the word of God. For if I really believe that awful fact, that my
child is "a child of wrath," that Satan claims a right in him, and that
if he die unconverted, hell must be his everlasting portion; shall not I
apply myself with ceaseless energy to all the means for his soul's sal-
vation; under the clear conviction, that if he be not saved, "good were
it for him that he had not been born?"
But this faith brings encouragement fully proportioned to the
tremendous anxiety. For, if I be a Christian Parent, may I not claim
a place for my child in the covenant of God? (Gen. xvii. 7.) May I
1 Lev. x. 1-3. 1 Sam. iii. 18. 2 Chap. xxix. 15. 3 Gen. xviii. 19. 1 Sam. ii. 23-25.
278 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
not plead with him, and for him as a covenanted child? Here I desire
to exercise a sound balance of well-disciplined confidence; encouraging
parental hopes, and moderating parental anxieties. The law of the
kingdom is, "that men should pray always, and not faint." (Luke,
xviii. 1.) The fondest desires may not be accomplished till the
eleventh hour. There may be many haltings, many withering blasts,
many windings of the path. But "the bread cast upon the waters
shall be found," though it be not till "after many days." (Eccles. xi. 1.)
Only let us see to it, that our faith proves its soundness as a prac-
tical principle. Do parents never pray, that God would take their
children as his own, while yet they train them, as if they were for the
world? Are we sure, that we desire nothing for them besides, or
unconnected with, eternal life?* One such desire stirs up another;
till at length these few little things thrust down the primary blessing
from its place, and it becomes a nullity.
In fine—would we look for rest in our beloved children? (Gen. v.
29, marg.) Hold them loose for ourselves; fast for God. Connect
them early with his Church. Train their first years in his yoke.
Instead of a sinking grief to us, they will then be "the restorers of our
life, and the nourishers of our age." (Ruth, iv. 15.) Instead of being
our bitterness as rebels against God, he will own and seal them, as "a
seed to serve him, to declare his righteousness," to set forth his praise.
(Ps. xxii. 31; xcii. 13.)
26. Also to punish the just is not good, nor to strike princes for equity.
Often is the wise man's meaning much beyond his words. To
punish the just not only is not good,† but it is "the abomination" (Verse
15)—"an evident token of perdition." (Philip. i. 28.) If rulers are
"a terror to good works," they are Ministers of God in authority, but
Ministers of Satan in administration.l And how will such injustice
" abide the day of his coming," when he shall "lay judgment to the
line, and righteousness to the plummet!"2
Not less wicked is the sin of the people. To strike princes is high
treason against God.3 The Apostle confessed the unwilling sin of his
smiting words.4 Much more guilty is it to strike them for equity. A
godly king—ruling in equity, "scattering away all evil with his eyes”5
—will raise to himself many and powerful enemies. The evil-minded
will undermine his influence,6 or resist his authority.7 If they dare not
strike him openly, they will "curse him in their thoughts."8 To strike,
1 1 Kings, xxi. 11-13. Matt. xxvi. 3, 4. Acts, iv. 1-3.
2 Isa. xxviii. 17, with Mal. iii. 2, 5. 3 Job, xxxiv. 18.
4 Acts, xxiii. 5. Comp. 1 Sam. xxiv. 5, 6; 2 Sam. xvi. 5-7. 5 Chap. xx. 8.
6 2 Sam. xv. 1-6. 7 Ib. xx. 1. 8 Eccles. x. 20.
* Mark the golden rule, on which all hangs, Matt. vi. 33.
† See this same meiosis. Chap. xvi. 29; xviii. 5; xx. 23. Ps. li. 17. Ezek. xxxvi. 31.
CHAP. XVII. 27, 28. 279
even in word, is our sin.1 To pray is our duty. And who knoweth
what a prayer-hearing God would send--a righteous administration, a
covert and blessing to the land?2
27. He that hath knowledge spareth his words; and a man of understand-
ing is of an excellent (cool, marg.) spirit. 28. Even a fool, when he
holdeth his peace, is counted wise; and he that shutteth his lips is
esteemed a man of understanding.
The wisdom of these proverbs will be acknowledged by those, who
know the sins of the tongue, and the immense difficulty of restraining
the unruly member. A man of knowledge will spare his words, when the
probable prospect is harm rather than good. (Ps. xxxix. 1, 2. Matt.
vii. 6.) The good treasure is far too valuable to be unprofitably spent.
Silence is often the best proof of wisdom.* Our Lord in his divine
knowledge, careful as he was to improve every opportunity for instruc-
tion, sometimes spared his words. (Matt. xvi. 4.)
This restraint is most important under provocation.3 Passion
demands immediate judgment. A cool, well-tempered understanding
asks further time for consideration. The fiery ebullition of the Apostles,
their Master judged to be the want of an excellent understanding. (Luke,
ix. 54, 55.) Nehemiah, by repressing the first vent of his righteous
anger, gave a reasonable and convincing answer for the occasion.†
The prophet wisely refrained even a message from God to a king in
the moment of passion. (2 Chron. xxv. 16.) ‘A little spark blows up
one of sulphureous temper; and many coals, greater injuries, and
reproaches are quenched, and lose their force, being thrown at another
of a cool spirit.'‡ Indeed a fool may purchase to himself the reputation
of wisdom, if only he shut his mouth, instead of exposing his folly to
common observation. (Contrast chap. xv. 2; xxix. 11.) ‘He cannot
be known for a fool, that says nothing. He is a fool, not who hath
unwise thoughts, but who utters them. Even concealed folly is
wisdom.'§
How infinitely momentous is the account, which God takes of the
1 2 Pet. ii. 10. Jude, 8, 2 1 Tim. ii. 1-3. 2 Sam. xxiii. 3. Isa. xxxii. 1, 2.
3 Num. xii. 1, 2. Ps. xxxviii. 12-14. Isa. M. 7.
* Chap. x. 19. Job, xiii. 5. Comp. Ecclus. v. 12, 13; xxxii. 7-9. Dr. Good in his note
on Job, xiii. 5, gives a translation of an Arabic poetical proverb.
Keep silence then; nor speak, but when besought;
Who listens long, grows tired of what is told:
With tones of silver though thy tongue be fraught,
Know this—that silence of itself is gold.
† Neh. v. 6-11. Cicero advises his brother Quintus (a proconsul in Asia) most diligently
to restrain his tongue under anger, which—he adds—is no less a virtue, than freedom
from anger itself.—Epist. ad Q. FRATREM, lib. i. 1.
‡ LEIGHTON on 1 Pet. iii. 9.
§ Bishop HALL. Works, viii. 83.
280 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
tongue! "Death and life are in the power of it." (Chap. xviii. 21.)
Our eternal acceptance or condemnation will—in part at least--hang
on it. (Matt. xii. 36, 37.) How could we endure the judgment for
"every idle," no less than for every wicked "word," if there were not
for the self-abased penitent a covering from this condemnation, a
cleansing from this guilt, a seal of acceptance? (Isa. vi. 7.)
CHAPTER XVIII:
1. Through desire a man, having separated himself, seeketh and inter-
meddleth with all wisdom. 2. A fool hath no delight in understanding,
but that his heart may discover itself.
DESIRE is the chariot-wheel of the soul, the spring of energy and delight.
The man of business or science is filled with his great object; and
through desire he separates himself from all lets and hindrances, that he
may intermeddle with its whole range. "This one thing"--saith the
man of God—"I do." (Philip. iii. 13.) This one thing is everything
with him. He separates himself from all outward hindrances, vain com-
pany, trifling amusements or studies, needless engagements, that he
may seek and intermeddle with all wisdom. John separated himself in the
wilderness,1 Paul in Arabia,2 our blessed Lord in frequent retirement,3
in order to greater concentration in their momentous work. Deeply
does the Christian Minister feel the responsibility of this holy separation,
that he may "give himself wholly to" his office. (1 Tim. iv. 15. 2 Tim.
ii. 4.) Without it—Christian--thy soul can never prosper. How
canst thou intermeddle with the great wisdom of knowing thyself, if thy
whole mind be full of this world's chaff and vanity? There must be a
withdrawal, to "commune with thine own heart" and to ask the
questions—"Where art thou? What doest thou here?" Much is
there to be enquired into and pondered. Everything here calls for our
deepest, closest thoughts. We must walk with God in secret, or the
enemy will walk with us, and our souls will die. "Arise, go forth into
the plain, and I will there talk with thee." (Ezek. iii. 22.) "When
thou wast under the fig-tree, I saw thee." (John, i. 48.) Deal much in
secrecy, if thou wouldst know "the secret of the Lord." Like thy
Divine Master, thou wilt never be less alone than when alone. (Ib.
xvi. 32.) There is much to be wrought, gained, and enjoyed. Thy
most spiritual knowledge, thy richest experience will be found here.
Men who live without retirement may be fluent talkers, and accurate
preachers. But nothing comes as from a broken and contrite heart.
The want of unction paralyses all spiritual impression. No intelligent,
1 Luke, i. 80. 2 Gal. i. 17. 3 Mark, i. 35; vi. 31. Luke, vi. 12.
CHAP. XVIII. 3. 281
self-observant Christian but feels the immense moment of combining
holy solitude with active life, as the nourishment of his faith, and with
it of every Christian grace. Sir M. Hale left this testimony--'I have
endeavoured to husband this short, uncertain, important talent (time)
by dedicating and setting apart some portion of it to prayer and
reading of thy word; which I have constantly and peremptorily
observed, whatever occasions interposed, or importunity persuaded to
the contrary.*
And then, when we look around us into the infinitely extended field
of the Revelation of God, what a world of heavenly wisdom is there to
intermeddle with! In the hurry of this world's atmosphere how little
can we apprehend it! And yet such is the field of wonder, that the
contemplation of a single point overwhelmed the Apostle with adoring
astonishment. (Rom. xi. 33.) Here are "things, which even the angels
desire to look into." (1 Pet. i. 12.) The redeemed) will be employed
throughout eternity in this delighted searching; exploring "the
breadth, and length, and depth, and height," until they be "filled with
all the fulness of God." (Eph. iii. 18, 19.) Surely then if we have any
desire, we shall separate ourselves from the cloudy atmosphere around
us, that we may have fellowship with these happy investigators of the
Divine mysteries.
Yet the fool hath no delight in his understanding. All his desire is to
pour out his own frivolity, to come abroad from public observation, that
his heart may discover itself—an humiliating discovery, indeed, at once
of the scantiness of his knowledge and the vanity of his mind.
3. When the wicked cometh, then cometh also contempt, and with
ignominy reproach.
Selfishness is the character of the wicked. ‘Wheresoever he cometh,
he is apt to cast contempt and reproach upon every man's face.'† His
neighbour's circumstances or infirmities furnish materials to hold him
up to scorn. The word of God has no favour in his eyes. His people
are the objects of his reproach. Their seriousness he calls gloom, their
cheerfulness levity. (Matt. xi. 18, 19.) If "none occasion or fault can
be found" (Dan. vi. 4), invention forges it with unwearied ingenuity.
"As saith the proverb of the ancients, wickedness proceedeth from the
wicked." (1 Sam. xxiv. 13.) We must calculate upon, this furnace,
though the fires of martyrdom are extinguished. Our blessed Lord
bore all the evils of the world without flinching. But contempt and
reproach pierced his soul more keenly, than the "nails did his hands
and his feet." "Reproach," saith he--"hath broken my heart."1 And
1 Ps. lxix. 20. Matt. xxvii. 39-44.
* The Good Steward. Contemplations, pp. 238, 239,
† Bishop Hall. Comp. chap. xxix. 16.
282 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
must not the servant expect to be as his Master?1 Often however
does retributive justice overwhelm the wicked themselves with ignominy
and reproach.2 A scornful spirit against the godly is never forgotten.
Every bitter word is registered against the great day.3 And what a
sight will it then be, when the reviled shall stand forth, clothed with
all the glory of "the King of saints," and the faces of their persecutors
shall be covered with "everlasting shame and contempt!" (Dan. xii. 2.)
The sight of that day will never be blotted out! The rebuke of his
people shall be taken away from off all the earth, "for the Lord hath
spoken it." (Isa. xxv. 8.)
4. The words of a man's mouth are as deep waters, and the well-spring
of wisdom as a flowing brook.
‘This sentence expresses the depth, the, abundance, the clearness,
and the force of the counsels of the wise man.'* The last clause gives
this restriction to wisdom. When "a man has intermeddled with all
wisdom," his words are in themselves deep waters, and in their com-
munication fruitful as a flowing brook. His wisdom is a well-spring,
‘which sends up full brooks, that are ready to overflow their banks. So
plentiful is he in good discourse and wholesome counsel!'† So deep
were the waters from the wise man's spring, that his words nearly over-
whelmed the capacity of his royal hearer. (1 Kings, x. 4-8.) One
"greater than Solomon" "astonished the people" by the clearness, no
less than by the depth of the waters. (Matt. vii. 28, 29.) No blessing is
more valuable than a "rich indwelling of the word," ready to be brought
out on all suitable occasions of instruction 4 If the wise man some-
times "spares his words,"5 it is not for want of matter, but for greater
edification. The stream is ready to flow, and sometimes can scarcely
be restrained.6 The cold-hearted, speculative professor has his flow--
sometimes a torrent of words, yet without a drop of profitable matter;
chilling, even when doctrinally correct; without life, unction, or love.
Lord! deliver us from this barren "talk of the lips." (Chap. xiv. 23.)
May our waters be deep, flowing from thine own inner sanctuary, re-
freshing, and fertilizing the Church of God!
This well-spring is specially invigorating, when, as in Chrysostom,
it gives an heavenly glow to outward eloquence. Consecrated mind
and talent are the gifts of God. Oh! let them be improved in sim-
plicity, not for the creature's honour, but for the glory of the Great
Giver.
1 Matt. x. 25. John, xv. 20. 2 2 Sam. vi. 20-23. Esth. vii. 9, 10.
3 1 Pet. iv. 4, 5. Jude, 14, 15. 4 Col. iii. 16; iv. 6.
5 Chap. xxvii. 27. 6 Job, xxxii. 19. Jer. xx. 9. Acts, xvii. 16.
* Calmet. † Bishop Hall. Comp. chap. x. 11; xvi. 22; xx. 5.
CHAP. XVIII. 5, 6. 283
5. It is not good to accept the person of the wicked, to overthrow the
righteous in judgment.
Were not "the foundations of the earth out of course," should we
hear of so gross a violation of the rule of right? (Ps. lxxxii. 2-5.) But
in a world, of which Satan is "the god and the prince;" injustice is a
natural principle of administration. The godly king of Judah pointed
his judges to the Divine example—‘Look —and be like Him.'
(2 Chron. xix. 7.) Everything revolting is connected with wickedness.
There is no one so noble, that it does not degrade so lovely, that it
does not deform; so learned, that it does not befool. To accept there-
fore his person, is indeed not good.1 "Abomination," is its true name --
the stamp of God.2 ‘Whatever excuses man may make for its course,
it is an offence to God, an affront to justice, a wrong to mankind, and a
real service done to the kingdom of sin and Satan.'* In judgment let
the cause be heard, not the person. Let the person be punished for his
wickedness, not the wickedness be covered for the person's sake. When,
as in the case of Naboth, the person of the wicked was accepted, to over-
throw the righteous in judgment, it overthrows the throne of judgment in
the land. The Shechemites were sharply punished for their sin, in
accepting Abimelech to the overthrow of the righteous claims of Gideon's
house. (Judg. ix.) No wonder. In such wickedness the rights of God
are despised; the claims of his justice are cast off. "He that ruleth
over men must be just, ruling in the fear of God." (2 Sam. xxiii. 3.)
Such was our Divine pattern in the flesh: "of quick understanding in
the fear of the Lord," and therefore "judging in righteousness." (Isa.
xi. 4.) Such will be his judgment, when "he shall judge the world
in righteousness." (Acts, xvii. 31.) His decision will be exact; his
sentence unchangeable.
6. A fool's lips enter into contention, and his mouth calleth for strokes.
7. A fool's mouth is his destruction, and his lips are the snare of his
soul.
It is not a little remarkable, that the Apostle, when giving the
anatomy of man's depravity, should dwell chiefly upon "the little
member" with all its accompaniments—the throaty--the tongue—
the lips—the mouth. (Rom. iii. 13.) Such a world of iniquity is it,
defiling the whole body! (Jam. iii. 6.) We often see its mischief to
others; here is the mischief to the man himself. The fool's lips enter
into contention. This is folly indeed. The wise man may be drawn
into it by infirmity of temper,3 or by the force of circumstances.4 But
1 Chap. xvii. 26; xxiv. 23; xxviii. 21.
2 Chap. xvii. 15. Comp. Lev. xix. 15; Deut. i. 16, 17.
3 Acts, xv. 39. 4 Gen. xi i. 8.
* Henry.
284 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
“as much as in him lies, he will live peaceably with all men,”l
quenching even the first rising of contention.2 The fool enters into it, by
intermeddling needlessly with strife,3 or wilfully stirring it up,4 ‘like
the alarum of war, and drums beating up to the battle.'* And thus he
makes a rod for himself.5 He puts a weapon into the hands of Satan,
with which to beat his own head, and hammers him with fearful strokes 6
The wilful contention of the men of Succoth and Penuel with Gideon
called for strokes.7 The scoffing mouth of the little children was their
merited destruction.8 The slanderous lips of Daniel's persecutors were
the snare of their soul.9 There is no need to dig a pit for the fool. He
digs it for himself.10 The mouths of wild beasts devour each other.
The fool's mouth is his own destruction." The fowler's snare is not
wanted; for "he is snared by the transgression of his lips." (Chap. xii.
13.) He is not only the cause, but the agent of his own destruction.
And shall not the child of God watch in godly fear, lest his folly
should call for his Father's stroke? Sharply may he "hew" by the
sword. (Hos. vi. 5.) He may be as if he would seem to kill, in order
to make alive. All this is, that he may embitter sin, and endear
returning mercy. Always is it wise and gracious love, as one of the
Fathers says—‘threatening, that he may not strike: and striking, that
he may not destroy.' If shewing the rod will effect the purpose, gladly
will he forbear to strike. But if our folly—as Leighton speaks pulls
punishment out of his hands,'† whom but ourselves have we to thank
for the smart?
8. The words of a talebearer are as wounds, and they go down into the
innermost parts of the belly.
Do men deny, question, or soften clown the depravity of our nature?
Mark again how the virulent poison of only one member destroys
practical godliness, social order, and mutual friendship. The talebearer
was expressly forbidden by the law (Lev. xix. 16), and not less is he
opposed to the spirit of the gospel. (1 Cor. xiiii. 6.) No character indeed
is more despicable; no influence more detestable. It is right indeed,
that we should exercise interference with each other, and mutual
inspection. It is a hard selfishness only, that asks the question—
"Am I my brother's keeper?" (Gen. iv. 9.) The rule is clear—"Look
not every one on his own, but every man also on the things of others."
(Philip. ii. 4.) The rule is at once illustrated and enforced by an
example magnificent and constraining. It is "the mind that was in
Christ Jesus himself." Had the Son of God "looked at his own things,"
1 Rom. xii. 18; xiv. 19. 2 Chap. xvii. 14. 3 Chap. xx. 3; xxvi. 17.
4 Chap. xvi. 27, 28. 5 Chap. xiv. 3; xix. 19, 29. 6 Chap. xxvi. 21.
7 Judg. viii. 4-17. 8 2 Kings, ii. 23, 24. 9 Dan. vi. 13.
10 Ps. vii. 15; 1xiv. 8. 11 Chap. x. 8, 14; xiii. 3. Eccles. x. 12, 13.
* Cartwright in loco. † Works, v. 114.
CHAP. XVIII. 9. 285
and not "at the things of others," would he have emptied himself of his
divine glory? Would he have humbled himself to the accursed cross?
(Ib. verse 5-8.)
Again—the bond of the interference will be determined by the
principle of the love of our neighbour. It is right therefore to "bring
an evil report,"1 for the prevention of sin. Eli was thus enabled, though
without effect, to remonstrate with his sons.2 The life of an Apostle
was by this means preserved.3 Serious evils in the Church were re-
strained or corrected.4 But no good results can arise from the spirit of
the talebearer, because with him it is pure selfishness,5 without a principle
beyond the love of sin for its own sake. He lives upon the scandal of
the place, and makes it his hateful business to carry about tales, or
slanders of his neighbour's faults.* Such reports are eagerly devoured,
and the mischief-maker feeds with greedy appetite upon the fruit of his
cruel indulgence. To him this may appear harmlees play. But if it
draws no blood, and no outward hurt is shewn, an internal, and often
incurable, wound is inflicted. (Chap. xxvi. 22.) We may seem to make
light of the tale brought to our ears, and wholly to despise it, But the
subtle poison has worked. 'Suppose it 'should be true. Perhaps,
though it may be exaggerated, there may be some ground for it.' The
thought indulged only for a moment brings suspicion, distrust, coldness;
and often it ends in the separation of chief friends.6 So dangerous a
member in the frame is the tongue without stern determined controul!
The tale of an unguarded moment may be a tremendous irreparable
injury. The evil humour may meet with a welcome audience in good
society, where but for the food which scandal supplies, conversation
would drag heavy. But no favour can alter its real character, as an
abomination both with God and man. Ah! what but the power of
holy love, opening freely the channels of kindness and forbearance, can
overcome this mischievous propensity? And what will bring this
spirit of love, but a true interest in Christian privileges, and a cor-
responding sense of Christian obligations? (Col. iii. 12-14.)
9. He also that is slothful in his work is brother to him that is a great
waster.
Observe the affinity of the different principles and workings of
corruption. The sluggard and the prodigal belong to the same family.
1 Chap. xxiv. 11, 12. Gen. xxxvii. 2. Lev. v. 1. 2 1 Sam. ii. 23, 24.
3 Acts, xxiii. 13. Contrast Jer. xl. 13-16; xli. 1, 2. 4 1 Cor. i. 11; xi. 18.
5 Jer. xx. 10. 6 Chap. xvi. 23; xvii. 9. 1 Sam. xxiv. 9; xxvi. 19. 2 Sam. xvi. 1-4.
* The word properly signifies a pedlar, who buys goods (stolen ones it may be) at one
place, and sells them at another, taking care to make his own market of them. So a tale-
bearer makes his own visits, to pick up at one place, and utter at another, that which he
thinks will lessen his neighbour's reputation, that he may build his own upon it.'--
M. HENRY's Sermon on Friendly Visits. Comp. chap. xi. 13; xx. 19.
286 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
The man who "hid the Lord's talent," was equally unfaithful with him
who "wasted his goods." (Matt. xxv. 25. Luke, xvi. 1.) The slothful
has no heart for his work. Important opportunities slip by. His stock,
instead of increasing by trade, gradually dwindles into penury. ‘God
hath a bountiful "hand, and filleth all things living with plenteousness."
(Ps. cxly. 16. P. T.) But unless we have a diligent hand, wherewith to
receive it, we may starve. He that by the sloth of his hand disfurnisheth
himself of the means of getting, he is as near of kin to a waster as may
be.'* He is the brother of a great waster—the lord of a large estate,
who, instead of husbanding, improving, and enjoying it, wastes it away
in extravagance and folly.
It is the same in religion. The one is content with heartless ortho-
doxy. His secret prayer brings no after remembrance. His family
worship is a routine of formality, not the influential ordinance of the
day. "Communing with his heart" is mere barren generality, bringing
no accurate and humbling knowledge of himself. And wherein does
he differ from the careless waster of his privileges? Where is the
important distinction between him who prays, reads, and works
formally, and him, who utterly casts these high privileges away?
Both take the same course, though by a somewhat different track.
The one folds his arms in sloth. The other opens his hands in waste-
fulness. The one gets nothing. The other spends what he gets. The
one rushes into beggary. The other sits still, and waits its arrival.
(Chap. vi. 11.) The one dies by a rapid and violent disease. The
other by a slow, subtle, but sure, consumption. Thus fearful is the
guilt, solemn is the account, certain is the ruin, of both. God gives
talents, not only to enrich, but to employ. And whether they be
selfishly neglected, or carelessly thrown away—"Thou wicked servant"
will be the condemnation; "outer darkness" will be the just and
eternal doom. (Matt. xxv. 26-30.) Servant of Christ! let thy Master's
life be thy pattern and thy standard. Not a moment with him was
slothfully neglected; not a moment unprofitably wasted. Equally
fervent was he in daily work, as in nightly prayer. Follow him in his
work, and thou wilt be honoured with his revard. (John, xii. 26.)
10. The name of the Lord is a strong tower: the righteous rwnneth into it,
and is safe (set aloft, marg.) 11. The rich, man's wealth is his strong
city, and as an high wall in his own conceit.
Consciousness of danger induces even the animal creation to seek
for a refuge.1 To man, a strong tower offers such a covert.2 But man
as a sinner—does he realize his imminent peril, his threatened ruin?
Oh! let him believe his welcome into the strong tower set before him.
1 Chap. xxx. 26. Ps. civ. 18. 2 Judg. ix. 51. 2 Chron. xiv. 7; xxvi. 9.
* Bishop SANDERSON's Sermon on 1 Cor. vii. 24.
CHAP. XVIII. 10. 287
Such is the name of the Lord; not the bare outward words, operating as
a charm, but his character; that by which he is known, as a man by his
name. The full "declaration of this name" sets outmost powerfully the
strength of the tower. Every letter adds confirmation to our faith. (Exod.
xxxiv. 5-7.) Every renewed manifestation brings a fresh sunbeam of
light and blessing.*
Take the sinner in his first awakening conviction. He trembles at the
thought of eternal condemnation. He looks forward—all is terror;
backward—nothing but remorse; inward—all is darkness. Till now,
he had no idea of his need of salvation. His enemy now suggests that
it is beyond his reach; that he has sinned too long and too much,
against too much light and knowledge ; how can he be saved? But
the name of the Lord meets his eye. He spells out every letter, and
putting it together, cries—"Who is a God like unto thee?" (Mic. vii.
18.) He runs to it, as to a strong tower. His burden of conscience is
relieved. His soul is set free, and he enjoys his safety.
Take—again—the child of God—feeble, distressed, assaulted.
What, if I should return to the world, look back, give up my profes-
sion, yield to my own deceitful heart, and perish at last with aggravated
condemnation?' You are walking outside the gates of your tower; no
wonder that your imprudence exposes you to "the fiery darts of the
wicked." Read again the name of the Lord! Go back within the
walls—See upon the tower the name—"I am the Lord; I change not."
(Mal. iii. 6.) Read the direction to trust in it—"Who is there among
you that feareth the Lord, that obeyeth the voice of his servant: that
walketh in darkness, and path no light? Let him trust in the name of
the Lord, and stay upon his God." (Isa. i. 10.) Mark the warrant of
experience in this trust—"They that know thy name shall put their
trust in thee; for thou, Lord, hast not forsaken them, that seek thee."
(Ps. ix. 10.)
Thus sense of danger, knowledge of the way, confidence in the
strength of the tower—all gives a spring of life and earnestness to run
into it.† Here the righteous—the man justified by thine grace, and sanc-
tified by the Spirit, of God--runneth every day, every hour; realizing
at once his fearful danger, and his perfect security. Within these
walls, who of us needs to fear the sharpest or swiftest, dart that may be
shot against us? We realize our security from external trouble,l and
in trying exercises of faith! We are safe from his avenging justice,
1 Deut. xxxiii. 27-29. Ps. 1xi. 3; xci. 2. Isa. liv. 14.
* See the New Testament names of God. Rom. xv. 5, 13. 2 Cor. i. 3; v. 19. 1 Pet.
v. 10.
† See the examples of Jacob, Gen. xxxii. 11, 28, 29. David, 1 San. xxx. 6. Ps. lvi. 3.
Asa, 2 Chron. xiv. 11; Jehoshaphat, xx. 12. Hezekiah, 2 Kings, xix 14-19. The Apostles,
Acts, iv. 24-33.
288 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
from the curse of his law, from sin, from condemnation, from the
second death.1 We joy in our safety2--yea--in our exaltation.3
Our best interests are beyond the reach of harm;4 and "the righteous
nation" takes up the song of triumph—‘We have a strong city;
Salvation will God appoint for walls and for bulwarks."5
But only the righteous are found here. What know the ungodly of
this refuge? ‘Our God's mercy is holy mercy. He knows how to
pardon sin, not to protect it. He is a sanctuary to the penitent, not
to the presumptuous.'* Yet what joy is it, that the gates of this city
are always open! No time is unseasonable. No distance, no feeble-
ness, hinders the entrance. The cripple may run, like "Asahel, swift of
foot." (2 Sam. ii. 18.) All that enter are garrisoned to salvation.
Satan is raising batteries against the fort, using all means to take it,
by strength or stratagem, unwearied in his assaults, and very skilful to
know his advantages.'† But notwithstanding all his disturbing power,
"the peace of God" daily fortifies our hearts from fear of evil.6 Such is
our strong tower! What owe we to our gracious Saviour, who has
made our way to it so free, so bright?7 We repose in the bosom of
God, and are at peace.
But the rich man has his strong city yea--and his high walls. (Chap.
x. 15.) Well does the wise man add—in his own conceit. Little does
he think, that in a moment they may crumble to the dust, and leave
him in the fearful ruin of an unsheltered state. ‘Trouble will find an
entrance into his castle. Death will storm, and take it. And judgment
will sweep both him and it into perdition.'‡
The histories of David and Saul contrast most strikingly trouble
with or without a refuge.8 An affecting contrast does our Lord draw
between a real and an imaginary refuge!9 Every man is as his trust.
A trust in God communicates a divine and lofty spirit. We feel that
we are surrounded with God, and dwelling on high with him. Oh, the
sweet security of the weakest believer, shut up in an impregnable
fortress! A vain trust brings a vain and proud heart, the immediate
forerunner of ruin.
12. Before destruction the heart of man is haughty, and before honour is
humility.
We have had both these Proverbs separately. (Chap. xvi. 18; xv. 33.)
1 Job, xiii. 15. 2 Ps. xviii. 1-3. Isa. xxv. 4. 3 M. R. Isa. xxxiii. 16.
4 Col. iii. 3. 5 Isa. xxvi. 1-4.
6 Philip. iv. 7. Gr. Comp. chap. i. 33; xiv. 26. 7 Matt. xi. 27. John, i. 18; xiv. 6.
8 1 Sam. xxx. 6; with xxviii. 15. Comp. Isa. i. 10, 11. 9 Matt. vii. 24-27.
* Bishop REYNOLDS on Hos. xiv. 1, 2. † 1 Pet. i. 5 Gr. Leighton on the passage.
‡ Scott. Comp. Ezek. xxviii. 1-10. Luke, xii. 18-20. See also a fine passage in the
Rambler, in Dr. Johnson's best style of solemn instructiveness. No. 65.
CHAP. XVIII. 12. 289
Surely this repetition, like our Lord's often-repeated parallel,* was in-
tended to deepen our sense of their importance. It is hard to persuade
a man that he is proud. Every one protests against this sin. Yet who
does not cherish the viper in his own bosom? Man so little under-
stands, that dependence upon his God constitutes the creature's happi-
ness, and that the principle of independence is madness, and its end
—destruction. (Gen. iii. 5, 6.) The haughty walk on the brink of a
fearful precipice; only a miracle preserves them from instant ruin. The
security of the child of God is, when he lies prostrate in the dust. If he
soar high, the danger is imminent, though he be on the verge of
heaven. (2 Cor. xii. 1-7.)
The danger to a young Christian lies in an over-forward profession.
The glow of the first love, the awakened sensibility to the condition of
his perishing fellow-sinners; ignorance of the subtle working of inbred
vanity, the mistaken zeal of injudicious friends—all tends to foster self-
pleasing. Oh! let him know, that before honour is humility. In the
low valley of Humiliation special manifestations are realized.l Enlarged
gifts, and apparently extending usefulness, without growing more
deeply into the humility of Christ, will be the decline, not the advancing
of grace. That undoubtedly is the most humbled spirit, that has most of
the spirit of Christ. The rule of entry into his school--the first step of
admission to his kingdom is--"Learn of me, for I am meek and lowly
in heart." (Matt. xi. 29.)
The spring of this humility is true self-knowledge. Whatever may
be seen of a man externally to his advantage, let him keep his eye
looking within; and the real sight of himself must lay him low. When
he compares his secret follies with his external decency—what appears
to his fellow-creatures with what he knows of himself--he can but cry
out—"Behold I am vile! I abhor myself!" (Job, xl.4.) The seat of
this precious grace is not in words, meltings, or tears, but in the heart.
No longer will he delude himself with a false conceit of what he has
not, or with a vain conceit of what he has. The recollection—"Who
maketh thee to differ?" (1 Cor. iv. 7) is ever present, to press him down
under the weight of infinite obligations. Its fruit is lowliness of mind,
meekness of temper, thankfulness in receiving reproof, forgetfulness of
injury, readiness to be lightly regarded. No true greatness can there
be without this deep-toned humility. This is he "whom the King
delighteth to honour." "Blessed are the poor in spirit for theirs is the
kingdom of heaven. He raiseth up the poor out of the dust, that he
may set him with princes, even with the princes of his people." (Matt.
v. 3. Ps. cxiii. 7, 8.)
1 Job, x1ii. 5,6. Isa. vi. 5-7. Dan. ix. 20-23.
* Matt. xxiii. 12. Luke, xiv. 11; xviii. 14. See Hoyt. Od. i. 34.
290 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
13. He that answereth a matter (returneth a word, marg.) before he
heareth it, it is folly and a shame unto him.
Too often is this Proverb verified in common life. Men will scarcely
hear out what is unacceptable to them. They will break in upon a
speaker, before they have fully heard him, and therefore answer a matter,
which they have little weighed, and but imperfectly understood. The
eager disputant prides himself on his acute judgment. He interrupts his
opponent, and confutes arguments, or contradicts statements, before he
has fairly heard them.* Job's friends seem to have erred here.1 Elihu,
on the other hand, considerately restrained himself, till he had thoroughly
heard the matter.2 Job himself prudently "searched out the cause that
he knew not."3 This impatient spirit tells (little for candour or hu-
mility, and only stamps a man's character with folly and shame. It is
fraught with injustice in the court of law. (Jahn, vii. 45-52.) Here at
least the judge must carefully hear and weigh both sides for a satisfac-
tory verdict. The wise man thoroughly heard his difficult case, before
he gave judgment.4 Job was scrupulously exact in thus "contending
with his servant."5 "The rich man, when his steward was accused to
him, that he had wasted his goods," did not turn him away upon the
mere report, but he examined his account.6 On the other hand,
Potiphar, from the want of this upright considerateness, was guilty of
the most flagrant wrong? The Eastern autocrats seldom cared to sift
accusations. Even "the man after God's heart" grievously sinned in
this matter. But their hasty decisions brought shame upon them,
being either covered over, or virtually retracted s our Lord's matter
was answered, before it was heard.9 The Apostle met with similar
treatment,10 though at other times he found a more impartial judg-
ment.11
This folly was directly forbidden by God's law.12 It was no less
contrary to his own procedure. He examined Adam, before he pro-
nounced judgment.13 He came down to see Babel and Sodom, previous
to their destruction, for the more clear demonstration of his justice.14
While on earth, patient investigation marked its decisions.15 "All his
ways are judgment; a God of truth, and without iniquity, just and
right is he."16
1 Job, xx. 1-3; xxi. 1-6. 2 Ib. xxxii. 4, 10, 11. 3 Ib. xxix. 16.
4 1 Kings, iii. 16-28. Comp. chap. xxv. 2. 5 Job, xxxi 13.
6 Luke, xvi. 1, 2. 7 Gen. xxxix. 17-20.
8 Esth. iii. 8-11; viii. 5-13. Dan. vi. 9, 14, 24. 2 Sam. xvi. 1-4; xix. 26-30.
9 Luke, xxii. 66-71. 10 Acts, xxii. 21, 22; xxiii. 2.
11 Ib. xxiii. 30-35; xxiv. 1-22; xxv. 1-5, 24-27; xxvi. 30-32.
12 Deut. xiii. 12-14; John, vii. 24. 13 Gen. iii. 9-19. 14 Ib. xi. 5; xviii. 20, 21
15 Matt. xxii. 15-33, with Isa. xi. 3. 16 Deut. xxxii. 4. Comp. 1 Sam. ii. 3.
* See the wise rules, Ecclus. xi. 7, 8.
CHAP. XVIII. 14. 291
14. The spirit of a man will sustain his infirmity: but a wounded spirit
who can bear?
Man is born in a world of trouble, with considerable power of
endurance. Natural courage and vivacity of spirit's will bear us up
even under the pressure of ponderous evils, poverty, pain, sickness,
want. Instances of heathen fortitude abound in the records of history.*
Christian principle strengthens the natural strengths. David, in the
most fearful extremity, "encouraged himself in the Lord his God."
(1 Sam. xxx. 6.) Job could bless God under accumulated external
trials. (Job, i. 21.) The Apostle "took pleasure in infirmities." (2 Cor.
xii. 10.) The martyrs "were more than conquerors" under the most
cruel tortures. (Rom. viii. 37.) Outward troubles are tolerable, yea—
more than tolerable, if there be peace within. The spirit of a man may
sustain his infirmity. But if the spirit be wounded—if the prop itself be
broken—all sinks. ‘If the strength that is in me be weakness, how
great is that weakness.'† The wound of the spirit is so much the
more piercing, as the spirit itself is more vital than the body. The
grief gains the victory, and becomes intolerable.
The most powerful minds are easily vulnerable. Even our great
Newton, ‘endowed with an intellectual strength, which had unbarred
the strongholds of the universe,' and distinguished also by ‘unbroken
equanimity,' in middle life was a prey to mental dejetions, that, as he
informs us, shook his 'former consistency.'‡ Boyle describes his
wounded spirit, as so overpowering for many months, that, ‘although
his looks did little betray his thoughts, nothing but the forbiddenness
of self-dispatch hindered his committing it.'§ So long as the evil is
without us, it is tolerable. Natural courage can bear up. But a wounded
spirit who can bear.
In the spiritual system—the pressure is yet more sinking. When
he who made the spirit wounds, or permits Satan to wound, we might
challenge the whole creation—Who can bear it? The suffering of the
soul is the soul of suffering. Spiritual wounds, like the balm that heals
them, can never be known, till they are felt. It is sometimes, as if the
arrows of the Almighty were dipped in the lake of fire, and shot flaming
into the very midst of the soul, more sensitive than the apple of the
eye. (Job, vi. 4.) The best joys of earth can never soothe the
envenomed sting. Mirth is madness and vexation. (Eccles. ii. 2.)
There is a hell for the wicked on this side eternity. Man becomes
a burden to himself. Cain's "punishment was greater than he could
bear." (Gen. iv. 13.) Saul was given up to the blackness of despair
* See Virgil's fine picture of AEneas.—AEn. i. 208, 209.
† Bishop SANDERSON'S Sermon on Heb. xii. 3. Comp. chap. xv. 13; xvii. 22.
‡ Sir D. BREWSTER'S Life, pp. 224, 232-235.
§ JONES's Christian Biography—Article, Boyle.''
292 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF'' PROVERBS.
(1 Sam. xxviii. 15.) Zimri in rebellious madness threw himself into
the flames. (1 Kings, xvi. 18.) Pashur was made a terror to himself.
(Jer. xx. 4.) Ahithophel and Judas "chase strangling rather than
life." (2 Sam. xvii. 23. Matt. xxvii. 5.) Thus are the torments of
eternity antedated. One hell is kindled within, before entering into
the other. Such is the foretaste of hell—only a few drops of wrath--
for a few moments. What will be the reality--the substance—for
eternity!
Observe the poignancy of the wounded spirit in the children of God.
Job, delivered "for a small moment" into the enemy's power, "cursed
the day of his birth." (Job, iii. 1.) David "roared for the disquietness
of his heart." "The arrows of the Almighty stuck in him, and his hand
pressed him sore." (Ps. xxxviii. 1-8.) The martyrs* in a moment of
temporary apostasy, could not endure the anguish of the wounded spirit
and chose the flames as the less bitter alternative. Such is the sharp-
ness of the Lord's sword, and the weight of his hand, that every stroke
is deadly. Conscience is the seat of guilt, and its vivid power turns,
—so to speak—"the sun into darkness, and the moon into blood"
(Joel, ii. 31)—the precious promises of free forgiveness into arguments
of hopeless despondency. Many a penitent is thus held back awhile
from the full apprehension of Divine acceptance, and from the settled
enjoyment of the peace of the gospel. And but for the gracious restraint
of the Lord's power and love, hardened despair would be the successful
advantage of Satan's devices." (2. Car. ii. 11.)
But let us gaze at the meek and glorious sufferer in Gethsemane.
Look at the wounded spirit there--the fainting humanity of the Son of
God—"his strong crying and tears," his prostrating sorrow, his "ex-
ceeding great and bitter cry," under the darkness of desertion. (Matt.
xxvi. 38.) Human nature, even when exalted to a personal union with
the divine, is human nature still; forced to confess its native weakness
in the conflict with Almighty wrath. If all the support of the indwell-
ing Godhead was demanded for this passion of unknown weight and
infinite intensity; with trembling astonishment we cry--A wounded
spirit who can bear? Irresistible. is the inference--"If they do these
things in the green tree, what shall be done it the dry?" (Luke, xxiii.
31.) The flame, that could but scorch the one, must consume the other
to the uttermost.
Yet is not this wounded spirit the Christians first seal of mercy; the
preparation for all future and eternal mercy? (Acts, ii. 37.) Bitter
indeed is the anguish, when the mass of sin is raised from the grave of
oblivion, and "set in order before our eyes." (Ps. L. 21.) But is not
this the sight, that makes Jesus and his fret salvation inexpressibly
precious? (Acts, xvi. 29-33.) And does not this spirit place us within
* Bainham —Bilney— Crammer. See FOXE's Records.
CHAP. XVIII. 15. 293
the sphere of his healing commission? (Isa. lxi. 1, 2.) We ask now—
not, who can bear, but who can heal? Well did Luther say (and there
is no better judge on such matters), ‘It is as easy to make a world, as
to ease a troubled conscience.' Both are creation-work, requiring the
Almightiness of God. (Gen i. 1. Isa. lvii. 19.) To him that "wounded
must we return for healing." (Hos. vi. 1.) His remedy is the sight of
himself wounded for us. (Isa. liii. 5.) And that sight--so healing—
so reviving—how does it quicken the soul to a cordial and animated
faith, issuing in the song of everlasting praise!*
15. The heart of the prudent getteth knowledge; and the ear of the wise
seeketh knowledge.
Knowledge is gathering its rays on every side. But all that is
intrinsically valuable centres in Divine knowledge. ‘All arts'—as
Bishop Hall teaches—'are Maids to Divinity. Therefore they both
vail to her, and do her service.'† Indeed it is of the first moment that
she should go before, to imbue and impregnate the mass. For while
we readily admit the importance of intellectual knowledge; the grand
object is the salvation of the soul. And all knowledge that is not
grounded upon this primary conviction, or that does not directly or
indirectly subserve this great end, is worse than valueless. It is power
for evil. It is a weapon of mighty influence, that will ultimately turn
against the man's own self. Never let us forget, that unsanctified
knowledge is still, what it was at the beginning, gathering death, not
life, and that, if "the tree seem to be good for food, pleasant to the
eyes, and a tree to be desired to make one wise" (Gen. iii. 6), it is only
* In these days of deteriorated Church doctrine, when other remedies than that of the
gospel are applied to the wounded spirit, it is worth putting upon record the mode of
healing in the British Church, so far back as the time of the Conquest, which it will be
seen, was not the baptism of tears, auricular confession, penance, or man's working, but
the simple view of the great sacrifice, as the one object of faith. In the form of a prayer
for the Visitation of the Sick in the time of Anselm (Abp. of Canterbury, A.D. 1080),—the
priest asked the sick person, 'Dost thou believe to come to glory, not by thine own merits,
but by the virtue and merit of the passion of the Lord Jesus Christ? Dost thou believe
that our Lord Jesus Christ did die for our salvation, and that none can be saved by his on
merits, or by any other means than by the merits of his passion?' On the sick person
answering—'All this I believe'— the priest is directed to give him they following instruc-
tion and comfort, as a true physician of souls—'Give thou therefore'-- saith he to the sick
--'as long as thy soul remaineth in this place, thy whole confidence in his death only.
Have confidence in no other thing. Commit thyself wholly to this death, with this alone
comfort thyself. If he say—'Thou deservest hell'—say—'I put the death of our Lord
Jesus Christ betwixt me and this judgment, and no otherwise do I contend with thee.'
And if he say to thee—'Thou art a sinner'—say—'Lord, I put the death of our Lord
Jesus Christ between thee and my sins.' If he say to thee—'Thou halt deserved damna-
tion'—say—'Lord, I set the death of our Lord Jesus Christ between', thee and my bad
merits; and I offer his merits instead of my merits.' If he say—he is angry with thee, say—'Lord, I
interpose the death of our Lord Jesus Christ between me and thine anger.'—This is indeed the
sovereign specific for a case aggravated by the application of any other remedy of man's devising.
† Works, viii. 107.
294 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
the enticement to the unwary, flattering them, that they "shall be as
gods," that, "being lifted up with pride, they may fall into the con-
demnation of the devil." (lb. verse 5. 1 Tim. iii. 6.)
And yet in the sphere of Revelation the value of knowledge is
estimated by its character. When it is Speculative, not experimental;
general, without practical influence; it is mere listening to a sound.
It is not the sight, like that of the brazen serpent, that brings life from
the dead, with its blessed accompaniment of transformation into the
likeness of Christ. Lamentable is it to think of the mass of triflers in
this heavenly knowledge; hearing without retaining; retaining without
intelligence, or without personal application. So often "is the price
in the hands of a fool, who bath no heart for it." (Chap. xvii. 16.)
But here is the prudent. He has pondered, and formed a just esti-
mate of the blessing. His heart has fastened upon it (Chap. xv. 14),
and, as the means are free, and success sure,1 he has gotten it. As the
proof of his possession, he seeks for more. For who that has a treasure,
will be satisfied with his store; content with a lesser measure, while a
larger is within his reach? His ear is now (wakened to seek the ministry
of the word, and the conversation of experienced Christians. (Chap. i. 5;
ix. 9.) Every avenue of instruction is diligently improved.
A word to the young—Think how much important knowledge is to
be gotten. Be up early in its pursuit. Let it have your most, your
first, your best, time. Begin before your minds are corrupted with
false principles; before you have learned) too much, that must be
unlearned as disciples of Christ. Enquire what is the tone of your
prayers? Is it the concentration of the soil, filled with one desire, and
carrying it, where it will be accepted and satisfied? The only saving
knowledge cometh down from heaven, and is fetched thence upon our
knees. What—again—is the pulse of 'your exertions? Does it
chew the heart to be delighting in the object? Or is it only a start
for a moment, and then a sinking back to the slumber of the sluggard ?
Knowledge from heaven leads thitherward. Clearer knowledge sweeps
away many clouds. A better sight of your work will make it more
easy. With a more intelligent knowledge of the road, you will walk
more pleasantly. You will not only guide yourselves, but be "able
to admonish one another." (Rom. xv. 14.) “Grow in knowledge.”
(2 Pet. iii. 18.) Follow your convictions. Let nothing divert you.
In particular--be considerate and prudent it your application of know-
ledge. Remember its valuable use to regul to the judgment. "Walk
wisely "before God" in a perfect way." (Ps. cix 2.) Let "your love
abound more and more in knowledge, and in all judgment." (Philip.
i. 9.) Hasten onwards then. Happiness and usefulness, light and
glory, are before you; and while, sitting at Your Master's feet, at every
1 Chap. ii. 8-6. Hos. vi. 3. Jam. i. 5.
CHAP. XVIII. 16, 17. 295
step you will enter more fully into the spirit of the confession of
Ignatius---‘I am now beginning to be a disciple.'*
16. A man's gift maketh room for him, and bringeth him before great
men.
We have before spoken of the corrupting influence of gifts.l But
we may justly apply this proverb to their legitimate use. Eliezer's
gifts made room for him in Rebekah's family.2 Jacob's gifts made room
for him in his brother's heart.3 Nor was it inconsistent with his inte-
grity, by sending his present to the governor of Egypt, to bring his sons
with acceptance before the great man.4 Ehud's gifts made room for his
errand.5 Abigail's for the preservation of her house.6 Often indeed
were they presented simply as a tribute of respect;7 as now, in some
parts of the East, without them an inferior would sarcely have any
claim upon his superior for favour or protection.†--The Minister of the
Gospel recognises their value, making room for him, perhaps also for his
message. Sympathy gives weight to his instruction, when, after the
example of his Divine Master, he combines kindness to the body with
love for the soul. Great wisdom and discrimination are however
obviously required to prevent the serious evil of air well-intentioned
charity. A wise consideration may also make room for us with great
men for the advancement of the Christian cause. But in this most deli-
cate exercise, let our own principles be fully acknowledged; else even
in the service of God, we shall be "carnal, and walk as men" (1 Cor.
iii. 3); not as the dignified servants of a heavenly Master.
Blessed be God! We want no gifts to bring us before him. Our
welcome is free; our door of access ever open; our treasure of grace in
his unchanging favour unsearchable.
17. He that is first in his own cause seemeth just; but his neighbour cometh
and searcheth him.
We have lately had a rule against judging others. (Verse 13.)
Here we are warned against justifying ourselves. Self-flattery is our
cherished nature; highly valuing our fancied excellences; very blind
to our real imperfections. So ready are we to place our own cause in a
strong light ; and sometimes, almost unconsciously, to cast a shade
over, or even omit, what might seem to balance on the opposite side.
It is so difficult to state facts and circumstances with perfect accuracy,
where our own name, or credit is concerned. Hence, our cause, coming
first, seemeth just. But, according to the proverb, ‘the first tale is good,
1 Chap. xvii. 8, 23. Comp. xix. 6. 2 Gen. xxiv. 30-33. 3 Ibid. xxxiii. 1-11.
4 Gen. xliii. 11. 5 Judg. iii. 17, 18. 6 1 Sam. xxv. 18-27.
7 Ib. ix. 7.
* Nu?n ga>r a]rxh>n e]xw tou? maqhteuesqai>. † See PAXTON'S Illustrations, ii. 29.
296 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
till the second is heard.' Our neighbour, acquainted with the real case,
cometh and searcheth us, exposes our fallacy, and puts us to shame.
Often has the tale of wrongs from a hard-hearted overseer, landlord, or
creditor, roused our indignation, and perhaps provoked our remon-
strance. But the searching process of the story on the other side has
shewn us the wrongness of a hasty, one-sided judgment. Saul made
himself appear just in his own cause. The necessity of the case seemed
to warrant the deviation from the command. But Samuel searched him,
and laid open his rebellion. (1 Sam. xv. 17-03.) Ziba's cause seemed
just in David's eyes, until Mephibosheth's explanation searched him to
his confusion.* Job's incautious self-defence was laid open by Elihu's
probing application. (Job, xxxiii. 8-12.) An eloquent advocate may
easily make a bad cause coming first seem just. But the plaintiff is
always right, till the defendant's case has been opened. Yet the true
rule of justice would be, to judge neither to be right, till both sides
have been heard. Let the whole evidence be sifted; and often the
plausible cover is swept away by a more searching investigation. (Acts,
xxiv. 5, 12.) Judges are bound to "consider, take advice, and speak,"
(Judg. xix. 30); carefully guarding against prejudging the cause, till
the whole has been fully before them; else he that is last in the cause
comes with disadvantage, though it may be to cause of right. In our
own cause, always be alive to conviction. Watch against a self-justi-
fying spirit. Cultivate the spirit of self-distrust. Balance our enemy's
statement against our own prejudices. Judge as under the eye of God,
and with the sincere anxious prayer to lay ourselves open to his
searching disclosure of hidden evil. Deceit ill any form never answers
its end. " A conscience void of offence both towards God and man"
must be our great exercise. (Acts, xxiv. 16.)
18. The lot causeth contentions to cease, and parteth between the mighty.
The general use of the lot has been before explained. (Chap. xvi.
33.) It is here adverted to, as an ordinance of peaceful settlement.
Whether from the evenness of the balance, or from want of confidence
in the judgment, a legal appeal might be of doubtful authority. Con-
tending parties therefore agree to abide by the decision of the lot. Im-
portant matters of order under the Divine Theocracy were thus deter-
mined.1 How many contentions would there have been between the
mighty, in settling the respective boundaries of the tribes, had not this
means been adopted to make them cease!2 When Saul was thus chosen
to the Kingdom,3 and Matthias "numbered among the Apostles,"4 the
1 I Chron. vi. 63; xxiv. 31. Neh. xi. 1. 2 Num. xxxiii. 54.
3 1 Sam. x. 20-24. 4 Acts, i. 26.
* 2 Sam. xvi. 1-4; xix. 26. Comp. chap. xxviii. 11. She Bishop SANDERSON's Sermons
on Job, xxix. 14-17. Prov. xxiv. 10-12.
CHAP. XVIII. 19. 297
election was acquiesced in, as the voice of God. There seems therefore
no scriptural prohibition to the use of this ordinance; provided it be
exercised in a reverential dependence upon God,l and not profaned for
common purposes or worldly ends.
At the same time, as we have before observed, the word of God
appears to be, more fully recognized as the arbiter of the Divine will,
All contentions cease in a simple, childlike, unreserved readiness to be
guided by this "more sure rule." The extent of forgiveness is here
clearly defined (Matt. xviii. 21, 22), and the principle and motive for
its exercise effectively supplied. (Col. iii. 13.) Perhaps it is more easy
to abide by the decision of the lot than of the word. The last requires
more self-denial, humility and patience, and therefore is more prac-
tically useful.
19. A brother offended is harder to be won than a strong city: and their
contentions are like the bars of a castle.
Adverting to the ceasing of contentions, how affecting is this case of
special difficulty! A brother—not an enemy—is harder to be won than
a strong city; as if the nearer the relation, the wider the breach.* The
thread, once snapped, is not easily joined. ‘What a view does it give
us of our corruption, that the natural love implanted in us should dege-
nerate into Satanic hatred!'† Such was the contention of Cain with
Abel; of Joseph's brethren with himself;2 of Absalom and Amnon;3
the civil wars between Benjamin and his brethren,4 in later times
between Judah and Israel;5 in our own country, the long-continued
and ruinous contentions between the Houses of York and Lancaster.
Cities in olden times were strongly fortified with bars of iron against a
siege. (See Isa. xlv. 2.) What a long siege did Esau's' strong city stand,
before it was won by the power of love, and the bars of, his castle opened
their avenues for conciliation!‡
Nowhere is concord so important as in the Church. Never can she
prosper, except she maintain the form of Jerusalem--"a city compact
together." (Ps. cxxii. 3.) Begotten as we are by the same word, living
on the same food, animated by the same life, ought we not, with all our
lesser differences, to hold "the unity of the Spirit?"§ If ties so close
1 Acts, i. 24, 25. 2 Ib. xxxvii. 3-5, 18-27. 3 2 Sam. xiii. 22.
4 Judges, xx. 5 2 Chron. xiii. 16, 17.
* ‘A cerrima firma proximorum odia sunt.'— TACITUS. † Geier in loco.
‡ Gen. xxvii. 41-45; xxxiii. 5-11. The rooted enmity of the nation seems to render
doubtful the cordiality of the reconciliation. See Num. xx. 14-21. zek. xxxv. 5. Obad. 10-14.
§ Two reasons made a godly and learned man (Strigelius) long) to leave the world.
‘1. That I might enjoy the sweet sight of the Son of God and the Church of God. 2. That
I may be delivered from the cruel and implacable hatred of Theologians.' Melchior Adam
in vita. Chrysostom gives this rule—'Have but one enemy—the devil. With him never
be reconciled; with thy brother never fall out.'
298 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
cannot unite us; at least let our common welfare, and common danger,
quench this unholy fire; just as the fear o the enemy without, might
allay mutual misunderstanding within. Bu how painfully did the con-
tentions between Luther and Calvin (not to mention others of more
recent date in the Church) shew the fearful difficulty of winning a
brother offended!
Yet the extreme difficulty does not diminish the obligation. Let it
not therefore paralyze the effort. Nothing can be more plain and deci-
sive than the Gospel rule. Yet so repugnant is it to flesh and blood, to
all nature's pride, feelings, and high notions, that we cry with the dis-
ciples of old —"Lord, increase our faith." (Luke, xvii. 5.) Call in this
only principle, that can constrain the heart and the Christian victory
is ensured. Grace reigns triumphant.
20. A man's belly shall be satisfied with the fruit of his mouth: and
with the increase of his lips shall he be filled. 21. Death and life are
in the power of the tongue: and they tha love it shall eat the fruit
thereof.
Who would not be careful, what seed he puts into a fruitful field
when he knows that his harvest will be according to his seed? (Gal. vi.
7, 8.) Here is not a field, but "a world" (Jam. iii. 6), to be cultivated
so that we may be satisfied with the fruit, and filled with the increase.
What this fruit and increase may be, is a fearful alternative. The fruit
of our lips—the power of our tongue—will be, poisonous or wholesome,
death or life.1 Evil words tend to death,2 goad words to life3—to the
comfort of the speaker, as well as to the blessing of the hearer. There
is no mean; nothing but extremes. It is either the worst of evils, or
the best of blessings.
This is clearly manifested in public responsibilities. The testimony
of witnesses, and the legal decision of the judge, fearfully spew, that
death or life is in the power of the tongue. Take even a more important
field of illustration — the Ministry of the gospel--the doctrine of false
and true teachers. Suppose the sinner's conscience to be awakened.
Eagerly he longs for an answer to that immensely momentous question
--"What must I do to be saved?" (Acts, xvi. 30.) Let him be blinded
to his own state; soothed with false remedies, or the true remedy con-
cealed or obscured. Or let him be directed to the cross as the one
object, compared with which all other objects are vanity and delusion
— do not we see, that, according to the use of the tongue, death and life
is in the power of it? Nay—in another--perhaps a more solemn,
apprehension of the great work, when all is simply and fully exhibited;
when man's helplessness and Divine sufficiency — sin and the Saviour
1 Verse 7. Ps. L. 20, 21. Matt. v. 22; xii. 36. Jude, 14, 15.
2 Chap. xiii. 2. Comp. Ecclus. xxviii. 18. 3 Chap. xii 14; xiii. 2. Ps. xxxiv. 12, 13.
CHAP. XVIII. 21, 22. 299
—the ruin and the restoration — are clearly displayed; according as
the message is rejected or welcomed, it becomes “a savour of death
unto death, or of life unto life." (2 Cor. ii.16.) Thus again, death or life
is in the power of the tongue.
In the common intercourse of life, also is the tongue "the fountain
both of bitter waters and sweet;" as powerful to destroy as to edify;
the poison, or antidote, as it may be used. ‘A man by using his tongue
aright, in talking, exhorting, witnessing, counselling, may save; and,
by abusing it in any of these ways, or any other, may destroy.'* Either
way he will be filled with the fruit. The curse of destroying others will
return upon himself. In administering a blessing to his neighbour, his
own soul will be fed. (Chap. xi. 25.) They that love it shall eat the fruit
of it. It is, however, the habitual, not the occasional, use of this little
member, that determines its fruit. A saint may "speak unadvisedly"--
a sinner acceptably —"with his lips." Neither would thus determine
his true character.
Born as we are for eternity, no utterance of our tongue can be called
trifling. A word, though light as air, scarcely market, and soon for-
gotten, may rise up as a witness at the throne of judgment for death or
for life eternal. (Matt. xii. 37.) When I think of this awful power, shall
I not—as Chrysostom warns—‘guard this little member more than the
pupil of the eye?'† Are not the sins of the tongue an overwhelming
manifestation of the long-suffering of God? 'Woe is me'— exclaimed
a man of God--' for I am a man of unclean lips.'l Shall I not cry to
my God, that he would restrain my tongue;2 yea, cry more earnestly,
that he would consecrate it3 as a sacred gift, stamped with his image,
that it might be my glory, not my shame; my organ of praise, my
exercise of joy?4 In the inner man the heart is the main thing to be
kept (Chap. iv. 23); in the outer man the tongue. (Clap. xxi. 23.) 0
my God! take them both into thine own keeping, under thine own dis-
cipline, as instruments for thy service and glory.
22. Whoso findeth a wife findeth a good thing,‡ and obtaiheth favour of the
Lord.
This is obviously to be taken with limitation. Manoah found a
good thing in his wife. (Judg. xiii. 23.) So did not Job. (Job, ii. 9, 10.)
1 Isa. vi. 5. 2 Ps. cxli. 3.
3 Ib. li. 15. 4 Ib. 1vii. 7, 8.
* Muffet in loco. † Homily 62 on Matt.
† Dr. Keunicott elaborately insists upon supplying the distinctive limitation from the
reading of the LXX Vulgate, and some old Chaldee paraphrase. (Second Dissertation
on the Hebrew Text, pp. 189—192.) But, the general term, frequently used by the wise man
for the obvious limitation, sufficiently explains his meaning, Chap. xv. 10; xvi. 10;
xxii. 1; xxix. 4. Eccles. vii. 28. The LXX adds—'He that casteth out a wife, casteth out
good things: but he that retaineth a strange woman is foolish and ungodly.'
300 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
Some find "a crown to their head;" others, "rottenness to their bones."
(Chap. xii. 4.) That which alone deserves the name is indeed a good
thing. If in a state of innocence "it was not good for a man to be
alone" (Gen. ii. 18); much more in a world of care and trouble "two
are better than one" for mutual support, helpfulness, and sympathy.*
The good thing implies godliness, and fitness. Godliness is found, when
the man marries "only in the Lord" (1 Cor. vii. 39), and only one, who
is the Lord's. The "unequal yoke with unbelievers" (2 Cor. vi. 14)--
the union for life of a child of God with a child of Satan, is a most
awful anomaly. 'I wish'--said pious Bishop Hall, that Manoah
could speak so loud, that all our Israelites might hear him—"Is there
never a woman among the daughters of thy brethren, or among all
God's people, that thou goest to take a wife of the uncircumcised Philis-
tines?" If religion be any other than a cipher, how dare we not regard
it in our most important choice? Is she a fair Philistine? Why is not
the deformity of the soul more powerful to dissuade us, than the beauty
of the face to allure us?'†
There may however be godliness on both sides, without that mutual
fitness which makes the woman "a helpmeet for the man." The good
thing is, when he honours her, not as the wisest for the holiest of women,
but as the person, whom God saw to be the best and fittest for himself
in the whole world, a comfort for life, a help for heaven.‡ . Thus she
becomes the one object of his undivided heart. Mutual faith is plighted
in the Lord. Such a communion spiritualizes his affections, and
elevates him from earth to heaven.
But how is this good thing found? Isaac found it, where every
Christian looks for his blessing, as an answer to prayer. (Gen. xxiv.) A
man's choice for his own indulgence will bring a curse upon himself and
his family. (2 Chron. xviii. 1, 2; xxi. 1-6.) "Choose thou mine inherit-
ance for me" (Ps. xlvii. 4)— is the cry and confidence of the child of God.
Then truly will he obtain the gift, not as the result of fortune, or as the
proof of his own good discernment; but, as Adam received his wife,
"from the Lord" (Chap, xix. 14), a token of his special favour.
* Eccles. iv. 9, 10. See the Marriage Service.
† Contemplations, x. 3. Bp. Beveridge's Resolution is well worth recording—‘I shall
always endeavour to make choice of such a woman for spouse, who hath first made
choice of Christ as a spouse for herself; that none may be made one flesh with me, who is
not made one spirit with Christ my Saviour. For I look upon/ the image of Christ as the
best mark of beauty I can behold in her, and the grace of God as the best portion I can
receive with her. These are excellences, which, though not, visible to our carnal eybs, are
nevertheless agreeable to a spiritual heart; and such as all wise and good men cannot
choose but be enamoured with. For my own part, they seem to me such necessary qualifi-
cations, that my heart trembles at the thoughts of ever having a wife without them.'
Resol. ii.
‡ Luke, i. 6. See the beautiful picture. Chap. xxxi. 10-31. Comp. also Ecclus. xxvi.
1-3, 13-16; xxxvi. 24.
CHAP. XVIII. 23, 24. 301
23. The poor useth entreaties: but the rich answereth roughly.*
It is natural to the poor, sensible of their dependence, to use entreaties.
And this humiliation may be the discipline for that poverty of spirit,
which the Lord sealed with his first blessing. (Matt. v. 3.) Yet shame
is it to the rich, that he should often answer these entreaties roughly. In-
stead of the kindly feelings flowing out, he seems to be bound against
them with iron chains. He hears with indifference the tale of woe;
and having never himself tasted the bitter bread, he has no heart of
sympathy and helpfulness. The well-bred man of the world, who is all
courtesy and refinement in his own circle, to those under his feet is often
insufferably rude and unfeeling. His good breeding indeed is often
only the polish of selfishness. The proud worm knows so little the
true use of his power, that the exercise of it only transforms him into a
tyrant. Instead of scattering his blessings around, he only makes him-
self feared and hated by his misused responsibility. (1 Sam. xxv. 17.)
Would he but study the character of his Divine Master, he would see
the exercise of power enlivened with true greatness. Was he not as
considerate to blind Bartimeus, as to the nobleman of Capernaum?
(Mark, x. 49. John, v. 48.) All ranks alike shared in his tenderest
sympathy.
And yet, as the rich in their conscious superiority may be over-
bearing, so the poor, in using their entreaties, may shew a servile,
crouching spirit (1 Sam. 11. 36), shrinking from that bold integrity of
character, which gives dignity alike to the lowest as to the highest of
men. To all of us our Providential circumstances bring their besetting
temptations. Close walking with God is our only safeguard.
But surely the rich, in his rough answering of the poor, would do well
to consider, how much more dependent is he upon his God, than his
meanest brother is upon himself! And when he comes before his God,
must he not then wear the garb of poverty, though he be a king (Ps. xl.
17; lxxxvi. 1); using entreaties, not advancing claims? Yes--all of
us alike are poor before the throne of grace. All of us must use en-
treaties here. Yet when does our gracious Father answer his poor sup-
pliant child roughly; except as he wisely disciplines his faith, while his
heart is full of yearning parental love towards him? (Matt. xv. 26.
Comp. Gen. xlii. 6, 7.)
24. A man that hath friends must shew himself friendly: and there is a
friend that sticketh closer than a brother.
To be without a friend, marks a state of painful desolation. (Ps.
lxxxviii. 18.) On the other hand, a true friend is no common acquisi-
tion. (Chap. xvii. 17.) There are many pretensions, many professions,
* This and the succeeding verse are omitted in LXX.
302 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
of friendship. But the jewel itself is as rare as it is precious. Yet what
is life without this cheering, enriching blessing? Kings have left
awhile their royalties for its enjoyment. (Ps. Iv. 14.) To Alexander the
conquered world without his Hephæstion would have been a wilder-
ness.* But if a man hath friends, and would keep them, he must shew
himself friendly. To throw them away by neglect, caprice, unreason-
able disgust, or needless offence, is to shew himself utterly unworthy of
the blessing. Observe Ruth and Naomi--each with warm reciprocity
of interest laying herself out for the other.l David practically acknow-
ledged the kindness of his friends in distress.2 The Apostle dealt most
delicately with his friend's wounded sensibility,3 and manifested the
most considerate care for his companion's comforts.4 It is by such kind
offices that the bond is mutually cemented. A man having friends shews
himself friendly. Love begets love, and is accompanied with love.5
Not that this will shew itself in extravagant professions, or lavish
praise, gratifying to the weak, but revolting to an intelligent, mind.
The true expression will be in that unmistakable integrity, which at
once shews the man, and makes the Christian shine.
Thus we shall take care to base our friendship upon the true founda-
tion. Otherwise it may be snapped asunder by the veriest trifle, or it
may become idolatrous love, usurping God's place in the heart. San-
guine and affectionate dispositions are much exposed to sudden fancies
and mistaken impressions. But the charm is broken by the cold
return or empty professions of the misplaced love; and the illusion is
swept away in humbling disappointment. Wise men will refrain from
the choice of many bosom friends, or involving a multiplication of
duties, and too often of entangling difficulties.
The bond of real friendship is often closer than the natural tie.
“The friend is as one's own soul.” (Deut. xiii. 6.) Such was Jonathan
unto David--a friend that sticketh closer than a brother†--tender and
sympathizing, while his brother was fraught with unkind suspicion.‡
He dared the deadly displeasure of his father by open adherence, while
his wife shewed her love at the expense of his name.6 Hiram's cordial
kindness to Solomon, contrasts with his brother's unjust endeavour to
1 Ruth. i, 16; ii. 11, 18, with iii. 1-14, 16; iv. 16. 2 1 Sam. xxx. 26-31.
3 Philem. 8-20. 4 Tit. iii. 13. 5 Comp. Ecclus. xxii. 25.
6 1 Sam. xviii. 20, 28; xix. 12-17, with xx. 24-33.
* . . . . Friendship's the wine of life.
A friend is worth all hazards we can run.
Poor is the friendless master of a world:
A world in purchase for a friend is gain.--YOUNG.
† Bishop Coverdale's version is very beautiful--‘a friend that delighteth in love, doth a
man more friendship, and sticketh faster unto him than a brother.'
‡ 1 Sam. xvii. 28, with xviii. 3; xix. 2-4. 2 Sam. i. 26. It is interesting to observe the
reciprocity with one exception (2 Sam. xvi. 1-4) on David's part to the end of life, 2 Sam.
ix. 1; xxi. 7.
CHAP. XVIII. 24. 303
keep him from the throne.1 Job's friends, notwithstanding their harsh
misconceptions, abode fast with the afflicted sufferer, when his wife
and family were “strange to him.”2 And do we not remember, that
when the brethren of Jesus shrunk from the near position to his cross,
“there stood by the cross the disciple whom Jesus loved,” gladly receiv-
ing from his lips the sacred deposit of his bereaved mother? (John,
xix. 25-27.) Even natural minds of a high tone of feeling may exhibit
this strength of friendship. But its surest bond is that, which unites
the whole family of God. The identity of sanctified taste; sympathy of
experience; holy consecration for mutual helpfulness; above all--
union as Members of one body to one Head--hence flow magnetic
attraction, heavenly, Divine friendship.
But where shall we find the complete filling-up of this exquisite
picture, except in Him, who became our Brother, that he might cleave
to us closer than a brother in tenderness and help? (Heb. ii. 11, 14-18.)
Let his people bear witness, whether he be not the greatest, best, most
loving, most disinterested and faithful of friends. Truly he “loveth at
all times.” He is a friend to them that have no other friend; to those
who have been his bitterest enemies; a friend who abides, when all
others have passed away. Mark him as a present friend, known and
tried, able to enter into all that most deeply affects us; in temptation
opening, when needed, “a way of escape;”3 in affliction cheering with
the Divine Comforter;4 “in sickness making our bed;”5 in death
sustaining us by “his rod and staff;”6 in eternity “receiving us to
himself.”7 What brother sticketh so close as he, esteeming himself more
honoured, the more we lean upon him, “having no confidence in the
flesh?”
And then, looking on the objects of his love;8 its freeness;9 its
costliness;10 its perseverance notwithstanding all the discouragements
of our perverseness and folly;11 “loving us to the end,”* as parts and
members of himself--how can we duly honour this our faithful, tender,
unchanging, unchangeable friend? Are there none, who boast of their
faithfulness to the creature, who yet have no sympathy with this
Divine friendship, no reciprocal affection to this surpassing friend?
Will not our very sensibilities condemn our indifference? For what
stronger proof can there be of their depravity and disorder, than that
they should be flowing to the creature-objects, cold and dead to the
Divine Friend? Oh! let him be the first choice of youth, the tried and
chosen Friend of maturing age, the Friend for eternity! Cultivate a
1 1 Kings, v. with i. 5. 2 Job, ii. 11-13, with xix. 13-17.
3 1 Cor. x. 13. 4 John, xiv. 17, 18. 5 Ps, xli 3.
6 Ps. xxiii. 4. 7 John, xiv, 3; xvii. 24. 8 Rom, v. 8.
9 John, vi. 37. 10 Ib, xv, 13. 1 John, iii, 16.
11 Isa. xlii. 4. Hos. xi. 7,8. Mal. Iii. 16.
* John, xiii. 1. See the beautiful Hymn in Olney Collection, B, i. 53.
304 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
closer acquaintance with him. Set the highest value upon his friend-
ship. Live a life of joyous confidence on his all-sufficiency and love.
Make him the constant subject of conversation. Avoid whatever is
displeasing to him. Be found in those places where he meeteth his
people. (Isa. lxiv. 5.) Long to be with him for ever. Thus testify
all around--“This is my beloved, and this is my friend.” (Cant. v. 16.)
Is it not because men have no eyes to see him, that they have no heart
to love him? Were but the eyes really opened, they would soon affect
the heart; and all would be for him in entire devotedness of service.
CHAPTER XIX.
1. Better is the poor that walketh in his integrity, than he that is perverse in
his lips, and is a fool.*
POVERTY is never a disgrace, except when it is the fruit of ill-conduct.
But when adorned with godly integrity, it is most honourable. Better
is the poor man, than he whom riches lift up in his own eyes, and he is
given up to his perverseness and folly. (Chap. xxviii. 6.) Often man
puts under his feet those, whom God lays in his bosom. He honours
the perverse for their riches, and despises the poor for their poverty.
‘But what hath the rich, if he hath not God? And what
is a poor man, if he hath God?' Better be in a wilderness with
God, than in Canaan without him.† Was not Job on the dung-
hill, walking in his integrity, better than ungodly Ahab on the throne?
(Job, ii. 7, 8.) Was not Lazarus in his rags better than Dives with his
“fine linen and sumptuous fare?” (Luke, xvi. 19-21.) Calculate wisdom
by God's standard, who judges not by station, but by character. Esti-
mate things in the light of eternity. How soon will all accident dis-
tinctions pass away, and personal distinctions alone avail! Death will
strip the poor of his rags, and the rich of his purple, and bring them
both “naked to the earth, from whence they came.” (Job, i. 21. Eccles.
xii. 7.) Meanwhile let us hear our Lord's voice to his despised people
--“I know thy poverty; but thou art rich.” (Rev. ii. 9.) How glorious
the stamp upon the outcast professors walking in their integrity–“Of
whom the world was not worthy!” (Heb. xi. 37, 38.) For such is pre-
pared “the honour that cometh from God only”--his seal, his smiles,
and his everlasting crown.
2. Also that the soul be without knowledge, it is not good; and he that
hasteth with his feet sinneth.
Also--seems to trace the fool's perverse ways to their source. His
* This and the following verse are omitted in LXX.
† Bishop REYNOLDS on 1 Tim. vi. 17-19.
CHAP. XIX. 2. 305
soul is without knowledge. Ignorance gives perpetuity to folly. Know-
ledge is valuable even to the mind. It expands and sharpens its
reasoning powers, and, when rightly directed, preserves from many
besetting temptations. ‘Be assured'--says a late eloquent Preacher
--‘it is not because the people know much, that they ever become the
willing subjects of any factious or unprincipled demagogue. It is just
because they know too little. It is just because ignorance is the field,
on which the quackery of a political impostor ever reaps its most
abundant harvest.'* Knowledge also opens much wholesome enjoy-
ment. The intelligent poor are preserved in their home-comforts from
the temptations of the ale-house. The most educated are raised above
the frivolities of dissipation. Thus both classes are restrained from the
sensualities of ungodliness.
But much more that the soul made for God, should be without know-
ledge, is not good. The blessing is not merely expansion of mind, or
restraint of evil, but light and life eternal. (John, xvii. 3.) Without it,
all is thick darkness--the darkness of death. Man has no directory for
his ways. He knows not “how to walk and to please God.” He knows
nothing of spiritual duties, heavenly affections, the life of faith, the
entire surrender of heart, or the living to the glory of God. Hence he
substitutes services of his own, carnal and unprofitable. He “walks in
darkness, and knows not whither he goeth.” (Ib. xii. 35.) He has no
remedy for his sins. Hence he devises penance, or at least repentance
or reformation. Not knowing the mystery of the gospel, he cannot
come to God by Christ, and wash in “the fountain opened,” and there-
fore can obtain no peace with God, or in his own conscience. (Rom. ix.
31, 32.) He has no support in his trouble, nothing better than vain
philosophy, or natural hardness. He knows not whence it comes, the
love of God in it, its true intent, its humbling, quickening, and sancti-
fying operation. He cannot “glory in tribulation” from a sense of its
beneficial effects (Rom. v. 3-5. Heb. xii. 11, with 5); and therefore he
either despises it, or hardens himself against it, or faints under it. He
has no strength for his duties--none but his own, which is perfect weak-
ness. He knows not how to be “strong in the Lord,” to be “strengthened
by the Spirit,” to use the Christian armour, to mortify sin, to resist
Satan, or to overcome the world. He might be endued with uncon-
querable strength, and be able to “do all things through Christ
strengthening him.” (Philip. iv. 13.) But he knows not Christ. He
has therefore no interest in him; and, “separate from him, he can do
nothing.” (John, xv. 5.) He has no hope in his end. All is fearful un-
certainty. He has no knowledge of the free grace of the gospel, no
reliance on its promises, no confidence in the Saviour, no title which he
can bring to God for acceptance, and no view of God's faithfulness.
* CHALMERS' Commercial Discourses, p. 375.
306 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
And thus “fools die for want of wisdom.” (Chap. x. 21.) They “perish
for lack of knowledge.” (Hos. iv. 6.) “It is a people of no understand-
ing; therefore he that made them will not have mercy on them, and he
that formed them will shew them no favour.” (Isa. xxvii. 11.) The
terror of the great day will be, that “the Lord Jesus shall be revealed
from heaven with his mighty angels, in flaming fire, taking vengeance
on them that know not God.” (2 Thess. i. 7, 8.)
What then must we think of the thoughtless trifler, immersed in
pleasure, playing with trifles, and despising this inestimable knowledge?
What is he, but a man “without understanding,” justly compared to
“the beasts that perish?” (Ps. xlix. 20.) Is ignorance then the mother
of devotion? Is it not the worst of evils, the centre of all evil (Isa. i.
3, 4. Acts, iii. 17), the parent of irreligion, and the precursor of ruin?
(Luke, xix. 42.) Awful indeed are its aggravations--to be ignorant
in a time of knowledge, blind in a land of light, unenlightened in “the
valley of vision!”
But let us mark the evil of the want of soundly-disciplined know-
ledge in temporal matters. The uninstructed child or savage acts
rashly. The man of impulse is impatient to finish his work before
time, and therefore crowds into the day far more than belongs to it,
forgetting that ‘things are not done by the effort of the moment, but
by the preparation of past moments.'* Our wise moralist has well
remarked –‘He that is in a hurry proves, that the work in which he is
engaged is too much for him.'† Certainly this hasting with the feet
may be considered to be sin, inasmuch as it proceeds from a want of
simple trust in God, and submission to his orderly arrangements and
claims of regular duty.
The true method is to do “the thing of the day in the day.”
(1 Kings, viii. 59, marg.) This is all that God requires to be done.
The affair of one day at a time is as much as can be quietly committed
to God in the daily exercise of faith. This principle should be carried
into all important responsibilities. Bp. Burnet's account of Sir M. Hale
is most valuable in this view. ‘Festina lentè' was his beloved motto,
which he ordered to be en graven on the head of his staff. He was
often heard say, that he had observed many witty men run into great
errors, because they did not give themselves time to think; but, the
heat of imagination making some notions appear in good colours to
them, they, without staying till that cooled, were violently led by the
impulses it made upon them; whereas calm and slow men, who pass
for dull in common estimation, could search after truth, and find it,
with more deliberation, so with greater certainty.'‡
But far more serious is this evil in spiritual matters. ‘Where no
* CECIL'S Remains. †Dr. Johnson.
‡ Life of Sir M. Hale.
CHAP. XIX. 3. 307
discretion is, there the soul is not well.'* The man therefore without
knowledge, instead of “pondering his path” (Chap. iv. 26), hasteth with
his feet, and sinneth. Haste, as opposed to sloth, is the energy of Divine
grace. (Ps. cxix. 60. Luke, xix. 6.) Here, as opposed to consideration,
acting hastily in sin. This impatience is the genuine exercise of self-
will, not taking time to enquire; “not waiting for the counsel of the
Lord.” Godly Joshua offended here. (Josh. ix. 14, 15.) Saul's im-
patience cost him his kingdom. (1 Sam. xiii. 12.) David's haste was
the occasion of gross injustice. (2 Sam. xvi. 3, 4.) The prophet, not
taking time to ponder the evidence contradicting his own message, was
without a right knowledge. He hastened with his feet, and sinned.
(1 Kings, xiii. 18, 19.) Jehoshaphat's precipitancy asking counsel
after, instead of before, was sharply rebuked. (2 Chron. xviii. 1-4; xix.
2.) Rash experiments, the result of haste, often threaten serious evils
in the state. The same spirit rends the Church with schism. The
heady professor wanders from Church to Church, and from sect to sect,
without pondering. In common life how much sin has been the fruit
of a few rash words or hasty lines! A sudden impulse has taken the
place of considerate principles. Let us ever remember, that without
self-discipline there can be no Christian consistency or stability. In
a thousand cases haste may plunge our feet into sin (Chap. xxviii. 20,
22), if not into ruin. The best-intentioned purposes, unwarranted by
the will and word of God, are only blind impulses, to be checked, not
followed. The real peace of faith, is to stand or sit still, and see how
God will appear on our side, to make a way for us through many a
deep water of perplexity. (Exod. xiv. 13. Isa. xxx. 7.) “He that
believeth shall not make haste.” (Isa. xxviii. 16.)
3. The foolishness of man perverteth his way: and his heart fretteth
against the Lord.
Such was the foolishness of Adam! First he perverted his way; then
he charged upon God its bitter fruit. “God, making him upright,”
made him happy. Had he been ruled by his will, he would have
continued so. But, “seeking out his own inventions” (Eccles. vii. 29),
he made himself miserable. As the author of his own misery, it was
reasonable, that he should fret against himself. But such was his pride
and baseness, that his heart fretted against the Lord, as if he, not himself,
was responsible. (Gen. iii. 6-12.) Thus his first-born, when his own
sin had brought “punishment” on him, fretted, as if “it were greater
than he could bear.” (Ib. iv. 8-13.) This has been the foolishness of
Adam's children ever since. God has linked together moral and penal
evil, sin and sorrow. The fool rushes into the sin, and most unreason-
ably frets for the sorrow; as if he could “gather grapes from thorns, or
*Bishop COVERDALE'S Translation.
308 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS
figs from thistles." (Matt. vii. 16.) He charges his crosses, not on his
own perverseness, but on the injustice of God. (Ezek. xviii. 25.) But
God is clear from all the blame (Jam. i. 13, 14): He had shewn the
better; man chooses the worse. He had warned by his word and by
conscience. Man, deaf to the warning, plunges into the misery; and,
while "eating the fruit of his own ways," his heart frets against the Lord.
‘It is hard to have passions, and to be punished for indulging them. I
could not help it. Why did he not give me grace to avoid it?' (See
Jer. vii. 10.) Such is the pride and blasphemy of an unhumbled spirit.
The malefactor blames the judge for his righteous sentence. (Isa. viii.
21, 22. Rev. xvi. 9-11, 21.)
But let us look a little into this bold impeachment of God's right-
eousness. ‘Why did he not give me grace?' Is then God bound to
give his grace? Have we any claim upon God? Is not God's grace
his own? (Matt. xx. 15. Rom. ix. 19-21.) Is not the fool following his
own will, and therefore responsible for his doing? Why cannot he
turn to God? He will not listen or obey. The means are free before
him. No force of natural impossibility hinders. His stubbornness
alone is his impotency. He cannot, because he will not; and therefore,
if he perish, it is not in his weakness, but in his wilfulness. (Matt. xxiii.
37. John, v. 40.) The worst part of his wickedness is his wicked will.
It is not only that his nature is wicked, but that he is willing that it
should be so. Did he but feel his moral inability, would he but look
to him who is "eyes to the blind," "ears to the deaf," "feet to the
lame," his healing would be sure.
This perverseness spews itself in every rising of corruption. The
Pharisee mocks God by his hypocritical service, and then frets, because
no good comes out of it. (Isa. lviii. 3. Mal. iii. 14.) The proud worm
cherishes a discontented humour with Providence. Either the desired
comfort is withheld, or the will has been crossed. If his tongue is
quiet, his heart frets. Had he been placed differently, he would have
succeeded better. God therefore has the blame of his failure. Whereas
it is obvious, that if he is not ready now to serve God, he needs a change
of heart, not a change of place. The disease is within, and therefore would
follow him through altered circumstances with the same result; leaving
him as far as ever from happiness. The constant struggle of the will
is to be anywhere, but where God has placed us for our best welfare.
Humbling it is to see this foolishness in the Lord's people. Our
carelessness or waywardness provokes the rod; yet the heart fretteth
under the rebuke. (2 Sam. vi. 8.) While we shun what is positively
sinful, too often we allow occasions of sin. We are found in circum-
stances or society, which, as experience has taught us, hinder prayer,
damp the spiritual taste, and wound the conscience. If therefore we
allow this wilful indulgence, at least let us charge on ourselves, not on
CHAP. XIX. 3. 309
God, the bitter consequence. Often also we quarrel with what we
cannot alter; thus doubling the burden, by adding guilt to our trouble.
If "a fool's contention" with his brother "calleth for strokes" (Chap.
xviii. 6), much more does the "murmurer and complainer" of God
(Jude, 16); "the man striving with his Maker" (Isa. xlv. 9); or rather
the child kicking against his Father's rod, instead of "humbling himself
under his mighty hand." (1 Pet. v. 6.) Did he but know himself, could
he but trust his God, he would look, not at the rod, but at the hand that
holds it.1 Could the heart fret to see it in his father's hands? Should
he not kiss it, even while it smites him; peacefully, yea thankfully,
"accepting the punishment of his iniquity?" (Lev. xxvi. 41.)
This turbulent insurrection against Divine Sovereignty brings its
own torment. It sets all the powers of the soul out of course. There
is no peace or tranquillity, but in complacency with the will of God,
being fully reconciled to his disposals and dispensations. While
"Ephraim was as a bullock unaccustomed to the yoke," it was only the
more fretting. After that he "was turned, and instructed," and "quieted
himself as a weaned child," he found ease. (Jer. xxxi. 18, 19.)
Always, therefore, let us be ready with the cry—"Shew me where-
fore thou contendest with me. That which I see not, teach thou me.
If I have done iniquity, I will do so no more." (Job, x. 2; xxxiv. 32.)
Instead of "complaining for the punishment of our sins; let us search
and try our ways, and turn again unto the Lord." "I will bear the
indignation of the Lord, because I have sinned against him." (Mic. vii.
9.) The extent of the evil is little known, till we are brought under
the hands of God. It requires no less than his Almightiness to break
the stubborn will into ready obedience. "Thy will be done"--is easily
repeated, but hardly learned. If things are not "according to our
mind," too often is there a struggle to break loose from the
affliction; professing indeed to live by faith, yet repining at our
hard condition.
So far as we regard our own happiness, our great desire should be,
‘that our own will may be annihilated, and the will of God placed in
its room.'* The discipline, therefore, that schools the will into sub-
jection, brings with it nothing to excite one murmuring thought. So
much does it lay open to us of the secrets of God's heart towards us,
and of our hidden corruptions; that, both as coming from his hand,
and operating upon us, it is an invaluable blessing. Well satisfied are
we, that all that God does, will appear to be right and best when the
mystery is finished; that every leaf of his Providence will be expounded
with the full manifestation of his glory. It will then be seen that the
cross of disappointed wishes was the gracious means of saving us from
1 1 Sam. iii. 18.2 Sam. xvi. 11. Ps. xxxix. 9.
* LEIGHTON on the Lord's Prayer.
310 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
ruining ourselves, and of exercising us for endurance,* and ultimately
for enjoyment. Joy and delight indeed will it be to look back upon
every step of "the right way, by which our Father has led us to the
city of habitation" (Ps. cvii. 7), and to mark, how needful was the
discipline at every point, how suited to every exigency; and what
abundant matter of praise does it furnish for that unwearied patience,
with which our loving Father "suffered our manners in the wilderness."
(Acts, xiii. 18.) Meanwhile let us study God more closely in all his
gracious dispensations. ‘0 Lord, remove our ignorance, that we may
know thee; our idleness, that we may seek thee; our unbelief, that we
may find and enjoy thee.†
4. Wealth maketh many friends; but the poor is separated from his
neighbour.
We have had the substance of this Proverb before. (Chap. xiv. 20.
Comp. verse 6.) It is nominally true, that wealth maketh many friends.
But generally they are little worth. ‘Riches have them'—says Bishop
Hall—‘not the man.'+‡ The principle is selfishness; no earnest of
true and permanent friendship. Few among them will be found
"loving at all times, brethren born for adversity." (Chap. xvii. 17.)
God has made poverty a gradation of rank; and as such we are bound
to regard it. Man makes it a wall of separation. It tries our own
faith and patience, and not less the love and sincerity of our faith.§
This want of sympathy with the poor is a serious evil. It separates
those, whom God had linked together by a mutual bond of reciprocal
interest; the rich being the guardians and protectors of the poor; the
poor being the strength and support of the rich. But too often the poor
know their wealthier neighbours, only as living in the most luxurious
indulgence, while they themselves are left in the sense of their poverty,
unaided and uncared for. This could never be, if the gospel had
leavened the mass with its own Divine principle of love. But what—
if the Lord's poor be separated from his selfish neighbour. (Verse 7.)
There is One that "knoweth his soul in adversity" (Ps. xxxi. 7), and
that hath pledged his word—"I will never leave thee, nor forsake
thee." (Heb. xiii. 5.) Yes—this is the joy and the stay of his con-
fidence—"I am poor and needy; but the Lord thinketh on me." (Ps.
xl. 17.) Poverty may separate him from his neighbour. But who or
what shall separate him from his God? (Rom. viii. 38, 39.) "Joint-
heir as he is with him, whom God hath appointed heir of all things,"
what can he want?1 ‘If it were possible for him to stand absolutely
1 Rom. viii. 17. Heb. i. 2, with 1 Cor. iii. 21-23.
* ‘Quos Deus amat, indurat et exereet.'--SENECA De Providentia c. 4.
† Bishop Hall. ‡ Works, viii. 77. Comp. Ecelus. xiii. 22, 23.
§ Amicus certus in re incerta cernitur.—CICERO.
CHAP. XIX. 5. 311
in need of the use and service of the whole creation, all the creatures in
the world would surely wait on him, and be appropriated to him.'*
With such an inheritance as his, why should he fret for a few years'
poverty or neglect? Earth's short vision will soon be past; and then
comes the eternal reality of unclouded joy.
5. A false witness shall not be unpunished, and he that speaketh lies shall
not escape.
If "a true witness delivereth souls" (Chap. xiv. 25), a false witness
destroyeth them. Fearful guilt and responsibility! reaching, without
the atoning sacrifice, throughout eternity. Can we wonder that the
detection should bring him under certain condemnation? (Deut. xix.
16-21.) It is an offence against both tables of the law. The perjurer
takes "God's name in vain." The false witness is a direct transgression
against the law of our neighbour. This wickedness does not however
come to this height at once. But the habit of speaking lies, the allow-
ance of untruth under the pretence of a good end (Rom. iii. 8), or only
in play, grows to this aggravation.†
In this view a strict attention to truth forms a primary point in a
Christian education. The boundary line must never be trifled with.
Not even a child can pass it with impunity. It will soon lose its respect,
if it be not reverenced at any sacrifice, and under all circumstances. A
child must never be suffered to play with a falsehood. Ever press upon
him that anything less than truth is a lie. Even if no one is deceived
by it, a habit is fostered, of which we cannot tell to what it may grow.
"He that is unfaithful in that which is least, is unfaithful also in much."
(Luke, xvi. 14.) The indulgence of a lie soon banishes all fear of an
oath. The careless liar, if occasion needs, scruples not to become a
false witness. But neither in the higher or lower indulgence will false-
hood be forgotten. It may escape detection from man. But it lies
open and unveiled before the eye of God. It shall not be unpunished;
it shall not escape there. The liar may perhaps have thought or intended
no harm. But no palliation is admitted at the bar of God. "All liars
shall have their part in the lake that burneth with fire and brimstone."
(Rev. xxi. 8.)
6. Many will entreat the favour of the prince; and every man is a friend to
him that giveth gifts. 7. All the brethren of the poor do hate him: how
* Bishop REYNOLDS' Works, p. 11.
† Jer. ix. 3-5. There is much instruction in the wise reply of Solon on first seeing the
rude theatricals of Thespis. Asking him, how he dared to tell so many lies before the
people, and receiving for answer, that he only did it in play—'Yes'—said the legislator,
striking his staff with force into the ground,—'But if we begin with telling lies in play,
we shall end with telling them in earnest.'
312 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
much more do his friends go far from him! he pursueth them with
words, yet they are wanting to him.
The fourth verse is here further opened with too accurate a descrip-
tion of man's native selfishness. ‘A prince never wants suitors for his
favour.* Every one loves, or professes to love those from whom they
expect a benefit, "having men's persons in admiration, because of
advantage" (Jude, 16), valuing them for their possessions, not for their
virtues. Yet if "riches make to themselves wings, and flee away"
(Chap. xxiii. 5), will not they take their flight with them? If the same
person, now fawned on for his gifts, were by Providence brought to
poverty, the same friends would hate or neglect him. 'Which of them'
--asks Bishop Hall—‘would dare acknowledge him, when he is going
to prison ?'† As the winter brooks, filled from the opening springs
and the torrents from heaven, are dried up and vanish before the
summer heat; so these friends of the poor go far from him, cold, distant,
and vanishing in the day of his calamity. If he pursueth them with
words, yet they are deaf to his entreaties for help and sympathy. Job
found these "summer" friends a great aggravation to affliction.‡
Jerusalem in its days of prosperity was "the joy of the whole earth."
In the time of after-destitution "they called thee"—said the mournful
prophet—"an outcast, saying—This is Zion, whom no man seeketh
after." (Ps. xlviii. 2. Jer. xxx. 17.)
But how ought we to entreat the favour of our Prince? What gifts
does he give to his beloved people? And shall not those who are
enriched with them exhibit his rule of mercy to their poorer brethren
(Gal. vi. 10. Heb. vi. 10), specially to his poor, the princes and heirs of
his kingdom? (Jam. ii. 5.) ‘Lord! in my greatest plenty help me to
mind and feel others' poverty; and in my most prosperous condition
keep me from forgetting the afflictions of thy Joseph.'§
8. He that getteth wisdom loveth his own soul; he that keepeth
understanding shall find good.
It would seem that self-interest might win us to religion. Careless
sinner! little do you- know your loss of solid happiness. If anything
is worth getting, and, when got, worth keeping—"Wisdom is the thing
therefore get wisdom, and with all thy getting get understanding." (Chap.
iv. 5-7.) How this blessing is to be obtained, Solomon had before
explained. Apply thine heart diligently to the search; then bring thy
* Bishop Patrick. † Works, xiii. p. 77.
‡ Job, vi. 15-22; xix. 13-19; xxix. xxx. Comp. Ecclus. xxxvii. 1-4.
Donec eris felix, multos numerabis amicos;
Tempora si fuerint nubila, solus eris.
OVID, Trist. Lib. i. viii. 9, 10.
§ SWINNOCK'S Christian Man's Calling, Part ii. 353.
CHAP. XIX. 9, 10. 313
heart to God for his light and teaching; and the treasure is thine own.
(Chap. ii. 1-6.) Yet it requires as much care to keep the blessing as to
get it. Soon may it slip away from a negligent hand. "Keep thy soul
diligently" (Deut. iv. 9), and thou wilt keep thy treasure; as the man,
who, having found the hidden treasure in the field, buys the field to
secure it. (Matt. xiii. 44.) It is no carnal good, however, that is found
here. The Christian's present portion involves the sacrifice of all.
(Luke, xiv„ 26, 33.) And yet, as a compensation, abundantly over-
paying for all that can be endured, it is real, infinite, heavenly. To
get wisdom therefore, whatever be the cost, is to love our own soul.
"Whoso findeth me, findeth life" (Chap. viii. 35)—all in me, all with
me. Is not this the chief good, above every earthly good. (Ps. iv. 6, 7);
the eternal good, when every earthly good shall have passed away?
(Ib. lxxiii. 25, 26.) Whether Christ or the world shall have our highest
love, our supreme trust, our first time, and our choicest talent—one
should be ashamed to admit the question. Is. not the very mention of
it a sufficient answer? It is like comparing pebbles with pearls, dust
with diamonds, dross with gold. To follow our own way is then to
destroy, not to love, our own souls. "Whoso sinneth against me
wrongeth his own soul; all they that hate me love death.''
(Chap. viii. 36.)
9. A false witness shall not be unpunished, and he that speaketh lies
shall perish.
"A God of truth, and without iniquity; just and right is he--A.
God that cannot lie—Faithful and True." (Deut. xxxii. 4. Tit. i. 2.)
Such is the revealed character of Jehovah! We cannot wonder at the
repeated denunciations against deceit. So gross a dishonour is it to
his unchangeable attribute! One addition is here made to the former
sentence. (Verse 5.) The punishment shall not only be certain—"he
that speaketh lies shall not escape"—"but it shall be utter ruin—He
shall perish."1 "Lies and desolation" are linked together. (Hos. xii. 1.)
"I will be a swift witness against false swearers— and them that fear
not me--saith the Lord of Hosts." (Mal. iii. 5.)
10. Delight is not seemly for a fool: much less for a servant to have rule
over princes.
What has a fool to do with delight? This world's prosperity, so far
as he knows it, can only be a curse to him. (Chap. i. 32.) Delight "is
comely to the righteous" (Ps. xxxiii. 1), suitable to his character. He
has a right and title to it. (lb. xxxii. 11.) But it is not seemly for the
fool. He has indeed his merriment and folly.2 But solid joy he knows
1 Jer. xxviii. 15-17 ; xxix. 31, 32. 2 Pet. ii. 1-3. Rev. xxii. 15.
2 1 Sam. xxv. 25. Eccles. vii. 5, 6. Isa. v. 11, 12 ; xxii. 12-14. Hos. vii, 3-5. Amos, vi. 3-6.
314 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
not. Far more suitable to him is a chastening rod.l And should the
Lord graciously sanctify this dispensation—as in how many instances
he has done so!— it will introduce him to that "delight which will then
be seemly to him."2
Much less seemly is the exhibition of a servant having rule over princes.
Such an elevation is dangerous to the individual.* In the kingdom, it
is one of the "things which the earth cannot bear." (Chap. xxx. 22.)
The servant has indeed the same rational power with his Sovereign.
But contracted habits of mind unfit him to rule. Exceptions there are,
as in the case of Joseph. (Gen. x1i. 39-45.) But seldom is God's order
reversed without anarchy and confusion.3 Such was the reign of our
second Edward, when worthless minions had rule over the prince; chosen
either for their external accomplishments, or for their subserviency to
his folly. Peace and happiness belong to godly contentment; (1 Tim.
vi. 6.) "Let every man,-wherein he is called, therein abide with God."
(1 Cor. vii. 24.) To those whom he has placed in a subordinate station,
our Father's voice is full of instruction--"Seekest thou great things for
thyself? Seek them not." (Jer. xlv. 5.)
11. The discretion of a man deferreth his anger: and it is his glory to pass
over a transgression.
What is anger, but temporary madness? To yield therefore to its
paroxysm, to act without deliberation under its impulse, is to do we
know not what, and what will surely bring work for repentance. (Chap.
xiv. 17, 29.) An interval between the inward rising and the outward
manifestation of the anger is most important. The discretion of a man
deferreth his anger. Mindful of his own infirmity, he will guard against
indecent sallies of temper, taking time to weigh, and careful not to
overcharge the offence.† An affront therefore is the test, whether he
has discretion, or whether he is the slave of his own passion. The
standard of common usage is—'To be even, and to return one insult by
another.' The Christian standard is to be above; "not rendering railing
for railing, but contrariwise blessing."‡
1 Chap. x. 13, 14 ; xxvi. 3. 2 2 Chron. xxxiii.11-1.3. Luke, xv. 14-24.
3 2 Sam. iii. 24, 25, 39. Isa. iii. 5.
* Esth. iii. 1, 2 ; vii. 10. ‘Ex insolentia, quibus nova bona fortuna det, impotentes
laetitiae insanire.'—Liv. Lib. xxx. c. 42. Comp. Lib. xxiii. c. 18.
† Chap. xvi. 32. Eccles. vii. 9. Jam. i. 19. Comp. 1 Sam. x. 27. Even Heathen moralists
acknowledge the value of this discretion.—‘I would have beaten thee, if I was not angry,'—
said the philosopher to his offending servant. Augustus under the impulse of anger was
requested to repeat the alphabet, to give him time to cool. ‘It is easier'—as Seneca wisely
observed—‘not to admit the passion, than, when admitted, to govern it.' Justin Martyr,
when asked what was Christ's greatest miracle, named his so great patience in such great trials.
‡ 1 Pet. iii. 9. The example of Joseph, Gen. xlv. 4-15; 1. 21. David, I Sam. lxxiv. 7-19.
Ps. xxxv. 7-14; xxxviii. 12-14. The prophet, 1 Kings, xiii. 4-6. Mr. Scott justly remarks
upon the identity of the Old Testament standard with that of Christ and his apostles,
Comp. Matt. v. 38-42; xxiii. 21, 22. Rom. xii. 17-21, with Chap. xxv. 21, 22.
CHAP. XIX. 12. 315
Again—To pass over a transgression—such is the proud folly of
man's judgment ! is disgrace, want of courage and proper spirit. But
Solomon, a wise man and a King, declares it to be weakness, not
strength or greatness, to be able to bear nothing.* It is glory to pass
over a transgression. So it must be, because it is likeness to God. What
a motive! ‘Let it pass for a kind of sheepishness to be meek. It is a
likeness to him, that was "a sheep before the shearers, not opening his
mouth." (Isa. liii. 7.) It is a portion of his spirit.'†
And what a pattern is his long-suffering with such wilful daily,
hourly, provocations ! (Eph. iv. 31, 32. Col. iii. 13.) If he create us
anew, it must be, as before, in his own image. Forbearance and
forgiveness will therefore take the place of resentment and malice.
Moral strength may, in some men, curb the outward expression. But
the poison lurks within. Forbearance from a pure motive, passing over
transgression in free love, is a noble triumph of grace, most honourable
to God, fraught with the richest spoils to our own souls.
12. The king's wrath is as the roaring of a lion: but his favour is as dent
upon the grass.
The monarch of the forest is a just comparison to the monarch of
the land.l "The lion hath roared; who will not fear?"‡ The rocks
and hills echo the terrific cry. The whole race of the animals of the
forest are driven to flight, or petrified to the spot. Such is the king's
wrath in a land of despotism;2 reigning without law, above law, his
will his only law; an awful picture of cruelty,3 tyranny,4 and caprice!5
Unlimited power is too much for proud human nature to bear, except
with special grace from above. Just so is the king's favour a reviving
blessing, as dew upon the grass—the nourishment of vegetative life in
the East, where the more powerful influence is only partially or periodi-
cally known.6
But if the wrath of a king be so terrible — Oh, my soul, what must
be the wrath of God! (Luke, xii. 4, 5.) If it be so terrible in this world,
where every drop is mixed with mercy; what will it be in eternity,
where it is “poured out without mixture” and without cessation (Rev.
xiv. 10, 11); where his power is so fearfully manifested, not only in
tormenting, but in preserving and “establishing for correction?”
(Hab. i. 12.) Oh ! let this wrath be the grand object of my reverential
* The Roman moralist could say: —
Infirmi est animi exiguique voluptas
Ultio. JUVEN. Sat. xiii. 190, 191.
† LEIGHTON on 1 Pet. iii. 3, 4.
‡ Amos, iii. S. Rev. x. 1-3. See Homer's fine picture, Iliad, U. 164-171.
1 Comp. Jer. iv. 7; 1. 17. 2 Tim. iv. 17. 2 Chap. xvi. 14; xx. 2; xxviii. 15.
3 Matt. ii. 16-18. 4 Exod. v. 4-9. Dan. iii. 1-19.
5 Dan. ii. 5-1.2. 6 Chap. xvi. 15. 2 Sam. xxiii. 3, 4.
316 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
fear. Let me flee from it by the only way of escape, while escape is
open to me; and seek his favour, as the enriching "dew unto Israel,
invigorating and fertilizing my barren soil. (Hos. xiv. 5-7. Ps. lxxii. 6.)
13. A foolish. son is the calamity of his father: and the contentions of a wife
are a continual dropping.
‘Many,' observes an old commentators—‘are the miseries of a
man's life; but none like that, which cometh from him, who should be
the stay of his life.'* As "a wise son maketh a glad father” (Chap. x.1;
xv. 20), so a foolish son is the father's calamity† — a multititude of cala-
mities meeting in one, such as no earthly portion, no riches, honour, or
station, can alleviate or balance. The denunciation--"Write this man
childless"‡ — would be to his heart a comparative boon. The throne
of grace to the Christian father will be the only refuge fo his grief.
There will he pour out the bitterness of his soul in humiliation for
himself, and supplication for his child; and find rest. (2 Sat t. xxiii. 5.)
Oh! can we be too earnest for the prevention of this calamity? Shall
we not seek early grace for our children, and--combined with this--
special grace for ourselves (Judg. xiii. 12), to preserve us from unwit-
tingly sowing the seed in their young hearts, that will afterwards
spring up with such deadly fruit?
Another domestic calamity is mentioned, not less poignant. The
contentions of a wife are as a continual dropping (Chap. xxvii. 1, also xxi.
9, 19; xxv. 24) of rain through the roof of an old house. Such dropping
utterly destroys a man's household comfort, and "wears away" a heart
firm as a stone." This trial is the more fretting, because there is no
lawful escape. The foolish son may be cast out. (Deut. xxi. 18.) The
contentious wife must be endured. (Matt. v. 32; xix. 9.) Yet would this
cross have been, had the plain Scriptural rule of subjection been duly
honoured?1 Or is it not the just chastening for the negleict of the
Divine injunction, so essential to secure happiness in the yoke?2 Or
may it not be the “thorn in the flesh,” the needful restraint from some
imminent, subtle, and fearful danger? (2 Cor. xii. 7.) Self-will and
impatience would flee from the cross. Faith will seek strength to bear
it meekly to the honour of God, extracting a solid blessing out of a
heavy trial. (Ib. verses 8, 9.) And who knoweth but the contentious wife
may be given to persevering prayer and patient forbearance, as an
help-meet to her husband, and both shall ultimately "dwell as heirs
together of the grace of life?"3
1 Gen. iii. 16. 1 Cor. xiv. 34. Eph. v. 22-24. Col. iii. 18. Tit. ii. 5.
2 1 Cor. vii. 3J. 2 Cur. vi. 14. 3 1 Pet. iii. 7. Gen. ii. 18. 1 Cor. vii. 16.
* Jermin in loco. † Heb. Plur. Chap. xvii. 21, 25.
‡ Jer. xxii. 30. Augustus in a burst of grief in his domestic trials, is sat to have
applied to himself Hector's exclamation against his effeminate brother—‘Would that thou
hadst never been born, or never married!' Iliad, G. 40.
CHAP. XIX. 14. 317
But surely our God teaches us a valuable lesson of this world's
vanity, by fixing disappointment on its most substantial comforts. Let
his children beware of building their rest on an earthly portion, of
being ensnared by their best blessings; else will their jealous Father
embitter their sweetest sources of enjoyment, and teach them by painful
discipline to look to enter into no rest but his.
14. House and riches are the inheritance of fathers: and a prudent wife is
from the Lord.
"Every good gift is from the Lord" (Jam. i. 17); only, some in the
ordinary course; others more directly from him. Houses and riches,
though his gifts, come by descent. They are the inheritance of fathers.l
The heir is known, and in the course of events he takes possession of
his estate. But the prudent wife is wholly unconnected with the man.
There has been no previous bond of relation.2 She is often brought
from a distance.3 "The Lord brought her to the man"4 by his special
Providence, and therefore as his special gift. The history of Ruth
beautifully illustrates the train of matrimonial Providence. The
Moabitess married, contrary to all human probability, a man of Israel,
that she might be brought into Naomi's family, return with her to her
own land, and in coarse of filial duty be brought under the eye, and
drawn to the heart of Boaz, her appointed husband. (Ruth. i. 1-4; iv.
13.) Often do the wheels of the Lord's working in this interesting
matter constrain the admiration of men not well exercised in spiritual
observation. (Gen. xxiv. 50.) And how much more endearing and
secure is a special gift of God! The bread coming down from heaven
was more valued, than if it had been the fruit of labour. Thus is the
prudent wife honoured, as ‘a special blessing of God's immediate
choosing, and therefore to be obtained by our prayers at the hand of
the giver.'* The prudence, however, here described, implies not only
her wise governing of her household,5 but that godly consideration
connected with Divine wisdom,6 by which she becomes the joy and
confidence of her husband:7 as the contentious wife is his trouble and
disgrace.
But is not the husband, no less than the wife, from, the Lord? Let
each prospectively seek the blessing of God's ordinance; never trusting
to his own judgment and affections, without primary reference to his
guidance. (Chap. iii. 6.) Let us realize the responsibility, as well as
the indulgent comfort, of the union; ever counting it a talent for God,
for his service and glory: and not doubting for ourselves, that ‘all
1 Chap. xiii. 22.Num. xxvii. 7. Deut. xxi. 16. 1 Kings, xxi. 3, 4. 2 Cor. xii. 14.
2 1 Sam. xxv. 39-42. 3 Gen. xxiv. 4, 5. 4 Ib. ii. 22.
6 Chap. xxxi. 27. 6 Chap. viii, 12. 7 Chap. xviii. 22; xxxi.11, 23, 28.
* Bishop Hall.
318 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
things shall turn to our commodity and comfort, if we draw the yoke in
one concord of heart and mind.'*
15. Slothfulness casteth into a deep sleep; and an idle soul shall, suffer
hunger.
All experience and observation attest the fact, that slothful habits
destroy mental energy, and idleness is the road to want. What could
we expect from a sluggard lying in his bed all the day? As little from
the slothful, who, goes about his work, as if he was cast into a deep sleep.
(Chap. vi. 9-11.) And even where the slumber is not a deep sleep, its
partial influence is the dead palsy upon active perseverance. He has
not the thorough use of his wakeful faculties. And if he has (as who
has not?) made a false step, there is no energy of effort to repair it.†
And if there be any reward of perseverance, sloth will never find it;
the idle soul will suffer hunger.
Thoughtless sinner! Think how this applies to the world of God.
You persuade yourself that all is well, because you will no trouble
yourself to open your eyes to the truth; and you are content to let
things run their course. You do not rebel against the Gospel. But
has not our Divine Master said—"He that is not with me is against
me?" (Matt. xii. 30.) You conceive that you have done no harm. But
is it no harm to have hitherto wasted every opportunity for eternity?
to have wandered about in vanity from your cradle, instead of living to
God? You are determined to sleep at any rate. And though the two
grand treasures--the favour of God, and your own soul—are in immi-
nent peril; yet still you "say to your soul—Soul, take thine ease."
(Luke, xii. 19.) Instead of weeping love, wrestling prayer, and working
diligence—you are cast into a deep sleep. "Awake, thou that sleepest"
(Eph. v. 14); else wilt thou sleep the sleep of eternal death.
Often do we find men active and laborious, all eyes, all ears, all
heart in worldly matters, hating sloth, yet themselves devoured by it.
Thev know that something must be done. But in the vital exercises
of denying self, crucifying the flesh, coming to Christ, loving the Lord,
and devotedness to his service — here it is a deep sleep. Is then the
grace of God to work as a charm, without, or independent of, means?
This were a deadly delusion, casting into the deep sleep of presumption.
Such an idle soul shall suffer hunger! (Chap. x. 4, 5; xx. 4) The
enduring meat is the gift of God; but, like every other blessing of the
Gospel, it is given only to labour.1 The idle mouth—full only of heart-
1 John, vi. 27, with Heb. vi. 11, 12. 2 Pet. i. 5—11.
* Homily on Matrimony.
† Marshall Turenne expressed his warm obligation to a friend, who had given him the
following advice, when first setting out in life — 'When you have made a false step, spend
not a moment in vexing yourself, and moaning over it; but think how it may best be
repaired, and instantly set about it.'
CHAP. XIX. 16. 319
less complaints, perhaps sending up a dull prayer for the present quiet
of conscience— shall suffer hunger. The soul can never flourish, if it be
not in earnest with God. It may be roused for a while; but only to be
cast into a deeper sleep than ever. For godliness can never thrive with
this deadly malady. If the slothful may be sincerely religious; so far
as he is slothful, he deducts from the privilege and sincerity of his reli-
gion. And undoubtedly a slothful habit is utterly inconsistent with the
vitality of true godliness. Soon nothing will remain, but the dead form
of religion, the bare walls of the house, instead of the temple filled with
his glory.
And now let us look at the child of God awakened out of a deep
sleep. He has set out in good earnest for the kingdom; he has begun
to fight—yea—to conquer. But sleep has followed; and, instead of
improving the advantage, a sudden assault of the enemy has laid him
low.* Mind thy work and thy conflict more than thine ease and com-
fort; else wilt thou be, not a conqueror, but a captive. In time of ease,
how naturally, as Bunyan's pilgrim found it, does the air of the plain
tend to make us drowsy! And then the soul, instead of being "satis-
fied as with marrow and fatness" (Ps. lxiii. 5), suffers hunger, and
becomes faint for want of its proper nourishment. The heartless exter-
nals of godliness will abide. But the spirit that breathed life into them
is gone. Nothing but the unceasing prayer and exercise of a mortified
spirit can shake off this "evil disease that cleaveth to us." Be thou,
Lord, our Helper, our Strength, our Physician!
16. He that keepeth the commandment, keepeth his own soul; but he that
despiseth his ways shall die.
The fearing of the commandment is the path of honour. (Chap. xiii.
13.) The keeping of it is our security, Keep the word, and the word will
keep us securely. Our duties are thus identified with our privileges.
(Ps. xix. 11; cxix. 165.) This is the first successful effort to shake our-
selves from the deep sleep of slothfulness; when we "stir up ourselves to
take hold of God, choosing the things that please him, and joining our-
selves to him, to serve him, and to love his name."1 Yet the power to keep
the commandment is not in a man's self.2 Is it not God working in us,
through, by, with us?3 Thus "all our deeds are wrought in him;"4
and nothing is left us, but the thankful, humbling acknowledgment —
“Yet not I, but the grace of God that is with me.”5 Let then the
world know, that we do not exercise obedience in a covenant of works,
nor reject it as a system, of bondage and despondency; but that keeping
the commandment evangelically is keeping our own souls6 — the way of
1 Isa. 1xiv. 7; lvi. 4-6. 2 Jer. x. 23. 3 Isa. xxvi. 12. Philip. ii. 12, 13.
4 John, iii. 21. 3 1 Cor. xv. 10. 6 Chap. x. 17 ; xvi. 17; xxii. 5.
* Invadunt urbem somno vinoque sepultam.—VIRG AEn. ii. 265.
320 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
present happiness,1 the seal of everlasting mercy,2 the pathway to
heaven.3
But alas! the multitude, instead of keeping the commandment, "go
at all adventures,"4 careless of their ways, reckless of their end. It is
with therm scarcely worth looking into, whether God is displeased or
not; whether they be walking in the narrow or broad path; and what
the end of that path may be. The sight before our eyes defies illus-
tration. The most momentous realities, that could ever attract the
attention of an immortal being, stand before him, not in dreaming
visions, but in actual demonstration—the favour or the curse of the
ever-blessed God—salvation or damnation. They confront hiim in the
presence of God. He sees them in the light of God. He acknow-
ledges the stamp of God upon them; and yet with this tremendous
sight, this fearful responsibility, not a serious thought fixes in his mind.
Instead of being overwhelmed with the consciousness of his own
interest in it (enough—were it apprehended—to suspend almost the
power of thought) he is ready for any trifle or vanity that crosses his
path. He despises his ways, and dies.
Sometimes men come into this thoughtless world, fresh from the
influence of a religious education. For a while they yield alternately
to their conscience and their corruptions. They are touched a moment
under the convictions of the word, or the corrections of the rod. Yet
the want of steadiness and consistency soon sweeps all away into
"worse" hardness than before. (2 Pet. ii. 20-22.) They are “carried
away unto their idols, even as they were led” (1 Cor. xii. 2); amid, slaves
of their wills, their lusts, their fancies, they know not, they care not to
know, "that for all these things God will call them to judgment."5
Young people—"Ponder the path of your feet." Look to it well
at every step, that " your ways may be established" (Chap. iv. 26) in
converting grace, the only security for Christian stedfastness. (2 Pet. iii.
17, 18.) Keep the conscience tender, the Divine rule before your eyes,
and the promise in the heart. Cherish a pliable spirit for your Father's
guidance. How solemn the warning—He that despiseth his ways shall
die! Sinner! would that thou wouldest ponder this death! It is no
creation of a distempered fancy. It is the death, which sin bringeth
forth to perfection. (Jam. i. 14, 15.) It is the harvest from that seed.
(Gal. vi. 7, 8.) It is the death such as a soul can die—an eternal
reality of infinite, unchangeable misery; the extinction, not of thy
being (that were a boon indeed !) but of thy happiness. What must
it be to be immovably linked with the wrath of God! Yea—to have
the wrath of an immortal God filling the conscience of thine immortal
soul, with all its power eternally enlarging to receive the hull and
1 Isa. lxiv, 5. John, xiv. 21-23. 2 Ps. ciii. 17, 18. 3 Isa. xxxv. 8-10. Rev. xxii. 14.
4 Lev. xxvi. 21, marg. 5 Eccles. xi. 9, with 2 Kings, x. 31. Jer. xliv. 17.
CHAP. XIX. 17. 321
eternal impression! And whilst thou art "going on frowardly in the
way of thine heart" (Isa. lvii. 17), remember "there is but a step
who knows how short a step—how soon taken?—"between thee and
this death." (1 Sam. xx. 3.) "Why " then "wilt thou die," when the
oath of thy God testifies, that " he hath no pleasure in thy death," when
his gracious voice to thee is—"Turn and live.l Consider thy ways."2
Oh! listen, ere thou learn the wisdom of fools, to be wise too late.
17. He that hath pity upon the poor lendeth unto the Lord; and that which
he hath given will he pay him again.
The ordinance of God is, that "the poor shall never cease out of the
land."3 Hence the universal obligation is, to have pity upon the poor.
This is according to the New Testament standard, which inculcates the
spirit, no less than the act.4 We must open our heart as much as our
hand (Deut. xv. 7, 10), "draw out our soul" as well as our bread, "to
the hungry" (Isa. lviii. 10); thus doubling the alms, by giving a part
of ourselves. It is possible to "give all our goods to feed the poor,"
without one atom of the true charity of the heart. (1 Cor. xiii. 3.) But
whatever we give, "if we shut up the bowels of compassion from our
brother, how dwelleth the love of God in us?" (1 John, iii. 17.) The
good Samaritan chewed true practical pity. Never let us forget our
Lord's application—"Go, and do thou likewise." (Luke, x. 33-37.)
The appointment of the Deacons in the Primitive Church (Acts, vi.
2-6); the anxiety of the Apostles when delegating a commission to
their brethren (Gal. ii. 9, 10); the high commendation of the Mace-
donian churches (2 Cor. iii. ix.), the weekly rule of charity, laid down
(not enforcing a fixed standard, but "as God hath prospered") (1 Cor.
xvi. 2)—all this chews the acceptableness of this. Christian service.
Sir Thomas More used to say—'There was more rhetoric in this
little sentence, than in a whole library.' The worldly philanthropist
however has no conception of the Divine honour of the principle
involved in it. If our brother is the object of pity, in truth the majesty
of Heaven is concerned. The Lord considers it as a loan to himself.
It is lending to the Lord. Selfishness would evade the obligation under
the cover of prudence. But what we give is only a loan, to be paid
again, and that with such security, as can never fail. The Lord of
heaven condescends to be the Surety for the poor. He takes the debt
upon himself, and gives us the bond of his word in promise of payment.
Though he has a right to all, and is beholden to none,5 he becomes a
debtor to his own. Many acts of kindness have been buried and for-
gotten. The witness of our conscience is the only fruit. But here is a
1 Ezek. xxxiii. 11; xviii. 32. 2 Hag. i. 5, 7. 3 Deut. xv. 11.
4 Luke, vi. 30-36. Col. iii. 12. Comp. chap. xiv. 21. 5 Ps. xvi. 2. Rom. xi. 35.
322 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
safe deposit in the very heart of God. It can never be lost or for-
gotten.1 ‘If then'— as Bishop Hall writes—‘we will needs lay up,
where should we rather repose it, than in the Christian's treasury?
The poor man's hand is the treasury of Christ. All my superfluity shall
there be hoarded up, where I know it will be safely kept, and surely
returned me.'*
And yet would not many rather lend to a rich man of known
integrity, than to the Lord? It is indeed an act of faith, often of naked
faith, when there seems no hope of return. (Luke, vi. 38. Coup. chap.
xxviii. 27.) But this is the principle, which "the King delighteth to
honour." Franke's Orphan Institution stands out before us.† Doubt-
less if the experience of the Lord's people were fully brought out, it
would declare many similar manifestations of his faithfulness to his
word. The resurrection-day will bring all to light. (Matt. xxv. 34-40.)
Meanwhile let us admire this his wondrous grace. He puts the desire
into the heart, disposes the heart, opens the opportunity, and after
all accepts the act, as if it had been his own work, without spot or
pollution!
18. Chasten thy son while there is hope, and let not thy soul spare for
his crying.
Christian parents! carefully study the word of God. See here our
Father's wise and loving discipline with his children. "Like as a
Father, he pitieth his children." "As one whom his mother comforteth,
so will I comfort you."2 Yet when his children need chastening though
the flesh cries—Spare; though every groan enters into his heart,3 he
loves. so well, that his soul spares them not for their crying 4 He uses
the rod; yea, if need be, heavily.5 He will wither their brightest
comforts, children, or property, if they turn them to idols; and this,
"not for his pleasure, but for their profit."6 And what child has not
blessed him, that he did not refrain his discipline, till it had done "its
perfect work?"
Is not this then our pattern and our standard; setting out the sound
principle of a Christian education? "Fathers, provoke not your chil-
dren to wrath; lest they be discouraged." (Col. iii. 21.) But let not
the rule—chasten—spare not—be "a hard saying." Is not tenderness
for the child a cover for the indulgence of weak and foolish affections?
There is much more mercy in what seems to be harshness, than in false
tenderness. (Chap. xxiii.13,14.) Let the child see, that we are resolved;
1 Matt. x. 42; xxv. 40. Heb. vi. 10. 2 Ps. ciii. 13. Isa. lxvi. 13.
3 Exod. ii. 23, 24. Judg. x. 16. 4 Ps. lxxxix. 30-32.
5 Ib. xxxix. 10. 1 Pet. v. 6. 6 Heb. xii. 10. Com. Lam. iii. 33.
* Works, viii. 32. No man is a better merchant, than he that lays out his time upon
God, and his money upon the Poor.--Bp. TAYLOR'S Holy Living, Chap. i.
† See his interesting Life. (Seeleys.)
CHAP. XIX. 19. 323
that we are not to be diverted from our duty by the cry of weakness or
passion. Far better that the child should cry under healthful correction,
than that parents should afterwards cry under the bitter fruit to them-
selves and children, of neglected discipline. ‘Eli could not have
devised which way to have plagued himself and his house so much, as
by his kindness to his children's sin. Parents need no other means to
make themselves miserable than sparing the rod.'* Yet much less of
it would be needed, did they govern, as they ought to do, by the steady
decision of a word, a frown, or a look.
But the great force of the rule is its timely application—while there
is hope. For hopeless the case may be, if the remedy be delayed. The
cure of the evil must be commenced in infancy. Not a moment is to
be lost. "Betimes" (Chap. xiii. 24; xxii. 15)—is the season, when
the good can be effected with the most ease, and the fewest strokes.
The lesson of obedience should be learnt at the first dawn. One decided
struggle and victory in very early life, may, under God, do much toward;
settling the point at once and to the end. On the other hand, sharp
chastening may fail later to accomplish, what a slight rebuke in thy;
early course might have wrought.
But is there not too often a voluntary blindness, that does not
choose to see what it is painful to correct? The false notion—
‘Children will be children'--leads us often to pass over real faults,
and consider their tempers and waywardness as too trifling to require;
prompt correction. And thus sin, winked at in its beginnings, harden
in all the strength of deep-rooted corruptions. Whereas—who would
neglect their most trifling bodily ailment, which might grow into
serious results? If they cannot be argued with, they must be con-
trolled. How often have we found in after-life the evil of fixed habits,
which early correction might have subdued with far less cost of suf-
fering! (1 Kings, i. 6; ii. 24.) Oh! what grace and wisdom is needed
to discipline our minds, judgment, and affections to that tone of self-
government, which will enable us to train our children practically for
the service of God, and for their own happiness!
19. A man of great wrath shall suffer punishment; for if thou deliver
him, yet thou must do it again.
How often does the unchastened child grow up to a man of great
wrath, bringing himself into trouble by his boisterous and ungoverned
passions! Adonijah, whom "his father had not displeased at any
time," rebels against his brother, and suffers punishment. (1 Kings, i. 5;
ii. 25.) The wretched victim gained nothing by experience. Delivered
from one broil, he plunges into another. Indeed who knows what
will be the end of undisciplined passion? Cain--a man of great wrath
* Bishop HALL'S Contemplations, Book xi. xii.
324 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
—the murderer of his brother--the punishment that he suffered was
"greater than he could bear." (Gen. iv. 5-8, 13.) The friendly efforts
to restrain this wrath must be repeated again and again (1 Sam. xix.
1-11; xx. 32, 33), even though too often ineffectually. Meanwhile the
man suffers his own punishment--the miseries of a fierce intestine war,
driven about by the fury of his raging lust. Truly "it is a man's dis-
cretion to defer his anger" (Verse 11), as the first, often the successful,
effort to restrain a passion, the indulgence of which leaves him degraded
and defenceless. (Chap. xxv. 28.)
After all that a man boasts of his self-government, there is no fer-
mentation within, which restraint may bind, but cannot subdue.
Wounded pride and unquelled resentment leave the wretched criminal
in his brooding chamber within, suffering an intolerable burden of self-
inflicted punishment. What then is the radical cure? "Learn of me,
for I am meek and lowly in heart." (Matt. xi. 29.) The glory and
encouragement of the gospel is, that religion, with all its difficulties, is
a practicable thing. (2 Cor. xii. 9.) "My grace is sufficient for thee"—
is the cheering word of Him, who sealed the faithfulness of the promise
with his blood. Doubt not then, that "he will perfect that which con-
cerneth us" (Ps. cxxxviii. 8), even to the moulding of the man of great
wrath into his image of meekness, gentleness, and love.
20. Hear counsel, and receive instruction, that thou mayest be wise; in thy
latter end.
We have just had a word for parents, directing their Christian dis-
cipline. Here the children are exhorted to humility. Again are they
awakened to hear counsel and instruction.l And constantly do they need
the word. "Childhood and youth are vanity."2 Present gratification
is the main object. Oh! remember that the seed, now sown in the
season of youth, will produce either blessed or bitter fruit in the latter
end. Rich indeed was the harvest from Timothy's early attention to
instruction.3 Fearful indeed was the judgment upon the scoffers,4 the
awful death of the profligate,5 the ruin of the holy nation6--- all the
fruit of despising timely wisdom and instruction. Might not Reho-
boam7 and Amaziahs have escaped the ruin of their kingdom, had they
heard counsel, and thus obtained wisdom in their latter end. ‘I am going
to die,' said a thoughtless King on his death-bed; 'and yet I have not
begun to live.' How does the wisdom of mature age depend upon
diligence in hearing counsel and instruction! Hence we value “the yoke”
—specially of affliction--"borne in youth"--a "good" thing indeed,
fraught with profit. (Lam. iii. 27.) In this yoke Joseph heard from his
1 Chap. iv. 1, 2; v. 1, 2; vii. 1, 2. 2 Eccles. xi. 10. 3 2 Tim. iii. 14, 15.
4 Chap. i. 26; xxix. l . 5 Chap. v.9-14.
6 Matt. xxiii. 37-39. Luke, xix. 41, 42. 7 1 Kings, xii. 12-19. 2 Chron. xxv. 15-20.
CHAP. XIX. 21. 325
God much counsel and instruction, that eminently qualified him with
wisdom for his high responsibility. (Gen. xxxvii. xxxix.-xli.) Daniel,
thus early instructed, found wisdom in the latter end of a life protracted
beyond the ordinary term, that enabled him to superintend a hundred
and twenty provinces with singular honour to his profession. (Dan. i.
4-9; vi. 3, 4.)
And then as regards the latter end—"the end of all things,"—the
wisdom to meet the great crisis is not to be found in thoughtless dis-
regard. Counsel and instruction are largely given. But alas! of the
most the Lord is constrained to complain—"My people doth not con-
sider. (Isa. i. 3.) And who, in the sight of the mass of ungodliness,
can refrain from the weeping lamentation of the man of God,—"Oh!
that they were wise! that they understood this, that they would con-
sider their latter end!" (Deut. xxxii. 29.)
21. There are many devices in a man's heart; nevertheless, the counsel of
the Lord, that shall stand.
Here is a fine contrast between man and God, setting out the just
relative disproportion between the worm and his Maker. Man's most
serious, well-digested thoughts are only devices—imaginations--un-
certainty—a poor nonentity. God's mind is counsel,1 firm and full
purpose. Man's devices are many; God's counsel is like himself—Unity.
Man's devices are full of anxiety. Many are eventually fruitless.2 All
of them are vain.3 God's counsel is immutable, and shall stand for
ever.4 "I will work and who shall let it—My counsel shall stand, and
I will do all my pleasure."5
Now when God and man were at one, man's devices were identified
with God's counsel. Then it was "as the days of heaven upon earth."
But ever since the fall, man's devices and God's counsel are at opposite.
Which will triumph, who can doubt? "There is no wisdom, nor
understanding, nor counsel against the Lord." (Chap. xxi. 30. Heb.
vi. 17.)
We mark this conflict in every day's life. Man's own way is a way
devised by human weakness and folly; and it is impossible to make a
solid road out of such frail materials. Even in the most plausible path
—a well-calculated moderation in their earthly projects, he is only
preparing for himself certain disappointment, and increasing the cer-
tainty and perplexity of that disappointment by his every movement.
He devises his whole way, when not a single step is under his own con-
trol; not one step can he take, for one moment in opposition to the
Lord's counsel. (Lam. iii. 37.) That shall stand, though it may be reluc-
tantly to give him up his own devices; still—even after he has left
1 Eph, i. 11 2 Ps. xxi. 11. 3 Ib. xciv. 11.
4 Ib. lxxxiix. 2; cxix. 89. 5 Isa. xliii. 13; xlvi. 10.
326 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
him—seem to send a longing, lingering look after him.1 The malice
of Joseph's brethren was the means of fulfilling the Divine counsel in
the salvation of his Church.2 The plot laid for the destruction of Israel
furthered their prosperity.3 The vain attempts at opposition to Christ
were subservient to the great end of "the determinate counsel and fore-
knowledge of God."4 The device of man to prevent the Apostle's
journey to Rome was signally defeated.5
How vain the impious attempt to "fight against God!"6 "Woe
unto him that striveth with his Maker!"7 Our liberty does not inter-
fere with his secret purpose. But let us be careful, that it does not
resist his declared will. As his Providence chooses our lot, let his word
discipline our desires, as the best means of bringing them to a pro-
sperous issue. After all, it is a cheering hope. All is clear above,
however cloudy it be below. All is calm in heaven, however stormy it
may be on earth. There is no confusion there. One will alone reign.
Every purpose reaches its appointed end. "He is of one mind, and who
can turn him? And what his soul desireth, even that he doeth" (Job,
xxiii. 13.)
22. The desire of a man is his kindness, and a poor man is better than a
liar.
The privilege of doing good is within the reach of all. For when
the power fails, the desire of a man is his kindness, as acceptable! as the
most expensive proof of love. If there be a willing mind, it is accepted,
according to that a man hath, and not according to that he hath not.
(2 Cor. viii. 12.) The dealings of God with his people are grounded on
this principle. David's desire to build the temple was as fully accepted
and, honoured, as the act itself was appointed for his son.8 Such also was
our Saviour's estimate of the value of the widow's mite,9--of the box
of ointment poured upon himself,10--of the "cup of cold water given to
a disciple."11 The desire was the kindness, more rich and fruitful than
the offerings of self-pleasing abundance.12 ‘It is the comfort of poverty,
that our affections are valued, not our presents.'*
Yet the desire must be active; not indolent excitement, but "the
communication of faith effectual "according to the power given to us.13
Such a desire is far better in the sight of God, in the heart of one of his
poor people, than a man with large opportunities and hollow profes-
1 See Ps. lxxxi. 11-14. 2 Gen. xxxvii. 19; xlv. 5, 6. 3 Exod. i. 8-12, 20.
4 Ps. ii. 1-6, with Acts, iv. 26-28; ii. 23. 5 Acts, xxiii 12, 15, with 11.
6 Ib. v. 39. 7 Isa. xlv. 9. 8 2 Chron. vi. 8; vii. 12-17.
9 Mark, xii. 41-44. 10 Ib. xiv. 8, 9. 11 Matt. x. 42.
12 Luke, xxi. 4. 13 Philem. 6. 2 Cor. viii. 11.
* Bp. Hall. ‘Rich men's presents,' said the Venerable Bede when dying—‘are old and
silver, or other costly things. Mine must be recommended by the affectionate pleasure
with which I give them.'
CHAP. XIX. 23. 327
skins, who proves himself to be a liar. (Verse 1. Ps. lxii. 9.) The poor
gives readily. The rich cannot afford. He denies that he has the
ability. He promises, and does nothing. The poor man is better than
the liar. Only take heed to the motive. Men know not the heart.
"The Lord weigheth the spirit" (Chap. xvi. 2); and "the fire will try
every man's work of what sort it is." (1 Cor. iii. 13.)
23. The fear of the Lord tendeth to life: and he that hath it shall abide
satisfied; he shall not be visited with evil.
The fear of the Lord as a legal principle, it is a privilege to be
exempt from.1 As a grace of the gospel, cultivate it to the uttermost.2
Threefold fruit is here set before us — life—satisfaction— security.3 It
tendeth to life--not the mere natural life, common to the ungodly —
(though this blessing, so far as is good, is included4), but a heavenly,
yea—an eternal, life5 in the favour and enjoyment of God. So far as
we are under its influence, we speak, pray, think, and deal with man, as
if God was standing by. The genial beams of "the Sun of righteous-
ness" nourish this holy principle (Mal. iv. 2); and soon will it be
perfected in the service above. (Rev. xv. 3, 4.)
Meanwhile the satisfaction which it imparts is a precious privilege.
The service of God is now our delight—our "great delight." The law
is no task-master over our heads, but a principle of life and joyous
energy within. The worldling's heart is torn with ‘an aching void.'
He travels from one source of happiness to another, crying—"Who will
shew me any good?" "Lord! lift thou up the light of thy counte-
nance upon me"—is the cry and solid satisfaction of a child of God,
above the best portion of earth. (Ps. iv. 6, 7.) Instead of being cast
from wave to wave, here is quiet rest. Whoever wants, "they that fear
the Lord want no good thing. Their souls dwell at ease." (Ib. xxxiv.
9, 10; xxv. 12, 13.) He that hath it shall abide satisfied. Is not this
fixed repose and trust in his love the very soul of happiness?
If it be said, that an object of fear usually brings dread. 'But add,
whom—He that feareth the Lord. That touch turns it into gold. He
that so fears, fears not.'* He has his "confidence and place of refuge
high and sure, an impregnable fortress." (Chap. xiv. 26.) We do not
begin to inquire the way. "God is known in the palaces of Zion as a sure
refuge." (Ps. xiviii. 3.) We go to him as a God, with whom we are
acquainted, and who is engaged in covenant to us. And now taking
our sanctuary in God, we sit, and sing under his shadow. In this
hiding-place how can any evil, properly so called, visit us? (Chap. xii.
21.) What is evil in itself will turn to good. (Rom. viii. 28. Heb. xii.
1 Luke, i. 74. Rom. viii. 15. 2 Tim. i. 7. 2 Heb. xii. 28. 1 Pet. i. 17.
3 See Eccius. xxxiv. 15-17. 4 Chap. ix. 11; x. 27. 5 Ps. xxxiii. 18, 19; xxxiv. 11, 12.
* LEIGHTON'S Sermon on Ps. cxii. 7.
328 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
11.) It cannot separate from God. It will tend only to bind us closer
to him. We can tread upon scorpions unhurt, when our conscience is
kept tender, and our heart fixed in his ways. We fear not his uplifted
arm. But his frown of rebuke "enters into our soul." His mercy
sweeps away the fear, of terror. His holiness maintains the fear of
reverence. Conscious security only tends more than ever to make us
dread departure and separation from his love.
24. A slothful man hideth his hand in his bosom, and will not so much as
bring it to his mouth again.
Another forcible figure of the palsy of sloth!* It so grows on its
victim, that he has no heart to do even necessary things for himself; as
if he could not take his hand out of his bosom; and would rather suffer
the cravings of hunger, than make the exertion of putting his food into
his mouth. A melancholy picture it is of many fair intentions and
promises, and apparently good beginnings in religion—all stopped for
want of the effort to overcome the least hindrance. Every religious
duty is a burden. The struggle necessary for prayer—the only means
of receiving our spiritual food—is too hard. The soul, that seemed
to have been awakened, sinks into its former lethargy; and the effort
to rouse it becomes each time fainter and more hopeless. The hand
cannot be stretched out, though it were to lay hold on a crown.
Some, indeed, seem to feel little or no exertion to be necessary; a
plain proof, that they have never been really in earnest about this
momentous concern. The conflict is not imaginary. "Woe unto
those, who," reposing on the lap of indulgence, “are at ease in Zion.”
(Amos, vi. 1.) A religion without sacrifice, without diligence, will
never open a way to heaven. It is treasuring up unavailing repentance
against the latter days. If the work of the day, much more the work
of eternity, calls for all diligence. If the Emperor Titus could mourn,
that he ‘had lost a day,' what will be the stinging remorse of having
lost a life! To think, that by a right beginning, followed up by "a
patient continuance in well-doing" (Rom. ii. 7), we might have
effectively" served the will of God in our generation" (Acts, xiii. 36),
so as to have been missed in the world after we had "fallen asleep;"
to think that we might have sown seed for eternity, so that our
"memory," instead of "rotting," would "have been blessed" (Chap.
x. 7); that all this was wished, contemplated, nay—even resolved;
yet not an atom of it accomplished: will not this be a thorn for a dying
pillow, perhaps the tormenting worm for eternity?
The mere waste of time is far from being the worst part of the evil.
It is fatal alike to our well-being, and our well-doing, to condemn our
energies to rust out in inactivity. Thomson's excuse for reposing in
* See similar figures Chap. xii. 27; xxvi. 15. Eccles. iv. 5.
CHAP. XIX. 24, 25. 329
his ‘Castle of Indolence' was, that he had nothing to do. And doubt
less the want of an object is sufficient to, make an idler of a man of
talent. But can this ever be the condition of any one — even the least
occupied, or the least influential among us? Are any of us freed from
the responsibility of diligence, if not for ourselves, at least in the ser-
vice of our fellow-creatures. Much less can the Christian plead as an
excuse for "standing idle," that "no man hath hired him." (Matt. xx.
6, 7.) Is not the great object always in sight, always worthy of all
the concentration of mind, talent, and energy — "To me to live is
Christ?" (Philip. i. 21.)
The special time for the resistance of this deadly disease, is when
we are most under its power. When the Bible is uninteresting as a
common book, then is the time to live in it with patient diligence.
When prayer is cold and heartless, instead of giving up, hold on, how-
ever feebly, yet with perseverance. When in a state of listless exertion,
be employed for God and for his Church. Form habits of early energy.
Beware of a dreaming sentimentalism. Cultivate bodily activity.
Regard the incursions of sloth as the effects of those poisons, which,
while they cause sleep, unless counteracted by constant resistance,
must prove fatal. Yet with all these means, never forget the one only
principle, that makes them effectual — prayer, unceasing, believing,
"looking unto Jesus," who not only gives life, but liveliness. (Heb. xii.
1, 2. John, x. 10.)
Christian! He who hath awakened you from the sleep of death, will
keep you awake, till the Lord come. Still even with you much drow-
siness remains, trifling away time in a tame, barren profession, such as
your Lord will not tolerate. He will make you feel, that life is a solemn
reality, that prayer is not a half-hearted work, but a close dealing with
the living God, a warm pulse of the hidden life, a continued conflict
with mighty enemies.
Are you then struggling in this conflict? Look for repose only in
the arms of victory. While the conflict lasts, there is no time for
loitering or for slumber. Yet forget not to thank God for every victory,
yea, for the continued strength, enabling you to persevere in the fight;
for the wise dispensation also, that appoints this holy conflict, as the
means of invigorating our faith, our hope, our meetness for the crown,
and our joyful expectation of it. If peace with God is our life, "the joy
of the Lord is our strength" (Neh. viii. 10), our health, our happiness,
yet not to be found in a listless, enervated habit.
25. Smite a scorner, and the simple will beware; and reprove one that hath
understanding, and he will understand knowledge.
There is a difference of opinion upon the profit of punishments.
Some will have it, that, if the will does not give way to reason, forced
330 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
obedience is of little use. But God's word and ordinance is our stan-
dard, though great wisdom is required in the measure and adaptation.
Two kinds are here mentioned; each measured out according to the
character of the offender, but both wholesome in their results. The
scorner is a bold sinner. Smite him, that the simple may beware. (Chap.
xxi. 11. Acts, xiii. 6-12.) It may be a timely warning to those that
are led by him. The taking the ring-leader of a mischievous party
may put an end to the combination. This is the benefit of laws. Often
an example made, though the sinner himself continues hardened, is for
the good of the whole body. Thus ‘God strikes some, that he may
warn all.'*
But a man of understanding reprove. There is no occasion to smite.
"A reproof entereth more into a wise man, than a hundred stripes into
a fool." (Chap. vii. 10; xv. 5.) In the scorner's case, the profit is to
others. In the wise man's, it is to himself. He will understand know-
ledge. (Chap. ix. 8, 9.) His wisdom enables him to profit, and to be
thankful for the seasonable check. (Ps. cxli. 5.) Never let us forget the
mercy of being kept from sin, or being restored from it, though it be by
our. Master's sharp and gracious rebuke—"As many as I love, I rebuke
and chasten; be zealous therefore, and repent." (Rev. iii. 19.)
26. He that wasteth his father, and chaseth away his mother, is a son that
causeth shame, and bringeth reproach.
This is, alas! not an ideal picture of recklessness. "Without
natural affection (Rom. i. 30, 31)--is an awful mark of unrestrained
depravity. Man is the debased slave of his selfish lust. The profligate
may waste his father's substance by extravagance, and his spirits and
health by his ill-conduct. Absalom wasted his father by his undutiful
rebellion. (2 Sam. xv. 1-14.) And often has a mother's tenderness
been repaid with crushing unkindness. The insolence of an ungrateful
son virtually chaseth her from her home. Her idol has become her
curse! Such monsters in human shape, outraging every principle of
humanity, have been found in every generation. Yet seldom do they
escape without some mark of retributive justice even in this life. (Chap.
xxx. 11, 17.) And though they may be callous to public opinion, while
causing shame, and bringing reproach on their names; yet conscience will
speak (Isa. lvii. 20); and, sooner or later, the stroke will fearfully fall.
Children! A parent's sorrows carry a heavy account before the bar of
God. If "the commandment be with promise '' (Eph. vi. 2), will not
the breach of the commandment cut off the entail of the promise, with
an awful and aggravated weight of condemnation?
* Bishop Hall. Compare Exod. xviii. 10, 11. Deut. xiii. 11; xix. 20; xxi. 21. Acts, v.
1-11. Rev. xi. 13.
CHAP. XIX. 27. 331
27. Cease, my son, to hear the instruction that causeth to err from the words
of knowledge.*
Hear the same caution from the lips of our Divine Master--"Be-
ware of false prophets. Take heed what ye hear." (Matt. vii. 15.
Mark, iv. 24.) All instruction is not to life. Teachers of evil, "Minis-
ters of Satan,"1 abound. And their instruction, causing to err from the
words of knowledge, is more palatable to the perverseness of the heart;
more alluring to the inexperience of the young, than solid Scriptural
teaching.2 The Apostle reproved the Galatian Church for listening to
teachers, causing them to err fatally from the words of knowledge.3 And
would he not have warned us against the same teaching, so fearfully
prevalent: placing ordinances in the stead of Christ, or conjoined with
him; man's proud work of "voluntary humility" and external service in
the room of pure simplicity of reliance on the Redeemer's work? When
the soul has thus "fallen from grace" (Ib. v. 4), what ground of confi-
dence can we bring before God? What is his service, but the bondage
of outward ceremonies, leading to cheerless despondency?
This instruction is not generally a bold and direct departure from
truth. But, as in the first temptation (Gen. iii. 1-6), it causeth to err
so gradually, that the deviation from the straight line is scarcely per-
ceptible, till the mischief has been accomplished. Had Eve at once
ceased to hear, she would not have erred from the words of knowledge.
But the success of the first attempt has emboldened the seducer to deal
out his deadly poison to her enfeebled children. And what faithful
pastor does not feel a "godly jealousy" for his flock, lest by the same
beguilement "they should be corrupted from the simplicity that is in
Christ ?" (2 Cor. xi. 3.)
Insinuating infidels, who endeavour to shake the principles of
young persons under the pretence of removing heedless scruples, and
enlarging their minds, and delivering them from the shackles of
bigotry— such persons shun them as the plague. Let us sound a cau-
tion also against false teachers of a more plausible, and therefore more
dangerous character. Let their devices and disguises be fully laid
open. It is the “wolf,” not in his native dress, but "in sheep's cloth-
ing." (Matt. vii. 15.) "Cunning craftiness" is the distinctive character
of the instruction. (Eph. iv. 14.) All that is pleasing is brought out
as a cover for the delusion. Perhaps never was the poison commended
in so attractive a form. All the charms of elegant fiction are employed
to give effect to it. A. lovely picture of practical religion is exhibited.
1 2 Cor. xi. 18-15. 2 Isa. xxx. 10. Jer. v. 31. 3 Gal. i. 6, 7; iii. 1-4; v. 7, 8.
* There is some difficulty upon the rendering of this verse—but Holden concludes the
‘least interpretation to be that of our Translators.' Mr. Scott adds, that ‘this translation
is of so much importance, that it should not be lightly departed from.'
332 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
Or the deliverance from the fowler's open snare is pourtrayed with
glowing colour of interest. Superficial readers are captivated by the
external loveliness. Parents -- sometimes even Christian parents --
commend to their children these pictures as models of domestic religion
or Church orthodoxy. But the wise watchman would raise his warning
voice--Cease, my son, from hearing.--To hear—to regard— is to err.
All these beauteous sketches of fancy are the framework, that conceal
principles most unscriptural. Weigh them in the balances of the sanc-
tuary, and they will be found wanting. Trace them to their source, and
it will be found to be a corrupt fountain. The Church, not Christ, is
the foundation principle. A human standard, not the word of God, is
the rule. Cease from hearing.1
Indeed everywhere we would give the warning, that needlessly to
tamper with error, is "entering into temptation." Nay, it is most
hazardous to deal with it at all, ere our minds are thoroughly grounded
in the truth, and we have obtained "the good thing of the heart esta-
blished with grace."2 Yet we have senses given for discernment. Use
increaseth this discernment.3 Increasing clearness should be the
matter of daily supplication.4 We are bound therefore to exercise our
senses by the plainest commands.5 Our Divine Master distinctly
rebukes indolence.6 When the words came with the stamp of an
apostle, the appeal to the unerring standard was highly commended7
Should we give up our judgment to the Church, be it remembered, that
"every one of us shall bear his own burden, and shall give an account
of himself to God."8 Be the son, not the slave, of the Church, Reve-
rence her just authority; but maintain that right of private judgment,
which constitutes our personal responsibility.
This Christian independence however must be held with humility
and simplicity. The duty of private judgment must be felt as one's
own burden, to be cast on none but God. Hence we must carefully
restrain self-will. We must attend the ordinances in the spirit of
learners rather than as judges desiring to gather instruction in child-
like simplicity, and watching lest the appetite for wholesome food
should give place to a spiritual lust. (See 2 Tim. iv. 3.) While the
right of judgment is our great privilege, never let us forget, that the
licentiousness of it is a cankering evil. If the Romanist enslave the
right, let the sound Protestant discipline its exercise.
But what-- if our lot be manifestly cast, and our sphere of Christian
obligation opened, where words of knowledge are not found? We would
suggest at commencement, that particular cases require particular
application. There may be cases, when the call would be direct to
1 Rom. xvi. 17, 18. 1 Tim. vi. 3-5. 2 Tim. ii. 16, 17. 2 Heb. xiii. 9.
3 Heb. v. 14. 4 Phil. i. 9, 10. M.R. 5 1 Tbess. v. 21. 1 John, iv. I.
6 Luke, xii. 57. 7 Acts, xvii. 11. Comp. Isa. viii. 20. 8 Gal. vi. 5. Rom. xiv. 12.
CHAP. XIX. 27, 28. 333
cease from hearing. If the teaching be heretical, or wholly unevan-
gelical, if the teacher's life be immoral or scandalously worldly; if the
children and servants of the family are manifestly in danger of being
caused to err, the path may be made plain to depart. And yet in this
case much exercise of mind, much personal sacrifice would be called
for to separate from the Minister, not from the Church. And under no
circumstances let the ungodliness of the Minister be an excuse for the
neglect of Christian ordinances. At the same time, in many more
cases than are ordinarily supposed, the mature Christian will remain in
his place, continue in prayer, abound in labour of love, meekly use, as
occasion may allow, the weapons of admonition and reproof, display a
consistent example, and take up his appointed cross. In some cases,
when the offence is open, and the error manifest, sound discipline may
bring the heretical or ungodly teacher to punishment, and thus open
the way for better instruction.
To the mass—who are mainly dependent upon the Ministry for
instruction, some forbearance must be admitted, even should they be
constrained by hunger to cease from hearing those, who would give
them a stone for bread. At least the main guilt lies on "the stranger,"
not on them, that flee from him, for they "know not his voice." (John,
x. 5.) Fearful indeed will be the witness of many a soul neglected, if
not "destroyed, for lack" of hearing the words of knowledge. Assured
as we are, that the preaching of Christ is the alone preservation from
this tremendous evil, if Christ be preached, and sinners are converted
to him by other less accredited teachers, "we do rejoice, yea, and we
will rejoice." (Philip. i. 18.) Yet where Christians can abide, let them
do so—Let them "trust in the Lord, and do good."* The words of
knowledge always, will they hear from the Church, if not from her
Ministers. The deficiency in privilege will be abundantly supplied.
Christian activity will be a quickening means of grace. The constant
application of the touchstone will be a preservation from error. The
food of the word will be more precious. And who knows but an
enlightened Minister may be given to the power of believing
prayer, and to the living influence of godly meekness, patience, and
consistency?
28. An ungodly witness (witness of Belial, marg.) scorneth judgment, and
the mouth of the wicked devoureth iniquity. 29. Judgments are pre-
pared for scorners, and stripes for the back of fools.
Justly is this man called a witness of Belial. Satan himself hath
suborned him for his own malicious purposes.† Scorning, instead of
* Ps. xxxvii. 3. See a remarkable instance in the Life of Mr. Walker of Truro.
† 1 Kings, xxi. 13. Such was the keen description of the Roman Satirist--
Tam facile et pronum est Superos contemnere testes, &c.
JUVEN, Sat. xiii. 75.
334 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
regarding judgment, his testimony is worthless. He has "cast the law
behind his back." He devours iniquity with greediness, feeds upon it as
his proper food, and, sinning without remorse, he is always ready to
trade in his deceit, either for gain or revenge.
But in this greedy devouring he has swallowed the hook with the
bait. For such scorners judgments are prepared. For such fools as thus
"make a mock of sin" (Chap. xiv. 9)--stripes are ready for their backs,
often inflicted by men, the instruments of God. Scorners are warned
"lest their bands be made strong" (Isa. xxviii. 22) for judgment, which,
however they may despise, they cannot resist. Can thine heart endure,
or can thine hands be strong, in the day that I shall deal with thee?
Who shall dwell with the devouring fire? Who shall dwell with ever-
lasting burnings? It is a fearful thing to fall into the hands of the
living God.l Oh! that thoughtless, light-minded young-person; would
lay such words to heart! When they join in the laugh of their more
hardened companions, and learn from them to scorn judgment, in spite
of the accusings of a conscience not yet silenced; let them tremble, lest
from "standing in the way of sinners," they may go on to "sit in the
seat of the scornful" (Ps. i. 1), and may even exceed their companions
in despising the threatenings of God.
And when under these slighted judgments, who is to blame for
them? ‘Our sin'—saith Bishop Hall—‘is our own, and the wages of
sin is death. He that doth the work, earns the wages. So then the
righteous God is cleared both of our sin and our death. Only his
justice pays us what our evil deeds deserve. What a wretched thing
is a wilful sinner, that will needs be guilty of his own death!*
Blessed—blessed day! should it ever see him bemoaning himself
thus—"Thou hast chastised me, and I was chastised, as a bullock
unaccustomed to the yoke; turn thou me, and I shall be turned; for
thou art the Lord my God." (Jer. xxxi. 18.)
CHAPTER XX.
1. Wine is a mocker, strong drink is raging: and whosoever is deceived
thereby is not wise.
THE history of the world from the days of Noah (Gen. ix. 21) proves,
that the love of wine and strong drink is a most insidious vice. The
wretched victims are convinced too late, that they have been mocked
and grievously deceived. Not only does it overcome them before they
are aware, but it promises pleasures which it can never give. And yet
so mighty is the spell, that the besotted slave consents to be mocked
1 Ezek. xxii. 14. Isa. xxxiii. 14. Heb. x. 31.
* Works, viii. 156.
CHAP. XX. 1, 2. 335
again and again, till "at last it biteth like a serpent, and stingeth like
an adder." (Chap. xxiii. 29-32.)
Its raging power degrades below the level of the beasts. The
government of reason is surrendered to lust, appetite, or passion.1
Ahasuerus, with his merry heart, shewed himself most irrational.2
The conqueror of the East murdered his friend. All is tumult and
recklessness. The understanding is gradually impaired.* "The heart,
uttereth perverse things." (Chap. xxiii. 33.) Other sins of the same
black dye follow in its train,† often hurrying into the very jaws of
destruction.3 Surely then whosoever is deceived thereby is not wise.
Humbling indeed is it to human nature, to see, not only the mass
of the ignorant, but splendid talents, brutalized by this lust; that which
was once " created in the image of God," now sunk into the dregs of
shame! Yet more humbling is the sight even of God's own people
"wallowing in this mire." The examples of Noah and Lot are recorded
(Gen. xix. 33), not as a laughing-stock to the ungodly, but as a beacon
to the saints. "Let him that thinketh he standeth, take heed lest he
fall." (1 Cor. x. 12.) Even au Apostle had practically learnt, that his
security lay not in the innate strength of his principles, but in the
unceasing exercise of Christian watchfulness. (Ib. ix. 27.) "Take heed
to yourselves"—is the needful warning of our Divine Master—"lest
your hearts be overcharged with surfeiting and drunkenness, and so
that day come upon you unawares. Be not drunk with wine"—said
the great Apostle —"wherein is excess; but be filled with the Spirit."
(Luke, xxi. 34. Eph. v. 18.)
2. The fear of a king is as the roaring of a lion; whoso provoketh, him
to anger sinneth against his own soul.
The wrath of the king has been before mentioned under this figure.
(Chap. xix. 12.) Here his fear is described, the effect for the cause.
Even Joab with 'all his valour, trembled at this roaring of the lion, and
fled for refuge to the horns of the altar.4 Jonathan felt the strong
necessity for appeasing it.5 Such was the power of the king (unknown
in our happy land) the sole, the uncontrolled arbiter of life and death;6
whosoever therefore provoked him to anger, sinned, as Adonijah found to
his cost (1 Kings, ii. 23), against his own soul. What must then be the
fear of the Great King! ‘Armies of terrors and doubts are nothing to
a look of his angry countenance. "0 Lord," says that holy man (con-
sidering the frailty of poor man, and the power of God) "who knoweth
1 1 Sam. xxv. 36. Isa. lvi. 12. Hos. vii. 5. 2 Esth. i. 10-12.
3 2 Sam. xiii. 28. 1 Kings, xvi. 8-10; xx. 16. Jer. li. 39, 57. Dan. v. 1-4. Nah. i. 10.
4 1 Kings, ii. 28-34. 5 1 Sam. xix. 4-6. Eccles. x. 4. 6 Chap. xvi. 14. Esth. vii. 8.
* Isa. xxviii. 7. Hos. iv. 11. Plato determines that not only old men, but drunkards,
come to childhood.—De Legibus, I.
† Gen. xix. 83. Isa. v. 11, 12, 22, 23. See the fine description, 1 Esdras, iii. 13-24.
336 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
the power of thine anger? according to thy fear, so is thy wrath."'*
Even "a little kindling" is ruin past conception, and without remedy?
(Ps. ii. 12.) Nay—his very "enduring long-suffering," kindles the
fire more fiercely for "the vessels of wrath," whose aggravated pro-
vocations of it have "fitted them for destruction." (Rom. ix. 22.)
Miserable sinner! deprecate his wrath. Seek a Mediator. Beware of
continuing to sin.'†
3. It is an honour for a man to cease from strife: but every fool will be
meddling.
The opposition of this precept to the maxim of the world proves it
to, be from God. A world of sin must always be a world of strife,
because governed by "the wisdom that descendeth not from above,"
the parent of "strife, confusion, and every evil work." (Jam. iii. 14-16.)
And yet an evil world is a fine theatre for the display of the grace of
God, in the fruits of "the wisdom that is from above"--meekness,
gentleness. (Ib. 17, 18.) We have been before reminded, that "it is
the glory of a man to pass over transgression" (Chap. xix. 11); here
—to cease from strife. Many from the love of quiet, if not from a
better motive, would overlook an injury. Yet if they were embroiled
in strife, they would feel their honour at stake, not in ceasing from it, but
in following it up, striking the last blow. Far more difficult is it to
gather back the waters once let out, than to restrain them within their
proper bounds. To "leave off contention,"‡ especially when we see
that we are in the wrong; or—if in the right—that no good will
come from it--this "is an high honour for a man, a noble triumph
over the flesh."l Abraham thus ceased from strife by disinterested
concession. (Gen. xiii. 8, 9.) Isaac spewed himself a man of peace
under the vexatious annoyance of the Philistines. (Ib. xxvi. 17—31)
The prophet "went his way," to prevent a further kindling of anger.
(Jar. xxviii. 11.) But how much more commonly is strife fed by the
folly of man's pride, than extinguished by a peaceful and loving spirit!2
The meddling fool rushes into strife as his element:3 and thus becomes
a torment to himself, and a plague to those around him. To return
"a soft answer" to "grievous words,"4 and to keep out of the way of
an angry person,5 is the path of wisdom. To "put on meekness and
long-suffering," and to “let the peace of God rule in our hearts”--these
1 Chap. xvi. 32. Rom. xii. 21. 2 Judg. viii. 1; xii. 1.
3 Chap. xviii. 6 ; 2 Sam. x. 1-14; 2 Kings, xiv. 8. 4 Chap. xv. 1. 5 Chap. xxv. 8.
* LEIGHTON'S Sermon on Jer. x. 23, 24. Ps. xc. 11.
† Geier in loco.
‡ Chap. xvii. 14. Indeed—as Schultens remarks—'Solomon is here giving full signi-
ficance to this former proverb, which however'—he adds—'considered by itself, strongly
sets out the disgraceful and most dishonourable lust of quarrelling.'
CHAP. XX. 4. 337
are the marks of " the elect of God," following the example of our Divine
Master. (Col. iii. 12-45.)
4. The sluggard will not plow by reason of the cold: therefore shall he beg
in harvest, and have nothing.
Again (Chap. xix. 15, 24) are we instructed by a vivid picture of a
most baneful vice. The sluggard always has his excuses ready to shift
off any work, that requires exertion. He will not plough by reason of
the cold; although the season (our autumn) offered no hindrance, where
the heart was in the work. And does not the most trifling difficulty
hinder, where the heart is cold in the service of God? Let the pro-
fessor ask himself--Have his prayers during his whole life cost him
exercise answering to one hour's ploughing? What has he given to
God but the shadow of duties, when the world has had his full glow
and energy? The flesh flinches from suffering; and even, under the
wakefulness of temporary conviction, the heart is "sorrowful" at the
requisitions of Christianity, which it cannot admit.* Farewell heaven
for ever, if it must be obtained at such a cost. How affecting is the
a contrast between our work for Christ, and his work for us—We
grudging exercise for him; He so filled with the absorbing interest
of his work—"How am I straitened till it be accomplished!"
(Luke, xii. 50.)
But the sluggard must reap the fruit of his sin. If he will not plough
in the seed-time, he cannot reap in harvest. At that happy season---
the recompense of the labourer's toil—he shall beg, and have nothing.
'Men's hearts are justly hardened against that man, who by his own
sloth and sinfulness hath brought himself to want.† And what else
can the spiritual sluggard look for? The cold keeps him heartlessly
from the house of God. His soul is therefore perishing for lack of good.
If wishing would secure heaven, who would miss it? But heartless
wishes, without the crucifixion of the flesh, will stop short of the
promise. Millions have perished in serious religion, from want of
diligence and self-sacrificing devotedness. And what will it be to beg
in the great harvest, and beg in vain;1 then to have all wicked excuses
silenced, and the fearful doom pronounced upon the unprofitable
servant!2
Christian professor! is it time to stand idle, when we stand at the
door of eternity? —to be slack, when so near our great salvation?
(Rom. xiii. 11.) ‘Blessed are those, who have sown much for God in
their lifetime. Oh! the glorious harvest that those shall have ! The
1 Matt. xxv. 3-9. Luke, xvi. 24. 2 Matt. xxv. 26-30.
* Matt. xix. 21, 22. The shrinking from the cold—(as Melancthon observes in his brief
comment on this verse)—is the avoiding the cross.
† POOLE'S Annotations.
338 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
very angels shall help them to take in their harvest at the great day.
And oh! the joy that there shall be in that harvest! The angels will
help to sing the harvest-song, that they shall sing, who have been
sowers of righteousness!*
5. Counsel in the heart of man is like deep water; but a man of
understanding will draw it out.
The depths in the heart of man are not easily fathomed. Often are
they the subtilty of evil.1 David was duped by the smooth promises
of Saul,2 and afterwards by the religious hypocrisy of his ungodly son.3
The counsel of Daniel's enemies was too deep for Darius to see the
bottom of it.4 The counsel of Herod probably blinded the wise men as
to his real intentions.5 And yet a man of understanding will often
draw out the subtle counsel, and set it in its true light. David described
the deep counsels of his enemies, as one who had penetrated the bottom.6
Job accurately discovered the true, but indirect, counsel of his mistaken
friends. (Job, xxi. 27, 28.) Paul drew out the secret counsel of selfish-
ness in the schismatical preachers of the gospel. (Phil. i. 15.)
But let us look at the bright side. Observe a man of God, in-
structed by God. Natural sagacity of intellect is deepened and
enlarged by spiritual light. His mind is enriched with the fruits of
scriptural study and meditation. Here are the deep waters of heavenly
counsel.7 The talkative professor in his superficial judgment sees
nothing. But a man of understanding will discover and draw out
valuable instruction. The Queen of Sheba thus drew out from the wise
man's capacious well deep and wholesome water. (1 Kings, x. 1-7.
Often, however, men of comprehensive mind have little sympathy with
general society. We may be in contact with them, without conscious-
ness of their worth. The waters are deep; but there is no bubbling up.
Yet a well-directed excitement will draw out flowing water from the
well-spring of wisdom. And often the intercourse, hitherto lost, with
a godly and experienced minister, or a soundly-instructed Christian,
becomes most precious—"He that walketh with wise men shall be
wise.' (Chap. xiii. 20.) But above all is to be prized familiarity with
the deep waters of the counsel of God. Say not—"I have nothing to
draw with, and the well is deep." (John, iv. 11.) A thinking habit in
the exercise of prayer will enable you "with joy to draw water from
the wells of salvation." (Isa. xii. 3.) Nay—will it not bring into
your own soul "a well of water, springing, up unto everlasting life?"
(John, iv. 14.)
1 Jer. xvii. 9. 2 1 Sam. xviii. 17-20. 3 2 Sam. xv. 7-9.
4 Dan. vi. 4-9. 5 Matt. ii. 8. 6 Ps. lxiv. 5, 6; cxix. 98.
7 Chap. xviii. 4. Contrast xxvi. 7, 9.
* BURROUGHS on Hos. x. 12.
CHAP. XX. 6. 339
6. Most men will proclaim every one his own goodness; but a faithful
man who can find?
The last Proverb spewed the depth of the heart; this its deceitful-
ness and pride. Hear a man's own estimate of himself, and we need
no further proof of his want of self-knowledge. (Chap. xvi. 2.) Even
the ungodly proclaims his own goodness, "Jehu took no heed to walk
in the way of the Lord.' Still—said he--"Come, see my zeal for the
Lord."l Absalom, while treason was at work within, "stole the hearts"
of the people by his loud pretensions to goodness.2 The whole nation,
while given up to all manner of iniquity, boasted of its integrity.3 The
Pharisee proclaimed his goodness at the corner of the streets;4 yea—
even in the presence of his God.5 Such is the blindness of a self-
deceiving heart! Lord! teach me to remember—"That which is
highly esteemed among men is abomination in the sight of God."6
After all, however, does not this glass, honestly used, exhibit more
resemblance to our own features, than we would readily admit? We
all condemn the open boasting of the Pharisee. But too often we
eagerly catch at the good opinion of the world. Contrivance is made
to gain the shadowy prize! A seeming backwardness is only, in order
that others may bring us forward. Care is taken, that it be known
that we were the authors, or at least, that we had a considerable part in
some work, that might raise our name in the Church. Sometimes we
are too ready to take a degree of credit to ourselves, which we do not
honestly deserve;* while we shrink from real reproach and obloquy
for the gospel's sake.
In opposition to this self-complacent goodness, Solomon, an accurate
observer of human nature, exclaims almost in despondency--A faithful
man—as a parent--a reprover—an adviser---one "without guile"--
who can find? (Mic. vii. 1, 2.) Look close. View thyself in the glass
of the word. (Ps. ci. 6.) Does thy neighbour, or thy friend, find thee
faithful to him? What does our daily intercourse witness? Is not
the attempt to speak what is agreeable often made at the expense of
truth? Are not professions of regard sometimes utterly inconsistent
with our real feelings? In common life, where gross violations are
restrained, a thousand petty offences are allowed, that break down the
wall between sin and duty, and, judged by the Divine standard, are
1 2 Kings, x. 16, 19-31. 2 2 Sam.. xv. 1-6.
3 Jer. ii. 23, 35; v. 1. Comp. Rom. ii. 17-23.
4 Matt. vi.1, 2, 5, 16; xxiii. 5. Comp. chap. xxvii. 2. 5 Luke, xviii. 11, 12.
6 Ib. xvi. 15.
* Chap. xxv. 14. Thus Lysias, the chief captain, represented to the governor, that he
had interposed for Paul from his zeal for a Roman citizen, when the simple truth was, that
he was ignorant of the fact at the time, and was about to scourge him as a rebel. Acts,
xxiii. 27, with xxi. 33, xxii. 24.
340 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
indeed guilty steps upon forbidden ground. Never let it be forgotten,
that the sound influence of the social virtues can only be maintained
by the graces of the gospel. Never let the Christian professor deem
moral integrity to be a low attainment. The man of God bursts forth
into fervent praise for upholding grace in this path. (Ib. xlii. 11, 12.)
For indeed, what can bring greater honour to God, than the proof
manifested in the conduct of his people,athat their daily transactions
are animated with the soul of integrity, that their word is unchange-
able? Never does godliness shine more bright, than in "shewing all
good fidelity in all things." (Tit. ii. 10.)
7. The just man walketh in his integrity: his children are blessed
after him.
The faithful man is here fully drawn, rich in the blessing of his God.
Take the history of the father of the faithful. Abraham was the just
man, accepted with God, and "walking before him" in his integrity.
And did not the covenant of his God engage an everlasting blessing for
his children after him? (Gen. xvii. 1, 2, 7.) And thus does every child
of Abraham, walking in the same integrity, secure "an inheritance for his
children's children."1 It is ‘not however for the merits of the parent,
that they deserve it: but such is the mercy of God to the root and the
branches; that, because the fathers are loved, their children also are
embraced.'* But we must shew our integrity, as did our father
Abraham, in the practical habit of faith; not only "taking hold of the
covenant" on our children's behalf, but bringing them under the yoke
of the covenant.2
Christian parents!—let integrity, as before God, be the broad stamp
of our family religion. Walk not according to the maxims of the
world yourselves, nor allow them in your children. Let us make God's
word—his whole word—our universal rule; his ways, however
despised, our daily portion. "Let us seek first," for our children as for
ourselves, "the kingdom of God and his righteousness."† Thus
walking in our integrity, we may look for the honoured blessing of being
the parents of a godly race. Our children are blessed after us; perhaps
"after we, having served our own generation by the will of God, shall
1 Chap. xiii. 22. Comp. Ex. xx. 5, 6. Ps. xxv. 12, 13; xxxvii. 26; cxii. 2.
2 Chap. xxii. 6, with Gen. xviii. 19.
* Muffet in loco. ‘The branches fare better for the sap of grace in the root.'—Swis-
Nock's Christian Man's Calling, p. 383. ' When God saith—He will be a God to, the godly
man and to his children, I believe he intended more in that promise for the comfort of
godly parents than most of them think of. Acts, ii. 39. Gen. xvii. 7. The children of
believers are heirs apparent to the co'benant of grace in their parents' right.'—Ib. The True
Christian, p, 193.
† Matt. vi. 33. This was Mr. Scott's grand rule of edification; and the manifest honour,
which his Master vouchsafed to his singleness and integrity in acting it out, is well known.
1 Sam. ii. 30. See Life, pp. 611-614.
CHAP. xx. 8. 341
have fallen asleep." (Acts, xiii. 36.) But well may we be content to
wait the coming of that great disclosing day, when "the thoughts of
many hearts shall be revealed." For then surely will the children's
blessing be found in the secret records of Heaven, linked with the
prayerful, practical exercises of the parents' faith and love.
8. A king that sitteth in the throne of judgment scattereth away all evil
with his eyes.
This is the picture of a godly king, such as the wise man's father
described and exemplified; "just, ruling in the fear of God;"1 making
it his great care and business to execute judgment. In those days he
sat himself on the throne of judgment, and decided the law.* And such
might be conceived to be his influence, that the wicked dared not come
and sin in his presence. "Will he force the queen also before me?"
(Esth. vii. 8) —was the indignant exclamation of a sovereign, on
feeling not only his own rights, but the reverence for royalty, grossly
outraged. David, as a man of God, and a sovereign of his people;
could not endure the wicked in his presence. (Ps. ci. 3-8.)
At present, "God standeth in the congregation of princes" (Ib.
lxxxii. 1), observing the manner, in which they execute the power
delegated to them; but hereafter he shall sit as "a judge" even of
them, who, by reason of that delegated power, are styled "gods." The
care then of the Magistrate, when he goeth up to the judgment-seat,
will be to put on righteousness as a glorious and beautiful robe, and to
render his tribunal a fit emblem of that eternal "throne," of which
"justice and judgment are the habitation."† And always in pro-
portion as the ruler realizes his solemn responsibility, evil will be made
to flee, and scattered away from him.‡
But what is to be ever standing before the Great King, who scattereth
away all evil with his eyes? "Thou art of purer eyes than to behold
evil, and cannot look on iniquity. The foolish shall not stand in thy
sight. All things are naked and opened unto the eyes of him with
whom we have to do." (Heb. i. 13. Ps. v. 5. Heb. iv. 13.) May the
High Priest ever stand between the sinner and the Holy God, that,
while we walk in reverence, we "may not be afraid with any amaze-
ment!"
1 2 Sam. xxiii. 3, with 2 Sam. viii. 15. 1 Kings, xv. 5.
* 1 Kings, iii. 16-28, with x. 9. A Roman commentator (Corn. Lapide) mentions
the custom of St. Louis of France to sit twice a-week in the throne of judgment, and his
dying charge to his successor, not only to appoint the most upright judges, but to overlook
them in the discharge of their office. Does not the Court of the Queen's Bench suppose the
Sovereign to be sitting there in determination of judgment?
† Ps. lxxxix. 14. Bishop HORNE's Sermon on the Great Assize.
‡ Verse 26; xxv. 4, 5. Comp. 2 Chron. xv. 16. Plutarch relates of Cato, that such was
the reverence of his character, that the bad women of Rome could not bear his look.
342 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
9. Who can say, I have made my heart clean, I am pure from my sin?
Behold the Great King sitteth on the throne of judgment, and chal-
lenging every child of Adam--"Gird up now thy loins like a man; for
I will demand of thee; and answer thou me." (Job, xxxviii. 3.) The
question is confounding. The answer humbles us in the dust- Who
can say—truly say---I have made my heart clean? A sinner in his self-
delusion may conceive himself to be a saint. But that a saint should
ever believe that he made himself so, is impossible. Who can say--I
am pure from my sin? What! no vain thoughts, no sinful imaginations,
lodging within! No ignorance, pride, wandering, coldness, worldli-
ness, unbelief indulged! The more we search the heart, the more will
its impurity open upon us. "Turn thou yet again, and thou shalt see
greater abominations" (Ezek. viii.. 13), evils hitherto unsuspected.
Vain boasters there are, who proclaim their good hearts. But the
boast proves, not their goodness, but their blindness; that man is so
depraved, that he cannot understand his own depravity.1 What say
they, who have entered into the presence of the King, whose holiness
scattereth away all evil? "Behold! I am vile!" said one. "Now
mine eye seeth thee. Wherefore I abhor myself." "Woe is me"—said
another--"for I am a man of unclean lips, for mine eyes have seen the
King, the Lord of hosts."2 Take again one—counted as the foremost
of the saints of God; a very flame of love for Christ and his Church;
"in labours more abundant than all;" in tenderness as a mother for
her new-born child; in walk "holy, just, and unblameable"--does he
speak of his purity from, sin? Verily in his highest state of Christian
attainment he feels himself to be the chief of sinners—a wondrous
"pattern of Divine long-suffering." (1 Tim. i. 15, 16.) Such was the
mighty power of depravity, mingled with such shining grace, that but
for a miracle of instant Almighty help, he might have been thrown from
"the third heavens into the snare of the devil."3 To descend to the
level near to our own day. ‘Once I thought'—said a holy man of
God—'some humiliating expressions of the saints of God, too low for
me—proud, blind wretch as I was! Now I can say with Edwards
‘Infinite upon infinite only reaches to my sinfulness.''* And indeed
there is not a conscious child of God, that does not drink into this self-
abased spirit. But for the clear manifestation of gospel grace, should
we not have cause to tremble, lest our sins—after such multiplied
engagements on our part, and such tender long-suffering on God's part
—should remain in all their hundredfold aggravations uncancelled in
the great account, and consign us in just demerit "to everlasting
1 1 John, i. 8. Comp. 1 Kings, viii. 46. Eccles. vii. 20. Jer. ii. 35. Hos. xii. 8.
2 Job, xl. 4; xlii. 5, 6. Isa. vi. 5. 3 2 Cor. xii. 2-7, with 1 Tim.iii. 6, 7.
* VENN's Life, p. 183.
CHAP. XX. 10. 343
punishment?" The clean heart therefore is not the heart pure from sin,
but the heart cleansed and renewed by grace. And truly, if none can
say---I have made my heart clean, myriads can witness to the blood of
him, who is the Son of God, cleansing it from guilt (1 John, i. 7), and
to the mightiness of the Creator to renew it unto holiness.
But are there not many, who in the house of God will confess them-
selves miserable sinners, and at the holy table will acknowledge 'the
burden of their sin to be intolerable,' who yet will go back to the world,
and boast or comfort themselves in the confidence of their goodness?
confessing indeed, that they are sinners, but stoutly warding off every
charge of sin? Ah! such are not "the heavy-laden," to whom Christ
hath promised "rest" (Matt. xi. 28); not "the lost, whom the Son of
Man is come to seek and to save." (Luke, xix. 10.) They will lie
beside the cleansing fountain, but never care to "wash and be clean."
But observe in this proverb the fundamentals of the gospel—man's
total corruption ; his inability to make his heart clean; and his grievous
tendency to self-deception. Hence his need. Hence, when that need
is felt, the value of the cleansing remedy. "If I wash thee not, thou
bast no part in me." If this be so, then, Lord, "not my feet only, but
my hands and my head." (John, xiii. 8, 9.) "Wash me throughly
from my transgressions, that I may be whiter than snow. Create in me
a clean heart, 0 God, and renew a right spirit within me." (Ps. li.
2, 7, 10.)
10. Divers weights (a stone and a stone, marg.) and divers measures (an
ephah and an ephah, marg.) both of them are alike abomination to
the Lord.
This probably refers to the iniquitous custom of having different
weights and measures for buying and for selling—one stone too heavy
the other too light. Such practices seem to have been among the crying
sins of the nation, that brought down the judgment of God upon it.l
So opposite are they to the character of "a God of truth and without
iniquity,"2 that the very stone and ephah were abomination to him.3 The
disuse of barter, and the more accurate system of inspection, have in
some measure restrained this gross form of fraud. But the cheats of
trickery and close dealing, the evasion of legal duties, taking advantage
of the ignorance of the unwary--all those deviations from the scriptural
standard are alike abomination to the Lord. 'A very grievous thing it is
to think of the several kinds of frauds and deceits, wherein men are
grown wondrous expert, and so shameless withal, that they think it
rather a credit to them, as an argument of their perfect understanding
1 Hos. xii. 7. Amos, viii. 4, 5. Mic. vi. 10, 11. 2 Deut, xxxii. 4.
3 Verse 23; xi. 1; Ps. v. 6.
344 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
in their several mysteries and particular professions, than any
blemish to them in their Christian profession.'* What a fearful dis-
closure will the great day make, to the "shame and everlasting
contempt" of the ungodly trafficker! Every man of moral integrity
will scorn the flagrant breach of the golden rule. But let this, as every
other temptation, be a matter of prayerful watchfulness. And be not
satisfied with abstaining from this hateful vice. But blot out its dark-
ness by the bright, steady shining of an upright profession, full of sim-
plicity, love, self-forgetfulness, and active sympathy with our neigh-
bour's wants. "Let integrity and uprightness preserve me; for I wait
on thee." (Ps. xxv. 21.)
11. Even a child is known by his doings,† whether his work be pure, and
whether it be right.
Let parents watch their children's early habits, tempers, and doings.
Generally the discerning eye will mark something in the budding of the
young tree, by which the tree in maturity may be known. The child
will tell what the man will be. No wise parent will pass over little
faults, as if it was only a child doing childish things. Everything
should be looked at as the index of the secret principle, and the work
or word should be judged by the principle. If a child be deceitful,
quarrelsome, obstinate, rebellious, selfish, how can we help trembling
for his growth? A docile, truth-loving, obedient, generous child—how
joyous is the prospect of the blossom and fruit from this hopeful
budding! From the childhood of Samuel,1 Timothy,2 much more of
the Saviour,3 we could not but anticipate what the manhood would be.
The early purity and right principles promised abundant and most
blessed fruit.
But do we mourn over the evil of our child, specially when tracing
it to its original source? Oh! let it be our stimulus to earnest and
persevering prayer, and to the diligent use of the appointed means for
that entire change of heart and nature, which we so intensely desire.
Take the child to the covenant of grace. Put the finger on the parental
promise (Gen. xvii. 7), and plead—"Remember the word unto thy
servant, whereunto thou hast caused me to hope." (Ps. cxix. 49.) The
answer may be delayed. But "though it tarry, wait for it. For at the
end it shall come; it shall not tarry." Meanwhile "live by faith" (Heb.
ii. 3, 4); work in faith. Never forget that we serve "the God of
Hope." Despair not of his grace. Doubt not his faithfulness. Hold
on in active energy and patient hope. The tears of despondency
1 Sam. i. 28; iii. 19, 20. 2 2 Tim. iii. 14, 15, with i. 5. Phil. ii. 20, 21.
3 Luke, ii. 50-52.
* Bishop SANDERSON'S Sermon on I Sam. xii. 3.
† ‘A child is known by his conversation.'—Bishop Coverdale.
CHAP. XX. 12. 345
shall be changed into tears of joy, giving a happy glow of warmth to
every tender remonstrance, and animating every prudential effort.
Thus the prodigal shall yet return. "The end of the Lord" will put
unbelief to shame. (James, v. 11.) Sore indeed was the trial of the
faith of Augustine's mother. But most glorious was the crown of her
patient wrestling constancy. And ever since has the judgment of the
godly Archbishop—‘It is impossible that the child of so many prayers
could ever perish'--been treasured up in the Church, as an axiom of
accredited warrant, and cheering support.
12. The hearing ear, and the seeing eye, the Lord hath made both of
them.
Seeing and hearing are the two senses, by which instruction is con-
veyed to the mind, They are component parts of that Divine struc-
ture, so "fearfully and wonderfully made."* The natural senses are
gifts common to all. The spiritual senses are the special gifts of sove-
reign power and grace.1 It was left for marl to make the ear that
cannot hear, and the eye that cannot see; and then to degrade himself to
the senseless level, by worshipping the work of his own hand. (Ps. cxv.
4-8.) But the hearing ear, and the seeing eye, the Lord hath made both
of them.
Man is deaf and blind in the things of God—"Having ears, he
hears not; having eyes, he sees not." (Matt. xiii. 13, 14.) The voice of
mercy is disregarded. To his need, and to his remedy, he is alike
insensible. His ear is open to sound advice, to moral doctrine, to the
dictates of external decency. But as to the gospel, he is a mere statue,
without life: All his senses are blinded, deadened, chained. (2 Cor. iv.
3, 4.) His moral disabilities can only be removed by that Almighty
power, which on earth gave ears to the deaf, and sight to the blind.2
As soon could we create our natural, as new-create our spiritual, self.
‘The hearing ear, which Solomon intends, is that which believeth and
obeyeth what it heareth. The seeing eye is that, which so seeth, as that
it followeth the good which it seeth.'† But who of us, whose ears are
wakened, and whose eyes are opened, will not rejoice in the adoring ac-
knowledgment—The Lord hath made both of them? Would Lydia
have ascribed "the opening of her heart" with a new power of attention
and interest to her own natural effort? (Acts, xvi. 14. Comp. Isa. i. 4.)
0 my God---may the ears and eyes which thou hast made be for thyself
alone ! to hear thy voice (1 Sam. iii. 9. Ps. lxxxv. 8) —to "behold thy
beauty." (Ps. xxvii. 4 ; lxiii. 2.)
1 Matt. xiii. 16, with Deut. xxix. 2-4. 2 Mark, vii. 34; viii. 22, 25, with Isa. xxxv. 5.
* Ps. cxxxix. 14. Comp. Ps. xciv. 9. Exod. iv. 11. The celebrated Galen is said to
have been converted from Atheism by an attentive observation of the perfect structure of
the eye.
† CARYL on Job, xxxiv. 3.
346 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
13. Love not sleep, lest thou come to poverty; open thine eyes, and thou
shalt be satisfied with bread.
Use ‘sleep, as tired nature's sweet restorer.'* So man requires it.
So God graciously gives it. (Ps. iii. 5; iv. 8; cxxvii. 2.) Without it
"man" could not "go forth to his work and to his labour." (Ib. civ. 23.)
Thus recruited for the active diligence of the day, he opens his eyes, "in
the sweat of his brow he eats his bread (Gen. iii. 19), and is satisfied with
it." But love not sleep for its own sake. ‘Let your sleep be necessary
and healthful, not idle and expensive of time beyond the needs and
conveniences of nature.'† Otherwise may it become a baneful and
ruinous habit, by which the man of talent, who has much responsibility
upon his hand, and no heart to act up to it--cometh to poverty. Valuable
opportunities for improvements are let slip, and "the strong man
armed" readily takes possession of his prey. (Chap. v. 9-11.) Strange
inconsistency and delusion! Man wishes for a long life, and yet wil-
fully shortens the life given to him, by dozing it away in sleep!‡
The time given for eternity is wasted. The talent entrusted for trading
is hid in a napkin. Nothing is done for God, for the soul, for his
fellow-creatures, or for heaven justly is he cast out as a wicked,
because a slothful, servant. (Matt. xxv. 14-30.)
Unquestionably the Christian degrades himself from his proper level
by needless indulgence; choosing a state common to him with the
brutes, before that which elevates him to fellowship with angels. Nor
can he set his heavenly privilege of communion with God at a very
high estimate, if he be not willing to sacrifice fleshly pleasure for the
enjoyment of it. The evil however does not end with the present
indulgence. The habits of the day are enervated. The mind is--at
least partially—asleep, during the routine of occupation. What is
idle, or calling for little effort, is alone agreeable. Every exercise of
self-denial is revolting. It is sufficiently obvious that this spirit has
little sympathy with the genuine spirit of religion—life and spirit, and
joy and energy. It sinks far below the step and obligation of those,
whose profession is —"temples of the Holy Ghost,"1 "children of the
light and of the day,"2 "virgins with their lamps trimmed "3 for the
11 Cor. xvi. 19. 2 1 Thess. v. 5, 6. 3 Matt. xxv. 7.
* Young. † Bishop TAYLOR'S Holy Living, Chap. I. Sect. i.
‡ Chap. xix: 15. Dr. Doddridge's life, though far from reaching the age of man (Ps.
xe. 10), was yet, by the resistance of this besetting temptation, virtually extended to the
ordinary bounds. By his successful energy in redeeming time from sleep he accomplished
his invaluable work in the midst of multiplied engagements. See Family Expositor on
Rom. xii. 13. ‘I take it for granted, that every Christian, who is in health, is up early in
the morning. For it is much more reasonable to suppose a person up early, because he is a
Christian, than because he is a labourer, or a tradesman, or a servant, or has business that
wants him.'— Law's Serious Call.
CHAP. XX. 14. 347
bridegroom's coming, animated candidates for an incorruptible and
eternal crown.l
Specially should those of us, who are of a drowsy habit of body,
listen to the call—Love not sleep. Here perhaps may be the Christian
conflict, often most painful in the house of God. But in this solemn
assembly—the gate of heaven—may we not hear the gentle rebuke,
"What! could ye not watch with me one hour? Watch and pray,
that ye enter not into temptation." (Matt. xxvi. 40, 41.) When
resisted, it is an infirmity; when allowed, or only feebly opposed, it is
sin. At all events, in the service of God it is safer to consider it, not
as a weariness to be encouraged, but as an indulgence to be mortified,
and that with vigorous energy of conflict. Else, whilst the self-denying
Christian will open his eyes, and be filled with bread, the power of the flesh
may impoverish the spirit by the indulgence of a lifeless habit of
prayer, hearing, and meditation.
14. It is naught, it is naught, saith the buyer; but when he is gone his way,
then he boasteth.*
The Bible gives abundant proof, that man has always been the same
in every generation since the fall. Where is the market, in which the
counterpart to this disclosure of fraud and selfishness centuries ago is
not found? Commerce, the Lord's providential dispensation to bind
man to man, is marred by his depravity. The wise man had before
detected the iniquity of the seller. (Verse 10. Comp. Ecclus. xxvii. 2.)
Here he lays bare the buyer, and, to bring it home more closely, he
gives even the market-language--It is naught—it is naught—'The
article is of an inferior quality. I can get it cheaper elsewhere. If it
is worth so much, yet not to me; I have no present want of it, no
particular care about it.' And when by these convenient falsehoods he
has struck a shrewd bargain, he is gone his way; he boasteth, laughing at
the simplicity of the seller, and is probably highly commended for his
cleverness. (Jam. iv. 16.)
The same principle of fraud applies to the seller. If the one says
—It is naught—it is naught—the other no less eagerly cries—‘It is
good—it is good'—'when neither of both speaketh, either as he
thinketh, or as the truth of the thing is.'† The one is bent on buying
cheap; the other on selling dear. The one decries unjustly; the other
praises untruly. He asks one price, when he means to take another,
and takes advantage of the confidence of his customer to impose on him
a worthless article.‡ In fact, 'no man's experience would serve him to
1 1 Con ix. 24, 25.
* Verses 14-19 are omitted in LXX. † Bishop SANDERSON's Sermon on 1 Sam. xii. 3.
‡ Amos, viii. 6. Contrast the disinterested transaction Gen. xxiii. 3-18. Augustine men-
tions a somewhat ludicrous, but significant, story. A mountebank published in the full
348 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
comprehend, no man's breath to declare, the infinite variety of those
more secret and subtle falsehoods, that are daily invented and exercised
everywhere under the sun.'*
All of us are engaged in pecuniary transactions. With many it is
the main business of life. Yet such are the temptations from our own
interest or self-defence, the selfishness of others, and the general
example of the world, to deviate from the straight line; that we should
be most thankful for this probing analysis of deceit. The man of God
stands on the frontier of the line of demarcation, and warns against a
single step of encroachment. Passing over the line is bidding defiance
to the Great King. The gain may be trifling, but the sin is vast.
Enough of guilt was included within the dimensions of a single apple,
to ‘bring death into the world and all its woe' to successive generations.
And here the law of God is deliberately broken;1 conscience is
violated; deceit is practised; "evil is called good, and good evil" (Isa.
v. 20); our duty to our neighbour transgressed; and all this— perhaps
without a moment of remorse--only to feed man's covetousness.
But do Christian professors always prove themselves clear in this
matter? Yet how can we be Christians really, if not relatively and
universally; if not in the week, as well as on the Sabbath; if not
in our dealings with men, as well as our communion with God?
What is our title to the name of disciples of Christ, unless we
yield to his authority, and in heart, hand, and tongue, are governed
by his laws? Let us each ask—Have we trembled before the solemn
warnings of the great Lawgiver?2 Are we ready to be tried by his
rules of guileless simplicity (Matt. v. 37), and reciprocal justice? (Matt.
vii. 12.) Have we always acted as under the eye of God? Are there
no money transactions, that we should be ashamed to have "proclaimed
upon the house-tops?" Are we prepared to go to the bar of a heart-
searching God, with "a conscience void of offence both towards God
and towards man?" (Acts, xxiv. 16) —Let us never forget the gospel,
as the only principle, expulsive of selfishness, in its active exercise of
grateful devoted love, and in its indefatigable spirit of "doing all to
the glory of God."
15. There is gold, and a multitude of rubies; but the lips of knowledge are
a precious jewel.
This is not the standard of the world. There gold and rubies are
1 Comp. Lev. xix. 11; xxv. 14. 2 Col. iii. 25. 1 Thess. iv. 6.
theatre, that in the next entertainment he would show to every man present what was in
his heart. An immense concourse attended, and the man redeemed his pledge to the vast
assembly by a single sentence—‘Vili vultis emere, et caro vendere'—‘You all wish to buy
cheap, and to sell dear'—a sentence generally applauded: every one, even the most trifling
(as Augustine observes) finding the confirming witness in their own conscience. De Trin.
Lib. xiii. c. 111.
* Bishop SANDERSON, ut supra.
CHAP. XX. 15, 16. 349
far above the lips of knowledge. So the young man made his choice,
and preferred his "great possessions" to those gracious words, that
arrested the admiration of the multitude.1 But when "gold is our
hope and confidence," it will surely be our ruin.2 Solomon's estimate
was that of one, to whom "the Lord had given a wise and understand-
ing heart."3 Gold and precious rubies were abundant in his days.4
Yet all these earthly treasures were as nothing in his eyes in comparison
of heavenly teaching. The lips of knowledge were a more precious jewel.*
It is Divine knowledge only, however, that stands out in this high pre-
eminence. Human wisdom may captivate the imagination, and
furnish its measure of useful information. But the words for the most
part die away upon the ear. They do not feed the heart. They
furnish no comfort to the afflicted, no hope to the desponding, no teach-
ing to the ignorant in " those things that belong to their "everlasting
"peace." (Luke, xix. 42.) If therefore they be "goodly pearls," at
least they are not" the pearl of great price"--that precious jewel, which
dims the lustre of earth's most splendid vanities. (Matt. xiii. 45, 46.)
How precious a jewel are the lips of knowledge, when the messenger
of the gospel "brings glad tidings of great joy" to the burdened con-
science— to him "that is ready to perish !" Truly the very sound of
his "feet" is welcome for the sake of his message.† Precious also will
be the communications of Christian fellowship. Though falling in-
finitely short of the grace that dwelt in our Divine Master; yet in pro-
portion as we are taught of him, will our "tongues be as choice silver
(Chap. x. 20), and our "lips will disperse knowledge" (Chap. xv. 7) as a
precious jewel, enriching, and adorning with the glory of our heavenly
Lord.
16. Take has garment, that is surety for a stranger; and take a pledge of
him for a strange woman. (Chap. xxvii. 13.)
Again and again are we warned against suretyship for a stranger,5--
any new acquaintance, whose company may entice; much more for a
strange woman, whose character has lost all credit. This is the sure road to
beggary and ruin. If a man is so weak as to plunge into this folly, he
is not fit to be trusted. Lend nothing to him without good security.
Nay, if needful, take his garment as his pledge. The letter of the Mosaic
law forbade this extremity.6 But the spirit and intent of the law
1 Matt. xix. 22, with Luke, iv. 22. 2 Job, xxxi. 24, with 1 Tim. vi. 9, 10.
3 1 Kings, iii. 9. 4 Ib. x. 27.
5 Chap. vi. 1-5; xi. 15 ; xvii. 18.
6 Exod. xii. 26, 27. Deut. xxiv. 12, 13. Comp. Job, xxii. 6. Amos, ii. 8.
* Chap. iii. 15; viii. 10, 11, 19; xvi. 16. Job gave the same verdict, chap. xxviii. 12-119.
† Isa. lii. 7. Rom. x. 14, 15. Such was the delight of hanging upon the lips of the
golden-mouthed Chrysostom, that the common proverb was—‘Rather let the sun not shine
than Chrysostom not preach.'
350 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
pointed at the protection of the poor and unfortunate, who were forced
to borrow for their own necessity, and, therefore claim pity. The com-
mand here touches the inconsiderate, who deserve to suffer for their
folly, in wilfully plunging themselves into ruin. Nor does it in any
degree incur the just suspicion of covetousness or close dealing. The
love of our neighbour does not involve the forgetfulness of ourselves.
The path of godly prudence is the safest for all parties. It never can
be wise to assist, where kindness only gives advantage to hurry on to
ruin. The refusal may be an exercise of self-denial. It is well that it
should be so. Let it be clearly seen to be the sacrifice, not the indul-
gence, of self-prudence, not selfishness. This grace is one of the
combined perfections of Immanuel. (Chap. viii. 12.) Let it not be
wanting in the profession of his people. It is necessary to the com-
pleteness of the Christian profession, and to avoid many occasions of
offence to the Gospel.
17. Bread of deceit is sweet to a man; but afterwards his mouth shall be
filled with gravel.
'Holiness is sweet in the way and end too. Wickedness is some-
times sweet in the way, but always bitter in the end.'* It is with
deceit, as with every other sin, Satan always holds out a bait always
promises gain or pleasure as the wages of his service, and as surely
disappoints the victims of his delusion.1 If corn be thrashed upon a
gravelly floor, the grating soil would spoil the sweetness of the bread.
Oh! how many has this arch-deceiver allured by the sweetness of his
bread, whose mouths have been afterwards filled with gravel! ‘The
bread, which a man hath got by fraud and cozenage, seems sweet and
pleasant at the first taste of it but by that time he hath chewed it a
little, he shall find it to be but harsh gravel, that crasheth between his
teeth, galls his jaws, wounds his tongue, and offends his palate.'†
Everything gotten wrongfully is here implied.'‡ Bitter was Achan's
sweet, deceitfully hid in the tent, which brought ruin upon himself and
his family. (Josh. vii. 21-24.) Look at Gehazi. What profit had he
from his talents of silver and changes of garments? Bitter indeed was
the bread of deceit to him. (2 Kings, v. 20-27.) Look even at Jacob, a
true servant of God; and yet chastened heavily almost to the end of
his days with the bitter fruits of deceit. (Gen. xxvii.; xlii. 36-38.) To
the mass of such blinded sinners it is eternal ruin. Whatever be the
tempter's proffered advantage, his price is the soul, to be paid in the
dying hour. Oh! the undoing bargain! an eternal treasure bartered
for the trifle of a moment! Charmed we may be with the present
1 Chap. ix. 17, 18; xxiii. 31, 32. Job, xx. 12-16.
* CARYL on Job, xx. 14.
† Bishop Hall. Comp. Lam. iii. 16. ‡ Bishop Patrick,
CHAP. XX. 18. 351
sweetness; but bitter indeed will be the after-fruits, when the poor
deluded sinner shall cry—"I tasted but a little honey, and I must
die." (1 Sam. xiv. 43.) So surely is the bitterness that springs out of
sin the bitterness of death.
Not a single step can be trodden in the way if godliness, without
an entire renunciation of every accursed practice. Not even the
smallest violation of the law admits of palliatiot. To venture on
what we fancy the lesser shades of sin is a most dangerous experiment.
The smallest sin breaks down the fence; and this once overstepped,
the impulse is beyond our restraint. Universal uprightness is the
mark of the true servant of God. Let the man of doctrine exhibit the
holiness of doctrine. Never let ours religion be one thing, and our
business another. But let the image and glory of the Lord give the
pervading expression to our whole history. Every turning aside from
the straight path "grieves the Holy Spirit of God," darkens the sun-
shine of our soul, blasts the consistency of our procession, and wounds
the church of God.
18. Every purpose is established by counsel: and with good advice
make war.
This is true wisdom—to deliberate before we act, and to establish
our purpose by sound and experienced counsel. Even the wisest of men
valued this strengthening resource. (1 Kings, xii. 6. God has placed
us in society more or less dependent upon each other. And therefore,
while it is most important to possess a calm and decided judgment; it
is not less so to guard against an obstinate and exclusive adherence to
our own opinions. (Chap. xv. 22.) Especially in the national counsels
the rule is most weighty. With good advice make war. (Chap. xi. 14;
xxiv. 6.) Wars for the purpose of ambition or aggrandizement can
never be wisely made. Fearful may be the result of inconsiderate,
self-willed measures. David took counsel of the Lord;1 Nehemiah,
while supporting his courage by faith,2 established his purpose by counsel,
and called his counsel.to deliberate in all emergencies.3 Ahab, asking
counsel of his false prophets;4 Amaziah, despising he sound counsel
given to him5—both with bad advice made war to their own ruin.
Even godly Josiah—making every allowance for is circumstances,
was probably chargeable with precipitation; and, neglecting to establish
his purpose by the counsel of the Lord's prophets then living among his
people, was chastened with temporal destruction.*
Now ponder Bishop Hall's description of the spiritual war. 'It
admits of no intermission. It knows no night, no winter. It abides
1 2 Sam. v. 17-23. 2 Neh. ii. 17-20; iv. 3 Ib. iv. 19, 20.
4 1 Kings, xxii. 6. 5 2 Kings, xiv. 8-12.
* 2 Chron. xxxv. 20-24. Scott in loco.
352 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
no peace, no truce. It calls us not into garrison, where we may have
ease and respite, but into pitched fields continually. We see our
enemies in the face always, and are always seen and assaulted; ever
resisting, ever defending, receiving and returning blows. If either we
be negligent or weary, we die. What other hope is there, while one
fights, and the other stands still? We can never have safety and
peace, but in victory. Then must our resistance be courageous and
constant, when both yielding is death, and all treaties of peace mortal."*
Does not this war bring the greatest need of deliberate counsel, carefully
counting the cost (Luke, xiv. 31, 32); cleaving to our All-wise Coun-
sellor (Isa, ix. 6) and Almighty Helper? Yet fear not, under the
conscious direction of his counsel, and support of his grace, to take up
the song of praise—"Blessed be the Lord, my strength, which teacheth
my hands to war, and my fingers to fight!" (Ps. cxliv. 1.)
19. He that goeth about as a talebearer revealeth secrets: therefore meddle
not with him that flattereth with his lips.
Never let us forget that all intercourse of social life must be based
on love. Any breach of this is highly displeasing to God. Witness
the talebearer. Unhappily he has much time on his hands unemployed
for any good purpose. Hence he spends it on other people's business;
ferreting out secrets, or diving into family arrangements. All this is
material for scandal, or for idleness. In his visit he talks of the affairs
of the last family. His present visit will furnish matter for idle talk in
the next house. And thus his name describes his work, indulging an
impertinent curiosity; making a tale of ever, thing he sees or hears.
It is the business of his life, for which all other business is sacrificed,
as if the whole man were one tongue, as if, in its restless babbling, it
had discovered the grand secret of perpetual motion. Such a one
meddle not with him. We would not wish him to look over our wall;
much less to enter into our houses; least of all, to associate with our
family circle, where his whole employment would be, either to draw
out, or to put in, what "was not convenient."†
The flagrant blot, however, in this contemptible, yet dangerous
character, is his unfaithfulness—going about--revealing secrets. (Chap.
xi. 13.) This is peculiarly offensive to a God of truth. Even when
matters have been given to him under a sea , his restless irritation
breaks through the feeble bond. He ‘dismantles and rends the robe
from the privacies of human intercourse. Who entrusts a secret to his
friend, goes thither as to a sanctuary; and to violate the rites of that,
* Holy Observations, xxv.
† ‘Hic niger est: hunc tu, Romane, caveto'—is the indignant warning of the Roman
Satirist.—HOR. Sat. lib. i. 4, 81—85.
CHAP. XX. 20. 353
is sacrilege and profanation of friendship.'* Never let us think this to
be a trifle. Never let us undertake a trust without the most resolute
determination of Christian faithfulness.
Observe his other names—flattering with his lips. Thus he insinuates
himself into the secrets of the unwary, and gains his materials for tale-
bearing; flattering the present at the expense of the absent. Watch
and pray earnestly against this deadly evil. Keep thine own vineyard
carefully.† Else if thine eye be abroad, when it ought to be at home,
it will be, like "the vineyard of the slothful, full of thorns and nettles"
(Chap. xxiv. 30, 31); like the ‘curious people,' whom Augustine re-
buked, who ‘pry into another's heart and life, but are slothful to amend
their own.'‡ Be diligent in your gown calling, serving the Lord and
his church. Study the obligation of Christian character, according to
the standard of the Divine Exemplar, whose every word was fraught
with the flowing of love. Oh! how many in self-indulgence and for-
getfulness of their own obligations, because they have no employment
for their hands, set their tongues to work! (1 Tim. v. 13.) Such men
bring, as it were, the plague of flies with them (Exod. viii. 24); buzzing
from house to house, from one neighbour to another, all the report of
evil heard or done. A sharp reproof is their just desert, and an effectual
means of driving them away. (Chap. xxv. 123.)
20. Whoso curseth his father or his mother, his lamp shall be put out in
obscure darkness.
If darkness be the punishment, is it not also the cause, of this
atrocious sin? For surely even the light of nature must be extin-
guished, ere the child should curse even those, who under God have
taught it to speak—the authors and preservers of its existence; its
greatest earthly benefactors. Even an undutiful look, much more a
word, is an offence against the commandment. What then must be
the weight of guilt involved in the cursing of them! The deepest
reverence is due to them when they are dead. (Jer. xxxv. 1-10.) What
then must be the provocation of sinning against them, while they are
living for their children, in all the active, self-denying energy of love
and service! This cursing, according to our Lord's standard, includes
"setting light by father or mother;"§ wilful disobedience--a fearful,
palpable mark of the last days.|| How God regards it, let his own curse
on Mount Ebal (Deut. xxvii. 16), and his judgment of temporal death,¶
* Bp. TAYLOR's Sermon on the Good and Evil Tongue.
† Mark the complaint, Cant. i. 6. Compare our Lord's probing advice, Matt. vii. 3-5.
‡ Confess. book x. c. 3,
§ Matt. xv. 3-6. The original words in Deut. xxvii. 16 (infra) precisely correspond.
|| 2 Tim. iii. 2. See also the black mark, Rom. i. 30, 31.
¶ Exod. xxi. 15, 17. Lev. xx. 9. Deut. xxi. 18-23. Comp. chap. xxx. 17. The Roman
punishment for a parricide was to be sewed up in a sack, and cast into the sea.— CICER.
pro Sext. Bose. Amorino, xi.
354 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
testify. The present degradation of Africa is a witness, on the con-
firming page of history, of the frown upon a undutiful son (Gen. ix.
22–25)--his lamp put out in darkness.* And if the temporal sentence
of death is repealed, the more awful judgment still remains unchange-
ably upon the Divine statute-book--obscure darkness--"the blackness
of darkness"— darkness eternal without a ray of light, of which "black-
ness" is only the shadow, to shew what the substance must be.
21. An inheritance may be gotten hastily at the beginning; but the end
thereof shall not be blessed.
The wise man obviously limits his observation to an inheritance
gotten dishonestly. The advancement of Joseph in the glory of Egypt,1
of Mordecai in the Persian2 courts, of Daniel in Babylon3— was gotten
hastily; in a moment; yet under the special Providence of God. The
evil eye, hasting to be rich4 or great, may get an inheritance at the
beginning; but the end thereof shall be blasted,5 not blessed. Absalom6
acid Adonijah7 reached after a kingdom to their own ruin. One king
of Israel succeeded another, treading on each other hastily ; and each
hurrying on to destruction. (1 Kings, xvi. 8–22.) In our own history,
Richard the Third ended his hastily gotten crown in shame. In our
own day, Napoleon rose with astonishing rapidity to a magnificent
inheritance. Yet he finished his course in disgraceful banishment.
Less splendid possessions end in the same disappointment. What a
curse was that hastily gotten inheritance of Naboth's vineyard to the
reckless oppressor!8 Let not the warning be in vain—"They that
will be rich" What is the fruit?--"Many foolish and hurtful lusts,
many piercing sorrows." What is the end? "Destruction and per-
dition." (1 Tim. vi. 9, 10.) Place the cross and crown of Jesus in.
view. The world fades, selfishness dies, a the very sight. One
object only attracts and satisfies. "0 my soul, thou hast said unto the
Lord, Thou art my Lord; the portion of mine inheritance," (Ps. xvi.
2, 5.) Here is blessing beyond conception; without end.
22. Say not thou, I will recompense evil; but wait on the Lord, and he
shall save thee.
"Vengeance belongeth unto me—is the awful proclamation of
God.9 Most reverently do his people adore his high prerogative.10
Who besides is fitted to wield it? He is Omniscient; we know but
imperfectly. He is without passions; we are blinded by our selfish
1 Gen. xli. 14-45. 2 Esth. vi. 11; viii. 15; x. 3. 3 Dan. ii. 46, 43.
4 Chap. xxviii. 20, 22. 5 Chap. x. 2, 3; xxi, 5; xxviii. 3. 6 2 Sam. xv. 10; xviii. 9-17.
7 1 Kings, i. 5-9 ; ii. 25. 8 1 Kings, xxi. 1-15, 19. Comp. Job xv. 29; xx. 18. Amos, vi. 4-8.
9 Deut. xxxii. 35. Rom. xii. 19. Heb. x. 30. 10 Ps. xciv. 1. Rev. vi. 10.
* Chap. xiii. 9. Job, xviii. 5, 6, 18. Jude, 13. ‘The pupil of his eyes shall behold
darkness.'--LXX.
CHAP. XX. 22, 355
lusts. He is just, "without partiality;" we are prejudiced on our
own side. What presumption, therefore, not to say impiety, for the
angry worm to entrench upon his prerogative! Revenge is indeed a
cherished lust of the flesh.* Were it not for the Divine restraint upon
it, this world would be an "Aceldama—a field of blood." But never
did the Lord allow it in his people.† Not even an Edomite, their
most bitter enemy; not even the Egyptian, their most cruel oppressor
—was to be abhorred. (Neut. xxiii. 7.) The folly and sin of this
passion are alike manifest. ‘He that studieth revenge, keepeth his
own wounds open.'‡ His enemy could not do him a greater injury.
The tongue, "speaking like the piercings of a sword" (Chap. xii. 18;
xxv. 18), is here the instrument of this passion. Yet often, when the
open purpose is restrained, the passion broods only the more fiercely
within.1 Or at least it is only a reluctant obedience, not the glorious
victory exhibited in the history of the men of God—"overcoming evil
with good."§
What then is the remedy? In humility and faith lay our matters
before the Lord. Put them in his hands. Wait on him, and he shall
save us. Revenge rises, only because we have no faith. For did we
believe that God would take up our cause, should we not leave our-
selves implicitly in his hands? How did he plead the cause of "the
meekest man upon earth!"2 With what confidence did David rest
himself in the midst of reproach,3 thus warranting his rule of faith by
his own experience!4 And thus did David's Lord "commit himself
unto him that judgeth righteously." (1 Pet. ii. 23.) After this blessed
example therefore, "let those, that suffer according to the will of God,
commit the keeping of their souls to him in well-doing, as unto a
faithful Creator." (Ib. iv. 19.) ‘Let it suffice thee for the "possessing
thine own soul in patience," to know, that all shall be righted one day.
God will set all straight at the last; but that day is not yet.'|| Be
satisfied then with his management. Suffice it, that "he shall deliver
and save, because we put our trust in him." (Ps. xxxvii. 39, 40.) Let
us stay our souls, as his praying people, on the great consummation.
"Shall not God avenge his own elect, which cry day and night unto
1 Gen. xxvii. 41. 2 Sam. xiii. 22. 2 Numb. xii. 1-10.
3 2 Sam. xvi. 12. Ps. xxxviii. 12-15. 4 Ps. xxxvii. 5, 6.
* So even the Heathen acknowledged it
Est vindicta bonum, et vita jucundius ipsa.
JUVEN. Sat. xiii. 180.
† Chap. xxiv. 29. Lev. xix. 18. Observe the identity of this standard with that of the
New Testament—the teaching of our Lord—Matt. v. 38, 39, and his apostles, Rom. xii.
17, 19-21. 1 Thess. v. 15. 1 Pet. iii. 9. Comp. Ecelus. xxviii. 1-8.
‡ Lord Bacon.
§ Rom. xii. 21. Comp. Joseph, Gen. xlv. 5; L. 20. David, I Sam. xxiv. 18-21.
|| Bp. SANDERSON on Chap. xxiv. 10-12.
356 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
him, though he bear long with them? I tell you, that he will avenge
them speedily." (Luke, xviii. 7, 8.)
23. Divers weights are an abomination unto the Lord; and a false balance
is not good.
Here let us search into the mind of God. Thrice does he bring
home one point of practical detail. (Verses 10, 14, 23.) Yet doubtless
this is not a "vain repetition." (Matt. vi. 7.) There is a "needs-be"
for it. Instead of "precept upon precept, and line upon line" (Isa.
xxviii. 10), the infinite "treasures of wisdom and knowledge" might
have poured forth endless variety of instruction. We wonder not to
see the apostolic ministry once and again upon the same argument of a
sinner's justification before God.* And we gather from this repetition
the primary importance, and the peculiarly offensive character of the
doctrine. (Rom. x. 2, 3.) Does not then this continuous inculcation
similarly teach the great weight of the principle involved, and the
innate resistance to its full operation? If we feel, that we cannot be
too often gladdened with the manifestation of he grace of God; and
yet shrink from a frequent and probing application of practical obliga-
tion; if we love to be told, what we owe to God on the Sabbath, but
revolt from the minute detail of the week, the market and the shop; we
do not receive the whole revelation of God, and therefore do not
savingly receive any part of it. Ours is not "the wisdom that is from
above, without partiality and without hypocrisy" (Jam. iii. 17.)
Most palpable is the need for this particular illustration. The evil
runs throughout our commercial system. The diverse weights, though
continually declared to be abominable—yea, an abomination (Chap. xi.
1. Mic. vi. 10, 11)—to God, yet how often an they palliated, as of
daily occurrence, perhaps even of necessity! But the scant measure
will fill up a full measure of guilt, and the light weights bring upon the
soul an heavy weight of judgment.'† If Job was fearful, lest his "land
and furrows cry against him"' (Job, xxxi. 38), let the trader beware,
lest his weights and measures bear witness against him. Cause, indeed,
have we for watchfulness! What means this cumbrous and expensive
machinery of administration, with all its checks and counter-checks, its
fearful multiplication of oaths, but the humiliating declaration, that
man cannot trust his fellow-man? Oh! let me not forget, that of all
this deceit my heart is the native soil; that nothing but the culture of
Divine principle keeps down these poisonous weeds, and nourishes in
their room "the fruits of righteousness to the praise and glory of my
God." (Philip. i. 11.) ‘The love of God constrains his servant. God
is true to him; and he will not be false to others. God is merciful to
* See Epistles to the Romans and the Galatians.
† Bp. REYNOLDS' Sermon on Mic. vi.l 6-8.
CHAP. XX. 24. 357
him, and he will not be unjust to others.'* This is the practical influ-
ence of the Gospel.
24. Man's goings are of the Lord; how can a man then understand his
own way?
God's uncontrollable power and sovereignty; man's absolute depend
ence and helplessness—let these be foundation principles. Here is no
infringement of liberty on the one side; no excuse for indolence on the
other. Man often acts, as if he were the master of his own purposes;
as if his goings were of himself. Or else, in the crude notion of the
predetermination of every event, instead of diligently working out the
Lord's purposes, he fancies "his strength is to sit still." (Isa. xxx. 7.)
But the humble, heaven-taught Christian exercises free agency in the
spirit of dependence. Though utterly powerless for obedience, he is
ever putting forth the effort, as the exercise in which he looks for the
strength. The consciousness that his goings are of the Lord, gives energy
to his faith. It is written—"The way of a man is not in himself." (Jer.
x. 23.) It is written again—"This is the way; walk ye in it." (Isa.
xxx. 21.) Thus does Scripture guard against Scripture. Here is
dependence without passive inertion; diligence without presumption
or self-confidence. Antagonal principles thus work together in har-
monious combination.
The true liberty of the will is the power of acting according to
choice, without external restraint. Divine agency, so far from hinder-
ing its freedom, removes the obstacle of a corrupt and tyrannizing bias.
This let removed, it acts more freely, and more powerfully. The man
is not moved as a machine, unconscious of its operations and results,
but acted upon by intelligent principles. He is not carried, along the
way, but enabled to walk. He is "drawn," not driven, "with the
cords of a man," not of a beast; and those cords are so wisely applied,
that they are felt to be "bands of love." (Hos. xi. 4.) He is enlightened,
so that he sees; softened, so that he turns; "drawn, so that he runs."
(Cant. i. 4. Ps. cxix. 32.) He is moved effectually, but willingly;
invincibly, but without constraint. Divine grace acts, not as in a
lifeless machine, but as in a purposing, willing, ever-working creature.
Nothing is therefore distorted. There is no unnatural violence. It is
"the day of the Lord's power," who "worketh in him to will and to do
of his good pleasure."† His goings are of the Lord, who at once inspires
the effort, and secures the success.
The world of Providence chews the same over-ruling agency. Man
determines and acts freely in the minute circumstances of the day. Yet
* POLHYLL's Speculum Theologiae, p. 438.
† Ps. cx. 3. Philip. ii. 13. Comp. Daille in loco, and Disputation between Eck and
Carlstadt.—D'AUBIGNE'S History of Reformation, Book v. chap. 4.
358 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
the active pervading influence, disposing every step at the right time
and place, makes it plain, that his goings are of the Lord. Rebekah
came to the well just at the moment, that Abraham's servant was ready
to meet her. "He being in the way, the Lord led him." (Gen. xxiv.
27.) Pharaoh's daughter goes out to bathe just at the crisis, when the
infant Moses was committed to the water. (Exod. ii. 1-5.) Was this
the working of chance, or some fortunate coincidence? Who can
doubt the finger or the leading of God? A cure of extermination was
pronounced against Eli's house. The word was fulfilled by a combina-
tion of apparently casual incidents. David fled to Abimelech for relief.
That very day Doeg was there; not in the ordinary course, but "de-
tained before the Lord." He gives information to his cruel master, and
in a moment of anger the curse was accomplished.1 Who can doubt
but the goings of Doeg and of David meeting to ether were of the Lord?
All parties acted freely. What was false in Doeg was righteous in
God, whom we adore as a sin-hating God, even while, as in the cruci-
fixion of Christ (Acts, ii. 23), he makes use of in for the fulfilment of
his own purposes.
Man's goings therefore being of the Lord, they must often be
enveloped in mystery. How then can he understand his own way?
Often does it run counter to his design. The Babel-builders raised
their proud tower to prevent their dispersion: and it was the very
means of their dispersion. (Gen. xi. 4-9.) Pharaoh's "wise dealing"
for the aggrandizement of his kingdom issued in its destruction.2
Haman's project for his own glory was the first step of his ruin. (Esth.
vi. 6-13.) Often also is the way, when not counter, far beyond our
own ken. Little did Israel understand the reason of their circuitous
way to Canaan. Yet did it prove in the end to be " the right way."3
As little did Ahasuerus understand the profound reason, why "on that
night could not the king sleep;" a minute incident, seeming scarcely
worthy to be recorded, yet a necessary link in the chain of the Lord's
everlasting purposes of grace to his Church. (sth. vi. 1.) Little did
Philip understand his own way, when he was moved from, the wide sphere
of preaching the gospel in Samaria, to go into the desert, which ulti-
mately proved a wider extension of the gospel4, As little did the great
Apostle understand, that his "prosperous journey" to see his beloved
flock at Rome, would be a narrow escape from shipwreck, and to be
conducted a prisoner in chains.5 Little do we know what we pray for.
"By terrible things wilt thou answer us in righteousness, 0 God of our
salvation." (Ps. lxv. 5.) We go out in the morning not understanding
our way; "not knowing what an hour may bring, forth." (Chap. xxvii.1
1 Sam. ii. 30-32, with xxi. 6, 7; xxii. 9-18. 2 Exod. i. 8-10, with xiv. 80.
3 Exod. xiii. 17, 18, with Ps. cvii. 7. 4 Acts, viii. 5-12, 26, 27.
5 Ib. xxvii.; xxviii. 20, 30, with Rom. i. 10.
CHAP. XX. 25. 359
Some turn, connected with our happiness or misery for life, meets us
before night. (John, iv. 7.) Joseph in taking his walk to search for
his brethren, never anticipated a more than twenty years' separation
from his father. (Gen. xxxvii. 14.) And what ought those cross ways
or dark ways to teach us? Not constant, trembling anxiety, but daily
dependence. "I will bring the blind by a way that they know not: I
will lead them in paths that they have not known." But shall they be
left in the dark perplexity? "I will make darkness light before them,
and crooked things straight. These things will I do unto them, and
not forsake them." (Isa. xlii. 16.) Often do I look back amazed at the
strangeness of my course, so different, so contrary to my way. But it
is enough for me, that all is in thine hands; that "my steps are ordered
of thee." (Ps. xxxvii. 23. Comp. chap. xvi. 9.) I dare trust thy wisdom,
thy goodness, thy tenderness, thy faithful care. Lead me—uphold
me—forsake me not. "Thou shalt guide me with thy counsel, and
afterwards receive me to glory."*
25. It is a snare to the man who devoureth that which is holy, and after
vows to make enquiry.
In every path has the great fowler laid his snares. Perhaps, how-
ever, the most subtle are reserved for the service of God. Offerings
made holy to the Lord often were devoured by the hypocritical wor-
shipper, and sacrilegiously appropriated to his own use. Thus Achan,
robbing the treasury of the Lord, found a snare to his ruin. (Josh.
vi. 19; vii. 1.) This was the sin of "the whole nation;" and fearful
indeed was the judgment —"Ye are cursed with a curse." (Mal. iii.
8-10.) Voluntary vows were commonly practised;1 and often inquiry
was made after, which ought to have been made before. They were
at full liberty not to vow; but having vowed, they were bound to pay.2
As the counterpart to this hollow, half-hearted profession—‘a man
vows in distress to give something to God: but having obtained his
desires,' devoureth that which is holy, and after vows makes inquiry, ‘how
he may be loosed from this obligation.'† Often too in a moment of
excitement—perhaps under the glow of a religious meeting—has a
sacrifice been pledged to God; and, the impulse having subsided, after
the vow inquiry is made how the bond may be retracted. Such evasions
1 Lev. xxvii. 9, 10, 28—33. 2 Deut. xxiii. 21, 22. Eccles. v. 4-6.
* Ps. lxxiii. 24. Augustine mentions the weeping prayers and deprecations of his godly
mother, on account of his voyage from Carthage to Italy. Her anxiety was grounded pro-
bably on his absence from her control, and the natural apprehension, that, when removed
from her influence, he would plunge deeper into sin. But it proved in the end to be the
Providential purpose for his conversion—‘In thy deep and hidden counsel'—writes the
pious Father—‘ listening to the cardinal point of her desire, thou regardest not what she
then implored, in order to accomplish in me what she ever implored.'—Confess. Lib. v. c. 8.
† Bishop Patrick.
360 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
-- what a revolting exhibition do they present of man's deceitfulness
He entangleth his soul in the snares of death, who resumeth unto a
profane use that which is once consecrated unto God, and who, after he
hath vowed aught unto the Lord, argues within himself, how to alter
that holy purpose, and to defeat God of his due:* Alienation of the
gift proves the prior alienation of the heart. Let Ananias and Sapphira
testify that God is a jealous God.1 Take care of rash—be faithful to
upright— engagements. Before entering into the service of God, make
inquiry into its full requisitions, Beware of a religion of temporary
excitement; far different from deep, solid, permanent principle. And
whatever be the cost, be true to the consecration of thyself as "a living
sacrifice" (Rom. xii. 1) on the altar of thy God.
26. A wise king scattereth the wicked, and bringeth the wheel over them.
Solomon, as a wise king, was constantly eyeing his own responsi-
bilities. His standard was not to commit wickedness himself,2 nor to
allow it in his people; to scatter, not to encourage, the wicked. As the
husbandman's wheel, brought over the grain, cut the straw, and separated
the chaff;† his sifting administration of justice brought the wheel of
vengeance on the wicked, and scattered them as worthless chaff (Ps.
i. 4), or crushed them in ruin. (1 Kings, ii. 25-46.) In the same spirit
did his father David destroy them, when they boldly claimed his
countenance.3 Godly Asa removed wickedness from the high place
nearest his own throne and heart.4 Amaziah justly punished it with
death.5 Nehemiah—that true reformer--rebuked it even in the
family of the high-priest.6 Our own Alfred appeared to maintain this
standard as a witness for God in an age of darkness. But it is the
King of kings alone, that can make this separation complete. Often
does he sift his church by trial, for her greater purity, and complete preser-
vation. (Amos, ix. 9.) But what will it be, when the shall come with
his fan in his hand, and shall throughly purge his floor!" (Matt. iii. 12.)
What a scattering of chaff will there be! Not an atom will go into the
garner. Not a grain of wheat will be cast away, 0 my soul! what
wilt thou be found at this great sifting day! "Who may abide the
day of his coming? And who shall stand when he appeareth?" (Mal.
iii. 2.)
1 Acts, v.1-10, with Deut. iv. 24.
2 Verse 8. Chap. xvi. 12. Comp. the contrast 1 Kings, xiv. 16,
3 2 Sam. i. 2, 16; iv. 5, 12. Comp. Ps. ci. 7, 8. 4 2 Chron. xv. 16.
5 Ib. xxiv. 25; xxv. 3, 4. 6 Neh. xiii. 28; 29.
* Bishop Hall.
† Isa. xxviii. 28, 29. This is an obvious allusion to the war of threshing in the East.
One mode was by a wain, which had wheels with iron teeth like a saw. The axle was
armed with serrated wheels throughout. It moved upon three rollers armed with iron
teeth, or Wheels, to cut the straw. —See Bishop LOWTH'S note on Isa. xxviii. 27. Comp.
Amos, i. 3
CHAP. XX. 27. 361
27. The spirit of man is the candle of the Lord, searching all the inward
parts of the belly.
We are placed under a solemn dispensation of Divine government.
An infallible judgment is in constant exercise, discerning our principles,
estimating their standard, and pronouncing sentence. There ought
evidently to be in the soul some sense, that acknowledges the judgment
of the Great Sovereign. Such is conscience, aptly called—'God in
man.' Thus "God hath not left himself without witness" in his own
benighted world. (Acts, xiv. 16, 17.) He brings the searching light
of his candle into the darkness. At the first creation bright indeed was
this candle of the Lord, shining in the little world --Man. (Gen. i. 26.)
But every faculty partook of the ruin of the fall. Still enough is left
in the inner mind and conscience, to shew even in the thick darkness
of heathenism the Divine perfections, the just desert of sin,1 and even
some faint glimpses of the standard of right and wrong.2 Yet dim
indeed is this candle, except it be lighted at God's lamp.3 But when
the word and Spirit of God give light to it, it will effectually perform
its important offices— (as Bishop Reynolds defines them) —‘direction,
conviction, and consolation;'* not only exhibiting the outward acts,
but searching the innermost parts of the belly—all the hidden acts and
conduct pf the inner man. (1 Cor. ii.. 11. Comp. Job, xxxii. 8.) This
unwelcome intruder follows everywhere, interpreting the dispensation
of the rod, not— as men would have it--as the incidents or phaenomena
of the day, but as penal retribution. Glad indeed would the man of
ungodliness be to extinguish this candle. He is too great a coward to
venture into his secret chamber in the dark. He "hates the light"
(John, 20), which, in spite of all his opposition, drags forth into day
many secret lurking evils; never allowing the plea--"Is it not a little
one?" Whatever may have been his gay and thoughtless pleasures,
the time will come, when he must leave them, and be alone. And
then--as the question has been stated in a manner not to be answered
—'What is all that a man can enjoy in this way for a week, a month,
a year, compared with what he feels for one hour, when his conscience
shall take, him aside, and rate him by himself?'†
Most valuable also is this candle, throwing the light of God upon
the narrow path; so that we 'are not scrupulous and nice in small
matters, negligent in the main; we are still curious in substantial
points, and not careless in things of an inferior nature; accounting no
duty so small as to be neglected, and no care great enough for principal
duties; not so tything mint and cummin, that we should forget justice
1 Rom. 1.120, 21, 32, 2 Ib ii. 14, 15. 3 Chap. vi. 23. Ps. cxix. 105.
* Treatise on the Passions, chap. xli. † SOUTH'S Sermon on chap. iii. 17.
362 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
and judgment; nor yet regarding judgment and justice, that we should
contemn mint and cummin.'*
Now let me ask—when God causes his candle to shed a clearer
light, can I abide it? Do I welcome the hateful discoveries which it
brings out? Do I value its light, as opening the secret business of
communion between a sinner and a holy jealous God? Do I exercise
myself to preserve the light from being dimmed in the atmosphere of
sin, and to guard its purity, as the means of establishing my confidence
with God?1 Oh! let there be no inward part of my soul, where I am
not most willing, most earnest, to bring the candle of the Lord, that all
secret indulgences may be searched out and mortified. "He that doeth
good cometh unto the light, that his deeds may be made manifest that
they are wrought in God." (John, iii. 21.)
28. Mercy and truth preserve the king: and his throne is upholden by
mercy.
Punishment is indeed a necessary security against the infringement
of the law. (Verse 26.) Yet a wise King will follow the example of the
Great Sovereign, and "make judgment his strange work," and mercy
his "delight."2 And so long as truth inviolable is his guiding prin-
ciple, the abuse of mercy need be little feared. Nay, mercy is the uphold-
ing pillar of his throne. (Isa. xvi. 5.) But who does not know, that,
while truth commands reverence, it is mercy that wins the heart?
Solomon himself had a strong body-guard around him, for the safety
of his person. (Cant. iii. 7.) Yet were the mercy and truth of his govern-
ment not only the most splendid jewels of his crown, but 'the best
guard of his body, and supporters of his throne.'†
How lovely is this combination in the administration of the Great
King! "Justice and judgment are the habitation of thy throne;
mercy and truth shall go before thy face." (Ps. lxxxix. 14.) Much
more right is the manifestation of these glorious perfections in that
great work, by which he sacrificed even his Beloved Son, that man
might be saved without the tarnish of one spot upon his infinitely
adorable name. (Ps. lxxxv. 10.)
29. The glory of young men is their strength: and the beauty of old men
is the grey head.
Every stage of life has its peculiar honour and privilege. 'Youth
is the glory of nature, and strength is the glory of youth. Old age is the
majestic beauty of nature, and the grey head is the majestic beauty,
which nature hath given to old age.'‡ Yet these pictures describe the
use, not the abuse. It is their youth usefully exercised, especially
1 Acts, xxiv. 16. 1 John, iii. 20, 21. 2 Comp. Isa. xxviii, 21. Mic. vii. 18.
* Bishop HALL'S Works, viii. 112. † Trapp in loco. ‡ Jermin, in loco.
CHAP. XX. 30 363
consecrated to God, and employed for, his glory. Otherwise, as an
occasion of wantonness,1 or vain-glorious boast,2 its strength is its shame,
and will end in vanity.3 The silver crown brings honour, and reverence,
and authority--only "in the way of righteousness."*
Yet the beauty of the grey head is most likely to be found, where the
strength and glory of youth have been dedicated to God. The young
plant, stunted, and deformed in its youth, will generally carry its
crookedness into advancing growth. But who can calculate upon the
extent of fruitfulness, where "the beginning of our strength"—"the
dew of our youth"—has been given to the Lord? (Ps. xcii. 13-15.)
Let youth and age however each beware of defacing their glory. Each
takes the precedence in some things, and gives place in others. Let
them not therefore envy or despise each other's prerogatives. 'The
world--the state—the church needs them both--the strength of youth
for energy, and the maturity of age for wisdom.
30. The blueness of a wound cleanseth away evil: so do stripes the inward
parts of the belly.
Chastisement is the Lord's ordinance—the pain of the flesh for the
subjugation of the spirit; sometimes even "the destruction of the
flesh, that the spirit may be saved in the day of the Lord Jesus."
(1 Cor. v. 5) It describes not the gentle stroke, but the severity of
parental discipline; not in pleasure or caprice, much less in anger, but
for profit. (Heb. xii. 10.) The diseased body needs medicine no less
than food, and indeed to give nourishment. The diseased soul needs
chastening no less than consolation, and as the main preparation for
consolation. But if the blueness of the wound—the mark of severe chas-
tisement— cleanseth away evil, is it not the lesser evil, as the means of
subduing the greater? Do not the Lord's stripes cleanse the inward
parts? Misery beyond measure miserable is the untamed stubbornness
of self-will. A gentle stroke is first tried. When this remedy is
ineffectual, the blueness of the wound is needful. Manasseh's Babylonish
chains doubtless prevented the "everlasting chains of darkness."4
Similar discipline was effectual with the holy nation, the prodigal son,5
and the incestuous Corinthian.6 Multitudes have borne witness to the
love, wisdom, and power of their Father's discipline—"chastened of
the Lord, that they might not be condemned with the world."7 The
evil was cleansed away; and those, who groaned under the stripes, to
all eternity will tune their harps to the song—" I know, 0 Lord, that
thy judgments are right, and that thou in faithfulness halt afflicted
me." (Ps. cxi . 75.)
1 2 Sam. ii. 14-16. 2 Jer. ix. 23. 3 Isa. xl. 30.
4 2 Chron. xxxii 12, 13, with Jude, 6. 5 Luke, xv. 16-20. 6 2 Cor. ii. 6-8.
7 1 Cor. xi. 32.
* Chap. xvi. 31, and references. Comp. Ecclus. xxv. 6, 7.
364 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
Child of God! Think of your Father's character. "He knoweth
you frame. He doth not afflict willingly." (Ib. ciii. 14. Lam. iii. 33.)
Nothing will be given in weight or measure beyond the necessity of
the case.1 But truly blessed are the stripes, that humble and break the
pro d will.2 Rich indeed are "fruits of righteousness" from the conflict
and suffering of the flesh.3
CHAPTER XXI.
1. The king's heart is in the hand of the Lord, as the rivers of water: he
turneth it whithersoever it will.
Most reflecting persons acknowledge God as the doer of all things.
In inert matter he acts by physical force; in brute animals, by instinct
and appetite; in intelligent beings, by motives suited to their faculties ;
in his redeemed people, by the influence of grace. We are here
reminded of one course of his Providential acting. The general truth,
before stated, of man's entire dependence, is taught by the strongest
illustoration--his uncontrollable sway upon the most absolute of all wills
—the king's heart.
The river of water is an apt emblem of this agency. Its commence-
men is a single spring; scarcely capable of turning an handmill to
grin, a day's corn. But increased by the confluence of other small or
great streams, it may turn hundreds of mills, and provide food for
thousands. So the thoughts of the king's heart are first a single imagi-
nation for the good of his subjects; then swelled by the attendant
thoughts of his mental resources, till what appeared desirable rises to
the full power of accomplishment. But after all, the Great Sovereign
turns the most despotic rule, all political projects, to his own purposes,
with the same ease, that the rivers of water are turned by every inflection
of the channel.* While this course is directed, the waters flow naturally
and enforced on their own level. The king's heart he directs as a re-
sponsible agent, without interfering with the moral liberty of his will.
Nehemiah fully acknowledged this prerogative, when, having a
favour to ask of the king, he "prayed unto the God of heaven."4 And
indeed Scripture witness is abundant. Abimelech's heart was in the
hand of the Lord for good.5 Pharaoh's heart was turned towards
Joseph.6 The Babylonish monarchs showed kindness td Daniel and
1 Isa. xxvii. 8. Jer. x. 24. 2 Jer. xxxi. 18-20.
3 Job, xxxiv. 31, 32; xxxvi. 9, 10. Isa. xxvii. 9. Heb. xii. 11. 4 Neh. ii. 4, 5.
5 Gen. xx. 6. Ps. cv. 14, 15. 6 Gen. x1i. 37-45.
* The allusion evidently is to channels made for the distribution of waters according to
will, fo irrigation of gardens or fields. —See PAXTON'S Illustrations, i. 173. Bishop LOWTH'S
nuts on sa. i. 30. Comp. the beautiful figure, Ecclus. xxiv. 30, 31.
CHAP. XXI. 2. 365
his captive brethren.1 The Persian monarchs countenanced and
assisted in the building of the temple.2 The hearts of wicked kings are
alike in the hand of the Lord;3 yet he hath no part in their wickedness.4
The hated of Pharaoh; the ambition of Sennacherib and Nebuchad-
nezzar,5 were his instruments for his own purposes. Ahab's murderous
heart was restrained, and even made to accomplish the downfall of
Baal.6 the counsels of the kings of the earth against Christ were
under Divine control.7 Thus does "the wrath of man praise him; and
the remainder he restrains."8 Thus an Almighty agency is visible by
its effecting the minutest affairs. Ahasuerus's sleepless nights;9
Nebuchadnezzar's divination;10 the appointment of the year of general
taxation11--these seemingly unimportant events were turning-points
in the dispensations of God, fraught with immensely momentous results.
The history of our blessed, though now calumniated, Reformation,
chews the same sovereign control of the royal heart. Henry VIII. was
employed as an unintentional instrument, and his godly son as a willing
agent, in furthering this great work. The recollection encourages us
to refer all anxious care for the Church to her great Head; to rejoice
that not kings, but the King of kings reigneth. (Isa. ix. 6.) And shall
not we be quickened to earnest prayer for our beloved sovereign (1 Tim.
ii. 1-3), that her heart, being in the Lord's hand, as rivers of water, may
be disposed to rule for his glory, as a nursing-mother to the Church
(Isa. xlix. 23), and a blessing to her people?
2. Every way of a man is right in his own eyes: but the Lord pondereth the
heart.
Let in be thankful for the repetition (Chap. xvi. 2) of this weighty
Proverb most valuable for the close probing of my heart, and the test-
ing of the vital spirituality of my profession. So "deceitful is the heart
above all things" (Jer. xvii. 9), that it deceives, not others only, but--
what even Satan never does—itself. Every intelligent Christian bears
painful witness to this self-deception. How differently do we judge of
the same action in others, and in ourselves! Often do we palliate, if not
justify, in ourselves the very habits, which we condemn in others. Never
therefore is the prayer out of season—"Search me, 0 God; know me,
try me; shew me to myself." (Ps. cxxxix. 23.) There are no persons in
the world, about whom we make so many mistakes as ourselves. But, Oh!
to be approved of God in heart, and in sincerity, is no common mercy!
Hid as the self-deluding professor is from himself, his way is right in
his own eyes. But is it right in God's eyes? The Lord pondereth the
1 Dan. i. 19; ii. 48; iii. 30; vi. 1-3, 28. Ps. cvi. 46.
2 Ezra, i. 1; vi. 22; vii. 27; ix. 9. Neh. i. 11; ii. 4-9. 3 Rev. xvii. 16, 17.
4 Exod. i. 8-2. Ps. cv. 25. 5 Isa. x. 7. Jer. xxv. 6 1 Kings, xviii. 10, 40.
7 Acts, iv. 25-28. Comp. John, xix. 10. 8 Ps. ixxvi. 10.
9 Esth. vi. 1, 2. 10 Ezek. xxi. 21. 11 Luke, ii. 1.
366 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
heart. Solemn and awakening recollection! He thoroughly reads
ever heart. And what defilement does he see in those ways of a man
that are most right in his own eyes! Saul thought that he was serving
God acceptably. But the all-searching eye discovered pride, covetous-
ness, disobedient rejection of his God.1 What more self satisfying than
the soul's strict fast and humiliation? But the defective motive
marred the sacrifice. "Did ye at all fast to me, even to me?"2 Little
did the self-complacent ruler suspect the spiritual pride, false confidence,
and worldliness, which this heart-searching God brought to view.3
And how much base alloy is hidden even in a sound-hearted profession!
The disciples covered their own spirit under the pretence of vehement
zeal or their Master. (Luke, ix. 54.) The Lord pondereth the heart.
He "weigheth the spirits" (Chap. xvi. 2); proving exactly what is of
himself, and what is of a baser kind; what, and how much, there is of
God, what of man. The principles of the heart lie deep. The work
may be good in itself. But what are the ends? The same work, ac-
cording to its end, may be accepted, or be cast away. Jehonadab and
Jehu both were engaged in the same exterminating work. With the
one it was right service; with the other, vile hypocrisy. (2 Kings, x.
15.) Self-distrust is therefore the wisdom of true godliness (Chap.
xxviii. 26); daily, hourly, trembling in ourselves; yet boldly ground-
ing our confidence in God! But for the covering of the High Priest,
how could we stand for one moment under the piercing eye of our
Judge? Did our dearest earthly friend know what was passing in our
thoughts at any one hour, could he ever deem us worthy of confidence?
Must not his heart revolt from contact with such vileness? Yet does our
gracious Lord, while pondering our hearts, and privy to all their hidden
corruptions, forgive, accept, yea—rejoice in us as his people.
3. To do justice and judgment is more acceptable to the Lord than sacrifice.
Did Solomon mean to undervalue sacrifice? Never did man more
highly honour it. (1 Kings, iii. 4 ; viii. 64.) Perhaps the splendour of
his sacrificial service may have given rise to the frequent national per-
verted trust in external forms. Sacrifice was appointed as a type of the
Great; Sacrifice for sin. (Heb. x. 12.) But never was it intended to take
the place of that universal moral obedience, which the law of God had
from the beginning indispensably required. Yet how soon did man
mistake the intention of the ordinance! How easily did he substitute
the offering of bulls and goats for the more self-denying service of the
heart.4 Israel abounded in the observance of their outward ceremonials,
while indulging the sin of Sodom and Gomorrah.5 The Corban.
1 Sam. xv. 13-26. 2 Zech. vii. 6. Isa. lviii. 5. Jer. ii. 35.
3 Matt. xix. 21. 4 1 Sam. xv. 22. Ps. i. 13, 14.
5 Isa. i. 11. Jer. vii. 22. Hos. vi. 6. Amos, v. 21. Acts, vii. 42. Mic. vi. 6-8.
CHAP. XXI. 3, 4. 367
sacrifice stood in the room of filial obligation. The lesser services of
"anise and cummin" were scrupulously observed to the neglect of "the
weightier matters of the law--judgment, mercy, and faith."1 Justly
therefore did our Lord commend the "discretion" of the scribe, who
gave the due place and proportion to the ceremonial and moral service.2
Both are his requirements; and a soundly-instructed conscience will
aim at both. Yet plainly has he in some instances dispensed with the
former;3 ever with the latter.4 He has accepted the moral without
the ceremonial ; but never the ceremonial without the moral, obser-
vance what would the world be without that justice and judgment,
which at once "establish the throne" (Chap. xvi. 12), "exalt; the
nation" (Chap. xiv. 34), and realize to their disciples a true interest in
that richest of all possessions—the love of God! (Chap. xv. 9. Comp.
Isa. lxiv. 5.)
We indeed have no sacrifice to place in the stead of these invaluable
principles. But the same preference, and indeed exaltation, of external
service prevail among us. Whether under the proper form of Popery,
or the more plausible cover of Tractarian delusion, it is the true religion
of man's heart—something to recommend us to the favour of God;
something easier and less humbling than the "living sacrifice" (Rom.
xii. 1) for his service. Christian professor! mark carefully the
character of thy service. Let it be free and cheerful; else is it penance,
not acceptable duty. Though it be in weakness, let it ever be in
willingness, with the flower and strength of thy love. Look
to it— an thou resting in the shell and surface, or art thou wor-
shipping in the spirituality of service? Dost thou hear the voice
calling thee, from the dead forms, to seek the living power of godliness?
Cain brought the sacrifice, not the heart. If thou speakest more,
"what dost thou more than others?" (Matt. v. 47.) Remember
those externals, that stand in the place of a consecrated heart, are the
delusion of the great deceiver. Let thine heart be with God, walking
with him in the sound exercise of Christian obligation; honouring the
Divine stamp on every commandment; making conscience of every
duty; and though we come short of every one, yet daring not to neglect
any. (Ps. c . ix. 5, 6, 128.)
4. An high look, and a proud heart, and the plowing (the light, marg.) of
the wicked is sin.
Another stamp of abomination upon pride!5 We cannot mistake
the mind of God so continually declared. Yet so many shapes does
this sin assume, that, until the Spirit of God chews a man to himself, he
rejects the idea, of any concern in it. Nay, he will be proud of his very
1 Matt. xxiii. 3. 2 Mark, xii. 34. 3 Matt. xii. 7. Acts, x. 34, 35.
4 Matt. xxii. 3 -39. 5 Chap. iii. 34; viii. 13; xvi. 5.
368 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
pride, proud of a high spirit; counting a Christian mean and cowardly,
who in the true spirit of the Gospel, yields up his right to a stronger
hand.l
But not only the haughtiness, but even the natural actions— the
plowing of the wicked—is sin. "This is an hard saying; who can hear
it?” (John, vi. 60.) How can the plowing of the soil, in itself a duty
(Gen. iii. 19), become a sin? The motive determines the act. The
most natural actions are inculcated for Christian ends.2 They become
therefore moral actions, good or bad according to their own motives.
The man, who plows the soil, acknowledging God in his work, and
seeking his strength and blessing—" does it acceptably to the glory of
God." It is essentially a religious action. But the wicked, who does
the same work without any regard to God— for want of a godly end,
his plowing is sin.* His idleness is sin against a plain command.
(2 Thess. iii. 10.) His industry is the sin of ungodliness, putting God
out of his own world. The substance of his act is good. But the cor-
rupt principle defiles the very best actions. (Tit. i. 15) "Every
thought, every imagination, of the "natural "heart," is unmixed "evil."
(Ge . vi. 5.) If the fountain-head be bitter, how can the waters be
pure? Sin indeed defiles every motive in the Christian's heart. But
here it is the substance of sin. In the one case it is infirmity of walk
in the straight path. In the other, it is an habitual walk in a crooked
path. With the wicked—'his eating as well as his gluttony; his
drinking as well as his drunkenness; his commerce, negotiation, and
trafficking, as well as his covetousness, and inordinate love of the world,
are if set down and reckoned by God for sins, and such sins as he must
reckon for with God.'† Fearful indeed is his condition. Would that
he could see it! Whether he prays,3 or neglects to pray,4 it is abomi-
nation. He cannot but sin ; and yet he is fully accountable for his
sin. To die, is to plunge into ruin.5 To live in unregeneracy is even
worse; it is daily heaping up wrath against the day of wrath." (Rom.
if. 5) Ought he then to leave his duties undone? 'The impotency
of an must not prejudice God's authority, nor diminish his duty.'‡
What then ought he to do? Let him learn the absolute necessity of
the vital change—"Ye must be born again." (John, iii. 7.) The leper
1 Matt. v. 39-41. 1 Cor. vi. 7. 2 1 Cor. x. 31. Coil. iii. 17.
3 Verse 27. Chap. xv. 8. Isa. i. 13. 4 Ps x. 4.
5 Ib. lx. 17. Matt. xxv. 41-46.
* Holy intention is to the actions of a man that, which the soul is to the body, or form
to its matter, or the root to the tree, or the sun to the world, or the fountain to the river,
or the base to a pillar. Without these, the body is a dead trunk, the matter is sluggish, the
tree is a block, the world is darkness, the river is quickly dry, the pillar rushes into flat-
ness and ruin, and the action is sinful, or unprofitable and vain.'—Bp. TAYLOR'S Holy
Living, Chap. i. Sec. iii.
† Bp. HOPKINS' Works, ii. 481.
‡ Bp. REYNOLDS' Works, p., 94.
CHAP. XXI. 5. 369
taints everything that he touches. But let him seek to the Great
Physician, whose word is sovereign healing (Matt. viii. 3), whose
Divine blood cleanses from every spot. (1 John, i. 7.) His nature
once cleansed, his works will be clean. His thoughts and principles,
all will be for the glory of God; all acceptable to God.*
5. The thoughts of the diligent tend only to plenteousness; but of every
one that is hasty only to want.
The diligent is usually contrasted with the slothful:1 here with the
hasty. The thoughts of each work their own fruit, for plenteousness, or
forwant. The patient, plodding man of industry perseveres in spite of
all difficulties; content to increase his substance by degrees; never
relaxing, ever yielding to discouragement. This care of diligence is
profitable under the blessing of God. (Chap. x. 22.) ‘Thou rnayest as
well expect' (says an old writer) ‘riches to rain down from heaven in
silver showers, as to provide for thy family without industry in thy
calling.'† Haste may have much of diligence in the temperament.
But as indolence is its defect, this is its excess, its undisciplined
impulse. The hand too often goes before, and acts without the
judgment. Hence our English philosopher wisely counsels us--
‘not to measure dispatch by the times of sitting, but by the advance-
ment of the business.' A wise man had it for a bye-word, when he
saw men hasten to a conclusion—'Stay a little, that we may make an
end the so ener. To choose time is to save time, and an unreasonable
motion is but "beating the air."'‡
The evil of haste under a worldly impulse is truly fearful. Often
does it drive the man into rash projects; and high-raised delusive
expectation he finds to be the short and sure road to want.2 Need we
remark, how rich the harvest of Christian diligence, of "patient per-
severance in well-doing"—"eternal life?"3 The heavenly race is not
1 Chap. x.; xii. 24, 27; xiii. 4. 2 Chap. xix. 2; xxiii. 5; xxviii. 22.
3 Rom. ii. 7. Heb. vi. 12.
* Tit. i. 15, first clause. Many good commentators, following the old versions, adopt
the marginal reading. (Comp. xiii. 9; xxiv. 20. Job, xxi. 17.) But as the word is used
in a similar sense, chap. xiii. 23, and as our version is well supported, and gives a most
important mea sing, we have been content to adhere to it. Bishop Patrick explains the
ploughing in the figurative sense of dressing. But as the two first illustrations in the verse
are literal, it seems more consonant to unity to take the third on the same ground--'What
can they (the wicked) think, say, or do; even when they eat, play, fast, or pray, they are
always under the guilt of sin, because all flows from an impure heart, and the bad tree can-
not bring forth good fruit?' Matt. vii. 18. Cartwright in loco. ' Whatsoever they devise,
or whatsoever they do, inside and outside, the cloth and linings of their garments are all sin.'
CARYL on Job, i 8. ‘The wicked man hath a, haughty look and a proud heart. Neither
are his misdispositions only sinful. But those his very actions and endeavours, which in another
man would be harmless, are in him no other than sin.'—Bp. HALL. Soe also Scott in loco.
† SWINNOCK'S Christian Man's Calling, part i. 365.
‡ Lord BACON'S Essays.
370 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
to be run by so many heats, but by a steady course. "Run," not with
haste or speed, but "with patience the race set before us." (Heb. xii. 1.)
The seed springing up in haste withered. (Matt. xiii. 20, 21.) Excite-
ment is delusion, and ends in disappointment. What so important as
to cultivate a deep work of grace, pervading the whole man, and
abounding with fruit to the glory of God?
6. The getting of treasures by a lying tongue is vanity tossed to and fro of
them that seek death. 7. The robbery of the wicked shall destroy (saw,
marg.) them, because they refuse to do judgment.
A graphical picture of the hasty spirit--its own crooked ways
tending to want. Treasures may be gotten by lying; but they become
vanity. They are "put into a bag with holes" (Hag. i. 6), and sink
away. They are like a ball tossed to and fro by a withering blast, or
dust and chaff before the wind.l Unrighteous gain is a dear bargain.
The wrath of God mingles gall and bitterness with the wages of ini-
quity.2 Eagerly did Judas desire to get rid of his ill-gotten treasure
as an intolerable curse. Yet he could not fly from his torturing con--
science. He sought death, and he found it. (Matt. xxvii. 5.)
Indeed it is with the ungodly, as if they sought death as their reward.
So fondly do they love the way of eternal death! Meanwhile their
own sin is the seed of destruction. Their robbery virtually destroys
them.3 And whom can they blame but themselves? It is not igno-
rance or inconsideration, but wilfulness, that destroys, because they refuse
to do judgment. "Know ye not that the unrighteous shall not inherit
the kingdom of God" (1 Cor.vi. 9)? that "the wages of sin," invariably,
inevitably---"is death?" (Rom. vi. 23.) What else did the robbery of
Achan and Gehazi bring to them?4 Short indeed was the enjoyment
of Ananias and Sapphira in "the part of the price kept back" at the
expsense of a lying tongue. Sudden and everlasting destruction was their
doom--a beacon to worldly, half-hearted, self-deceiving professors.*
8. The way of man is froward and strange: but as for the pure, his work
is right.
Observe the striking contrast— man by nature; and man by grace.
Who will say that man is now, as he first came from his Maker's hands?
1 Chap. x. 2; xxii. 8. Jer. xvii. 11.
2 Zech. v. 4. Comp. Isa. i. 23, 24. Jer. vii. 9-11, 15. Ezek. xxii. 18, 14. Flab. ii. 6-8.
3 Chap. i. 11, 18, 19; xxii. 22, 23. Hab. ii. 10-13. 4 Josh. vii. 21-26. 2 Kings, v. 20-27.
* Chap. xii. 19. Acts, v. 1-10. The marginal reading seems to imply aggravated destruc-
tion, probably with shame. Comp. 2 Sam. xii. 31. Heb. xi. 37. Also, Luke, xii. 46. ‘Search
your chests; search your hearts, all ye that'hear me this day; and if any of you find any
of this adulterated gold among your heaps, away with it. As you love yourselves, away
with it. Else know, that (as Chrysostom wittily says) ‘You have locked up a thief in your
counting-house, which shall carry away all; and—if ye look not to it the sooner—you
soul with it."—Bp. HALL'S Sermon on the Righteous Mammon. Works, v. 109, 110.
CHAP. XXI. 8, 9. 371
(Eccles. ii. 29.) How is he born? Froward, "as a wild ass's colt."
(Job, xi. 12.) How soon does he develope his nature! "Foolishness
is bound up in the heart of a child; childhood and youth are vanity."1
Need we add, that this is a strange way? How strange from the God,
who made and loved him! Turned from God; "turned to his own
way" (Isa. liii. 6); with no law but his lust, no rule but his will (Eph.
ii. 3. Tit iii. 3); loving his own liberty, but despising true liberty;
made by his own self-delusion "the servant of corruption" (2 Pet. ii.
19); ignorant, licentious, wanton; desiring only to be the fountain of
his own happiness, the maker of his own sufficiency.
Take him in his noblest path—the pursuit of wisdom. Here, too,
his way is froward and strange. Is not forbidden wisdom his delight—
wisdom, not as wisdom, but as forbidden; "intruding" into the counsels,
prying into the ark, of God ? (Col. ii. 18.) Such was the first appetite
of frowardness, not desiring to know God, which "is life eternal" (John,
xvii. 3); but to know as God (Gen. iii. 5), which was pride in its
principle, and death in its issue.
But man, by grace made pure, new "created in the image of his
God" (Eph. iv. 24)—mark him well. His will is now conformed to
God; his actions are regulated by this perfect standard. Therefore,
his rule and aim being right, his work is right. (Tit. i. 15.) He lives
now, as does his Divine Saviour, to God." (Rom. vi. 10, 11.) Such is
the dignity of his great object! Such his fellowship with his glorious
Head! Such his earnest of heaven, and growing meetness for it!
Oh! the mercy of being turned from our own froward and strange way
to the pure service of our God! Yet such remains of the frowardness
still; such intricacies of self-deceitfulness; such twisted workings of
depravity! ‘0 heart, heart'— cries a deep-taught experimental Christ-
ian*--‘what art thou? The vainest, craftiest, wickedest thing in
nature!' And truly, when the stroke goes deep into the soul, when
the inner circle, the very centre of being, is reached and probed, what
hidden evils come to light 0 my God! shew me to myself, so far as
I can bear the sight, that I may be kept humbled and self-abased;
always near my Saviour; always applying his precious blood; always
covering myself in his pure and perfect work of righteousness!
9. It is better to dwell in a corner of the house-top, than with a brawling
woma in a wide house (a woman of contention in a house of society,
marg )
In the spacious houses in the East, several families lived together
in society. A brawling woman would be a grievous disturbance to the
little community; and a peaceable man would prefer the corner of the
1 Chap. xxii. 15. Eccles. xi. 10.
* Rev. John Berridge.
372 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
house-top,l exposed to all the inconveniences of wind and weather, to
the ample accommodation of a wide house in the atmosphere of contention.
(Verse 19; xxv. 24.) A solitary life without would be better than a
quarrelsome life within. Some intervals of comfort might be abroad;
nine at home. Infinitely greater is this trial, when it comes from a
man's own flesh; when she, who ought to be "a crown to her husband,"
becomes "rottenness to his bones" (Chap. xii. 4); when she that is
bound to be his choicest treasure, becomes his piercing scourge. ‘It
cannot be but a miserable thing to behold, that yet they are of necessity
compelled to live together, which yet cannot be in quiet together.'*
The intent of the Divine ordinance is here contravened. For it would
seem "good for the man to be alone," rather than that his "help-meet"
(Gen. ii. 18) should turn to be his hindrance, and his curse. But how
many bring this bitter trouble upon themselves! They plunge into the
important connexion on adventure; with no thought of the duties to
be done, the temptations to be avoided, the crosses to be borne. They
never sought direction in the momentous choice. The wife, not being
sought from the Lord, came not from him, and brought no "favour" of
him.2 Illicit pleasure, avarice, or waywardness, brought a calamity;
that no external accomplishments, no advantages of riches or rank, could
for a moment counterbalance.
The only safe entrance into this 'honourable estate' is, when each
party (as Chrysostom instructs) commit themselves to God--.'Bestow
me as thou wilt, and on whom thou wilt.'† The only security for
happiness is, when, with due regard of mutual fitness, mutual love is
grounded reverentially upon the ordinance, which makes of "twain one
flesh.” (Gen. ii. 24, with xxiv. 67.) Contentions will be restrained by
the preventive habit of Christian discipline; each considering that
passion improves nothing, and patience much, and that it is far better
to "give place" to each other, than "to the devil." (Eph. iv. 27.) The
husband in his claim for submission will remember, that he has found,
not a servant, but a wife. She, on her side, will not forget the beauty
and order of graceful sacrifice and ready concession; and that her glory
is departed from her, should she lose "the ornament of a meek and
quiet spirit;" lovely in the sight of man, and "in the sight of God of
great price." (1 Pet. iii. 4.) 'Each severally performs their faithful
duties; everything around them acquires firmness and stability.'‡
10. The soul of the wicked desireth evil: his neighbour findeth no favour
in his eyes.
A lively portraiture of Satan himself! not only doing, but desiring
1 Comp. Deut. xxii. 8. Josh. ii. 6-8. 2 Sam. xi. 2. Acts, x. 9.
2 Chap. xix. 14; xviii. 22.
* Homily on Matrimony. † Homil. in Coloss. ‡ CHRYSOST. in Colors. Hom. x.
CHAP. XXI. 11. 373
evil! Evil is the very nature of the wicked. What wonder, then, if his
very soul desireth it? His "heart is fully set to do it."l He craves it
as his appetite, his main delight.2 What "fitting for destruction"
must there be in vessels thus full of sin, and therefore full of wrath!3
And here lies the difference between the godly and the wicked; not that
the one is pure from evil, and the other commits it; but that the one
does it from constraint, the other from delight. The one testifies--
"What I hate"--the other—What my soul desireth--"that do I."4
As the fruit of this native cherished principle, self to the wicked is both
his god and his object. Intent upon his own lust, not only his enemy,
or a stranger, but even his neighbour, who might have a claim upon him,
findeth no favour in his eyes. His charity does not extend beyond his
own door (1 Sam. xxv. 11.) No one is regarded, who stands in the
way of his own interest. Friend and brother must give place to selfish
gratification.
Such is sin in its hateful character, and baneful fruits. "Men are
lovers of their own selves, hateful, and hating one another!"5 Look at
the man of God, with his heart enlarged and softened with the pervading
influence of the gospel. Where is the neighbour in distress, that does
not find farvour in his eyes? (Luke, x. 31-35.) "Charity seeketh not her
own" (1 Cor. xiii. 5)—is his spirit. "Pear ye one another's burdens"
(Gal. vi. 2 —is his rule. "The members of the body have the same
care one for another." (1 Cor. xii. 25.) Oh! for a larger measure of
this gracious spirit, "as the dew of Hermon descending upon the
mountains of Israel" (Ps. cxxxiii. 3), upon the church of God!
11. When the scorner is punished, the simple is made wise: and when the
wise is instructed, he receiveth knowledge.
This Proverb in substance has been given before (Chap. xix. 25) as
an instructive illustration of the Lord's providential discipline. No
stroke of his rod is without its effect. The blow that strikes one, reaches
two—the scorner for punishment; the simple for improvement. The
scorner describes a character far more common than is usually conceived.
It includes much more than the gross outbreaking of the revolting
heart. Under a more decent external garb, often do we see the utter
want of that awful reverence for God, that humility of mind, that sub-
mission of our will, that prostration of desire, which is the glory and
happiness of those above, who "cast their crowns before the throne."
The very idea of the grace of God is an object of scorn and contempt.
We wonder not therefore that the daring offender should be marked
out for punishment. And yet, if (as is too frequently the case) the
1 Eccles. viii. 11. 2 Chap. iv. 16; xii. 12; xiii. 19. 3 Rom. ix. 22.
4 Rom. vii. 15-21, with vi. 12, 16, 17. 5 2 Tim. iii. 2. Tit. iii. 8.
374 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
punishment be without fruit to the scorner (Isa. i. 5. Jer. v. 3), it reads a
lesson of wisdom to the simple, who had been, or were, in danger of being
missed by his evil example. (Ps. lxiv. 7.) Nay—even the man of God
learns a lesson of love mingled with wholesome trembling, from this
awful dispensation--"Thou puttest away all the wicked of the earth
like dross; therefore I love thy testimonies. My flesh trembleth for
fear of thee; and I am afraid of thy judgments."1
The wise, though already taught of God; through his daily teaching
thankfully receives increasing knowledge. (Chap. i. 5.) Among his most
fruitful lessons are the instructions of the rod--instructions (mark the
difference of the term)--not punishment. Often does the teaching rod
seal the teaching law. And the well-disciplined child is ready with
his acknowledgments--"Blessed is the man, whom thou chastenest, 0
Lord, and teachest him out of thy law. I will bless the Lord, who hath
given me counsel; my reins also chasten me in the night season. It is
good, for me that I have been afflicted, that I might learn thy statutes."2
12. The righteous man wisely considereth the house of the wicked: but
God overthroweth the wicked for their wickedness.
The punishment of the wicked reads a lesson not only of love and
trembling, but of wise consideration. Yet many are the perplexing
mysteries of Providence. The righteous man does not always see with
his right eyes. The prosperity of the wicked staggers his faith, excites
his envy, and induces hard thoughts of God. (Ps. lxxiii. 2-14.) But
when he looks with the eye of faith, he sees far beyond the dazzling
glory of the present moment. He wisely considereth their house; not its
external splendour and appurtenances, but how it will end. He jus-
tifies God, and puts himself to shame. (Ib. verses 16-22.) "Shall not
the Judge of all the earth do right?" (Gen. xviii. 25.) Here we rest,
until he shall "arise, and plead his own cause," and "with the breath
of his mouth, and the brightness of his coming, destroy"3 the very
existence of evil. Meanwhile, where the superficial eye sees nothing
but confusion, let the righteous man wisely consider lessons of deep and
practical profit. The shortness of the prosperity,4 and the certainty of
the overthrow, of the wicked;5 the assurance of a day of recompense;6
the contrast of the substance of the godly for time and for eternity7---
these are the apprehensions of faith. Do they not marvellously set out
the perfections of God, and call to each of his children--"My son, give
glory to God?"
1 Ps. xix. 119, 120. Comp. Heb. x. 26-31. 2 Ps. xciv. 12; xvi. 7; cx:ix. 71.
3 Ps. xxiv. 22; lxxxii. 8. 2 Thess. ii. 8. 4 Job, xx. 4, 5. Ps. xxxvii. 35, 36.
5 Cha . xii. 7; xiii. 3-6; xv. 25. 2 Pet. ii. 4-9. 6 Job, xxi. 28-30. Ps. lviii. 10, 11.
7 Job, xxii. 15-20. Ps. lxxiii. 23-26.
CHAP. XXI. 13. 375
13. Whoso stoppeth his ears at the cry of the poor, he shall also cry
himself, but shall not be heard.
If there were no poor, much of the word of God, applying to their
comfort, and directing our obligations, would have been written in
vain. The obligation implies not only an helping hand, but a feeling
heart; hearing the cry of the poor with sympathy,1 cheerfulness,2 self-
sacrifice.* The stopping the ears implies cruelty or insensibility;3
turning away from real and known distress;4 any kind of oppression;
beating down “the hire of the labourer” (Jam. v. 4) beyond the power
of earning the necessaries of life; and neglecting, so far as is in our
power, to defend them against oppression. (Luke, xviii. 2-4.)
Sometimes indeed it might be our duty to stop our ears. The law
of God discountenances the trade of begging, with all its pathetic cries
and appeals (2 Thess. iii. 10.) To retain therefore the poor in idle-
ness, however compassionate or self-pleasing the motive, is to encourage,
if not to participate in, sin. Considerate discretion, not feeling, should
direct our clarity. (Chap. xxix. 7.) Honest distress taxes most of us
to the utmost of our power, considering our responsibility to put out all
that we have, whether it be little or much, to the most profitable use.
Yet ever let the withholding of charity be a constraint upon our feeling,
not the indulgence of our selfishness. Count it a privilege, no less than
an obligation, to minister to the poor. Ponder it as conformity to our
Divine Master's spirit and work. (Matt. xiv. 14-21.) Consider niggard-
liness in giving; the useless expenses that abridge our power of help-
ing; luxuries, while our brethren are starving around us; restraining
the full extent of what we ought and might give— all this as virtually
stopping our ears against their cry. Covetousness and sensuality harden
the heart; and when the heart is hard, the ear is deaf.5 This sin was
wrongfully charged upon Job.6 But wherever it be found, the stamp
of divine displeasure is fearfully marked;7 and even the sin of omission
the great day will openly mark as the ground of condemnation.8
And now, as the selfish hardness shews the man has no love to
God,9 he will find no love from God. "With the same measure that
he meted withal, it shall be measured to him again."10 Did he stop his
ears at the cry of the poor? God will stop his ears against his cry.11 He
1 Deut. xv. 7–1 . Isa. lviii. 6-9. 2 Rom. xii. 8. 2 Cor. ix. 7.
3 Chap. xxix. 7 Neh. v. 1-8. 4 Luke, x. 30-32.
5 1 Sam. xxv. 10, 11. 6 Job, xxii. 5-7, with xxix. 16; xxxi. 16, 17, 20.
7 Chap. xi. 24, 26; xxviii. 27. Jer. xxxiv. 10-22. Matt. xviii. 30-34. 8 Matt. xxv. 41–45.
9 1 John, iii. 17. 10 Luke, vi. 38. Judg. i. 6, 7. 1 Sam. xv. 33.
11 Job, xxxiv. 24 -28. Zech. vii. 9-13. See Ecclus. iv. 4-66.
* 2 Cor. viii. 1-4. Howard's rule, so nobly expounded by his own self-denying devoted-
ness— is a fine comment on this example, ‘That our superfluities give way to other men's
convenience; the tour conveniences give way to other men's necessaries; and that even our
necessaries sometimes give way to other men's extremities.' See his Life.
376 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
that would not give a crumb on earth, was denied a drop of water in
hell.l "He shall have judgment without mercy, that hath shewed no
mercy." (Jam. ii. 13.) Christian professor! study the character of thy
God—"pitiful and of tender mercy" (Jam. v. 11); and be like him.
remember—"bowels of mercies, kindness" are the ornament of "the
elect of God." (Col. iii. 12.)
14. A gift in secret pacifieth anger: and a reward in the bosom strong
wrath.
We have before noticed* cases of resentment, where a legitimate
and prudent distribution of gifts may quell the storm, and restore the
calm. But a gift in secret implies a perversion;2 else why should the
tie light be dreaded?3 Both parties are involved in the guilt. The
giver acts as a tempter. The receiver wilfully breaks the law of God.4
The passions of men are easily charmed. But rarely will a covetous
man be so angry with his friends, as not to be pacified with his gift,
especially when, given in secret, it tells no tales. A reward in the bosom
to such a man is stronger far than strong wrath; and when it has shewn
its errand, the melting process is rapidly accomplished. (Eccles. x. 19.)
Thus is the wounded pride expelled by another ruling passion--
avarice! Who then can excuse himself in the indolent cry—'I cannot
help my passion, or gain any power over it!' For if it can be pacified
by sordid motives, it leaves us inexcusable, if we do not subdue it by
Christian motives. But it is too evident, that secret covetousness
cankers many a plausible exercise of forbearance. How do we need
a close watch and keeping of our own hearts, in order to a Christian
walk with God!
15. It is joy to the just to do judgment: but destruction shall be to the
workers of iniquity.
It is not that the just does judgment. Conscience may dictate this,
at least externally, while the bias of the heart is on the side of sin.
But it is joy to the just to do it. His rest, purpose, affections— all centre
in it. He has as much delight in doing judgment, as "the soul of the
wicked desireth evil" (Verse 10), as his own soul desired it.5 It is joy,
but only to the just.6 To the mere professor of religion it is conviction,
an fear; the service of a slave. He knows God only as a Master, and
conceives of him as a task-master. He has never known him as a
Fa her, and therefore never served him as a child. But his true ser
vice—does it not, Christian?--identifies holiness and happiness, and
brings its own smile and income of joy with it, as naturally as heat
1 Luke, xvi. 21, 24, 25. 2 Chap. xvii. 28. 3 John, iii. 20.
4 Exod. xviii. 8. Dent. xvi. 19. 5 Eph. ii. 2, 3. Tit. iii. 3. 6 Ps. xsxii. 11; xcvii. 11, 1
* Chap. xviii. 16. Page 295.
CHAP. XXI. 15, 16. 377
accompanies fire, and beams flow from the sun. And thus "the way
of the Lord is strength to the upright." (Chap. x. 23.) Was it not so
with our beloved Lord? He could say—"I delight to do thy will, 0
my God. My meat, that the world knows not of, is to do my Father's
will, and to finish his work."1 Oh! that the servant might be in spirit
like his Lord!
What, then, is the gloom and sadness charged upon religion? Truly
the children of this world have never tasted the clusters of Canaan.
How then can they know their sweetness? Christian! look up, and
be cheerful, for the honour of your God and his gospel. Live not, as if
some affliction had happened to you; but as one snatched from de-
struction; as a child of God, an heir of heaven. You know more than
you can tell. You can tell enough to make the world inexcusable, if
they turn away. But you cannot tell half, when all that you can tell
is told. Yet let them see, that "the work of righteousness is peace,"
and "the broke of Christ is easy;"2 nay, that the sharpest sacrifices for
him are sweet; that there is more pleasure in " plucking out the right
eye" for him, than in using it for sin or for Satan. And then for your-
self think further, if this be the happiness amidst all the clogging hin-
drances of sin, what will it be, when these hindrances shall be removed,
and we shall serve him without sin for ever!3 If such be the wilder-
ness, what will Canaan be!
But what know the ungodly of this reality? Sin is to them a
mockery,4 is sport,5 even a joy.6 But never can it be their solid joy.
It is their weariness, never their rest.7 To the workers of iniquity belong
only vanity and disappointment, ending in destruction.8 Hear the
testimony of God—"Destruction and misery are in their ways, and the
way of peace have they not known. There is no peace, saith my God,
to the wicked."9
16. The man that wandereth out of the way of understanding, shall remain
in the congregation of the dead.
This seems to describe the fearful and irretrievable ruin of apostates.
(Ps. cxxv. 5) God has opened the way of understanding. The wandering
out of it implies, that the man was once in it; at least that he was
instructed, and professed to walk in it. The end of wilful wandering is
eternal death. Such was the character and end of the wicked son of
Jehoshaphat;10 and the rebellious children of godly Josiah;11 apostates
from the religion "received by tradition from their fathers."
1 Ps. xl. 8. John, iv, 32-34, 2 Isa. xxxii. 17. Matt. xi. 30. 3 Rev. vii. 15; xxii. 3.
4 Chap. xiv. 9. 5 Chap. x. 23; xxvi. 18, 19. 6 Chap. xv. 21.
7 Isa. xivii. 13; 1vii.10, 20. Jer. ix. 5. 8 Chap. v. 22. Matt. vii. 23.
9 Rom. iii. 16, 17. Isa. lix. 7, 8; lvii. 21. 10 2 Chron. xxi. 1, 4-6, 18, 19.
11 Ib. xxxvi. 1-17. Jer. xxii. 17-19, 28-30.
318 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
But—not to go to olden times—It is no rare sight to see the
children of godly parents cast off the privileges of their birthright, as
despised in their eyes. Though early instructed in "the Holy Scrip-
tures;" instead of "continuing in the things which they have learned
and been assured of" (2 Tim. iii. 14, 15), they have "loved to wander."
(Jer. xiv. 10.) They have never proved a real apprehension of the
substance of truth, or a just appreciation of its value. The way has
been too strait, and too humbling. Novelties have been preferred:
self-confidence indulged; self-pleasing delusions cherished; the, want
of godly sincerity has darkened the path (Matt. vi. 23); conscientious
error, varnished with external holiness, is readily admitted; and the
man, destitute of a solid scriptural standard, wanders out of the way of
understanding.
This state of death is often connected (and stands out more strongly
by the connexion) with external observance of religion, the practice of
many moral duties, and with a certain measure of moral taste, partially
formed according to the scriptural standard. But there are also occa-
sional emotions of conviction under the oppressive consciousness that
the heart was wanting; and whatever might be the temporary excite-
ment--like Saul under the soothing notes of the harp of the son of
Jesse (1 Sam. xvi. 14-23), there is no movement from the state of hardened
rebellion against God. The true cause of the death, is that in the full
blaze of religious knowledge, a living faith is absent. Hence there is
no reality of prayer; therefore no genuine desire, no vital effort, no
hearty perseverance. With all his light, knowledge, and privileges, the
man is still a wanderer out of the way of understanding.
Indeed wandering is the character of man's fallen nature. (Isa.
liii. 6.) But light, conviction, advantages of instruction, awfully
aggravate the responsibility. (Ib. xxviii. 12, 13. Zeph. i. 4-6.) Beware
of the first wandering step, whether it may be in doctrine or in practice.
It may fix in a state of apostasy, like Bunyan's blinded wanderers out
of the strait path, who were found among the tombs, remaining in the
congregation of the dead. A special mercy will it be, if the wayward
wanderer does not find his last and final abode among ‘the mighty
dead,' "to whom is reserved the blackness of darkness for ever."* "It
had been better for him not to have known the way of righteousness,
than; after he has known it, to turn from the holy commandments
delivered unto him." (2 Pet. ii. 21.) Let such as he remember, that
remaining among the congregations of the dead shews their character,
* Jude, 12, 13. ‘Mighty dead.' See Dr. Goon's Note on Job, xxvi. 5. ‘In caeta gigan-
tum.'--MELANCTHON. Parkhurst, and most critics consider intensity to be implied. Comp.
Isa. xiw 9. See on chap. ii. 18, n. Dr. Graves quotes this text with several others in this
Book iv. 18, 19; viii. 35, 26 ; xii. 28; xiv. 32) in evidence of the knowledge of the future
state under the old dispensation.—Lectures on Pentateuch, Part iii. Lect. iv.
CHAP. XXI. 16, 17. 379
their state, and their home; and that though they be by birth Abra-
ham's children, born of godly parents, yet, wandering out of the way of
understanding, they are out of the way of life.
One can only wish to view such sad apostates, as Faithful and
Hopeful did, with tears gushing out of our eyes, silently pondering.
Do they not stand as warnings to us, that we should tremble—yea--
"rejoice with trembling?" (Ps. ii. 11.) While we "stand by faith,"
must we not remember the needful caution—"Be not high-minded,
but fear?" (Rom. xi. 20.) Ever let us combine self-distrust with our
Christian confidence; "fearing, lest, a promise being left us of entering
into rest, any of us should seem to come short of it" (Heb. iv. 1); thank-
ful alike for the warnings to make us fear, and for the encouragements
to preserve us from despondency.
But the great mass are also here described. They never profess;
they never have professed. They know that "wisdom crieth without,"
yet they "refuse to hear the voice of the charmer."1 Many will occa-
sionally bear, yet "they go their way, and straightway forget what
manner of men they were."2 Noah's mighty generation was of this
character; and they remained in the congregation of the dead.3 And will
not every one, who, with the opportunities to attain wisdom, refuses,
departs, turns away, be found to have "died in their trespasses and
sins " (Eph. ii. 1) eternally?
17. He that loveth pleasure shall be a poor man: and he that loveth wine
and oil shall not be rich.
What then? are we to have no pleasure? This were indeed to
drive men from religion. Why—pleasure is the very character of the
ways of God (Chap. iii. 17); pleasure infinitely more satisfying "than
in the time that corn and wine increased." (Ps. iv. 6, 7.) Are we not,
again, to rejoice in our earthly comforts? "The living God giveth us
richly all things to enjoy."4 This large flow of happiness is more than
doubled by the rule of "thanksgiving." (1 Tim. iv. 4, 5.) Yet, strange
as it may seem, the way to enjoy pleasure is not to love it; to live above
it;* to "rejoice as though we rejoiced not to use the world, as not
abusing it" (1 Cor. vii. 30, 31) ; never pursuing it as our portion, or as
making the happiness of an immortal being. The man, who gives his
whole heart and time to the love of pleasure, and sacrifices to it all his
prudence and foresight, is surely on the highroad to poverty.† On the
1 Chap. i. 20. Ps. lviii. 5. 2 Jam. i. 24. 3 1 Pet. iii. 19, 20. 2 Pet. ii. 5. Gen. vi. 4.
4 1 Tim. vi. 17. Comp. Eccles. ii. 26; iii. 22; ix. 7-9.
* It is a fine remark of Cyprian's—‘The greatest pleasure is to have conquered plea-
sure; nor is there any greater victory than that, which is gained over our own appetites.
—De bono Pudicitiae.
† Verse 20 The instance of the profligate, v. 10, 11; of Samson, Judg. xvi. 1-21: of
the Prodical, Luke, xv. 13-16.
380 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
same road is he that loveth wine, under the power of a "mocking delu-
sion."1 He that loveth oil—one of the most precious fruits of Canaan2
—may find, that 'those who could not live without dainties came to
want necessaries.'* But the most melancholy sight in the universe is
the man, immured in the prison-house of selfishness, who sacrifices to
the love of pleasure the interest of his immortal soul. Salvation is
thrown away as a thing of nought.3 Fearful indeed is the poverty, the
utter, eternal ruin of this wilful infatuation. "Woe unto you that are
rich; for ye have received your consolation. Son! remember that thou
in thy lifetime receivest thy good things, and likewise Lazarus evil
things; but now he is comforted, and thou art tormented."4
Youth indeed dreams of uninterrupted pleasure, and sees not the
illusion of the charming perspective. But earthly joys are vain indeed.
They may leave us; we must leave them. To place our happiness in
this, is to build upon the wave, which rolls from under us, and plunges
us into the depths of despondency.
But the double-dealing professor asks—'May we not combine the
two pleasures of the world and religion?' But the object of the man of
God is, first to awaken, then to satisfy, a holy appetite. And for this
end he knows he must separate himself from all that mixture of worldly
pleasure, which, while so far from quickening or nourishing, tends
utterly to quench it.
‘Thrice fools are we'--exclaims a glowing Christian--'who, like
new babes in the cradle, know not that there is a kingdom before
them!'† What wonder, that those who know not heaven should take
their portion on earth! But should not the heirs of heaven live above
the love of earth, having no more sympathy with the sensual devotee;
than with the pleasure of "the sow wallowing in the mire? "Mark
well, then, the danger and temptation, the need of unceasing watchful-
ness, that in the necessary use you keep within its due measure—the
heart loosened here, and fixed above. (Luke, xxi. 34.) For should you
be growing in the love of earthly pleasure, you shall be a poor man,
indeed; growing indifferent to prayer; heartless and dead to God;
fancying shadows to be substance, and despising the true substance as
a shadow. Heavenly pleasures will lose their sweetness, as earthly
pleasures are relished. 'Certainly the more a man drinketh of the
world, the, more it intoxicateth.'‡ Our spiritual character is our glory.
Personal holiness is indispensable to spiritual enjoyments. Keep then
ever before you, as the witness of your better experience, the emptiness5
1 Chap. xx. 1; xxiii. 21.
2 Deut. viii. 8; xi. 14. Judg. ix. 9. PS. xxiii. 1. Mic.. vi. 15. Hab. iii. 17:
3 Eccles. xi. 9. 1 Tim. v. 6. 2 Tim.. iii. 4. 1 Pet. iv. 3-5.
4 Luke, vi. 24; xvi. 25. Comp. Ps. xvii. 14. 5 Eccles, ii. 11.
* Henry in loco. Comp. Isa. xxiii. 9—12; xlvii. 8, 9. Zeph. ii. 15. Rev. xxiii. 7.
† RUTHERFORD'S Letters. ‡ Lord BACON'S Essays.
CHAP. XXI. 18, 19. 381
and bitterness1 of the world's pleasures, and the all-sufficiency of your
real portion.2 And shall a man's appetite and poisoned taste, blot out
these records----this solemn judgment of experience? God forbid!
18. The wicked shall be a ransom for the righteous, and the transgressor
for the upright,
The ransom is here spoken of only in a popular sense, as equivalent
to a substitute. (Ps. xlix. 7, 8.) God sometimes, for wise reasons,
involves the righteous in the same judgment with the wicked. Some-
times the punishment of the wicked is the ordained means of averting
calamity from a righteous nation. (Josh. vii. 24-26.) Often, in the
Lord's retributive justice, the wicked are brought into the very trouble,
which they designed for the righteous,* Thus, suffering in their stead,
they are as it were a ransom for them. God may seem in trouble to
"sell his people for nought " (Ps. xliv. 12); yet "so precious are they
in his sight," that a whole nation shall, if needful for their preservation,
be given to ruin. Egypt and Ethiopia were thus a ransom for Jeru-
salem, when God turned Sennacherib's fury against them, and warded
off the threatened strokes from the sacred city,† just as a bait, thrown
to a beast of prey, would give opportunity to the devoted victim to
escape. Often does God turn the enemies of the church to fight among
themselves, so that the destined scourge for his church is turned to
another quarter, as if the crushed nation was a ransom, a victim in the
stead of the innocent. However lowering the prospects of the church
may be, yet there is no ground for faintness or trembling for the ark of
God. His promises to his church are not empty sounds, but "the
munitions of rocks." "No weapon that is formed against thee shall
prosper. He that toucheth you, toucheth the apple of mine eye."
(Isa. liv. 17. Zech. ii. 8.) The night may be dark; but the morn will
look forth gloriously.
19. It is better to dwell in the wilderness, than with a contentious and an
angry woman.
Another (Verse 9), perhaps even a stronger, picture of the misery
of domestic dissension! It is better to be destitute altogether of the
communion of social life, if it must be purchased at so dear a rate as
the companionship of one, whose contentions will turn every comfort
into bitterness. It is better to dwell, not only "upon the house-top,"
where there might be alleviation, but even in the wilderness; giving up
1 Chap. xiv. 13. 2 Ps. xvi. 5, 6; xvii. 15; lxxiii. 25, 26.
* Chap. xi. 8, and references. See also the first-born of Egypt given for the deliverance
of Israel. Exod. xi. 4-8; xii. 29-86.
† Isa. xliii. 3, 4. Ransom, the same word in the original. Comp. 2 Kings, xix. 7-9.
382 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
all social indulgences for desolation, solitude, and even dangers.* Oh!
it is the poison in 'the sweetest cup of earth's best joy,' where "two
are joined to each other, and made one flesh " (Matt. xix. 5); yet not
"joined to the Lord," and so "made one spirit." (1 Cor. vi. 17.) The
woman only is mentioned. Yet the disruption is as frequent, and at
least as guilty, from an imperious husband, as from a scolding wife.†
Surely our gracious God here teaches his children a lesson too often
neglected to their cost—to put their necks into this sacred yoke,
reverently, discreetly, advisedly, solemnly, and in the fear of God.'‡
Let them carefully ponder the fact, that a choice influenced by the
fascination of beauty, manners, or disposition, by intellect or accom-
plishments, if made without reference to godliness, can give no promise
of the divine blessing, or of individual happiness. Often indeed it
issues in a state of degradation, too painful to dwell upon, into which
one or both parties are content to plunge, making themselves odious
for the sake of indulging their angry passions. Nor does this apply
only to the matrimonial yoke. All members of the family circle,
bound together by natural ties, and living together by providential
arrangements, may do not a little towards embittering each other's
happiness. The subjects of these uncontrolled tempers must, however,
reap the natural harvest of their seed sown, and suffer under the mor-
tifying consciousness, that others recoil from their society, and would
readily embrace, if need be, the alternative of the wilderness, as a welcome
change from perpetual irritation.
‘The family,' as Mr. Cecil justly observes, ‘is sometimes a fierce fire.
Our family comprehends the greatest portion of our world. It is to us
the most interesting, and therefore is capable of becoming the most
trying portion.'§ The child of God is bound indeed to recognize
effectual and fatherly discipline in his trials from the tempers of those
around him. Yet not less strange the fact, that even among Canaan's
pilgrims, words are often uttered, that must produce pain; and thus
thorns, which our heavenly Father hath not planted, are strewn in our
brother's or sister's path. Effects still more lamentable are to be traced
in impressions made upon the young, or on others watching the exhibi-
tion of such inconsistencies, where better things might have been
expected.
The matrimonial "thorn in the flesh" may be a needful chastening,
overruled as a preventive against self-confidence (2 Cor. xii. 7), and for
* See Mark, i. 13. "I had rather"—said the wise son of Sirach—"dwell with a lion and
a dragon, than keep house with a wicked woman."—Ecclus. xxv. 16. Comp. xxvi. 7, 27.
† ‘There is somewhat (as I may say) of a particular cut or fashion of the garment of
wives towards their husbands. But men ought to wear of the same stuff; yea, so if I
may speak, of the same piece, for it is in all one and the same spirit.'—LEIGHTON on. 1 Pet.
iii. 3, 4.
‡ Marriage Service.
§ See his Sermon on Hannah.
CHAP. XXI. 19, 20. 383
the exercise of adorning Christian graces.* Yet much prayer and for-
bearance are required, to avoid being put out of frame with every trifle;
to refrain from needless occasion and subjects of irritation; to keep
aloof from the immediate bursting of ungoverned passion; and to
realize present support under this heavy cross, in the assured prospect
and intense longing for the home of everlasting peace.†
20. There is treasure to be desired and oil in the dwelling of the wise; but
a foolish man spendeth it up.
To love an earthly treasure is the way to poverty. (Verse 17.) Yet
we may thankfully enjoy the prudent gathering, as the fruit of the
Lord's blessing (Chap. x. 22), like the oil of Canaan,‡ for refreshment.
This is not the forbidden "laying up for ourselves treasures upon earth"
(Matt. vi. 19), a hoarding for selfishness and distrust of God. (Luke, xii.
* Hooker's meek endurance of the continual dropping (chap. xix. 13) must have read to
George Cranmer and others who witnessed it, a striking lesson on the influence of practical
religion. Buxtorf quoted a Jewish saying —'How will a man prove his spirit? By
enduring a bad wife.' When Socrates was asked—'Why he endured his wife? By this
means'— he replied —'I have a schoolmaster at home, and an example how I should behave
myself abroad. For I shall'— said he--'be the more quiet with others, being thus daily
exercised and taught in the forbearing of her.' Homily on Matrimony. Chrysostom gives
the story, like the Homilist, with a striking application. Homily on 1 Cor. xi. 16.
† It is not a grave question — whether divorces or conventional separations, such as we
hear of even in the Church of God, are not rather the flinching from, than the enduring
and honouring, the cross? The supposition that it is better to dwell in the wilderness implies,
that the worse alternative of the contentious and angry woman may be appointed. This was
Job's lot. ‘The devil' (as M. Henry observed) 'spared his wife to him, not only to be his
tempter, but his tormentor.' Yet did he not put away his matrimonial cross. The en-
durance of it was doubtless a component part of that patience, which is commended to our
imitation, and which was honoured with a double increase of family blessing. (Jam. v. 11;
Job, xlii. 12, 13.) Our Lord, in restoring this ordinance to its original sternness of obliga-
tion, admits but one exception, thereby excluding every other. (Matt. v. 32; xix.1-9.)
According to this rule, an unfaithful wife must be put away as a sin; but a contentious wife
restrained, and endured as a cross. The Apostle, in discussing the question of casuistry
submitted to him (1 Cor. vii. 2-5), lays down the general law, and admits no revulsion of
taste or feeling, much less pretence of religion, to put asunder (save for a time, by mutual
consent, and for a spiritual purpose, 5) what God hath joined together. If in an extremity
the unbeliever was suffered to depart (15), no analogy can be applied from an heathen
marriage, where the light of Revelation had never shewn the obligation, to that of Christian
professors, where its full force was intelligently understood, and voluntarily recognized.
Constrained providential separations, where the hearts are in unity, maintain the principle
of the bond. But wilful settled separation rejects the distinct ground, on which the
ordinance stands. The woman (save where the primary law of nature—self-preservation-
dictates) is obviously bound by the same indissoluble tie. (1 Cor. vii. 10.) If on other side
it be defended, as avoiding the open scandal of continual contention; let the duty of humiliation
and mortification of the sins, which have produced this painful extremity, be first of all instantly
and habitually applied. Let the high offence of the direct infraction of God's ordinance be deeply
pondered. And let it be considered, whether such infractions do not shake the foundation of an
appointment, expressly framed to “make of twain one flesh;” (Gen. ii. 24 Matt. xix. 5); ordained
as a type of the unchangeable relation betwixt Christ and his church (Eph. v. 32); and of which "
the Lord, the God of Israel," saith, ''that He hateth putting away." (Mark, ii. 16.)
‡ See note on verse 17.
384 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
16-22.) This treasure is in the dwelling of the wise. For prudence is not
worldliness (Chap. x. 5. Gen. xli. 48); an indifference to coming trial, is
not faith, but foolish simplicity. (Chap. xxii. 3.)
Even the cottage of the godly poor often contains this desirable trea-
sure, the reward of Christian diligence. Yet poor indeed is the palace,
where the Bible with its stores of unsearchable riches is not the grand
treasure, and where the oil of gladness, while it poureth out richly, is
not his choicest comfort.* Wherever this treasure is pre-eminently
prized, this is the dwelling of the wise, whether it be the prince or the
pauper. And, as Cecil, Queen Elizabeth's Secretary, said, on leaving
Bernard Gilpin's house—‘There dwells as much happiness as can be
known on earth'— how shall we joy to be found in the same world with
such men!
But whatever be the treasure of the foolish man, or however ob-
tained, his improvidence is a wide gulf to spend it up. All goes one
way. Drunkenness, wasteful expenditure, idleness, gambling, devours
it all. He serves a master, who will leave him nothing at the year's
end, and as the only reward of his drudgery, will bring him to utter
destitution. Such was the prodigal's course; yet in the gracious mercy
of his Father the means of changing him from his folly into a better
mind, and bringing him to the dwelling of the wise; a possessor of a
treasure more desirable, than his earthly appetite had longed for. (Luke,
xv. 13-24.)
But there are other foolish men besides the drunkard and the spend-
thrift; and other treasure infinitely more desirable, that is spent up. Ad-
mission to the dwelling of the wise--the opportunity of thus growing
rich in knowledge and holiness (Chap. xiii. 20)—what a "price would
it be in the hands of a fool," had he but "an heart for it!" But the
golden moment is lost; the treasure is spent up. Time is wasted in
reckless frivolity of pursuit in innumerable ways. The entire absence
of an holy aim in his daily employments deadens all sense of responsi-
bility. He lives only as the creature of the present moment, with no
object connected with eternity. Oh! my God! leave me not to my
own folly, lest I spend up my treasure, instead of trading with it, and thus
enlarging it for my best welfare.
21. He that followeth after righteousness and mercy findeth life, righteous-
ness, and honour.
Here the desirable treasure is not spent up, but followed after with a
distinctness of purpose, that spews a perception of its value. This is
the Christian standard--"Not as though I had already attained, either
* Treasure and oil are mentioned; first the general term, then one of its valuable items.
A similar idiom may be found, Mark, xvi. 7.
CHAP. XXI. 21. 385
were already perfect. But I follow after.”1 Heaven, "the prize of our
high calling," is the bright consummating object. But righteousness and
mercy--all our obligations to God and man--are the pathway to it,
and the meetness for it.2 Holiness must be our daily habit, as well as
our religious service —"in all manner of conversation." (1 Pet. i. 15.)
There must be nothing at home or abroad, where the man of God is not
seen.3 The true evidence of divine grace on the heart is the practical
influence upon the temper and conduct. (Tit. iii. 8.) Our Master's ex-
ample is our pattern. And he is a self-deceiving professor, who does
not labour intensely to follow after it.
But this following after is not the toiling at a daily task ; not a com-
pulsory law, chaining the conscience against the inclinations of the
will. It is delight, freedom, and enlargement (Ps. lxiii. 8) ; the rising
flow of the heart filled with fearless love.*
This following it finds its own reward.4 A reward of grace indeed
it must be; so infinitely is it above our faint and sinful efforts. He that
followeth findeth life5—that which is the life of life--the treasure of the
best happiness; fellowship with God; the sunshine of his face; the
enjoyment of his love.6 He findeth righteousness--a retributive blessing
from a God of grace.7 He findeth honour. For "if any man serve me"
--saith our divine Master--"him will my Father honour." "To them,
that by patient continuance in well-doing, seek for glory, and honour,
and immortality, he will render eternal life."8 Then—to depart in the
joy of conscious acceptance--"I have finished my course. Henceforth
there is laid up for me a crown of righteousness." (2 Tim. iv. 7, 8.)
Such is godliness with its faithful and precious promises for both
worlds! (1 Tim. iv. 8.) Are they not worth following after? Yet how
many play with this grand exercise, as if it were an easy thing at the
next door! How often sloth and drowsiness degrade it into a lifeless
task, an "exercise that profiteth little!" Where do we see this strenu-
ous sustained effort; this applying to the real work of the daily cross;
this making a business of religion? We look for the picture of men on
the stretch; all energy; all pursuit; nothing diverting from the ob-
ject; pressing all their might with constant urgency in the momentous
service; up to a point that they had never before reached. This high
1 Philip. iii. 12-14. 2 Ps. xv. Isa. xxxiii. 15-17; xxxv. 8.
3 1 Cor. x. 31. Col. iii. 17. Zech. xiv. 20. 4 Ps. xix. 11. Isa. xxxii. 17.
5 Chap. viii. 35; xii. 28; xxii. 4. 6 Chap. xv. 9. Isa. lxiv. 5. John, xiv. 2:1-23.
7 Matt. x. 41, 42. Luke, vi. 38. Heb. vi. 10. 8 John, xii. 26. Rom. ii. 7.
* ‘The will is in love with those charms, which draw us to God. And as no man will
complain, that his temples are restrained, and his head is prisoner, when it is encircled with
a crown; so when "the Son of God hath made us free," and hath only subjected us to the
service and dominion of the Spirit, we are free as princes within the circle of their diadem;
and our chains are bracelets, and the law is a law of liberty, and ‘God's service is perfect
freedom;' and the more we are subjects, the more we "reign as kings;" and the further
we run, the easier is our burden; and Christ's yoke is like feathers to a bird; not loads,
but helps to motion; without them the body falls.' Bp. Taylor.
386 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
standard of perseverance will only just bring us to the goal. (1 Pet. iv.
18.) The half-hearted, temporary professor; the creature of impulse,
instead of the child of faith, though for a while he may "run well," will
utterly fall short.
22. A wise man scaleth the city of the mighty, and casteth down the strength
of the confidence thereof.
The art of war has already shewn the pre-eminence of wisdom above
strength.1 Prudent tactics, or a wise application of courage, triumphs
over mere personal prowess. Joshua's stratagem in taking Ai was a
proof of military wisdom.2 Solomon seems to have known of a wise Man
singly delivering his city from the power of a mighty king; a proof of
wisdom quite tantamount to the strength of an aggressor scaling the walls,
and thus casting down its confidence. (Eccles. ix. 13-18.) Much more there-
fore will spiritual wisdom, the immediate gift of God, overcome difficulties
as formidable as the scaling of the city of the mighty. A wise calculation of
the cost is eminently serviceable in achieving most important triumphs.
(Luke, xiv. 31, 32.) For does not conscious weakness lead to a single
dependence upon God? And what difficulties are too great for an
Almighty arm? "By thee—said a valiant soldier in the army of
faith---"I have run through a troop; and by my God have I leaped over
a wall."3 "Weapons of a spiritual, not of a carnal," temper, "are
mighty through God to the pulling down of strongholds" (2 Col. x. 4),
impregnable to the power of man. All the promises are "to him that
overcometh."* Let the soldier go to the conflict "strong in the Lord,"
and "putting on his whole armour." (Eph. vi. 10.) The triumph is
sure. The heavenly city will be scaled. "The kingdom of heaven
suffereth violence, and the violent take it by force." (Matt. xi. 12.)
23. Whoso keepeth his mouth and his tongue keepeth his soul from
troubles.
How frequently does the wise man remind us of the responsibility
connected with the use "of the little member!"4 Yet as the test of a
sound or unsound religion, can we have it too often before our eyes?
(Jam. i. 26.) Indeed the soundness of the regenerate heart is in no-
thing more manifest, than in making conscience of speech. The cor-
ruption of the heart indeed is the main source. But its evil is fearfully
increased by the ebullition of the lips. How large a portion of this
world's ceaseless troubles may be traced to this prolific source! It is
the unbridled horse, that brings his rider into fearful jeopardy. The
mouth has been opened rashly. The tongue has flowed unguardedly;
1 Chap. xxiv. 5, 6. Eccles. vii. 19. 2 Jos. viii. 3-22. 3 Ps. xviii. 29. Ps. cxliv. 1.
4 Chap. x. 14; xii. 13; xiii. 3; xiv. 3; xvii. 20; xviii. 6, 7, 21.
* Rev. ii. 7, and to all the Apocalyptic churches.
CHAP. XXI. 24. 387
and "behold how great a matter a little fire kindleth!* "Our neigh-
bour has been injured; God has been dishonoured; and bitter trouble
of soul has been the fruit.
What then is our preventive from this imminent temptation? Cul-
tivate a deep and watchful sensibility. Walk closely with God.
Cherish the tender spirit of his constraining obligations. Keep the
tongue for his service; asking for, his grace at once to restrain and
employ it. (Ps. cxli. 3.) Thus consecrated to God, it becomes "the
glory of man" (Ps. lvii. 8); not only keeping him from trouble, but
elevating him to fellowship in the ceaseless praises of the heavenly
world.
24. Proud and haughty scorner is his name, who dealeth in proud wrath.
And who gave him this name? Even he, who "will destroy the
tongue that speaketh proud things, who hath said, With our tongue
will we prevail; our lips are our own: who is Lord over us?" (Ps.
xii4 4.) See how God loads him with disgrace. Man's rebukes may be
"the curse causeless, that will not come." (Chap. xxvi. 2.) But God"s
stamp is indelible. Proud and haughty scorner! Such is his name. He
may pride himself upon his scorning. But contrast him with "the man,
to whom God looks, him that is poor, and of a contrite spirit, and that
trembleth at my word." (Isa. lxvi. 2.)
Look at this vivid picture in Pharaoh--that haughty scorner
bursting out in his proud wrath—"Who is the Lord, that I should
obey his voice?" (Exod. v. 2) in Sennacherib, "reproaching and blas-
pheming the Holy One of Israel."l Haman meets with an affront. His
proud wrath kindles. He cares neither for God, nor man. The ruin of
his single enemy will not suffice. He must glut himself with the blood
of a whole unoffending nation.2
Scorner is his name. Not an empty name. Never let us separate the
name which God hath given, from the doom which he hath denounced.
"The day of the Lord of Hosts shall be upon every one that is proud
and lofty, and upon every one that is lifted up; and he shall be brought
low. Behold! the day cometh, that shall burn as an oven; and all the
proud shall be as stubble; and the day that cometh shall burn them up,
saith the Lord of Hosts, that it shall leave them neither root nor
* Jam. iii. 5. See how strongly Job protests against the imputation of the injury of
the tongue, chap. xxxi. 30. 'The tongue' — says Bp. Taylor, in his bold imagery— 'is a
fountain both of bitter water and of sweet. It sends forth blessing and cursing. It is
sometimes "set on fire," and then it puts whole cities into combustion. It is unruly, and
no more to be restrained than the breath of a tempest. It is volatile and fugitive. Reason
should go before it; and when it does not, repentance comes after it. It was intended for
an organ of divine praises. But the devil often plays on it, and then it sounds like the
screech-owl, or the groans of death. Sorrow and shame, folly and repentance, are the note
and forcible accents of this discord.'—Sermon on the Good and Evil Tongue.
1 2 Kings, xviii. 35 ; xix. 21, 22, 23. 2 Esth. iii. 5, 6; v. 9.
388 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
branch." (Isa. ii. 12. Mal. iv. 1.) "Now we call the proud happy. But
how shall they abide the day of his coming?" (Mal. iii. 15, with 2.)
Oh! with such a manifestation of the mind of God, never think lightly
of a proud thought, or a scornful feeling or expression.
It may be, that this hateful abomination1 is indulged in God's own
children. Yet he will not wink at this sin, nor spare his rod. The glory
of their name shall be darkened. His frown shall be made visible. If
"Asa's heart was" in the main "perfect with God all his days," yet for
the sin of haughtiness and proud wrath, his sun went down in a cloud.2
"For our God is a consuming fire."3
25. The desire of the slothful killeth him: for his hands refuse to labour.
26. He coveteth greedily all the clay long: but the righteous giveth and
spareth not.
Often have the shame and wretchedness of sloth been before us.
Here is the finishing stroke. The desire of the slothful killeth him. It
leads to no effort, therefore to no fruit. "Hope deferred maketh the
heart sick" (Chap. xiii. 12); and perpetual vexation frets him to death.*
'What he longs for, he does not set his hand to purchase. But he
would rather sit still and starve.'† He thinks to live by wishing, not by
working.4 Some faint desires he may have to work. But the effort to
"take his hand out of his bosom"5 is too great. His hands therefore,
as if they were given him only to be folded, refuse to labour. There
is no want of physical power and activity. He could spend his
whole time in ‘busy idleness;'‡ but for useful labour he has no heart.
Meanwhile, with all his inactivity, he is a prey all day long to a greedy
covetousness; tantalized with insatiable desires; while the hope of
enjoyment, though not out of sight, yet, from want of exertion, is out
of reach. Thus, dreaming of the end without mortification or godly
exercise, he dies with his desires in his mouth; envying those, whose
industrious diligence enables them to give, and spare not.6
Such is the temporal evil of sloth; one of the many forms of moral
selfishness, that paralyze alike our energy and our comfort. But far
more ruinous is it in the higher and deeper concern. The stamp of
death is broad and palpable upon the heartless professor. (Rev. iii. 1.)
We ask —What is his religion? He hopes he has a desire; and he has
often heard that 'the desire of grace is grace.' Now this is true, if the
desire be predominant. Faint as it may be in its first dawn, it "is the
day of small things not to be despised." (Zech. iv. 10.) It is "the
smoking flax," which the Saviour "will not quench" (Matt. xii. 20),
1 Chap. vi. 16, 17; viii. 13; xvi. 5. Comp. Ecclus. x. 12, 13.
2 1 Kings, xv. 14. 2 Chron. xvi. 10-13. 3 Heb. xii. 28, 29.
4 Chap. xii. 27; xx. 4. 5 Chap. xix. 24. 6 Ps. xxxvii. 26; cxii. 9. Eph. iv. 28.
* Virtutem videant, intabescantque relicta. PERS. Sat. iii. as. † Bp. Hull.
‡ 1 Tim. v. 13. Strenua nos exercet inertia. HOR. Ep. Lib. i. xi. 28.
CHAP. XXI. 25, 26. 389
but kindle into a flame. But if it is always a desire, and no more,
habitually overcome by a contrary inclination; instead of grace, it is a
delusion, a mere sentimental excitement, to lull the conscience asleep.
How can an object, which standeth in a fixed distance from the nature
which it should perfect, be procured by idle and standing affections?
Those affections must have life in them, which would bring life after
them. Dead desires are deadly desires.'* Beware then of the slug-
gard's cry. His desires, instead of carrying life in them, are cold things,
that strike death into the soul. Earnest seeking is the test of godly
desire.1 No quarter will be left unexplored, where we might find our
God;2 no means of grace unimproved, where we might enjoy his pre-
sence. (Isa. lxiv. 5.) It was an excellent prayer of Sir Thomas More
—'Lord! make me to bestow pains in getting those things, for the
obtaining of which I am used to pray unto thee."
If some will call this active energy legal, our Lord's command to
“labour"3 proves, that it is scriptural. Whoever does not strive to
come near to the standard, has never really apprehended it. Whoever
desires only, and refuses to labour to be a growing Christian daily,
gives doubtful evidence whether he be a Christian at all. Some pro-
fess to be hindered from duty, because they have no heart for it, like
the man whom cold would keep from the fire, which was intended to
warm him. The sluggard talks about grace —His "soul desireth, and
hath nothing." (Chap. xiii. 4.) Effort is the death of sloth. It sweeps
away most, and endures the remaining difficulties, confident of ultimate
success.
Not that the power is in ourselves. But when did God ever fail to
help the sinner's endeavour? "That thou givest, we gather." (Ps. civ.
28.) ‘The ship is like to be steered with best certainty and success,
when the pilot's eye is to heaven, and his hand at the stern.'† And
thus prayer and diligence, dependence and energy, harmonize in the
Bible; however they may be discordant in the crude systems of man's
devising. Divine agency is given, not to excuse the neglect of human
means, but to encourage their improvement. (Phil. ii. 12, 13.) The
means are as much the matter of divine self fore-knowledge and
counsel, as the ends with which they are connected.
What then want we for active service, but the continued exercise
of faith? This gave power at first; this alone sustains the power.
Never let us suppose exertion for the prize to be too late. If ever thou
art discouraged—much more— if thou art inclined to sloth—set it
down, in your mind, and pray that God would write it there clear as a
1 Ps. xxvii. 4. Isa. xxvi. 8, 9. Ps. xxiv. 8. 2 Job, xxiii. 8, 8, 9.
3 John, vi. 27. Luke, xiii. 24.
* Dr. REYNOLD'S Treatise on the Passions, chap. xviii.
† Bp. SANDERSON's Sermon on 1 Cor. xii. 7.
390 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
sunbeam— 'It is yours —It is yours for all time, and the fruit of it
shall be yours for all eternity.' There is no moment, when the Lord is
not giving; when he has not bound himself to give, by infinite and,
most loving obligations. Deliberately devote yourselves. Put the
resolution into practical form, habit, and place. Make all sacrifices for
it. Seize all opportunities for making it good. Our work will be our
recompense; our labour our wages. And while the slothful man only
covets for himself, the righteous, in the flowing of the willing heart, lives
for the Church. He has to give, and he spares not. "He is a blessing in
the midst of the land."*
27. The sacrifice of the wicked is abomination; how much more when he
bringeth it with a wicked mind! (in wickedness, marg.)
This is the repetition of a former proverb (Chap. xv. 8) with addi-
tional intensity. At no time, under no circumstances, can the sacrifice
of the wicked be acceptable. All the true requisites of holy worship are
wanting. There is no heart. The service is therefore only formality or
hypocrisy. (Matt. xv. 7-9.) There is no way of access;1 no "altar to
sanctify the gift."2 Therefore it is presumption, self-righteousness,
will-worship.3 There is no "faith, without which it is impossible to
please God." (Heb. xi. 6.) The material act, considered in itself, may
oe good; but the corrupt principle makes the sacrifice an abomination.
(Mal. i. 7, 8.)
How much more—the sin is double—when he bringeth it with a
wicked mind! The mind under the dominant power of sin is like a
pestilential atmosphere, which infests all within its sphere of influence.
Such was it, when Balaam brought his sacrifice, that he might curse
Israel;4 Saul, in wayward disobedience,5 Absalom and Jezebel, to
cover their treachery;6 the adulteress, as a lulling to her unwary
prey;7 the Pharisees, as a handle to their covetousness;8 Antinomian
professors, for the indulgence of their lusts!9 What an abomination
1 John, xiv. 6. 2 Heb. xiii. 10. Matt. xxiii. 19. 3 Gen. iv. 3-5.
4 Num. xxiii. 1-3, 13. 5 1 Sam. xiii. 8-15; xv. 21-23.
6 2 Sam. xv. 7-13. 1 Kings, xxi. 9-12. Isa. i. 13-16. 7 Chap. vii. 14, 15.
8 Matt. xxiii. 14. 9 Jam. iv. 3.
* Isa. xix. 24. The following exhortations are well worth our pondering — ‘Our heart
being naturally at a distance from God, it is not a single step, that will bring us near to
him. Neither will a few minutes of cold prayer suffice to support our souls.—Let us
beware of indolence. Many are the hours and days we lose on our road to heaven. These
days will soon amount to years; and we shall be too late at last for the marriage supper.
We should willingly exert ourselves to climb a mountain for the sake of a fine view, or a
pure air. Let us then use all our strength to climb the mountain of Zion, where we, shall
breathe a truly vivifying atmosphere, and from whose heights we shall behold the true
Eden, the valley of peace, through which flow living waters, and where the tree of life
flourishes. May the Lord bestow upon us all the necessary will and energy!'—Letters and
Biography of Felix Neff —a most interesting supplement to Dr. Gilly's Memorial of a short
Life filled up with usefulness, and crowned with glory.
CHAP. XXI. 28. 391
must their service be before him, who is "of purer eyes than to behold
evil, and cannot look on iniquity!"1
And yet apparent acceptance is sometimes granted to the sacrifice of
the wicked. God, as the moral governor of the world, externally rewards
actions externally good.2 But never does he fail to punish the evil
principle in those very actions, which are the subjects of his reward.
Our Lord's love of the amiable victim of self-delusion was the confession
of his humanity, not Divine complacency; and fully consistent with
holy abhorrence of his proud rejection of the gospel. (Mark, x. 17-21.)
What then are the wicked to do, rejected as they are under the most
favourable circumstances? Shall they lie down in despondency, or
harden themselves in rebellion? (Jer. ii. 25; vii. 10.) Or shall they
wait for better dispositions, and prepare themselves for the gospel?
The door of prayer is their only refuge. (Acts, viii. 22.) That door
opens the gospel to them with a free warrant of faith, abundant en-
couragement, and sure acceptance.3
28. A false witness (witness of lies, marg.) shall perish; but the man that
heareth speaketh constantly.
The last clause of the proverb seems to fix and restrict the first. A
false witness often becomes so by the culpable habit of thoughtlessly
repeating, without examination or certain knowledge. A man may
thus do very serious injury to his neighbour's character or property. It
proves a very loose conscience, and an utter want of that "charity,
which covers," instead of exposing faults.4 It is "rejoicing in iniquity,"
rather than "rejoicing in truth."5 This false witness will certainly be
punished by God;6 and even ‘by man he will be confounded and
silenced. No one for the future will regard or receive his testimony.'*
But the man that heareth—the true witness who speaketh only what he
heareth, and is fully acquainted with--he speaketh constantly—to con-
viction. He holds to his testimony and never contradicts him-
self. He ‘speaks the truth, the whole truth, and nothing but the truth.'
His word, even if it had been slighted at first, gains more and more
credit and authority, when the false witness shall have perished. (Chap.
xii. 19.)
Thus "the faithful and true witness" declared for himself and his
servants—"We speak that we do know, and testify that we have
seen."7 The Apostles, to give solid weight to their testimony, would
fill up the vacancy in their body only from among those, "who had
companied with them all the time that the Lord Jesus went in and out
among them" (Acts, i. 21,22); as if those only, who had heard, would
1 Hab, i. 13. 2 1 Kings, xxi. 27-29. 2 Kings, x. 29-31.
3 Isa. i. 16-18; lv. 6, 7. 4 Chap. x. 12. 5 Contrast 1 Cor. xiii.
6 Chap. xix. 5, 9. 7 Rev. iii. 14. John, iii. 11.
8 Poole in loco.
392 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
speak constantly. They claimed authority to their commission, as
having heard from the mouth of God, and therefore being assured of its
divine warrant.l And indeed this constitutes the main power of testi-
mony. A feeble and hesitating tone is spiritless and ineffective.
(2 Cor. i. 17.) A decided accredited presentment of truth--speaking
constantly—commands conviction. "We believe, and therefore we
speak." (Ib. iv. 13.)
29. A wicked man hardeneth his face: but as for the upright, he directeth
his way.
A hardened face, without shame or blushing for sin, is a fearful
manifestation of a hardened heart. Cain standing boldly in the
presence of his God, with his hands reeking with his brother's blood;2
Gehazi with his fearless lie;3 the Traitor, bearing to be pointed out by
his Master, without visible emotion,4 then afterwards with unblushing
effrontery kissing his sacred cheeks5—how hardened must have been
their faces in determined wickedness! The adulteress also, clothing her
seductive witcheries with an impudent face, stands out before us. (Chap.
vii. 10-13.) Sometimes the wicked man, bent upon his way, hardens his
face against the most distinct warning and intimations of the will of
God. Nothing would hinder Balaam from his own "perverse way."
He even anticipated the conditional permission of God, lest it should
ultimately stand in his way.6 Ahab determinately hardened his face
against the clear forbidding will of God.7 Jehoiakim, before his whole
council, set God at defiance.8 His people "ran" with the bravery of
madmen "upon the thick bosses of his buckler."9 And does not sin
stand out before us with a brazen face? (Isa. iii. 9.) The drunkard
reels at noon-day. The swearer pours out his wickedness in the open
crowd. The sensualist "glories in his shame." (Philip. iii. 19.) Truly
this is the spirit of Satan. How near to hell! How awful is the plain
stamp of the seal of wrath! (Rom. ii. 5.) Truly 'we have no stay and
command of ourselves. So masterful are our wills and headstrong, but
that, if God should leave us wholly to the wildness of our unruly
nature, and to take our own course, we should soon run ourselves upon
our own ruin.'*
Cheering is it to contrast the tender spirit of the child of God. This
is rest indeed—to put ourselves in the Lord's hands, fearful of taking
one step alone; carefully ordering our steps, lest by inadvertence,
much more by wilfulness, they should bring shame upon his face. (Ps.
cxix. 5, 6, 80.) Godly simplicity greatly clears the eye of the soul.
1 1 Cor. i. 23; xv. 3, 4. 2 Pet. i. 16-18. 1 John, i. 1-3. 2 Gen. iv. 8, 9.
3 2 Kings., v. 25. 4 John, xiii. 21-30. 5 Matt. xxvi, 47-49.
6 Num. xiii. 20-22, 32.. 7 1 Kings, xxii. 3-6, 18-29. 8 Jer. xxxvi. 23, 24.
9 Ib. xliv. 16, 17, with Job, xv. 25, 26..
* Bp., SANDERSON'S. Sermon on Ps. xix. 13.
CHAP. XXI. 30, 31. 393
Where the heart is set on the duty, there will be seldom any great
difficulty is discovering the path. (Matt. vi. 22.) Secret heavenly
direction is engaged. (Chap. iii. 6.) An unfixed, unresolved mind
gives great advantage to the enemy's assault. Here lies the contrast--
The wicked man hardens his face against God's ordinances. The godly
directs his way by them; not waiting in inactivity for miraculous lead-
ing, but improving those ordinary means, which throw light upon
every step. Temporals, as well as spirituals; trifles, as well as
important matters, are brought under the eye of our gracious God.
Child-like confidence brings sunshine and acceptance, a brighter and
more glorious privilege than the sceptre of the universe.
30. There is no wisdom, nor understanding, nor counsel against the Lord.
31. The house is prepared against the day of battle: but safety (victory,
marg.) is of the Lord.
This proverb is not true in the strict letter. All the wisdom and
policy of earth and hell are in active operation. But all is in vain
against the Lord. The history of the Church abundantly proves this.
The decrees and counsels of God are firm as adamant; immoveable,
notwithstanding all human machinations; no more to be stayed than
the course of the sun.'* Wisdom and understanding and the best-con-
trived counsel, when against the Lord, come to foolishness. (Ps. xxxiii.
10, 11.) "He taketh the wise," not in their ignorance, but "in their
craftiness;"1 not when their wisdom was fading, but when it was at the
utmost zenith. Ahithophel's counsel was befooled at the time, when
"it was as if a man had inquired at the oracle of God." Pharaoh's
counsel to depress the chosen nation issued in their increase. (Exod. i.
8-12.) His murderous decree, as a link in the chain of Providence,
nurtured the Leader and Lawgiver of the people. (Ib. verses 15, 22,
with ii. 1-10.) Balak's desire to curse Israel was overruled for bless-
ing.3 The wise man vainly set up in his darker days his own wisdom
against the declared purpose of God.4 Ahab's project to ward off the
threatened stroke against his life;5 his determination to avert the ex-
tinction of. his family;6 Athaliah's deep-laid plot to exterminate the
family of David,7 and so to frustrate the Divine promise; the enmity
against the builders of the temple8--all this diversified mass of wisdom,
and counsel, and understanding against the Lord— what was it?—a
thing of nought.9 'They all signify nothing if they oppose the coun-
sels and decrees of heaven.'†
Mark the history of our Lord. It would seem, as if nothing could
1 Job, v. 13. 1 Cor. iii. 19. 2 2 Sam. xvi. 23; xvii. 7, 14, 23, with xv. 31.
3 Num. xxiv. 10. 4 1 Kings, xi. 11, 40. 5 Ib. xxii. 30-34.
6 Ib. xxi. 21. 2 Kings, x. 1-7. 7 2 Kings, xi. 2. 8 Neh. vi.
9 Isa. viii. 10; xiv. 27; xlvi. 10.
* Lavater in loco. † Bishop Patrick.
394 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
have hindered the success of Herod's wisdom and counsel against his
infancy. (Matt. ii. 8, 16.) What a combination of wisdom from all
quarters vainly to "entangle him in his walk!" (Ib. xxii. 15-46.)
How near to failure were the prophecies connected with his death,
burial, and resurrection! Stoning was the sentence for the charge laid
against him! (Lev. xxiv. 16.) His burial was appointed among
the wicked. (Isa. Iiii. 9.) His resurrection, so far as man could
do, was effectually prevented.1 But God had ordained crucifixion for
his death,2 his burial among the rich,* his resurrection as the confusion
of all their counsel. (Matt. xxviii. 1-15.) The event proved that there
was no wisdom, nor understanding, nor counsel against the Lord. ‘God's
desire is fulfilled to those who have the least mind to it. All man's
wisdom, while it strives for masteries, is overmatched.'†
Let us look at that kingdom of Providence, so finely represented by
"the wheels full of eyes round about them." (Ezek. i. 18.) To deny an
absolute superintending controul, is to ‘place an idle sceptre in the
hands of Him, who governs the universe.'‡ How many movements
baffle alike previous calculation and subsequent inquiry; effects, for
which no adequate cause is producible; anomalies, manifestly intended
to remove our eyes from second causes to the First Great Spring of
agency, moving alone all, and in despite of all opposition! The raging
Dioclesian struck his medal—'Christianity is extinguished.' The
Great Author brings out from the very fire the palpable proof that 'the
blood of the martyrs is the seed of the church.' ‘Oh! the folly and
blindness of men, that think to carry all to their minds, and walk as
masters of their own designs, and never have any serious thought of
him, in whose hands both they, and all their business, and all the affairs
of states and kingdoms of this world, are as a piece of wax, to frame
them to what he pleases!'§ And do not some of us remember with
shame our "striving with our Maker" (Isa. xlv. 9)—how long we
endeavoured to defeat his purposes of love, until at length we were
brought to cast our weapons at his feet, and tb acknowledge, that there
is no wisdom, nor understanding, nor counsel against the Lord?
But putting away rebellion—beware of vain confidence, scarcely
less displeasing to the Lord. The horse was a forbidden confidence in
the day of battle.3 The most glorious days of victory were, when that
veto was regarded.4 Declension commenced from the transgression of
the law; defeat from the very quarter of confidence.5 The after-
1 Matt. xxvii. 62-66. 2 Gal. iii. 13. 3 Deut. xxii. 16.
4 Josh. xi. 6, 9. Jud. iv. 3-15. 2 Sam. viii. 4.
5 1 Kings, x. 26-28. 2 Chron. xii. 8, 9. Comp. Isa. xxxi. 1-3.
* Isa. liii. 9. Bp. Lowth. Comp. Matt. xxvii. 57-60.
† Trapp. Comp. Acts, ii. 23, 24; iv. 27, 28.
‡ Abp. Magee's interesting Sermon on this text. Works, ii. 354. Comp. Job, xii. 21, 22.
Isa xliv. 25.
§ LEIGHTON'S Sermon on Jer. x.,23, 24.
CHAP. XXII. 1. 395
renunciation of this confidence was a time of gracious acceptance.l
The horse indeed may be legitimately employed as a means of defence.
But never let the material of warfare be our confidence. Use the
means, but idolize them not. They that "trust in them fall." Those
that remember that safety is of the Lord, "are risen, and stand upright."2
"The horse is a vain thing for safety."3 "The remembrance of the
name of the Lord" was mightier to the young warrior than the strength
of the giant. (1 Sam. xvii. 45.) Much more--in the spiritual warfare,
let us have the active exercise of dependence. "Salvation is of the
Lord"4--free, complete, triumphant and everlasting victory over all
the powers of hell.
CHAPTER XXII.
1. A good name* is rather to be chosen than great riches, and loving, favour
rather than silver and gold.
BUT what is this good name, here commended as a precious jewel?
Not the name, which the Babel-builders would "make to themselves."
(Gen. xi. 4.) Not as Absalom, who reared a pillar to "keep his name
in remembrance," or rather to commemorate his shame. (2 Sam. xviii:
18.) It is not the popular voice. So different is God's standard from
man's, that to have "all men speak well of us," would be a bad name!5
So apt are men to "put darkness for light; and light for darkness,"6
that the reputation too often serves in the place of reality, the false
glare for the generous principle, the shadow for the substance, the
tinsel for the gold. The good name is gained by godly consistency.†
The possessor is either unconscious of the gift, or humbled with the
conviction, that it is wholly undeserved. The loving favour connected
with it is often seen in early childhood.7 It was the heavenly seal upon
the Pentecostal Christians.8 And every servant of God values it as a
trust and talent for his Master's service and glory.9
Such is its value, that it is rather to be chosen than great riches, than
silver and gold.10 A bye-word may be attached to riches.11 Add to
which—"They fly away upon eagles' wings."12 But the good name
"will be in everlasting remembrance."13 And even now it brings con-
1 Hos. xiv. 3, 4. 2 Ps. xx. 7, 8. 3 Ib. xxxiii. 17.
4 Ps. iii. 8; xxxvii. 39, 40; lxviii. 20. Jonah, ii. 9. 5 Luke, vi. 26; xvi. 15.
6 Isa. v. 20. 7 1 Sam. ii. 26. Luke, ii. 52. 8 Acts, ii. 47.
9 Neh. i. 10, 11. Philip. ii. 15, 16; iv. 8, 9. 10 Comp. Ecclus. xli. 12.
11 1 Sam. xxv. 3, 17, 25. 12 Chap. xxiii. 5. 13 Luke, vii. 4, 5. Acts, ix. 36-39.
* A name—meaning a good name. See chap. xviii. 22,n.
† Heathen intelligence seemed to have some glimpse of this medium. Agesilaus--being
asked how a good name was to be obtained—replied—'By speaking the best, and doing
the most upright, things.' Socrates to the same question answered-- 'By studying really
to be what you wish to be accounted.'
396 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
fidence and respect.1 It largely adds to usefulness; gives authority to
reproof, counsel, and example; so that, if the world cannot love, neither
can they despise. Hence the Christian obligation to be "blameless, as
well as harmless, to shine as lights in the world."2 Hence the honour
of "having a good report of all men, and of the truth itself."3 Hence
the qualification for efficiency in the sacred office--"blameless, having
a good report of them which are without."4 But how often do the
"dead flies" spoil "the precious ointment!" (Eccles. vii. 1; x. 1.)
Satan, when he cannot hinder the instruments, will blemish them,
to give currency to error, and to stumble the ungodly and unstable.
(2 Sam. xii. 14.)
We must not indeed overvalue man's estimation, much less take it
as the standard of our principles, or the motive of our conduct. Yet we
must not on the other hand indiscreetly underrate it--'I never thought'
--said the wise Sir M. Hale—'that reputation was the thing primarily
to be looked after in the exercise of virtue (for that were to affect the
substance for the sake of the shadow); but I looked at virtue and the
worth of it, as that which was the first desirable, and reputation as a
handsome and useful accession to it.'*
Some however judge—'So long as my conscience is clear, I care
not what the world think or say of me. Other consciences are not my
judges.' Now in resisting the efforts of the world to turn us aside
from the path of duty, 'we may seasonably comfort ourselves in our
own innocency, fly for refuge against the injuries of tongues into our
own consciences, as into a castle; and there repose ourselves in security,
disregarding the reproaches of evil men.'† But it should be our great
care to stop the mouths of gainsayers; and while we count it a "very
small matter to be judged of man's judgment," most anxiously to "pro-
vide things honest, not only in the sight of the Lord, but also in the
sight of men."5
Yet precious as this blessing is, take care that it be not purchased
at the expense of conscience. Far better that others should blot our
name, than that we should wound our consciences. ‘Two things
there are,' saith St. Augustine, 'whereof every man should be specially
chary and tender—his conscience, and his credit. But that of his
conscience must be his first care; this of his name and credit must be
content to come in the second place. Let him first be sure to guard
his conscience well; and then may he have a due regard of his name
also. Let it be his first care to secure all within, by making his peace
with God and in his own breast. That done—but not before---let
1 Gen. xxxix. 4, 21; xli. 37. Dan. ii. 48, 49; vi. 1-3. 2 Philip. ii. 15.
3 3 John, 12. Acts, xvi. 2. 2 Cor. viii. 18. 4 1 Tim. iii. 2, 7; iv. 16.
5 1 Cor. iv. 3, with 2 Cor. viii. 21. Comp.1 Cor. ix 15; 2 Cor. xi. 12; 1 Pet. ii. 12.
* The account of the Good Steward. † Bp. SANDERSON'S Sermon on Eccles. vii. 1, § 30.
CHAP. XXII. 2. 397
him look abroad if he will, and cast about as well as he can, to strengthen
his reputation with and before the world.'*
But though it be true, that reputation and the affection of others are
better than riches; yet must we not forget, that they may be in them-
selves vanity and a snare. And as seeking them is the infirmity, or
rather (when made an idol) the sin of a noble mind, the most severe
discipline is needed to preserve Christian simplicity and singleness.
But "the honour that cometh from God only" is always safe. And
that he should register a good name in the annals of the church,1 "in
the book of remembrance2 in the book of life"3—0h! is not this
infinitely above all this world's glory?4 And how gladly will be own
these jewels at the day of his appearing!5 How sure and glorious is
his promise to his faithful servant—"I will not blot out his name out
of the book of life; but I will confess his name before my Father and
his angels!" (Rev. iii. 5.)
2. The rich and the poor meet together: the Lord is the maker of them all.
There is great. diversity in the several stations and circumstances of
mankind. Yet the difference is mainly superficial, and the equality in
all important matters manifest. The rich and the poor, apparently so
remote from each other, meet together. All have the same birth.6 All
enter the world naked,7 helpless, unconscious beings; all stand in the
same natural relation to their God; dependent on him for their birth;8
the children of his Providence;9 the creatures of his moral govern-
rnent.10 All are subject to the same. sorrow, sickness, infirmities, and
temptations.11 At the gate of the invisible world the distinction of
riches and poverty is dropped. "All go to one place"12--alike having
kindred with worms and corruption. And when they shall come forth
from the long home at the final consummation, all--"small as well as
great—shall stand before God." (Rev. xx. 12.)
We meet together also on the same level as sinners. All are tainted
with the same original, corruption.13 "All, like sheep, have" personally
"gone astray." (Isa. liii. 6.) All need alike the same new birth to
give them life, the same precious blood to cleanse them, the same robe
of righteousness to cover them. (Rom. iii. 21, 22.) It is in fact a
common need,† and a common salvation, (Jude, 3.) In all these
matters the rich and the poor are as one. "God is no respecter of
1 Matt. xxvi. 13. 2 Mal. iii. 16. 3 Philip. iv, 3.
4 Luke, x. 20. 5 Mal. iii. 17. 6 Job, xxxi. 15. Mal. ii. 10. Acts, xvii. 26.
7 Job, i. 21. Eccles. v. 15. 8 Job, xii. 10. Acts, xvii. 25, 28.
9 Ps. cxlv. 9, 15, 16. 10 Dan. iv. 35. 11 Heb. xiii. 8.
12 Job, iii. 19. Ps. Ixxxix. 48. Eccles. ii. 16; iii. 20; vi. 6; ix. 11. Heb. ix. 27.
13 Gen. v. 3. Job, xxv.. 4. Ps. li. 5.
* Bp. Sanderson, ut supra, § 23.
† In the ordinance of redemption all were to give alike, as an acknowledgment of equal
need. Exod. xxx. 15.
398 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
persons."1 The difference appears only as the outward garment.2
Yet what a distance it makes! The one scarcely hears of or knows
the other!
And when redeemed into the family of God, is not every member of
the family our brother?3 Here then rich and poor meet on equal
standing at the same throne of grace, in the same spiritual body,* at
the same holy table.4 We communicate to each other the same blessed
hopes, feel the same sympathies, and anticipate the same home.
Nor is this a constitution of accident, or of mechanical arrangement.
The Lord is the maker of them all. Not only does he make us as men;
but he makes us rich and poor. (1 Sam. ii. 7.) Adored be that divine
arrangement, that has knit the rich and the poor together so closely in
mutual dependence, that neither can live without the other (Eccles.
v. 9); neither can say to the other, "I have no need of thee." (1 Cor.
xii. 21.) The lower rank may be the feet and the hands, which work
out the purposes of the mind. The higher may be the head, the seat of
counsel, absolutely necessary for the direction and preservation of the
social system. Truly indeed—in contemplating the balance, by which
perfect order is educed from the selfish passions of men, we must acknow-
ledge of the moral, no less than of the natural, system--"In wisdom
hast thou made them all." (Ps. civ. 24.)
Yet this Christian equality before God does not annihilate the gra-
dation of rank before men. "The servants under the yoke must not
despise their believing masters, because they are brethren; but rather
do them service, because they are faithful and beloved." (1 Tim. vi. 2.)
In equality of rank, could men continue for a single day? Difference
of mind and talents, industry, self-denial, Providences, would shake the
balance before the morning was gone. God never meant to level the
world, any more than the surface of the earth. The distinction of rich
and poor still remains in his appointment, and all attempts to sink it
must end in confusion. To each of us are committed our several
talents, duties, and responsibilities both to God and man. Let each of
us therefore be given to our own work, and "abide in our calling with
God." (1 Cor. vii. 24.) "Let the brother of low degree rejoice, in that
he is exalted; but the rich, in that he is made low." (Jam. 1. 9, 10.)
Soon shall we all be one family in our Father's house—to "go out no
more." (Rev. iii. 12.)
3. A prudent man foreseeth the evil, and hideth himself: but the simple pass
on, and are punished.5
It is a great part of wisdom to see what God is doing, or about to
1 Acts, x. 34. Job, xxxiv. 19. 2 Luke, xvi. 19, 20. 3 Gal. iii. 28. Col. iii. 11.
4 1 Cor. x. 17; xii. 13. 5 Chap. xxvii. 12.
* See this implied in the rebuke, Jam. ii. 2-5.
CHAP. XXII. 3. 399
do. When evil is come, most men can see it. But the prudent foreseeth
it. Not that God hath given to us the knowledge of futurity. This
would only have encouraged presumption. But he has given us
prudence, naturally foreseeing evil, and forecasting the most effectual
means of deliverance. David was thus directed to hide himself from
Saul;* Elijah from Jezebel.l The disciples were taught to flee from
impending evil.2 Paul repeatedly hid himself from threatened destruc-
tion.3 Even our Divine Master acted on this rule of prudence,4 till his
hour was core. (Matt. xxvi. 46.)
But to apply it to spiritual evils foreseen—"Noah, moved with fear,
prepared an ark for the saving of his house." (Heb. xi. 7.) Josiah
endeavoured to ward off the threatened judgment by humiliation before
God. (2 Chron. xxxiv. 21.) Paul "laboured" for the covering of present
acceptance, foreseeing the tremendous evil of "appearing" unsheltered
"before the judgment-seat of Christ." (2 Cor. v. 9, 10.)
Not that the prudent man is gifted with supernatural knowledge. He
only uses the discernment which God hath given him. He regards the
signs of the times. He studies the word of God in reference to coming
judgments; and he acts accordingly. To walk carelessly in the midst of
evil, is reckless folly. We stand "not by faith" only, but "by faith"
balanced with fear (Rom. xi. 20) yet not the fear of bondage and
scrupulosity, but of care, watchfulness, and diligence. (Heb. iv. 1, 11.)
Guilty, wandering, tempted, afflicted, dying as we are, common—at least
Christian—prudence, shews us our need of an hiding-place. Except we
seek one in time, we are lost for eternity. Did we but realize the huge
mass of guilt lying upon us, and the infinite wrath that for that guilt
hangs over us, could we rest in an unsheltered state? Should not we
tread, upon all that lies in our way to run to shelter? Coming judg-
ments there may be. But let us set our face towards our hiding-place.
God will undertake for our danger. His own most loving voice points
us to a shelter in the chamber of his own perfections.†
Very different is the course of the simple. (Chap. xiv. 15, 16.) Devoid
of all prudence; foreseeing no evil; fearing none; given up to their own
ways, and reckless of all consequences, they pass on, and are punished by
their own folly. (Chap. vii. 7, 22, 23.) Oh! many such are there, who
"when the Lord's hand is lifted up, will not see" (Isa. xxvi. 11); who
will not hear the distant thunder, betokening the approaching storm;
who in their fancied security laugh at those, who are preparing for an
1 I Kings, xvii. 3; xix. 3. 2 Matt. x. 23; xxiv. 15-18.
3 Acts, ix. 23-25; xvii. 14; xxiii. 17.
4 Mark, iii. 6, 7. Luke, iv. 29, 30. John, viii. 59; x. 39.
* 1 Sam. xx. 19; xxiii. 19-21; xxvi. 1.
† Isa. xxvi. 20. ‘It is nature which teaches a wise man in fear to hide himself. But
grace and faith cloth teach him where. Where should the frighted child hide his head, but in
the bosom of his loving Father? Where a Christian, but under the shadow of the wings of
Christ his Saviour?'—HOOKER'S Remedy against Fear.
400 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
evil day; laugh even on the brink of that destruction, which, unless
Sovereign grace interpose, will make them wise too late.
4. By (the reward of, marg.) humility and the fear of the Lord are riches,
honour, and life (lives, marg.)
Who then will say—"It is vain to serve God?" (Mal. iii. 14.)
Riches, honour, and life to enjoy them—all this accumulation and com-
pleteness of happiness belong to his service. But observe the two
marks of his ways, humility and the fear of the Lord. Humility is not
the mere meekness of modesty. (1 Sam. x. 22.) This, though a lovely
temper, is not a Christian grace. Nor is it the servility of the hypocrite
for his own selfish ends;1 or the temporary conviction of external
humiliation.2 We may easily, distinguish the genuine principle by its
accompaniment—the fear of the Lord—that blessed holy reverence,
which none but his children feel, and which, while it represses pre-
sumption, establishes humility. A just apprehension of God will always
lay us in the lowest dust before him. The contrasted sight of his
majesty with our meanness, of his holiness with our defilement, con-
strained the cry from one—"Behold! I am vile; I abhor myself"3--
from another--"Woe is me, for I am undone!"4 Then humility is the
truest glory. The most humble is the most triumphant Christian.
Depressed indeed he may be; yet is he highly exalted. Riches are his,
both of grace and of glory. None can deprive him of them.5 Honour
is his---the true fruit,6 the gracious reward,7 of humility---high and
glorious; the title and present privilege of a child of God, "as heir of
God, and joint-heir with Christ."8 Life is his9--lives, every kind of
life, not natural only, but spiritual and eternal; life with the Father
and the Son, now "hid with Christ in God; and when Christ, who is
our life, shall appear," then to be manifested in all its fulness of ever-
lasting joy. (Col. iii. 3, 4.) Shall we look then beyond the narrow limit
of time, and search what is the character of the heirs of glory? He
"will beautify the meek with salvation." “Blessed” are the poor in
spirit; for theirs is the kingdom of God."10 How glorious is the end of
this lowly path of humility and godly fear.
5. Thorns and snares are in the way of the froward: he that doth keep his
soul shall be far from them.
A forcible image to shew, that nothing stands so much in a man's
way, as the indulgence of his own unbridled will. The man, who is
most perversely bent on his purposes, is most likely to be thwarted in
1 2 Sam. xv, 5. 2 1 Kings, xxi. 27. 3 Job, xl. 4; xlii. 5, 6.
4 Isa. vi. 5. 5 Chap. viii. 18. 6 Chap. xv. 33; xviii. 12.
7 Luke, xviii. 13, 14. 8 Rom viii. 17.
9 Chap. xix. 23. Ps. xxii. 26. Comp. Ecclus. i. 11, 12, 18; ii. 8, 9; xl. 26, 27.
10 Ps. cxlix. 4; Matt. v. 3.
CHAP. XXII. 6. 401
them. 'He thinks to carry all before him; whereas his frowardness
makes thorns and snares for his way.1 He is as a man on all sides
encompassed with thorns and snares. His stubbornness brings him into
infinite perplexities, out of which he can find no issue.'* Sarah,2 Jacob,3
Balaam,4 found the way of the froward full of hindrance and entangle-
ment. A special mercy is it, when the thorns embitter the way, and
bring the froward sinner as an humbled child, asking and seeking the
road to his Father's house. (Luke, xv. 12-20.) If there be difficulties in
the ways of God, are there none in the ways of sin? A fair balance
would prove, which yoke, which burden, is the more "easy and light."
The sting of conscience; the rebukes of Providence; the disappoint-
ment of cherished desires, the tyranny of lust--all tend to make "the
way of transgressors to be hard." (Chap. xiii. 15.) Nay--not the world
only, but even the holy Gospel, is made a snare in the way of the froward,
Such are "the depths and devices of Satan"5 that they "turn the grace
of God into lasciviousness," and the occasion or excuse of sin.6
Our happiness and security therefore lie in an humble submission
to the Lord; desiring nothing so much as conformity to his will;
dreading nothing so much as being left to our own waywardness. Thus
keeping our soul, we shall be far from the thorn and snare of the froward;
we shall "make straight" and safe, if not smooth, "paths for our feet,"
and "all our ways shall be established."7 "He that is begotten
of God keepeth himself, and that wicked one toucheth him not." (1 John,
v. 18.
6. Train up† a child in the way he should go: and when he is old, he will
not depart from it.
The hopes of at least two generations hang upon this most im-
portant rule. How can we look on a child without thoughtful anxiety?
An existence is commenced for eternity. No power of earth or hell can
crush it. The whole universe does not afford an object of deeper in-
terest. It is an "arrow in the hand of a mighty man;" a most power-
1 Jer. xxiii. 12, 13. Judg. ii. 2, 3. 2 Gen. xii. 10, 20; xvi. 1-6; xx. 2-14.
3 Ib. xxvii. 4 Num. xxii. 22-32. 5 Rev. ii. 24; 2 Cor. ii. 11 ; xi. 14.
6 Rom. iii. 8; vi. 1. Jude, 4. 7 Heb. xii. 13. Chap. iv. 26.
*Bp. Hall.
† All commentators by their different versions admit the signicance of the original term.
Imbue--Schultens. Geier--'Give it the first dip, dye, seasoning.' Initia--Begin the first
instruction--Lay the groundwork--the first stone. Instrue--This is substantially the
marg. catechize--like Abraham's servants--instructed (catechized, marg.) alike in the art
of war and in the fear of God. Gen. xiv. 14; xviii. 19. The word elsewhere conveys the
idea of dedication to the service of God. (Comp. Deut. xx. 5; 1 Kings, viii. 63; 2 Chron.
vii. 5; title to Ps. xxx.) In this view a judicious expositor illustrates it--'As a house.
altar, or temple, newly built, and not yet profound, is fitted by certain rites and sacrifices
for its future use; so a child, as a newly-formed edifice, is fitted by a certain course for the
service and the church, and his heart is made meet as an habitation of God, and the temple
of the Holy Ghost.'-GEIER.
402 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
ful instrument of good or evil, according to the direction that is given
to it. (Ps. cxxvii. 4.)
Everything hangs on his training. Two ways lie before him-
the way in which he would go, headlong to ruin; and the way in which
he should go, the pathway to heaven. The rule for training implies
obliquity. A young and healthy tree shoots straight upwards and
instead of putting forth crooked and deformed branches, gives promise
of a fine and fruitful maturity.
But all training, save on the principles of the Bible, must be in-
jurious. To expand, without soundly enlightening, the mind, is but to
increase its power for evil. Far better to consign it to total ignorance,
inasmuch as the uninstructed savage is less responsible, less dangerous,
than the well-furnished infidel.
Yet the religious training must not be the border of the garment,
which might easily be cut off. It must be the pervading substance
throughout. Begin, as Hannah did, with the dedication of the child to
God. (1 Sam. i. 28.) This done--train him as God's child, entrusted to
your care. Ask guidance from day to day--"How shall we order the
child, and how shall we do unto him?" (Judg. xiii. 12.) Train him, as
a baptized child, in the principles of his baptismal engagements. Pray
for him. Teach him to pray. Instruct him "from a child in the Holy
Scriptures," as the sole rule of faith, end directory of conduct.
Indeed, unless you give a child principles, you leave him utterly
helpless. And yet too often parents have no established principles of
education themselves. The children are theirs. Something therefore
must be done for their training for future life. But ignorant as they
are of their moral state, and of their besetting evils, they are utterly
unable to apply any effectual discipline. The child therefore becomes
the victim of his parent's ignorance. His education in all its important
departments is neglected. The impulse of caprice gives the only direc-
tion, and in this atmosphere of confusion parental authority soon fails
to controul the far mightier influence of passion.
Certainly, admitting the divine inspiration of the Scriptures, no-
thing can be more ruinous than to thrust them out of their place, as
the sum and substance of educational principles. Never was Scriptural
training more momentous. From a defect here many young persons
are tossed to and fro in every vacillation of error; and the anxious
attempt to set them right we find to be 'building where there is
foundation, or rather, where there is not so much as ground to build
upon.'† In fact, the mind, abhorring a vacuum, must have some notions.
And the alternative is not between sound principles and none; but
between wholesome with and those crude or poisonous errors, which
* 2 Tim. ill. 15. Comp. the wise man's own training, chap. iv. 3, 4.
† SOUTH'S Sermon on the text, vol. i.
CHAP. XXII. 6. 403
the subtle enemy is ever ready to inject, and the corrupt heart equally
prepared to receive. Nor let the formation of sound practical habits
diligence, industry, and self-government, be forgotten. Let the child
be trained, like the soldier under arms, to endurance, order, and sub-
jection.
But we must not forget the distinct track of the educational training
--the way in which the child should, not that in which he would, go.
Heaven and hell are not more opposite than these two ways. Indeed
they are identified with the narrow and broad way, in one of which
every child of Adam is walking. The child's will revolting from God
is the certain way to ruin. The way back to God, marked out in the
Bible, is consecrated by his blessing, and is the sure way to heaven.
Wisely does Solomon direct us to begin at the mouth or entrance of his
way,*--at the first opening intelligence. The more early the training,
the more easy the work, and the more encouraging the results. Our
character largely takes the form of that mould into which our early
years were cast. Much in after-life, both good and evil, may be traced
back to the seed sown in the days of infancy. It is a matter of expe-
rience, that what is early learnt, is most tenaciously retained. It stands the
friction of time with the least injury. Far better, instead of waiting for;
the maturity of reason, to work upon the pliability of childhood.† The
gardener begins to graft in the first rising of the sap. If the crooked
shoots of self-will and disobedience are not cut off, their rapid growth and
rapidly growing strength will greatly increase the future difficulty of
bending them. Present neglect occasions after risk and perplexity.
We may begin our work too late, but we can scarcely begin it too soon.1
If the child be too young to teach to read, he cannot be too young to
teach to obey. Never let the watchfulness to check the buddings of
evil, and to cherish the first tenderness of right feeling, be relaxed.
The ceaseless activity of the great enemy teaches the value of early
training. Be beforehand with him. Pre-occupy the ground with good
seed, as the most effectual exclusion of his evil tares. (Matt. xiii. 25-28.)
Be at the mouth of the way with wholesome food, ere he has the oppor-
1 Eccles. xi. 6. Isa. xxviii. 9, 10. Lam. iii. 27.
* Heb. See Schult-ens and the general voice of critics.
† Mr. Locke does not hesitate to affirm, 'that of all the men we meet with, nine parts
out of ten are what they are, good or bad, useful or. not, according to their education.
Thoughts concerning Education. The heathen moralists seem well to have understood
the subject. Horace, after alluding to the early discipline of the colt and the hound,
applies it--
----Nunc adbibe puro
Pectore verba, puer; nunc te melioribus offer.
Quo semel est imbuta recens, servabit odorem
Testa diu.--Epist. lib. i. ii. 67-70.
------Adeo in teneris consuescere multum est.'-VIRG. Georg. ii. 272.
‘Udum et molle lutum es; nunc, nunc, properandus, et acri
Fingendus sine fine rota.'--PERSIUS, Sat. iii. 23, 24.
404 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
tunity of pouring in his "bread of deceit;" ere nature is hardened by
the habits of sin, or brutalized by familiarity with vice.
But this training must be practical. The mere talk to a child about
religion, without bringing it to bear upon his loose habits, and self-
willed tempers, is utterly ineffective. None of us liveth to himself
alone. We are all spreading around us an influence, whether for good
or for evil. Here therefore in our families lies the responsibility of
Christian consistency. If the child hears of godliness, and sees but
wickedness, this is bringing him bread with one hand, and poison with
the other; 'beckoning him with the hand to heaven, and at the same
time taking him by the hand, and leading him in the way to destruc-
tion.'* Who would receive even the choicest food from a leprous
hand? Neglect is far better than inconsistency; forgetfulness, than
contempt of principle. A child learns more by the eye than by the ear.
Imitation is a far more powerful principle than memory. A well-
trained child gladly looks to his parent's godliness as his model picture,
to copy after. A wayward child eagerly seeks for the excuse of his own
delinquency, and this discovery in parental example will harden him in
infidelity and ungodliness.
This training is indeed a work of watchful anxiety, attended with
painful, and often long-protracted, exercise of faith and patience. Who
could hold on in it, but for the Divine support of the parental promise
--When he is old, he shall not depart from it? The man will be, as the
child is trained. Education is utterly distinct from grace. But, when
conducted in the spirit, and on the principles, of the Word of God, it is a
means of imparting it. Sometimes the fruit is immediate, uniform, and
permanent to the end.1 But often "the bread cast upon the waters of
the covenant is found," not till "after many days" (Eccles. xi. 1);
perhaps not till the godly parent has been laid in the grave.| Yet the
fruit, though late, will not be the less sure. (Hab. ii. 3.) The child may
depart when he is young. But when he is old--in after years, smothered
convictions will bring back the power of early impressions. The seeds
of instruction will burst forth into life.+ He will find it "hard" in a
course of sin "to kick against the pricks." (Acts, ix. 5.) The Scriptures,
fastened on his memory, will force themselves upon him with many a
sharp and painful struggle. Conscience will disturb his pleasures, and
embitter the sweetness, which he had found, or fancied that he had
found, in his sins. The remembrance of his father's house' brings the
1 1 Sam. i. 28; iii. 20; xii 2, 3. Ps. xcii. 13-15.
* Abp. TILLOTSON'S Sermon on Education.
| 2 Chron. xxxiii. 11-13. 'It is no small mercy,' said Mr. Flavel, alluding to this case,
'to have thousands of fervent prayers lying before the Lord, filed up in heaven for us,'--
Fountain of Life, Sermon xx.
+ Timothy was instructed as a child, but not converted till adult age. Comp. 2 Tim.
iii. 15, with 1 Tim. i. 2
CHAP. XXII. 6. 405
prodigal "to himself," and he comes home with shame in his face tears
in his eyes, and godly sorrow in his heart. (Luke, xv. 17-20.)
If then the promise is not fulfilled, it is because the duty is not per-
formed. Never does God give a command, but he will give his sincere
servant grace to obey it. The duty is not therefore to lie down in
despondency, or even in heartless prayer, but to "go forward" (Exod.
xiv. 13) in painful obedience. With such a plain promise--the promise
of "him who cannot lie, or repent," and who will be true to every tittle
of his word (Num. xxiii. 19)--need we ever be cast down?--"Is
anything too hard for the Lord?" (Gen. xviii. 14.) Cultivate then the
exercise of parental faith; trusting, not to what we see but to what
God has engaged; like our father Abraham, "against hope, believing
"in hope." (Rom. iv. 18-20.) Expect the fulfilment of the parental
promise, as confidently as any other free promise of the gospel.*
Exercise faith in the full energy of Christian diligence, and in the
patience of Christian hope. Leave God to accomplish his own gracious
will. If his Sovereignty reserves the time and means to himself, his
faithfulness secures the promise to us, which is, and ever must be--
"Yea, and Amen"--"I will be a God to thee, and to thy seed after thee
I will pour out my Spirit upon thy seed, and my blessing upon thine offspring."1
1 2 Cor. i. 20. Gen. xvii. 7. lsa. xliv. 3-5.
* Such as John, vi. 37--couched in the same grammatical terms--a promise connected
with a duty, as the encouragement to the duty--"Him that cometh-he that traineth;--no
wise cast out--will not depart." Yet the latter is often considered a general promise, ad-
mitting of various and indefinite exceptions. The other is "Yea and Amen." But we
might ask--How can we loosen the ground of one promise, without shaking the foundation
of all? And do not admitted exceptions in the educational promise give occasion to many
an exercised Christian to find his own exception in the Gospel promise? We fully concede,
that here the ground is more clear to the exercise of faith. We have the demonstrable
certainty of the work of the Son, the faithfulness of the Father, and the agency of the Spirit,
drawing the "given to come"--the compact of the Eternal Three unchangeably fulfilled.
In this parental promise the manifestly imperfect training of the parent, and the wanton
rebellion of the child, clouds the ground of faith to our vision. But this touches only the
apprehension of the ground, not the ground itself. If the performance of the parent's duty
in the one promise were as certain, as the work of God in the other, would not the assur-
ance of the promise in both cases be equally firm? We cannot indeed anticipate an universal
fulfilment of the promise. Yet, as believers in the inspiration of Scripture, we are bound
implicitly to receive it. Is it not far safer and more satisfactory to" take all the promises of
the Bible upon the same ground? The cases that appear to contravene the educational
promise may be fairly explained. The promise is not falsified, but the Lord's time of fulfil-
ment is not yet come. Or--has not some important element of education been omitted?
Has not some disproportion of one or other part of the system hindered the efficiency of
the whole? Have instruction and discipline been always accompanied with prayer and
faith? Or has prayer been always confirmed by consistent practice? Do not man's in do-
lence, self-indulgence, unbelief, unfaithfulness to the conditions implied, wither the blessing?
While Abraham, training up his family for God, shall find him "faithful that hath pro-
mised" (Gen. xviii. 19, with Heb. x. 23) the Elis and the Davids--good men, but bad
parents--(1 Sam. iii. 13; 1 Kings, i 6) shall know "God's breach of promise." (Num. xiv.
34.) It is too deep for man to reconcile the absolute election of God with weak, imperfect,
unfaithful fulfilment of duty. Nevertheless in all cases--"Let God be true, and every man
a liar (Rom. iii. 4.)
406 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
This is the reward of faith to those, who make the salvation of the
soul the primary object of education. But the mass of mankind deal
with their children, as if they were born only for the world, with nothing
to look to after death. Wholly leaving out the mighty question--the
great end of life--'How this or that matter affects their soul'--the
only thought is--'Must they not be like others, to make their way in
the world?' Thus they fearlessly bring them into contact with the
evil around them, set their feet in the "broad road of destruction," and
bid them go on with the rest. In all important matters they educate
them consistently for time, not for eternity. They concentrate their
grand interest on matters, in which the soul has no concern; accom-
plishments or scholarship, not godliness; refinement of taste and
manners, not soundness of faith. Need we say, that this is an
education without God, without his promise, without rest? The
parents of such children, and the children of such parents, are alike
objects of compassion. Eternity will bring a solemn account to both.
7. The rich ruleth over the poor, and the borrower is servant to the lender.
"The rich and the poor meet together" (Verse 2) for mutual
sympathy and helpfulness; yet God has appointed one to rule, and
the other to submit. And this gradation of rank in all its forms,
involves distinct obligations to be carefully sought out and followed.
Subjection, on the one hand, is cheerfully acknowledged as God's own
ordinance; while the sense of responsibility is enlarged on the other.
The rule applies to all the domestic relations between dependants and
superiors. Yet let it be the rule of order, not of pride, caprice, or selfish-
ness. And especially, when exercised over young persons of refined
minds and education, let dependence be soothed by "the law of kind-
ness," elevating them to a rank far above the menials of the house.
The golden rule of love will diffuse Christian happiness without disorder
or compromise of obligation.
Too often, however, it is a rule of harshness.1 And indeed, without
a practical submission to God's rule over us, we can scarcely be trusted
with power over our fellow-men. Such obligations as that of the
borrower to the lender, often force the dependant to a servile bondage.
Man becomes an alien to his brother; the victim of his gratification,
not the object of his sympathy.*
Very important is it to maintain an independence of mind, quite
distinct from pride, which elevates the mind far above doing or con-
niving at evil, for the sake of pleasing a patron. Many have been
1 Chap. xviii. 23. Amos, ii. 6; iv. 1; v. 11, 12; viii. 4-6. Jam. ii. 6; v. 4. Comp.
Ecclus. xiii. 19.
* 2 Kings, iv.I. Neh. v. 3-5. Matt. xviii. 25,29. Compare the blessing, Deut. xv. 6;
xxviii. 12.
CHAP. XXII. 8. 407
forced to great entanglement of conscience, perhaps to vote contrary to
their conscience, rather than lose the great man's smile. Often also the
influence of capital is an iron rule of the rich over the poor. Many, who
profess to resist conscientiously state-interference, have little regard for
the consciences of their dependants. The monied master exercises a
controul over his workmen, which shews too plainly his purpose to
make them the creatures of his own will. This gigantic tyranny should
be denounced with the most solemn protest.
The true Christian line is to shun that proud independence, which
scorns the kindly offer of needful help; but at the same time to avoid
all needless obligations. 'Sell not your liberty to gratify your luxury.'*
If possible, "owe no man anything' but love." (Rom. xiii. 8.) Guard
against that poverty, which is the result of carelessness or extravagance.
Pray earnestly, labour diligently. Should you come to poverty by the
misfortune of the times, submit to your lot humbly; bear it patiently;
cast yourself in child-like dependence upon your God.'|
8. He that soweth iniquity shall reap vanity: and the rod of his anger shall
fail (with the rod of his anger he shall be consumed, marg.)
Scripture often gives the practical illustration of the seed-time and
harvest.l They are linked together in the spiritual, not less than in the
natural, world. The harvest is according to the seed. (Gal. vi. 7, 8.)
Such is the transcendant dignity and worth of the soul, that eternity is
stamped upon all its actions. Every thought, every principle (is not
this a solemn recollection?) is a seed for eternity, issuing in an harvest
of eternal joy, or "desperate sorrow." The wise man here adverts to
the latter--harvest. All experience and observation testify to the fact,
that the diligence of the ungodly sower can only end in vanity, in utter
and eternal disappointment. (Job, iv. 8. Rom. vi. 21.)
The connexion, however, of the two clauses of the Proverb may
intimate, that the iron rod of the rich ruling over the poor, following the
dictates of selfishness, will ensure disappointment. Their abused power
will shortly fail, and they will reap only the harvest of their injustice.
Often may oppressors prosper for a time. God may use them as his
chastening rod. But the seed-time of iniquity will end in the harvest of
vanity; and when they have done their work, the rod of their anger shall
fail. Such was Sennacherib in olden time,2 such was Napoleon in our
own day. Never has the world seen so extensive a sower of iniquity,
never a more abundant harvest of vanity. The rod of anger was he to
the nations of the earth. But how utterly was the rod suffered to fail,
when the purpose was accomplished! despoiled of empire, shorn of
1 Pa. cxxvi. 5, 6. Hos. x. 12. Matt. xiii. 8, 24-30.
2 Isa. x. 5-12, 24, 25; xxx. 31. Zech. x. 11.
* Henry in loco. † Geier in loco.
408 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
greatness, an exiled captive. Such is not the harvest from God's seed!
"A sure reward" (Chap. xi. 18), not of vanity, but of substantial, ever-
lasting joy. (Ps. cxxvi. 5, 6.) Here let us "sow bountifully, that we
may reap also bountifully." (2 Cor. ix. 6, 9.)
9. He that hath a bountiful (is good of, marg.) eye shall be blessed; for
he giveth of his bread to the poor.
The heart often looks out at the eye.l The bountiful or good eye is
contrasted with "the evil eye."2 This man can look with indifference,
on distress," satisfy himself with the heartless expression of good-will,4
and find many reasons for withholding his charity. But the man of a
good eye delighteth in contriving acts of kindness. (Isa. xxxii. 8.) He
not only relieves what is brought before him, but he looks out for
objects, and looks pleasantly on them. Nehemiah, instead of using his
ample power for his own aggrandizement, spent his substance in feeding
the people at his own table, giving of his bread to the poor. (Neh. v.
16-18.) His great work required a large heart. And such a heart
God had given him. Ever remember--Christian--that God's standard
is sacrifice, not convenience; giving of our bread; letting the poor share
with ourselves. (Job, xxxi. 17.) Nor must it be wrung from us by
importunity. "God loveth a cheerful giver."5 His "charge is, that
we be ready to distribute, willing to communicate." (1 Tim. vi. 17, 18.)
This is his own pattern of bountifulness, "He openeth his hand, and
satisfieth the desire of every living thing." (Ps. cxlv. 16.) We are only
the stewards of his bounty. Of our property, be it little or much, we
must be ready to feel of that, as of ourselves6--It is 'not our own.'
But, let the motive be higher than the mere gratification of kindly
feelings. Cherish carefully godly simplicity. "Let your light shine
before men for your Father's glory," not for your own.*
This bountifulness is a privilege, which earth possesses above heaven.
Many a rich blessing is sealed to it.7 'Beneficence is the most exquisite
luxury; and the good man is the genuine epicure.'† He "hath a
continual feast," because his objects are always before him. Man will
bless him according to his ability;8 and when "they cannot recom-
pense thee, thou shalt be recompensed at the resurrection of the just;"9
when 'one good work done for God will be seen'--as Luther says--
'to shew more glory than the whole frame of heaven and earth.' It is
1 Luke, x. 33-35. 2 Chap. xxiii. 6. Deut. xv. 9; xxviii. 54, 56. Matt. xx. 15.
3 1 Sam. xxv. 3, 10, 11. Luke, x. 31, 32; xvi. 19-21. 4 Jam. ii. 15, 16.
5 2 Cor. ix. 6. Deut. xv. 10. 6 1 Cor. vi. 19, 20.
7 Deut. xv. 10. Isa. lviii. 10, 11. Matt. v. 7. Comp. Ecclus. xxxi. 23, 24.
8 Job, xxix.11-13; xxxi. 16-29. 9 Ps. xli. 1, 2. Luke, xiv. 14. 1 Tim. vi. 19.
*Matt. v. 16, with vi. 1-3; xxv. 34-40. It is stated of a munificent Christian, that he
strictly forbade the recipients of his bounty to return thanks. Probably the knowledge of
his own heart suggested this prohibition.
† Bishop HORNE'S Sermon on Ps. xli. 1.
CHAP. XXII. 10,11. 409
the working of his grace, the following of his pattern, the reflection
of his image, the "shewing forth of his virtue." (1 Pet. ii. 9, marg.)
10. Cast out the scorner, and contention shall go out, yea, strife and
reproach shall cease.
This is a word to rulers. The scorner is a firebrand of contention in
the church. (3 John, 10.) He must be restrained.1 If restraint be
ineffectual, he must: if possible, be cast out.2 If "his seat" be allowed
in the family,3 strife and reproach must be the issue. A jeer or biting
taunt is more provoking than a blow. If therefore "peace is to the
house," and “the love of peace is to abide there,”4--cast out the scorner,
and the contention will cease.5 He must not be argued with.6 We
must keep no terms with him. We must meet him with bold and
open rebuke, lest his influence should overthrow the faith of the
simple.7 If God "scorneth the scorner,"8 what less can we do, than
banish him from our society?9 Yet if we cast him out, cast him not
off. Pray for him. Remember "such were some of you." (1 Cor.
vi. 11.) While we abhor the sin, pity the sinner.
But what we should not be able to cast him out? He may be a
husband or a child. At least give a protest. Shew that you stand
not on the same ground. Turn away from his scorning. This will
mortify, if not silence. Turn from him to your God.10 This will bring
peace. Dwell with him "sighing, as David in Mesech.11 One greater
than David teaches us by his example. Honour your Divine Master
by "enduring," as he did, year after year, "the contradiction of sin-
ners." (Heb. xii. 3.) And who knoweth, but this meek and silent
endurance, with a loving, bleeding heart, may have power to cast out
the scorning, and to mould the scorner into the lowliness of the cross?
Then who would be a more welcome member of the church or of the
family? Strife and reproach would cease in both, should the persecutor
of the faith become a monument of grace (1 TIm. 1. 13-16), a shining
witness to the truth. (Gal. i. 23, 24.)
11. He that loveth pureness of heart, for the grace of his lips the king
shall be his friend.
Pureness of heart describes not the natural, but the renewed, man.
It is no external varnish, no affectation of holiness; but sincerity,
humility, shrinking from sin, conformity to the image of God. He
who hath fully attained this pureness is before the throne of God. He
who loveth it is the child of God on earth. His perfection is desire,
constant progress, pressing towards the mark. (Philip. iii. 12-15.)
1 2 Tim. iii. 8, 9. 2 1 Tim. i. 20. Tit. iii. 10, 11. 3 Ps, i. 1.
4 Luke, x. 5, 6. 5 Gen. xxi. 9, 10. Comp. chap. xv.18; xvi. 28.
6 Chap. xxvi. 4. 2 Kings. xviii.36. 7 2 Tim. ii:1-10. 8 Chap. iii. 34.
9 Ps. cxix. 115. Comp. Neh. xiii. 28. 10 Ps. xxxv. 21-24 lxix.11-13. 11 Ib. cxx. 5-7.
410 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
"When the fountain is cleansed, it sendeth forth sweet waters. When
"the tree is made good, the fruit will be good." "Of the abundance
of the heart the mouth speaketh." (Matt. xii. 33, 34.)
Pureness of heart sheds such refinement over the whole character, and
pours such grace upon the lips, as attracts the admiration of those, who
do not understand its source, and cannot appreciate its principle. (Chap.
xxxi. 10, 26.) Such was the grace upon the lips of the holy Saviour,
that "the multitude hung upon them, wondering at the gracious words
which proceeded out of his mouth:"1 The moral influence also of this
purity of character is to put impurity to shame.
Solomon doubtless spoke his own determination, that the king should
be the friend of the gracious servant. This had been his father's resolu-
tion. This character smoothed the way to royal favour for Joseph,"
for Ezra," and Daniel.5 Nay--we find godly Obadiah in the confidence
of wicked Ahab.6 So powerful is the voice of conscience, even when
God and holiness are hated! Yet this choice of the gracious lips is
too often rather what ought to be, than what is.7 Well is it for the
kingdom, when the sovereign's choice is according to this rule.8 Such
atone the great King marks as his friends. Such he embraces with his
fatherly love.9 Such he welcomes into his heavenly kingdom.10
"Blessed are the pure in heart, for they shall see God." (Matt. v. 8.)
12. The eyes of the Lord preserve knowledge, and he overthroweth the
words of the transgressor.
The eyes of the Lord often describe his searching Omniscience;11
here his fatherly care.12 There are so many inlets to false principles;
such spacious appearances to warp the judgment, does the subtle enemy
pour in; so strong is the natural tendency in the same direction; that
but for this gracious covering to preserve knowledge in our hearts, the
words of the transgressor might "overthrow our faith." (2 Tim. ii.
17-19.) Oh! let us seek in close communion with him continued
preservation from a cloud upon our intellectual faculties, and spiritual
apprehensions for our Christian establishment.
But the proverb illustrates upon a wider scale his faithful keeping
of the truth in the world. Indeed it may be regarded as a prophecy
in the course of fulfilment to the very end of time. For how wonder-
fully has the knowledge of God been preserved from age to age; and all
the plausible or malignant schemes to blot it out been overthrown!
The Scriptures, as the words of knowledge, have been preserved in a far
1 Ps. xiv. 2, 7. Luke, xix. 48; iv.22. 2 Ps. ci. 6; cxix. 63. 3 Gen. xli. 37-45.
4 Ezra, vii. 6, 21-25. 5 Dan. vi. 1-3, 28.
6 1 Kings, xviii. 3, 12. 2 Kings, xiii. 14. 7 Chap. xvi. 12, 13. 8 Chap. xxviii. 2; xxv. 5.
9 Chap. xv. 9. 10 Ps. xv. 1, 2; xxiv. 3, 4.
11 Chap. v. 21; xv. 3. Ps. xi. 4. 12 2 Chron. xvi. 9. Ps. xxxiv. 15. Zech. iv. 10.
. *Scott in loco.
CHAP. XXII. 13. 411
more accurate state than any other book of corresponding antiquity;
though man's wisdom has never been wanting in ingenuity to corrupt
it. When knowledge seemed on the eve of perishing, a single copy of
the Scriptures, found as it were accidentally, preserved it from utter
extinction. (2 Chron. xxxiv. 14-18.) For successive generations the
Book was in the custody of faithful librarians, handed down in sub-
stantial integrity. (Rom. iii. 2.) When the church herself was on the
side of the Arian heresy, the same watchful eyes raised up a champion,*
to preserve the testimony. In the succeeding dark ages witnesses
prophesied, as from the earliest eras of Revelation,† some indeed for a
long time in sackcloth,1 until the dawn of a brighter day. Nor 'was
this in peace and quietness. Often has the infidel transgressor laboured
with all the might of man for its destruction.‡ Often has Rome partian~
suppressed it, or committed it to the flames, or circulated perverted
copies and false interpretations. Yet all these words and deeds of the
transgressors have been overthrown. And notwithstanding all heretical
corruptions, the eyes of the Lord have preserved knowledge. Still is his
word continued among us, with its Divine credentials unimpaired, and
its unsearchable store undiminished--a standing miracle of the faith-
fulness of its Almighty Keeper. Full of joy and confidence is the
believer's acknowledgment--"Concerning thy testimonies, I have known
of old, that thou hast founded them for ever." (Ps. cxix. 152.)
13. The slothful man saith, There is a lion without, I shall be slain in the
streets. (Chap. xxvi. 13.)
'This sentence belongs to those who flinch from the cross.'§ Real
difficulties in the way of heaven exercise faith. And such there are,
far too great for those, who have never "counted the cost," or who
"go to the warfare at any time at their own charges."2 But imaginary
difficulties are the indulgence of sloth. The slothful man is a coward.
He has no love for his work, and therefore he is always ready to put a
cheat upon his soul, 'inventing some vain excuse, because he will not
do his duty.'|| He shrinks from every work likely to involve trouble.
(Chap. xv. 19; xix. 24.) Fancied dangers frighten him from real and
present duties. There is a lion without; I shall be slain in the streets--
an absurd excuse!--as if public streets, except in special cases, were
the haunts of wild beasts. (Ps. civ. 20-22.) He is afraid of being slain
without, when he willingly gives himself up to be slain within. (Chap.
xxi. 25.) Thus the unbelieving spies, when holding up to view the
exuberant fruit of Canaan, added--But we be not able to go up against
the people. The cities are walled up to heaven; and the giants are
1 1 Rev. xi. 3-11; xii. 14-17. 2 Matt. viii. 19, 20, with xi. 12. Luke, xiv. 28-30.
* Athanasius. †Enoch, Jude, 14, 15. Noah, 2 Pet. ii. 5.
‡ Jer. xxxvi 23. The company ofVoltaire and his associates.
§ Melancthon in loco. || Reformer's Notes.
412 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
there. (Num. xiii. 27-33.) As if the promise of God was not a stronger
ground of faith, than the giants of fear!1 But much more sad is it to see
Moses shrinking,2--nay--Jonah running away, from the Lord's work.3
All excuses against doing it partake of this cowardly spirit. And who
has not felt the temptation, when called to a plain but self-denying
duty; to encounter painful opposition to the gospel, or to a faithful
rebuke of sin?--There is a lion without. True. But hast thou for-
gotten the promise in the ways of God? "Thou shalt tread upon the
lion and adder; the young lion and the dragon shalt thou trample under
feet?" (Ps. xci. 11-13.) Does not our Master call us to follow him in
a life of self-devoted conflict and energy? Ponder the terms of dis-
cipleship. "If any man will come after me, let him deny himself, and
take up his cross daily, and follow me." (Luke, ix. 23.) Godly courage,
"endurance of hardness," "standing in the, whole armour of God "*--
all this is needed; all this must be daily and hourly sought for, not
only by those who stand in the forefront of the battle, but by the meanest
soldier of the cross; else, though "armed, and carrying the bow, he will
turn back" disgracefully "in the day of battle." (Ps. lxxviii. 9.)
14. The mouth of strange women is a deep pit; he that is abhorred of the
Lord shall fall therein.
This fearful temptation has been already frequently opened.4 But
in a book specially for the young, who that knows the power of "youth-
fullusts" (2 Tim. ii. 22), and the seductive witcher es of sin, will deem
a fresh warning needless? Is it not the voice of mercy? For what
but unbounded compassion could stand as it were at the edge of the pit,
and unfold to the unwary its awful peril? A deep pit indeed it is,5
easy to fall into; hard, next to impossible, to get out of.6 So besotting
is this sin to the flesh, to the mind, and to the conscience!7 It is the
mouth of a pit far deeper." For her feet go down to death; her steps
take hold of hell."9 What more humbling proof can there be of the
total depravity of the nature, than the fact, that those affections,
originally given as the purest enjoyments of life, should become the
corrupt spring of such a defilement. The sin and snare would seem to
be a judicial infliction for those, whose wilful rejection of God has
made them abhorred of him.9 They have turned away from instruction,
hated reproof, resisted conviction, been given up to their abomination;
they give therefore too plain proof that they are abandoned by God,
(Chap. v. 37)--abhorred of the Lord! Is the embrace of the strange
1 Num. xiv. 6-8 with Gen. xii. 7. 2 Exod. iv. 10-14. 3 Jonah, i. 1-3.
4 Chap. ii. 16-19; v. 3; vi. 24-29; vii. 5, &c. ; ix. 16-18. 5 Chap. xxiii. 27.
6 Chap. ii. 19. Eccles. vii. 26. 7 Judg. xvi. 19,20. Neh. xiii. 26. Hos. iv. 11.
8 Chap. v. 5; 2 Pet. ii. 10-12. Rev. xxi. 8. 9 Rom. i. 28. Ps. lxxxi. 11, 12.
* 2 Tim. ii. 3. Eph. vi. 11, 13. 'Invictus ad labores; fortis ad periculum; durus adver-
sus illecebras.' Ambrose--a fine exhibition of Christian energy.
CHAP. XXII. 15. 413
woman a compensation for such a judgment? Every curse, eternal
frown and banishment, the weight of infinite unmingled wrath, is
involved in this awful name. Not that he willeth the death of the
vilest sinner. (Ezek. xviii. 32.) But must not his justice and his
holiness be in array against those, who of their own will choose evil
and reject alike the warnings of his wrath, and the invitations of his
love?
15. Foolishness is bound in the heart of a child; but the rod of correction
shall drive it far from him.
What parent, what instructor of children, will not bear sad, but
decisive, testimony to the foolishness of the child? 'A little innocent'
--is the miscalled name of fondness and fancy. One only of Adam's
race, and he--adored be his name! preserved by his holy conception
(Luke, i. 35)--lays claim to it. Foolishness is the birthright of all
besides. The early development of waywardness and passion,--even
before the power of speech;* before the child is capable of observing
and imitating those around him--is a touching, but undeniable, evi-
dence of the innate principle. Resistance therefore cannot begin too
early. Education should commence even in the cradle.
Observe--it is foolishness, not childishness. That might belong
to an unfallen child. No moral guilt attaches to the recollection
"When I was a child, I spake as a child, I understood as a child, I
thought as a child." (1 Cor. xiii. 11.) A child is to be punished
as Mr. Scott wisely observed--'not for being a child, but for being a
wicked child.'† Comparative ignorance, the imperfect and gradual
opening of the faculties, constitute the nature, not the sinfulness of the
child. The holy "child increased in wisdom." (Luke, ii. 52.) But
foolishness is the mighty propensity to evil--imbibing wrong prin-
ciples, forming bad habits, entering into an ungodly course. It means
the very root and essence of sin in a fallen nature--the folly of being
revolted from a God of love. It includes all the sins of which a child
is capable-lying, deceit (Ps. lviii. 3), wilfulness, perverseness, want
of submission to authority (Job, xi. 12)--a fearful aptness for evil, and
revulsion against good. It is not the sheet of pure white paper; not
the innocent, or even the tractable, creature, easily guided by proper
means, that we have before us; but a little heart full of sin, containing
all the seeds of future evil, multiplying to a fruitful harvest.
We delight in our children's harmless play. We would make
ourselves one with them in their sportiveness. But this foolishness--
* Augustine mentions a living demonstration of the fall--the sight of an infant, before
it could speak, shewing an evident look of envy and passion towards another infant about
to share its nourishment. He adds--in reference to himself--'When? I beseech thee, 0
my God, in what places, when or where, was I innocent?'--Confess. lib. i. c. 7.
† Life, p. 622.
414 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
visible every hour before our eyes--never let it be a subject of sport,
but of deep and constant sadness. Nor let childhood plead as an
excuse for this foolishness. Children's sins may not be chargeable with
the guilt of adult responsibility; yet God has awfully shewn, that they
are sins against Himself. The judgment on the "little children" of
Bethel is enough to make "both the ears of" thoughtless parents "to
tingle." (2 Kings, ii. 23, 24)
But whence the origin of this foolishness? "Look unto the rock
whence we are hewn." Look unto "Adam" our father, and unto
"Eve that bare us." (Isa. li. 1, 2.) As is the root, so ate the branches.
As is the fountain, so are the waters. Our nature was poisoned at the
spring. Our sinful parent, having lost God's image, could only "beget
a son after his image" (Gen. v. 3)--a sinner begetting a sinner. "That
which is born of the flesh is flesh" (John, iii. 6), and could be nothing
else. Now "who can bring a clean thing out of an unclean?" (Job,
xiv. 4; xxv. 4.) The creature therefore is produced into being with a
radical enmity to God;--"by nature" therefore "a child of wrath."
(Eph. ii. 3.) The entail is held from "our first father," and can never
be cut off. There is no division of this sad inheritance. Each of his
children has the whole. His Maker testifies, that he is "a transgressor
from the womb, that his heart is evil from his youth."1 In shame he
acknowledges the testimony--"Behold! I was shapen in iniquity, and
in sin did my mother conceive me." (Ps. li. 5.) If the joy of a child's
birth blot out the remembrance of its pain and sorrow (John, xvi. 21),
yet must not this joy be chastened in the humbling recollection of what
the child brings into the world--foolishness? That self-will, that
proud independence, that shakes the very foundations of society, is the
birth-sin of our fallen nature. Nor does it lie only on the surface, like
some childish habits, easily corrected. It is bound in the child's heart,
'held firmly there by chains invincible to human power.'* It is incor-
porated into his very nature. And so various are its forms, so subtle
its workings, that the wisest parent is often at a loss how to detect and
treat the evil.
The prescribed remedy, however, is clear. It is vain to bid the
foolishness depart. And little inclination is there in the child himself
to drive it far away. The rod of correction is distinctly named, and
repeatedly inculcated, as God's own means for this important end.2
And surely the thought of having been an instrument of producing
nature envenomed against a God of love must constrain the parent
to use the means thus divinely appointed for destroying the deadly
poison.
Only let the child see, that, as with our heavenly Father, love is the
1 Isa. xlviii. 8. Gen viii. 21. 2 Chap. xix. 18; xxiii. 13, 14; xxix. 17.
* Cartwright in loco.
CHAP. XXII. 16. 415
ruling principle;1 that we follow the example of the wisest and best of
parents, that we use his rod for driving men from foolishness;2 that, like
him, we "chasten, not for our pleasure, but for our child's profit" (Heb.
xii. 10); not from caprice or passion, but from tenderness to his soul.
Use the Lord's means, and we can then, what otherwise we cannot do,
wait in faith for the promised blessing. Many a stirring movement of
the flesh will be restrained. Man's will will be put down, and God's will
gain the supremacy. Shame of sin will issue in abhorrence; and in
this sorrow and humiliation the path of wisdom will be chosen, loved,
and followed. (Chap. xxix. 15.)
We have indeed no right to demand to see God's reasons for his
ordinance. Yet we may be permitted, in part at least, to trace its
workings. Habits are of immense value, as wrought into the character
by the Holy Spirit. But there must be a beginning, and the use of
means to fix the principle. If a child be punished for falsehood; to
avoid future punishment, he abstains, and speaks the truth. As he
advances, he finds the blessing and comfort of the right path. He
learns gradually to speak truth from a higher motive. Insensibly his
conscience acquires tenderness respecting it; and it becomes a prin-
ciple in his character. Thus the rod of correction performs its work with
permanent benefit.
16. He that oppresseth the poor to increase his riches, and he that giveth to
the rich, shall surely come to want.
These two cases seem to be at opposites. Yet they meet at the
same centre. Both are equally destitute of the love of God, and of
their brother. Both alike are seeing their own aggrandizement. The
one oppresseth the poor to increase his riches. The other giveth to the
rich, "hoping for" something "again." Both courses--paradoxical
as it may appear--are the road to want. "For the oppression of the
poor--now will I arise--saith the Lord. Him that loveth violence,
his soul hateth." (Ps. xii. 5; xi. 5.) 'Sin pays its servants very bad
wages; for it gives the very reverse of what is promised. While the
the sin of oppression promises mountains of gold, it brings them poverty
and ruin. (Jer. xii. 13-15.) Injuries done to the poor are sorely re-
sented by the God of mercy, who is the poor man's friend, and will
break in pieces his oppressor.'* But if oppression is the road to poverty,
is not liberality the way to riches? Doubtless it is, if it be for God.
(Chap. iii. 9, 10.) But here the man was putting forth a false show of
munificence to ensure gifts in tenfold return; while he could at the
same time indulge his selfishness in grinding the poor with impunity.
Our Lord, therefore, forbids his friends to "make a feast for the rich,
1 Chap. xiii. 24, with iii. 11, 12. 2 2 Chron. xxxiii. 12, 13.
* Lawson in loco. Comp. verses 22, 23.
416 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
looking for a recompence."* "If ye do good to them"--said he to
his disciples--"that do good to you-if ye lend to them, of whom ye
hope to receive-what thank have ye?" (Luke, vi. 33.) To give to
the rich is perverting our stewardship for the service of the poor. But
retributive justice will blast the ill-gotten gains of selfishness;1 and
hypocrisy will meet its just reward of shame and disappointment. (Luke,
xii. 1,2.) Oh! let the Christian ever hear his Father's voice--"Walk
before me, and be thou perfect."
17. Bow down thine ear, and hear the words of the wise, and apply thine
heart unto my knowledge. 18. For it is a pleasant thing, if thou keep
them within thee; they shall withal be fitted in thy lips. 19. That thy
trust may be in the Lord, I have made known to thee this day, even to
thee. 20, 21. Have not I written to thee excellent things in counsels
and knowledge, that I might make thee know the certainty of the words
of truth; that thou mightest answer the words of truth to them that
send unto thee?
Solomon here changes his mode of address. From the tenth chapter
he had chiefly given detached, sententious aphorisms in an antithetical
form; contrasting right and wrong principles with their respective
results. His observations are now more connected and personal, and,
like a wise minister, he preaches to his people, not before them; preach-
ing to them, not only in the mass, but in contact with their individual
consciences.
The wise man here 'shews the power and use of the word of God.†
He begins with an earnest call to attention. He was speaking no
ordinary matters, but the words of the wise. Bow the ear--apply the
heart unto my knowledge2 as to a message from God Lord! "waken
mine ear to hear as the learned." (Isa. L. 4.)
Observe the attractiveness of wisdom. It is a pleasant, no less than a
profitable, thing. And who is not alive to the call of pleasure? Yet
incomprehensible is it to the world to connect religion with pleasure.
It spoils all their pleasure. And what amends can it make? It
includes in their view much to be done, but nothing to be enjoyed;
something very serious, perhaps important in its place; but grave and
gloomy; a duty, not a privilege. Yet how little has our profession
wrought for us, if it has not realized it as a pleasant thing "if it has not
adorned it with somewhat of an angel's face! Often indeed by our
own fault it fails to comfort and invigorate us; a body indeed of truth,
1 Job, xx. 19-22. Isa. v. 8, 9. Mic. iii. 2-5. Zech. vii. 9-14. Jam. ii. 6, 13; v. 1-4.
2 Ch.ii 12; xxiii. 12
* Luke, xiv. 12. Martial often alludes to the expectation of a legacy with keen rebuke
of selfishness.
† Melancthon in loco.
CHAP. XXII. 17-21. 417
but" a body without the spirit"--cold and lifeless. It is a pleasant
thing only, if we keep it within us.l Heart-religion conveys vital hap-
piness. The fruit is of "the tree of life;"2 its taste "sweeter than
honey or the honey-comb;"3 "Thy words were found, and I did eat
them, and thy word was unto me as the joy and rejoicing of my heart."
(Jer. xv. 16.)
Mark also the connection between the religion of the heart and of the
lips. Keep it within thee. "Let this word dwell in your heart;" and
how graceful will be the furniture of the lips, fitting them to speak with
natural simplicity, and suitable application!4 When "the heart is
inditing a good matter, the tongue" is as "the pen of a ready writer."
(Ps. xlv. 1.) It becomes "as choice silver." The words are fitted like
a string of rich and precious pearls.'* "The lips of the righteous feed
many."5 Yet the words will be but little fitted in the lips,6 "where
there is no treasure in the heart." Never let the mouth attempt to
"speak of wisdom," until "the meditation of the heart has been of
understanding." (Ps. xlix. 3.)
But how powerless are even the words of wisdom without personal appli-
cation! Let each for a while isolate himself from his fellow-men, and
be alone with God, under the clear, searching light of his word. If
prayer be cold; graces be languid, privileges be clouded, and profession
unfruitful, is it not because religion has been taken up in the gross,
without immediate personal contact with the truth of God? O my
soul, the message of God is to thee, even to thee†--this, day. "To-day,
while it is called to-day,"7 welcome his voice with reverential joy.
"Take fast hold of his instruction, for it is thy life." (Chap. iv. 13.)
That thy trust may be in the Lord; that thou mayest claim thine interest it:
in him; that thou mightest seal his troth upon thine heart--he hath
made it known to thee, even to thee. Believe, love, obey; be happy here,
and for eternity. And who can doubt the excellency of the things that are
written, so rich in counsel and knowledge--'words fit for a prince to
speak, and the best man in the world to hear?'‡ Such free, such
pleading, invitations!8 Such deep manifestations of the divine
counsels!9 Such wise, earnest, parental warning against sin!10 Such
encouraging exhibitions of the service of God!11 Such a minute and
practical standard for relative life and social obligation!12
But let us not forget the great end of this Revelation--that we may
know the certainty of the things; that we may give an answer concerning
1 Chap. vi. 21; vii. 1, with ii. 10. 2 Chap. iii. 18.
3 Chap. xxiv. 13, 14. Ps. xix. 10; cxix. 103. 4 Ps. cxix. 171; Matt. xii. 34. Col. ill. 16.
5 Chap. x. 21. Comp. xv. 23; xvi. 21; xxv. 11. 6 Chap. xxvi. 7, 9.
7 Heb. iii. 13; iv. 7, with Ps. xcv. 7. 8 Chap. i. viii. ix. 9 Chap. viii.
10 Chap vi. vii 11Chap. iii. 12 Chap. x.-xxii.
*Diodati.
† See the same emphatic reduplication, chap. xxiii. 15. ‡ Chap. viii. 6. Scott in loco.
418 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
our confidence. The Gospel itself was written with a special reference
to this important end.1 Yet this confidence is a Divine attainment.
"The word must come with power, and with the Holy Ghost," in order
to come "with much assurance." (1 Thess. i.5.) That cannot be a
sound faith, which does not extend to the whole of the testimony.
And even a general admission of the authority of the whole, without
an individual application, would, if carefully analyzed, prove to be a
want of cordial reception of any part of the revelation. A lodgment
in the heart can alone bring that full conviction--"Now we believe,
not because of thy saying; for we have heard him ourselves."
(John, iv. 42.)
Doubts may arise as to the integrity of the foundation. But a
candid and intelligent survey of the external evidence would satisfy all
reasonable minds.* And a fair trial for ourselves would confirm the
mass of proof with all the weight of internal evidences. Far better to
make the trial at once, than to paralyze the modicum of remaining
strength by unreasonable doubtings. The Bible exhibits a divinely-
appointed remedy commensurate with man's infinite distress, and
accepted of God in its power and prevalence. Let this at least
encourage the effort to fit our case to the remedy, and to apply the
remedy to our case. There may be shaking in the exercise, but not in
the foundation, of our confidence.
No further proof can be expected. None, in fact, could be given,
save a voice from heaven; which the busy enemy, working upon the
imagination, would readily convert into a vehicle of doubt. Actual
demonstration would leave no room for faith, which is clearly man's
discipline in the present dispensation; humbling him in the conscious-
ness of his ignorance and his dependence upon God. We have only
therefore thankfully to receive, and diligently to improve, the sufficient
evidence vouchsafed to us. Paley has given us a golden maxim of
Christian philosophy; when he defines the fortitude of understanding
to consist 'in not suffering what we do know to be disturbed and shaken by
what we do not know.'† To delay, therefore, "the obedience of faith"
(Rom. xvi. 26), until we shall have solved all the ten thousand objections
of a proud infidelity, is to waste the urgent responsibilities of the pre-
sent moment in an unwarranted expectation of light, which was never
intended to be given. Perhaps time was, when these questions were
welcome, nurtured by pride or sensuality; rather insinuated, than for-
mally presented. Simplicity was revolting. Imagination was in the
stead of faith, not auxiliary to it. But the tossings of the mind in
1 Luke, i. 1-4; 2 Pet. i. 15, 16.
*See Dr. ALEXANDER'S Canon of the Old and New Testament Scriptures Ascertained--a
valuable volume from America--reprinted in London.
† See his Natural Theology, Chap. v.
CHAP. XXII. 22, 23. 419
speculative uncertainty have been ordained to enhance the value of a
soundly-assured confidence.
Indeed the importance of such a confidence cannot be over-esti-
mated. It constitutes the weight and effectiveness of the sacred office.
"The priest's lips keep knowledge, and they shall seek the law at his
mouth, as the messenger of the Lord of Hosts." (Mal. ii. 7.) But except
he know himself the certainty of the words of truth, how can he answer the
words of truth to them that send unto him? Scarcely less necessary is it,
for the Christian, that he may" be ready always to give an answer to
everyone that asketh him a reason of the hope that is in him." (1 Pet.
iii. 15.) Temporary scepticism may be a chastisement of a disputatious
spirit; but prayer, and humility, with all its attendant graces, will
ultimately lead to Christian establishment. Thus shall we be preserved
from the fearful, but alas! too prevalent, danger, of receiving the tradi-
tions of men in the stead, and with the authority, of the testimony of
God. Ours will not be a blind Romish faith in the priests or in the
Church, but alone "in the law and the testimony;"1 "standing not in
the wisdom of men, but in the power of God;"2 stamped by the impress
of the Spirit, as "the witness in ourselves."3 No power of Satan or his
emissaries will drive us permanently from this stronghold. We "know
whom" and what "we have believed" (2 Tim. i. 12), and "testify," for
the support of our weaker brethren, "that this is the true grace of God
wherein we stand." (1 Pet. v. 12.)
22, 23. Rob not the poor, because he is poor: neither oppress the afflicted in
the gate: for the Lord will plead their cause, and spoil the soul of those
that spoiled them.
Perhaps after so solemn an exhortation, we might have expected
something more important. Yet what can be more important than the
law of love, and to rebuke the breaches of that law? Robbery and
oppression, under any circumstances, are a breach of the commandment.
(Exod. xx. 15.) But to rob the poor, because he is poor, and has no
means of protection, is a cowardly aggravation of the sin. (2 Sam. xii.
1-6.) Much more base is it to oppress the afflicted in the gate--the place
of judgment4--to make his only refuge a market for bribery,5 and to
pervert the sacred authority of God given for his protection.6 God is
most resisted in wronging those who cannot resist or defend them-
selves. 'The threatenings of God against the robbers of the poor are
sometimes laughed at by the rich and great. But they will find them
in due time to be awful realities.'* 'Weak though they be, they have
1 Isa. viii. 20. Acts, xvii. 11. 2 1 Cor. ii. 5. 3 1 John, v. 10; ii.20, 27.
4 Ruth, iv. 1. 2 Sam. xv. 2; xix. 8. Job, v. 4. Amos, v. 15.
5 Exod. xxiii. 6. Amos, v. 12. 6 Ps. lxxxii. 4. Comp. lxxii. 1-4.
* Lawson on Verse 16.
420 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
a strong one to take their part.* He will plead their cause. And woe
to the man, against whom he pleads. "What mean ye"--demands the
poor man's pleader--"that ye beat my people to pieces, and grind the
face of the poor?"1
The accumulation of divine vengeance is heaped upon this sin.2
Ahab's judgment testified to the fearful spoiling of those who spoil the
poor.3 The captivity in Babylon was the scourge for this wickedness."
And when the deeds of secrecy shall be brought to light, how black
will be the catalogue of sins of oppression! How tremendous the judg-
ments of the oppressor!5 Meanwhile let the poor commit himself to his
God;6 yea, take up the song of praise,7 in the confidence that the
Divine pleader will "maintain his cause,"8 to the eternal confusion of
his spoilers.
24, 25. Make no friendship with an angry man; and with a furious man
thou shalt not go: lest thou learn his ways, and get a snare to thy soul.
Sin is contagious. Alas! our corrupt constitution predisposes us to
receive it in any form, in which it may be presented to us. The un-
lovely passions of a furious man rather repel than attract.9 But sin
never loses its infectious character. Friendship blinds the eye; and
where there is no light in the mind, no true tenderness in the con-
science, we can see hateful things done by those we love, with blunted
sensibilities. Common intercourse with a furious man is like living in a
house that is on fire. His unreasonable conduct stirs our own tempers.
One fire kindles another. Occasional bursts of passion soon form the
habit. The habit becomes the nature. Thus we learn his ways, and get
a snare to our soul. (Ps. cvi. 35, 36.) How soon does a young person,
living with a proud man, get the mould of his society, and become
imperious and overbearing! (Ecclus. xiii. 1.) Evil ways, especially
when they fall in with our natural temperament, are much sooner
learnt than good, and are much more powerful to "corrupt good man-
ners" (1 Cor. xv. 33), than good manners to amend the evil. We learn
anger easier than meekness. We convey disease, not health. Hence it
is the rule of self-preservation, no less than the rule of God--Make no
friendship with an angry man.
26. Be not thou one of them that strike hands, or of them that are sureties
for debts. 27. If thou hast nothing to pay, why should he take away
thy bed from under thee?
Avoid contention, not only with angry, but with imprudent, perhaps
1 Isa. iii. 15. Comp. chap. xxiii. 10, 11. Jer. 1. 33, 34. 2 Ps. cix. 6, 16.
3 1 Kings, xxi. 18-24. Comp. Isa. xxxiii. 1. Hab. ii. 8.
4 Ezek. xxii. 29-31. Comp. Jer. xxi. 12. 5 Mal. iii. 5. 6 Ps. x. 14.
7 Ib. cix. 30, 31. 8 Ib. cxl. 12. 9 Chap. xxi. 24; xxv 28; xxvii. 4.
*Bp. SANDERSON'S Sermon on 1 Sam. xii. 3.
CHAP. XXII. 28. 421
unprincipled associates. Strike not your hands1 as a surety, without fore-
thought, perhaps without upright principle. Repeated warnings have
been given of this danger.2 Striking hands for a friend is often striking,
and even wounding, our own hearts. The putting your hand to a bill
may be almost signing a warrant for your own execution. At all
events it is a fraud to give security for more than you are worth; pro-
mising what you are unable to perform. The creditor may fairly in
this case proceed to extremities3--not with the debtor (whom he
knows to be worth nothing, and "whom indeed" the law of God pro-
tected4--but with the surety. And why--the wise man asks--
shouldest thou rashly incur beggary and ruin, so as to have the bed
taken from under thee?
There is, however, so much danger of erring in over-caution, and of
indulging selfishness under the cover of prudence, that these whole-
some cautions must be considerately applied. Yet, in "devising liberal
things" (Isa. xxxii. 8), we must combine scrupulous regard to justice
and truth (Philip. iv. 8); else our very charity will prove the scandal,
instead of the glory, of our profession.5 We may "take joyfully the
spoiling of our goods," for the testimony of a good conscience. But as
the fruit of our own rashness and folly, we cannot but take it heavily.
Oh! let our Divine Master be honoured in our profession; by well-
doing "putting to silence the ignorance of foolish men."
28. Remove not the ancient landmark, which thy fathers have set.
Every one has an undoubted right to his own. He must therefore
have the means of knowing and securing his right. Even the heathen
admitted the sacredness of the landmark. The stone or the staple was
honoured as the god, without whose kindly influence every field
would be the subject of contention.† The landmark was protected by
the wise laws of Israel. God himself set the "bounds to the respective
parts of his own world, restricting each part within its proper limits.7
Thus also he distributed the different nations,8 and appointed the
same security for the several allotments of his own people.9 The
ancient landmark stood as the witness and memorial of each man's
rights, which his fathers had set. Its removal therefore was forbidden,
as a selfish and unjust invasion of property,10 included in the curses of
Ebal11 and noted, in subsequent ages, as the forefront of national provo-
cation.12
1 Chap. vi. 1. 2 Ib. verses 1, 2; xi. 15; xvii. 18. 3 Chap. xx. 16.
4 Exod. xxii. 26, 27. Deut. xxiv. 12,13. 5 Rom. XIV. 16. 1 Tim. v. 22. Heb. xii. 13.
61 Pet. ii. 12,15; iii.16. 7 Gen. i. 6-10. Job, xxxviii. 10, 11.
8 Deut. xxxii. 8. 9 Num. xxxiv.
10 Deut. xix. 14. Comp. chap. xxiii. 10. Job, xxiv. 2.
11Dent. xxvii. 17. 12Hos. v.10.
* Heb. x. 34. Henry in loco. † See Ovid, Trist. ii. 630-648.
422 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
All sound expositors* warn us, from this Proverb, to reverence long-
tried and well-established principles, and not rashly to innovate upon
them. Some scorn the ancient landmarks as relics of bye-gone days of
darkness. Impatient of restraint, they want a wider range of wandering,
to indulge either their own prurient appetite for novelties, or the morbid
cravings of others for this unwholesome excitement. (2 Tim. iii. 7;
iv. 3, 4.) Endless divisions and dissensions have been the fruit of this
deadly evil. The right of individual judgment oversteps its legitimate
bounds; and in its licentious exercise "every man" feels justified to
"do" and think "that which is right in his own eyes." (Jud. xxi. 25.)
Rome, on the other hand, charges us with removing the ancient land-
mark of unwritten Tradition, which our fathers have set. We ask--What
right had they to set it up? We do reverence to no unwritten tradi-
tions upon the footing of "the law and the testimony." (Isa. viii. 20.)
We rebut the charge of Antichrist, and contend, upon the broad ground
of historic testimony, that she has removed the ancient landmarks, and sub-
stituted her own in their place; that Protestantism (in principle, though
not in name) is the old religion, and Popery a comparative novelty.†
'We have not removed the ancient landmarks by bringing men back to
the true doctrine, because this, being delivered by God, is the ancient
doctrine, and the landmarks have been subsequently removed by the
subtilty of the devil, and idolatry put in the place of the true worship.‡
Turning to our beloved and venerated Church; the last age wit-
nessed a rude, but by divine mercy an unsuccessful, effort, to root up
her landmarks.§ We have seen a subtle and invidious attempt to
remove them from the place, where our well-instructed fathers have set
them, and fix them nearer Rome; leaving but a narrow boundary of
division between Christ and Antichrist. This is indeed the rooting up
of the foundations of the grace of God, which ought, if need be, to "be
resisted unto blood." (Heb. xii. 4.) The Lord make us "valiant for the
truth," and consistent witnesses of its power!
29. Seest thou a man diligent in his business? he shall stand before kings;
he shall not stand before mean men.
Seest thou a man? He is marked out for a special notice! And
1 Chap. xxvi. 12; xxix. 20.
*Bp. Patrick, Scott, Geier, &c. Romish expositors naturally apply it to their own
traditions. Este quotes the Venerable Bede. See also Corn. a Lapide.
† The historical dates of the distinctive principles of Popery, accredited as articles of
faith are many centuries subsequent to the primitive era. See a valuable tract by Rev.
Thomas Lathbury--'Protestantism the Old Religion, Popery the New.' Also 'Our Pro-
testant Forefathers.' By the Rev. Dr. Gilly--As regards our own church--Mr. Soames's
interesting and elaborate work on the Anglo-Saxon Church.
‡ Melancthon. Comment. 12mo. 1550.
§ The Heathen Association, at Feathers Tavern, supported by men of influence and
dignity, with the avowed object of sweeping away the Creeds, Articles, and Subscriptions.
CHAP. XXIII. 1-3. 423
who is it? A man diligent in his business; quick, ready, actively
improving his time, his talents, his opportunity for his work; like
Henry Martyn, who was known in his college 'as the man who had not
lost an hour.'* A mean sphere is too low for such a man. He shall
stand, as Joseph,1 Nehemiah,2 Daniel--all diligent in their business-
did--before kings. If the letter of the promise be not fulfilled, "the
diligent man will bear rule" in his own sphere.3 Such was the honour
put upon Eliezer's care, forethought and, activity for his master's
interest. (Gen. xxiv.) 'Nobleness of condition is not essential as a
school for nobleness of character. It is delightful to think, that humble
life may be just as rich in moral grace and moral grandeur as the loftier
places in society; that as true a dignity of principle may be earned by
him, who in homeliest drudgery plies his conscientious task, as by him
who stands entrusted with the fortunes of an empire.'†
Diligence, even without godliness, is often the way to worldly
advancement. Pharaoh chose Joseph's brethren, as "men of activity,"
to be rulers of his cattle. (Ib. xlvii. 6.) Jeroboam owed his rise in
Solomon's house to his "industrious" habits. (1 Kings, xi. 28.) But
when a man "serves the Lord in fervency of spirit" (Rom. xii. 11),
thriftfully occupying his own talent for the day of reckoning (Luke,
xix. 13); not only the mean man, but the mighty man of the world, will
be too low for him. He shall stand before the King of Kings with
unspeakable honour, with unclouded acceptance--"Well done! good
and faithful servant; enter thou into the joy of thy Lord." (Matt.
xxv. 21-23.)
And if "the servants of this wise king were happy, which stood con-
tinually before him, and heard his wisdom;" what must be the joy of
standing before the great King, seeing his face, and serving him for
ever!4 "This honour have all his saints." (Ps. cxlix. 9.) "If a man
serve me," saith our gracious Master, "where I am, there shall also my
servant be; if any man serve me, him will my Father honour."
(John, xii. 26.)
CHAPTER XXIII.
1. When thou sittest to eat with a ruler, consider diligently what is before
thee: 2. And put a knife to thy throat, if thou be a man given to
appetite. 3. Be not desirous of his dainties: for they are deceitful
meat.
THE book of God is our rule of practice, not less than of faith. It
enforces religion not only in our religious, but in our natural, actions.
1 Gen. xxxix. 3-6; xli. 42. 2 Neh. i. 11; ii. 1. Dan. vi. 1-3; vi. 28.
3 Chap. xii. 24. Comp. Ecclus. x. 25. 4 1 Kings, x. 8, with Rev. vii. 15; xxii. 3, 4.
*Life, chap. ii. †CHAMMERS' Commercial Discourses, p. 107.
424 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
(1 Cor. x. 31.) It directs in the daily details of common life. Suppose
we are invited, in the way of Providence, to the table of a man of rank
--how wise the caution--Consider diligently what is before thee! Think
where you are; what is the besetting temptation; what impression
your conduct is likely to make. Wantonness of appetite, or levity of
manner, gives a plausible ground of prejudice to the ungodly, or
"stumbling to the weak."1
But after all, ourselves are mainly concerned. May not the luxuries
of the table spread before us stir up disproportionate indulgence? The
rule is plain and urgent. If thou art conscious of being given to appe-
tite, making it thy first object and delight,--bridle it as by violence.
(Matt. xviii. 8,9.) Act as if a knife was at thy throat. Be stern and
resolute with thyself.2 Give no quarter to the lust. Resist every
renewed indulgence. The dainties are deceitful meat, sometimes from
the insincerity of the host;3 always from the disappointment of the
anticipated pleasure. (Eccles. ii. 10, 11.) To use them may be lawful.
To be desirous of them is fearfully dangerous.
Who that knows his own weakness will deem this caution needless?
Alas! was not "the lust of the flesh" the first inlet to that sin, which
has overwhelmed us all? (Gen. iii. 6.) Often has it tarnished a
Christian profession,4 and damped the liveliness of spiritual apprehen-
sions and enjoyments.5 If Christ's disciples, conversant only with mean
and homely fare, needed a caution to "take heed;"6 much more must it
apply to a ruler's table, where everything ministers to the temptation.
It is man's high prerogative to "have dominion over the creature."7
It is his shame therefore, that the creature in any form should have
dominion over him. God gives us our body to feed, not to pamper;
to be the servant, not the master, of the soul. He gives bread for our
necessities,8 man craves "meat for his lust."9 We are to "make pro-
vision" for the wants, not "for the lusts, of the flesh." (Rom. xiii. 14.)
And surely a soul, that "puts on the Lord Jesus Christ," can never
degrade itself to be a purveyor of the flesh. If a heathen could say, 'I
am greater and born to greater things, than to be the servant of my
body'*--is it not a shame for a Christian, born as he is, the heir of an
everlasting crown, to be the slave of his carnal indulgences?
To go as near as we can to the bounds of intemperance, is to incur
imminent danger of exceeding. 'He that takes his full liberty in what
he may, shall repent him.'† Temptation presses hard. Then put the
1 1 Cor. viii. 9. Rom xiv. 21. 2 Verse 31. Ps. cxli. 4. 3 Verses 6-8.
4 1 Cor. xi. 21. Phil. iii. 18. 19. Jude, 12, 13.
5 Gen. xxv. 28; xxvii. 4, with 26-29. 6 Luke, xxi. 34.
7 Gen. i. 26, 28; ix. 2. 8 Matt. vi. 11, 25-33. 9 Ps. lxxviii. 18.
* Seneca.
†Bishop HALL'S Works, viii. 101. 'If I see any dish to tempt my palate, I fear a serpent
in that apple, and would please myself in a wilful denial.'--Ib. Ep. Decad. vi. Ep. i.
CHAP. XXIII. 4, 5. 425
strongest guard at this weak point. 'Curb thy desires, though they be
somewhat importunate, and thou shalt find in time incredible benefit
by it.'* Take the prayer of our Church--'Grant unto us such absti-
nence, that our flesh being subdued unto the spirit, we may ever obey
thy godly motions.'† Connect with it the resolution of one Apostle--
"I keep under my body, and bring it into subjection" (1 Cor. ix. 27)--
and the rule of another--"Add to your faith temperance." (2 Pet. i.
5, 6.) This practical warfare will break the power of many a strong
temptation, and triumph over the flesh gloriously.‡
4. Labour not to be rich; cease from thine own wisdom. 5. Wilt thou set
thine eyes (cause thine eyes to fly, marg.) upon that which is not? for
riches certainly make to themselves wings: they fly away as an eagle
toward heaven.
We have now a warning against covetousness. If riches come from
the blessing of God, receive them thankfully,1 and consecrate them
wisely and freely for him. But to labour to be rich, is the dictate of our
own wisdom, not of that "which is from above." 'Let them be gotten
if they can, and how they can,' without needless scrupulosity.2 Solomon,
however, describes by a beautiful figure their true nature--a mere
nonentity, an illusion--that which is not. Folly indeed then is it to
set the eyes (to cause them to fly, like a ravenous bird upon his prey3)
upon this nullity. One moment it seems to be within reach. The
next it has eluded our grasp, and flown away as an eagle towards
heaven.§
And yet practically to acknowledge the stamp of vanity upon this
idolized treasure, is a lesson not learnt in a day; learnt only in the
school of discipline. The eagerness for the earthly, and the neglect of
the heavenly, object shew, either that eternity is a delusion, or that the
world is mad. For were the things of eternity really believed, would
not the thoughts be fixed, and the heart be filled with them, with but
little time or room for the engrossing vanities of life? As to intrinsic
value, Luther not less truly than boldly declared--that 'the whole
Turkish empire in all its vastness was only a crust, which the great
Father of the family cast to the dogs.' And then--as to abiding, there
is no need to invent wings. Riches make them to themselves. The man
who concentrates all his wisdom, talents, and energy, who sacrifices all
his peace; "rising up early, and late taking rest" (Ps. cxxvii. 2), in
1 Chap. x. 22. Gen. xxxi. 9.
2 Chap. xxviii. 20, 22. Ezek. xxviii. 4, 5. Luke, xvi. 3 Jer. xxii. 17. Hos. ix.11.
* Bp. SANDERSON'S Sermon on Ps. xix. 13.
†Collect for first Sunday in Lent.
‡ Dan. i. 8. Compare Augustine's ingenious and instructive Confessions, book x. c. 31.
§ A frequent Scripture illustration of a speedy flight. Comp. Deut. xxviii. 49. 2 Sam.
i. 23. Lam iv. 19
426 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
the labour after riches, often has been at one stroke deprived of all, just
when he supposed himself to be secure of all. Divine chastisement,1
indolence,2 extravagance,3 injustice,4 robbery,--bring to the lowest
poverty.5 Their longest stay is but a moment. Eternity is at the
door;6 and naked shall we go out of the world, as we came into it.7
Yet even this palpable consciousness fails to teach men the lessons, to
cease from their own wisdom, to seek true substance on earth,8 and in
God's wisdom to lay up enduring "treasures in heaven."9
Here then lies the contrast. The world apprehends realities only
in the objects before them; the Christian only in invisible things.
Therefore if our judgment looks upon the one as a shadow, and the
other as a substance; let us see that we proportion our affections ac-
cordingly; giving the shadow of love to the things of earth, the marrow
and substance of the heart to the things of eternity. Thank our God
for the present possession of "a better and an enduring substance."
(Heb. x. 34.) But are there not moments of rest and indulgence,
when "uncertain riches" become our confidence (1 Tim. vi. 17), and
we need a sharp lesson to remind us, how certainly they make to them-
selves wings, and flee away? Oh! think—Christian--of thy heavenly
birth, thine eternal expectations; what manner of man thou wilt be in
a short moment, when the false pageant shall have given way to the
real manifestation of the Son of God, and thou shalt be on the throne
with him for ever!10 With this glory in prospect, what a degradation
is it to set thine eyes upon a "fashion that passeth away!"*
6, 7. Eat thou not the bread of him that hath an evil eye, neither desire thou
his dainty meats; for as he thinketh in his heart, so is he: Eat and
drink, saith he to thee; but his heart is not with thee. 8. The morsel
which thou hast eaten shalt thou vomit up, and lose thy sweet words.
Kindly intercourse with our neighbours is a part of the courtesies
of life.11 Yet we ought not to entertain the invitation of a niggardly
man, who grudges the very food we eat, or of a deceitful man, whose
1 Gen. xiii. 5-11; xiv. 12. 2 Chap. vi. 9-11. 3 Luke, xv. 12-16.
4 Chap. xx.. 21; xxi. 6. Jam. v. 2, 3. 5 Job, i. 14-11.
6 Luke, xii. 20. 7 Job, i. 21. Ps. xlix. 17. 8 Chap. viii. 18-21.
9 Matt. vi. 20. 10 Philip iv.5. Col. iii. 1-4. 11 Cor. v. 10, 11; x. 21.
* 1 Cor. vii. 29-31. It is a fine remark of a Heathen philosopher--'Nothing can be
called great, which to despise is great. Thus riches, honours, dignities, authorities, and
whatever beside may have the outward pomp of this world's theatre, cannot be to a wise
man pre-eminent blessings, since the contempt of them is a blessing of no mean order.
Indeed those who enjoy them are not so much entitled to admiration, as those who can
look down upon them with a noble superiority of mind.'--LONGIN. De Sublim. sect. vii.
The Roman Satirist adverts to Solon's warning to Croesus, when he refused to admire his
immense riches (a warning despised at the time, but remembered when he was bound to
the stake)--
--Croesum, quem vox justi facunda Solonis
Respicere ad longrae jussit spatia ultima vitae. Juv. x. 274.
CHAP. XXIII. 9 427
friendship is a cloak for selfish purposes. The evil eye will peep through
the covers of his dainty meats, and betray him, in spite of his effort for
concealment. We judge him not by his words; for as he thinketh in
his heart, so is he. And while he saith, Eat and drink, it is but too plain,
that his heart is not with us. (Luke, xi. 37.) "Better is a dinner of
herbs where love is," than his dainty meat. "A poor man is far better
than such a liar."l Every morsel at his table is loathsome; and gladly
would we retract, and lose the sweet words, with which we had unworthily
complimented our host.
No such danger attaches to the invitations of the Gospel. There is
no evil eye,2 no grudging--"Ho, every one that thirsteth, come ye to
the waters." (Isa. lv. 1.) The table is set. The herald is sent to make
the proclamation. (Comp. chap. ix. 2, 3.) Hunger is the only qualifi-
cation. While he saith--"Eat, O friends; yea, drink abundantly, O
beloved" (Cant. v. l),--his whole heart is with us. There are no repent-
ings, no disappointments here. Every taste increases the appetite for
more. And the prospect is near at hand, when we "shall be abun-
dantly" and eternally "satisfied with the fatness of his house." (Ps.
xxxvi. 8; xvi. 11.)
9. Speak not in the ears of a fool: for he will despise the wisdom of thy
words.
Our Lord's rule is to the same purport--"Give not that which is
holy unto the dogs; neither cast ye your pearls before swine, lest they
trample them under foot, and turn again and rend you." (Matt. vii. 6.)
Cast not away your good counsels upon incorrigible sinners. So long
as there is any hope of reclaiming the fool, make every effort for his
precious soul. In the true spirit of our Master, bring the Gospel to the
worst and the most unwilling; and never make the rule of prudence
the excuse for indolence. Yet "there is a time to keep silence, as well
as a time to speak."3 Such a time we shall understand by the trial to
our own spirit. We long to speak in compassion. But self-denial,
not self-indulgence, restrains.4 We have before been warned against
untimely rebuke. (Chap. i. 8.) This caution extends further--Speak
not in the ears of a fool. Such was our Master's silence before Herod.
(Luke, xxiii. 9.) If he would hear, there would be hope. But instead
of being thankful for instruction, he will depise the wisdom of thy words
(Chap. 1. 7), and take occasion from them only to scoff and blaspheme
the more. Many doubtful cases, however, require much wisdom. And
the safe rule will be never to speak without prayer for divine guidance,
and simplicity, and love.
1 Chap. xv. 17; xix. 22. 2 2 Sam. xi. 13; xiii. 26-28.
3 Eccles. iii. 7. Chap. xxvi. 4. 5. 4 Ps. xxxix. 1. 2.
428 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
10, 11. Remove not the old landmark: land enter not into the fields of the
fatherless: for their Redeemer is mighty: he shall plead their cause
with thee.
The general prohibition to remove the old landmark has been before
given. (Chap. xxii. 28.) A special warning, and a powerful reason are
here added. Many would not dare to touch the rich, while they oppress
the poor at their will. But the fields of the fatherless are under Almighty
protection. Not indeed that there is any licence to trespass upon the
rich man's field. But the fatherless having no might, God will plead
with the invader for the wrong done to them, as for a wrong done to
himself, because done to those, whom be undertook to protect. Beware
therefore of arming against yourself the divine vengeance by entering
into it. Helpless they may seem to be. But their Redeemer is mighty;
he shall plead their cause with thee.1 Was the nearest of kin bound to
be the Redeemer of his kinsman's wrongs?2 Adored be the unsearch-
able pity, grace, and condescension of Emmanuel! When he could
not redeem as--God, he became our kinsman, that he might be our
Redeemer!3 And he now bears the endearing title of "the Father of
the fatherless."4 His moral government shews, that "in him they find"
not "mercy"5 only but justice also. (Ps. ciii. 6.) Here is their strong
confidence, when human help is gone.--"The poor committeth himself
unto thee; thou art the helper of the fatherless." (Ib. x. 14, 17, 18.)
"Pure and undefiled religion is" therefore to follow his heavenly
pattern--"to visit the fatherless and widows in their affliction." (Jam.
i. 27.) Special provision was made in the Apostolical ministration for
these friendless objects of Christian help.6 The gospel reflects the
image of Christ, when native selfishness is thus melted away in
sympathizing love.
12. Apply thine heart unto instruction, and thine ears to the words of
knowledge.
The frequent repetition of these counsels,7 implies an humbling
truth, familiar to every day's experience-man's natural revulsion
from Divine instruction, and his inattention to the words of knowledge.
It is well to have these injunctions renewed from time to time. We
all need "precept upon precept, line upon line" (Isa. xxviii. 13); and
that to the very end of our course. The best taught and most advanced
Christian will be most earnest in seeking more instruction, and wilt
most gladly sit at the feet of the Lord's ministers, to hear the words of
knowledge. Here lies the value of the Bible, as the one source of
1 Chap. xxii. 22, 23. Jer. 1. 33, 34. Comp. Exod. xxii. 22-24. Job, xxii. 9, 10; xxxi. 21-23;
xxxiv. 28. Isa. x. 1-3. 2 Lev. xxv. 25. Num. xxxv. 12. Ruth, iii. 12.
3 Heb. ii. 14-16. 4 Ps. lxviii. 5, with 18. 5 Hos. xiv. 3. Pa. cx1vi. 9.
6 Acts, vi. 1. 1 Tim. v. 3-5, 9, 10. 7 Chap. ii. iii. iv. viii. xix. 20.
CHAP. XXIII. 13, 14. 429
instruction, and the alone treasure-house of the words of knowledge. The
simple reference to this standard is the keeping of the soul from Romish
errors, whether on Romish or Protestant ground.
Observe the connection between the application of the heart and of the
ears. (Chap. ii. 2.) The heart open to sound advice or moral precept, is
yet shut to Christ and his doctrine. It is closed up in unbelief, pre-
judice, indifference, and the love of pleasure. A listless heart therefore
produces a careless ear. But when the heart is graciously opened,
softened, and enlightened, the attention of the ear is instantly fixed.1
This indeed is the Lord's Sovereign creation work;2 yet wrought by a
God of order in the use of his own means. A wakened desire brings to
prayer.3 Prayer brings the blessing.4 And precious then is every word
of knowledge, more "than thousands of gold and silver!"5
13. Withhold not correction from the child: for if thou beatest him with the
rod, he shall not die. 14. Thou shalt beat him with the rod, and shalt
deliver his soul from hell.
Christian parents do not always recognize the scriptural standard
of discipline. "Foolishness is bound in the heart" of the parent, no
less than "of the child." "The wild ass's colt" (Job, xi. 12) must
always need its measure of correction. The rule therefore is, notwith-
standing all the pleas of pity and fondness--withhold it not. Do the
work wisely, firmly, lovingly. Persevere notwithstanding apparently
unsuccessful results. Connect it with prayer, faith, and careful in
instruction.
We admit that it is revolting to give pain, and call forth the tears
of those we so tenderly love. But while hearts are what hearts are, it
is not to be supposed that we can train without discipline. If it be
asked--will not gentle means be more effectual? Had this been
God's judgment, as a God of mercy, he would not have provided a
different regimen. Eli tried them, and the sad issue is written for our
instruction.6 'Must I then be cruel to my child?' Nay--God charges
thee with cruelty, if thou withheld correction from him. He "goes on
his own foolishness."7 Except he be restrained, he will die, in his
sin. God has ordained the rod to purge his sins, and so deliver his soul
from hell. What 'parent then, that trembles for the child's eternal
destiny, can withhold correction? Is it not cruel love, that turns away
from painful duty? To suffer sin upon a child, no less than upon a
brother, is tantamount to "hating him in our heart."8 Is it not better
that the flesh should smart, than that the soul should die? Is it no sin
to omit a means of grace, as divinely appointed, as the word and
1 Acts, xvi. 14. 2 Chap. xx. 12. Rev. iii. 7. 3 Ps. cxix. 18; xix. 10.
4 Chap. ii 3-6. 5 Ps. cxix. 14, 72, 127. 6 1 Sam. ii. 23-25; ill. 13.
7 Chap. xx.ii. 15. Eccles. xi.10. 8 Lev. xix. 17, with Chap. xiii. 24.
430 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
the sacraments? Is there no danger of fomenting the native wicked-
ness, and thus becoming accessory to the child's eternal destruction?
What if he should reproach thee throughout eternity, for the neglect
of that timely correction, which might have delivered his soul from hell?
Or even if he be "scarcely saved," may he not charge upon thee much
of his increasing difficulty in the ways of God?
Yet let it not be used at all times. Let remonstrance be first tried.
Our heavenly Father never stirs the rod with his children, if his gentle
voice of instruction prevail. Continual finding fault; applying correction
to every slip of childish trifling or troublesome thoughtlessness, would
soon bring a callous deadness to all sense of shame. Let it be reserved,
at least in its more serious forms, for wilfulness. It is medicine, not
food; the remedy for the occasional diseases of the constitution, not the
daily regimen for life and nourishment. And to convert medicine into
daily food, gradually destroys its remedial qualities.
Some parents, indeed, use nothing but correction. They indulge
their own passions at the expense of their less guilty children. Unlike
our Heavenly Father, they afflict and grieve their children willingly;"1
to vent their own anger, not to subdue their children's sins. Self-
recollection is of great moment. 'Am I about to correct for my child's
good?' An intemperate use of this Scriptural ordinance brings dis-
credit upon its efficacy, and sows the seed of much bitter fruit. Children
become hardened under an iron rod. Sternness and severity of manner
close up their hearts. It is most dangerous to make them afraid of us.
A spirit of bondage and concealment is engendered, often leading to a
lie; sowing the seed of hypocrisy--nay, sometimes of disgust, and
even of Hatred, towards their unreasonable parents. 'If parents,'--said
a wise and godly father--'would not correct their children except in a
praying frame, when they can "lift up their hands without wrath," it
would neither provoke God nor them.'*
Other parents freely threaten the rod, yet withhold it. It was only
meant to frighten. It soon becomes all empty and powerless sound.
This again contravenes our Great Exemplar. His threatenings are not
vain words. If his children will not turn, they will find them faithful
and true to their cost. This threatening play is solemn trifling with
truth; teaching children by example, what they had learnt from the
womb (Ps. lviii. 3), to "speak lies." Let our words be considerate, but
certain. Let our children know, that they must not trifle either with
them or with us. The firmness of truthful discipline alone can convey
a wholesome influence. Any defect here is a serious injury.
We must learn however not to expect too much from our children;
nor to be unduly depressed by their naughtiness. Yet we must not
1 Contrast Lam. iii. 33. Heb. xii. 10.
* Matthew HENRY'S Life, chap. xiii.
CHAP. XXIII. 15, 16. 431
wink at their sinful follies. We must love them not less, but better.
And because we love them, we must not withhold when needed correc-
tion from them. More painful is the work to ourselves, than to them.
Most humbling is it. For since the corrupt root produces the poisoned
sap in the bud, what else is it but the correction of our own sin? Yet
though "no chastening for the present be joyous, but rather grievous"
(Heb. xii. 11); when given in prayer, in wisdom, and in faith, the
saving blessing will be vouchsafed.* 'Lord, do thou be pleased to
strike in with every stroke, that the rod of correction may be a rod of
instruction.'† 'It is a rare soul '--said good Bishop Hall--'that can
be kept in constant order without smarting remedies. I confess, mine
cannot. How wild had I run, if the rod had not been over me! Every
man can say, he thanks God for his ease. For me, I bless God for my
trouble.'‡
15. My son, if thine heart be wise, my heart shall rejoice, even, mine (I will
rejoice, marg.) 16. Yea, my reins shall rejoice, when thy lips speak
right things.
The wise man now turns from parents, and addresses himself
must tenderly to children (chap. i. 8, 10, 15, &c.), perhaps to his own
child. What Christian parent but responds? Could we be happy to
see our child honoured in the world, admired, talented, prosperous,
without godliness? If thine heart be wise--this is the spring of pa-
rental joy--my heart shall rejoice, even mine. His health, his comfort,
his welfare, is inexpressibly dear to us. But while we watch over the
casket, it is the jewel that we mainly value. The love of our child's
soul is the life and soul of parental love.§ None but a parent knows
the heart of a parent. None but a Christian parent knows the yearning
anxiety, the many tears, prayers, and "travailing in birth again" for the
soul of a beloved child; or the fervour of joy and praise, when the first
budding of heavenly wisdom bursts to view.|| The sight brings joy
into the innermost depths of the bosom.¶ Parents, who sympathize
not with these sensations, and with whom Solomon's language is
*Comp. 1 Cor. v. 5; xi. 32. The Heathen Philosopher adverts to the subject of
punishments as an instrument of healing produced by means apparently contrary--
ARIST. Eth. ii. 3.
† SWINNOCK'S Christian Man's Calling, ii. 35.
‡ Silent Thoughts, xxi.
§ See Solomon's own education, chap. iv. 3, 4.
|| Verses 24, 25; x. 1; xv. 20; xxix. 8. ‘Lord, let thy blessing so accompany my
endeavour' (were the pleadings of a godly parent) that all my sons may be Benaiahs
(the Lord's building); and then they will he all Abners (their Father's light); and
that all my daughters may be Bethiahs (the Lord's daughters); and then they will be
all Abigails (their Father's joy).'--SWINNOCK'S Christian Man's Calling, ii. 29, 30.
¶The reins, as deeply seated in the body, are a frequent scriptural illustration of the
inner thoughts and affections. Ps. xvi. 7; xxvi. 2. Jer. xii. 2. Lam. iii. 13.
432 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
unfelt and uninteresting, realize neither their responsibilities nor their
privileges.
Greatly is the parent's joy heightened to hear his son's lips speaking
right things; to see him, in a day of apostacy and unstable profession,
openly standing forth on the Lord's side; "asking for the old paths
of rest," now that "the highways are" too often "unoccupied, and the
travellers walking through bye-ways."l
But surely this child, now the father's joy, is one, from whom correc-
tion has not been withheld. The "foolishness bound in his heart has thus
been driven from him;"2 and its place graciously supplied by a wise
heart--a witness to the subsequent rule and promise--"Correct thy son,
and he shall give thee rest." (Chap. xxix. 17.)
And are not ministers also partakers of this parental joy? "Paul
the aged" was filled with prayerful delight in his "beloved son in the
faith."3 The thriving churches were "his glory and joy."4 Another
Apostle "had no greater joy, than to hear that his children walked in
truth."5 And may we not rise higher, and adore the manifestation of
this joy in heaven6--yea, in the bosom of God himself over the return
of his corrected child to a wise heart--"This my son was dead, and is
alive again; he "was lost and is found?" (Ib. verses 13-24.)
17. Let not thine heart envy sinners: but be thou in the fear of the Lord
all the day long. 18. For surely there is an end; and thine expectation
shall not be cut off.
Exactly similar is David's counsel. He sets out the end, and shews
how little reason we have to envy sinners, and what 'is the true path of
duty and quietness.7 He was, however, himself, for a while shaken by
this temptation. And though he did not envy sinners, so as to covet
their worldly prosperity; yet comparing their condition with his own
‘chastening,' "it was too painful for the Psalmist until he went into the
sanctuary of God. Then understood he their end,"* and learned to rest
in the assurance--Thine expectation shall not be cut off.
What then is the safeguard proposed? Just what the Psalmist had
found so effective--"being continually with his God"(Ps. lxxiii.23)--
the very spirit of the rule--Be in the fear of God all the day long. Here
he gathered confidence for both worlds--"Thou shalt guide me with
thy counsel, and afterwards receive me to glory." (Th. lxxiii. 24.) With
such a portion both for time and for eternity, could his heart then envy
sinners? "I have set the Lord alway before me. Thou wilt shew me the
1 Judg. v. 6. Jer. vi. 16. 2 Chap. xxii. 15; xxix. 15. 3 2 Tim. i. 2-5.
4 1 Thess. ii. 19, 20; in. 8, 9. 5 2 John, 4. 8 John, 4. 6 Luke, xv. 7, 10.
7 Ps. xxxvii 1-9, 35, 36. Comp. chap. xxiv. 1, 2, 19, 20.
* Ps. lxxiii. 8, 17. Even a heathen discovered the power of this temptation. Socrates,
being asked,--What was most troublesome to good men? answered--'The prosperity of
the wicked.'
CHAP. XXIII. 19. 433
path of life, the fulness of everlasting joy." (Ps. xvi. 8-11.) What more
could he desire? His heart, instead of envying sinners, would be drawn
out in compassionate pleading for them, who have no portion but a
dying world (Ib. xvii. 14. Luke, xvi. 25); no expectation, but that which
shall quickly be cut off. (Chap. xxiv. 20.)
But this habitual fear of the Lord is nothing separate from common
life. It gives to it a holy character. It makes all its minute details
not only consistent with, but component parts of, godliness. Acts of
kindliness are "done after a godly sort." (3 John, 5, 6.) Instead of one
duty thrusting out another, all are "done heartily, as to the Lord, and
not unto man." (Eph. vi. 6. Col. iii. 23.) Some professors confine their
religion to extraordinary occasions. But Elijah seems to have been con-
tent to await his translation in his ordinary course of work (2 Kings, ii.
1-12); an example that may teach us to lay the greater stress upon
the daily and habitual, not the extraordinary, service. Others are satis-
fied with a periodical religion; as if it was rather a rapture or an occa-
sional impulse, than a habit. But if we are to engage in morning and
evening devotions, we are also to "wait upon the Lord all the day."
(Ps. xxv. 5.) If we are to enjoy our Sabbath privileges, we are also to
"abide in our weekly calling with God."1 Thus the character of a
servant of God is maintained--"devoted to his fear." (Ps. cxix. 38.)
In this Christian walk with God, all is safe for eternity. The hope
of the ungodly,2 the hypocrite,3 the worldling," shall perish. But thine
expectation shall not be cut off.5 It is "a hope that maketh not ashamed."6
It is grounded upon "the immutability of God's counsels," and "entereth
into that within the vail."7 Surely there is an end for this. If the cross
be heavy, thou hast but a little time to bear it. If the way be weari-
some to the flesh, the end drawing nearer will abundantly compensate.*
If the light be not visible, "it is sown" for thee. (Ps. xcvii. 11.) And in
waiting for the glorious harvest--"here is the patience and faith of the
saints." (Rev. xiii. 10.) Meanwhile judge not the Lord hastily, by
sense and feeling. Hold fast by God's word. Give time to his provi-
dence to explain itself. Pronounce nothing upon an unfinished work.
Wait, and "see the end of the Lord." "I know the thoughts that I
think towards you, saith the Lord; thoughts of peace, and not of evil,
to give you an expected end. What I do thou knowest not now; but
thou shalt know"--and not only know--but approve "hereafter."8
19. Hear thou, my son, and be wise, and guide thine heart in the way.
20. Be not among wine-bibbers; among riotous eaters of flesh: 21. For
1 Ps. lxxxiv. with 1 Cor. vii. 20, 24. 2 Chap. xi 7. 3 Job, viii. 13, 14.
4 Luke, xii. 19. 20. 5 Chap. xxiv. 14. Ps. ix. 18. Eccles. viii. 12. Philip. i. 20.
6 Rom. v. 5. 7 Heb. vi. 17-19.
8 Jam. v. 11. Jer. .xxix. 11. John, xiii. 7.
* 'O passi graviora! dabit Deus his quoque finem.'--VIRG. AEn. i. 199.
434 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
the drunkard and the glutton shall come to poverty: and drowsiness
shall clothe a man with rags.
These repeated exhortations to hear, remind us of our Lord's earnest
and affectionate call--"Who hath ears to hear, let him hear."
(Matt. xi. 15; xiii. 9.) They shew the great importance of hearing, as
the first step to be wise. For wisdom, no less than "faith, cometh by
hearing." (Rom. x. 17, with chap. i. 5.) "Guide thine heart in the way."
The promise makes this call effectual--"I lead in the way of righteous-
ness, in the midst of the paths or judgment." (Chap. viii. 20.)
But the call specially warns against a besetting temptation. God's
creature abuses his gifts.1 Wine becomes the occasion of excess. Riot-
ous eaters of the flesh degrade the soul, as the slave of the body. Not
only be not one of them, but be not amongst them. (Chap. xxviii. 7.)
Can we be among the leprous without infection? May we not get a
stain, that will not easily be wiped out? Do we not insensibly receive
the mould of our society?2 Did not Lot probably learn his dreadful
wickedness by contact with the ungodly?3 The truest love is not to
sit down with them, but to labour for their conversion; and, if this be
ineffectual, to avoid them. Young people! remember--'Tinder is not
apter to take fire, wax the impression of the seal, paper the ink, than
youth to receive the impression of wickedness.'* Fancy not that the
enemy intends even your present happiness. His malice holds out a
poisoned bait. Poverty and shame are the temporal fruits.4 But the
eternal ruin of his deluded victims is his far more deadly design.
Noah as a wine-bibber,5 and the Corinthian converts, profaning the
sacred feast by drunkenness and gluttony,6 warn the man of God--
"Watch and pray, that ye enter not into temptation." (Matt. xxvi. 41.)
Always however evangelize these parental warnings with the principles
of the Gospel. "Walk not in rioting and drunkenness; but put ye on the
Lord Jesus Christ"--the only effectual cover from the wantonness of
the flesh.--" Having these promises, dearly beloved, let us cleanse our-
selves from all filthiness of the flesh and spirit."7
22. Hearken unto thy father that begat thee, and despise not thy mother
when she is old.
"We have had fathers of our flesh, and we gave them reverence."
(Heb. xii. 9.) Such is the rule of nature. Such is the law of God.8
The wise man here enforces its special application to an aged parent--
1 Isa. v. 11, 12, 22; xxii. 13. Hab. ii. 5, with Ps. civ. 14, 15. 1 Tim iv. 3-5.
2 Ps. cvi. 35. Comp. Matt. xxiv. 49. 3 Gen. xix. 30-32, with Ezek. xvi. 49, 50.
4 Chap. vi. 11; xx. 13; xxi. 17. Isa. xxviii. 1-3. Joel, i. 5. Luke, xv. 13-16.
5 Gen. ix. 20, 21. 6 1 Cor. xi. 21.
7 Rom. xiii. 13, 14. 2 Cor. vii 1.
8 Exod. xx. 12. Lev. xix. 3. Eph. vi. 1, 2. Comp. chap i. 8; vi. 20.
* GREENHILL on Ezek. xix. 4.
CHAP. XXII. 22. 435
thy mother when she is old. Then surely love and reverence are doubly
due. 'A thing comely and pleasant to see'--says Bishop Hall--'and
worthy of honour from the beholder, is a child understanding the eye of
his parent.'* More lovely still is this filial exercise, when the age of the
child has naturally loosened the restraints of authority. Respect is then
the effect of principle and gratitude. The child no more feels at liberty
to despise his parent's wishes, than if he were subject to their early dis-
cipline. The Scripture examples are beautiful patterns for our imita-
tion. Isaac with Abraham;l Jacob with both his parents;2 Joseph's
deference to his aged father, and desiring his blessing on his own
children;3 Moses with his father-in-law;4 Ruth with her mother-in-law;5
Solomon in the grandeur of royalty paying respect to his mother;6 the
Rechabites hearkening to their deceased father's command;7 and--
above all the rest--the Saviour's tender care for his mother in his own
dymg agonies.†
The contrary conduct is marked with the most awful reprobation.8
It forms a part of the dark mass of heathen depravity,9 and one of the
signs of the "perilous times in the last days." (2 Tim. iii. 1, 2.) The
spectacle will ever bring a blot upon the child's name and character.
(Chap. xix. 26.)
But is not this trial of neglect the Lord's chastening of foolish fond-
ness of our children when young, of our unwise treatment, or incon-
sistent conduct? Sinful indulgence will always in the end make us
despised in their eyes, and lay our authority in the dust for them to
trample under foot. Christian dignity and consistency, on the other
hand, command respect, even where they fall of producing the full
practical results. (Chap. xxxi. 28.) Oh! what need have we of Divine
grace and wisdom, honourably to maintain parental responsibility
23. Buy the truth, and sell it not: also wisdom and instruction, and under-
standing. 24. The father of the righteous shall greatly rejoice: and
he that begetteth a wise child shall have joy of him. 25. Thy father
and thy mother shall be glad, and she that bare thee shall rejoice.
This is the merchant-man, who purchased the "pearl of great price
at the cost of all that he had." (Matt. xiii. 45, 46.) The blessing can
indeed only be "bought without price." (Isa.lv. 1.) It is as free, as it
1 Gen. xxii. 9. 2 Gen. xxviii. 1-5. 3 Gen. xlviii. 9-14.
4 Exod. xviii. 13-24. 5 Ruth, 11. 22, 23. 6 1 Kings, 11. 19.
7 Jer. xxxv. 6. 8 Chap. xx. 20; xxx. 17. Deut. xxi. 18-21; xxvii. 16. Isa. iii. 5
9 Rom. 1. 30.
* Holy Observations, v.
† John, xix. 26,27. Dr. Taylor's 'godly exhortation to his son,' as Foxe writes in his
exquisite Biography, 'is worthy of all youth to be marked'--'When thy mother is waxed
old, forsake her not; but provide for her to thy power, and see that she lack nothing, for
so will God, bless thee, give thee long life upon earth, and prosperity, which I pray God to
grant thee. Vol. Vl. 692. Comp. Ecclus. iii. 8-14.
436 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
is precious. But the figure sets out the importance of gaining it at
any cost. First, however, let us satisfy ourselves that the seller is no
deceiver; that he is perfectly upright in his dealings. "Buy of me"
(Rev. iii. 18)--saith the Saviour. This sets the matter at rest. If we
do not really want the article, we shall not pay much heed to the
injunction. "Buy those things that ye have need of"1--is the rule.
Ponder also its inestimable value. It is the truth, the only means of
salvation,2 the only deliverance from sin,3 the only principle of holi-
ness,4 the "One thing needful."5 Place the blessing fully in view-
"The excellency of the knowledge of Christ Jesus our Lord--that I may
win Christ, and be found in him--that I might attain unto the resurrec-
tion of the dead."6 We cannot be defrauded in the purchase. It is a
cheap purchase at any price. (Chap. iii. 15.) The "lover of pleasure"
values highly the baubles of Vanity Fair. But Bunyan beautifully
describes the pilgrims, answering the sneering reproach--'What will
you buy?' They lifted up their eyes above--'We will buy the truth.'
But, like the well-practised merchant, we must secure the genuine
article. Many a counterfeit article is put forth.7 Bring everything
"to God's standard."8 That which brings wisdom, instruction, and
understanding, is the truth of God.
Then having ascertained its riches and its purity--not only wish
for it, gaze at it, commend it; but buy the truth. Not only bid, make
an offer; but strike the agreement. Make it thine. The man did not
wish for the field with the "hidden treasure;" but he "sold all that he
had, and bought it." And let thy purchase be the whole truth. Every
particle, the very filings of the gold, are invaluable--"Set thine heart
upon all that I shall shew thee." (Ezek. xl. 4.) Many are content to
be at some pains, but they stop short of the prize. (2 Tim. iii. 7.)
Shrink not from the full price; as did Herod;9 the young ruler;10
Agrippa;11 and therefore they bought it not. Moses gave up for it
"the treasures of Egypt;"12 Paul, his Jewish privileges, and high
reputation.13 The Hebrews "took joyfully the spoiling of their
goods."14 The martyrs "loved not their lives unto the death."15 And
who of these repented of the costly purchase?
Having thus made the purchase, shall we part with it? Should
we not find it all we expected; or should we after all discover that we
did not want it, we should be glad to be rid of it. Many an estate has
been bought, and sold again, from disappointed expectations. But
though usually what we have bought, we are at liberty to sell; here is
1 John, xiii. 29. 2 1 Tim. ii. 4. 3 John, viii. 32. 2 Tim. ii. 25, 26.
4 John, xvii. 17. 5 Luke, x. 42. 6 Philip. iii. 8-11.
7 2 Cor. xi. 3, 14. Gal. i. 6, 7. 8 1 Thess. v, 21. 1 John, iv. 1. Isa. viii. 20.
9 Mark, vi. 17-20. 10 Luke, xviii. 23. 11 Acts, xxvi. 28.
12 Heb. xi. 24-26. 13 Philip. iii. 4-8. 14 Heb. x. 34.
15 Rev. xii. 11. Acts, xx. 23, 24.
CHAP. XXIII. 26-28. 437
a command to buy, but a prohibition to sell. And a merciful pro-
hibition it is ! For those who sell the truth, sell their own souls with
it. And "what shall it profit a man, if he shall gain the whole world,
and lose his own soul!" (Matt. xvi. 26.) Can we look at Esau,l Judas,2
Demas3 selling their treasure for a thing of nought, without sorrowful
trembling? Yet their apostacy clearly proved, that they had never
"received the truth in the love of it:"4 that it was some shining
shadow, merely notional and speculative; never engrafted in their
hearts. Having therefore never felt the power, or known its price,
they could sell it for this world's pleasure, or for the more flattering
delusions of their own hearts. Reader: have you ever known that
apprehension of Divine Truth, that has made it in your eyes worth
every sacrifice to buy it? No one--be assured--who has really
bought it, will ever be willing to sell it.
A joyous sight it is to see children realizing their parents' fondest
hopes; proving "a wise heart," (Verses 15, 16) by a diligent enquiry
about this only gainful purchase; not content with receiving it by
education, but making the contract for themselves; discovering that
religion must be a personal concern, an individual transaction between
God and their own souls. Cause is it indeed for greatly rejoicing, to see
our righteous children thus enriched for eternity, in possession of a
treasure which they can never spend, and which no troubles, no changes,
no malice of hell, can touch. If the godly parents have had a seed-time
of tears, these precious sheaves of joy are an abundant recompense.5
The stern exclusive system which recognises little, save the divine
purpose and sovereignty, annuls, or at least enervates, the respon-
sibility of means, and thus loses the privilege both of trusting the
promise, and witnessing its accomplishment. Will not the child feel
the constraining obligation to fulfil his parent's rejoicing thus vividly
pourtrayed? Most unnatural must he be, if his heart does not glow
with the desire thus to repay his father's anxious love, and the yearning
tenderness of her that bare him. They ask no other requital, than the
joy and gladness of seeing a righteous and a wise son. Selfishness itself
might supply a motive; since parental gladness is the child's own joy,
walking in "wisdom's ways of pleasantness and peace."
26. My son, give me thine heart, and let thine eyes observe my ways. 27.
For a whore is a deep ditch; and a strange woman is a narrow
28. She also lieth in wait as for a prey, and increaseth the transgressors
among men.
Solomon here manifestly rises above himself, and speaks in the
name and person of Divine Wisdom. (Chap. 1. 20; viii. 1.) For who
1 Heb. xii. 16, 17. 2 Matt. xxvii. 3-5. 3 2 Tim. iv. 10.
4Thess. ii. 10. 1 John, ii.19 5 Ps cxxvi 6. Comp. chap. x. 1; xv. 20. Contrast xvii. 25.
438 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
else could claim the gift of the heart--the work of his own hands, the
purchase of his own blood? My son. Such is the relationship which
God acknowledges; including every blessing which he can give, and
all the obedience that he can claim. No obedience can be without
the believing and practical acknowledgment of this relation--My son;
not a stranger; not an enemy; not a slave, but a son! invited to return.
An amnesty of the past, a perpetual jubilee of joy, awaits thee at thy
Father's house.
Many are the claimants for the heart. Heaven and hell contend for it.
The world with its riches, honours, and pleasures; and science with
its more plausible charms--cries--Give me thine heart. Nay, even
Satan dares to put in a loud and urgent plea--"If thou wilt worship
me, all shall be thine." (Luke, iv. 7.) The loving Father calls--My
son, give me thine heart. The answer too often is--'I have no heart
for God. It is engaged to the world. I cannot make up my mind to
be religious, at least not yet.' And so, even where there is no wicked-
ness--nay, perhaps even some plausible semblance of piety, "the
darling is given to the lion;" the heart to the murderer. Not one is
naturally ready with the gift to him, who alone deserves it. A few
only hearken in a moment of conviction; and then, not till they have
proved to their cost the falsehood and disappointment of all other
claimants.
An honour indeed he puts upon his creatures, in condescending to
receive as a gift, what is his most rightful debt, and what he might at
any moment command for himself. But his call wakens his child to
recollection and conscious dependence. It is the Father's striving
with his child's will. It is the test of his child's obedience. It is a
pointed arrow of conviction to his conscience for wilful resistance to
his call; the only hindrance to his giving his heart being, that he has
already given it to claimants infinitely unworthy of it. 'My guilt is
damnable'--exclaimed an humbled saint--'in withholding my heart;
because I know and believe his love, and what Christ has done to gain
my consent--to what?--my own happiness.'*
And yet this call to many is utterly without interest, as if it were
to lay up a treasure in the clouds. To others it is rather like the
funeral knell than a jubilee sound; as if we were called to surrender
all our pleasures, instead of adding to them one of pre-eminent value
and pervading influence. Indeed most truly is our happiness bound
up in this gracious command. For what else can 'fill up the aching
void' within, but "the love of God shed abroad in the heart by the
Holy Ghost?" (Rom. v. 5.) Created objects only seem to widen the
chasm. If our appetite is satisfied, it is but for a moment; while every
irritation increaees the general dissatisfaction. The heart, wilfully
*ADAMS' Private Thoughts.
CHAP. XXIII. 26-28. 439
remaining at a distance from God, can find its home only in a land of
shadows. It grasps nothing solidly; while its incessant conflict with
conscience is, "the troubled sea, which cannot rest." (Isa. lvii. 20.)
Little indeed is it thought, who demands the gift. It is claimed by
the ever-blessed God, whose smile is heaven, whose frown is hell. To
rise to a higher obligation--it is claimed by Him, whose love brought
him from the throne of glory to the accursed cross; whose grace will
cast out none that come to him; who will find a place for his bitterest
enemies near to his heart; who will be to each of them all that a lost
sinner, with an immortal soul, can need; who "is able to save to the
uttermost;" who has saved countless myriads; who is ready--Sinner!
ponder it well--to save thee.
But remember--he will never abate one atom of his full requi-
sitions. He asks Dot for magnificent temples, costly sacrifices, pom-
pous ceremonials, but for the spiritual worship of the heart.1 He
demands, not the hands, the feet, the tongue, the ears; but that which
is the moving principle of all the members--the heart.* Give that;
--It is all he desires. Withhold it--He rejects all besides. What
the heart does not do, is as if it were not done at all. The cold for-
mality of a lifeless faith is a dead, not "a living," not therefore a
"reasonable" or acceptable, "service." (Rom. xii. 1.) "How canst
thou say, I love thee, when thine heart is not with me?" (Judg. xvi. 15.)
The man, who gives his heart to the world, rises above all his difficulties,
persevering, resolved, successful. Never can we triumph over the hin-
drances of the gospel without those supports, known only in the full
engagement of the heart to God.
Never will he dispense with this claim of the love of all our heart.2
We must not deal with him as Lot's wife, moving slowly forward,
while the heart is behind;3 or like Orpah, stopping at the very moment
that the cross is to be borne.4 Dream not of dividing the heart with
the world.5 He loves a broken heart. He spurns a divided heart.
Satan will seem to be content with a part; because he knows that, as
God will accept nothing less than all, the whole will thus fall to him.
It is far beneath the Majesty of heaven to possess anything less than
the throne (Matt. x. 37);--a mean throne at best for the Almighty
Sovereign of the universe. But his claims are paramount. And never
are we truly our own, till we unreservedly acknowledge ourselves to be
his. Indeed all false religions in the world are but vain substitutes for
this plain and most happy duty. However plausible the show, if it
1 Isa. lxvi. 1, 2. John, iv. 23, 24. 2 Matt. xxii. 31. 3 Gen. xix. 26.
4 Ruth, i. 14. 5 Matt. vi. 24.
* 'Non caput, non manum, non pedem, non caetera membra; sed omnium membrorum
principium, radicem, et vitae humanae fontem, qui cor est, dari sibi Deus postulat.'--GLASS,
Philolog. Sacr. lib. ii. pars 1. Tract. ii. sect. iii.
440 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
does not lead the heart to God, it is fearful delusion. Whatever prin-
ciples, practices, or society, turn our hearts from God--it is the high-
road of ruin.
And doth he ask his child for his heart; and will he refuse to give
it? Does it open immediately to Satan and the world--yea--even
before they knock? and is the beseeching Father to be excluded?
Are there no "bands of love to draw?" (Hos. xi. 4.) Out of what rock
was it hewn, that it can be proof against the pleadings of Divine
parental love? Canst thou not give it him? Surely hadst thou the
will, thou wouldest have the power too. If thou hast the faintest will,
at least shew though but the feeblest effort. Offer it, though but with
a trembling hand. His hand will meet thine, and take it of thee. The
happiest day of life is now arrived; a day, the recollection of which
will never be tinged with one shade of regret.
If thou hast not done it, do it now. Let there be no half-giving.
To hesitate--to delay--is to refuse. And why should you delay?
Has Satan been so good a Master, that you are reluctant to leave him?
Can you find a better friend than Him, who hath cared so long for you,
than Him who hath died for you? Now then, with the help of the
Divine Spirit, without whom this cannot be done--resolve, decide--
once for all--for ever. But if thou hast done it, do it daily. He is
still the same; still as deserving of your heart as ever. Thou canst not
give it to him too soon or too often. The command does not hale us
(as Saul haled his victims, Acts, viii. 3) to the service of God. The
citadel is not stormed, but it opens its gates. A principle of immortal
energy constrains the heart; yet only by "making it willing." (Ps. cx,
3.) The reluctancy is melted away, and by the power of love the heart
is "compelled to come." (2 Cor. v. 14. Luke, xiv. 23.) What so free
as a gift? And never is the will so free, as when it moves towards
God. Weak as he is, yet the child can testify, that to give his heart is
his first desire; that he never designs or intends anything less; that
he longs for the consuming of every corruption, which hinders the full
surrender. O my God! thy grace alone can enable me. I am
ashamed of the gift. Nothing can be more unworthy. But because it
is the purchase of thy death, and thou callest for it, it is thine own, it
shall be thine. Take it then as it is. Make it what it is not. Keep
it with thyself. Bind it so close to thee with the cords of love, that it
may never cast a wishful look away from thee. Had I a thousand
hearts, all should be thine. Thou alone canst fill it. Thou alone art
worthy of it. Exalt thine own throne in it for ever.
Think how all hangs on this point. Give it; all the blessings of
the gospel are yours. Refuse; you trample them under your feet; you
live a life of base rebellion to your best friend, and of cruel madness to
your own soul; you live without Christ; you will die without hope;
CHAP. XXIII. 26-28. 441
accursed, lost for ever. The command of authority is an invitation of
love--Dwell upon it. Think how right, how reasonable, how winning,
how much it is beyond everything else, how much worth accepting in
spite of every hindrance and objection. How much beyond every
other joy is the delight of giving your heart to the tender compassionate
love of your dying Saviour! And then, having made him the object
of your desires, the sum of all your wishes for happiness and for depen-
dence; be determined to seek, and confident to find all in him, and re-
solute in rejecting every temptation to seek it elsewhere. Having
therefore given your heart, let your eyes observe his ways. (Chap. iv. 23-25.)
Our heart given, gives all the rest. This makes eyes, ears, tongue and
hands, and all, to be holy, as God's peculiar.'* His word will be our
rule;1 His Providence our interpreter.2 The heart, no longer divided,
is now at full liberty for the service. The eyes, no longer wandering,
like "the eyes of a fool, in the ends of the earth" (Chap. XVII. 24), are
now fixed upon an object supremely worthy and abundantly satisfying.
Here also is our power of resistance to the gross seductions of the
enemy (Chap. ii. 10, 11, 16)--"I have opened my mouth unto the
Lord, and I cannot," I will not, go back.3 He hath my heart, and he
shall have it. So long indeed as we carry about us a body of sin and
death, we need a continual supply of "the Spirit to mortify the deeds of
the body."4 But in our new atmosphere of heavenly light, the mask
falls off from the allurements of sin. The strange woman appears fright-
ful as a deep ditch, or, what is even more, a narrow pit, with no room to
escape.5 Mighty and strong men have fallen into it.† The tempter
hides the danger, while she lays wait for the prey; and thus she success-
fully increases the transgressors among men.6 Blessed be God! if while
fleshly lusts "have destroyed their thousands and tens of thousands"
(Chap. vii. 26), we have, by giving our heart to its Divine Lord, been
enabled to abhor the temptation, and to ascribe to our faithful-keeping
God the glory of our deliverance.
29. Who hath woe? who hath sorrow? who hath contentions? who hath
babbling? who hath wounds without cause? who hath redness of eyes
30. They that tarry long at the wine; they that go to seek mixed wine.
31. Look not thou upon the wine when it is red, when it giveth his
colour in the cup, when it moveth itself aright. 32. At the last it
biteth like a serpent, and stingeth like an adder. 33. Thine eyes shall
behold strange women, and thine heart shall utter perverse things.
1 Chapt. vi. 23 Ps. cxix. 9-11, 105. 2 Ps. cvii. 43.
3 Jud. xi. 35. Comp. Gen. xxxix. 9. 4 Rom. viii. 13. Gal. v. 16. 11.
5 Chap. xxii. 14 ; ii. 19. 6 Chap. vii. 6, &c. ix. 13-18.
* Leighton on 1 Pet. II. 4, 5.
†1 Kings, xi. 1-8, with Neh. xiii. 26. Jud. xvi 4-20. 'He (Samson) broke the bonds
of his enemies; but he could not break the bonds of his own lusts. He choked the lion;
but he could not choke his own wanton love.' Ambrose quoted by Jermin in loco.
442 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
34. Yea, thou shalt be as he that lieth down in the midst of the sea, or
as he that lieth upon the top of a mast. 35. They have stricken me,
shalt thou say, and I was not sick; they have beaten me, and I felt it
not: when shall I awake? I will seek it yet again.
A warning was lately given against keeping company with sensua-
lists. (Verses 20, 21.) Here it is enforced by the most graphical de-
lineation of the sin in all its misery, shame, and ruin. It is the
drunkard's looking-glass! Let him see his own face. Let it be hung:
up in his cottage. Fix it in the alehouse. Could he go there? The
picture is drawn with such a vividness of colouring! 'No translation
or paraphrase can do justice to the concise, abrupt, and energetic
manner of the original.'* Drunkenness is a time of merriment. But
what must be the stupifying insensibility, that can find a moment's joy,
with such an accumulation of woe!† Every sin brings its own mischief.
But such woe! such sorrow! in all its multiform misery! who hath it? The brawls
and contentions over the cup;‡ the babbling words of pollution;1 the wounds, often
to murder,2 without cause; the redness of eyes, shewing the effect of liquor on the
countenance; the impure appetites that are kindled; the infatuation almost
incredible--this is sensuality in all its wretchedness.
Whence this world of woe and sorrow? It is the curse of indulged
will. Not satisfied with their healthful refreshment, many will "add
drunkenness to thirst." (Deut. xxix. 19.) They continue long, "from
morning to night, till wine inflame them." (Isa. v. 11.) They go to seek
the mixed wine, its strongest and most inebriating drink.§
Wisdom's voice therefore is--Avoid the allurements of sin. Often
has a look, harmless in itself, proved a fearful temptation.3 Look not
therefore at the wine when it is red. Its very colour; its sparkling
transparency in the cup; the relish with which it moves itself aright, 'or
goes down pleasant'||--all tend to excite the irregular appetite.
Crush it in its beginnings, and prove that you have learnt the first lesson
in the school of Christ--"Deny yourself."¶ Whatever be its present
zest, at the last it biteth like a serpent, and stingeth like an adder. (Comp.
chap. xx. 17.) Did it bite first, who would touch it? Did Satan
1 Dan. v. 4. 2 2 Sam. xiii. 28. 1 Kings, xvi. 9,10; xx. 16-20.
3 Gen. iii. 6; xxxix.. 7. Josh. vii. 21. 2 Sam. xi. 2.
*Scott in loco. Comp. Bp. Hall.
† 'Agemen malorum colligit, quae ebrietas secum trahit.'--LAVATER. 'Nemini ferme cer-
tius ingentia imminere pericula, tam quoad facultates atque famam, quam ipsam quoque
valetudinem, vitam, atque animae salutem, neminem etiam subjacere adeo Sp. S. impreca.-
tionibus, quam hominem temulentum.'--GEIER.
‡ Chap. xx. 1. 1 Tim. iii. 3. Comp. Hor. Od. iii. 21.
§ Chap. ix. 2, note. Homer describes his celebrated Helen, as mixing exhilarating
ingredients in the bowl, to revive the spirits. Odyss. D. 219-229.
|| Holden. Comp. Can. vii. 9.
¶ Matt. xvi. 24. Augustine gives an instructive example of his mother's nurse. Con-
fess. ix. 8. See also George Herbert's excellent advice in his well-known poem--The Temple.
CHAP. XXIII. 29- 35. 443
present the cup in his own naked form, who would dare to take it? Yet
it comes from his hand as truly, as if he were visible to the eyes. If
poison was seen in the cup, who would venture upon it? Yet is the
poison less dangerous, because it is unseen? The adder's sting is con-
cealed, yet most fatal. The cup of sparkling wine becomes "a cup of
fearful trembling in the hands of the Lord." (Comp. Joel, i. 5.)
Seldom does any sensual indulgence come alone. One lust pre-
pares the way for others. The first step is sure to lead onwards. The
poor deluded victim cannot stop when he pleases. Drunkenness opens
the door for impurity.1 The inflamed eye soon catches fire with strange
women; and who knoweth what the end may be? Loathsome indeed
is the heart of the ungodly laid bare. Drink opens it as far as words
can do; and through the organ of the tongue it does indeed utter per-
verse things.* 'Blasphemy is wit, and ribaldry eloquence, to a man that
is turned into a brute.'†
But the delirium is the most awful feature of the case. The un-
happy victim, having lost all will and power to escape, sleeps quietly
amid dangers as imminent, as lying down in the midst of the sea, or upon
the top of the mast.2 Nay--even the senses seem to be stupified.
Stricken and beaten he may be. But "his heart is as a stone,"3 and he
thanks his drunkenness, that he felt it not. Therefore "as the dog to his
vomit, the fool returns to his folly,"4 craving fresh indulgence--When
shall I awake? I will seek it yet again. More senseless than the brute
who satisfies nature, not lust; so lost to shame; his reason so tyran-
nized over by his appetite, that he longs to be bound again, and only
seeks relief from his temporary awakening to a sense of his misery, by
yielding himself up again to his ruinous sin. (Jer. ii. 25.)
Oh! how affecting is tile thought of the multitude of victims to this
deadly vice in every age and clime, and among all ranks of society!
Perhaps there is no sin which has not linked itself with it; while the
unconsciousness in the act of sin only serves, not to palliate the guilt,
but to increase the responsibility.
While we see the whole nature so depraved in taste, so steeped in
pollution--we ask--"Is anything too hard for the Lord?" Praised
be his name for a full deliverance from the captivity of sin, and of all and
every sin, even from the chains of this giant sin.5 The mighty, though
despised instrument is "Christ crucified; the power of God, and the
wisdom of God." (1 Cor. i. 23-25.) It is this, which when vows,
pledges, and resolutions-all have failed; works secretly, yet most
1 Gen. xix. 32. Comp. Jer. v. 8. Ezek. xvi. 49, 50. Hos. iv. 18. Rom. xiii. 13. 1 Pet. iv. 3.
2 Isa. xxviii. 7, 8. Hos. iv. 11. Comp. chap. xxxi. 4, 5. 3 1 Sam. xxv. 36, 37.
4 Chap. xxvi. 11. Isa. lvi.12. 5 John, viii. 34-36. 1 Cor. vi. 10, 11.
* Ps. lxix. 12. Hos. vii. 5. The libertine poet praises the inspiring excitement of wine
to the genius of poesy.-HOR. Ep. i. 19.
† Lawson in loco.
444 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
effectually; imparting new principles, affections and appetites. The
drunkard becomes sober; the unclean holy; the glutton temperate.
The love of Christ overpowers the love of sin. Pleasures are now
enjoyed without a sting (for no serpent, nor adder is here) and the newly-
implanted principle transforms the whole man into the original likeness
to God--"Whatsoever is born of God doth not commit sin, for his seed
remaineth in him; and he cannot sin, because he is born of God. He
that is begotten of God keepeth himself, and that wicked one toucheth
him not."*
CHAPTER XXIV.
1. Be thou not envious against evil men, neither desire to be with them:
2. For their heart studieth destruction, and their lips talk of mischief.
THIS counsel has been lately given. (Chap. xxiii. 17.) But it is
very difficult in the false glare of this world's glory to "walk by faith,
as the evidence of things not seen." (2 Cor. v. 7. Heb. xi. 1.) In the
confined atmosphere of impatience and unbelief "the spirit that
dwelleth in us lusteth to envy." (Jam. iv. 5.) This evil spirit, if it
does not bring the scandal of open sin, curses our blessings, withers
our graces, cankers our peace, clouds our confidence, and stains our
Christian profession. The full cup in the house of evil men stirs up the
desire to be with them. (Ps. lxxiii. 10-14.) But if their fearful end did
not restrain, their awful character is warning enough.1 It is the
malignity of Satan himself studying destruction in their heart, mischief
in their lips.2 Take away then the delusive veil; and who would envy
them? When Haman was studying the destruction of the holy nation,
the barbed arrow of discontent was corroding his vitals.3 Who would
envy Judas, studying his Master's destruction? In the agony of remorse,
his "soul chose strangling, rather than life."4 "Gather not my soul
with sinners"--is the prayer of the child of God--"nor my life with
bloody men, in whose hands is mischief."5 Let me, instead of studying
the destruction, study the salvation, of my fellow-sinners--what can I
do to win them to Christ? Let me desire to be with the man of God,
employed in this God-like work. The Christian is the only enviable
person in the world. The seeming blessings of evil men are God's heavy
curses; and the smart of the stripes is a favour too good for them to
1 Chap. xxiii. 18. Comp. verses 19, 20, infra.
2 Chap. i. 11-14; iv. 16; vi. 18. 1 Sam. xxiii. 9. Job, xv. 35. Ps. vii. 14; lxiv. 2-6. Mic. vii. 3.
3 Esth. iii. 8, 9; v. 13. Matt. xxvi. 16; xxvii. 3-5. Job, vii. 15.
5 Ps. xxvi. 9; xxviii. 3.
*1 John, iii. 9; v. 18. See an affecting evangelical pleading with this case in that valu-
able manual, JOWETT'S Christian Visitor.
CHAP. XXIV. 3-6. 445
enjoy. To judge wisely of our condition, it is to be considered, not so
much how we fare, as upon what terms. If we stand right with heaven,
every cross is a blessing; and every blessing a pledge of future happi-
ness. If we be in God's disfavour, every one of his benefits is a judg-
ment; and every judgment makes way for perdition.* Instead of
envying sinners in their successful wickedness, dread their character
more than their end, and rejoice that your Father never counted the
poor vanities of this world a worthy portion for you.
3. Through wisdom is an house builded: and by understanding it is estab-
lished: 4. And by knowledge shall the chambers be filled with all
precious and pleasant riches. 5. A wise man is strong; yea, a man of
knowledge increaseth strength. 6. For by wise counsel thou shalt make
thy war: and in multitude of counsellors there is safety.
Why should we envy the prosperity of the wicked? Even if their
house be built,1 it cannot be established,2 by iniquity. 'It is only the
snow-palace built in the winter, and melting away under the power of
the summer's sun.'† "The wise woman buildeth her house" (Chap. xiv.
1) upon piety and prudence--a far more solid establishment. Let every
chamber of the mind be enriched with these precious and pleasant endow-
ments. Without them the man is without strength of character; the
creature of accident, circumstance, or society, thinking and living upon
the opinion of others. A general irresolution marks his insignificant
course; the soul; when consecrated as God's house (2 Cor. vi. 16), is built
on an enlightened understanding of divine truth: and every chamber is
filled with the precious and pleasant riches of godliness. (2 Pet. i. 2-4.)
Heresy is restrained by conceding supreme authority to the Bible. The
crude professor acts under feverish impulse, a sickly sentimentalist in
religion. Instead of retaining a firm hold of truth, he imbibes with
ease the most monstrous opinions. He is "carried about with divers
and strange doctrines," instead of exhibiting "the good things of an
heart established with grace." (Heb. xiii. 9.) "Growth in" spiritual,
as distinct from speculative "knowledge," will always be accompanied
with "growth in grace." (2 Pet. iii. 18.)
And may we not observe, how God has laid the foundations of the
spiritual house, shaped and framed the materials by his own divine
wisdom, and filled all the chambers with his precious and pleasant riches?
Delightful is the contemplation of the building, as it is rising, and as it
will be, when it is finished. 'Oh, the transcendant glory'--exclaimed
the heavenly Martyn--'of this temple of souls; lively stones, perfect
in all its parts, the purchase and work of God!‡
In passing from the universal Church to one section of it, we cannot
1 Mic. iii. 10. 2 Chap. xii. 3. Jer. xxii. 13, 18. Amos. v. 11.
*Bp. HALL'S Works, viii. 206. † Geier in loco. ‡ Life, chap. iii.
446 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
but remark the wisdom and understanding with which our spiritual house
is builded and established. It called for no common wisdom in such
jarring times, and such imperfect light, to avoid extremes on both sides,
and to frame a system, fraught with solid instruction, yet glowing with
spiritual exercise; popular yet reverential; conducive to "prayer"
alike "with the spirit and with the understanding." (1 Cor. xiv. 15.)
Our Reformers were indeed wisely taught, while they cast away the
superstition and idolatry of Rome, to apply her primitive treasures for
godly use, and when needed, to purify them from their drossy alloy, and
to mould the gold in evangelical purity. Truly the chambers of our
house are filled with all precious and pleasant riches. And did the mass
of our worshippers only imbibe the spirit of their house, what a prevail-
ing influence of godliness would-spread over our land!
But we take another view of the high advantage of wisdom. A wise
man is strong.1 Every view confirms Lord Bacon's far-famed aphorism
--'Knowledge is power.' The discovery of the mechanical forces, and
the power of steam, has increased strength in an hundred-fold proportion
to physical force. Intellectual knowledge, wisely applied, has immense
moral ascendancy. It restrains the King from unadvised wars (Chap.
xx. 18); and, if forced into the field, instead of treading his perilous
path alone, he ensures the safety of his kingdom by multitude of coun-
sellors.2 The man of spiritual knowledge is a giant in strength. He
combines the power to draw the bow, with a steady hand and eye to
guide to the mark. Conscious ignorance is the first principle of know-
ledge. "I am but a little child"--said the wisest of men; and this
humility of wisdom was the establishment of his kingdom.3 The
Christian, "filled with wisdom and spiritual understanding," is also
"strengthened" in his warfare" with all might according to the glorious
power of his God." (Col. i. 9, 11.) For "the people that do know their
God shall be strong, and do exploits." (Dan, xi. 32.)
7. Wisdom* is too high for a fool: he openeth not his mouth in the gate.
The commendation of wisdom is here continued. The man richly
endowed with it comes forth with authority, and speaks at the gate
among the wise. The fool, destitute of wisdom, is debarred from this
honour. The simple" and diligent5 prove, that the treasure is not
really out of reach. But it is too high for the fool. His grovelling
mind can never rise to so lofty a matter. He has no apprehension of
it;6 no heart to desire it;7 no energy to lay hold of it.8 And there-
1Chap. xxi. 22. Eccles. vii. 19; ix. 16. 2 Chap. xi. 14; xv. 22.
3 1 Kings, iii. 7; v. 12; x.23-29. 2 Chron. xxvii. 6. 4 Chap. viii. 9; xiv. 6. Matt. xi. 25.
5 Chap. ii. 1-6. John, vii. 17. 6 Ps. x. 5; xcii. 5, 6. 1 Cor. ii. 14.
7 Chap. xvii 16, 24. 8 Chap. xiii. 4; xxi. 25.
*Wisdoms, Heb. Ps. xlix. 4. Schultens, &c.
CHAP. XXIV. 8. 447
fore, though in the Gospel "it is nigh him, even in his mouth, and in
his heart,"1 it is inaccessible. Its holy spirituality is too high for his
reach. He commands therefore no respect in his own station of society.2
His counsel is not sought. His opinion, if given, is of no account.
Though he may have a babbling tongue in the street, yet he openeth not
his mouth in the gate; utterly unfit to give judgment in the presence of
wise and judicious men. Nor is this from natural defect, but from wilful
perverseness. His Lord had committed at least one talent to his trust.
But he had frittered it away, not traded with it. (Matt. xxv. 24-30.)
Oh! let wisdom be sought, while it is within reach; while it is so freely
promised. (Jam. i. 5.) When found, let it be diligently improved for
the great end of life. What! if we should die without it, under the
fearful responsibility of having done nothing for our God or fellow-
creatures, of having neglected the way of life: and "in the greatness
of our folly gone astray" to everlasting ruin? (Chap. v. 23.)
8. He that deviseth to do evil shall be called a mischievous person. 9. The
thought of foolishness is sin; and the scorner is an abomination to men.
What a picture is here of human depravity, in its active working,
its corrupt fountain, and its fearful end! Talent, imagination, active
mind, is so debased, as to be all concentrated upon Satan's own work-
devising to do evil.3 He was the first deviser (Gen. iii. 1), and he practises
his children, till he makes them, like himself, masters of mischief; con-
triving new modes of sinning, ways of trickery and deceit; like the
degraded heathen, "inventors of evil things." (Rom. i. 30.) To do evil
is the principle; devising to do evil is the energy, of his service. In this
craft of evil, Balaam was a mischievous person.4 Abimelech has earned
for himself the same reputation. (Judg. ix.) Jeroboam's subtle mischief
has stamped his name with the black mark of reprobation--"who
made Israel to sin."5 Jezebel,6 and others of less note, equally indus-
trious in evil, will appear in the same ranks at the great day.
Even when it is not brought out into action, the thought of foolishness
--giving it lodgment (Jer. iv. 14), instead of casting it out as loath-
some--is sin. 'But what guilt'--it is asked--'can there be in a
thought? It is but an airy notion; next to nothing. It can make no
impression. A malicious thought cannot hurt. A covetous thought
cannot rob. What guilt or danger can belong to so minute a being?'
Perhaps did we deal with man, these might be trifling evils. But as
the thought is the fountain of the act, God counts it in the act, and holds
1 Rom. x. 6-8. 2 Contrast Job, xxix. 7-10. 3 Verse 2. Ps. xxxvi. 8, 4.
4 Num. xxxi. 16. Rev. ii. 14. 5 1 Kings, xii. 26-38; xv. 30.
6 Ib. xxi. 25. Rev. ii. 20.
448 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
us responsible for it.* The smallest sin involves us in the breach of
the whole law. (Jam. ii. 10, 11.) This is his decision; and who can
answer against it? The most spiritual Christians lay their hands upon
their mouths, "and their mouths in the dust."
The awakened sinner admits his total depravity upon the same
demonstration as his own existence--consciousness. One sin gives
birth to another. Countless multitudes follow in rapid and continuous
succession. "Every imagination of the thoughts of the heart is only evil
continually." (Gen. vi. 5.) Did we fully realize this apprehension, the
flitting moments of the day, each bringing with it an increase of guilt,
could not slide away so pleasantly from us; not at least without shame
and humiliation; without habitual application of the divine remedy.
Job's sensitive conscience carried his sons continually to the atoning
sacrifice. (Job, i.5.) Bunyan (unlike many loose professors, who are
never troubled about their thoughts) was deeply afflicted in the remem-
brance of one sinful thought. Nor let this be condemned as a morbid
temperament. Is it not rather the tender sensibility of a heart humbled
by the continual view of the great sin-offering? Our sensibilities rise
in proportion to our spiritual apprehensions. Even a passing shade of
sin, did we suitably realize it--it might well be a matter of poignant
bitterness. A believing sorrow for heart-sins--however involuntary--
is a clear mark of divine grace and teaching: issuing in deep humilia-
tion, not with despondency. (Rom. vii. 15-25.)
But let us follow out this thought of foolishness unrestrained. It
commits an immensity of folly. The thinking faculty is never wearied
out. It is the fruitful principle of sin, which, 'the more it is com-
mitted" (as it has been no less truly than philosophically remarked),
'the more it acquireth in the quality of evil.'† The thought therefore
gathers strength in every acting, till its full influence is developed in
the "scorner's seat" (Ps. i. 1)--an abomination, not only to God, but to
man.1 For however misused wit and talent may gain for the fool a
bad pre-eminence; he secures no respect, and is generally avoided or
dreaded, and ultimately brought to shame.2
10. If thou faint in the day of adversity, thy strength is small (narrow,
marg.)
Let this be a word of strengthening encouragement. The marvel
is, that those who know not where to look for a refuge, when the storm
1 Chap. xxi. 24. Mal. ii. 8, 9. 2 Jer. xxxvi. 23, with xxii. l9.
* Comp. chap. xv. 26. Ps. xciv. 11. Matt. ix. 3, 4; xv. 19. Acts, viii. 22. Rom. ii. 15.
Even an Heathen moralist could write--
Nam scelus intra se tacitum qui cogitat ullum,
Facti crimen habet.--Juv. xiii. 209, 210.
† Sir T. BROWNE, Bel. Med. p. 101. Edit. 1642.
CHAP. XXIV. 10. 449
is breaking over their heads, do not always faint. But natural courage
and buoyancy, or a deeper plunge into the world, as a diversion from
sorrow, raises them above their troubles for a while, estranging them
yet further from God.
But why should the child of God, contrary to his Father's injunc-
tion,1 faint? Look at thy privilege--"The eternal God is thy refuge;
and underneath are the everlasting arms;"2 thy duty--"Call upon me
in the time of trouble: I will deliver thee, and thou shalt glorify
me;"3--thy security--"I will never leave thee, nor forsake thee.
For a small moment have I forsaken thee; but with great mercies will
I gather thee."4
Yet we "speak not parables." Every Christian's heart responds to
the confession, that he is apt to faint. 'The strongest and holiest saint
on earth is subject to some qualms of fear;* not from the greatness of
the danger, but from the weakness of his faith. (Matt. xiv. 30.) Even
those who had "endured a great fight of afflictions, who had taken
joyfully the spoiling of their goods," still needed stirring exhortations
and encouragements to Christian stedfastness.5 If they had borne the
brunt of one battle, there are heavier conflicts before them.6 Let each
of us be awake to the besetting danger. Remember--when we seek
strength from our own resources;7 when faith gives way to distrust;8
praise to murmuring,9 hope to despondency;10 when relinquished plea-
sures vividly come to mind,11 and protracted toils press heavily12--
then we faint in the day of adversity.
For this day we must prepare. "Man is born to trouble,"13 as his
portion inherited from his first father. He may be called to drink a
deep draught of the bitter cup, requiring much strength, that "patience
may have its perfect work." (Jam. i. 4.) The day is needful for the
trial of our principles. What seemed more promising, than the con-
fidence of the stony-ground hearers, or than the longer endurance of
the apostle's companions? But the day of adversity exposed their
hollow profession.14 Often also, even when "the root of the matter is
found," a painful exhibition of faintness,† unable to weather out a bad
day, proves the smallness, not the vigour, of strength.
But why--again we ask-should the child of God faint? If
"affliction came from the dust, and sprung out of the ground" (Job,
1 Chap.iii.11. 2 Deut. xxxiii. 27. 3 Ps.l. 15; xci.15.
4 Heb. xiii. 5. Isa. liv. 7. 5 Heb. x. 32-36; xi.; xii. 1-3. 6 Ib. xii. 4.
7 Isa. xl. 30. 8 Ps. lxxviii. 19, 20. 9 Exod. xv. 1, 24; xvii. 3
10 Num. xiv. 3. 11 Exod. xvi. 3. Num. xi. 4-6. 12 Job, vii. 1-4.
13 Ib. v. 7. 14 Matt. xiii, 20. 21.2 Tim. iv. 16; i. 15.
* Bishop HALL'S Contemplations, B. xviii. Cont. 8.
† Abraham. Gen. xii. 10-13; xx. 2. Moses, Exod. iv.l0-13; Num. xi.11; Joshua, vii
6-10; David, 1 Sam. xxvii. 1; Ps xxxi. 1, 22; cxvi. 11; Elijah, 1 Kings, xix. 3, 4
Jeremiah, xx. 7-18; Jonah, iv. 8, 9; Peter, Matt. xxvi. 35, 69-74: the disciples, ib. verse
35, 56.
450 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
v. 6), he might be discouraged by his ill-fortune. But where every
minute circumstance has been the fruit of eternal counsel where "the
hairs of his head are all numbered " (Matt. x. 30), well may he "stay
himself upon his God." If his soul, like Israel of old, "be much dis-
couraged because of the way" (Num. xxi. 4, 5), it leadeth to his
Father's house. If he be wearied with his burden, soon will he rest
eternally in his Saviour's bosom. Never will he be called to a martyr's
trial, without a martyr's faith.* The chastening rod is the seal of
everlasting love.1 The temporal cross comes from the same hand as
his everlasting crown. 'Never believe'--Christian--'that thy tender-
hearted Saviour, who knows the weakness of thy constitution, will mix
the cup of affliction with one drachm weight of poison.'† If thy
strength be small, go to the strong for strength. "He giveth power
to the faint, and to them that have no might he increaseth strength." (Isa.
xl. 29.) Commit thyself daily to him, for his supply of "grace is
sufficient for thee." So go onward, weak and strong at once; weak in
order to be strong; strong in thy weakness, "his strength being made
perfect in it;" and thou at length "glorying even in thy" depressing
"infirmity, that the power of Christ may rest upon thee" (2 Cor.
xii. 9); not only sustained, but "strengthened unto joyfulness." (Col.
i. 11.)
Oh!--hasten the time, when the dark and cloudy day shall be
changed for unclouded sunshine; the crown of thorns for the crown of
glory; "the spirit of heaviness" for the garment of "everlasting praise."
(Isa. lxi. 3.)
11. If thou forbear to deliver them that are drawn unto death, and those
that are ready to be slain,‡ 12. If thou sayest, Behold, we knew it
not; Doth not he that pondereth the heart consider it? and he that
keepeth thy soul, doth not he know it? and shall not he render to every
man according to his works?
Suppose a fellow-creature in imminent danger--as it were drawn
unto death, and ready to be slain unjustly,2 or from wickedness. (Luke,
x. 30.) The magistrate standing in the place, and invested with the
power of God§--If he forbear to deliver, on the false pretence that he
1 Chap. iii. 12. Isa. xlviii. 10. 2 1 Sam. xxiv. 11; xxvi. 18-20. 1 Kings, xxi. 8-13.
*'Be of good heart,' said Ridley to his brother Latimer. with a wondrous cheerful look
running to him. and embracing and kissing him--'for God will either assuage the fury of
the flame. or else strengthen us to abide it.'--FOXE, vii. 548.
† RUTHERFORD'S Letters.
‡'To deliver them that are ready to be slain. If thou forbear. First--he layeth down
the duty. Then he adds the warniug, armed with a thunderbolt of retributive judgment
upon the forbearance.'--SCHULTENS.
§ Ps. lxxxii. 3-6. Comp. Baruch, vi. 35-38--where the idols arc proved to be no gods,
because they cannot do the work of God here delegated to the magistrates as his
representative.
CHAP. XX.IV. 11, 12. 451
new it not, the Lord will require it. This obligation, with all the
responsibility of its neglect, is the universal law of the Gospel. (Luke,
x. 29-36.) Whoever knows his brother's danger, and forbears to deliver
--doth not he that pondereth the heart consider it? Will he not
render? The Hebrew midwives,1 and Esther in after-ages,2 thus
delivered their own people drawn unto death. Reuben delivered Joseph
from the pit. Job was the deliverer of the poor in the extremity,
Jonathan saved his friend at imminent risk to himself.4 Obadiah
hid the Lord's prophets.5 Ahikam and Ebed-melech saved Jeremiah.6
Johanan attempted to deliver the unsuspecting Gedaliah.7 Daniel pre-
served the wise men of Babylon.8 The Samaritan rescued his neighbour
from death. Paul's nephew delivered the great Apostle, by informing
him of the murderous plot.9 The rule includes all oppression, which
has more or less of the character of murder.10
Excuses are always at hand for slightly passing over their sad
condition--We knew it not--we knew not your state, how you came
into it, or how to help you out of it. But the true reason is, as
Bishop Sanderson has stated it--'We want charity, but abound in
self-love. Our defect in that appeareth by our backwardness to perform
our duties to our brethren; and our excess in this by our readiness to
frame excuses for ourselves.'* But doth not God, who hath a balance
for every thought, know thy brother's wants, the sorrow of his heart,
and the grief that presses down his soul? Doth not he consider the
excuse of ignorance to be the mere cover for selfishness? Vain is it to
plead ignorance before the All-seeing God. He that pondereth the heart
will thoroughly sift; his Omniscience will perfectly know; his retribu-
tive justice will render. Disinterested kindness will be considered.11
But to forbear deliverance--whether from cruelty,12 selfishness,13 or fear
of personal consequences14--involves an awful account.
But how much more guilty to forbear the deliverance of immortal
souls!--in ignorance, ungodliness, or unbelief, drawn unto death, and
ready to be slain! Ought they not to be the objects of our most yearn-
ing anxiety? What shall we then say to that frozen apathy, which
forbears to deliver? 'We have no right to judge--we knew it not--
"Am I my brother's keeper?" (Gen. iv. 9.) It is no concern of mine.'
But might not many a soul have started back from ruin, had but the
discovery of his danger been made, ere it was too late? Yet the one
word, that might have saved, was forborne. Is there no brother, child,
1 Exod. i. 13-17. 2 Esth. iii. 6-13; iv. 13. 14; viii. 4-6.
3 Job, xxix. 12, 13, 16, 17. 4 1 Sam. xix. 4; xx. 26-33. 5 1 Kings, xviii. 4.
6 Jer. xxvi. 24: xxxviii. 11-13. 7 Ib. xl. 13-16. 8 Dan. ii.12-15.
9 Acts, xxiii. 16-22. 10 Comp. Ecclus. xxxiv. 21, 22.
11 Jer. xxxviii 7-13; xxxix. 16-18. 12 I Sam. xxii 9-18.
13 Ib. xxv. 10,11. Luke. x. 30-22. 14 John, xix. 4-13.
* Bishop SANDERSON'S Assize Sermon on this text.
452 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
or neighbour, who may pierce the conscience to eternity with the
rebuke--'Hadst thou dealt faithfully with my soul, I had not been in
this place of torment.' (Jam. v. 19, 20.) If others may charge us with
the bodies of our fellow-creatures, God commits their souls to our care.
The Lord preserve us from an indictment in the court of heaven for the
murder of our brother's soul, by forbearing to deliver!
And does not this ring a solemn peal of warning to those, whose
special office it is to deliver them that are drawn unto death? 'We
knew it not.' But ought we not to have been "watching for souls, as
those that must give account?" (Heb. xiii. 17.) And what will be the
tremendous reckoning for those, who perish by the neglect of their
pledged and divinely-appointed guardians! "While thy servant was
busy here and there"--upon his own pleasure--the soul "was gone!"
"But his blood will be required at the watchman's hand."*
13. My son, eat thou honey, because it is good; and the honeycomb, which
is sweet to thy taste: 14. So shall the knowledge of wisdom be unto thy
soul: when thou hast found it, then there shall be a reward, and thy
expectation shall not be cut off.
Honey was the choice product of Canaan;1 the food of its inha-
bitants,2 even of children;3 good and meet to the taste. 'So,' when "the
spiritual senses were exercised,"4 'shalt thou find the knowledge of
wisdom unspealtably delectable to thy soul;†--that knowledge of
Christ, without which we are undone, and in which we are supremely
happy.‡ Eating only can convey, what the most accurate description
fails to give, a just perception of the sweetness of the honey-comb. (Judg.
xiv. 18.) Experimental knowledge alone gives spiritual discernment,
and proves the gospel to be, not a golden dream, but a divine reality.
And whoever mistakes honey for any other substance? Who would
not instantly detect a counterfeit? And what intelligent Christian
would mistake the semblance of heavenly wisdom for its substance?
‘Lord! I have long wanted the true manna; all my former food was
nothing but empty husks.'§ Truly indeed the soul, hungering for
bread, and feeding upon an experimental apprehension of Christian
doctrine, realizes solidly what no formalist ever knows. He possesses a
1 Exod. iii. 8. Ezek. xx. 6.
2 Judg. xiv. 9. 1 Sam. xiv. 27. Matt. iii.4. Luke, xxiv. 41, 42. Comp. Ecclus. xxxix. 26.
3 Isa. vii. 15. 4 Heb. v. 14.
* 1 Kings, xx. 39, 40. Ezek. xxxiii, 8. See Doddridge's striking Sermon on this text
given from his works in Williams's Christian Preacher.
† Bp. Hall. Chap. xvi. 24. Ps xix. 10; cxix. 103.
‡ Phil. iii. 8. Lo! this' says good Bishop Hall--'is the honey that I desire to eat.
Give me of this honey, and I shall receive (like Jonathan of old. 1 Sam. xiv. 29) both clear-
ness to mine eyes and vigour of my spirits, to the foiling of my spiritual enemies.'--Solilo-
quies, liv.
§ Augustine.
CHAP. XXIV. 15, 16. 453
plausibly shadow--emotion, impulse, conviction, external reformation.
(Heb. vi. 4, 5.) But the living faith carries its own witness with it.
'It is all true--"I believed, and therefore have I spoken.'" (2 Cor.
iv.13.) The treasure is found with the transport of Archimedes--
bringing its own reward.*
The expectation of the finder, so far from being cut off, shall be infi-
nitely exceeded. "The love" that is manifested "passeth knowledge."
(Ephes. iii. 19.) "The peace" that is sealed "passeth all under-
standing." (Phil. iv. 7.) "The joy" that is felt is "unspeakable, and
full of glory." (1 Pet. i. 8.) Shall we then timidly exhibit these privi-
leges, as if they would lower the obligations of holiness, or paralyze
exertion? They are not opiates, but cordials. They invigorate, while
they refresh. Depression unnerves; fear enchains; but "the joy of the
Lord is strength." (Neh. viii. 10.) It inspires energy, elevates hope,
and makes our 'service perfect freedom.'
15. Lay not wait, O wicked man, against the dwelling of the righteous; spoil
not his resting-place: 16. For a just man falleth seven times,† and
riseth up again: but the wicked shall fall into mischief.
The wise man breaks off his affectionate counsel to the children of
God, with a solemn warning to the wicked man. Should we exclude
him from the circle of instruction? If he be left unconverted, it is his
own guilt. But if he be unwarned, uninstructed, beware lest "blood-
guiltiness" be charged.
Hatred to the righteous is deeply rooted in the wicked man.1 He
imagines, especially if he be in power,2 that he can tyrannize over
them with impunity. But it is venturing upon a hazardous course--
"He that toucheth you, toucheth the apple of mine eye." (Zech. ii. 8.)
"I am Jesus, whom thou persecutest!"--struck the most relentless
persecutor "trembling"3 to the earth. The plots against their dwelling,
the spoiling of their resting-place, may prosper for a while;4--but if the just
man falleth seven times, overwhelmed with the assault, he riseth again
(Ps. xxxvii. 24), falling into trouble, not falling under it; yea, rather
standing firm under it. Courage, then,--poor afflicted soul! Look
thy foe in the face, and sing triumphant--"Rejoice not against me, O
mine enemy, though I fall I shall rise again. (Mic. vii. 8.) He shall
deliver thee in six troubles; yea in seven shall no evil touch thee.
Who delivered us from so great a death, and doth deliver; in whom we
trust, that he will yet deliver. Cast down, but not destroyed."5 Here
*Eurhka, eurhka. Comp. Jer. xv. 16.
† The common quotation of this is seven times a day; for which Bp. Patrick observes
there is no authority but some corrupt edition of the Vulgate.
1 Chap. xxix.. 27. Gen. iii. 15. Ps. xxxvii. 12, 32. 1 John, iii. 12.
2 1 Sam. xix. 11. Acts, xii. 1-3. 3 Acts, ix. 5, 6.
4 Ps. lix. Title. Acts, viii. 3, 4. 5 Job, v. 19. 2 Cor. i. 10; iv. 9.
454 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS
is our conflict, and our security: The life is untouched; yea--it is
strengthened, and "made manifest," by the successive supplies of
upholding mercy.l Many trials cannot overwhelm the righteous.2 But
one is sufficient to sweep away the wicked. He falleth into mischief;3
and there is no rising again,4 no recovery, no remedy. He lies where
he falls, and he perishes where he lies. Sinner! whatever be thy
wickedness; the Lord save thee from the millstone of condemnation--
the persecuting of the saints of God!*
17. Rejoice not when thine enemy falleth, and let not thine heart be glad
when he stumbleth: 18. Lest the Lord see it, and it displeases him, and
he turn away his wrath from him.
Yet did the chosen people of God rejoice with divine exultation in
the fall of their enemies. (Exod. xv. 1.) Nay--is not this joy the triumph
of the righteous?5 Is it not the adoration of heaven, as the manifested
glory of God?6 But how different is this sublime sympathy in the
triumph of the Church, from the malignant joy of private revenge! A
secret, if not an avowed, pleasure in the fall of an enemy, is nature's
impulse.7 But what has grace done for us, if it has not overcome
nature by an holier and happier principle? David "wept and chas-
tened his soul" in his enemy's affliction.8 David's Lord "wept in the
prospective ruin of the infatuated race, fraught with malignity against
himself. To rejoice in the fall of an enemy, would be to fall deeper than
himself; to fall not into trouble, but into sin; to break the command-
ment, which enjoins us to "love our enemies" (Luke, xix. 41-44), and
to repay cursing with blessing and prayers. (Matt. v. 44.) This selfish
cruelty is most hateful to God. (Chap. xvii. 5. Zech. i. 15.) It has often
turned away his wrath from the criminal to the mocker at his calamity.†
Does the glass of the word shew our character in the sin that is
rebuked, or in the contrast of our compassionate Lord?
1 2 Cor. iv. 11. 2 Ps. xxxiv. 19; xxxvii. 39, 40. 1 Cor. x.13. 3 Ps. vii. 13-16; ix.16.
4 Job, xv. 30. Amos, viii. 14. 5 Chap. xi. 10. Job, xxii. 19. Ps. lviii. 10.
6 Rev. xv. 3, 4; xviii. 20; xix. 1-6. 7 Ps. xxxv. 15, 16; 2 Sam. xvi. 5-7.
8 Ps. xxxv. 13, 14. 2 Sam. i. 11, 12. Comp. Job, xxxi. 29.
*The just man rising from his fall is most unwarrantably applied to the perseverance of
the saints. The word fall frequently occurs in this book; but always in reference to
trouble, not sin. (Chap. xi. 5,14; xiii. 17; xvii.20; xxvii. 27; xxviii. 10, 14,18.) The
antithesis obviously fixes this meaning. 'There are plain texts enough to prove every
scriptural doctrine. But pressing texts into any particular service, contrary to their plain
meaning, not only serves to deceive the inconsiderate, but to rivet the prejudices and con-
firm the suspicions, of opposers; just as bringing forward a few witnesses of suspicious
character would cause all those, however deserving- of credit, who should be examined in
the same cause, to be suspected also, and create a prejudice against it in the minds of the
court and of all present.'--SCOTT.
† 'Lest the Lord be angry. and turn his wrath from him to thee.'--Bp. COVERDALE.
Comp. Judg. xvi. 25-30. Micah, vii. 10. Edom, Lam. iv. 21, 22. Ezek. xxxv. 15; xxxvi.
5-7; Obad. 10-14; Tyre, Ezek. xxvi. 2; Babylon, Ps. cxxxvii. 7-9; Isa. li. 22, 23; Lam. i.
21. Moab, Jer. xlviii. 26, 27; Ammon, Ezek. xxv. 1-7.
CHAP. XXIV. 19-22. 455
19. Fret not thyself because of evil men, neither be thou envious at the
wicked: 20. For there shall be no reward to the evil man; the candle
of the wicked shall be put out.
This fretting must be a deep-rooted disease, to need such repeated
discipline. (Verse 1; xxiii. 17.) One moment's recollection of our
mercies might shew, how little reason there is for it. Mercies infinitely
more than we discover might be sufficient to sweep the clouds from our
sky, and to make us ashamed of our despondency. Before--the envy
of the wicked was checked by the remembrance, that there was an end
--surely an happy end to the righteous. (Chap. xxiii. 18.) Let them
wait for it. It will not disappoint them. Here we are further reminded,
that there is no end,* no reward, to the evil man. Leave him to his
judge. His candle, notwithstanding all his efforts to keep it burning,1
shall be put out.2 Sometimes in bold paring he puts out his own candle.
'I give'--said the infidel Hobbes--'my body to the dust, and my
soul to the Great Perhaps. I am going to take a 1eap in the dark.'
Alas!--was it not a leap in the dark,--into "the blackness of dark-
ness for ever?"
Take then the balance of eternity. Learn neither to overvalue the
fancied sunshine of the wicked, nor to undervalue our own real happi-
ness. Envy not his lot. Repine not at our own. Ours is far beyond his
reach. His is far below our envy. 'His candle burneth; his prosperity
flourisheth, until it hath kindled hell-fire; and then it is extinguished;
whereas the lamp of the godly is put out here, to shine as a star in
heaven.'†
21. My son, fear thou the Lord and the king: and meddle not with them
that are given to change: 22. For their calamity shall rise suddenly
and who knoweth the ruin of them both?
We have another affectionate exhortation to the fear of God. (Chap.
xxiii.17.) And what wonder? Is it not the substance of our holiness
and our happiness? Oh! reverence his majesty. Acknowledge thy
dependence upon him. Be as careful in "walking before him" in thy
secret thoughts, as in thy outward conduct. No more allow the indul-
gence of a sinful motive, than a gross sin. If there be no rod of out-
ward shame, will not the thought keenly pierce thy heart--how
unkindly does this defilement requite such unspeakable love!
The connection between the fear of God and the King is not local or
accidental. Our Lord and his Apostles have thus linked together the
1 Kings, xxi. 21, with 2 Kings, x. 1-7. 2 Chap. xiii. 9; xx. 20. Job, xviii. 5, 6; xxi. 17.
* Same word in Heb. as chap. xxiii. 18. 'There shall be none end of plagues to the evil
man.'--Old version † Jermin in loco.
456 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
throne of his supremacy in heaven, and the throne of his majesty on
earth.1 The one principle indeed is the spring of the other. Disloyalty
has often been a libel upon godliness. But the Christian is loyal,
because he is godly. (1 Sam. xxiv. 6.) "Subjection to the powers that
be" is repeatedly inculcated,2 and revolt is visited with the most heavy
condemnation.* Yet there is no interference with the primary obliga-
tion. Solomon 'puts God before the king, because God is to be served
in the first place, and out obedience is to be given to the king only in
subordination to God, and not in those things, which are contrary to
the will of God.'†
Man's independence however naturally kicks against submission.
The popular cry is for the voice and sovereignty of the people; a plain
proof, that "there is no new thing under the sun" (Eccles. i. 9); since
the picture of those demagogues has been drawn to the life nearly two
thousand years ago--"walking after the flesh, despising government,
presumptuous, self-willed, not afraid to speak evil of dignities."3 Such
men love change for the sake of change. To become leaders of a party,
they disturb the public peace by proposing changes, without any pro-
mise of solid advantage.‡ They would prefer a storm which would
bring them into note, to a calm in which they were alrearly quietly
secure. They are more eager to fish for a name in troubled waters,
than to cultivate those quiet and social virtues, which, if generally
cultivated, would restrain the commotion. "O my soul, come not thou
into their secret." (Gen. xlix. 6.) It is dangerous to meddle with them.
To oppose all change, indeed, is to set up a plea of perfection. Every
improvement (and where is there not room for improvement?) is a
change. But public evils are not to be mended by railing. To be
given to change; to undo all that has been done; to alter for the sake of
altering; to be weary of the old, and captivated with the new, however
untried; to make experiments upon modes of government--is a fearful
hazard. It is losing the substance of real good in the dream of imagi-
nary improvements; as if we must undo everything, rather than be
idle. This waywardness we see in Korah's sin;4 in Absalom's rebel-
1 Matt. xxii. 21 1 Pet. ii. 17.
2 Matt. xvii. 24-27. Rom. xiii. 1-7. Tit. iii. 1. 1 Pet. ii. 13-17.
3 2 Pet. ii. 10. Jude, 8. Comp. 1 Sam. x. 27. 4 Num. xvi. 130-17.
* Rom. xiii. 2. See two valuable sermons by Bishops Horne and Horsley on this text.
Agricola's testimony to the submissive obedience of our uncivilised ancestors is interesting.
See TACITUS' Life of Agricola.
† Poole in loco. Comp. 1 Sam. xxii. 17,18. Dan. iii. 16-18. Acts, iv. 18, 19; v. 27-29.
‡ 'He that goeth about,' saith our judicious Hooker--'to persuade men that they are
not so well governed as they ought to be, shall never want attention and favourable
hearers.' Ibid. Book i. Sallust admirably remarks of these turbulent innovators, that
'they thought the very disturbance of the established order of things a sufficient bribe to
set them at work. That which is wanted in the aptness of their speech is supplied by the
aptness of men's minds to accept and believe it.' See the whole paragraph opening
Hooker's great work, Eccl. Polit.
CHAP. XXIV. 23-26. 457
lion;1 in the continual struggle for royalty in the Israelitish kings.2
How suddenly did their calamity rise, even when they seemed to be
within the grasp of their object!3 Who knoweth the ruin, which both the
Lord and the king* may inflict on the despisers of their authority;4
often fearful beyond precedent, without remedy?
23. These things also belong to the wise. It is not good to have respect
persons in judgment. 24. He that saith unto the wicked, Thou art
righteous; him shall the people curse, nations shall abhor him: 25. But
to them that rebuke him shall be delight, and a flood blessing shall come
upon them. 26. Every man shall kiss his lips that giveth a right
answer (that answereth right words, marg.)
We have had a solemn exhortation to the people. (Num. xvi. 29-33.)
We have now a word to the wise, specially to those in authority. God
has given many laws against respect of persons in judgment.5 It is not
good.6 Nay--rather he rebukes it as an hateful abomination.7 Let
truth be considered, not favour. This is an evil in the Church, as
much as in the State. No responsibility is more momentous in our
sacred high places, than "doing nothing by partiality."† Man, corrupt
as he is, often abhors unrighteous judgment.8 A bad magistrate
deprives us of the blessing of good laws.
On the other hand, there is no greater national blessing, than a
government rebuking the wicked.9 This was a part of Job's God-fearing
character.10 The good blessing that came upon Nehemiah's upright
administration is abundantly manifest.11 Indeed generally every one will
kiss--pay the homage of love and respect12--to him who giveth a right
answer in judgment. He is a public treasure; "a blessing in the midst
of the land." Is not then the responsibility of rulers, and the welfare
of thousands depending on them, a quickening impulse to prayer?
And may not our want of "godly quietness" be traced to this neglect?
(1 Tim. ii. 1, 2.)
But we are not rulers. Yet are not many of us in authority--
1 2 Sam. xv. 10-13. 2 1 Kings, xvi. 8-22. 3 2 Sam. xv. 13; xviii. 9-16.
4 2 Sam. xviii. 7, 8; xx. 1, 2, 22. 2 Kings, xvii. 21, 23. Eccles. viii. 2-5. Acts, v. 36. 37.
5 Exod. xxiii. 6-8. Lev. xix. 15. Deut. i. 17; xvi. 19. 6 Chap. xviii. 5; xxviii. 21.
7 Ps. lxxxii. 2-4. 8 1 Sam. viii. 1-5. 9 2 Sam. xxiii. 3, 4.
10 Job, i. 1, 8; xxix. 7, 11-17. 11 Neh. v. 7-9; xiii. 8-11, 25, 28, with 31.
12 Comp. 1 Kings, xix. 18. Ps. ii. 12. Hos. xiii. 2.
* French and Skinner. The best critics (Geier, Dathe, Lavater. &c.) most naturally
apply the distinctive term (them both) to the separate persons. The ruin foreboded is thus
connected with the persons, who had been described separately as the objects of fear. ' Do
not disobey either of them, who knoweth their vengeance?'--LXX.
† 1 Tim. v. 21. Hooker--in 'reverence and awe unto the prelates, whom Christ hath
placed in seats of higher authority over me'--suggests, that 'the ancient canon be specially
remembered, which forbiddeth a bishop to be led by human affection in bestowing the
things of God.'--Eccl. Pol. book vii. c. xxiv. 3, 7.
458 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
Parents--Heads of Families--Teachers and Guardians of the young?
Uprightness and consistency alone can maintain that influence so
essential to usefulness. For a spiritual ruler to say to the wicked--
Thou art righteous, is indeed perfidious dealing with his Divine Master
cruel deceit to immortal souls; hiding the ruin, which he is bound to
reveal; acting the part of a minister of Satan under the cover of a
minister of Christ. His people will live to curse and abhor him, perhaps
throughout eternity. Even the very people that hate both his Master
and his message, will kiss his lips that giveth a right answer--a reluctant
but honourable witness to his faithfulness.
27. Prepare thy work without, and make it fit for thyself in the field;
and afterwards build thine house.
This rule of prudence applies to all worldly matters. Religion, so
far from forbidding, inculcates care and forethought. Much of our
domestic comfort hangs upon it. Much inconvenience and suffering
flow from its neglect. Acting upon this useful direction, the wise
builder first prepares his work without. He collects his materials,
calculates upon the quantity required; then he makes his work fit by
shaping and bringing them into their place; and afterwards, having all
things in readiness, he builds his house. The work was thus prepared for
Solomon's magnificent temple, before the house was built. (1 Kings, v.
18 ; vi. 7.) The spiritual house is similarly raised of materials prepared
and fitted; and thus it "groweth unto an holy temple in tile Lord."
(Eph. .ii. 21, 22.)
But ponder well the care, with which the great work should be
prepared. Count the cost anxiously. Consider whether the profession
will stand the storms. (Luke, xiv. 28-30.) Lay the foundation deep
upon the Rock (Ib. vi. 48.) Be much in prayer for divine strength.
Avoid that outward display, which shames the inconsiderate builder,
who begins to build his house, without having thoroughly prepared his
work.
Has not the minister of the Gospel special need of preparing his
work? An unfurnished minister cannot be "a wise master builder."
Even when the foundation is laid, "Let every man take heed how he
buildeth thereupon." Let him look well to the day at hand. (1 Cor. iii.
10-15.) And let all the Lord's servants weigh deeply their responsi-
bility. Indigested haste, and crude judgment, have blasted many a
Christian project. Let us he guided by the well-considered wisdom of
experienced men (Matt. xviii. 17, 18), and collect our materials from
their prudence, forethought, and sound-judging energy. A house will
thus be built to the honour of our God, and for the service of his Church.
CHAP. XXIV. 28, 29. 459
28. Be not a witness against thy neighbour without cause; and deceive not
with thy ups. 29. Say not, I will do so to him as he hath done to me:
I will render to the man according to his work.
The welfare of society may sometimes constrain to be witness against
a neighbour. But never let it be without cause. Yet when compelled
to this revolting duty, whatever be the temptation or consequence,
deceive not with thy lips. Speak plainly, truthfully, the whole truth.
Doeg's witness against his neighbour was without cause; not from con-
science, but from malice. The main fact also was concealed of David's
imposition upon Abimelech, which would have cleared him from the
suspicion of treason, and saved his life. (1 Sam. xxii. 9, 10; xxi. 1, 2.)
This garbled witness thus far deceived with his lips, and bears the black
stamp of "a deceitful tongue." (Ps. Iii. 3, 4; cxx. 2-4.)
Profit is the bait to the thief, lust to the adulterer, revenge to the
murderer. But it is difficult to say, what advantage redounds to this
evil witness, or what allurement belongs to the sin, save that which
Satan himself feels--the love of sin for its own sake, or for the satis-
faction that is vainly anticipated from the commission. Should we
however be clear from the grosser forms of this sin; yet do we resist
the unkind witness against our neighbour, in magnifying his failings, and
measuring them with a far stricter basis than our own; rashly cen-
suring his indifferent or doubtful actions; and censuring even his sins
with an unchristian intention?
And then--as to indulging personal resentment--it is natural to
say, though only in the heart--I will do as he hath done to me. But
shall we dare thus to take the sword out of God's hands, and place
ourselves upon his tribunal? "Vengeance belongeth unto me; I will
repay--saith the Lord."1 'Let wisdom and grace be set to work to
extinguish the fire from hell, before it gets head.'* Far sweeter will
be the recollection of injuries forgotten than revenged. But grace alone
can enable us to "forgive from the heart."† And yet too often its
exercise is so feebly cherished, that natural feelings gain the ascend-
ancy; and, if there be not an actual recompense of evil, there is merely
a negative obedience to the rule, a refraining from the ebullition, rather
than an active exercise of the opposite principle. The wise man sets
out in this book the true rule,2 more lovely, more constraining, as
enforced by the divine example.3 Humility and tenderness mark
1 Rom. xii, 19. Comp. Gen. 1.16-19. 2 Chap. xx. 22; xxv. 21, 22.
3 Matt. v, 44, with Luke, xxiii. 34. 1 Pet. ii. 21-23.
* MATTHEW HENRY'S Works, p, 459.
† Matt, xviii. 35, with Luke, xvii 3-5. 'The excellency of the duty is sufficiently pro-
claimed by the difficulty of the practice. For how hard is it, when. the passions are high,
and the sense of an injury quick, and the power ready, for a man to deny himself in that
luscious morsel of revenge! To do violence to himself, instead of doing it to his enemy!'
--SOUTH'S Sermon on Matt. v. 44.
460 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
the self-knowing Christian, who forgives himself little, his neighbour
much.
30. I went by the field of the slothful, and by the vineyard of the man void
of understanding; 31. And, lo, it was all grown over with thorns, and
nettles had covered the face thereof, and the stone wall thereof was
broken down. 32. Then I saw, and considered it well: (Set my heart,
marg.) I looked upon it, and received instruction. 33. Yet a little I
sleep, a little slumber, a little folding of the hands to sleep: 34. So shall
thy poverty come as one that travaileth; and thy want as an armed
man, (a man of shield, marg.)
Everything around us reads an useful lesson to an observant eye.
Every particle of creation may be taxed to furnish its quota to our store
of knowledge. We--can extract good even from evil, and "gather
grapes of thorns, and figs of thistles." Solomon describes with his
usual vigour of thought and strength of colouring, an affecting sight,
that had passed before his eyes--the field and vineyard of the slothful,
grown over with thorns and nettles, and the wall utterly broken down.
Instead of turning away, he considered it well, and received instruction.
In the solemn contemplation of this picture of desolation, he could not
but turn his thoughts to the wretched proprietor. He fancied himself
in his house, beholding the sottish being stretched on his bed, and
crying out under the noonday sun--Yet a little sleep, a little slumber, a
little folding of the hands to sleep. Stimulated by this effusion of the
torpid animal, the response almost unconsciously forced itself--So shall
thy poverty come as one that travaileth, and thy want as an armed man.
And yet by some strange delusion, the slothful conceives himself to
be wise. (Chap. xxvi. 16.) But how manifestly is he void of under-
standing; without heart to improve his many advantages! He might
enrich himself by his field and vineyard. But he has never cultivated
or weeded it. The stone wall, raised by some more industrious hand, is,
broken down; and he is too indolent to repair it. His vineyard is there
fore left a prey to every invader; while he lives as a mere animal, in
sensual indulgence, bringing himself gradually, but irresistibly, to
poverty.* Not that he means to come to beggary. He only wants
yet a little sleep, a little slumber more--and then he will bestir himself.
But this little insensibly increases. Every hour's indulgence strengthens
the habit, and chains the victim in hopeless bondage. His efforts for
exertion are only the struggles of the paralytic, without energy or
* Chap. vi. 10, 11. The Roman Satirist gives a lively description of the stirring of the
slothful mall's excitement of lust--
'Mane, piger, stertis? Surge, inquit avaritia: ejaSurge: negas? Instat, surge, inquit.
Non queo: surge,' &c.
PERSIUS, Sat. 5. 132, 133.
CHAP. XXIV. 30-34. 461
effectiveness. If his dependence is upon his own industry, manual or
mental, sloth must hasten on his ruin. In a higher station, it deprives
him of the means of using his influence aright, or of employing his
talents to any valuable purpose. There is indeed no higher blessing
than usefulness; no more affecting lamentation than that of the worn-
out labourer, who is conscious that his usefulness is ended. But the
slothful is satisfied, that his usefulness should never begin. He is
content with a life of utter uselessness. He wilfully gives himself up
to it; as if indolence was his supreme good; and every kind of exercise
the object of his shrinking dread. Such a life can never approve itself
to conscience, and assuredly will never escape the condemnation of
God. (See Matt. xxv. 26-36.) It is poverty to himself. He becomes
his own enemy. The springs of solid happiness are impoverished, and
the true end of life frittered away.
But let us look at the spiritual sluggard. If a neglected field is a
melancholy sight, what is a neglected soul! a soul which, instead of
being cultivated with the seeds of grace, is left to its own barrenness;
overgrown with the native produce of thorn and nettles. (Gen. iii. 18.)
Time, talents, opportunities have been vouchsafed; perhaps the blessing
of a godly education added, every encouragement for hopeful promise.
But if diligence is needed; if the man must "labour and strive,"1 then
his field must be left, at least for the present. He must have a little
more sleep first.* And thus he sleeps on, and shuts both eyes and ears
against every disturbance of his fatal slumber. Nothing is done or
attempted for God, for his own soul, or for his fellow-creatures. His
vineyard is left open. All his good purposes are the stone wall broken
down. Satan "goes out, and returns at his will."2 All is devastation
and ruin.
Christian! is there no danger of this evil creeping into our religion?
No habit is so ruinous. It enervates, and at length stops, the voice of
prayer. It hinders the active energy of meditation. It weakens the
influence of watchfulness. The way to heaven is steep, rough, hard to
climb, immeasurably long, forbidding in its present exercise and doubt-
ful in its end, full of toll and discouragement, devoid of beaming hope
and sunshine. This false apprehension checks every step of progress;
so that "the soul"--instead of being “a well-watered garden” (Jer.
xxxi. 12), sending forth refreshing fragrance and grateful fruits--
relapses into its former wilderness state; laid open to every tempta-
tion; and too often ultimately a prey to sensual appetites.3
Let our Father's voice be instantly heard--"Son, go work to-day in
thy vineyard." (Matt. xxi. 28.) Dost thou not see, that it is overgrown
1 John, vi. 27. Luke, xiii. 24. 2 Matt. xii. 45. 2 Tim. ii. 26.
3Chap xxiii. 21. 2 Sam. xi. 2. Ezek. xvi. 49.
* See Augustine's instructive reference to his own case.--Confess. lib. viii. c. 5.
462 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
with thorns? Look forward, not backward. Complain not, but decide.
Pray not only, but strive. Always connect privilege with practice.
Prove the principles of moral character, as well as spiritual experience.
Aim at every active exercise, that may strengthen religious habits.
'Surely, if we look to stand in the faith of the sons of God, we must
hourly, continually, be providing, and setting ourselves to strive. It
was not the meaning of our Lord and Saviour in saying--"Father,
keep them in thy name"--that we should be careless to keep ourselves.
'To our own safety, our sedulity is required.'*
CHAPTER XXV.
1. These are the proverbs of Solomon, which the men of Hezekiah king of
Judah copied out.
THIS seems to be a third division of this sacred book.1 The selection
was probably made with several repetitions from the former part†
from "the three thousand proverbs which Solomon spoke;"‡ and
which, having been carefully preserved, the men of Hezekiah copied out,
nearly three hundred years after. Thus the word of God, brought out
of obscurity for the instruction of the people, stamped the reformation of
this godly king (2 Chron. xxxi. 21); as it did the reformation of Josiah
in, after-times.§ The New Testament fully authenticates this section
of the book as a part of the inspired canon.2 We are not reading
therefore the maxims of the wisest of men. But the voice from heaven
proclaims--"These are the true sayings of God."
The Holy Spirit mentions not only the author, but the copyists, of
these proverbs. And often has good service been done to the Church,
not only by original writers, but by those who have copied and brought
out their writings into wider circulation. The world usually honours
only the grand instruments, and casts the humbler agency into the
shade. (Eccles. ix. 15, 16.) But God honours not only the primary,
but the subordinate instruments j not only the five-but the one
1 See Chap. i. and x.-xxiv.
2 Verses.6, 7, with Luke, xiv. 7-10; 21, 22, with Rom. xii. 20; xxvi. 11, with 2 Pet. ii. 22;
xxvii. 1, with Jam iv. 14.
* Hooker 'On the certainty and perpetuity of Faith in God's Elect'
† Verse 24, with xxi 9; xxvi. 13, with xxii 13; 15, with xix. 24; 22, with xviii. 8;
xxvii. 12, with xxii. 3; 13, with xx. 16; 15, with xix. 13; xxviii, with 6. xix. 1; 18, with
x. 19; 19, with xii. 11; 21 with xviii. 5; xxiv. 23.
‡ 1 Kings, iv. 32. Comp. Eccles. xii. 9. Does not the divine discrimination, which has
withheld the whole of Solomon's writings reprove the indiscriminate publication of all that
eminent men may have left; in manuscript? Crudities, and even gross errors, have been
thus accredited by the authority of great names, not less unjustly to their memory, than
injuriously to the Church.
§ 2 Chron. xxxiv. 14-30. We mark the same Divine stamp of mercy upon our own
precious, though reviled, Reformation.
CHAP. XXV. 2, 3. 463
talent--faithfully laid out for him. The blessing is not promised to
their number, but to their improvement. (Matt. xxv. 21-23.)
2. It is the glory of God to conceal a thing: but the honor of kings is to
search out a matter. 3. The heaven for height, and the earth for
depth, and the heart of kings is unsearchable (there is no searching,
marg.)
The great King of heaven and the puny kings of earth are here
finely contrasted. The glory of each is opposite--of God to conceal; of
kings to search out. Whether "he dwelleth in his pavilion of thick
darkness,"1 or whether "clothed in his garment of light, and dwelling
in unapproachable light"2--it is the glory of God to conceal a thing.
What glory indeed could belong to a God, whose name, and ways,
and works were open to the view, and within the comprehension of
worms of the earth? What he has brought to light, only shews how
much is concealed. We look at his works--Lo! these are parts of his
ways; but how little a portion "is heard of him!"* We study his
dispensations of Providence, feeling that we had need pray over them
once and again, ere we venture to interpret them--"Thy way is in the
sea, and thy path in the great waters; and thy footsteps are not
known!"3 We adore also that glorious concealment of his great work
of forgiveness, of which Dr. Owen most truly remarks--that 'were it
not somewhat beyond what men could imagine, no flesh could be
saved.'† But so far is it removed from our sight, that no human ken
can take the unbounded extent of this vast work. It is forgetfulness of
this unsearchable forgiveness, proportioning its limits to our own
understanding, that precludes a glowing confidence, and restrains
many a sincere penitent from a full apprehension, and habitual enjoy-
ment of the peace of the Gospel. In another department of the widely
extended field, we ponder his great purposes of grace; and our hearts
only find vent in reverential adoration--"Oh! the depth!" (Rom. xi.
33) -- 'rather standing on the shore, and silently admiring it, than
entering into it.'‡ To wade in those depths is the sure way to be
overwhelmed in them.
Thus does he educate his children in mystery, that he may exercise
them in the life of faith (John, xiii. 7), acting and living upon in-
comprehensible objects; coming to his revelation without any mind
will of their own. Thus in the boundless and bottomless works of his
grace--the voice speaks from the inner sanctuary--"Be still, and
1 I Kings. viii. 12. Ps. xviii. 11; xcvii. 2. 2 Ps. civ. 2. 1 Tim. vi. 16.
3 Ps. lxxvii. 19; xxxvi. 6.
* Job, xxvi. 14. 'Lo! these are the outlines (marginal or boundary lines) of his ways,
and the mere whisper (opposed to the crashing "thunder" of the next clause) we can hear
of him.'--DR. GOOD.
†On Ps. cxxx. ‡ LEIGHTON on 1 Pet. 11. 8.
464 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
know that I am God." (Ps. xlvi. 10.) And is not this shade of mystery
our highest joy, as the dwelling-place of our adorable God and Saviour?
Are not the clouds of his concealment the effulgence of his glory (Hab.
iii. 4), as the most simple, yet the most incomprehensible Being, whom
the mightiest intellect can never "by searching find out to perfection?"
(Job, xi. 7.) 'As there is'--says Bishop Hall--'a foolish wisdom, so
there is a wise ignorance. I would fain know all that I need, and all
that I may. I leave God's secrets to himself. It is happy for me, that
God makes me of his court, though not of his council. O Lord! let me
be blessed with the knowledge of what thou hast revealed. Let me
content myself to adore thy divine wisdom in what thou hast not
revealed.'*
Thus it is the glory of God to conceal a thing--to do many things, of
which the full development of their great end is far beyond our sight.
The highest glory of earth is at an infinite remove--God conceals. For
who could bear his full irradiation?1 But the honour of kings is to
search out a, matter.2 They must not affect to be like God. By them-
selves they know nothing beyond their people. Yet as all depends
upon them, they must avail themselves of all stores of wisdom, to search
out the mysteries of true policy, in order to govern by them, the
mysteries of iniquity, in order to redress, and the intricacies of indi-
vidual cases, in order to give suitable judgment. Hence the divine
command, that they should write out a copy of the law, for their daily
study and direction. (Deut. xvii. 18, 19.) This wise king had himself
attained singular discernment in searching out a matter, even without
external evidence, and with all the perplexity of conflicting testimony.
(1 Kings, iii. 16-28.)
And yet the Sovereign must often frame his counsels with much
caution anti reserve. Many of his purposes are far beyond the compre-
hension of the great mass of his people; so that to their minds the heart
of kings is unsearchable; and they might as soon think of measuring the
heaven for height, or fathoming the earth for depth. Ought not this to
teach forbearance in pronouncing judgment? Are not the "presump-
tuous and self-willed, who are not afraid of speaking evil of dignities,"
1 Exod. xxxiii. 20. Dan. x. 5-8, 17, Rev. i. 12-17.
2 Ezra, iv. 15,19; v. 17; vi. 1. Comp. Job. xxix. 16.
* Bp. Hall, viii. 5; xi. 8-1. This glorious concealment is however no precedent for the
Tractarian principle of Reserve, which at once eclipses the freeness and fulness of
Gospel, and paralyzes the energy of Christian life and hope. Blessed be God! “The
that belong to our peace are brought to light by the Gospel." The doctrine of the atoning
cross is "delivered first of all" (en prwtoi; 1 Cor. xv. 3)--the primary truth in the fore-
front of the Gospel. With self-abasing humility we acknowledge, that "secret things
belong to the Lord our God." But guilty indeed is the presumption of casting a cloud of
concealment on "the things that are revealed, and which belong to us and to our children
for ever"--not only as the foundation of our hope, but as the principle of our obedience.
Deut. xxix. 20. Yet do not some of us need to be drawn further from the "secret things"
and nearer to the things that are revealed?
CHAP. XXV. 4-7. 465
convicted of the guilt of "speaking evil of the things that they under-
stand not?"1 Is not "prayer for kings and for those in authority," a
far more fruitful and "acceptable exercise?" (1 Tim. ii. 1-3.)
4. Take away the dross from the silver, and there shall come forth a vessel
for the finer. 5. Take away the wicked from before the king, and his
throne shall be established in righteousness.
The finer produces "the vessel unto honour," by taking away the
dross from the silver (Mal. iii. 2), which mars its beauty and purity.
Such is the destructive influence of the wicked in the royal counsels.2
Take them then away from before the king. Let him purify his court and
government from this dross. Let him exclude it from high places. Let
him discountenance it in authority at any cost.3 David thus established his
throne in righteousness,4 and commended this resolution by his dying
counsel to his wise son.5 This is political wisdom on scriptural princi-
ples. If "righteousness exalteth a nation,"6 the open acknowledgment
of it is the sure path to national prosperity.7 And will not the throne of
our great King be established by the entire and eternal removal of the
wicked?8 In the great day of trial and decision shall I be found re-
probate or purified silver? Lord! let me, under the refiner's hand,
be "purified, and purged as gold and silver, that I may offer unto the
Lord an offering in righteousness" in that day. (Mal. iii. 3.)
6. Put not forth thyself (set not out thy glory, marg.) in the presence of
the king, and stand not in the place of great men: 7. For better it is,
that it be said unto thee, Come up hither; than that thou shouldest be
put lower in the presence of the prince whom thine eyes have seen.
Our Lord applies this proverb more generally. (Luke, xiv. 8-11.)
Who needs not this caution against ambition? Even godly Baruch
seems to have "sought great things for himself." (Jer. xlv. 5.) Not
even the fellowship of the Saviour, his heavenly instruction, his divine
pattern of holiness (Matt. xi. 29), could, restrain the "strife among the
disciples--Who should be the greatest;"9 repeated even after the most
wondrous exhibition of humility;10 nay, after they had just partaken
with him of the holy feast.11 "Loving to have the pre-eminence," is the
bane of godliness in the Church.12
Wolsey's fall is an instructive beacon to ambitious men, not to put
forth themselves to set out their glory in the presence of the king.* The
1 2 Pet. ii. 10; 12. Jude, 8, 10. 2 1 Kings, xii. 10-16. 2 Chron. xxiv. 17-24.
3 Chap. xx. 8, 26. 4 Ps. ci. 4-8. 5 1 Kings, ii. 5, 6, 32, 33, 44, 45.
6 Chap. xiv. 34. 7 1 Kings, xv. 13. 2 Chron. xiv. 1-7.
8 Mal. iii.17, 18. Matt. xiii. 41-43; xxv.31-46. 9 Matt. xviii. 1-4.
10 John, xiii. 1-15. 11 Luke. xxii. 19-27. 12 3 John, 9, 10.
Comp. Ecclus. vii. 4. The poet elegantly contrasts Daedalus and Icarus--father and son
both provided with wings. The father, contenting himself with skimming the ground, was safe.
The son, soaring aloft, perished. Hence a lesson of humility. Ovid, Trist. lib. iii. el. ii. 21.
466 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
usurpation also of the places of great men usually subjects man to be put
lower, to his own mortification. Not that we would discountenance fit
and able men from putting themselves forward in public responsibilities.
But the eagerness for the outward name, with a manifest incapacity for
the discharge of the work, is strongly censurable. "Before honour is
humility" (Chap. xviii. 12); shewn in a backwardness to obtrude either
our presence or our opinion upon those in higher stations; shrinking
from external respect, rather than courting the "vain show." Thus
were Gideon,1 Saul in his early and better days,2 and David, advanced
to honour.3
Let each of us lay himself to the work of casting down our high
tower of conceit; cultivating a deep sense of our utter worthlessness,
and carefully pondering that example, which is at once our pattern and
our principle. Oh! think of Him, who was “fairer than man,” being
the most humble of men--nay--of Him, who was infinitely more than
man, making himself "a worm, and no man."4 Think of that day,
which will set us all on our own true base; when each of us shall stand
before" the Great Prince" (Rev. i. 5), just that, and that only, which
he counts us to be? What will it be to be put lower; to be utterly
cast out in his presence, whom our eyes shall then see to our eternal con-
fusion! (Ib. verse 7.)
8. Go not forth hastily to strive, lest thou know not what to do in the end
thereof, when thy neighbour hath put thee to shame. 9. Debate thy
cause with thy neighbour himself; and discover not a secret to another:
(of another, marg.) 10. Lest he that heareth it put thee to shame, and
thine infamy turn not away.
Dissension under any circumstances is a serious evil. The consider-
ate Christian will rather concede rights, than insist upon them to the
hazard of his own soul, and to the injury of the Church. (1 Cor. vi. 1-7.)
Hasty strife must alway be wrong. Think well beforehand, whether
the case be right, or, even if it be, whether it be worth the contention.
Duly calculate the uncertainty or consequence of the end. See the
fruits in Gaal's quarrel with Abimelech,5 Amaziah's strife with his
brother king of Israel,6 godly Josiah's unadvised contention with Pha-
raoh.7 So little do we know what to do in the end thereof! Often has a
man brought himself to ruin by a hasty strife at law. Instead of
triumphing, his neighbour has put him to shame. So long as 'meum and
tuum' are in the world, sin and Satan will stir up contention. Yet never
forget, that not "hatred and wrath" only, but "variance and strife"
1 Jud. vi. 15. 2 1Sam. ix. 21, 22; xv.17.
3 Ib. xviii. 18. Comp. Ps. cxxxi. l. 4 Ps. xlv. 2, with xxii. 6.
5 Jud. ix. 26-40. Comp. Ecclus. viii. 1. 6 2 Kings, xiv. 8-12.
7 2 Chron. xxxv. 21, 22.
CHAP. XXV. 8-12 467
are "works of the flesh," excluding from heaven. (Gal. v. 19-21.)
Hence the constraining obligation to "seek peace, and pursue it" (Ps.
xxxiv. 14); after the noble example of our father Abraham, who
quenched "the beginning of the strife," by yielding to his nephew his
natural superiority, and his just rights. (Gen. xiii. 8. Comp. chap.
xvii. 14.)
Yet if, after all, strife be inevitable, then let us ponder, how much
wisdom and rule over our own spirit is needful, to conduct it honourably
to our profession. Debate thy cause with thy neighbour himself. Shew
him, that the great object is not to make good thy cause, but to put a
speedy end to the strife. Abraham, instead of complaining to others, car-
ried his wrongs straight to the king, who was answerable for them. (Gen.
xxi. 25-32.) Jephthah thus debated his cause with the king of Ammon
himself, as the best means of bringing it to an amicable settlement.* But
to discover secrets to others, even though we enjoin them to secrecy, is a
breach of integrity.† And if, as often is the case, confidence is be-
trayed, the just consequence must be infamy to ourselves, that may not
turn away from us. Backbiter will be the stamp on our name. And
many privacies hitherto unknown may be published in retaliation to
our shame.
How many unholy heats would be restrained by the practice of these
rules of wisdom and love! Obviously the most faulty is bound to yield.
But if, as usually happens, he is too unreasonable to do so; let a gener-
ous, self-forgetting kindness deny ourselves the pleasure of a triumph,
instead of standing upon punctilious forms, or waiting for an acknow-
ledgment from the offender. And if we find it more easy to talk of our
neighbour's faults to others, than wisely and prayerfully to tell him of
them alone, ask for self-discipline, and the mind of Christ. "Let the
peace of God rule in your hearts, to the which also ye are called in one
body." (Col iii. 15)
11. A word fitly spoken (spoken upon his wheels, marg.) is like apples of
gold in pictures of silver. 12. As an earring of gold, and an ornament
of fine gold, so is a wise reprover upon an obedient ear.
The allusion is to the curiously wrought baskets of silver network,
in which delicious fruits were served up. The beauty of the texture set
off the fruit with additional charms. So does a lovely medium enhance
the attractiveness of truth.‡ The preacher should strive to find out
* Judg. xi. 12-27. Comp. the rule of the great Lawgiver, Matt. xviii. 15.
† Comp. Ecclus. viii.17-19. 'To tell our own secrets'--says our great moralist--'is
generally folly; but the folly is without guilt. To communicate those with which we are
entrusted is always treachery, and treachery for the most part combined with folly.
Rambler, No. 13.
‡ See Bishop Lowth's beautiful exposition. Praelect. xxiv.
468 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
acceptable words"1--words fitly spoken--giving to each their proper
meat and that" in due season,"2 suited to their ages and difference of
temperament. "How forcible are right words !" (Job, vi. 25.) Our
Lord witnessed of himself, as "gifted with the tongue of the learned
that he might know how to speak the word in season" (Isa. 1. 4)--a
word upon the wheels--not forced or dragged, but rolling smoothly
along, like the chariot-wheels. His discourses on the living water and
the bread of life3 arose naturally out of the conversation,4 and therefore
were full of arresting application. Paul powerfully charged superstition
on the Athenians by an inscription on their own altar; and strength-
ened his reasoning by quoting from lone of their own poets. (Acts, xvii.
22-28.) To a corrupt and profligate judge he preached "righteousness,
temperance, and judgment to come." (Acts, xxiv. 25.)
In general intercourse much depends, not only upon the word spoken,
but upon the occasion and spirit of speaking. We must not only lay
ourselves out to do good, but to watch the fittest seasons of doing it.
Under affliction, or tender impressions of conviction, a word fitly spoken
might be as the descent of our gracious Lord to the soul, "like rain
upon the mown grass." (Ps. lxxii. 6.) The plough enters most effec-
tually, when the earth is softened. Under all circumstances our "lips
should know what is acceptable." (Chap. x. 32.) Unseemly language
makes wholesome truth more unpalatable. As far as possible, let
reproof be introduced naturally, without formality or constrained effort.
Many, who feel strongly the impulse, of being "instant out of season,"
neglect the not less Christian obligation of being "instant in season."
(2 Tim. iv. 2.) We may think to relieve our conscience by speaking
our mind. But to do it rudely and harshly, may put a stumbling-block
in our brother's way. The apples of gold in their beautiful cover, evi-
dently imply good sense, and good taste with good things. A well-
meaning absurdity rather brings contempt than conviction. (Chap.
xxxi. 26.)
All of us are bound to rebuke broad and palpable sins (Lev. xix.
17); yet on more doubtful individual cases the duty is far more re-
stricted. Some Providence will direct into it. There must be intimate
connection, full knowledge of the case, some right from age or station
to warrant it. From its extreme difficulty, no duty calls for a more.
delicacy of feeling, and more "meekness of wisdom." Yet where reproof
is well-timed and well-taken, a wise reproof to an obedient ear is an
earring of gold, and an ornament of gold set out to the best advantage.
Such was Eli's word to Samuel;5 Abigail's and Nathan's to David;6
Isaiah's to Hezekiah.7 We see the good fruit in Jehoshaphat, whom,
1 Eccles. xii. 10. Chap. xv. 23. 2 Luke, xii. 42. Comp. 2 Tim. ii. 15.
3 John, iv.6. 4 Comp. Luke, xiv. 15, 16. 5 1 Sam. iii. 11-18;
6 1 Sam. xxv. 31-34. 2 Sam. xii. 1-13. 7 2 Kings, xx. 14 19.
CHAP. XXV. 13, 14. 469
instead of producing revulsion, it stimulated to higher service of God)1
The Apostle's probing reproof to the Corinthian Church worked so
efficiently, that "in all things they approved themselves clear in the
matter."2 What a triumph of grace is it, when the kindness of reproof
is acknowledged,3 and the motive of love appreciated!4 Faithful in-
deed is the blessing, when the gift of an obedient ear prepares the Lord's
children for a profitable hearing of his reproof.5
13. As the cold of snow in the time of harvest, so is a faithful messenger to
them that sent him; for he refresheth the soul of his masters.
Snow itself would be unseasonable in the time of harvest. But the
cold of snow would be most refreshing to the parched and fainting
reapers. "So is the faithful messenger to them that sent him." (Chap. xiii.
17.) How did Eliezer refresh the soul of his masters, when 'he returned
with a true account and speedy dispatch of the important affair com-
mitted to him!'* Judge of Isaac's feelings in the evening walk of
meditation--his heart full of the great matter under suspense, when "he
lifted up his eyes, and behold the camels were coming," fraught with
the desired blessing. (Gen. xxiv. 63, 64.) How was Cornelius refreshed,
when his messenger returned with the joy of his heart, and the answer
to his prayers. (Acts, x. 4-6, 25.) Often does the Apostle acknowledge
this refreshment to his anxious spirit, when burdened with "the care of
all the churches."6 And may we not ascend to the highest, and with
reverence mark even God himself condescending to receive refreshment
through the agency of his faithful messengers? "We are unto God"--
saith the Apostle--"a sweet savour of Christ." He appears to be over-
whelmed with the contemplation, and in prostrate astonishment he cries
out--"Who is sufficient for these things?" (2 Cor. ii. 15, 16.) Won-
drous condescension! Our Great Master acknowledges the messengers of
his Churches as "the glory of Christ." (Ib. viii. 23.) And as his crown
will he honour them at the great consummating day. "They that turn
many to righteousness shall shine as the stars for ever and ever."
(Dan. xii.3)
14. Whoso boasteth himself of a false gift,† (in a gift of falsehood, marg.)
is like, clouds, and wind without rain.
The last proverb described an invaluable blessing. This marks a.
destructive curse. Suppose a drought, as in the days of Elijah, threat-
ening desolation to the land (1 Kings, xviii. 5), and a thick cloud,
1 2 Chron. xix. 2-4. 2 1 Cor. v. 1. 2 Cor. ii. 1-3; vii. 11.
3 Ps. cxli. 5. Comp. chap. ix. 8. 4 Chap. xxvii. 5, 6. 5 Hab. ii. 1-3. Chap. xx. 12; xv. 31.
6 1 Cor. xvi. 17, 18. Phil. ii. 25-30. 1 Thess. iii. 1-7.
* Poole.
† 'Whoso maketh greate boastes, and giveth nothing.'--Bishop COVERDALE.
470 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
seemingly big with the fruitful blessing, yet passing over--the wind
without rain. This is a true picture of the boaster; rich in promises, but
performing nothing; exciting large expectations, then sinking them in
disappointment. Whether it be a vain conceit of his own understand-
ing, or an hypocritical desire to maintain a profession, it is a boasting
over a gift of falsehood. If it be bad to promise and deceive, it is far
worse to promise with an intention to deceive. This was the very
character of the Great Deceiver. Did he not put before our unhappy
parent a false gift--a promise, which could never be realized--"Ye
shall be as gods, knowing good and evil?" (Gen. iii. 3-5.) Nay--did
he not with a presumption, that hell itself might almost be ashamed of,
boast himself of his false gift; when he offered the world to his own
Maker, as a temptation to the vilest blasphemy? (Matt.-iv. 8-10.)
How sad to find this character in those, who stand in the place of
God! The Church has ever been chastened with false teachers; minis-
tering delusion, instead of instruction.1 And are there none among
ourselves, feeding the flock with false gifts, seeking to maintain their
hollow profession even in the sight of Him, whose frown at the great
day will banish them for ever from his presence?2 Oh! let those that
bear the Lord's message, take heed, that, if they be counted ''as de-
ceivers," they may be " yet true;"3 not as those, which corrupt the word
of God; but as of sincerity, as of God, in the "sight of God," let them
"speak in Christ."4
15. By long forbearing is a prince persuaded, and a soft tongue breaketh
the bone.
The wise man had before given a general rule for gentleness. (Chap.
xv. 1.) Here he takes an extreme case, and shews its power with the
prince, whose unrestrained anger may rise to immediate revenge.5 Yet
submission, long-forbearing, has mighty power to persuade. David thus
wrought upon Saul's enraged temper.6 Often by putting a case before
an angry prince at a fitting opportunity, he may be persuaded by "the
meekness of wisdom" against his present mind.
But the general principle is most instructive. The soft member
breaking the hard bone may seem to be a paradox. But it is a fine
illustration. of the power of gentleness above hardness and irritation.
Apply it to those who are set against the truth. Many a stout heart
has been won by a forbearing yet uncompromising, accommodation to
prejudice.7 In reproof Jehovah shewed what he could do in "the
strong wind and the earthquake." But his effective rebuke was in the
1 1 Kings, xxii. 11. Jer. v. 81. 2 Cor. xi. 13-15. Gal. i. 7. 2 Pet. ii. 17-19. Jude, 12-16.
2 Matt. vii. 22, 28. 3 2 Cor. vi. 8. 4 Ib. ii. 17; iv. 2.
5 Eccles. viii. 3; x. 4. 1 Sam. xxii. 17, 18. 6 1 Sam. xxiv. 8-20; xxvi. 13-25.
7 2 Tim. ii. 24-26. 1 Cor. ix. 29-22.
CHAP. XXV. 16. 471
"still small voice;" without upbraiding; sharp, yet tender. (1 Kings
xix. 11-13.) So powerful is the energy of gentleness! Indeed among
all the graces that adorn the Christian soul, like so many jewels of
various colours and lustres, against the day of her espousals to the
Lamb of God, there is not one more brilliant than that of patience.'*
Its enduring spirit is a manifest fruit of regeneration (Jam. i. 18, 19);
a clear exhibition of the mind of Christ (Matt. xi. 29), and the practical
resemblance of his own long-forbearance amidst our continued and most
aggravated provocations. For, when we have been indulged with the
privilege of the beloved disciple--'leaning upon Jesus's breast,'
nothing have we felt to be there, but gentleness, tenderness, and love.
16. Hast thou found honey? eat so much as is sufficient for thee, lest thou
be filled therewith, and vomit it.
Solomon lately had invited us warmly to eat honey. (Chap. xxiv. 13.)
Here, however, he imposes a restraint. The old proverb applies: 'Too
much of a good thing.' Eat so much as is sufficient. So far it is sweet.
Beyond this it is nauseating. Cultivate in all things the wisdom of
sobriety, directing to a thankful, but temperate enjoyment of our earthly
blessings." Every creature of God is good, and nothing to be refused,
if it be received with thanksgiving." (1 Tim.. iv. 4.) But as a needful
balance to this universal privilege--"Let your moderation be known
unto all men."2 Satisfy the wants, but mortify the lusts, of the flesh.3
Then the gifts of God become blessings to us, and we glorify him in
them, and by them. But the most elevated pleasures of earth become
in the excess, distasteful and injurious; fraught with disappointment,
when separated from the great end. (Eccles. ii. 10, 11.) Our affections
can never safely flow out to any object, unless they are primarily fixed
on God. 'Then we may be sure not to offend, either in the object or
measure. No man can in God love whom he should not; nor imme-
diately love whom he would. This holy respect doth both direct and
limit him, and shuts up his delights in the conscience of a lawful
fruition.'† In earthly pleasure, however, we can never forget, how
slight the boundary line is between the lawful and the forbidden path.
Sin and danger begin on the extremity of virtue. For does not the
legitimate indulgence of appetite to its utmost point bring us to the
brink, and often hurry us to the allowance, of gluttony? Does not the
undisciplined flow of earthly affections endanger idolatry? Nay, even
spiritual luxury may need self-controul; lest it be excitement without
deep principle, which must eventually prove unsubstantial and delusive.
1 John, xiii. 23; xxi. 20. 2 Philip. iv. 5. 1 Cor. vii. 29-31.
3 Rom. xiii. 14. Col. iii. 5. Luke, xxi. 34.
*Bp. HORNE'S exquisite Sermon on Patience.
† Bp. HALL'S Works--Select Thought" II.
472 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
But in eating the real honey of the Gospel there is no danger of
excess. Never shall we know satiety in this delight. The increasing
desire will be fully satisfied only in eternity. 'O God, let me but taste
and see how sweet the Lord Jesus is in all his gracious promises; in
all his merciful and real performances. I shall want no more to make
me happy. This is not the honey, whereof I am bidden not to eat too
much. No, Lord, I can never eat enough of this celestial honey. Here
I cannot surfeit: or if I could, this surfeit would be my health.'
17. Withdraw thy foot from (Let thy foot be seldom in, marg.) thy
neighbour's house; lest he be weary of thee, and so hate thee.
No code of laws enters, as the Bible does, into minute regulations
for the courtesies of life. Yet surely we do not mar the sanctity of
religion, by spreading it over the face of human society. Daily life is
evangelized by the pervading influence of its wholesome principles.
This rule illustrates one of our own proverbs, which has lost nothing of
its significancy by traditionary usage. 'Familiarity breeds contempt.'
This maxim was however never intended to give a chill to the flow of
neighbourly love, or to restrain its practical exercise. It only suggests,
that kindly intercourse cannot be maintained without a considerate
feeling. An ordinary acquaintance would give just umbrage in claim-
ing the free and unrestrained intercourse of intimate friendship. And
the intruder would probably receive a plain intimation, that he was an
unwelcome guest. To withdraw the foot is an useful rule to prevent so
mortifying a result. "Make thy foot precious"† to thy neighbour, by not
giving it too often. It is far safer to err on the side of reserve, than to
incur contempt by the opposite mistake.‡
Nay--even the closer band of friendship requires its measure of
prudent restraint. It is worth all our care to preserve this invaluable
blessing from interruption. It is the sweet of life. And yet in this
honey (Verse 16) there may be a surfeit. Without mutual respect it
may nauseate. Unseasonable interruption to our friend's time; fre-
quent visits without call or object;§ interference with his necessary
engagements, or family comforts; inconvenient tax of expense--per-
severance in this course might produce weariness, if not disgust, or even
hatred.
Blessed be God! There is no need of this caution and reserve in
our approach unto him. Once acquainted with the way of access, there
is no wall of separation. Our earthly friend may be pressed too far.
* Bp. HALL'S Works--Soliloquies, liv.
† Heb. See Holden. Comp. 1 Sam. iii. 1--precious in both cases, because rare.
‡ Camp. Ecclus. xxi. 22. Livy observes, that 'the perfection of behaviour is for a man
to retain his own dignity, without intruding on the liberty of another.'
§ See a valuable paper, On the Robbery of Time, in "The Idler." Vol. I. No. 14.
.
CHAP. XXV. 18. 473
Kindness may be worn out by frequent use. But never can we come
to our heavenly Friend unseasonably. Never is he weary of our impor-
tunity.1 His gates are always open; "blessed are they that are
watching and waiting there." (Chap. viii. 34.) The more frequent the
visits, the more welcome, and the more fruitful. What with man would
be intrusion, with God is confidence. Earnestly does he invite to his
closest and most endearing fellowship. (Cant. v. 1.) And does his
child presume upon this most gracious privilege? Far from it. While
he has the "boldness of access;"2 he seeks for "grace, whereby he may
serve God acceptably with reverence and godly fear." (Heb. xii. 28.)
18. A man that beareth false witness against his neighbour is a maul, and
a sword, and a sharp arrow.
False witness is universally condemned. But where, save in the
word of God, are its true character and deep aggravation of guilt
adequately set forth? What a picture is here of cruelty and malice-
nay--even of intentional murder! Three murderous instruments are
before us, identifying the sixth and ninth commandments. The tongue,
intended as "a tree of life," becomes a weapon of death.3 Who can
bear the sin involved in this fearful perversion? Often does the open
perjury, as a sword and sharp arrow, pierce the fountain of life.4 And
little better are those calumnies and unkind insinuations--all breaches
of charity--uttered so freely in common conversation. Consider, ye
that deal in such conversation, whether you could think of treating the
objects of your defamatory discourse, as Jael did Sisera (Judg. iv. 21),
or as Joab did Abner. (2 Sam. iii. 27.) Would you shrink with horror
at the thought of beating out your neighbour's brains with an hammer,
or of piercing his bowels with a sword, or a sharp arrow? Why then
do you indulge in the like barbarity; destroying as far as you can that
reputation, which is dear to men as their life, and wounding all their
best interests, by mangling their character?* Other injuries a man
may wear away or outlive. But defamation, notwithstanding all
retrieving circumstances to heal the wound, too often leaves a scar to
the dying day.
Truly affecting is it to think of the multitude of these mauls, swords,
and sharp arrows even in the Church of God. It is not "setting the,
battle in array against the Philistines, army against army" (1 Sam.
xvii. 21), but brother against brother. The Shibboleth of a party, not
the standard of the cross, is the watchword for the destructive conflict.
(Judg. xii. 6.) "How long! Lord! how long?"
1 Luke, xi. 5-9; xviii. 1. 2 Eph. iii.12. Heb. iv. 16; x.19, 20.
3 Chap. xv. 4, with xii. 18. Jer. ix. 3, 8.
4 Gen. xxxix. 14-20. 1 Kings, xxi. 10-13. Matt. xxvi. 60-66. Acts, vi. 13, 14.
* Lawson in loco. See God's estimate and threatening. Ps. 1. 19-21. Ezek. xxii. 5.
474 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
19. Confidence in an unfaithful man in time of trouble is like a broken
tooth, and a foot out of joint.
The broken tooth and disjointed foot are not only useless for their
respective offices, but a source of pain and uneasiness. So is an unfaith-
ful man in time of trouble. "A friend loveth at all times, and a brother
is born to adversity." (Chap. xvii. 17.) But many have the name only.
Very friendly are they, when they are not needed; when we are dis-
pensing, not receiving, our gifts; when there is no cost to pay. But
in the time of trouble, "a faithful man who can find?" (Chap. xx. 6.)
Keenly did Job feel this to be a sinking confidence in his time of trouble.
(Job, vi. 14-17.) David was sorely tried by this affliction (Ps. lv.
12-14), even at the very last stage of life. (1 Kings, i. 19, 25.) The
brethren came out to meet the Apostle at Appii Forum. Yet he records
a time, when their support would have been specially cheering--"At
my first answer no man stood by me, but all men forsook me."1 Need
we wonder at this appointed cross? His Master had endured it before
him; and "it is enough for the servant, that he be as his lord."2
The world abounds with instances of this disappointment. Micah's
Levite ungratefully repaid the trust reposed in him.3 Mephibosheth's
trust in Ziba;4--and Israel's dependence upon an arm of flesh; shewed
the broken reed, not the staff of support.* Truly, when has the world
ever answered its fair promises? When has it ever given a faithful
confidence in time of trouble? When has it failed to make the soul
"ashamed of its hope?" A merciful correction to the child of God,
when he turns aside from his true confidence to vain dependences.
But whoever be unfaithful, God is true. Who ever trusted in him,
and was confounded? Who has ever built upon his sure foundation,
and not witnessed its unshaken security? (Isa. xxviii. 16.) Though he
has pledged himself never to forsake his servants (Heb. xiii. 5); yet
specially--"I will be with him in trouble--a very present help in time
of trouble."5
20. As he that taketh away a garment in cold weather, and as vinegar upon
nitre, so is he that singeth songs to an heavy heart.
What could be more inhuman than taking away a poor man's
garment, or the coverlid of his bed, in cold weather? Such an act of
cruelty was forbidden by the God of the poor.6 Again--what could
be more unfitting than pouring vinegar upon nitre; which, instead of
1 Acts, xxviii. 15, with 2 Tim. iv. 16. 2 Matt. xxvi. 56, with x. 24, 25.
3 Judg. xvii. 7-12; xviii. 20-24. 4 2 Sam. xvi. 1-4; xix. 24-28.
5 Ps. xci. 15; xlvi. 1. Jer. xvii. 5-8. 6 Deut. xxiv. 12,17. Job, xxiv. 7-10. Isa. lviii. 7.
* See also Assyria. 2 Chron. xxviii. 20, 21. Hos. v. 13. Egypt, Isa. xxx. 1-3; xxxi.
1-8. Jer. xxxvi. 5-7. Ezek. xxix. 6, 7.
CHAP. XXV. 20-22. 475
being serviceable, would only dissolve it with violent effervescence?*
Not less unseasonable would be the merriment of singing songs to an heavy
heart. (Eccles. iii. 4.) "Give wine"--is the inspired rule--"unto
them that be of heavy hearts."1 But however great be the charms of
music,2 they are ill suited to soothe the pangs of sorrow.3 A con-
strained song was a keen edge of the Babylonish affliction.4 And
where no unkindness is intended, inconsiderate levity, or even excessive
cheerfulness, is as "a sword in the bones." The tenderness, that shews
a brother's tears; that knows how to "weep with them that weep,"5 as
members of the same body;6 and directs the mourner to the mourner's
friend and God--this is Christian sympathy--a precious balm for the
broken heart. The outward expression of this sympathy may not be
always needful. But oh! let its spirit be deeply cherished, specially by
Christians of a buoyant or frigid temperament; most of all by the
minister of Christ, that he may take his chair by the mourner's side, and
"comfort him with the same comfort, wherewith he himself is comforted
of God." (2 Cor. i. 4-6.) Much may be done to correct a constitutional
deficiency. Redundancy of feeling, no less than coldness, needs self-
controul. But never let us forget, that our divine Saviour for this end
"took our infirmities, and bare our sicknesses," that "he might be
touched with the feeling of them."7 Yes--"he knoweth our frame;"8
and his work is not to take away the garment from his child in the cold
weather, but to cherish him with all the tenderness of his own bosom.9
Instead of unsuitably pouring vinegar upon nitre; like the good
Samaritan, he "pours in his oil and wine for the healing of the wound.10
21. If thine enemy be hungry, give him bread to eat; and if he be thirsty,
give him water to drink: 22. For thou shalt heap coals of fire upon his
head, and the Lord shall reward thee.
In what heathen code of morals shall we find this perfection of love?
Every system concedes largely to selfishness. None reach beyond
"loving those that love us," of which the true Lawgiver justly asks,
"What reward have ye?" (Matt. v. 46, 47.) Nay--the corrupt
Jewish teachers could not rise to this sublime standard. 'They did not,
it seems, perceive anything to be disapproved in hatred, more than in
good will. And, according to their system of morals, "our enemy"
was the proper natural object of one of these passions, as "our neigh-
1 Chap. xxxi. 6. Ps. civ. 15. 2 1 Sam. xvi. 23. 2 Kings, iii. 15
3 Job, xxx. 31. Dan. vi. 18. Comp. Eccles. x.x.ii. 6. 4 Ps. cx.xxvii. 1-4.
5 Rom. xii. 15. Comp. Job, ii. 11-13. 7 1 Cor. xii. 26. Heb. xiii. 3.
7 Matt. viii. 17. Heb. iv.15. 8 Ps. ciii.14.
9 Isa. xl. 11. 10 Ib. lxi. 2, 8, with Luke, x. 84.
* The nitre of Scripture is not that salt that commonly goes by the name, but a soda or
mineral alkali (the Roman natrum) which strongly ferments with all acids. Dr. Blayney
remarks on Jer. ii. 22 (the only other example of the word), 'In many parts of Asia it is
called soap-earth, because it is dissolved in water, and used like soap in washing.'
476 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
bour" was of the other.'* They could not come up to the law: and
therefore, perverting the rule of judicial, to authorize private, vengeance,1
they brought the law down to their own level.
The agreement between the Old and New Testament codes† is most
complete. Both were dictated by the same Spirit. Each stamps the
other with divine authority. 'The law of love is not expounded more
spiritually in any single precept either of Christ or his Apostles, than in
this exhortation.'‡ We need not therefore disparage one system, in
order to exalt the other. "The new commandment is that which we
had from the beginning;" old in its authority; "new" only, as
enforced by a new principle and example.2 To suppose that the gospel
stretches beyond the measure of the law, would imply, either that the
law demanded too little, or the Gospel too much. Neither supposition
honours the law, as the unchangeable transcript of the divine perfections.
There may be no open breach of the law, while yet the heart revolts
from its high standard. Circumstances may hinder open retaliation. Our
enemy may be out of our reach, or may be too great to offend with im-
punity. But the grudge remains.3 There would be a pleasure at his
misfortune.4 We think of him only in connection with our injuries.
The spark may be confined for years, and on some favourable oppor-
tunity burst out into a murderous flame. (2 Sam. xiii. 23, 28.) How
many haltings and shiftings are there at best, before we fully embrace
the obligation! How much of a retorting spirit, or measuring our
conduct towards our enemy by his towards us! And if on any point
we have constrained our selfish hearts to return good for evil, what
ministering to self-complacency, or self-righteousness!
We are not bound to trust our enemies; but we are bound to for-
give them. And yet too often our "love" to them is only ceasing to
quarrel with them. If we put off revenge, as inconsistent with our
Christian name; yet do we "put on, as the elect of God, bowels of
mercies--forgiving one another, if any man have a quarrel against
any?" (Col. iii. 12, 13.) 'Love is of too substantial a nature to be
made up of mere negatives; and withal too operative, to terminate in
bare desires.'§ We may profess our good-will towards our enemy, that
we forgive and pray for him from our heart. But unless we are ready
with the practical exercise of sympathy--feeding hill when he is hungry,
and giving him to drink, when thirsty--we are only the victims of our
1 Matt. v. 43. Deut. vii. 1, 2; xxiii. 6; xxv. 17-19. 2 John, xiii. 34. 1 John, ii. 7, 8. 2 John, 5.
3 Lev. xix. 18. Jam. v. 9. 4 Chap. xxiv. 17, 18.
* Bp. BUTLER'S Sermons at the Rolls. Ser. VIII.
†Comp. Rom. xii. 20, 21, with text. Exod. xxiii. 4, 5, with Matt. v. 44. Our church
has not neglected to imbue her worshippers with this blessed spirit. See the Litany and
Collect for St. Stephen's day.
‡ Scott in loco.
§ SOUTH'S Sermon on Matt. v. 44.
CHAP. xxv. 21, 22. 477
own self-delusion. 'O noble revenge of Elisha'--exclaims Bishop
Hall, 'to feast his persecutors! To provide a table for those, who had
provided a grave for him! No revenge but this, is heroical, and fit for
Christian imitation.'* To feed our hungry enemy with the tenderness of
a nurse, who breaks the portion into morsels for her infant's nourish-
ment--What a splendour does nature's opposition give to this victory
of grace!
No man ever conquered his enemy's heart by revenge; many by
love. Was it not thus, that the Almighty Saviour dissolved the hard-
ness of our unyielding hearts? Let the effort be tried. Surround the
intractable metal beneath and above; not only putting it over the fire,
but heaping coals of fire upon it. Few hearts are so obdurate, as not to
melt under the mighty energy of patient, self-denying, burning love.
(1 Sam. xxiv. 16-20; xxvi. 25.) Or even should it be dross, that
resists the vehement flame, all will not be lost. If thine enemy will
not recompence thee for all the good done to him, concern not thyself
with that. The Lord shall reward thee. The God of love will honour
his own image on his own children. (Matt. v. 44,45.) David in this
confidence restrained the rising vengeance in his zealous servants;1 and
in similar forbearance found his "prayer for his enemy's good returned
into his own bosom."2 We are directed to return "blessing for railing,
knowing that hereunto are we called, that we should inherit a blessing."
(1 Pet. iii. 9.) Our chief aim therefore must be to gain the victory of
meekness and love. The perverseness of our enemies will thus become
a great advantage to us. We shall be indebted to them for some
measure of conformity to our Divine Master.
To dispute the reasonableness of the precept is to say, that ‘man is
the proper object of good-will, whatever his faults are, when they
respect others; but not when they respect myself. I am sure,' (adds
Bishop Butler-probing this principle to the bottom) 'there is nothing
in it unreasonable. It is indeed no more, than that we should not
indulge a passion, which, if generally indulged, would propagate itself,
so as almost to lay waste the world.'+
But most reasonable as this precept is, it is infinitely removed from
man's native power. The rules, no less than the doctrines, of God, are
"foolishness to him." (1 Cor. ii. 14.) Let those, who look to "enter
into life be keeping the commandments," begin with this. They would
soon see, that they might as soon turn the sun backward; that they
could as readily cut "off a right hand," as reach it out to feed an
enemy in distress. Such an exhibition of love would be in their eyes an
1 2 Sam. xvi. 9-12. Ps. vii.. 4. 2 Ps. xxxv. 13. Comp. Matt. x 13.
*Contemplations, Book xix. Cont. 2, on 2 Kings, vi. 22, 23 See another equally noble
example in the most degenerate times of Judah. 2 Chron. xxviii. 12-15.
| Ywmize. LXX. Rom. xii. 20. Comp. Sehlesner.
+ Bp. BUTLER'S Sermon at the Rolls. Ser. IX
478 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
ideal perfection; or at least, like an exquisite piece of workmanship,
which every one admires, but no one attempts to imitate.
Yet is it really impracticable? So the world counts it. So my
own corrupt heart finds it. But "I can do all things"--this then
among the rest--"through Christ which strengtheneth me." (Philip.
iv. 13.) It shall then be done willingly, joyfully. My enemy has no
claim upon my life; yet he that bids me love him, claims and deserves
my full obedience. (John, xiv. 15.) We are the disciples of him, who
died for his enemies.'* Did we but drink more largely into his spirit,
this impracticable precept would be not our task or our cross, but our
delight and indulgence.
23. The north wind driveth away rain: so doth an angry countenance a
backbiting tongue. (The north wind bringeth forth rain: so doth a
backbiting tongue an angry countenance, marg.†)
Who should tolerate the backbiter? He is a pest in society;1 in
the circle of friendship;2 in the church of God.3 Neither his plausible
garb, nor the good company who give him the hearing, can hide his
real character. If the north wind driveth away the rain, let an angry
countenance frown him from our presence. If it brings the rain, let
the very sight of him bring a rebuke of holy indignation. This is to
"be angry, and not sin."‡ Indeed not to be angry here, would be
to sin. Holy anger is a property in God.4 It was manifested in the
humanity of Jesus.5 When God's name was dishonoured, "the meekest
man upon earth waxed hot"6 in anger, even while his heart was
melting in love to the rebels. (Exod. xxxii. 30-32.) And should not
we feel this, when the backbiting tongue breaks his law of love, dear to
him as his own Godhead? And yet rare indeed is the exception--if
alas!--even with Christians, when the faults of others, real or imagined,
do not occupy the conversation: or at least, when some lowering of the
absent, or some ridicule of their infirmities, is not admitted!
This tongue wounds four at one stroke--the backbiter himself, the
object of his attack, the hearer, and the name of God. All involves the
Christian professor in the fearful guilt of "offending the little ones."
1 Chap. xxvi. 20. 2 Chap. xvi. 28. 3 2 Cor. xii. 20.
4 Deut. ix. 8. Ps. vii. 11. Nah. i. 2. 5 Mark, iii. 5; viii. 33.
6 Exod. xxxii.19 with Num. xii. 3
* Bishop Wilson (Sodor and Man.) Rom. v. 10. Comp. Luke, xxiii. 34. Was not this
his own obedience to his own law? Matt. v. 44.
† Many valuable critics, after the LXX, prefer the marginal to the received reading.
The ordinary meaning of the Hebrew word is to produce or bring forth, chap. viii. 24.
And yet Comp. Job, xxxvii. 22. Homer also speaks of the north wind bringing fine
weather.--Il. 0. 170. The meaning however is the same with either rendering.
‡ Eph iv. 26. 'You know,' said Philip Henry--'what an angry countenance doth;
and we may sometimes we a reproof by our looks, when we have not opportunity of
giving it otherwise. See his Life.
CHAP. XXV. 24. 479
(Matt. xviii. 6.) For how can the weak and inexperienced but be
stumbled at so inconsistent an exhibition of the gospel of love?
But if he be rather welcomed than repelled, is not the willing
listener thus partaker of his sin? Flee this deadly pest. Keep thine
ears, as well as thy mouth, from the poison. Let thine angry countenance
drive away either the slander from him, or the slanderer from thee.
Where remonstrance cannot be given, a marked displeasure of coun-
tenance is often an effective rebuke to the shameless offender.*
24. It is better to dwell in the corner of the housetop, than with a brawling
woman in a wide house.
This proverb has been given before. (Chap. xxi. 9.) Scriptural
repetitions shew not want of matter, but the deep importance of the
matter laid out. Such is the vexation connected with this evil, that
the most uncomfortable dwelling, where the soul might retire for com-
munion with God, would be a grateful alternative.
This Book presents a graphical picture of conjugal happiness,
where "the wife is as the loving hind and the pleasant roe"--her
husband's most satisfying delight. (Chap. v. 18, 19.) Here is a vivid
contrast of misery, from which the wide house provides no refuge, no
rest.
The relative position of the parties in the sacred ordinance is wisely
appointed. Equality would only have provoked contention for supe-
riority. The divine appointment preserves peace without degradation.1
If "man is the head of the woman," "the woman is the glory of the
man"2--the diadem in his domestic circle,3 and, upon her slightly
lowered level; still his support, solace, and "help-meet." (Gen. ii. 18.)
The brawling woman, revolting against her Maker's rule of subjection, is
no less a tormentor to herself than to her husband.
Let the Christian professor beware of trifling with the law of this
ordinance--"Only in the Lord." (1 Cor. vii. 39.) If he comes into the
world, instead of "coming out;" if, instead of "being separate," he
unites himself in the closest bond; if, when forbidden to "touch the
unclean thing," he makes himself "one flesh" with it,4 let him not.
wonder, if his God "curse his blessing,"5 and leave him to choose for
1 Gen. iii. 16. 1 Tim. ii. 11-14. 2 1 Cor. xi. 3-7. 3 Chap. xxxi. 28.
4 2 Cor. vi. 14-17, with Eph. v. 31. 5 Mal. ii. 2.
* Augustine's biographer mentions of him, that these two lines were written in his
dining-room--
'Quisquis amat dictis absentum rodere vitam,
Hanc mensam vetitam noverit esse sibi.'
It is added that he said to a bishop, indulging this habit at his table, 'Either I will blot
out these verses on the wall, or begone from my table.' Bishop Burnet, in his Essay on
Queen Mary, mentions her effectual rebuke of calumny. If any indulged. it in her presence,
she would ask, if they had read Archbishop Tillotson's Sermon on Evil Speaking, or give
them other pointed reproof.--See the fine description, Ecclus. xxvii. 13-20.
480 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
himself an house of contention, unvisited with one ray of heavenly
sunshine. Young man! ponder the deep responsibility of the marriage
choice. Let it be manifestly the Lord's choice for thee, not thine for
thyself. Yea--let him be thy first choice, and he will order the rest.
(Matt. vi. 33.) Watch and distrust thine own will. Consult the
"lamp and light of thy path." (Ps. cxix. 105.) Mark the Providence
of thy God;1 and "his blessing, that maketh rich, and addeth no
sorrow with it," will sanctify his own gift.2
Christian women! Think not these Proverbs unworthy your atten-
tion. Be it so, that you answer not to the revolting picture. But
surely the repeated exhibition strongly inculcates the cultivation of the
opposite graces, the absence of which clouds the female character in
painful deformity.3
25. As cold waters to a thirsty soul, so is good news from afar country.
What were the cold waters to Hagar and her child in the wilder-
ness;4 to Israel at Rephidim;5 to Samson at Lehi!* Such is the
cordial of good news from afar country. Solomon had before spoken of
the "refreshment pf the messenger" (Verse 13); here of the message.
This Proverb, like many others, was probably familiar to his own
experience. The return of his fleets sent to a far country for precious
merchandize were doubtless (like our own merchant ships) welcomed
with no common delight. (1 Kings, ix. 26-28.) The exile from his
country, or one that has interests in a foreign land--near and dear
relatives, from whom the separation has been long--will fully realize
this lively illustration. Had Joseph's brethren brought to their sor-
rowing father as many pieces of gold as grains of corn, it would have
been nothing to the good news from a far country--"Joseph is yet
alive."6 Distant intelligence is naturally more cheering, than tidings
in themselves equally interesting, nearer home. The long interval of
these tidings; the lengthened separation from the beloved object; the
anxiety necessarily excited by want of intercourse; the uncertainty of
his welfare and prospects--all combine to make these cold waters
specially refreshing to the thirsty soul. "Hope deferred maketh the
heart sick; but when the desire cometh, it is a tree of life."7
Reader! if thy light vain heart has ever leaped within thee at the
news of some earthly advantage, hast thou heard and welcomed the
good news from the far country? Dost thou know thy need, thy danger
of perishing? Then what refreshment can compare with the "good
1 Gen. xxiv. 12-60. Ruth, iii. 18. 2 Chap. xix. 14; x. 22.
3 1 Tim. ii. 9, 10. 1 Pet. iii. 1-6. 4 Gen. xxi. 16-19.
5 Exod. xvii. 1-6. Comp. Num. xx. 11. 6 Gen. xlv. 25-28. Comp. xliii. 27-30.
7 Chap. xiii 12. Comp. xv. 30. Contrast Neh. i. 2-4.
* Judg. xv. 18, 19. See Virgil's beautiful image, Eclog. v. 46-48.
CHAP. XXV. 26. 481
tidings of great joy" brought to thee from heaven--"Unto you is born
a Saviour?" (Luke, ii. 10, 11.) Yet in vain would be these joyous
tidings, unless faith could hear their repeated proclamation as from the
Seraph's lips, or from the Saviour's cross. But such influence do they
bring to the opened heart, as melts away the mass of sin in the glowing
splendour of this grand work of God--Yes--sinner--mountains of
gold could never have purchased the blessing now brought to thine
ears, yea--to the door of thine heart, "without money and without
price." (Isa. lv. 1.) Does not then thine heart spring in tile song of
praise--"How beautiful upon the mountains are the feet of him, that
bringeth good tidings, that publisheth peace!" (Ib. lii. 7.) Most
grateful also are the messengers' tidings from a far country, of the
welcome reception of their message.1 The angelic harps strike up the
song.2 Even the bosom of God is filled with adorable joy!3
26. A righteous man falling down before the wicked is as a troubled
fountain, and a corrupt spring.
Eastern fountains and springs (where the rains are only periodical,
and at long intervals) are of no common price.4 The injury of corrupt-
ing them is proportionate.5 The well is therefore a blessing or a curse,
according to the purity or impurity of the waters. A righteous man in
his proper character is "a well of life, a blessing in the midst of the
land."6 But if he fall down before the wicked by his inconsistent pro-
fession,* the blessing becomes a curse, the fountain is troubled, and the
spring corrupt. What a degradation was it to Abraham to fall down
under the rebuke of an heathen king;7 to Peter, to yield to a servant-
maid in denying his Lord!8 How did David's sin trouble the fountain,
both to his family9 and his people!10 How did the idolatry of his wise
son corrupt the spring through successive generations!11
When a minister of Christ apostatizes from the faith12 (and mourn-
fully frequent have been such spectacles) or compromises his principles
from the fear of man,13 the springs and fountains of truth are fearfully
corrupted. When a servant of God, of standing and influence, crouches
and falls down under the wicked,† the transparency of his profession is
grievously tarnished. Satan thus makes more effective use of God's
people than of his own. The gross wickedness of the ungodly passes
1 Acts, xv. 3. Comp. xi. 18, 23. 2 Luke, xv. 7, 10. 3 Ib. verses 20-24.
4 Gen. xxvi. 18-22. Deut. viii. 7. Josh. xv. 18, 19. 5 See Ezek. xxxii. 2; xxxiv. 18.
6 Chap. x. 11. Gen. xii. 3. 7 Gen. xii. 18-20. Comp. xx. 10; xxvi.l0.
8 Matt. xxvi. 69-72. 9 2 Sam. xi. 2, with xiii. 11-14; xvi. 22.
10 Ib. xii. 14. 11 1 Kings, xi. 1-8. 2 Kings, xxiii. 13.
12 Philem. 24, with 2 Tim. iv. 10. 13 Gal. ii. 11-14.
* Falling down is to be taken in a moral sense (making a slip). Parkhurst.
† 2 Kings, xviii. 5, 6, with 13-16. Contrast with these humbling instances of infirmity
the great Confessor, who would not fall down before false Apostles--not even before a true
Apostle.--Gal. ii. 4, 5, 11.
482 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
in silence. But he makes the neighbourhood ring with the failings of
Christian professors. Godly consistency so grates upon the conscience
of the world, that at any breach of it they clap their hands with Satanic
joy; see the Lord "wounded in the house of his friends." (Zech. xiii. 6.)
Principles and practices are sanctioned, that wound our Divine Master.
The consciences of the ungodly are lulled. "The lame," instead of
being "healed," are "turned out of the way." (Heb. xii. 13.) Thus
'the scandalous falls of good men are like a bag of poison cast by
Satan into the spring, from whence the whole town is supplied with
water'.*
Nor let this be considered as the responsibility only of eminent
Christians. All are by profession "the salt of the earth, and the light
of the world." Let all therefore see to it, that "the salt does not lose its
savour," and that the candlestick gives its clear light. (Matt. v. 13-16.)
None of us stand--or act alone. "None of us"--be it well pondered--
"liveth unto himself." (Rom. xiv. 7.) The conduct of each has its
measure of influence on the body. Each is the centre of a circle more
or less extended. Each is either a pure spring, or a troubled fountain.
Lord! "cast the salt into the spring of the waters, that they may be
healed." (2 Kings, ii. 21, 22.)
27. It is not good to eat much honey; so for men to search their own
glory is not glory.
Honey is good; but in moderation. (Chap. xxiv. 13.) It is not good
to eat much honey. (Verse 16.) A man's own name and reputation is
honey to him. Let him carefully preserve it from "the dead fly that
spoils it."1 The honour of God is connected with the honourable pro-
fession of his people. But this carefulness is a virtue on the brink of
vice; a duty on the borders of imminent danger. To be puffed up by
our own endowments, to listen to our praise; to force ourselves upon
public attention,2 thus to search out our own glory,3 is not glory. As
unseemly is it to seek our own glory, as to ascribe to ourselves our own
being.
Yet is there no danger of seeking the fame, rather than the sub-
stance of godliness, a well-known name in the Church, rather than
an unknown name in the book of life? Few ministers, but have been
severely exercised here; identifying their usefulness with their honour;
cherishing the desire for public approbation, rather than for unnoticed
1 Phil. iv. 8, with Eccles. x. 1. 2 Chap. xx. 6; xxvii. 2.
3 Gen xi. 4; 2 Kings, x. 16. Dan. iv. 30.
* FLAVEL'S Method of Grace. Sermon XXXV.
† Critics seem much perplexed by the difficulty of supplying a negative in the last
clause. Yet Professor Lee observes (Heb. Gram. 242: 13), 'The most frequent ellipsis is of
the negatives, e. g. Ps. ix. 19. Deut. xxxiii. 6. 1 Sam. ii. 3. Ps. xliv. 17. Prov. xxv. 27;
xxx. 3, &c."
CHAP. XXI. 28. 483
fruitfulness; dreading to be counted upon an ordinary level, as "vessels
of wood and earth," rather than of, "gold and silver." (2 Tim. ii. 20.)
Oh! it is a mighty victory over self, to trample man's judgment under
foot, and eye only God's approval. Nothing is right except it be
wrought in the true spirit of the gospel; "doing nothing in vain-glory,
but in lowliness of mind each esteeming others better than himself."l
The great apostle spoke of matters of glorying only by compulsion.*
A vain-glorious spirit cankers many a plausible profession. (John, v.
44; xii. 43.). Did we turn from the flattering glass of self-love to the
pure and faithful mirror of the law, the inconceivable deformities
opening to view would constrain us to take the lowest place among
the most unworthy. Most wholesome is the recollection—"That
which is highly esteemed among men is abomination in the sight of
God." (Luke, xvi. 15.)
28. He that hath no rule over his own spirit is like a city that is broken
down, and without walls.
A former proverb declared "him that had rule over his spirit" to
be a mighty conqueror. (Chap. xvi. 32.) And certainly the noblest
conquests are gained or lost over ourselves. He that hath no rule over
his own spirit is an easy prey to the invader. Any one may irritate and
torment him. (Esth. iii. 5, 6; v. 13.) He yields himself to the first
assault of his ungoverned passions, offering no resistance; like a city
broken down and without walls, the object of contempt. (Neh. i. 3; ii. 17.)
Having no discipline over himself, temptation becomes the occasion of
sin, and hurries him on to fearful lengths that he had not contemplated.
The first outbreak of anger tends to murder.2 Unwatchfulness over
lust plunges into adultery.3 The mightiest natural strength is utter
feebleness in the great conflict.4 How should such an object excite
our tenderest compassion!
But there are many cases of this moral weakness, less shameful, and
yet scarcely less injurious to the soul. Every outbreaking of irritation,
every spark of pride kindling in the heart, before it ever spews itself in
the countenance or on the tongue, must be attacked, and determinately
resisted. It is the beginning of a breach in the walls of the city.
Without instant attention, it will widen to the ruin of the whole.
(Comp. chap., xvii. 14.) Man may talk of self-control, as if the reins
were in his own hand. But he who has been "born of the Spirit,"
and taught "to know the plague of his own heart," is made to feel,
that effective self-controul is divine grace, not his own native power.
What then is to be done? On the first assault fortify the walls by
1 Philip. ii. 3. Gal. v. 26. 2 Gen. iv. 5-8. Comp. 1 Sam. xx. 30-33; xxv. 33. Dan. iii. 13, 19.
3 2 Sam. xi. 2-4. 4 Judg. xvi. 1-19.
* 2 Cor. xii. 1-11. See Lyttleton on Conversion of St. Paul.
484 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
prayer. Trust not to the strength of the citadel. Have not repeated
defeats taught us the need of calling in better strength than our own?
How could we enter into the conflict, much less hold on the fight, but
for the promise—"Sin shall not have dominion over us?" (Rom. vi. 14.)
Oh! for simple—cleaving faith, to draw out from this mighty source,
energy, continual watchfulness, perseverance, triumphant victory!
CHAPTER XXVI.
1. As snow in summer, and as rain in harvest, so honour is not seemly
for a fool.
THE richest blessings lose their value when unsuitably bestowed.
Snow is the beauteous wintry covering of the earth;1 preserving the
seed from the killing cold.2 But in summer, it is out of season. Rain
in its season is a fruitful blessing.3 But in harvest it is an unsuitable
interruption to the reaper's work, and often a public calamity. (1 Sam.
xii. 17, 18.) Just so, honour, unsuitably bestowed on a fool, is not
seemly for him. ‘He neither deserves it, nor knows how to use it.'*
Honour bestowed on Joseph and Daniel, suitably, to their wisdom, was
seemly to themselves, and a blessing to the land.4 But when a fool,
sometimes a scoffer at religion, is promoted to a public station, how
ungracefully does his honour sit upon him? In Haman it was only
the display of his pride and vain glory, the occasion of his more public
disgrace.
Learn then to adorn our profession with consistency. Seek that
heavenly wisdom, which will make us worthy of any honour that may
be appointed for us. " He that is faithful in that which is least, is
faithful also in much." (Luke, xvi. 10.)
2. As the bird by wandering: as the swallow by flying, so the curse
causeless shall not come.
Groundless fears are real evils, and often press heavily upon
enfeebled minds. A curse flies out of an angry mouth undeserved,
unprovoked. ‘What if it should curse to pass?' But we need no
more fear the causeless curse, than the birds wandering over our heads.
The swallow flying up and down never lights upon us; so the curse
causeless shall not come to hurt us. Powerless was Moab's curse, though
attempted to be strengthened with the divination of the wicked pro-
1 Job, xxxvii. 6. 2 Isa. lv. 10.
3 Ib. Job, xxxviii. 26, 27. Ps. lxv. 9–13; civ. 13, 14. Jam. v. 7.
4 Gen. xli. 38-40. Dan. vi. 1.-3.
* Poole. Chap. mix. 10; xxx. 21, 22. Eccles. x. 5–7. Comp. Ps. xii. 8.
CHAP. XXV1. 3. 485
phet.l Goliath's curse against David was scattered to the winds.2
What was David the worse for Shimei's curse;3 or Jeremiah for the
curse of his persecutors?4 Under this harmless shower of stones we
turn from men to God, and are at peace. "Let them curse; but bless
thou; when they arise, let them be ashamed; but let thy servant
rejoice." (Ps, cix. 28.)
But if the curse be not causeless, it will come. Jotham's righteous
curse came upon Abimelech and the men of Schechem. (Judg. ix. 56,
57.) Elisha's curse fearfully came to the young mockers of Bethel.
(2 Kings, ii. 24.) The curse abides on Jericho from generation to
generation!* And—Reader—if thou be an unconverted, unbelieving
sinner, without love to thy Saviour, there is a curse for thee, not causeless,
justly deserved; and come it must, come it will.5 Yea—has it not already
come from thy Maker and thy God;6 not an impotent threat of evil,
but the solemn foreboding of everlasting wrath centering in thy heart?
Oh! flee from it while time is given; while the refuge is open to
thee!7 If thou be under cover, it shall not come.8 Thou shalt rejoice
in "thy redemption from it,"9 in thy complete security. (Chap. i. 33.)
3. A whip for the horse, a bridle for the ass, and a rod for the fool's back,
This proverb inverts our ideas. We should have given the bridle
for the horse, and the whip for the ass.† But the Eastern asses are a very
superior race, both in beauty and spirit, a valuable property to their
owners.10 The bridle is necessary to curb and to guide them; while
the horse, perhaps badly broken in, may need a whip; if dull, to acce-
lerate his speed; if fiery, to correct his temper.‡ Every creature sub-
dued for the service of man needs his appropriate discipline. The
Lord "guides his children with his eye." But let them cultivate a
pliable spirit; "not as the horse and the mule, whose mouth must be
held in with bit and bridle." (Ps. xxxii. 8, 9.) The fool neither hears
the voice, nor sees the directing eye. He will be ruled neither by
reason nor persuasion. A rod therefore is for the fool's back.11 Pharaoh
provoked this severe chastisement at the hands of God;12 the men of
1 Numb. xxii, 4-6; xxiii. 8. Deut. xxiii. 4, 5. 2 1 Sam. xvii. 43.
3 2 Sam. xvi. 12. 4 Jer. xv. 10.
5 Deut. xxviii. 15; xxix. 19, 20. 1 Cor. xvi. 22. 6 Chap. iii. 33. Zech. v. 3, 4.
7 Gen. xix. 17. 8 Rom. viii. 1. 9 Gal. iii. 10, 13.
10 Judg. x 3, 4; xii. 13, 14. 2 Sam. xvii. 23; xix. 26.
11 Chap. x. 13; xix. 29. 12 Exod. x. 3.
* Josh. vi. 26. 1 Kings, xvi. 34 The city of Palms is described by a recent traveller,
as an assemblage of huts, ‘so low, that at night one might almost ride over them without
being aware of the fact.'—Three Weeks in Palestine, p. 89. Such is the unchangeable truth
of God!
† Michaelis was so positive on this point, that he altered his version accordingly, con-
trary to the authority of all versions and MSS.
‡ PAXTON'S. Natural History of Scripture, p. 221, and Parkhurst.
486 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
Succoth and Penuel at Gideon's hands.1 Many such fools are in the
Church, self-willed, full of conceit. They need the rod, and they have
it.2 Discipline is the most probing test. What is its fruit? In the
child submission and tenderness;3 in the fool (except it beat out his
folly,4 which is too often a desperate cases5) hardness and rebellion.6
Sad indeed is it, that the child sometimes needs the rod intended for
the fool's back. Yet never does his loving Father use it, till gentle
means have been tried in vain. Oh my God! use thine own wise
means, to save me from my own waywardness, folly, and ruin.
4. Answer not a fool according to his folly, lest thou also be like unto
him. 5. Answer a fool according to his folly, lest he be wise in his
own conceit.
We are forbidden, and yet commanded, to answer a fool. One rule
decides—Answer him not—the other—Answer him. The reason how-
ever attached to each rule explains the apparent contradiction.* Both
together are a wise directory for the treatment of the fool, according to the
difference of character, time, or circumstances. Suppose a free-thinker
or scoffer at religion, shewing the desperate "folly of his heart by making
a mock at sin" (Chap. xiv. 9), by witty and profane jestings, or specious
arguments against the word or ways of God. Generally speaking, it
would be better to follow Hezekiah's command concerning Rabshakeh's
blasphemy--"Answer him not."7 Jeremiah thus turned away in
silence from the folly of the false prophets. (Jer. xxviii. 11.) If how-
ever we are constrained to reply—Answer him not according to his folly;
not in his own foolish manner; "not rendering railing for railing."
(1 Pet. iii. 9.) Moses offended here. He answered the rebels according
to their folly—passion for passion, and thus he became like unto them.8
David's answer to Nabal was in the same humiliating spirit.9 The
answerer in this case is like the fool. He appears at the time to be cast
in the same mould.
But what may be at one time our duty to restrain, at another time,
and under different circumstances, it may be no less our duty to do.
Silence may sometimes be mistaken for defeat. Unanswered words
may be deemed unanswerable, and the fool become arrogant, more and
more wise in his own conceit.10 An answer therefore may be called for;
yet not in folly, but to folly; 'not in his foolish manner, but in the
1 Judg. viii. 5-7, 16. 2 2 Cor. x. 6-11; xiii-. 2. 3 Jer. xxxi. 18-20.
2 Chron. xxxiii. 11-13. 5 Chap. xvii. 10; xxvii. 22.
6 2 Chron. xxviii. 22. Ism. i. 5 Jer. v. 3. 7 2 Kings, xviii. 36. Jude. 9.
8 Numb. xx. 2-10. Ps. cvi. 33. 9 1 Sam. xxv. 21, 22. 10 Verse 12. Job, xi. 2.
* Yet the learned Dr. Kennicott was so strangely stumbled by this verbal contradiction,
is to propose a rash emendation of the text from the Syriac and Targum, which wholly
nisses the point of the text. Dissert. ii. on Heb. Text of Old Testament, p. 369.
CHAP. XXVI. 6-9. 487
manner which his foolishness required;* not according to his folly, but
according to thine own wisdom. Yet here, our words would be sharp
as rods. The fool's back needs them. Such was Job's answer to his
wife; grave, convincing, silencing—"Thou speakest as one of the
foolish women speaketh. What! shall we receive good at the hand of
God, and shall we not receive evil ?" (Job, ii. 9, 10.)
Oh! for wisdom to govern the tongue; to discover "the time to
keep silence, and the time to speak" (Eccles. iii. 7); most of all to
suggest the "word fitly spoken" (Chap. xv. 23; xxv. 11) for effective
reproof! How instructive is the pattern of our great Master! His
silence and his answers were equally worthy of Himself. The former
always conveyed a dignified rebuke.1 The latter issued in the con-
fusion of his captious enemies.2 Will not a prayerful meditative study
communicate to us a large measure of his Divine wisdom?
6. He that sendeth a message by the hand of a fool cutteth of the feet, and
drinketh damage. 7. The legs of the lame are not equal: so is a
parable in the mouth of fools. 8. As he that bindeth a stone in a sling
(putteth a precious stone in a heap of stones, marg.), so is he that
giveth honour to a fool. 9. As a thorn goeth up into the hand of a
drunkard, so is a parable in the mouth of fools.
Surely this diversified exhibition of the foolishness of folly is an
incentive to the study of heavenly wisdom. The fool is utterly unfit for
service. When a message is sent by his hands, he makes so many mis-
takes, careless or wilful, that it is like bidding him go, when we have
cut of his legs. Indeed we can only drink damage from his commission.3
The employment of the unbelieving spies spread damage of discontent
and rebellion throughout the whole congregation.4 How careful should
we be to entrust important business to trustworthy persons! Fools are
either unqualified for their mission, or they have their own interests to
serve, at whatever cost to their masters. Solomon himself drank damage,
by employing an "industrious" servant, but a fool in wickedness, who
"lifted up his hand against the king," and spoiled his son of ten parts
of his kingdom. (1 Kings, xi. 26-40.) Benhadad drank damage, by
sending a message by the hands of Hazael, who murdered his master,
when the way was opened for his own selfish purposes. (2 Kings,
viii. 8-15.)
See—again—how the fool exposes his shame. Never would a lame
man shew his infirmity so much, as if he were to pretend to feats of
agility or strength. Never does a fool appear so ridiculous, as when
1 Matt. xvi. 1-4 ; xxi. 23-27. 2 Ib. xxii. 46. Luke, xiii. 17.
3 Chap. x. 26. Contrast xiii. 17; xxv. 13. 4 Numb. xiii. 32; xiv. 1-4.
* FULLER'S Harmony of Scripture.
488 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
making a show of wisdom. It only creates disgust,1 ‘A wise saying
doth as ill become a fool, as dancing does a cripple:* A parable—
‘an authoritative weighty saying,'†--in his mouth becomes a jest.
"Is Saul also among the prophets? Why beholdest thou the mote,
that is in thy brother's eye; but considerest not the beam, that is in
thine own eye? Physician, heal thyself. Thou therefore that teachest
another, teachest thou not thyself? "2
Place the fool in honour. The sling makes the stone bound in it an instru-
ment of death. The honour given to the fool makes him a curse to his
fellow-creatures.3 The prime favourite of a despot, had not God
restrained him, would have been the murderer of the chosen nation.
(Esth. iii. 1-5.) Dangerous indeed is it to place unqualified persons
in authority. ‘It is like putting a sword or a loaded pistol into a
madman's hand.'‡
But the fool does mischief also unconsciously to himself. ‘It is no
more fit for a fool to meddle with a wise speech, than for a drunken
man to handle a thorn bush.'§ When the thorn goes up into his hand,
his insensibility only makes the wound more deadly. Thus the fool's
parable--his wise sayings, gathered he scarcely knows whence, go up
into him like a thorn, sharply pricking his conscience. Yet he feels no
compunction, no alarm. (Comp. Ecclus. xix. 12.) Sad indeed is the
sight (should it not make us tremble for ourselves?) of the ungodly
prophet, dealing out from the mouth of God, yet with hardened indif-
ference, words enough to "make both his ears to tingle." (Numb.
xxiii. xxiv.)
Such is the fool—a pest to his fellow-creatures; awfully responsible
to his God! But in the sacred office how fearfully are this evil and
responsibility increased! The great message, sent by the hands of
ungodly servants, brings most serious damage to the Church.|| The
parable—our Divine Master's wise and holy instruction—in the mouth
of a fool is perverted and contradicted by his unholy life. "Unto the
wicked God saith—What hast thou to do, to declare thy statutes, on
that thou shouldest take my covenant in thy mouth; seeing thou hatest
instruction, and castest my words behind thee?" (Ps. 1. 16, 17.)
1 Chap. xvii. 7. Comp. Ecclus. xx. 20.
2 1 Sam. xix. 24. Matt. vii. 3-5. Luke, iv. 23. Rom. ii. 21 3 Judg. ix. 6. 1 Sam. viii. 1-3.
* Bp. Patrick. † Parkhurst.
‡ Scott in loco. Parkhurst, and other critics prefer the marg. reading—shewing that
honour is lost upon a fool, like a precious stone covered up in a promiscuous heap. ‘He
that setteth a foole in hye dignite, that is even as yf a man dyd caste a precious stone upon
the galous.' Bp. Coverdale—alluding to the custom of throwing a stone to the heap,
under which the criminal was buried. The reading of the text is however well supported
both by the Vulgate and LXX.
§ Bp. Hall.
|| 1 Sam. ii. 17. Jer. xxiii. 15. Hence the solemn responsibility of the Ordination Rule.
1 Tim. v, 22.
CHAP. XXVI. 10. 489
‘Almighty God, who alone worketh great marvels, send down upon
all Bishops and Curates the healthful spirit of thy grace;'* that
"stewards faithful" to their trust (1 Cor. iv. 1, 2), "workmen that need
not to be ashamed" (2 Tim. ii. 15), true and authorized "ambassadors
for Christ," may be multiplied in the Church; and that fools—unfaith-
ful ministers—may be rebuked and restrained.
10. The great God, that formed all things, both rewardeth the fool, and
rewardeth transgressors. (A great man grieveth all; and he hireth
the fool; he hireth also the transgressors, marg.)
It is difficult to fix with certainty the interpretation of this Pro-
verb.† All however expound from it the Divine government, direct or
permissive. Suppose the Great One to be God, that formed all things.
He proportions exactly the reward of the wicked.1 The fool is respon-
sible for sins of ignorance; not only for the little he knew, but for the
much, which, had he not neglected the means, he might have known.
The transgressor is much more responsible for his sins against know-
ledge, warning, and conviction. And at "the day of revelation of the
righteous judgment of God, lie will render to every man according to
his deeds. The servant, that knew his Lord's will, and prepared not
himself, neither did according to his will, shall be beaten with many
stripes. But he that knew not, and did commit things worthy of
stripes, shall be beaten with few stripes."2
Or suppose the Great One to be a mighty prince; powerful in
forming the minds, character, and principles of all around him. If he
"rule in the fear of God " (2 Sam. xxiii. 3), will not he reward the fool
and the transgressor, the ignorant and the presumptuous? For how can
his kingdom prosper upon the encouragement of the wicked?3
Or if he be a wicked prince, he grieveth all by his countenance of sin:
hiring transgressors as instruments of his will.4 Still is it the govern-
ment of God. The sceptre is in the hands of unlimited power, wisdom,
and goodness. "The wicked are his sword, his hand, the rod of his
anger, and the staff of his indignation."5 Shall we then "reply against
God?" Reverence, faith, humility, patience, expectation, are graces
of the Lord's children. "Clouds and darkness are round about him;
righteousness and judgment are the habitation of his throne." (Ps.
xcvii. 2.) There is no sleeping of his Providence; no interruption of
his Government. We are living only in a preparatory state. The veil
1 Ps. xxxi. 23. Isa. iii. 11. 2 Rom. ii. 5, 6. Luke, xii. 47, 48.
3 Chap. xxv. 5. 2 Chron. xxviii. 1-8; xxxiii. 1-11.
4 Judg. ix. 4. 1 Kings, xxi. 10. 5 Ps. xvii. 13, 14Isa. x. 5.
* Liturgy.
† Our venerable translators have supplied with some doubtfulness an ellipsis of the
principal term. The word in the original may mean either the Great God, or a great man.
Nor does the construction clearly determine either meaning.
490 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
will soon be lifted up, and the grand consummation will explain all.
Fools and transgressors will receive their just reward; and one universal
chorus will burst from heaven—"Who shall not fear thee, 0 Lord, and
glorify thy name? For thou only art holy; for thy judgments are
made manifest." (Rev. xv. 4.)
11. As a dog returneth to his vomit, so a fool returneth to his folly.
And is this the picture of man —"made a little lower than the
angels " (Ps. viii. 5) — yea —"made in the likeness of God?" (Gen. i.
26.) Who that saw Adam in his universal dominion, sitting as the
monarch of creation; summoning all before him; giving to each his
name, and receiving in turn his homage (Ib. ii. 20) — who would have
conceived of his children sunk into such brutish degradation? The
tempter's promise was—"Ye shall be as gods." (Ib. iii. 5.) The result
of this promise was — ‘Ye shall be as beasts.' The vilest comparisons
are used to chew man's loathsomeness in the sight of God. 'Do any
feel disgusted at the allusion? Let them remember, that the emblem
is far less filthy, than the thing denoted by it; and that the whole race
of animals does not afford anything so debasing, as not to be far out-
done by the excesses of libertines, drunkards, and gluttons.'* We
naturally turn away with sickening from this sight. Would that we
had the same disgust at the sin, which it so graphically pourtrays!
Would that we might abhor ourselves for that, which God infinitely
abhors in us!
The Apostle uses this "true proverb" to describe the awful condi-
tion of apostates (2 Pet. ii. 20–22) --- temporary conviction, unaccom-
panied with real conversion of heart, and falling away to desperate
hardness. Many reasons may produce disgust in the sinner's mind to
its folly. He may loathe, and for a while relinquish it. It has proved
so fraught with misery (Chap. xiii. 15); its very pleasures so impreg-
nated with poison; that no wonder if he make an occasional, or even a
strong effort to be rid of it. But when the sickness has passed away,
the sweetness of the forbidden fruit again comes to mind; the heart
and affections are again clasped around the world, and, as a dog
returneth to his vomit--to the food, which had caused his sickness; so
a fool returneth to his folly--to that, which had been his hurt and
shame..
Thus greedily did Pharaoh return from his momentary conviction;1
Ahab from his feigned repentance,2 Herod from his partial amend-
ment;3 the drunkard from his brutish insensibility4—all to take a
more determinate course of sin; to take their final plunge into ruin.
1 Exod. viii. 8, 15; ix. 27, 34, 35. 2 1 Kings, xxi. 27-29; xxii. 8, 87.
3 Mark, vi. 20-27. 4 Chap. xxiii. 35.
* Scott.
CHAP. XXVI. 12. 491
Even a superficial knowledge of Christ is no preservative to an unre-
newed heart. The "house may be swept" of outward sin, "and gar-
nished" with external holiness; but if it be "empty," if the Divine
inhabitant lbe not heartily welcomed, the former possessor will quickly
return, and tenant it as his fixed home with sevenfold destruction.
(Matt. xii. 43-45.)
Is not sin then justly termed folly? Does not the God of Truth
pronounce it to be so now? Will not every fool confess it to be so at
the end, when its wages shall be fully paid in "shame and everlasting
contempt ?" (Dan. xii. 2.) Child of God! hearken to thy Father's
voice of "peace." But ponder also his solemn warning "to his people
and to his saints —Let them not turn again to folly."1
12. Seest thou a man wise in his own conceit? there is more hope of a fool
than of him.
Seest thou the man? God means to point at him. (Comp. Chap. xxii,.
29.) There is something to be learned from him. He castles himself
up in his own conceit. He holds himself fit to be a standard: The false
persuasion that he has gained wisdom, utterly precludes him from
gaining it. He thinks himself wise, because he knows not what it is to
be wise.2 His wisdom is "science so falsely called."3 For he has yet
to learn the first lesson in the school—his own folly—a lesson not to
be learned without severe exercise. The knowledge of the most intel-
ligent is as nothing compared with his ignorance; and yet how
strangely does the smallest quantum "puff up" (1 Cor. viii. 1), and fill
a man full of himself! "Let no man deceive himself. If any man
among you seemeth to be wise in this world, let him become a fool,
that he may be wise."4 There is more hope of the fool, who knows him-
self to be one. The natural fool has only one hindrance—his own
ignorance. The conceited fool has two — ignorance and self-delusion,
He has everything to unlearn (which is the hardest lesson in the
school) before he can learn anything right. It shews some improve-
ment, when he becomes less positive.
It was our Lord's cutting reproof to the conceited Pharisees —“The
publicans and harlots go into the kingdom of heaven before you.”
(Matt. xxi. 31.) It was his charge against the Laodicean Church—
"Because thou sagest—I am rich, and increased in goods, and have
need of nothing; and knowest not, that thou art wretched and mise-
rable, and poor, and blind, and naked."5 The prodigal fool, running
into all "the excesses of riot," is more open to conviction, than the man
who prides himself upon his decorous religion.6 To the profane and
1 Ps. lxxxv. 8. Comp. John, v. 14; also Ecclus. xxi. 1. 2 1 Cor. viii. 2. Gal. vi. 8.
3 1 Tim. vi. 20. 4 Ib. iii. 18. Comp. chap. iii. 7. Rom xii. 8-16.
5 Rev. iii. 17. Comp. chap. xxx. 12. 6 Luke, xv. 11-18, with John, ix. 40, 41,
492 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
ungodly we must go. But to warn him, he conceives to be knocking
at the wrong door. "God! I thank thee, that I am not as other men
are"*--is his heart's language before God. "Stand by; I am holier
than thou" (Isa. lxv. 5)— is his haughty rule with his fellow-sinners.
Offer him light;— He "walks in the light of his own fire." (Ib. 1. 11.)
Offer him life;— He is "alive" in his own eyes. (Rom. vii.) Offer him
food;--His "full soul loatheth the honey-comb!" (Chap. xxvii. 7.)
Christian Professor! Dread an ill-grounded judgment of yourself.
The more confident a man is in error, the more dangerous his state.
Oh! beware of holding fast a delusion, which the word of God, closely
applied, would quickly dispel. Suspect your spiritual state, at least till
you have given it a most probing search. Is it not possible that you
may be deceived; that there may be "a lie in your right hand" that
you may have been building upon the sand ; and mistaken the shadow
for the substance? Consider—it is a matter of infinite and everlasting
moment—in which multitudes have been mistaken— in which it is
easy to be mistaken—in which our hearts are very deceitful--in
which a mistake, not rectified in time, will be ruin for eternity.
Lord! preserve me from this hopeless delusion. Pull down all my
pride and fancied wisdom. Take the blindness from my eyes, that I
may know what I am in thy sight. "Clothe me with humility" from
the sole of the foot to the head.
13. The slothful man saith, There is a lion in the way; a lion is in the
streets. (Chap. xxii. 13.) 14. As the door turneth upon his hinges, so
cloth the slothful upon his bed. 15. The slothful man hideth his hand
in his bosom; it grieveth him to bring it again to his mouth. (Chap.
xix. 24.) 16. The sluggard is wiser in his own conceit than seven men
that can render a reason.†
The counterpart to these illustrations may be seen in the man
dozing away his life in guilty idleness; without an object, and there-
fore without a spring for exertion. But let us look at the pictures, as
they meet our eye in the Church. The gradation shews the almost
incredible increase of the evil — unresisted.
The slothful man is utterly reluctant to his work. When therefore his
indolence is disturbed, he is ingenious in inventing excuses, and
fancying dangers, which have no real existence. For 'he, who has no
mind to labour, never wants pretences for idleness.'‡ His insincerity
lulls his conscience to sleep in his false excuses. Were it as easy to be
spiritual as to wish to be so, who would not be a Christian? If it were
only one great effort, soon to be accomplished, it would be worth the
* Luke, xviii. 11. See Bunyan's Picture of Ignorance.
† 'Than seven men that sytt and teach.'—Bp. COVERDALE. ‡ Bp. Patrick.
CHAP. XXVI. 13-16. 493
struggle. But to see no end of the toil, duty upon duty, trouble fol-
lowing trouble, no breathing-time of rest--is an appalling hindrance.
And therefore a fierce lion in the way*--a lion in the streets (‘bugbear
rather than a lion'†) excuses him from a decided profession.
We wonder not that he shrinks from his work. He loves his bed of ease.
Here he turneth himself; as the door upon his hinges, moving indeed, but
making no progress. He works from one excuse to another, but never
removes from his place. Difficulties hinder him from going forward.
Conscience keeps him from going backward. And therefore, as the door
upon his hinges, where he was one day, one year, there he is found the
next. He moves within a scanty round of duties, always beginning,
never finishing, his work; determining nothing; not quite at ease; yet
with no heart for exertion. Stretched upon his bed of sloth, he cries—
‘O that this were working! O that I could raise my heart to heaven
But is heaven to be gained by complaining and wishing?
Nay— even the most needful-exertion is grievous to him. Suppose him
to have arisen from his bed, his case is not improved. Ease is still his
cry. How to preserve it, his only care. He hides his hand in his bosom
for the cold and never makes an effort to bring it to his mouth for his
necessary food. (Eccles. iv. 5.) Thus for want of the most trifling
exercise he starves his soul, though the bread of life is put before him.
No marvel, if his life, instead of "a continual feast," is a constant
vexation.
Yet—such is the strange union of self-complacency with folly—
this worthless being—a mere "cumberer of the ground"—pronounces
himself a genius, prides himself upon his sagacity, and looks down with
contempt upon his more industrious companions—generally superior
in attainment. This foolish dream of his own shrewdness fixes his
standard. He has found the road to learning without any inconvenient
exertion. Giving himself no trouble to think, he sees none of the
difficulties obvious to a considerate mind, and speedily arrives at most
unreasonable conclusions. He will not be beaten out of his sloth. Any
wise man could render a reason for his conviction. But he is wiser in his
own conceit than them all.‡
In how many striking lights is sloth presented in this book? Do
I not think too slightly of it? Let me look closely—in what respect
am I influenced by it—bodily, mentally, or spiritually? Does it never
follow me throughout my work, to my knees, to my Bible-reading?
Do I not excuse myself from work of painful effort? Or when con-
science forces me to it, how is it done? May God enable me to resist
this paralysis in every shape! If, just about to resolve, let me propose
my work to myself, as to be done with full purpose of heart; not,
* Scott. † Bp. SANDERSON'S Sermon on Heb. xii. 3.
‡ Seven men—the number of perfection. Comp. Amos, i. 3, 6, 9, 13; ii. 4, 6.
494 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
opposing difficulties to necessity; not allowing heartless despondency.
What if after all, my faith be a fancy, my hope a delusion? Self-
suspicion is the first awakening of the soul—"Search me, 0 my God."
(Ps. xxxix. 23.)
Well is it, if the slumber be only a little disturbed; far better, if
the eyes are fully opened. Active, simple faith carries us onward, in
the face of the lions in the way, seeming to stand open-mouthed to
devour us. It is a special mercy to realize the holy violence of the
conflict. Bunyan put his pilgrims under the conduct of Great-heart
for their encouragement. Heaven never will be won by folded arms.
"The violent take it by force." (Matt. xi. 12.)
17. He that passeth by, and meddleth with strife belonging not to him, is
like one that taketh a dog by the ears.
If we would honour our God in our Christian path, we must take
time it every step, for prayer, and for the exercise of a sound judgment.
Else we shall often rush on unbidden to our loss. To take a dog by the
ears will bring good reason to repent of our folly. To meddle with strife
belonging not to us will surely bring its trouble (1 Kings, xxii. 4, 32) --
its own cross, not our Master's. A wide difference is made between
"suffering as a busy-body, and suffering as a Christian." It is alarming
to these who have no adequate sense of the criminality to, find the
Apostle classify the one with "murderers, and thieves, and evil-doers."
In striking contrast to the other he gives the dignified exhortation—
"Let him glorify God on this behalf." (1 Pet. iv. 16.) If we must not
"go forth hastily to strive" (Chap. xxv. 8) in our own cause, still less
in our neighbour's. This is "entering into contention"— the wanton-
ness of the fool. (Chap. xviii. 6 ; xx. 3.)
Even with Christian intentions many of us are too fond of meddling
with strife not belonging to us. We constitute ourselves too readily
judges of our neighbour's conduct. Neutrality is often the plain dictate
of prudence. Uncalled-for interference seldom avails with the contend-
ing parties; while the well-meaning mediator involves himself in the
strife to his own mischief. Our blessed Master reads us a lesson of
godl wisdom. He healed the contentions in his own family. But,
when called to meddle with strife belonging not to him, he gave answer—
"Who made me a judge or a divider over you? "1
Must we then "suffer sin upon our brother?" (Lev. xix. 17.)
Certainly not. But we should ponder carefully the most effectual
mode of restraining his sin. Think of the special "blessing to the
peace-makers." (Matt. v. 9.) But the true peace-maker, while he
deplores the strife, well knows, that interference in the moment of
1 Matt. xviii. 1-6 xx. 24-28, with Luke, xii. 13, 14.
CHAP. XXVI. 18-22. 495
irritation will kindle rather than extinguish, the fire. Yet his self-
controul is not indifference. He commits the matter to Him, whose
wisdom he so greatly needs. He will seize the first moment for favour-
able remonstrance; "and a word spoken in due season, how good is
it!" (Chas. xv. 23.) Indeed the common intercourse of life much
requires that "wisdom, which dwelleth with prudence." (Chap. viii. 12.)
"Who is a wise man, and endued with knowledge among you? Let
him shew out of a good conversation his works with meekness of
wisdom." (Jam. iii. 13.)
18. As a madman who casteth firebrands, arrows and death, 19. So is the
man that deceiveth his neighbour, and saith, Am not I in sport?
How little does the thoughtless man consider the misery, which his
wantonness occasions to others! He bears no malice. He indulges
only the pure love of mischief. He carries on a scheme of imposition
as harmless play. His companions compliment him upon his adroit-
ness, and join in the laugh of triumph over the victim of his cruel jest.
But "sporting with their own deceivings" (2 Pet. ii. 13) is a black mark
of ungodliness. What the man calls sport (Chap. x. 23), is the madman,
scattering murderous mischief—firebrands, arrows and death. What
are smoothly called 'practical jokes'--such as are practised at school,
or even at college--come under this awful charge. ‘There is little
difference in this case betwixt fraud and fury. He that purposely
deceives his neighbour, under colour of a jest, is no less prejudicial to
him than a lunatic, that doth wrong out of frenzy and distemper.'*
Yet this solemn line of distinction is drawn. The madman is irrespon-
sible for his actions; the deceiver is accountable to God and his fellow-
creatures. 'He that sins in jest, must repent in earnest; or his sin will
be his ruin.'†
‘What hath a Christian'—saith Bernard—'to do with jesting?'
Let him practically observe the wholesome caution against it, as "not
convenient." (Eph. v. 4.). Let him cultivate the valuable graces of
seriousness, consideration, and self-discipline. Let him study his
Master's image, embodying both the spirit and the rules of his gospel.
20. Where no wood is, there the fire goeth out: so where there is no tale-
bearer, the strife ceaseth (is silent, marg.) 21. As coals are to burning
coals, and wood to fire; so is a contentious man to kindle strife. 22.
The words of a talebearer are as wounds, and they go down into the
innermost parts (chambers, marg.) of the belly. (Chap. xviii. 8.)
The busy tongue makes work, where it does not find it. Such is
the despicable trade of the talebearer--employing his time in prying
* Bp. Hall. † Henry.
496 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
into other people's business, ferreting out secrets, diving into family
histories, intermeddling with their concerns: all this with the view of
putting himself forward, as a keen, intelligent, and active man. Thus
in ever) way where he can please himself 'man is naturally his own
grand idol. He would be esteemed and honoured by any means; and
to magnify that idol self, he kills the name and esteem of others in
sacrifice to it.'* Real virtue revolts from this base selfishness.
The fire of holy zeal seizes on things nearest home. This is a wild-
fire scattering its destruction abroad. The talebearer should be looked
on as an incendiary. For his "tongue is a fire, itself set on fire of
hell."1 His raking up old and forgotten tales supplies the fuel, without
which the fire of strife, as where no wood is, goeth out. To quench the
flame, we must take away the fuel. We must remove the talebearer;
stop him in his words; compel him to produce his authority; face him,
if possible, with the subject of his tales. This decisive course will
prevent a mass of slander, and put him to shame.2
Near akin is the contentious man. His mischief indeed is more open.
His determination to have the last word is as coals to burning coals, and
wood to the fire.3 It keeps up the flame, kindled perhaps by a mere
angry word or a contemptuous look; and which, but for this constant
succession of fuel, might quickly have been extinguished. Do we
never aim at the wit of a sharp answer, that "stirreth up anger,"
rather than at the wisdom and grace of "a soft answer, that turneth
away wrath?" (Chap. xv. 1.)
The talebearer's wounds are however the most dangerous. They go
down into the chambers—the vitals of the heart; One noiseless word
may be the stab of death. But, if he escape for a while, his secret sins
shall "be set before his eyes," and his wanton trifling with his brother's
character be justly recompensed. (Ps. 1. 20 ; lii. 1-5.)
Are we closely watching against these sins? Do we carefully
damp the rising flame of contention?4 Do we resist the temptation to
speak needlessly of the faults of others? Do we dread the character of
a polished, well-educated, amusing slanderer? Should we be ready to
give up the eclat of telling a good story, from the fear of wounding a
good name? We may feel indignant at the charge of talebearing. Yet
it requires no ordinary exercise of Christian discipline to maintain the
silence of charity, and to regulate both the tongue and the ear within
its well-advised limits.
23. Burning lips and a wicked heart are like a potsherd covered with silver
dross. 24. He that hateth, dissembleth with his lips, and layette up
1 Jam. iii. 6. Comp. chap. xvi. 27. 2 Chap. xxv. 23. Comp. xxii. 10.
3 Chap xv. 18; xvi. 28; xxix. 22. 2 Cor. xii. 20. 4 Chap. xvii. 14. Gen. xiii. 8, 9.
* LEIGHTON on 1 Pet. ii. 17. Comp. Jer. ix. 4.
CHAP. XXVI. 23-27. 497
deceit within him. 25. When he speaketh fair, believe him not: for there
are seven abominations in his heart. 26. Whose hatred is covered by
deceit, his wickedness shall be skewed before the whole congregation.
27. Whoso diggeth a pit shall fall therein: and he that rolleth a stone,
it will return upon him.
The sin here described is a disgrace to society! Yet is it often
covered with a flattering garb, as the worthless potsherd with a thin coat
of silver. "The tongue of the just is as choice silver." Here is only
silver dross--"the heart of the wicked, which is nothing worth" (Chap.
x. 20); lips burning with warm affection, yet covering a heart filled
with malice and wickedness.'* Such were the lips of Joseph's brethren,
when "they rose up to comfort their father" under the bereavement
which they had brought upon him. (Gen. xxxvii. 35.) Such was
Absalom's smooth hypocrisy. (2 Sam. xv. 1–9.) Such were the traitor's
lips and heart, uniting with the rest in protestations of faithfulness ;
yet "betrayiing the Son of man with a kiss." l An open enemy could
be much better borne. (Ps. lv. 12.) The cant of hypocrites, the bene-
volence of infidels, the smooth enticement of the false "angel of light"
—all answer to this strong figure. 'Hypocrisy is spun often of a very
fine thread; and the heart of man, abounding with so much hypocrisy
as it doth, is the most deceitful thing, yea, and the most deceivable too,
actively and passively both, of anything in the world.'†
Often also, when the lips do not burn, there is dissembling of hatred.
"Cain talked with his brother in the field," while murder was in his
heart. (Gen. v. 8.) Saul pretended to honour David, while he was plotting;
his ruin. (1 Sam. xviii. 17, 21.) Absalom dissembled with his brother,
by seeming to let him alone, for two years laying up deceit within him.
(2 Sam. xiii. 22–28.) Joab covered his murderous intentions with
peaceable profession.2
Christian prudence will guard against credulity,3 which is in fact;
the "harmlessness of the dove," without " the wisdom of the serpent."
(Matt, x. 16.) This weakness cost Gedaliah his life.4 A sounder spirit
saved Nehemiah from the snare of his malignant adversaries.5 Thee
source of this wickedness gives good reason for distrust. There are
seven abominations—a great variety‡ of abominations—closely folded up
in his heart, only within the ken of that heart-searching eye, "before
whom all secret things are naked and open."6 And here lies the root of
1 Matt. xxvi. 35. Luke, xxii. 47, 48.
2 Ib. iii. 27; x. 9, 10. Comp. Gen. xxxiv. 15-25. Ps. xxviii. 3; 1v. 20.
3 Jer. ix. S ; ii. 6. Mic. vii. 5. Comp. Ecclus. xii. 10-17. 4 Jer. xl. 14; xli. 6, 7.
5 Neh. vi. 1-4 6 Jer. xvii. 10. Heb. iv. 13.
* Chap. x. 17. Ps. 1v. 21. Comp. Ecclus. xix. 26-28. See Bunya,n's description of the
town of ‘Fair-Speech.'
† Bp. SANDSON's Sermon on Gal. v. 22, 23.
‡ Bp. Hall, verse 16; xxiv. 16.
498 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
the disease. ‘A guileful heart makes guileful tongue and lips. It is
the workhouse, where is the forge of deceit and slander; and the tongue
is only the outer shop, where they are mended; and the lips the door of
it; so then such ware as is made within, such and no other can be set
out. From evil thoughts, evil speakings; from a deceitful heart, guile-
ful words, well-varnished, but lined with rottenness.'* Oh! let this
despicable character be a beacon to us to shun all approaches to false
dealings. Better to risk giving offence by faithfulness (though let this,
so far as conscience allows, be avoided) rather than cover our hatred by
flattering words.
Dissembling never answers in the end. The Providence of God
brings dark deeds to light. "The voice of Abel's blood cried from the
ground." (Gen. iv. 10.) "Some men's sins are open beforehand, going
before to judgment; and some men they follow after." (1 Tim. v. 24.)
The hand strips off the mask, and exposes the flatterer to shame. His
seven abominations shall be proclaimed, if not more privately, at last
before the whole congregation, when all shall appear before men and
angels as they really are, and when the hypocrite shall receive his just
recompence of "everlasting contempt." (Luke, xii. 2.)
Often however does retribution reach the offender in this world.
‘He will fall into the pits, which he has bestowed pains to dig for his
neighbour, and be crushed by the stone, which he meant to roll upon
him.'† Even the place of sinning is sometimes made the place of
punishment.1 Those who plot mischief for others, will be overwhelmed
with it themselves.2 Moab, in attempting to curse Israel, fell himself
under the curse of God.3 Haman's gallows for Mordecai was his own
"promotion of shame."4 The enemies of Daniel were devoured in the
ruin, which they plotted against him.5 Thus does God "take the wise
in his craftiness,"6 "the wicked in his wickedness."7 The death of
Christ, which was to be the means of warding off national judgment,
was the just cause of the deprecated scourge.8 The malice that medi-
tates the evil, is often the cause of its own overthrow. What an
Aceldama would this world be, but for the restraining grace of God!
Oh! may my heart, my soul, every member, every principle, not only
be restrained from hateful passions; but be imbued with the spirit of
the Gospel, and consecrated to the service of God'!
28. A lying tongue hateth those that are afflicted by it; and a flattering
mouth worketh ruin.
Rarely do we see a solitary sin. One sin begets another. Lying
1 1 Kings, xxi. 19, with 2 Kings, ix. 26. Jer. vii. 31, 32. 2 Ps. vii. 15.
3 Num. xxii. 6; xxiv. 17. 4 Chap. iii. 35. Esth. vii. 10. 5 Dan. vi. 24.
6 Job, v. 13. 7 Chap. xi. 6. 8 John, xi. 50. Matt. xxiii. 32, 38.
* LEIGHTON on 1 Pet. iii. 16. † Scott.
CHAP. XXVI. 28. 499
and malice are here linked together. The lying tongue against our Lord
was the fruit of hateful malice. (John, viii. 44, with 40.) The slander
against Stephen originated from the same source. The tacit reproach
of his godly profession was intolerable. (Acts, vi. 9, 14.) If men afflict
because they hate; much more do they hate them whom they have
afflicted, and thus made their enemies. Ammon, having afflicted his
sister Tamar, hated her with greater hatred than his former love, as
the witness against his own shame.*
But again and again—watch against the flatterer. Alas! where
is he not welcomed as a friend? From some favourable position he
presents an attractive face. But a nearer view shews him as a subtle,
murderous enemy, working ruin. (Ps. v. 9; x. 7-10.) His great advan-
tage is, that he has a friend in his own bosom. The sweet song of our
own praises lulls us to sleep, and in the moment of security the net is
too successfully spread. (Chap. xxix. 5.) The flattering tongue worketh
the ruin of the world. The temptation--"Ye shall be as gods"—proved
irresistible.1 And still in the path of sin,2 in the determinate indulgence
of the wayward will,3 flattering is the snare; ruin is the end.
What then should be our treatment of the flatterer? Homer puts it
into his hero's heart to regard him as a fiend of hell.† Our safety then
is in flight,4 or at least in frowning resistance. (Comp. chap. xxv. 23.)
Be as much troubled'— said a godly man—'by unjust praises, as by
unjust slanders.'‡ Shew plainly that they please us least, who praise
us most. Give timely warning, that the repetition of the offence
threatens the disruption of friendship. Cherish the deepest views of
native corruption, such as will at once belie any fair picture of ourselves
that may be presented to us. Pray for wisdom to discover the snare;
for gracious principles to raise us above vain praises; for self-denial to
be content, and even thankful without them. This will be our security.
All these Scriptures strongly teach, how hateful to a God of truth is
the attempt to deceive. All warn us against the common habit of slight
deviations from truth, and of any want of sincerity of expression, as
totally inconsistent with a Christian profession, a breach of the law of
love, and often leading to habitual deceit.§
1 Gen. iii. 5. 2 Chap. ii. 16; v. 3; vii. 5, 21-23.
3 1 Kings, xxii. 6, 11, 12. Jer. v. 31; xiv. 14-16. 4 Chap. xx. 19.
* 2 Sam. xiii. 5-15. ‘Humani est animi odisse quem laeseris.'—TACITUS in Agricola.
† Iliad, i. 312, 313. ‡ PHILLIP HENRY'S Life, chap. x.
§ See the wise caution, Ecclus. xix. 1.
500 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
CHAPTER XXVII.
1. Boast not thyself of to-morrow; for thou knowest not what a day may
bring forth.
Let the Apostle expound the wise man--"Go to now, ye that say
--To-day or to-morrow we will go into such a city, and continue there,
a year, and buy and sell, and get gain." Both apply the same rebuke
to the boast;--Thou knowest not what a day may bring forth--Whereas
"ye know not what shall be on the morrow." (Jam. iv. 13, 14.) To
provide for the morrow is a scriptural duty.l The husbandman, when he
has reaped his harvest, sows his seed for the next. The Christian in his
calling, reposing on God's Providence, walks with God. But to boast of
to-morrow--"all such rejoicing is evil." (Jam. iv. 16.) Indeed it
is absurd to boast of what is not our own. To-morrow is finely
described as an unknown birth. It may be in eternity. And yet
the sensualist and the worldling2 boast, as if it was their own; and thus
virtually put God out of his own world. The ungodly reckon upon
being religious to-morrow, and therefore put off repentance, forsaking
the world, and living for eternity, to some infinitely future day. (Acts,
xxiv. 25.) Would they do this, if they did not reckon upon to-morrow
being given to them? Nay, do we not all naturally cherish this looking
forward, which the great enemy works up into practical forgetfulness of
God? Yet we must not live, as if to-morrow would not come. Else
would the world be in a state of stagnation. The present duties of the
day would be absorbed in the instant preparation for the coming
eternity. But we start from death, when he enters our houses, as if we
did not expect him. How little do we die daily! (1 Cor. xv. 31.) We
can even coolly calculate upon the death of others, for our own benefit.
Our intense anxiety about earthly, and apathy about heavenly, things,
speak but too plainly. The young look to the middle age; the more
advanced to the last stage of life. All, in contradiction to their avowed
profession, boast themselves of to-morrow.
How awfully has this boasting been put to shame! In the days of
Noah, "they married wives, and were given in marriage, until the very
day when the flood came, and destroyed them all."3 Abner promised a
kingdom, but could not ensure his life for an hour.4 Haman plumed
himself upon the prospect of the queen's banquet, but was hanged like
a dog before night.5 The fool's soul was required of him "on the very
night" of his worldly projects "for many years" to come.6 'Serious
affairs to-morrow'--was the laughing reply of Archias, warned of a
1 Chap. vi. 6-8; x.5; xxiv. 27. Comp. Gen. xli. 35. Acts, xi. 28, 29.
2 Isa. lvi. 12. Luke, xii. 16-19. 3 Luke, x,ii. 26-29. 4 2 Sam. iii. 9, 10, 27.
5 Esth. v.12; vii. 1-10. 6 Luke, xii. 19, 21.
CHAP. XXVII. 1. 501
conspiracy, which hurried him into eternity the next hour.* The infidel
Gibbon calculated upon fifteen years of life, and died within a few
months, at a day's warning. We know not what a day may bring forth.
How natural is it for the young to be looking for to-morrow's pro-
spect! But have you never seen the lovely flower cropped, or faded in
the blossom? Is not the robust, as well as the feeble frame cut down
in the prime? (Job, xxi. 23.) Have you a lease of your life? If there
be a promise of forgiveness to the repenting, where is the promise of
to-morrow for repentance? Will consideration naturally come with
years? Or will not rather long-protracted habits of ungodliness harden
into a second nature? What if in the midst of thy boasting, flattering
thyself that thou shouldst see another and another day--thou shouldst
surprised, unprepared, and be left to lament for ever thy presumption
in the lake of everlasting fire!1 Stop--consider--weep--pray--
believe--now--while conscience speaks; while thou art halting been
God and the world, between conviction and inclination. Now in this "ac-
cepted time" devote thyself to God. Enthrone the Saviour in thine heart.
The universe does not present a more affecting sight than an aged
sinner, with one foot in the grave, losing all in the world, infinitely
more in eternity. A moment, and he is gone. Heaven and hell are
no trifles. To-morrow presumed upon, to-day neglected, ruins all.
Standing on the brink of the precipice--how precious the moment for
prayer--ere the door of mercy is closed for ever!
Has the child of God reason to boast of to-morrow. What a change
may it make in your worldly circumstances (Job, i. 21), or Christian
experience? (Ps. xxx. 7.) Never will you feel more secure, than in the
consciousness that you have no security for a single hour. Divide your
cares with God. Rest all in his bosom. (Ib. xxxvii. 4.) Let disappoint-
ment prepare you for your heavenly rest, and bound all your wishes
and pleasures by his gracious will. (Jam. iv. 15.) But have you no
need of warning? How speaks the too full current of affections towards
earthly enjoyment? Did you practically believe that "the time is
short, and the fashion of this world passeth away," would you not
"rejoice, as though you rejoiced not?" (1 Cor. vii. 29-32.) Would plea-
sures of earth be so highly prized, if there was no secret dependence on
to-morrow. Surely this thought may more than sustain in the loss of
them--The shadow only is gone--the body of my happiness remains
immoveable. To see things temporal, as if we "looked not at them,"
is the life of spiritual religion. (2 Cor. iv. 18.) To remember 'this
world as the grand laboratory for perfecting of souls for the next† to
have " our loins girt about" for our Lord's coming; to live, as not to
be surprised by the call, and in readiness to "open to him immediately"
1 Matt. xxiv. 48-51; xxv. 10-12. Luke, xiii. 25. Comp. Ecclus. v. 7.
* ROLLIN'S Ancient History. Book xii. † Sir M. Hale.
502 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
--this is our secret and our happiness. "Blessed are those servants,
whom the Lord, when he cometh, shall find watching." (Luke, xii. 37.)
2. Let another man praise thee, and not thine own mouth; a stranger, and
not thine own lips.
'Praise'--says an old expositor--'is a comely garment. But
though thyself doth wear it, another must put it on, or else it will never
sit well about thee. Praise is sweet music, but it is never tuneable in
thine own mouth. If it cometh from the mouth of another, it soundeth
most tuneably in the ears of all that hear it. Praise is a rich treasure,
but it will never make thee rich, unless another tell the same.'* Indeed
--except as the vindication of our character,1 or our Master's honour
connected with it,† may require--nothing so degrades a man with his
fellow-men, as setting out his own praise. For though every man is
his own flatterer (Chap. xx. 6), yet men usually know how to estimate
pride in others, while they cherish it in themselves. "The things that
are of good report-think of them to do them." (Philip. iv. 8.) But
"let our works," not our tongues, "praise us in the gates."2 And while
our works shine, see to it, that ourselves be hid. "Confess your faults
one to another."3 But leave to another to speak our praise. 'Scarce
any shew themselves to advantage, who are over-solicitous to do so.‡
Our name will lose nothing by this self-renouncing spirit. If our
on mouth be silent, another's will be opened. John was "unworthy"
in his own eyes to "unloose the latchet of his Master's shoes." Yet did
his Lord's mouth proclaim him as ' the greatest of all that had been
born of women."4 The centurion spoke of himself as "not worthy that
Christ should come under his roof." Yet did the elders testify, that "he
was worthy, for whom he should do this." Yea--the Saviour's own
mouth confirmed the testimony--"I have not found so great faith, no
not in Israel."5 Luke mentions nothing in his records to his own
credit. Yet another praises him warmly as "the beloved physician," and
his sole faithful companion in his trials.§
Self-seeking is a shameful blot upon a Christian profession. What!
Shall one that has said before God--"Behold, I am vile!"--be ready
to say before his fellow-men--"Come, see my zeal for the Lord"6--
1 1 Sam. xii. 3. Ps. vii. 3-5. 2 Cor. i. 17-19. 2 Chap. xxxi. 31. Ruth, iii. 11.
3 Chap. xxv. 27. Matt. v. 16. Jam. v. 16.
4 Matt. iii. 11. John, iii. 30, with Matt. xi. II. John, v. 35.
5 Matt. viii. 8, with Luke, vii. 3, 4, 9. 6 Job, xl. 4. 2 Kings, x. 16.
*Jermin.
† 2 Cor. xi. 5-12; xii. 11. 'St. Paul was put upon it, to speak of himself more than he
chose to do; and when he speaks of things concerning himself he puts in ever and anon,
"I spenk as a fool"--intimating, that unless there be very great cause, whoever talks
much of himself, talks like a fool.'- WHICHCOTE'S Sermons. ‡ Bp. Butler.
§ Col. iv. 14. 2 Tim. iv. 11. It was a fine touch in Sallust's portrait of Cato-- 'He would
rather be, than seem to be, a good man; so that the less he sought glory, the more he ob-
tained it.'
CHAP. XXVII. 3, 4. 503
Come, see how humble I am! Oh! for the self-abased spirit of our
glorious Master--ever ready to endure reproach: but never "receiving
honour from men;" never "seeking his own glory." (John, v. 41; viii.
50.) Contrast what God shews us of ourselves in the closet with our
"fair show in the flesh." And will this not put self-complacency to
shame? Surely that we are so little really humble, is matter enough
for the deepest humiliation.
3. A stone is heavy, and the sand weighty; but a fool's wrath is heavier
than them both. 4. Wrath is cruel (cruelty, marg.), and anger is out-
rageous (an overflowing, marg.); but who is able to stand before envy
The wrath even of a wise man in the moment of folly is cruel.l
What then must be a fool's wrath, 'where there is not a drop of heavenly
water to quench the fire?'* It is indeed the weight of a stone or sand2
--intolerable, 'being without cause, measure, or end.'† Its abiding
sullenness distinguishes it from the temporary impulse, to which the
child of God may too hastily yield. Absalom kept it in for two years.
David's anger melted away under the first conviction of reproof, and
"the sun went not down upon his wrath."4
And yet cruel as wrath may be,5 overflowing as the spring-tide, it
may be appeased. Esau's wrath was soothed into brotherly love.6 The
outrageous despot was subdued in witnessing the presence and power of
God.7 But envy is an implacable passion, the native principle,8 with a
fearful train of evils.9 Anger is stirred up by offence; envy by godliness
prosperity,11 or favour.12 Reason operates rather as the oil to fan the
flame, than the water to quench it. 'Proud men would be admired by
all, and preferred above all; and if it be not so, a secret enmity invadeth
their spirits, and settleth itself. Men cannot endure the real or reputed
excellency of others. The proud creature would shine alone.'‡
The wise man had before described the curse of this deadly passion
to the man who indulges it. (Chap. xiv. 30.) Here he shews its subtle,
and almost irresistible power upon its victims. For indeed, in contrast
to the fine description of 'mercy, it is twice' cursed. It curses both its
subjects and its object. Like the star called wormwood, that em-
1 1 Sam. xxv. 13, 21. 2 Exod. xv. 5. Comp, Ecclus. xxii. 14, 15.
3 2 Sam. xiii. 22, 23. 4 1 Sam. xxv. 32,33. Eph. iv. 26.
5 Gen. xlix. 7. Matt. ii. 16. 6 Gen. xxvii. 41; xxxiii. 4.
7 Dan. iii. 13-30. 8 Mark, vii. 22. Gal. v. 20, 21. Tit. iii. 3. Jam. iv. 5.
9 Rom. i. 29, 30. 2 Cor. xii. 20. Jam. iii. 14, 16.
10 Eccles. iv. 4. Dan. vi. 3-5 11 Gen. xxvi. 14. Ps. lxxiii.3
12 Gen. iv. 5-8. 1 Sam. xviii. 6-9, 16, 17.
* Cartwright.
'Ira furor brevis est; animum rege; qui, nisi paret,
Imperat; hunc fraeuis, hunc tu compesce catena.'
HOR. Ep. i. 2 62, 63.
† Poole. Comp. chap. xvii. 12.
‡ MANTON on Ps. cxix. 77.
504 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
bittereth all the rivers and fountains of waters on which it fell (Rev.
viii. 11), it poisons and bereaves of their sweetness all the sources and
streams of human enjoyment.'*
Well then might it be asked--Who is able to stand before envy?
Even the perfect innocence of paradise fell before it. Satan lost his own
happiness. Then he envied man, and ceased not to work his destruc-
tion. (See Wis. ii. 23, 24.) It shed the first human blood, that ever
stained the ground. (1 John; iii. 12.) It quenched the yearnings of
natural affection, and brought bitter sorrow to the patriarch's bosom1
Even the premier of the greatest empire in the world was its temporary
victim.2 Nay more--the Saviour in his most benevolent acts was
sorely harassed,3 and ultimately sunk under its power.4 "His servants
therefore must not expect to be above their Master."5
But--Christian--remernber--though the promise is sure, "that
sin shall not have dominion;6 yet the struggle is sharp to the end.
Let us probe this corruption deeply. Men will look at grace, as we
have seen, with an envious eye. They will darken the lives, that out-
shine their own and defame the holiness, which they have no heart to
follow. But 'those who have true worth in themselves, can never
envy it in others.'† Do we then love to see a brother's superior eminence,
his larger gifts or graces? (Num xi. 28, 29.) Do we take pleasure in
his prosperity, in honour paid to him, though to our own disparage-
ment? (John, iii. 30.) Is our tone of praise as decided towards him,
as we should wish that of others to be of us? Can we bear to be past
by in favour of those, who may seem to be doing our work in opposition
to ourselves? (Philip. i. 15-18.) Oh! how hateful would be the exhi-
bition of the hidden depths of our deceitful hearts! "Who can under-
stand his errors? Cleanse thou me from secret faults." (Ps. xix. 12.)
5. Open rebuke is better than secret love. 6. Faithful are the wounds of a
friend; but the kisses of an enemy are deceitful.
What is the friend, who will be a real blessing to my soul? Is it
one, that will humour my fancies, and flatter my vanity? Is it enough,
that he loves my person, and would spend his time and energies in my
service? This comes far short of my requirement. I am a poor,
straying sinner, with a wayward will and a blinded heart; going wrong
at every step. The friend for my case is one, who will watch over me
with open rebuke; but a reprover, when needful; not a flatterer. The
genuineness of friendship without this mark is more than doubtful; its
usefulness utterly paralyzed. That secret love, that dares not risk a
1 Gen. xxxvii. 3, 4, 23-35. Acts, vii. 9. 2 Dan. vi. 6-17. 3 John, xii. 10, 11.
4 Matt. xxvii. 18-20. 5 Acts, v. 17. Marg; xiii. 44, 45; xvii. 4, 5, with Matt. x. 2-1.
6 Rom. vi. 14.
*WARDLAW on Eccles. iv. 4. †Sir Philip Sidney's Aphorisms.
CHAP. XXVII. 5, 6. 505
faithful wound, and spares rebuke, rather than inflict pain, judged by
God s standard, is hatred. (Lev. XIX. 17.) Far better the wound should
be probed than covered. Rebuke, kindly, considerately, and prayerfully
administered, cements friendship, rather than loosens it.1 The contrary
instances only prove, that the union had never been based upon sub-
stantial principle.
Many indeed profess their value for a true friend; and yet in the
most valuable discharge of friendship, they "count him their enemy."
The Apostle had some just apprehension on this account, though so
wise and affectionate, and speaking from the mouth of God. (Gal. IV.
12-16.) As if the rule of friendship was, that we should absolutely
"please," without reference to the Divine restriction--"for good to
edification." (Rom. xv. 2.) Christian faithfulness is the only way of
acting up to our profession. And much guilt lies upon the conscience
in the neglect.
But this open rebuke must not contravene the express rule of love-
"telling the fault between thee and him alone." Too often, instead of
pouring it secretly into our brother's ear, it is proclaimed through the
wide medium of the world's ear; and thus it passes through a multitude
of channels, before it reaches its one proper destination. The openness
of the rebuke describes the free and unreserved sincerity of the heart, not
necessarily the public exposure of the offender; save when the character
of the offence, or the interests of others, may appear to demand it.
(1 Tim. v. 20.)
But never let a false tenderness be suffered to dilute a paramount
obligation. Could Paul have answered to God for his secret love to a
brother apostle, when the compromise of a fundamental principle called
for open rebuke? (Gal. ii. 11-14.) Obviously however the sin should
be brought to view, ere we rebuke. Nor should we vehemently re-
prove involuntary slips (See Ecclus. xix. 16); much less forget the
exercise of a loving spirit. Leighton's gentleness gave such a power
to his reproof, that rare was the repetition of the offence; rather however
from shame, than from the new principle. The mark of true godliness
is an anxiety to have our faults pointed out; and a thankfulness to those
who undertake the self-denying office.* A faithful reprover is a very
great help in our Christian course. He is to be valued above the
greatest treasure.' 'He that would be safe'--says one of the ancients
--'must have a faithful friend, or a bitter enemy, that he may fly from
vice by the monitions of the one, or the invective of the other.'† Much
1 Chap. ix. 8; xxviii. 23. Matt. xviii. 15.
* Neh. v. 7-13. Even when given most rashly and unkindly, one of the meekest of men
could say--I was thankful to God for admonishing me, and my gratitude to the man was,
I think, unfeigned.' In his journal, the reprover's name was found specially remembered in
prayer. MARTYN'S Life, chap. iii.
† Bp. Kidder.
506 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
more valuable is this faithfulness, than the smooth politeness of the
world's intercourse. Nay, some defect in this courtesy may be excused
for the sake of the sterling quality.
The truest friend of man--his wounds are faithful. He will not
pass by a single fault in his people. He acts upon his own rule from
the most considerate regard to their best welfare. And who would not
choose this faithful wound, however painful at the moment of infliction,
rather than the deceitful kisses of the enemy?1 The kiss of the apostate
was a bitter ingredient in the Saviour's cup of suffering.2 His fore-
knowledge of the treachery,3 in no degree weakened those exquisite
sensibilities, which, from their intimate union with the Godhead, ren-
dered him susceptible of suffering beyond all comprehension.*
7. The full soul loatheth (treadeth under foot, marg.) an honeycomb; but
to the hungry soul every bitter thing is sweet.
This is true, as regards the enjoyments of this life. Abundance,
instead of increasing the happiness of the possessor, deprives him of
the rest, which often belongs to a more scanty portion. (Eccles. v. 11.)
The man, whose appetite is cloyed with indulgence, turns with disgust
from the sweetest dainties; while every bitter and distasteful thing is
keenly relished by the hungry soul, perhaps just saved from starvation.†
This healthful appetite is one of the many counterbalancing advantages
of poverty. The stated epicure might well envy the luxury of a homely
meal Israel, after "eating angels' food to the full," loathed and trod it
under foot as "light bread."4
And is not this so in spiritual things? The Laodicean professor--
"rich and increased in goods, and having need of nothing"--loathes
the honeycomb of the gospel.5 Christ in his bitter "sorrow is nothing
to him, while he passeth by." (Lam. i. 12.) His love excites no ten-
derness; his hope no interest. "The consolations of God are small,"
of little account, "with him." (Job, xv. 11.) He can spare them
without sensible loss. He reads the Bible only to carp at its most
precious truths; offensive, as implying a ruin, of which he has no
apprehension, and which he has no heart to contemplate. Thus he
nauseates the most nourishing food; having no relish, because he feels
1 Chap. xxvi. 23-26. Neh. vi. 2. 2 Matt. xxvi. 48, 49, with Ps. xli. 9; lv. 12, 13.
3 John, vi. 70; xiii. 18-26. . 4 Ps. lxxviii. 25. Num. xi. 4-20; xxi.5.
5 Rev. iii. 17, 18. Matt. ix. 12. Rom. ix. 30, 31.
* Philip Henry beautifully describes the proper offices and uses of Christian reproof.
‘To reprove a brother is like as, when he is fallen, to help him up again, when he is
wounded, to help to curse him; when he hath broken a bone, to help to set it; when he is
it out of the way, to put him in it; when he is fallen into the fire, to pluck him out; when
he hath contracted defilement, to help to cleanse.'--Life, chap. x.
† Job, vl.T. Luke, xv. 16, 11.
‘Jejunus stomachus raro vulgaria temuit.'
Hor. lib. ii. Sat. ii. 38.
CHAP. XXVII. 8. 507
no need. Another case presents itself, not less affecting. "Fulness of
bread"--richness of spiritual ordinances--does not always bring its
corresponding appetite. May not satiety be as great a curse as famine?
Is it not fearfully written upon many a Christian professor--The full
soul loatheth the honeycomb.
Far more enviable is the hungry soul, feeding upon unpalatable
truths; yea--welcoming even bitter dispensations, as medicine for the
soul's health. (Ps. cxix. 67, 71.) And is not the sweet of the gospel
known by this bitterness? Does not this bitterness make Christ sweet to
the soul? A sinner in all his guilt; a Saviour in his perfect merit and
love--well does the one answer to the other. Every view of Christ
embitters sin. Every view of sin endears Christ. Nor is there any
terror in the conviction, that thus endears the Saviour. Rather
does it prepare the way for a solid confidence in the glad tidings of
the gospel.
What then is the pulse of my religion? Am I willing to receive
the word in its full completeness--the bitter as well as the sweet?
Do I love its humbling spirituality, its self-denying requirements, sub-
ordinating every desire to an unreserved obedience to my God; ready
to walk in his narrowest path, to have my most secret corruption
exposed; to have my conscience laid open to the "sharp piercing of
the two-edged sword?" (Heb. iv. 12.) Oh! may my soul be preserved
in this vigorous devotedness!
8. As a bird that wandereth from her nest, so is a man that wandereth
his place.
Instinct teaches the bird, that the nest is the only place of safety
repose. Here God has provided her special cover. (Deut. xxii. 6, 7.)
Nothing therefore but danger awaits her in her wanderings and seldom
does she, return without some injury to herself or her nestlings. Per-
haps her nest is cold and inconvenient. But her wanderings make her it
more restless and dissatisfied. She is safe and happy only while she
keeps her nest.
Not less senseless and dangerous is it lightly to leave the place,
society, or calling, which Divine Providence has marked out. Here
man is 'in God's precincts, and so under God's protection;'* and if he
will be content to remain in his place, God will bless him with the rich
gain of "godly contentment." (1 TIm. vi. 6.) But the man wandering
from his place is 'the rolling stone, that gathers no moss.' 'He is
always restless, as if he had a wind-mill in his head. Every new
crotchet puts him into a new course.'† His want of fixed principles
* SWINNOCK'S Christian Man's Calling, i. 346.
† Bp. SANDERSON'S Sermon on 1 Cor. vii. 24.
508 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
and employment exposes him to perpetual temptation. (Chap. xxi. 16.)
Always wanting to be something or somewhere different to what and
where he is, he only changes imaginary for real troubles. Full of
wisdom is it to know and keep our place. The soul, the body, the
family, society--all have a claim upon us. This feverish excitement
of idleness is the symptom of disease, wholly opposed to religion, the
bane both of our comfort and usefulness.
The plain rule cannot ordinarily be broken without sin –“Let
every man, wherein he is called, therein abide with God." (1 Cor. vii,
24.) Would we then abide in fellowship with God? We must "abide
in our calling." Every step of departure, without a clear Scriptural
warrant, is departure from God. We are safe in following Providence.
But to go before it; much more to break away from its guidance
(Jonah, i. 1-4)--a man thus wanders from his place to his own cost.
Never can we put our foot out of God's ways, but we shall tread the
path back with a cross.
It is often the wayward impulse of idle pleasure; but always with
the same fruit. Dinah was safe in the bosom of her family, as the bird
in her nest. But when she "went out to see the daughters of the land"
(Gen. xxxiv. 1, 2), the fowler's snare soon entangled the unsuspecting
wanderer.
Let us look at this spirit in the Church. The “idler wandereth about
from house to house" (1 Tim. v. 13), neglecting his own duties, and
therefore with plenty of time upon his hands to "meddle with what
doth not belong to him." (Chap. xxvi. 17.) So busy is the enemy in
finding his own work for those, "Who have no heart to work for God!
The discontented professor unhappily is shut up in so obscure a corner,
that he will die, before the world knows his worth. He wants a larger
sphere. The world is scarcely wide enough for him. Thus he wan-
dereth from his place, "seeking rest, and finding none." The gifted
professor is full of zeal for God and his church. His gifts were not
intended to run to waste. What he can do, he thinks he ought to do.
He sees the minister of God neglecting his flock--Why should not he,
as he deems himself well able, step into his room? But is not the man
wandering from his place? Our Master's charge is--"Give an account
of thy," not of thy neighbour's, "stewardship." (Luke, xvi. 2.)
If grace gives the desire for usefulness. Providence must open the
path. Our "wisdom is to understand our own way" (Chap. xiv. 8); our
duty, to "do our own business." (1 Thess. iv. 11.) Not a single talent
need be wasted. Every Christian has his own field, large enough for
the exercise of his measure of gifts, "without removing the ancient
landmark," that separates the sacred office, as the Lord's consecrated
service. Many might be found to perform competently the ambassador's
CHAP. XXVII. 8. 509
office; but who would venture upon it without the accredited authority
of his sovereign? The unsteady professor has no spiritual home.
church is sound enough for him; none wholly moulded to his taste.
Like the wandering bird, he is always on the wing. Any one place is
too strait for him. The accustomed food, even though coming down
from heaven, is "loathed as light bread." (Num. xxi. 5.) His vitiated
appetite leaves him often on the Sabbath morning undecided whom to
hear, his own will being his only guide. He is anxious to hear from
all; and, as the sure result, he learns from none. (2 Tim. iii. 7.) In
this self-willed delusion the form and substance of the Church is
destroyed. It is not a few wandering sheep, but a fold and a shepherd;
not a heap of loose scattered stones, but stones cemented, fitted into
their several places; and the building thus fitly framed together
groweth unto an holy temple in the Lord." (Eph. ii. 21, 22.) The
Church is "terrible" not in her single members, but ''as an army with
banners" (Cant. vi. 10); close in rank, where each soldier keeps his
own place. The individual profession, in the stead of collective unity,
is a purely schismatical spirit, the essence of pride and selfishness.
And is not this spiritual vagrancy the history of many, who under
the pretence of conscience have separated from the Church, which had
"nourished and brought them up as children?" After their own lusts
"they heap to themselves teachers, having itching ears." The end of
this wandering from their place, like that of the bird from her nest, is the
loss of everything valuable--"They shall turn away their ears from the
truth, and shall be turned unto fables.” (2 Tim. IV. 3, 4.)
Christian professor! Beware of this tampering with simplicity and
godly steadfastness. This wandering spirit proves, not expansive Jove,
but latitudinarian indifference; freedom, not from prejudices, but from
settled principles. Our Lord restrained his disciples from "forbidding"
the man, "who was doing a good work." But he did not direct them
to wander from their own place, and follow him. (Mark, ix. 38-40.) The
rule to "prove all things" is coupled with--"Hold fast that which is
good." (1 Thess. v. 21.) Christian establishment is the result of a
scriptural balance. "Order and Steadfastness"--"Beauty and Bands"
--are the two staves of the Good Shepherd; the strength of the
Church, the "joy" of her ministers. (Col. ii. 5. Zech. xi. 7.) If the
"order" be broken, "the steadfastness" soon fails. Confusion reigns,
instead of peace and unity. The enemy's watchword prevails-
'Divide and conquer.' Let every man therefore be in his own place
in the Church; not weakening his minister's hands to please his own
fancy; but marking carefully "the footsteps of the flock;" and seeking
to find "him whom his soul loveth," by “feeding beside the shepherds
tents.” (Cant. i. 7, 8)
510 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
9. Ointment and perfume rejoice the heart: so doth the sweetness of a man's
friend by hearty counsel (from the counsel of the soul, marg.)
Most refreshing are ointment and perfume to the senses.1 Not less
so is the cordial of friendship to the soul.2 Who does not feel the need
of a brother's or sister's bosom, their hand, their heart? Cold indeed
is social intercourse without individual sympathy. "Faithful are the
wounds of a friend." (Verses 5, 6.) But his very faithfulness alone
would crush. His sweetness and tenderness soundly heal the wound.
Sympathy is the balm of friendship. "My friend is to me as my own
soul,"* the sharer of my joys and my sorrows.3 How, without him,
could I more than half enjoy my pleasures? How could I bear my
sorrows alone? What ointment and perfume must have rejoice the
heart of the two bosom-friends "in the wood," when their hearty counsel
"strengthened each other's hand in God!"†
The heartiness of a friend's counsel constitutes its excellence. It is
not official, or merely intelligent. It is the counsel of his soul. He puts
himself in our case, and counsels, as he would wish to be counselled
himself. Moses's heart was thus rejoiced by Jethro's counsel, relieving
him from a heavy and needless burden. (Exod. xviii. 17-24.) Many
cases of spiritual perplexity have been thus opened. When unable to
see the needful consolation, a friend's counsel, like the angel of old, has
pointed to the well of water near at hand for our support. (Gen. xxi. 17.)
Often has the sympathy of a brother's experience cleared our path,4 and
turned the stumbling-block into a way-mark set up for our direction
and encouragement. Ought we not then to "comfort" our fellow-
sufferers "with the same comfort, wherewith we ourselves have been
comforted of God?" (2 Cor. i. 4.) ‘The Lord give us, as he did our
Divine Master, the gift of "the tongue of the learned!”' (Isa. l. 4.)
Matchless teacher! that teachest more in one hour than man can do
in a whole age! that we may be learned in real living Divinity, we sit
down at thy feet! What I know not teach thou me.'‡
But the real unction and blessing of this hearty counsel, will be in
proportion as we are living in communion with our Lord. Then
indeed will there be ointment and perfume to rejoice the heart. That
beloved "name which is above every name" will be ''as ointment
poured forth," and "the house will be filled with the odour of the
ointment." (John, xii. 3.)
1 Comp. Ps. cxxxiii. 2. Cant. i. 3; iii. 6; iv. 10. John, xii. 3. Dan. ii. 46.
2 Chap. xvii. 17. Comp. Ecclus, vi. 14-16. 3 Rom. xii. 15. Job, ii. 11, 12; xlii. 11.
4 Ps. xxxiv. 2; lxvi.16.
*Deut. xiii. 6. Philem. 12. Horace calls Virgil, --‘Animae dimidium meae.'--
Carm. i. 3.
† 1 Sam. xviii. 1-3; xx. 17. 2 Sam. i, 26, with 1 Sam. xxiii. 16. Similar must have
been the joy of Peter from his brother Andrew's counsel John, i. 40-42.
‡LEIGHTON'S Sermon on Job, xxxiv. 31, 32.
CHAP. XXVII. 10. 511
10. Thine own friend, and thy father's friend, forsake not; neither go into
thy brother's house in the day of thy calamity: for better is a neighbour
that is near, than a brother far off.
Man without principle is the creature of caprice. His friendships
have no warranted stability. The ointment soon loses its fragrance.
The sweetness of hearty counsel (Verse 9) is forgotten. New friends
gain influence; and even the father's friend--the long-tried family
friend--is forsaken. Solomon exemplified his own rule by cultivating
kindly intercourse with Hiram, his father's friend. (1 Kings, v. 1-10.)
The unprincipled contempt of this rule cost his foolish son his kingdom.
(1 Kings, xii. 6-19.) If other things are better when new, a friend is
better that is old and tried. (See Ecclus. ix. 10.) For how can you
trust an untried friend? Never forget his rare price. Never be
tempted by the lure of advantage to incur the risk of losing him. His
house, not thy brother's, may be thy shelter in the day of thy calamity.
(Chap. xviii. 24.) For though relationship ought to be the closest
bond; yet, without a higher principle, selfishness will too often pre-
dominate. Joseph found far greater kindness among foreigners, than
from his own kindred.1 Jonathan's affection afforded to David, what
his brothers' jealousy would never have given him.2 The Saviour
found his most soothing sympathy in the day of his calamity, not in his
brethren's house, but in the persevering attachment of his devoted
friends.3 One friend and neighbour closely knit in unity, near at hand,
and in readiness to assist, is better than a brother as far off in affection,
as in distance.*
'But if it be an indecency, and uncomeliness, and a very unfit
thing--that is--contrary to the precept of studying "whatsoever is
lovely, and thinking of these things"--to forsake my friend and my
father's friend: how much more horrid must it be to forsake my God,
and my father's God. "My father's God shall not be my God."† But
was not I solemnly given up to this God at my first coming into the
world? And was this transaction a trifle at the time, and to be re-
garded as a trifle at the end of life? How could Solomon ever forget
the injunction of his aged parent--"Thou, my son, know thou the God
of thy father?" (1 Chron. xxviii. 9.) Exquisitely beautiful is the pic-
ture of the venerable Patriarch, commending his friend and his father's
friend to his children for his heavenly blessing--"God, before whom
my fathers Abraham and Isaac did walk--the God which fed me all my
life long unto this day--the Angel which redeemed me from all evil-
bless the lads." (Gen. xlviii. 15, 16.) Here is a wise friend, who knows
1 Gen. xxxix. 4, 21; xli. 39-45, with xxxvii. 4-18.
2 1 Sam. xx. with xvii. 28. 3 Luke, xxii. 28, with John, vii. 3-5.
* Rp. Patrick. † HOWE'S Works, vii. 529.
512 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
our need;1 a sympathizing friend who feels our distress:2 a mighty
friend able to cover and provide;3 a faithful friend, true to his word;4 a
fast friend, who will never leave. (Heb. xiii. 5.) Young people, do you
know him as your father's friend? Make him your own in the hearty
receiving of his Gospel. Cleave to him. He will never disappoint
you.
11. My son, be wise, and make my heart glad, that I may answer him that
reproacheth me.
The Christian Parent takes his full share of the Minister's "greatest
joy" to see "his children walk in truth." (2 John, 4. 3 John, 4.) Then
indeed are they "the olive branches round about his table" (Ps. cxxviii.
3)--the ornament of his family--yea, "plants of renown"--the glory
of the Church and of the land. Every other portion for them we rest with
the Lord, for "surely we know that it shall be well with them that fear
God, which fear before him." (Eceles. viii. 12.) Gladdened is our heart by
their godly wisdom; and strengthened are we by what flows from, this wis-
dom--their holy prayers. And truly will we put our seal to the choice
of a parent thus honoured and blessed--'I had rather have my house
filled with my children's prayers, than filled with gold.'
But an ungodly child is indeed the parent's reproach. He can but
take up the father's weeping under different circumstances. "Alas! my
child! thou hast brought me very low, and thou art one of them that
trouble me." (Judg. xi. 35.) On this account the offending damsel was
"stoned at the door of her father's house." (Deut. xxii. 21.) The grace-
less children of gracious parents are a special reproach, even upon the
name of God.5 The world will charge it (however in many cases most
wrongfully) to their parents' example or neglect. Here therefore a wise
son makes the heart glad.6 He is his father's weapon of defence, "When
he speaketh with his enemies in the gate."7 Should not the children
of the Church ponder this deep responsibility, to carry such a profes-
sian, as may answer him that reproacheth, and stop the mouth, ever ready
to open with taunts against the Gospel? Specially should this respon-
sibility be felt by children of Ministers; to 'adorn' (as Mr. Richmond
affectionately inculcated upon his children) 'not only their Christian
profession, but their parents' principles; shewing, that the principles of
their father's house and Ministry are the rules of their conduct, and their
real delight?'*
1 Col. ii. 3. 2 Ps. xxxi. 7. 3 Isa. lxiii. 1. Matt. xxviii. 18.
4 Num. xxiii. 19. Rev. xix. 11. 5 Gen. xxxiv. 30. 1 Sam. ii. 17.
6 Chap. x. 1; xxix., 3 7 Ps. cxxvii. 5
*Life, pp. 294, 295. The Mosaic law severely punished the sins of the priest's daughter
for the disgrace brought upon the holy office, Lev, xxi. 9. “Faithful children” is a minis-
terial qualification. 1 Tim. iii. 4, 5. Tit. i. 6. It was a frequent petition in Philip Henry's
family worship, that ministers' children might have grace to carry it, that the Ministry
might in nothing be blamed.'--See the Author's Christian Ministry. Part iii. chap, ix.
CHAP. XXVII. 12, 13. 513
12. A prudent man foreseeth the evil, and hideth himself; but the simple
pass on, and are punished. (Chap. xxii. 3.)
Even animal instinct is the exercise of prudence. (Jer. viii. 7.)
Every intelligent man acts upon it. It is natural to see the evil when
it is come, or close to our door. But the prudent man foreseeth the coming
evil. God is the same unchangeable God of holiness and justice. Sin
is the same abomination to him as ever. There must therefore be evil
to the sinner. The prudent man sees the effect in the cause, the conse-
quent in the antecedent. He must therefore provide himself with a
shelter. We often see the Christian's patience, security, and hope. Here
is his prudence, securing a refuge. The evil is imminent. But "God in
Christ" is to him "the munition of rocks;" not a cold and barren refuge,
safe from enemies, but exposed to hunger; but a storehouse of food, as
well as a citadel of defence. "Bread shall be given him, and his water
shall be sure."1 The man, who has never realized the evil, is without an
hiding place. The man outside the gate perishes, as if there were no
refuge. Only he, who "runneth into the strong tower, is safe." (Chap.
xviii. 10.) A mighty blessing is any dispensation, that awakens from
slumber, and brings care, prudence, confidence!
The Israelites, warned of the destruction of the firstborn,2 and many
ages after, of the ruin of their city, hid themselves.3 This prudence com-
bined with faith, rouses us as the man-slayer to flee from impending
danger, and to "lay hold of the hope set before us."4 For him there
were six cities.5 For us there is but one.6 Nothing short of vital faith
brings us into it.
But the simple--the wilfully foolish--let things take their course.
God is so merciful. All will be well at the last. They will not be
warned. The fooleries of the world engage their heart. All besides is
forgotten; they pass on, and are punished. The prudent hide themselves
in God. The simple rush blindfold into hell. Oh! sinner, does not thy
ruin lie at thine own door? What will it be to take the mad pleasures
here, and to "lie down in everlasting sorrow?" (Isa. 1. 11.) The tears
of the penitent are but for a moment, and end in everlasting joy. (Ps. i
cxxvi. 5, 6.) Thine will be for eternity, "the weeping" of utter
despondency. (Matt. viii. 12.) Wilt thou scorn this warning? The ox
is driven to destruction. The sinner plunges into it, in despite of every
effort to restrain him.
13. Take his garment that is surety for a stranger, and take a pledge of
him for a strange woman.
This proverb also we have had before. (Chap. xx. 16.) 'But what
conduces to the happiness of life it is needful to inculcate again and
1 Isa. xxxiii. 16. Comp. Ps. cxlii. 5. 2 Exod. xii. 12, 13, 21-23. 3 Matt. .xxiv. 15-21.
4 Heb. vi 18. 5 Num. xxxv. 11-13. 6 Acts, iv. 12.
514 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
again, to fix it deep in the mind.'* This may be an illustration of the
prudence just described; foreseeing evil, and, instead of rushing into it,
avoiding it. For what can be more imprudent, than to trust a man,
that is surety for a stranger, or for a strange woman? Such folly is utterly
unworthy of confidence. And therefore take his garment, full security for
a debt. Rather incur the charge of selfishness, than by imprudence
hinder yourself from helping more worthy objects. It is the perfection
of Christian graces, that they do not entrench on one another. Kindness
loses the name of virtue, when shewn at the expense of prudence. Yet
caution is needed, lest in repressing an impulse, we crush or hazard a
valuable principle. We would not too hastily frown upon a generous
act; because it may have overstepped the bounds of prudence. Time,
growing consideration, and, experience, will correct the error. Mean-
while let not the discipline of prudence chill the glow of active, self-
denying love. Let every grace be in its: order, proportion, and combi-
nation, "that the man of God may be perfect, thoroughly furnished unto
all good works." (2 Tim. iii. 17.)
14. He that blesseth his friend with a loud voice, rising early in the
morning, it shall be counted a curse to him.
Is it a sin then to bless our friend? Our Lord openly acknowledged
the love of his friends. (Luke, xxii. 28.) And yet a loud voice, and
extravagant praises, bring insincerity into question. When a man
exceeds all bounds of truth and decency, affecting pompous words and
hyperbolical expressions, we cannot but suspect some sinister end.
(Chap. xxvi. 23-25.) Real friendship needs no such assurance. One
act of love is more than many loud blessings. 'There is no wise man,
but had rather have one promise than a thousand fair words, and one
performance than ten thousand promises. For what charge is it to spend
a little breath, for a man to give one his word, who never intends to
give him anything else?† He may be rising early in the morning,
lest some one be before him, lest ,there should be scarcely time to finish
this great business; and yet, while harping upon the same string, he
may be secretly condemning me all the day. Contrast David's early
rising for the service of God, with his son's early rising for the hypo-
critical blessing of his friends.1 The Apostle could not endure this
exaggerated praise.2 Indeed every intelligent man must look upon it
rather as a curse to him. For the supposed encouragement of such
fulsome flattery would stamp him as a fool. And the including blessing
would end in a fearful curse.3
1 Ps. v. 3; cxix. 147, with 2 Sam. xv. 2-7. 2 2 Cor. xii. 6. Comp. Rom. xii. 3.
3 2 Sam. xvi. 16-19; xvii. 7-13. Acts, xii. 22, 23.
*Lavater.
†South's Sermon on Matt. v. 44. Some of Mr. Scott's early friends at the Lock painfully
reminded him of this Proverb. Life, pp. 225, 226.
CHAP. XXVII. 15-17. 515
The rule towards our friend is--"Love not in word, neither in
tongue; but in deed and in truth." (1 John, iii. 18.) The rule for
ourselves is--"Walk before God," not before men. (Gen. xvii. 1.) Let
worldly things and worldly men be little in your eyes. Man's day will
soon have passed away. (1 Cor. iv. 3, marg.) Eternity in all its sub-
stance and glory is at hand.
15. A continual dropping in a very rainy day, and a contentious woman,
are alike. 16. Whosoever hideth her hideth the wind, and the ointment
of his right hand, which bewrayeth itself.*
The figure of the dropping has been given before. (Chap. xix. 13.)
The time is here added--a very rainy day, shutting us up at home.†
There is rain without and within, both alike troublesome; the one
preventing us from going abroad with comfort; the other from staying
at home in peace. The storm within is however much the most
pitiless. Shelter may be found from the other. None from this. The
other wets only to the skin; this even to the bones. Contention with a
a neighbour is a sharp shower, over and gone. This is a continual
dropping, the bane of a house, even though replete with every luxury.
Whether the woman lusts for rule, or repines under the obligation
to submit; either principle breaks the rank, in which God has placed
her. Occasions always present themselves for the display of this
unhappy temper. After the attempts to soothe and pacify her, the
"return of clouds after rain" betokens more showers, and dispels the
hope which a passing sunbeam may have raised. Unrestrained by
Divine grace, she becomes her husband's torment, and her own shame.
For as soon might we hide the wind that it should not be known, or the
ointment of our right hand, that it might not bewray itself; as restrain
her tongue, or hide her turbulence. Nay--as the wind pent up howls
more frightfully; so the attempt to still her noise only makes her more
clamorous.
Such repeated warnings seem to be needful. "Fleshly lusts" too
often rule conscience and judgment in the important choice. "Such
shall have trouble in the flesh." (1 Cor. vii. 28.) Prudence and prayer,
not blind affection, give the only security of happiness and peace.
17. Iron sharpeneth iron; so a man sharpeneth the countenance of his
friend.
Man was framed not for solitude, but for society. (Gen. ii. 18.) It
is only as a social being, that his powers and affections are fully
expanded. Iron sharpeneth iron. (1 Sam. xiii. 20, 21.) Steel, whetted
against a knife, sharpens the edge. So the collision of different minds
* 'He that refrayneth her, refrayneth the wynde, and holdith oyle fast in hir honde.'--
Bishop COVERDALE, †Holden.
516 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
whets each the edge of the other.* We owe some of the most valuable
discoveries of science to this active reciprocity. Useful hints were
thrown out, which have issued in the opening of large fields of hitherto
unexplored knowledge. In the sympathies of friendship, when the
mind is dull, and the countenance overcast, a word from a friend puts
an edge upon the blunted energy, and exhilarates the countenance.
(Job, iv. 3,4.) The commanding word in the field of battle puts a
keen edge upon the iron. (2 Sam. x. 11-13.) The mutual excitation for
evil is a solemn warning against "evil communications."1 But most
refreshing is it, when, as in the dark ages of the Church, "they that
feared the Lord spake often one to another."'2 Sharpening indeed must
have been the intercourse at Emmaus, when "the hearts of the disciples
burned within them."3 The Apostle was often so invigorated by the
countenance of his friends, that he longed to be "somewhat filled with
their company."† Upon this principle--"Two are better than one"--
our Lord sent his first preachers to their work.5 And the first Divine
ordination in the Christian Church was after this precedent. (Acts,
xiii. 2-4.)
'The communion of saints' is an Article in our Creed. But is it
practically acknowledged in its high responsibility and Christian privi-
lege? Gladly let us take up the bond of brotherhood. If a brother
seems to walk alone, sharpen his iron by godly communication. Walk
together in mutual "consideration" of each other's infirmities, trials,
and temptations; and mutual "provocation"6 of each other's gifts and
graces. "If the iron be blunt, the edge will thus be whetted." (Eccles.
x. 10.) were this high obligation and privilege more realized; were
we walking with God more closely in this holy atmosphere (1 John,
i. 7), we should not so often complain of social intercourse, where
much might have been communicated, and yet all ended in barrenness
and disappointment.
18. Whoso keepeth the fig-tree shall eat the fruit thereof: so he that waiteth
on his master shall be honoured.
An encouragement to diligence in our calling! The fig-tree was a
valuable product of Judrea.7 The cultivation was probably a profitable
labour, and therefore illustrated the general reward of faithfulness. The
dresser's industry was recompensed by eating the fruit thereof.8 The
1 Chap. 10-13. 1 Kings, xxi. 25. Isa. xli. 6, with 1 Cor. xv. 33.
2 Mal. iii. 16. 3 Luke, xxiv. 32. 4 Acts, xviii. 5; xxviii. 15. 2 Cor. vii. 6.
5 Luke, x. 1-3, with Eccles, iv. 9-12. 6 Heb. x. 24, 25; also iii. 13.
7 Mic. iv. 4. Hab iii. 17. Luke, xiii. 6
*. . . . Ergo fungar vice cotis, acutum
Reddere quae ferrum valet, exsors ipsa secandi.'--HOR. Ars Poet. 304.
†Rom. xv. 24. Even a Heathen could say-- 'Ipse aspectus viri boni delectat.'--
SENECA.
CHAP. XXVII. 19. 517
fidelity of the attached servant will be similarly honoured.1 Eliezer's
uprightness,2 and Deborah's long and faithful services,"3 were suitably
honoured. Elisha's affectionate devotedness to his master was honoured
with a double portion of his spirit. (2 Kings, ii. 3-5.) The Centurion's
care for his servant was probably an acknowledgment of diligent waiting
upon his master. (Luke, vii. 2.) The exceptive cases of ingratitude (Gen.
xxxi. 7) do not invalidate the rule.
There are no exceptions, however, in the service of the Divine
Master. Our happiness is in receiving his word, and studying his will.
Our honour is secured by his promises--"If any man serve me, him
will my Father honour." "Blessed are those servants, whom the Lord,
when he cometh, shall find watching. Verily I say unto you, that he
shall"--adorable condescension!--"gird himself and make them sit
down to meat, and will come forth, and serve them."4 Their honour
will be proclaimed to each before the assembled world--"Well done!
good and faithful servant; enter thou into the joy of your Lord." (Matt.
xxv. 21, 23.) It will seal their portion in eternal bliss--"His servants
shall serve him; and they shall see his face, and his name shall be in
their foreheads." (Rev. xxii. 3, 4.)
19. As in water face answereth to face, so the heart of man to man.
This proverb does not confound all in one indiscriminate mass; as
if all were alike under an endless diversity of condition. We cannot
identify infancy with age, or all the proper individualities of constitu-
tion and education. But under the same circumstances, and on the
same level, the coincidence is most remarkable and instructive. As in
the reflection of the water face answereth to face; so in another heart we
see the reflection of our own. (Ps. xxxiii. 15.) Human nature has
suffered no change since the fall. The picture of man's corruption,
drawn above four thousand years since, is man, as we see and know
him now.5 The Apostle's graphical delineation of the Christian con-
flict is as if we had been sitting before him for our own likeness. (Rom.
vii. 14-25.) This identity of Christian experience is most valuable.
'No one'--exclaims a tried child of God--'has ever felt as I do.' Let
him open his case to a brother or a sister, compare notes with their
exercises, and who will not subscribe their own name to his com-
plaints? Thus, instead of “thinking it strange concerning this fiery
trial," he learns that " the same afflictions are accomplished in his bre-
thren that are in the world." (1 Pet. iv. 12 ; v. 9.) The same features
and" measures of the stature in Christ," mark the whole family; inas-
much as "all these worketh that one and the self-same Spirit, dividing
to every man severally as he will." (1 Cor. xii. 11.)
1 Chap. xxii. 29, 2 Gen. xxiv. 3 Ib. xxxv. 8.
4 John, xii. 26. Luke, xii. 37. 5 Gen. vi 5. Ps. xiv. 2, 3. Rom. iii. 10, 11.
518 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
Scripture history also illustrates this unity. Ishmael's mocking
shews the enmity of the heart in all ages. (Gal. iv. 29.) Who of us does
not find something answering to Jonah's evil temper in our own fret-
fulness, waywardlless, or ingratitude? Job shews us our impatience,
our mistaken judgments of God's dealings with us, and the special trial
of Satan's temptations. David's heart in all its varied exercises answereth
to our heart. Else how could we take up his confession, praises, con-
flicts, and triumphs, and feel that no words of ours could more entirely
and accurately express our own selves? It is these Scripture portraits,
that make the word of God so "profiable for reproof, correction, and
instruction in righteousness." (2 Tim. iii. 16.)
Hence we learn sympathy with the members of Christ. We share
their joys and sorrows, the confidence and temptations. Self-knowledge
also instructs us thus to know human nature,1 and to deal wisely and
profitably with our fellow-sinners. The practical lesson of humility and
forbearance is also deeply taught. A man observes a face reflected in
the water, not thinking that it is his own face which is the actual object
of disgust. He exclaims with vain self-preference against the ungod-
liness of the sinner, or the infirmities of the saint. Why! it is thine
own self thou art reviling! Change then thy language of scorn for
self-abhorrence and shame!
20. Hell and destruction are never full: so the eyes of man are never
satisfied.
A striking picture of the two great devourers--hell and destruction
(Chap. xv. 11)--never full! Hell--the grave--ever since Adam's
sin has been insatiable. It has opened its mouth to receive countless
millions; and still it yawns, craving for more.2 Generations have sunk
into destruction, doing the work, and earning "the wages, of sin." Still
the pit is not full. The broad mouth still opens for more.
Thus insatiable are the eyes--the desires (1 John, ii. 16)--of man,
always requiring new gratification. "He enlargeth his desire as hell,
and is as death, and cannot be satisfied." His "eye is not satisfied with
seeing, nor his ear filled with hearing."3 Curiosity, love of novelty,
covetousness, ambition--all these desires, like thirst in the dropsy, are
aggravated in their indulgence. (Eccles. vi. 7.) Man is always seeking
for what he can never find, satisfaction in earthly things. He toils after
his object, and when he has grasped it, he toils still; the possessor of
abundance, not of happiness.* His best efforts only bring him a
1Ps. xxxvi. 1. P. T. 2 Chap. xxx. 15, 16. Isa. v. 14.
3 Hab. ii. 5. Eccles. i.8. Comp. ii. 1-11.
* Eccl. v. 10-12.
'Crescit amor nummi, quantum ipsa pecunia crescit.'--Juv. Sat. xiv. 139.
'Crescentenl sequitur cura pecuniam,
Majorumque fames.' Hor. Carm. iii. 16. Comp. ib. 24.
CHAP. XXVII. 20. 519
meagre enjoyment, not deserving the name. The summit of ambition,
when reached, is not his resting-place; only the point, whence he
stretches after something higher. All the affections of fallen man are
filled with unquenched thirst. He may fancy his desires to be mode-
rate. He may set bounds to them, and flatter himself, that he shall
never overpass them. But give him a world, and, like the far-famed
conqueror, he will weep for another, and sink at last into a wretched
eternity of unsatisfied desires.
Nor is this altogether the effect of his depravity. Corruption in-
deed leads us to seek rest in something short of God. But it is our
nature not to find it. How can an immortal being quench his thirst
but from an infinite source? The soul was originally created to find a
suitable and infinite gratification in the love of its Creator. And now
that it is turned aside by the fall, it has an immortal depth, that craves
to be filled. Nor do we speak here of refined and educated minds. The
most unlettered being, awakened to a sense of his consciousness, might
breathe out Augustine's confession--'Thou hast made us for thyself;
and our heart can have no rest, till it rests in thee.'* And here the
gospel meets the case--"Come unto me, all ye that labour, and are
heavy laden; and I will give you rest." (Matt. xi. 28.) So often as the
eager question starts up--"Who will shew us any good?" (Ps. iv. 6)
--listen to the voice--"Ho! every one that thirsteth, come ye to the
waters. If any man thirst, let him come unto me, and drink. He that
cometh to me shall never thirst."1 Here our desires are at once in-
creased and satisfied. A fountain of infinite fulness is at our door. We
are bid welcome to a haven of rest, to a bosom of peace and love. And
when new-created in the image of God, and made capable of commu-
nion with him in grace, and of enjoying him in glory, can our desires be
satisfied with anything less, with anything beside? Is he not now our
supreme delight, our satisfying object, never leaving us without com-
plete satisfaction for a single moment? (Ps. xvi. 5. Lam. iii. 24.)
Now let me ask--Have I seen God, as that, which alone is suffi-
cient for my soul? Have I made the important discovery, that all my
uneasy cravings from morning to night arise from not seeking him as
my only satisfaction? Let me sit down to the richest banquet of life,
and every dish will be tasteless, and without nourishment, if he is not
above all, and in all. To delight in anything independent of him (Ps.
lxxiii. 25), is as if we cast him down from his throne. All is misery
and delusion. Delighting in him, all ministers to our comfort, flowing
from this great centre. At the grand consummation how will the satis-
faction of the eyes and heart be complete!--The eternity of being will
be an eternity of joy--"Thine eyes shall see the King in his beauty.
1 Isa.lv. 1, 2. John, vii. 37; vi. 35.
* Confess. book 1. chap. i.
520 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
As for me, I will behold thy face in righteousness; I shall be satisfied,
when I awake, with thy likeness." (Isa. xxxiii. 17. Ps. xvii. 15.)
21. As the fining-pot for silver, and the furnace for gold; so is a man to
his praise.*
The fining-pot and furnace have been before mentioned, as the Lord's
"trial of the heart."1 The most searching furnace is here shown. He
that is praised is not only much approved, but much proved. The
courting of the praise of our fellow-creatures is the world within.
Praise is a sharper trial of the strength of principle than reproach.
'If a man be vain and light, he will be puffed up with it. If he be
wise and solid, he will be no whit moved therewith.'† A haughty and
supercilious deportment; "loving to have the pre-eminence" (3 John,
9); forwardness to give our opinion, and offence, if it be not taken--
this is the dross brought out of the furnace. Count the discovery a
special mercy. Know thy need of purifying, and let the great Refiner
do his perfect work. (Mal. iii. 2, 3.)
But see a man humbled by praise, in the consciousness how little
he deserves it, and "who maketh him to differ." (1 Cor. iv. 7.) See
him made more careful and diligent, bearing his honour meekly, and
the same man as before; here the furnace proves the real metal, and
brings out "a vessel of honour, meet for the Master's use." (2 Tim.
ii. 21.)
Absalom was tried in this fining-pot, and found "reprobate silver."2
Herod, under the shouting praise of his flatterers, "gave not God the
glory," and was blasted in shame.3 Joseph4 and David5--maintained
their humility; Daniel his consistency;6 the apostles their singleness
for their Master's glory. Here was the bright gold in the heated furnace.
Fearful often is the trial to a minister of Christ. When he becomes
the object of popular applause--his people's idol;7 when men of strong
impulse and weak judgment put the servant in the Master's place‡--
then he is in the fining-pot. He that is but dross consumes. Even if
1 Chap. xvii. 3. Comp. Ecclus. ii. 1, 5.
2 2 Sam. xiv. 25; xv. 6, with Jer. vi. 30. Ezek. xxii. 18. 3 Acts, xii. 21-23.
4 Gen. xli. 41-43; xlv. 5-8. 5 1 Sam. xviii. 7, 8, 15-18. 6 Dan. vi. 3-5.
7 Acts, iii. 11-16; x. 25, 26; xiv. 11-15.
* Gesenius (Gibbs) translates this verse--'What a crucible is to gold, that let a. man be
to the mouth that praiseth him '--i.e. let him examine the praise carefully.
† Bishop Hall.
‡ 'We should feel'--said the venerable Mr. Simeon in his own way--'as if our ears were
stung with blasphemy, when we discover any attempt to transfer the crown of glory from
the head of the Redeemer to that of any of his servants.' Henry Martyn--continually
expresses his sensitive conscience upon this besetting temptation.--Life, chap. ii, iii. Dr.
Payson--a careful self-observer-mentions among his trials--'well-meant, but iujudicious,
commendations!' When I am praised--'God! humble me,'--was the prayer of one
marvellously preserved in the fearful furnace.--Life of Mrs. Godolphin, p. 22. See also
Author's Christian Ministry, part iii. chap. vii.
CHAP. XXVII. 21. 521
there be true metal, the man of God "is saved, yet so as by fire."
Without painful discipline his usefulness would be withered, his spirit-
uality deadened, his soul lost. (2 Cor. xii. 7.)
Two rules strongly present themselves--Be careful in giving praise.
Even the children of the world can discover the deadly tenacity of
pride in our nature. 'Do you know '--remarked M. de Stael on her
death-bed--'what is the last thing to die in man? It is self-love.'
We cannot therefore do our brother a greater injury, than by supplying
fuel for pride by irregulated praise. Even if he be a public man, he is
not always before God as in the eyes of the Church. It may be that
the most eminent servant of God is one, of whom the Church has taken
little cognizance. And at best we are far too short-sighted to take the
accurate measure of our brother's piety. We cannot weigh it aright
without the balances of the sanctuary, which are fully in his hands
alone, who searcheth the heart. Therefore till the day appointed for
manifestation, it is well to judge each other, whether for good or evil,
with becoming moderation. And to which--is it merciful to expose
a weak fellow-sinner to the frown of a jealous God, by stirring up the
innate corruption of his heart?* For put even the finest gold into the
furnace, how humbling is the spectacle of the dross that yet cleaves to
it!1 Be not less careful in receiving praise. While our taste revolts
from extravagant flattery, yet we are apt to think it kindly meant, and
it is very rare not to take unconsciously a drop of the poison. But the
praise of the church is by far the most insidious poison,--so refined, so
luscious! Specially when we feel it to be lawfully obtained, how hard
to receive it with self-renouncing consecration to God! 'Christian!
thou knowest thou carriest gunpowder about thee. Desire those that
carry fire to keep at a distance. It is a dangerous crisis, when a proud
heart meets with flattering lips.'† May not even the habit of speaking
humbly of ourselves be a snare of the devil? Would it not be safer
not to speak of ourselves at all? At least--to confine our conversa-
tion in strict sincerity to what we are, not what we appear to be, would
be a "wise refraining of our lips." (Chap. x. 19.) Guard against
dwelling even in thought upon anything, that brings man's approving
eye upon us. Delight mainly in those works, that are only under the
1 Isa. xxxix. 2. 2 Chron. xxxii. 31.
* 'I do not know'--said Neff--'that I ought to thank you so very warmly for what I
have too much reason to fear the old man will be ready to take advantage of; his life
being, you know, principally supported by praise.'--Biography, p. 369. 'Everyone here'
--writes Dr. Payson to his mother--'whether friends or enemies, are conspiring to ruin
me. Satan, and my own heart, of course will lend a hand; and if you join too, I fear all
the cold water, which Christ can throw upon my pride, will not prevent it from breaking
out into a destructive flame. As certainly as anybody flatters and caresses me, my
Father has to scourge me for it, and an unspeakable mercy it is, that he condescends to
do it,'
† Flavel.
522 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
eye of God. Value alone his approbation. Ever think of the love
of human praise as the most deadly bane of a Christian profession, to
be resisted with intense energy and perseverance. (John; v. 44; xii. l
43, 44.)
22. Though thou shouldest bray a fool in a mortar among wheat with a
pestle, yet will not his foolishness depart from him.
The allusion is to the Eastern mode of beating off the husk from the
corn by braying it in a mortar.* Yet the husk sticks not so close to the
grain, as foolishness to the fool. The beating of the mortar may separate
the one. The other will not depart by repeated strokes. Much is said
of the effectiveness of correction.1 But of itself it works nothing.
What can it do for the fool, that despises it?2 "The rod "as an
ordinary means, "will drive foolishness out of the heart of a child."3
But the child is here become a man in strength of habit, and stubborn-
ness of will. As soon, therefore, "can the Ethiopian change-- his skin,
or the leopard his spots," as those can do good, "who are accustomed
to do evil." (Jer. xiii. 23.)
Examples of this incurable hardness abound. The deluge--that
besom of divine vengeance destroyed the race, not the foolishness,
of man. Nay--God himself declared its inefficacy for this end. (Gen.
viii. 21.) Pharaoh was once and again brayed in the mortar; yet did
not his foolishness depart from him.4 Ahaz under the same infliction
"trespassed yet more against the Lord," and stands out as a beacon to
all ages--"This is that king Ahaz!"5 "Why should ye be stricken
any more?"--was the desponding complaint of God concerning his
Israel.6 The deepest infliction of chastisement produces only the fruit
of blasphemy and hardened impeniterice.7 If Manasseh's foolishness,
when brayed in the mortar, departed from him;8 this was not the innate
power of affliction, but the superadded power of Sovereign Grace, which
can turn any evil, even sin itself, to eternal good. The belief in the
necessary working of affliction for our saving good is a fatal delusion.
Never did it of itself bring one soul to God. In all cases, it is only
what God is pleased to make it. It may even be tenfold more severe.
The blows may be so mighty, as to make the most stupified soul quiver
with intense feeling. Still if the rock be broken, the broken pieces
will retain all their native hardness. The man may be crushed, yet
not humbled. Still will he cling to his foolishness; and part with
1 Chap. xxiii. 13, 14; xxix. 15, 17. 2 Chap. xii. 1; xv. 10. 3 Chap. xxii. 15.
4 Exod. ix. 27; x. 16; xii. 29-32; xiv. 5. 5 2 Chron. xx..-iii.22.
6 lsa. i. 5. Compo ix.13. Jer. v. 3; xliv. 9, 10, 15, 16. Ezek. xxiv. 13. Amos, iv. 11, 12.
7 Rev. xvi. 10, 11. 8 2 Chron. xxxiii. 12, 13.
* Many commentators conceive a reference to this mode of punishment still practised
in the East. See Calmet-Parkhurst. HORNE'S Introduction, iii.157. BURDER'S Oriental
Customs. But perhaps the figurative allusion is more simple.
CHAP. XXVII. 23-27. 523
Christ and heaven, rather than with that which is interwoven into
every part of his nature. Was it not thus--Christian--with thyself,
till Omnipotent love awakened, what chastisement alone could never
have stirred, the cry of unreserved submission?--'Lord! spare me not;
bruise me; humble me; do anything with me, but leave me under my
sins. Who can deliver me, if thou dost not?' Most welcome is the
"bemoaning" of the penitent child to his yearning father. "Thou hast
chastised me, and I was chastised, as a bullock unaccustomed to the
yoke: turn thou me, and I shall be turned; for thou art the Lord my
God. Surely after I was turned, I repented; and after that I was
instructed, I smote upon my thigh; I was ashamed, yea, even con-
founded, because I did bear the reproach of my youth. Is Ephraim my
dear son? Is he a pleasant child? For since I spake against him, I
do earnestly remember him still; therefore my bowels are troubled for
him: I will surely have mercy upon him, saith the Lord."1
23. Be thou diligent to know the state of thy flocks, and look well (set thy
heart, marg.) to thy herds. 24. For riches are not for ever: and doth
the crown endure to every generation.? 25. The hay appeareth, and the
tender grass sheweth itself, and herbs of the mountains are gathered.
26. The lambs are for thy clothing, and the goats are the price of the
field. 27. And thou shalt have goat's milk enough for the food of thy
household, and for the maintenance of thy maidens.
'This declareth the great goodness of God towards man, and the
diligence that he requireth of him for the preservation of his gifts.'*
It is a lively picture of the occupations, advantages, and responsibilities
of rural life in olden days. It is specially appropriate to a nation,
whose chief riches were, in its early origin, in pastures and flocks. Their
father Jacob admirably exemplified this rule. He knew well the state of
his flocks and herds.2 Even King David, mindful of his ancient employ,
kept his flocks and herds under constant inspection.3 Uzziah also
deemed a pastoral charge no degradation to his royal dignity.4 The
rule inculcates personal attention. All should not be left to servants.
The master's eye, like Boaz,5 should, as far as possible, overlook the
work. Riches are a fickle possession. They would not be for ever.
(Chap. xxiii. 5.) Even the crown might not endure to ever generation.
Native produce is more permanent wealth. Honest industry secures a
more certain maintenance, springing up out of tile earth, a more imme-
diate gift of God.
The Bible is thus a directory for all the diversified employments of
1 Jer. xxxi. 18-20. Comp. Hos. xiv. 1-i. Luke, xv.18-24.
2 Gen. xxx. 32-42; xxxi. 38-40; xxxiii. 13.
3 1 Chron. xxvii. 29-31, with 1 Sam. xvi. 11. Ps. lxxviii. 70, 71.
4 2 Chron. xxvi. 10. 5 Ruth, ii. 4, 5; iii.1.
* Reformers' Notes.
524 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
life. It teaches that every man ought to have a business, and rebukes
the neglect of practical every-day duties. God may be glorified by a
single eye and purpose in every station; by-the labourer, the farmer,
the servant, no less than by the master. (Col. iii. 22-24.) We must
"serve the Lord in fervency of spirit." But a part of this service is,
that we be "not slothful in business." (Rom. xii. 11.) Indolence would
make the cares of life an excuse for a low standard of religion. But to
retire from the burden would be to neglect "serving the will of God in
our generation" (Acts, xiii. 36); to "put our light under a bushel,
instead of upon a candlestick;" to cover it, instead of "letting it
shine." (Matt. v. 14-16.) Our own calling is the way of God for us
and in this way, let us commit ourselves to God, and be at peace.
(1 Cor. vii. 20, 24.) His Providence extends to little things, as well as
to things of greater moment. The least is under his care, as if there
was nothing else. There is no weariness, perplexity, or labour. A
single glance is sufficient. Nothing escapes his all-seeing eye. He
that "telleth the number of the stars," numbereth " also the hairs of our
head."1 Sweet balm for that cankering care, which is the bane of all
godliness!
This picture also exhibits the fruits of industry, as far preferable to
those of ambition. The comparison with those, whose station places
them beyond the need of labour, affords no matter for envy; much for
thankfulness. The various produce of the field--the hay and grass in
the pastures; the herbage on the mountains;* the suitable clothing from
the lambs (Job, xxxi. 20); the goats paying the price of the field; the
sufficiency of wholesome food for the household and maidens--all is the
overflowing bounty of our gracious God. "How excellent is thy I
loving-kindness, O God!" (Ps. xxxvi. 7.) Thus "man goeth forth;
unto his work and unto his labour until the evening, singing his song
of praise--"0 Lord, how manifold are thy; works! in wisdom hast
thou made them all: the earth is full of thy riches." (Ib. civ. 23, 24.)
CHAPTER XXVIII.
1. The wicked flee when no man pursueth: but the righteous are bold
as a lion.
The wicked may appear bold in facing danger, so long as they drown
reflection, and stupify conscience. But when conscience is roused, guilt is
the parent of fear. Adam knew no fear, till he became a guilty creature.
Then, to the searching question--"Where art thou?"--he replied--"I
1 Ps. cxlvii. 4. Matt. x. 30.
*Ps. civ. 14. 'The word translated hay properly means grass. Where vegetation was
so abundant, they have seldom occasion to make hay.'--Holden. Comp. Parkhurst.
CHAP. XXVIII. 1. 525
was afraid, because I heard thy voice in the garden, and I hid myself."
(Gen. iii. 9, 10.) But the wicked flee, not only when their enemies pursue,1
but when no man pursueth.2 Yet is not conscience an invisible pursuer,
following close, the harbinger of the wrath of God? And there are times,
when "the sound of a shaken leaf shall chase them;"3 when "the sha-
dows upon the mountains" shall make their hearts melt away.4 Cain
was terrified with the apprehension of murder, when there was no man,
save his own father, living on the earth. (Gen. iv. 13, 14.) Many a daring infidel
has shewn himself a coward in a moment of sudden danger. In unwelcome
thoughts of judgment to come, conscience has turned pale at the question—
"Where shall the ungodly and the sinner appear?" (1 Pet. iv. 18.)
But if guilt brings fear, the removal of guilt gives confidence.5
The wicked flee; the righteous are bold as a lion. Fearless as the King
of the forest,* they dare to do anything but offend their God. The fear
of him has drowned every other fear. "Though an host should encamp
against me"--saith the man of God--"mine heart shall not fear."6
Moses "feared not the wrath of the king."7 Caleb and Joshua stood
firm against the current of rebellion.8 Elijah dared Ahab's anger to
his face.9 Nehemiah in a time of peril exclaimed--"Should such a
man as I flee?"10 The three confessors stood undaunted before the
furious autocrat of Babylon.11 The Apostles' boldness astonished their
enemies.12 Paul before the Roman governor,13 and even before Nero
himself, " witnessed a good confession."14 Athanasius before the Impe-
rial Counsel of Heresy; Luther at the Diet of Worms, finely exemplified
the lion-like boldness. Nor is this the character of individuals only.
The faithful and constant Christian will be bold to walk contrary to the
course of this world; outfacing the scorn of men; valiant for despised
truth; glorying in a persecuted name. Fearless is he of men. "For
if God be for him, who can be against him?"15 Not less fearless is he
of Satan. If he be a "roaring,"16 he is a chained, lion. "Resist him,"
and--coward-like, "he will flee from you." (Jam. iv. 7.) If there be
a want of boldness, is there not a wound of conscience, neglect of prayer,
or want of faith? The boldness itself is the sense of weakness, and
1 Deut. xxviii. 25. 2 Lev. xxvi. 17. Ps. liii. 5. 3 Lev. xxvi. 36. Job, xv. 21.
4 Judg. ix.36. 5 Heb. x. 22. 1 John, iii 21.
6 Ps. xxvii. 3; iii. 6; xlvi. 2; cx.ii.7. 7 Heb. xi. 27. Exod. x. 28, 29.
8 Num. xiv. 6-10. 9 1 Kings, xviii. 10, 17, 18; xxi. 20. 2 Kings, i. 15.
10 Neh. vi. 11. 11 Dan. iii. 16. 12 Acts, iv. 13.
13 Ib. xxiv.; xxvi. Rom. i.15, 16. 14 2 Tim. iv. 16,17.
15 Rom. viii. 31. 16 1 Pet. v. 8.
* Comp. chap. xxx. 30. 2 Sam. xvii. 10. This noble animal is the most perfect model
of boldness and courage. He never flies from the hunters, nor is frightened by their onset.
If their number forces him to yield, he retires slowly, step by step, frequently turning
upon his pursuers. He has been known to attack a whole caravan, and when obliged to
retire, he always retires fighting, and with his face to his enemy.'--PAXTON'S Illustration of
Natural History of Scripture, pp. 295, 296. Pindar refers to the lion as the figure of courage,
Isth. iv. .Antistr.
526 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
divine "strength made perfect in it." (2 Cor. xii. 9.) When God intends
us to do great things, he makes us feel, that "without him we can do
nothing." (John, xv. 5.) Thus pride receives its death-blow and he
receives all the glory to himself.*
2. For the transgression of a land many are the princes thereof: but by a man of
understanding and knowledge the state thereof shall be prolonged.
Is God concerned in the falling of a sparrow? (Matt. x. 29.) Surely
then much more in the control of kingdoms. (Dan. iv. 25.) Did we
realize more deeply our national dependence, we should see the clouds
of anarchy and confusion working his wise, mysterious, or gracious
purposes. Rival princes desolate the land with the horrors of civil war.
(1 Kings, xii. 16-21.) A quick succession of princes rises by treason,
usurpation, or natural course. (Zech. xi. 8.) Hence a change of laws,
spoliation of privileges, imposition of new burdens, or wasteful expendi-
ture of treasure or blood. Man traces these evils to political causes.
But God's voice speaks from the cloud--" This thing is from me."
(1 Kings; xii. 24.) For the transgression of a land many are the princes
thereof. The bloody contentions in our early history, which swept
away the flower of our nobility; and those of a later date, which over-
turned for a time our long-established institutions--did they not
betoken the same awful scourge of national transgression. Would that
the nation had learnt from her own records of by-gone days, the sound
and practical lessons of repentance with all its blessed fruits!†
* Bishop Hall has finely worked out this contrast--'The wicked is a very coward, and
is afraid of everything; of God, because he is his enemy; of Satan, because he is his tor-
mentor; of God's creatures, because they, joining with their Maker, fight against him; of
himself, because he bears about with him his own accuser and executioner. The godly
man contrarily is afraid of nothing; not of God, because he knows him his best friend,
and will not hurt him; not of Satan, because he cannot hurt him; not of afflictions,
because he knows they come from a loving God, and end in his good; not of the creatures,
since "the very stones in the field are in league with him;" not of himself, since his con-
science is at peace.'--Medit. and Vows, Cent. ii. lxxiv.
† Thus wrote Jeremy Taylor of his own sorryful times, in his fervid colouring, and
deep-toned instructiveness; and with some solemn application to later times. 'It is a sad
calamity to see a kingdom spoiled, and a Church afflicted; priests slain with the sword,
and the blood of nobles mingled with the cheaper and; religion made the cause of trouble,
and the best of men most cruelly persecuted; govenment turned, and laws ashamed;
judges decreeing in fear and covetousness, and the ministers of holy thing's setting them-
selves against all that is sacred. And what shall make recompense for this heap of sorrows,
when God shall send such swords of fire? Even the mercies of God, that shall then be
made public when the people shall have suffered for their sins. For I have known a
luxuriant rule swell into irregular twigs and bold excrescences, and spend itself in leaves
and little rings, and afford but little clusters to the wine-press. But when the Lord of the
vine has caused the dressers to cut the wilder part, and make it bleed; it grew temperate
in its vain expence of useless leaves, and knotted into fair and juicy branches, and made
account of that loss of blood by the return of fruit. It, is thus of an afflicted kingdom,
cured of its surfeits, and punished for its sins. It bleeds for its long riot, and is left un-
governed for its disobedience, and chastised for its wantonness. And when the sword hath
let forth the corrupted blood, and the fire hath purged the rest, then it enters into the
CHAP. XXVIII. 3. 527
But not less must we acknowledge the Divine Hand in the pro-
longation of the state by men of understanding and knowledge. By a man
of this high character the state of Egypt was prolonged by preservation
from famine. (Gen. xli. 38, 39.) The long and prosperous reigns of the
godly kings of Judah strongly contrast with the records of Israel after
the revolt.1 And perhaps this may be a mark of the Lord's controversy
with us; that the detached political parties present few--if any--
master-minds--men of understanding and knowledge--men--like Mr.
Pitt--of surpassing power or grasp of mind; evidently raised up at a
grand national crisis for the prolongation of the state. Such men guided
by Christian principle, we would pray might be the counsellors of our beloved
Sovereign, that her state be prolonged "in all godly quietness." (1 Tim. ii. 1, 2.)
3. A poor man that oppresseth the poor is like a sweeping rain which
leaveth no food (with food, marg.)
Unrestrained power is often an engine of oppression;2 never more so,
than when in the grasp of the poor. Place an unprincipled spendthrift
in power, and he is a destructive flood in his sphere: greedily serving
every advantage by oppression to redeem his substance. A poor man
suddenly raised to power, instead of sympathizing with grievances
familiar to his former recollection,3 is usually pre-eminently distin-
guished by selfishness. Only a fool will admire the splendour of his
power, reckless of the mischief, that it is spreading all round. Esther,
when raised to a throne from an obscure station, was well reminded to
use her power for God; for that some great work was surely intended
by the remarkable Providence. (Esth. iv.14.) But a base mind becomes
more corrupt from a hasty elevation. The man's necessities inflame his
desires; and being without a spark of generous humanity, he is only
bent upon improving his uncertain opportunities for selfish aggrandize-
ment.* Some of the rulers in the French Revolution were raised from
double joys of restitution, and gives God thanks for his rod, and confesses the mercies
of God in making the smoke to be changed into fire, and his anger into mercy.'--
Works, vi, 182.
1 1 Kings, xv. 25-34; xvi. 8-29. 2 Kings, xv. 8-31, with 1 Kings, xv. 10. 2 Chron. xvii.
1-5; xxxii. 20-26
2 Gen. xxxi. 29. Eccles. iv. 1. 3 Matt. xviii. 28-30.
*'It is in matter of power'--as Bp. Sanderson admirably observes--'as it is in matter
of learning. They that have but a smattering of scholarship you shall ever observe to be
the forwardest to make ostention of those few ends they have; because they fear there
would be little notice taken of their learning, if they should not now show it when they
can. It is even so in this case. Men of base spirit and condition, when they have gotten
the advantage of a little power, conceive, that the world would not know what goodly men
they are, if they should not do some act or other, to shew forth their power to the world.
And then, their minds being too narrow to comprehend any generous way whereby to do
it, they cannot frame to do it any other way, than by trampling upon those that are below
them; and that they do beyond all reason, and without all mercy.'--Sermon on Chap. xxiv.
11, 12. Comp. also on 1 Sam. xii. 3.
528 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
the lowest ranks. And their oppression was indeed a sweeping rain,
leaving no food in fertile districts.
Cheering is the contrast of Him, once poor himself by his voluntary
abasement, now raised to honour and glory; yet pitying, not ashamed
of, his "poor brethren."1 Truly his administration is not the sweeping
rain of desolation, but "the rain upon the mown grass," rich in mercy.
"He shall deliver the needy when he crieth; the poor also, and him
that hath no helper. He shall redeem their soul from deceit and
violence; and precious shall their blood be in his sight." (Ps. lxxii.
12-14.)
4. They that forsake the law praise the wicked: but such as keep the law
contend with them.
How responsible is the influence of our profession, acting upon all
around for evil or for good! Congeniality of taste directs the choice of
our companions. Those who love sin, naturally" have pleasure in them
that do it." (Rom. i. 32.) They praise the wicked, because, like them-
selves, they forsake the law, and "cast it behind them."2 "The world
loveth its own."3 Each countenances his brother in sin. (Isa. xii. 6.)
Each makes the other's conduct, not the forsaken law, the standard of
action. The wicked may possess some praiseworthy qualities. (Luke,
xvi. 8.) But to praise them for their wickedness, identifies us with
them. 'It is fearful to sin; more fearful to delight in sin; yet more to
defend it.'*
The servants of God maintain the same unity of spirit. They cannot
call sin by smooth names, and gloss over an ungodly character. If they
keep the law, they contend with them that forsake it. Noah thus con-
tended with the ungodly in his day, condemning them not merely in
word, but in life; and though "a preacher of righteousness," he
preached more powerfully by his life, than by his doctrine.4 But this
contention must be aggressive. We must "reprove," as well as separate
from, "the unfruitful works of darkness."† Our Divine Master's open
testimony was the grand offence.1 So let us plainly shew, that his
enemies are ours‡ that we hold neutrality in his cause to be treason.
For "he that is not with me is against me." (Matt. xii. 30.)
Oh! the appalling recollection of our former influence for evil! the
deadly, perhaps the eternal, injury, which all our subsequent labours
have never undone! the encouragement, which our praise of the wicked
1 2 Cor. viii. 9. Philip. ii. 7-11, with Heb. ii. 11, 12.
2 1 Sam. xxiii. 23. Neh. iv. 17-19. 3 John, xv. 19. 4 2 Pet. ii. 5. Heb. xi. 1.
5 Matt. xv. 10-12. Luke, xx. 19. John, vii. 7.
* Bp. HALL'S Works, viii. 36.
† Eph. v. 11. Elijah-l Kings, xviii. 18; Elisha-2 Kings, iii. 13. John-Matt. iii.
xiv. 3, 4.
‡ Ps. cxxxix. 21, 22. See the rebuke given to a godly king, 2 Chron. xix. 2.
CHAP. XXVIII. 5. 529
gave to sin, hardening our companions in their wickedness! What
would Manasseh have given to have undone his sin in all its evil con-
quences upon his son and his kingdom!* Intolerable would be the
thought of the past, but for the blood which covers the guilt, while it
deepens shame and self-abhorrence. (Ezek. xvi. 63.) But let it ever be
present before us, as our constraining obligation to redeem what has
been lost, as far as may be, by a holy contention against sin, and by the
convincing protest of consistent godliness.1
5. Evil men understand not judgment: but they that seek the Lord under-
stand all things.
Ignorance and knowledge are here contrasted, and each traced to
their proper source. The Apostle draws the same contrast. "The
natural man receiveth not the things of the Spirit of God. But he that
is spiritual judgeth all things." (1 Cor. ii. 14, 15.) This unity of state-
ment is beautiful and instructive. 'The two Testaments, like our two
eyes, mutually enlighten us, and assist each other.'†
Evil men understand not judgment.2 They know not the true standard
of right and wrong, the true way to God, or the end of God's dealings
with them. Their ignorance is wilful. (Job, xxi. 14.) "Having the
understanding darkened; because of the blindness of the heart. Men love
darkness rather than light, because their deeds are evil. They call
darkness light, and light darkness."3 The most distinguished scholar
is a very fool in understanding judgment; and, except he be humbled in
the consciousness of his ignorance, and seek light from above, he will
perish in gross darkness. What a curse are learning and intellect
without an humble heart!
Nay--sometimes knowledge, no less than ignorance, hinders a
right understanding. Where the knowledge of the truth goes before or
beyond the power of it, the mind is often perplexed with difficulties,
which the less intelligent, but more simple, escapes. When knowledge
stands in the stead of faith; when the man reasons, instead of sub-
mitting to Divine teaching; knowledge abused becomes a positive hin-
drance to a correct understanding. Nothing is more revolting to our evil
nature, than the study of Scripture, with an earnest and sincere desire to
follow its light and teaching.
An undisciplined imagination is also a great hindrance to a spiritual
judgment. Let this bright faculty be exercised in giving vivid appre-
hensions of divine things, and clothing the picture with brilliant but
1 Philip, ii.15, 16. 1 Pet. ii. 12; iii. 16. 2 Ps. Ixxxii. 5. Jer. iv. 22.
3 Eph. iv. 18. John, iii. 19, Isa. v. 20.
* 2 Chron. xxxiii. 15-17, with 22. 2 Kings, xxiii. 26, Mr. Cecil had deep cause to
regret his ineffectual labour to reclaim from infidelity more than one, whom he had
plunged into that gulf of ruin.
† SERLE'S Horoe Solitaoe, vol. i. 565.
530 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
truthful colouring. It may thus, within its own province, be a valuable
handmaid to the Gospel. But a ray of faith is better than a rainbow
of fancy. The picture, if it be not in immediate connexion with the
reality, fades away without permanent influence. The feeblest faith,
grounded upon the fundamentals of the Gospel, proves a steadfast prin-
ciple of endurance and triumphant energy, even when under the
prostration of natural and intellectual power, "the whole head is sick,
and the whole heart is faint."
But pride fastens upon every faculty of man. And this is indeed
the general cause. The source of light is despised. (Ps. x. 4.) Hence
"there is none that understandeth," because "there is none that seeketh
after God."* They that seek the Lord, babes though they may be in
intellect, and ignorant in worldly things--shall have an accurate
understanding of all things profitable, such as no "natural man" can
attain.1 "The words are plain to him that understandeth, and right to
them that find knowledge." (Chap. viii. 9.) Many things, dark to
human reason, are simplified to humility.2 The harmony of the divine
attributes staggers reason, and can only be apprehended by humble faith.
'In thinking of the justice of the Deity' (as a reclaimed infidel†
describes his own conflict) man 'is at first ready to doubt his com-
passion. But the gospel answers him by the voice of an Apostle--
"God so loved the world" that "he spared not his own Son, but
delivered him up for us all."--It is then that the penitent sinner appre-
hends this ineffable, mystery. His proud and blind reason had rejected
it. His humble and contrite heart profoundly feels it. He believes,
because he loves; because he is grateful; because he sees all the good-
ness of the Creator proportioned to the miseries of the creature. Oh
my God! all thy mysteries are mysteries of love, and therefore are they
indeed divine.'‡
Again--God's working is the spring of diligence, not of inertion.
Man works, but under the Master-worker. He is free, but under the
free-making Spirit, giving him a will for the service. Thus, while
active, he is kept dependent.3 He works with deeper humility, and
more assured confidence. (Philip. ii. 12, 13.) This is a mystery to
1 Ps. xxv. 9. 12; cxix. 98-100,130. Matt. xi. 25. 2 Ps. xxv. 14, with chap. xxiv. 7.
3 Ps. cxix. 4, 5, 8, 10, 32, 173.
* Ps. xiv. 2. Rom. iii. 11. 'Wickedness'--Bp. Taylor justly observes--'corrupts a
man's reasoning, gives him false principles, and evil measuring of things,'--Sermon before
University of Dublin. 'I regard it as a fundamental error in the study of Divinity'--re-
marks Professor Franke--'for anyone to persuade himself, that he can study divinity
properly without the Holy Spirit. As long as he remains in this error all labour is lost on
him.'--Lect. Paroen. p. 184. 'A grain of true faith is more estimable than a mass of mere
historical knowledge.'--Ib. Idea Studiosi Theologia. A man may as soon read the letter
of Scripture without eyes, as properly understand their mysteries without grace.'--Bp.
BEVERIDGE.
†The French poet and philosopher, De La Harpe.
‡ Quoted in SHEPPARD'S Thoughts on Devotion, pp. 308-310.
CHAP. XXVIII. 5 531
reason. But they that seek the Lord understand it. Practical expe-
rience shews it to them. Again--how dark are the Lord's ways to
man's proud reason! Hard dispensation! a world of sorrow! But the
child of God, seeking to know "the end," understands them "all to be
mercy and truth."1 Is it not the sharp trial, to probe the wound; the
bitterness, to wean from the creature comfort; the burden, to prove
"the patience and faith of the saints;" the sifting, to separate the chaff
from the wheat; the furnace, to purify the gold? Thus does seeking
the Lord expound the mysteries of Providence and grace! We are
neither stumbled by the stones, perplexed by the labyrinths, or "dis-
couraged because of" the length and weariness of the way. Those
who desire the light shall have it. (John, vii. 17.) To those who
improve it more shall be given.2
But--'I cannot seek--that is--I cannot pray.' Nor can you do
anything right of yourself. But does this discharge you from the
obligation? Does it not often mean--if the heart would speak out--
'I have no care for the blessing.' But suppose the confession to be
sincere--'I cannot pray.' Then do as you are taught. Carry this
confession to the Lord. Repeat it again and again upon your knees.
Let not inability be indolence, but faith. Not one of the Lord's people,
but sympathizes with the complaint. The connexion of your utter
helplessness is most profitable, as confirming the divine testimony.
(2 Cor. iii. 5.) Yet remember the help provided for weakness and
ignorance. (Rom. viii. 26.) If you cannot pray as you would, pray as
you can. Desire--sincere and supreme--is the heart's real prayer,
God's own work upon the soul.* Is this manifest? Wait in the con-
stant use of the means. Be found in the way. (Isa. lxiv. 5.) "Light
is sown," and the seed in God's best time will bring the harvest. (Ps.
xcvii. 11.) No one fails to make progress, who is really in earnest. It
is a grand mistake to suppose, that some impression must be felt, as the
warrant to seek. The only true warrant is the free invitation and pro-
mise of the gospel. You must come, if at all, as a sinner, not as a
saint; as you are, not as you would be; now, not waiting for some
better time or preparation; seeking your fitness in Christ, not in your-
self. And then plead his promise--"Him that cometh unto me I will
in no wise cast out." (John, vi. 37.) Tell him that you are come on
the ground of this promise, and to claim the fulfilment of it--"Remem-
ber the word unto thy servant, upon which thou hast cause me to
hope." (Ps. cxix. 49.) This must prevail. "He cannot deny himself."
(2 Tim. ii. 13.)
1 Jam. v. 11, with Ps. xxv. 10. 2 Matt. xiii. 12; xxv. 29. Comp. Ecclus. i. 26, 27.
* Ps. xxxviii 9. Isa. xxvi. 8, 9. See Homer's fine description, 'Prayers the daughters
of Jove'--perhaps the most remarkable view of prayer to be found in Heathen literature
--as Cowper in his Notes writes--' well worthy of observation, considering where it is
found.'--Il. I. 502-514.
532 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
But if as yet you cannot come thus boldly, do not reason or despond
about your state. Ask for divine teaching to understand, and divine
grace to follow, the light vouchsafed. No depth of learning, no extra-
ordinary inspiration, is needed. Simplicity, humility, diligence, will
bring the unction "from the Holy One, by which ye shall know all
things." (1 John, ii. 20.) In God's best time the heart is given, as well
as the mind. "The senses are exercised to discern between good and
evil." (Heb. v. 14.) All is light, because the creative word has been
given anew--"Let there be light; and there was light."1 Are
Christians then to be despised as fools? They are the most intelligent
people in this world. Fixed at Wisdom's gate, their religion is divine
wisdom; and "Wisdom is justified of her children."2
6. Better is the poor that walketh in his uprightness, than he that is perverse
in his ways, though he be rich.
This Proverb is repeated* for its valuable instruction. One part of
the comparison, implied before, is here expressed--though he be rich.
Before, he was described as perverse in his lips. A deeper trait of cha-
racter is here given--perverse in his ways, or his principles. This is
one of those paradoxes, that sometimes stumble the feet even of God's
children. (Ps. lxxiii. 2-16.) A man may walk in his uprightness, and
yet be poor. He may be perverse in his ways, and be rich. And yet
the poor man, with all his external disadvantages, is better; more
honourable, more happy, more useful than the rich, with all his earthly
splendour.†
To come to a solid scriptural decision on this point is of great
practical moment. For if we are dazzled with the glitter of this
world's glory, we shall reverse the golden rule (Matt. vi. 33); and
"seek" first the world as our grand object: and "the kingdom of God,"
the interests of the soul, the stake of eternity, will occupy only the
second place; that is--virtually they will be thrust out.
1 Gen. i. 3. 2 Cor. iv. 6. 2 Luke, vii. 35. Prov. viii. 34. Comp. Wisd. vi. 11-16.
* Chap. xix. 1. The LXX. translation of this verse, xxviii. 6, is--'A poor man is better
than a rich lie'-- the abstract for the concrete. Comp. chap. xix. 22. Ps. lxii. 9.
†There is a fine passage from Cicero, which it is difficult to translate without losing
much of its spirit--'A contented mind is as good as an estate. Frugality is itself a revenue.
To be satisfied with one's lot is to be really and infallibly rich. If landed possessions are
most highly valued by shrewd judges of human affairs, as a property, which is least liable
to injury; how inestimably precious must true virtue which cannot be snatched from us
by force or by fraud; which cannot be damaged by shipwreck or by fire; which no tem-
pests or political disturbances can change! They alone, who are endowed with this
treasure, can be said to be truly rich. They alone possess what is fruitful and durable.
What is allotted to them they deem sufficient. They covet nothing. They really want
nothing. They require nothing. The wicked and the avaricious, on the contrary, so far
from being rich, are in reality miserably poor; inasmuch as they have no certain treasure,
and are always impatient for some addition to their stores, never satisfied with their pre-
sent possessions.'--Paradox, vi. 3.
CHAP. XXVIII 7. 533
This is a just balance, however counter it may be to common
opinion. Dishonesty is the besetting temptation of the poor. (Chap.
xxx. 9.) Yet in despite of this temptation, he walks in his uprightness.
Is there not a glory around his poverty, infinitely beyond the vain
show of this world? The rich man is perverse in his ways; "a double-
minded man," endeavouring to walk in two ways;* outwardly follow-
ing godliness, inwardly deceit; pretending to go one way, walking in
another. Who can trust him?
So far then as concerns character, the 'comparison is in favour of the
poor. As regards condition--Who would not prefer the lot of Elijah,
subsisting upon his barrel of meal, to Ahab in all the glory of his
throne?1 Who does not see a dignity in Paul standing at the bar,
that throws the worldly rank of his judges into utter insignificance?2
But the truth is of general application. Outward superiority only
affects our state before God, as increasing proportionably our respon-
sibilities. (Luke, xii. 48.) How many will wish, that they had lived
and died in obscure poverty, with "a conscience void of offence toward
God and toward man" (Acts, xxiv. 16); rather than have been entrusted
with riches; only in the perverseness of their ways to embolden them to
sin with a high hand against God and their own souls!
7. Whoso keepeth the law is a wise son: but he that is a companion of
riotous men shameth his father.
Keeping the law is national wisdom and honour. (Deut. iv. 6.)
Invaluable is that training, which leads young persons, under the
Lord's blessing, to this happy personal choice. (Isa. lvi. 6, 7.) Such
are manifestly taught of God, and guided by his Spirit into true wisdom.
For suppose a son of polished manners and intellectual endowments,
yet without right principle; or one of moderate ability, in an humble
walk of life, yet deeply imbued with practical godliness; could we
hesitate, which was the wise son, bringing honour to his father's name?
(Chap. xxiii. 24.) Yet how often is shame instead of honour, the
father's bitter exercise! For how is his name blotted, when the de-
praved son, bent upon his own gratification, chooses the companionship
of the ungodly, and shortly becomes one with them!3 Young man!
in thy noisy mirth hast thou found solid enduring peace?4 Let the
man of God direct you in the "cleansing thy way, by taking heed
thereto according to the word."5 Let his choice be thine--"I am a
companion," not of riotous men, but "of all them that fear thee, and of
l IKings, xvii. 13-15, with xxi. 1-4, 19. 2 Acts, xxiv. 24-26; xxvi. 27-29. 2 Tim. iv.16, 17.
3 Chap. xix. 26; xxiii. 19-22; xxix. 3, 15. Luke, xv 13.
4 Chap. xiv. 13. Eccles. ii. 2; vii. 6. 5 Ps. cxix. 9, 11.
* Heb. perverse in two ways, Jam. i. 8.
534 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
them that keep thy precepts."1 Meet the enticements of thy former
companions with a decided protest--"Depart from me, ye evil-doers;
I will keep the commandments of my God."2 Here is honour to thy
father, happiness to thyself, usefulness to the Church, meetness for
heaven.
Parents! Do we shrink from this overwhelming shame? Let us
more diligently, more prayerfully cultivate that wise and holy training
of our children, which is God s appointed ordinance; and which, how-
ever long or severely he may try our faith, he will not fail to honour
in his fittest time. (Chap. xxii. 6.)
8. He that by usury and unjust gain increaseth his substance, he shall
gather it for him that will pity the poor.
What a deadly curse is it to be under the spell of covetousness!
Everything that is "honest, just, pure, lovely, and of good report," is
sacrificed to this idolatrous principle. No laws can bind it. God had
fenced in the rights of his poor people with solemn and plain obliga-
tions.3 And he will not suffer their rights to be lightly regarded.
"I know"--saith the man of God--"that the Lord will maintain the
cause of the afflicted, and the right of the poor." (Ps. cxl.12.) As a
God of equity, often does he make selfishness to punish itself, and
even to turn to the advantage of the oppressed.4 Ill-gotten gains are
a dangerous and uncertain possession.5 A man labours for himself,
and his harvest falls into better hands; 'not intending anything of
himself; but it is so done through God's secret Providence.'* In this, as
in every view, godliness "has the promise of the life that now is."
(1 Tim. iv. 8.) It brings "the great gain of contentment" (Ib. vi. 6),
and restrains those inordinate desires for wealth, which ruin all right
principles, and "drown men in destruction and perdition." (Ib. verse
9.) "A man's life consiseth not in the abundance of the things which
he possesseth." (Luke, xii. 15.) Why should we seek to increase our
substance by unjust gain, when we have our Father's promise--"All
things shall be added to you" (Matt. vi. 33)--yea, when his divine
power hath given unto us all things pertaining unto life and godliness?
(2 Pet. i. 3.)
9. He that turneth away his ear from hearing the law, even his prayer shall
be abomination.
This does not mark the frailty, infirmity, or temptation, that too
1Ps. cxix. 63. 2 Ib. verse 115.
3 Exod. xxii. 24. Lev. xxv. 36. Deut. xxiii. 19, 20. Ezek. xviii. 13.
4 Chap. xiii. 22. Job, xxvii. 13, 16, 17. 5 Chap. x. 2; xxi. 6.
*Diodati. Eccles. 11.
CHAPT. XXVIII. 9. 535
often interrupts the hearing of the law, and damps the attentive interest;
or even the occasional rebellion against the divine commands. The case
described is that habitual and obstinate rejection of God, that despises
his ordinances, and refuses the instruction of his Ministry. Awful
indeed is it, that there should be such a rebel. Yet thus do "the
ungodly, while they take God's covenant into their mouth, hate in-
struction, and cast his words behind them." (Ps. 1. 16, 17.) Nay, even
in his church will "they come before him as the people come, and sit
before him as his people; they hear his words, but they will not do them.
(Ezek. xxxiii. 31, 32.) If the subject thus turneth away his ear from the
law of his Sovereign, every prayer that he may present in time of dis-
tress his Lord will regard as an abomination. (Chap. i. 28, 29. Zech. vii.
11-13.) A fearful thought, that, however speciously and smoothly
fashioned, in order to impose upon man, it is no less in the sight of
God than a blessing judiciously cursed. Justly is the door of audience
closed against the presumptuous hypocrite. 'Great reason that God
shall refuse to hear him, who refuseth to hear God.'* And what if his
language now--"Depart from me"--should be taken out of his mouth
at the great day, as the seal of his everlasting doom! (Job, xxi. 14;
xxii. 17, with Matt. xxv. 41.)
A strange contradiction, that this open rejection of God should be
connected with any form or semblance of religion! And yet often
would the self-deceiver compensate for the disobedience of a plain
command 'by the performance of some external duty. Israel presented
"the multitude of sacrifices" as a price for the neglect of practical
obligations. "Vain oblations! Incense that was abomination!" (Isa. 11
i. 11-15. Ps. lxvi. 18.) Often now praying at home is an excuse for
turning away from hearing the law in God's own house. Such prayer is
solemnly declared to be abomination. Often also is the law of charity
and even of bounden duty evaded, to maintain a profession of godliness,
hateful in his eyes, who will bring to open shame every hypocritical
service. (Matt. xv. 8.) Does God trifle with man? Assuredly he will
not suffer man thus to trifle with him.
Be it ever remembered, that godliness is God's whole service; that
"the wisdom from above is without partiality, and without hypocrisy"
(Jam. iii. 17); that to extol one ordinance at the expense of another;
to decry preaching for the sake of commending prayer; is proof alike
of a false judgment and an unsound heart. To reject any divine
ordinance is proud will-worship; a plain proof, that the privilege has
never been enjoyed. For no beggar would slight the door, where he
had been used to receive his blessing. O my God! let me lie in thine
own bosom, or at thy feet, that my will may be lost in time, and my
happiness found in a whole-hearted devotedness to thyself!
* Bishop REYNOLDS on Hos. xiv. 8.
536 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
10. Whoso causeth the righteous to go astray in an evil way, he shall
fall himself into his own pit but the upright shall have good things in
possession.
To delight in the enticing of sinners in an evil way, is the very
image and aspect of the tempter. But the chief delight, the main
effort, is to cause the righteous to go astray. No rejoicing is so great, as
when "a standard-bearer fainteth." Because, while it shews the
seducer's enmity to the truth, it countenances him in his sin. Yet how
transient is his joy! Success is his ruin. By the retributive justice of
God, he often falls into his own pit. (Chap. xxvi. 27.) The snare of
Balaam for the people of God ended in his own ruin.1
The malice of Satan and his emissaries sets out the faithfulness of
our Almighty Keeper. "Thou preparest a table for us in the presence
of our enemies," who gnash their teeth at the sight. (Ps. xxiii. 5.)
Even if they succeed for a while in leading the righteous astray, recover-
ing mercy is in store for them;2 and brought out of the snare in deep
humiliation, the upright, instead of the evil meditated against them,
have good things in possession. What good things they are, can never be
fully written or thought of. For "eye hath not seen, nor hath ear
heard, neither hath it entered into the heart of man." (1 Cor. ii. 9.)
But whatever they be--Christian--take them to thee, claim thy right,
and be not robbed of thy portion. And if we have good things in
possession, much more we have in reversion "an inheritance undefiled,
unfading," of which none can spoil us. (1 Pet, i. 4.) "Who shall sepa-
rate us from our Father's love? Neither life, nor death; neither earth
nor hell!' (Rom. viii. 39.)
11. The rich man is wise in his own conceit; but the poor that hath
understanding searcheth him out.
To be truly wise, and wise in our own conceit, are two things often
confounded, but essentially opposite. But though riches do not always
bring wisdom (Job, xxxii. 9), the rich man often pretends to it, and
ascribes his success to his own sagacity, though he may be manifestly
simple and foolish. The Apostle therefore, with a reference to this
besetting temptation, directs a "charge to them that are rich in this
world that they be not high-minded." (1 Tim. vi. 17.) The prophet
brings the wealthy prince of Tyrus on the stage, and shews him to us
in all the folly of his conceit. (Ezek. xxviii. 2.) Obviously indeed the
rich man has many advantages above the poor, in leisure and oppor-
tunities of instruction. Yet on the other hand, worldly elevation
operates unfavourably. He is shut out from many opportunities of
1 Rev. ii. 14. Num. xxxi. 15, 16, with 8; 2 Ib. verse 3. Luke, xxii. 31, 32.
CHAP. XXVIII. 12. 537
Christian instruction. The atmosphere of flattery clouds that faculty
of self-knowledge, which is the basis of true wisdom. And how natural
is it to think himself as wise as his flatterers represent him; as much
above his neighbours in understanding as in station! Hence he
becomes dogmatical in over-weening conceit,. fond every way of dis-
playing his fancied superiority. Yet, as in the case of Naaman's ser-
vants (2 Kings, v. 13), the intelligent good understanding of a poor man
may search him out, and see through this false gloss. Specially, when
endued with a measure of spiritual understanding, the poor man may
expose his superior to just mortification. (John, ix. 30-34.) Indeed
Hle universe possesses not a more dignified character than the poor wise
man. Did not the incarnate Lord honour this station supremely, by
taking it on himself? (Philip. ii. 7.) To walk in his footsteps, in his
spirit, is wisdom, honour, and happiness, infinitely beyond what this
poor world of vanity can afford.
12. When righteous men do rejoice, there is great glorly: but when the
wicked rise, a man is hidden.
"We are made"-- said a righteous man--"as the filth of the earth,
and are the offscouring of all things unto this day."1 Yet these are the
men, who "bear up the pillars of the state,"2 When therefore they
rejoice--when they are raised to honour,--there is great glory.3 The
whole kingdom feels more or less the influence of this national blessing.
Godliness is countenanced. Men are protected in the free exercise of
their religion. "When Mordecai went out from the presence of the
king in the king's royal apparel, the city of Shushan rejoiced, and were
glad. The Jews had light, and gladness, and joy, and honour; in
every province a feast, and a good day," (Esth. viii. 17.) The same
result is seen in the experience of the Church. When "the Churches"
had rest" from the fiery trial, "they were edified, and walked in the
fear of the Lord, and in the comfort of the Holy Ghost. (Acts, ix. 31,)
And what glory so great, as the sunshine of the enjoyment of their
God!
But when the wicked rise to honour, how is this glory eclipsed! The
people of God are removed into corners, silenced, hidden. (Verse 28.)
The light of upwards of an hundred prophets, and even of Elijah him-
self, was hidden for a while under the tyranny of Ahab.4 And in every
age the power of the wicked, especially under a despotic rule, hides much
valuable influence. Yet it is hidden only to the eye of sense. For of those,
who "wander about in sheep-skins and goat-skins, in deserts, and caves
of the earth," what greater glory could we give, than the divine inscrip-
tion stamped upon them--"Of whom the world was not worthy?"5
1l Cor. iv. 13. 2 Ps 1xxv. 3. 3 Chap. xi. 10; xxix. 2.
4 1 Kings, xvii. 2, 3; xviii, 4; xix. 1-4. 5 Heb, xi, 37, 38, Rev. xii, 6.
538 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
13. He that covereth his sins shall not prosper: but whoso confesseth and
forsaketh them shall have mercy.
God and man each cover sin; God in free unbounded grace (Ps.
lxxxv. 2); man, in shame and hypocrisy. The sinners here contrasted
are chargeable with the same guilt. But how opposite are the remedies
adopted, and their several results! The contrast is not between great
sins and small, but between sins covered, and sins confessed and forsaken.
Whoso covereth the smallest sin, shall not prosper. Whoso confesseth and
forsaketh the greatest, shall find mercy. "Love covereth" our neigh-
bour's sins (Chap. x. 12); pride our own. The proud sinner naturally
wishes to be; thought better than he is. His sin must have some cover.*
He must at least give it a good name. Isa. v. 20.) He would cover it,
if possible, from himself; putting it out of mind; banishing all serious
thoughts; stifling conviction; and then trying to persuade himself
that he is happy. To escape evil consequences, a lie is resorted to.†
Or if the facts are too plain to be denied; 'the worst part is unfounded.
We were not in it so much as our neighbour.' Ignorauce, good, or at
least not bad, intentions, custom, necessity, strong temptation, sudden
surprisal, the first offence; constitutional infirmity; even the decrees
of God‡--one or more are pleaded in palliation. Or to save our
honour--rather our pride--the blame must be shifted on another.§
Even God himself is made accountable--a secret but daring charge!
carrying with it its own self-contradiction. Indignantly he challenges
the proof, and lays the sin at the right door. (Isa. 1. 1. Jam. i. 13.)
More commonly, but most wrongfully, it is laid upon Satan. The most
of his power is, that he is a tempter. And no claim could he have
ever established, had not we willingly sold ourselves to his service.
Our father Adam--again--must bear the burden. 'Must our "teeth
be set on edge" for the "sour grapes which he ate?" (Ezek. xviii. 2.)
Must the unborn children be held responsible for the inheritance, which
their father lost? 'But it was the nature that sinned, of which we are
a component part. We "were in his loins" (Heb. vii. 10) at the time,
and therefore we share his responsibility. Our own personal sin has
ratified the deed by our own free and repeated consent. All these
* Cicero stamps confession of wickedness as disgraceful and dangerous (turpis et peri-
culosa. Cont. Verrem, Lib. iii.) Thus does Heathen morality develope the pride of depraved
nature.
† Cain, Gen. iv. 9; Rachel, xxxi. 34, 35; Joseph's brethren, xxxvii. 31-35; David,
2 Sam. xi. 15, 25; the adulteress, chap. xxx. 20. Comp. Jer. ii. 23; Peter, Matt. xxvi. 70;
Ananias and Sapphira, Acts, v. 1-8. Is not this a sad propensity in children? The first
offence may be trifling. But the fear of punishment induces a lie. Another lie is necessary
to cover the first. Every step adds to sin.
‡ Jer. vii. 10. (Comp. Calv. Instit. b. iii. c. xxiii. § 12-14.
§ Adam and Eve, Gen. iii. 12, 13. Comp. Job, xxxi. 33; Aaron, Exod. xxxii. 21-24;
Saul, 1 Sam. xv. 20, 21; Pilate, Matt. xxvii. 24 26.
CHAP. XXVIII. 13. 539
attempted transfers are vain coverings. Conscience bears witness to
the truth, that no man takes harm but from himself.
But even this admitted--man with ceaseless ingenuity still
attempts to frame a cover, for his sin. Some supposed good deeds are
put forth as a compensation. (Mic. vi. 6, 7.) And by balancing good
and evil respectively against each other, he hopes to establish some
preponderance in his favour. Yet all these fig-leaf coverings (Gen.
iii. 7) for his nakedness only shew his determination to hold his sin,
and his pride of heart, which would rather hide it from God himself
than submit to receive free mercy as a self-condemned sinner.
These attempts however to cover sin shall not prosper. The voice of
an offended God summoned Adam from his hiding-place to receive his
sentence. (Gen. Ill. 9.) "The voice of Abel's blood cried from the
ground," and the murderer became "a fugitive and a vagabond in the
earth." (Ib. iv. 10-12.) Conscience lashed Joseph's brethren with the
sin of bye-gone days. (Ib. xlii. 21.) Sauls covering his sin cost him his
kingdom.1 "The leprosy of Naaman clave to Gehazi and his seed for
ever."2 The proud accusers of their fellow-sinner were "convicted by
their own conscience."3 "There is no darkness, nor shadow of death,
where the workers of iniquity may hide themselves."4 Their darkest
deed is wrought in the open face of an all-seeing God, and "set in the
light of his countenance,"5 to "be proclaimed upon the house-tops"
before the assembled world.6
This unsuccessful attempt to cover sin, while it adds to the guilt,7
is fraught with misery.8 The love of sin struggles with the power of
conscience. The door of access to God is barred.9 Christian confi-
ence is clouded;10 and, unless Sovereign mercy interpose, it must end
in the sting of "the never-dying worm." The covering of the disease
precludes the possibility of the cure. Only the penitent confessor can
be the pardoned sinner.
Long indeed is the struggle, ere every false cover is cut off; ere the
heartless general confession--'We are all sinners'--is exchanged for
the deep-felt personal acknowledgment, "giving glory to God. Thus
and thus" have I done. Behold I am vile. What shall I answer thee?
I will lay mine hand upon my mouth."11 But glorious is the divine
victory over pride and sullenness, when this first act of repentance,
this first step of return (Luke, xv. 17, 18), is heartily accomplished.
God needs not confession for his own information. But he demands it
for our good. It brings no claim on his mercy. But it is a meetness
for the reception of it. Christ has fully satisfied the claims of justice.
1 1 Sam. xv. 21, 23. 2 2 Kings, v. 27. 3 John, viii. 9.
4 Job, xxxiv.-22. 5 Ib. xxxiv. 21. Ps. xc. 8.
6 Luke, xii. 2, 3. Eccles. xii. 14. 1 Cor. iv. 5. 7 Isa. xxx 1.
8 Ib. xxviii. 20. 9 Ps. lxvi. 18. 10 Ib. xxxii. 3, 4.
11 Jos. vii. 19, 20. Job, xl. 4.
540 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
But the claims must be acknowledged in the humble acceptance of the
benefit. The mercy is ready; but the sinner must sue it out--"Only
acknowledge thine iniquity." (Jer. iii. 13.) Our yearning Father is
"waiting" for this moment, "that he may be gracious."1 There is no
further keeping of anger. He shall have mercy, instant reconciliation.*
Words may be few while the heart is full. With David it was but a
single sentence; but the closet workings of his heart witnessed to the
enlargement and ingenuousness of his sorrow.† Thus man confesses
the debt; God crosses it out from his book; and sweet is the penitent's
song--"Blessed is he, whose sin, is covered." (Ps, xxxii. l.) The dying
thief confesses, and the condemned malefactor is crowned with life
eternal. (Luke, xxiii. 43.)
But we must not overlook the distinctive feature of this confession.
It is not that of Pharaoh, extorted on the rack;2 or of Saul and Judas,3
the stinging of remorse; or of the Pharisees and Sadducees,4 mere
formal profession; or of the harlot,5 a cover for sin. Penitent faith
confesses in the act of laying the hand upon the great sacrifice,6 and
hence draws strength of purpose to forsake all that has been here con-
fessed. For while the hypocrite confesses without forsaking,‡ the hearty
forsaking is here the best proof of tile sincere confessing.
And this first act of the penitent is matured into the daily habit
of the saint. The further we advance, the deeper will be the tone
of confession.7 The moment sin is seen to be sin, let it be laid on
the Surety's Head. Every moment of unconfessed sin adds to its
burden and guilt. The thought of a nature estranged front God; a
heart full of corruption; sins of youth and age; before and after con-
version; against light and conviction, knowledge and love; the sins of
our very confessions, their defilement, coldness, and too often self-
righteous tendency; all supply abundant material for abasing acknow-
ledgment. Plead the greatness, not the smallness of our sin.8 Never
deem any sin so trifling, as not to need the immediate application of the
blood of atonement. Genuine conviction gives no rest, until by the
believing apprehension of this remedy the peace of God is firmly fixed
in the conscience. As Bunyan so accurately pictured--not at the
wicket-gate, but at the sign of the cross, did the Christian find the grave
of sin. Here it is lost, forgotten, never found. (Jer. l. 20.)
1 Luke, xv. 20. Hos. v. 15. 2 Exod. ix. 27, 34.
3 1 Sam. xxiv. 16, 17; xxvi. 3, 4. Matt. xxvii. 4, 5. 4 Matt. iii. 7.
5Chap. vii. 14. 6 Lev. xvi. 21. 7 Job, xl. 4; xlii. 6, Ezek. xvi. 63.
8 Ps. xxv. 11. with Luke, xviii. 11. Comp. Isa. xliii. 24-26,
* Ps. xxxii. 5. Comp. similar examples, 2 Chron. xxxiii. 12, 13; Jer. xxxi. 18-20;
Jonah, iii. 5-10; Luke, xv. 21-24; xxiii. 40-43. See also the promises, Lev. xxvi. 40-42;
2 Chron. vii. 14; Job, xxxiii. 27, 28; Isa. i. 16-18; lv. 7; Ezek. xviii. 21, 22; 1 John, i. 9.
† 2 Sam. xii. 13, with Ps. li. See also his tender dread of covering sin. Ps. cxxxix.
1, 23, 24.
‡ Pharaoh and Saul, ut supra.
CHAP. XXVIII. 14. 541
This evangelical humiliation lays the only solid ground for prac-
tical godliness. It is a sorrow full of joy, and not less full of holiness.
No Achan will be reserved;1 no Agag spared;2 no right hand or right
eye favoured.3 It will not be "the unclean spirit going out, and
returning to his house with sevenfold influence;"4 or the man, who
leaves his home, but forsakes it not, all his heart and joy being still
there. Here the forsaking will be without the thought of returning;
yea, with the fixed determination never to return. (Job, xxxiv. 32.) It
will not be the exchange of one path in the broad road for another
more attractive; but the relinquishment of the whole road with all its
bye-paths. The inner principles as well as the outer walk; "the
unrighteous thoughts," no less than "the wicked ways" will be for-
saken heartily and for ever. (Isa. lv. 7.)
14. Happy is the man that feareth alway: but he that hardeneth his heart
shall fall into mischief:
This Proverb fitly follows the last. Confession precedes, godly fear
follows, the reception of mercy, as the end for which it is given, and
the proof of its reception. (Ps. cxxx. 4.) It implies no uncertainty of
our safety; but, by guarding us against fresh wounds of conscience, it
more firmly maintains our confidence. If we believe and rejoice in the
Lord as "our Sun," we would fear him alway as "a consuming fire."5
This fear is our security.6
We may here profitably glance at some Christian paradoxes. How
is happiness to be found in constant fear? Is fear to be the atmosphere
or the spirit of a child of God? Where "love makes perfect," there
can be no unquiet rollings or doubtings of heart. (1 John, iv. 18.) But
godly fear preserves the sunshine, and seals our special acceptance.
(Isa. lxvi. 2.) We walk with our Father in holy watchfulness and
peace. Again--We readily conceive the happiness of trust. (Chap. xvi.
20.) How do we link with it the happiness of fear? So far from fear
being contrary to faith, it is a component part of it, or at least its
inseparable adjunct (Heb. xi. 7); the discipline, that preserves it from
presumption. Faith without fear is self-confidence and self-delusion.
Nay--the assurance of our "standing by faith" is balanced by an instant
and most needful exercise of fear. (Rom. xi. 20.) Who grasped a more
triumphant confidence than Paul? Yet without presuming upon a
long and consistent profession, self-distrust, watchfulness and diligence
established his confidence.7 'If there be truth in the Christian's assur-
ance, not sin itself can disappoint him, it is true. But it is no less
1 Josh. vii. 1. 2 1 Sam. xv. 20. 3 Mark, vi. 17-20; ix.43-48.
4 Matt. xii. 43, 44. 5 Ps. lxxxiv. 11, with Heb. xii. 28, 29.
6 Hab. iii. 16. 7 Ib. viii. 33-39, with 1 Cor. ix. 27.
542 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
true, that if he does not fear sin, there is no truth in his assurance.'*
Instead of being afraid to mix faith and fear, dread their separation.
Again--the righteous is bold as a lion (Verse 1); yet he feareth alway.
But Christian courage, though opposed to slavish, forms the very
essence of godly fear. The three confessors were bold before the
Babylonish autocrat; yet they so feared to offend against God, that
"the burning fiery furnace" was the better alternative in their eyes.1
Thus is holy fear every way identified with happiness. It is a fear
of reverence, not of bondage; of caution, not of distrust; of diligence,
not of despondency. In proportion as we are raised above tormenting
fear, we cherish a deep reverence of the majesty and holiness of God, a
child-like fear of displeasure, a jealousy over our motives, desires, and
the risings of our evil propensities, and an abhorrence and shrinking,
not only from sin, but from the temptations and occasions of sin. Well
does the Christian: know the value of this conservative principle; as far
removed from legality as from presumption. One, whose mournful
experience gives additional weight to his words, warns us, as "sojourn-
ers" in a world of evil, and with hearts so often betraying our steps, to
"pass our time in fear."† If we be surely, we are "scarcely, saved."
(1 Pet. iv. 18.) Though there be no uncertainty in the end, there is
appalling difficulty in the way--"Let him that thinketh he standeth,
take heed lest he fall." (1 Cor. x. 12.) The man who stands in his own
security, requires the caution more than any. Guard against an
unheeding confidence. Keep the sentinel at the door. Watch for the
enemy at every turn. Suspect a snake in every path, a snare in every
creature. "Feed with fear."2 "Rejoice with trembling." Yea--
"work out your own salvation with fear and trembling."3 None are
so established in grace, but in unwatchfulness they may fall into the
greatest sin. Live then in constant fear of yourself. This godly fear
proves self-knowledge, preserves from self-confidence, produces self-
distrust. In wariness against a fall we are most likely to stand. If
weakness be our frailty, the consciousness of it is our strength. "When
I am weak, then am I strong." (2 Cor. xii. 10.) The importance of
this principle will be seen by the contrast with its opposite. Fear
keeps the heart tender, and the soul safe. Security and presumption
harden the sinner, and he falls into mischief. Pharaoh's hardness of
heart, and its consequences, were but the bravery and ruin of the devil.4
When David's self-indulgence and carelessness had swept away his
tenderness, fearfully did he fall into mischief (2 Sam. xi. 2.) The latter
1 Dan. iii. 16-18. Gen. xxxix. 9. Neh. v. 15. 2 Contrast Judg. xii.
3 Ps. ii. 11. Philip. ii. 12. 4 Exod. xiv. 5-8, 23.
* LEIGHTON on. 1 Pet. i. 17. The Romanists--and how many Roman Protestants with
them!--have no other idea of fear, than as excluding the certainty of acceptance; whereas
its true influence is not fluctuation in doubt, but carefulness in preservation.
† 1 Pet. i. 17; and Leighton in loco.
CHAP. XXVIII. 15, 16. 543
history of his wise son reads the same awful warning. (1 Kings, xi.
1-11.) Peter's fearlessness, though the fruit of ignorance rather than
wilfulness, brought him to the very brink of destruction. (Matt. xxvi.
33-35, 41, 74.)
A deep sensibility of sin is a special mercy. To think what it is
what it may be; that, indulged only in thought, if the Lord restrain
not, it will end in apostasy--Oh! dare we trifle with it? The man,
who presumes upon it, as too harmless for eternal punishment, and
promises himself peace in the way of his own heart--a voice from
heaven could scarcely describe the tremendous horrors of his case.
Every word of God is a thunderbolt levelled at him.1 Scarcely less
pitiable is the man, who makes light of his eternal state: living without
prayer; so much better in his own eyes than his more ungodly neigh-
bours; and fully satisfied with a mere external preparation for eternity.
Forget not--Christian Professor--we may be strong in confidence,
only because we are sleeping in delusion, or hardened in insensibility.
From all the mischief of self-ignorance and' hardness of heart, Good
Lord, deliver us ! *
15. As a roaring lion, and a raging bear, so is a wicked ruler over the
poor people. 16. The prince that wanteth understanding is also a great
oppressor; but he that hateth covetousness shall prolong his days.
A godly ruler is to a land the clear sunshine of an unclouded morn-
ing; the fruitfulness of the springing grass after the rain.2 But what a
curse is a wicked ruler, where arbitrary despotism takes the place of
right! We might as well live among the savage wild beasts of the
forest. The lion roaring for the prey, and the bear raging† in hunger--
the terror of their weaker race--are apt emblems of this tyrant over a
poor people.3 No sentiment of pity softens his bosom. No principle
of justice regulates his conduct. Complaint only provokes further ex-
actions. Resistance kindles his unfeeling heart into savage fury. Poor
and miserable indeed are the people, whom divine anger has placed
under his misrule.'‡
Thus indeed injustice is suffered to reign upon a wide scale. A
whole nation is afflicted by the ruthless tyranny of one man. Perhaps
the scourge extends from the wicked ruler downwards, through all its
gradations, to the petty minions of his caprice, delegated with the sword
1 Chap. xxix. 1. Deut. xxix. 19, 20. 2 2 Sam. xxiii. 3, 4. Comp. Ecclus. x. 4.
3 Chap. xxix. 2. Zeph. ill. 3. 2 Tim. iv. 17.
* Litany. Comp. Ecclus. v. 5-7.
† The name seems to be given from his growling noise when hungry.
'Nec vespertinus circumgemit urnus ovile.'
HOR. Epist. xvi. 51.
‡ PAXTON'S Nat. Hist. of Script. p. 333. Comp. 1 Kings, xxi. 1-7. Neh. v.15.
544 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
of power. The wise man, in pondering all the material that makes up
a world of vanity, could not but take this desolating curse into his
account. And so bitter was the view to his own mind, that he would
have preferred even death itself or non-existence to the alternative of;
all virtuous sensibilities crucified by the contemplation of this remediless
misery. (Eccles. iv. 1-3.)
The princely oppressor may justly be charged with wanting under-
standing. (Isa. iii. 12.) Even if he had established a previous reputa-
tion for wisdom, yet abused power, with all its alluring corruptions, is
enough to infatuate his judgment. The struggle of the love of rule
with the better principle often shakes the sound balance, till step by
step his conduct loses all traits of wisdom, and exhibits a man--if not
wholly deprived of understanding--yet--what is near akin to it--
swayed by the tumult of passion. As one proof of his want of under-
standing, often does his foolish choice of wicked ministers alienate the
affections of his people from his person, probably to the shortening of
his rule. (1 Kings, xii. 12-19.) And thus his perverted power fearfully
recoils upon himself.
Widely opposite is the character of a considerate ruler, hating covet-
ousness, and living only for the good of his people. (Exod. xviii. 21.)
He may usually be expected to prolong his days. 'He may hope to
reign long and happily, having his throne erected in the hearts of his
subjects.'*
What need then have rulers to seek for understanding, that they may
rule as the fathers of their people. (1 Kings, iii. 6-9.) And what
cause have to bless God for our mild and happy government; pre-
served as we are from wicked despots, who would not stop at any
tyranny, that might subserve their selfish purposes!†
17. A man that doeth violence to the blood of any person shall flee to the
pit: let no man stay him.
The first law against the murderer must not be broken down. Like
the law of the Sabbath, it was in force from the beginning. 'It was
enacted and published before him, out of whose loins the whole world
after the flood was to be repeopled; to shew that it was not meant for
a national or temporary ordinance, but for all universal and perpetual
1 1 Sam. xxii.17-19. Dan. iii. 6, 19
* Scott.
† Of Tyndal's celebrated work--'The obedience of a Christian Man.'--Henry VIII.
declared--'This book is for me, and for all kings to read.' He probably only adverted to
those parts, that he might turn to accredit his own selfish rapacity. Well would it have
been, had he pondered such important instruction as--'The king is but a servant to
execute the law of God, and not to rule after his own imagination.' He is brought to the
throne--'to minister unto, and to serve his brethren, and must not think, that his subjects
were made to minister unto his lusts.'
CHAP. XXVIII. 18. 545
law.'* The reason given for the command confirms its universal obli-
gation. To destroy "the image of God" must be high treason against
God himself. (Gen. ix. 6.) Again did God declare his mind in the
Levitical law. No satisfaction must be taken for the murderer.
Another reason is given--"Blood defileth the land," and only the
murderer's blood can cleanse it. (Num. xxxv. 33.) Nay--even the
Heathen judged this awful transgressor to be under the divine
vengeance. (Acts, xxviii. 4.) The death therefore of the murderer is an
imperative obligation. It is miscalled philanthropy, that protest
against all capital punishments. Shall man pretend to be mere merciful
than God? Pity is misplaced here. The murderer therefore of his
brother is his own murderer. He shall flee to the pit, hurried thither by
his own horror of conscience,1 by the sword of justice,2 or by the
certain judgment of God.3 Let no man stay him. Let God's law take
its course.
Yet we must not cast off his soul. Visiting the condemned cell is a
special exercise of mercy. While we bow to the stern justice of the
great law-giver, joyous indeed it is to bring to the sinner under the
sentence of the law, the free forgiveness of the Gospel; not as annulling
his sin, but shewing the over-abounding of grace beyond the abounding
of sin. (Rom. v. 20.)
18. Whoso walketh uprightly shall be saved: but he that is perverse in his
ways shall fall at once.
This contrast has been lately drawn. (Verse 6.) Indeed the Pro-
verb itself in substance has been given. The "security of the upright,"
before marked, is here included in his salvation. The hypocrite's
"known"4 ruin is here set out as complete--at once.5
This upright walk will shew itself in extreme carefulness; in all
doubtful points keeping on the safer side; not venturing upon a preci-
pice, when we can walk upon even ground. This is indeed Christian
perfection--"walking before God." (Gen. xvii. 1.) There is no need
for Jacob's vision6 to realize his presence. "Faith seeth that which
is invisible."7 This life may seem to miss much temporal advantage.
But what--if the upright be not rich, honourable, esteemed? 'If God
shall not cease to be; if he will not let go the reins; if his word cannot
deceive--he that walketh uprightly doth proceed upon sure grounds.'†
He is saved. This one blessing includes all. It is the substance of
time, and of eternity. All besides is shadow and vanity. To dwell in
1 Deut. xix. 13. 2 1 Kings. ii.32. Exod. xxi. 14. 2 Kings, xi. 15.
3 1 Kings, xxi. 19; xxii. 38. 4 2 Kings, ix. 33-37
5 Chap. xxiv. 16; xxix. 1. 6 Gen. xxviii. 17. 7 Heb .xi. 1, 27.
* Bp. SANDERSON'S Sermon on chap. xxiv. 10-12
†DARROW'S Sermons. Ps cxl. 13.
546 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
the presence of God; in the sunshine of his countenance;1 in the light
and gladness of his joy,2 and at length in his unclouded glory3--such
is the salvation of the upright. (Ps. cxxv. 4.) Christian! would you
part with this portion for kingdoms? What earthly comforts can be a
substitute for it? This supplies the place of all.
Any want of uprightness will bring the child of God under the rod.
But he that is perverse in his way will fall at once. None of his many
shifts shall prosper. (Ib. verse 5.) His double ways, and his vain at-
tempt to "serve two masters," only bring him to shame. (Matt. vi. 24.)
What need have I in the highest walk of conscious integrity still to cry
--"Redeem me, and be merciful unto me!" (Ps. xxvi. 11.)
19. He that tilleth his land shall have plenty of bread: but he that followeth
after vain persons shall have poverty enough.
This Proverb also has been given before. (Chap. xii. 11.) Such me-
mories and hearts as ours need "line upon line" in the enforcement of
practical obligation. (Isa. xxviii. 13.) If labour be a penal ordinance,4
such a blessing is included in it, that its removal would diminish our
most substantial source of happiness. Man was not born to be a stone
without energy; or a machine, to be moved by mere passive force.
Our true happiness is active dependence. Habits of diligence are the
means of working it out fruitfully. The earth "bringeth forth of itself
only thorns and thistles." But he that tilleth his land shall have plenty
of bread.5 The blessing comes, not by miracle, to encourage sloth; but
in use of means, to stimulate exertion.
The contrast to this plenty of bread is poverty enough. The prodigal
is a warning beacon. "In his father's house," doubtless engaged in
active exercise, "there was bread enough, and to spare." When in his
waywardness he left his plenty, and followed after vain persons, soon he
found poverty enough--"I perish with hunger." (Luke, xv. 17.) Idle-
ness is a sin against God, against our neighbour, against ourselves.
"Not slothful in business; fervent in spirit; serving the Lord"--is
the rule of prosperity in this world's concerns; much more in the
momentous coneerns of eternity.6
20. A faithful man shall abound with blessings: but he that maketh haste
to be rich shall not be innocent (unpunished, marg.)
The study of the contrast shews the definite meaning of the terms.
A faithful man is opposed, not to the rich, but--mark the careful accu-
racy--to him that hasteth to be rich. A man may be rich by the bless-
ing of God.7 He hasteth to be rich by his own covetousness. (1 Tim.
1 Ps.xi.7. 2 Ib. xcvii. 11. 3 Ib. xv. 1, 2. Rev. xiv. 5.
4 Gen. iii. 19. 5 Ib. ver. 18. with chap. xiv. 4; xxvii. 23-27.
6 Rom. xii. 11. Eccles. ix. 10. 7 Chap. x. 22. Gen. xxiv. 35. 1 Kings, iii. 13.
CHAP. XXVIII. 20. 547
vi. 10.) He may be rich, and yet faithful. He hasteth to be rich at the
expense of faithfulness.* The faithful man makes no loud profession.
But he bears to be looked at, even in the veriest trifles. (Luke, xvi. 10.)
He is true to his word. He fulfils his engagements. He has only one
principle--"unto the Lord;" under his eye; in his presence; "to his
glory."1 Try his principle by a worldly bait. He will prefer his con-
science to his interest. He would rather be poor by Providence, than
rich by sin. This is the man of faithfulness. Who shall find him?"2
But when you have found him, mark his abounding blessing; blessings
covering his head;3 blessings for both worlds.4 Is there not infinitely
more promise in the ways of God, than in the ways of sin? Be the
path ever so tried and perplexed, only let it be a straight path,5 and the
Lord's sunshine will cheer it. 'In the hand of God'--saith a wise man
--'is the prosperity of man.'6
But the man who has no faith, can only walk in a crooked path. He
leaps over every bound of principle. He hasteth to be rich. He cannot
wait for God in the path of Christian diligence. The promise does not
run fast enough for him. He becomes rich too soon; he scarcely knows
or cares by what means; by any means, rather than lose his grasp.
Yet all this haste is only to his own ruin. Instead of abounding with
blessings, he shall not be innocent. Jacob, as a faithful man, was paid
with full wages for his work. Though his master dealt hardly, God
dealt bountifully with him. He abounded with blessings; while Laban,
hasting to be rich, was impoverished. (Gen. xxxi. 7-9.) 'I will study
more'--said good Bp. Hall--'how to give account of my little, than
how to make it more.'
Hard indeed, if not impossible, is it to hold fast innocency in this
path of temptation.7 'Yet how does the Scripture combat the vice of
covetousness? Not by asserting, that gold is only earth, exhibiting
itself under a particular modification, and therefore not worth seeking;
but by telling us, that "covetousness is idolatry," that "the love of
money is the root of all evil;" that it has occasioned in some even the
"shipwreck of their faith," and is always, in whomsoever it obtains, an
abomination?'† Even if no criminal means be resorted to, yet the
1 Col. iii. 23. 1 Cor. x. 31. 2 Heb. Chap. xx. 6. Matt. xxiv. 45.
3 Chap. x. 6. 4 Ps. xxxvii. 37; cxii. Isa. xxxiii. 15, 16.
5 Chap. iv. 26, 27. Heb. xii. 13. 6 Ecclus. x. 5.
7 2 Kings, v. 25, 27. Comp. chap. xiii. 11; xx. 21; xxi. 6.
* Verse 22. Chap. xix. 2; xx. 14. Even the heathen moralists could see this--
Ou]deij e]plouthse taxewj, dikaioj w]n.
MENANDER.
. . . . . ' Nam dives qui fieri vult,
Et cito vult fieri; sed quae reverentia legum?
Quis metus, aut pudor est unquam properant, is avari,?'
Juv. Sat. 14. 176-178.
† Cowper's cursory Remarks on Carrocioli. Works. Southey's Ed. vii. 273.
548 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
immoderate desire, the perseverance in every track of Mammon, the
labouring night and day for the grand object, the delight and confi-
dence in the acquisition (Job, xxxi. 25)--all prove the idolatrous
heart (Ib. verses 24, 28), and will not go unpunished. "They that will
be rich--that haste to be rich--fall into temptation and a snare, and
into many foolish and hurtful lusts, that drown men in destruction and
perdition. But thou, 0 man of God, flee these things." (1 Tim. vi.
9-11.)
21. To have respect of persons is not good: for, for a piece of bread that
man will transgress.
This Proverb has been more than once repeated.* The act itself is
not good. It is positive transgression. The principle is worse--sordid
selfishness. Here is perhaps a man, not of slavish or of naturally
degraded mind, but--such is the debasing influence of lust!--a man
of weight and influence; and yet abusing his power for his own ends.
It is a rich man, or a relation, or he is under some obligation, and
therefore he has respect of judgment. Now what is right to the rich, is
right to the poor. Thus to trample the poor under foot, the Judge of
all couuts rebellion against his own just standard.† Principle once
overpowered seldom regains its ascendancy. Each successive trial
proves its weakness; till he, who once thought himself able to resist a
large bribe, for the veriest trifle will break with God and his con-
science. For a piece of bread that man will transgress.‡
Is not this, alas! a pulpit sin? Is the Minister never drawn away
from godly simplicity by some interested motive?--to transgress his
broadly-marked obligation for a piece of bread? In olden times this
was a besetting temptation of the sacred office.1 Let the beacon be
solemnly regarded.
In ordinary life, a man's bread hanging upon favour, is a strong
temptation to transgress upright principles. Cowardice and unbelief
shelter themselves under the cover of prudence. Christian reproof is
neglected from fear of losing custom or advantage. Our interest is
preferred to God's. And a plain scripture obligation is put away for a
piece of bread. (Lev. xix. 17.) Are Christians wholly guiltless in this
matter? Is not conduct sometimes ruled by the fear of man, rather
than by "trust in God?" (Chap. xxix. 25.) Let the temptation be
resisted at the first step, manfully, prayerfully, in the Lord's strength;
and the victory is gained.
1 Ezek. xiii. 19. Mic. iii. 5. 2 Pet. ii. 3.
* Chap. xviii. 5; xxiv. 23, and references.
†Transgression in this place is the same word as rebellion. Isa. i. 2. See also 1 Kings,
xii. 19. 2 Kings i.1; iii. 5.
‡ Amos. ii. 6. Cato used to say of M. Coelius the Tribune, that 'he might be hired for
a piece of bread to speak, or to hold his peace.'
CHAP. XXVIII. 22, 23. 549
22. He that hasteth to be rich hath an evil eye (He that hath an evil eye.
hasteth to be rich, marg.), and considereth not that poverty shall come
upon him.
Another warning word! "Take heed, and beware of covetous-
ness." (Luke, xii. 15.) "The lust of the eye" (1 John, ii. 16) is a
deadly blast upon the soul. Abraham was rich without haste, with
God's blessing. (Gen.;xiii. 2.) Little did Lot consider that his haste to
be rich was the highroad to poverty. But step by step he "entered into
temptation."1 Every worldly prospect was blasted; and he ends his
days, a poor, forlorn, degraded tenant of the desolate cave of Zoar.
(Ib. xix. 30.) Thus he who sought the world, lost it; he who was
ready to lose it, found it. When Ahab's evil eye envied Naboth the
enjoyment of his vineyard; when Jehoiakim was grasping by unjust
means all that came into his reach, little did they consider, how this
haste to be rich would end in disgrace.2 But many and loud are the
warnings against covetousness, ending in shame, and filled with the
curse of an avenging God.3
"Man of God! Make a covenant with thine eyes"4 else thou
canst never hold thy covenant with thy God. Remember--Not he who
knows, but who loves, most the things of heaven, will be most deadened
to the riches of earth. The evil eye fixed on earth, can never look
above. So much as thou lovest earth, thou losest of heathen. Is it not
thy shame, that if heaven be thy possession, thou shouldest have so
much interest there, and yet so few thoughts, so little love? Keep
down most carefully thine anxiety to rise in the world. For in its
highest glory there is nothing worthy of thine heart. Keep the things
of earth as thy outer garment, which thou canst "lay aside," when it
entangles thee in the heavenly race. (Heb. xii. 1.) But keep heaven
next to thine heart--thy treasure--thy love--thy rest--thy crown.
Happy to be of the mind of the holy Bishop, who, when he heard of
the ruin of all his property by the plunder of the Goths--looked up--
‘Thou knowest where my treasure has long been!'*
23. He that rebuketh a man, afterwards shall find more favour than he
that flattereth with the tongue.
Too often the flatterer finds more favour than the reprover.5 'Few
people have the wisdom to like reproofs that would do them good,
better than praises that do them hurt.'† And yet a candid man, not-
withstanding the momentary struggle of wounded pride, will afterwards
1 Gen. xiii. 10-13; xiv. 12. 2 1 Kings, xxi. 2, 18, 19. Jer. xxii. 13-19.
3 Chap. xxiii. 5, with Job, xx. 18-22; xxvii. 16, 17, Jer. xvii. 11. Luke, xii. 19, 20.
4 Job, xxxi. 1 Ps. cxix. 36, 37. 5 1 Kings, xxii. 6-8, 27. Jer. xxvi. 7, 8
* Paulinus, Bishop of Nola, in the fifth century. † Dr. South. See his Life.
550 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
appreciate the purity of the motive, and the value of the discovery.
'He that cries out against his surgeon for hurting him, when he is
searching his wound, will yet pay him well, and thank him too, when
he has cured it.*
Unbelief, however, palsies Christian rebuke. Actual displeasure, or
the chilling of friendship, is intolerable. But Paul's public rebuke of
his brother Apostle produced no disruption between them. Many years
afterward Peter acknowledged his "beloved brother Paul "with most
affectionate regard.1 The Apostle's painful rebuke of his Corinthian
converts eventually increased his favour with them, as the friend of
their best interests.2 The flatterer is viewed with disgust;3 the re-
prover--afterwards at least--with acceptance.† A less favourable
result may often be traced to an unseasonable time4 a harsh manner a
neglect of prayer for needful wisdom, or a want of due "consideration"
of our own liability to fall. (Gal. vi. 1.) Let us study the spirit of our
gracious Master, whose gentleness ever poured balm into the wound,
which his faithful love had opened. A rebuke in this Spirit is more
like the support of a friend, than the chastening of a rod.
24. Whoso robbeth his father or his mother, and saith, It is no transgression;
the same is the companion of a destroyer.
The aggravation of sin is proportioned to the obligation of duty. A
murderer is an heinous transgressor; how much more a parricide!
To rob a stranger, a neighbour, a friend, is evil; how much more a father
and mother! The filial obligation of cherishing care is broken. Ingra-
titude is added to injustice. What length of wickedness will such an
hardened sinner stop at! Could we wonder to see him the companion
of a destroyer? This sin is however often committed without sensi-
bility,5 as if the children might dispose of their parents' property at
their own will. These robbers would ill brook the name of thieves.
But God, who sees men as they are, and judges of them in sure
balances, ranks them among "the wicked," and will deal with them
accordingly. (Chap. xxi. 7.)
Nor is this guilt confined to the grosser outrage. Surely it is no
1 Gal. ii. 11-14, with 2 Pet. iii. 15. 2 1 Cor. v. with 2 Cor. ii. 1-10.
3 Chap. xxvii. 14. 4 Chap. xv. 23. 5 Gen. xxxi. 19, 34, 35. Jud. xvii. 2.
* Henry.
† Chap. ix. 8; xxvii. 5, 6. Ps. cxli. 5. Comp. Eccles. vii. 5. Alas! that the example of
godly Asa should present an exception to the rule! 2 Chron. xvi. 7-10. When Bernard
Gilpin publicly rebuked church abuses before his diocesan, instead of incurring his displea-
sure, the bishop treated him with marker favour. 'Father Gilpin'--said he--'I acknow-
ledge you are fitter to be bishop of Durham, than I am to be the parson of your church.'
Life by Bp. Carletton, p. 58. When the philosopher asked Alexander the reason of his dis-
missal--'Either'--replied the monarch--'thou hast not marked my error, which is
proof of thy ignorance; or thou hast held thy peace, which is a proof of thy unfaithfuhness.'
--PLUTARCH's Life.
CHAP. XXVIII. 25. 551
better, when the young spendthrift wastes his father's property, and
counts it no transgression to incur debts on his account without his
knowledge or consent. (Chap. xix. 26.) Our Lord adverts to another
species of robbery--the denial of the absolute duty of providing for
parents; and this under the pretence of devotedness to God! (Matt.
xv. 5, 6.) But the gospel admits of no compounding of one duty for
another. (Verse 9.) The upright Christian will place all duties upon
the same ground of Christian obedience. (Ps. cxix. 5, 6, 80, 128.)
Young people! As you value your soul, your conscience, your
happiness--ponder the wide extent of filial obligation; the honour,
deference, and consideration included in it; the clear stamp of God's
authority upon it; the mark of his reprobation in despising it (1 Sam.
11. 25); the certain seal of his blessing upon its practical and self-
denying acknowledgment.
25. He that is of a proud heart stirreth up strife: but he that putteth his
trust in the Lord shall be made fat.
The contrast between the proud, and him that trusteth in the Lord,
is very remarkable. It shews that pride is the root of unbelief. The
man, having cast off God, expects nothing, fears nothing, from him.
He lives as if there was no God. His proud heart is large; not, like
the wise man's, in fulness of capacity (1 Kings, iv. 29), buy in ambitious
grasp, and insatiable appetite.* Never is he content within his own
bounds. In the world he would be a Haman (Esth. iii. 1, 2) in the
church a Diotrephes--one "loving to have the pre-eminenee." (3 John,
I9.) It is his nature to stir up strife. Every one that does not accord
with his own opinion of himself, is supposed to be wanting in respect.
Thus "by pride cometh contention." (Chap. xiii. 10.) And always
will there be some thorn of mortified ambition (Esth. v. 11-13), or
some fresh craving of unsatisfied desire (Eccles. v. 10, 11), wasting him,
so that he "fadeth away in his ways." (Jam. i. 11.) What an empty
shadow of fugitive happiness! So contrary to the fatness of him, that
putteth his trust in the Lord. (Chap. xvi. 20. Ps. lxxxiv. 12. Jer. xvii.
7, 8.) 'He shall be filled with good and solid things.'†
Christian! Dread the occasions of stirring up strife--the canker
of vital godliness. Keep near to thy Lord. It was when the disciples
were talking together by the way, instead of walking in immediate com-
munion with their Master, that strife was stirred up. (Mark, ix. 33, 34.)
Does not this point to the grand preservative? Let it be thine element
and thy joy. Here alone we cherish the life of faith. And truly--as
Luther says--'Faith is a precious thing.' (Comp. 2 Pet. i. 1.) It rolls
away all disquieting care. (1 Pet. v. 7.) Our cause is with him, and
we are at rest. (Ps. xxxvii. 5-7.) How much more, when the great
* Heb. Holden. Dathe. † Diodati.
552 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
burden is removed! 'Smite, Lord, smite; for thou hast pardoned.'
"Healed with the beams of the Sun of Righteousness, we shall be made
fat, as the calves of the stall." (Mal. iv. 2. Isa. lviii. 11.)
26. He that trusteth in his own heart is a fool: but whoso walketh wisely,
he shall be delivered.
Contrast the sound and fruitful confidence just mentioned, with
man's natural trust. Our confidence determines our state. (Matt. vii.
24-27.) To trust an impostor, who has deceived us an hundred times
or a traitor, who has proved himself false to our most important interests
is surely to deserve the name of fool. This name therefore the Scriptures
--"using great plainness of speech"--give to him that trusteth in
his own heart. Well does Bishop Hall call it, 'The great Impostor.'
For has it not been practising a system of deceit upon us from the
first moment of conciousness? Yes, verily, the traitor finds his home
in our own bosom, prompting, in concert with our deadly enemy, the
most elaborate efforts for self-destruction.
The wise man awfully illustrates his own Proverb. It must have
been some bitter root of self-confidence, that prostrated his wondrous
wisdom in the lowest degradation. (1 Kings, xi. 1-8.) Peter also--
how did he befool himself in his trust! Presuming upon "the willing-
ness of the spirit," and forgetting his Lord's most needful caution
against "the weakness of the flesh;" though named a Rock, he fell as
a reed before the first breath of temptation. Had not the everlasting
arms been underneath, it would have been the fall of Judas into the
depths of hell. An instructive lesson to shew us, that all dependence
upon feelings, impulse, native strength, sincere purpose or conviction-
is vain confidence. Sad experience has convinced us of this. Yet in
the blindness of our folly, we are ever ready to trust again, if the Lord
prevent not, to our ruin.
Truly, as good Bishop Wilson remarks--'there is no sin, which a
man ought not to fear, or to think himself capable of committing, since
we have in our corrupt will the seeds of every sin.' None of us can
safely presume, that his heart may not hurry him into abominations,
that he cannot now contemplate without horror. (2 Kings, viii. 13-15.)
If Eve in a state of innocence could believe a serpent before her Maker;1
if "the saint of the Lord" could worship the golden calf;2 if "the man
after God's own heart" could wallow in adultery, murder, and deceit;3
if the wisest of men, and the warm-hearted disciple just referred to,
could sink so low--what may not we do? Surely "all men are liars."
The best of men, when left to themselves, are mournful spectacles of
weakness and instability.
1 Gen. iii. 1-6. 2 Exod. xxxii. 2-5, with Ps. cvi, 16. 3 2 Sam. xi. 4, 17.
*Title of Sermon on Jer. xvii. 9. See Bunyan's Discourse between Christian and Ignorance
CHAP. XXVIII. 27. 553
Blessed be our God! our standing is not on the uncertainty of man's
best purpose; but upon the faithful promise, the unchangeable will,
the free grace, and almighty power of God; not therefore on ourselves,
but on the Rock, on which the Church is immovably built. We value
then a deep knowledge of our indwelling weakness and corruption.
Painful and humbling as it is, it is establishing to our faith; and
grounds us in the gospel far better than walking over the mere surface.
This study of the heart strengthens the principle of that holy fear, which
enables us to walk wisely, and thus delivers us from the evils of a self-
confident state. Indeed in a path, where every step is strewed with
snares, and beset with enemies, great need have we of the caution,--
"Walk circumspectly"--"looking on all sides"--"not as fools, but as
wise,"1 A sound confidence is a proof of wisdom. Be willing that
the Lord should disappoint us of the most plausible and inviting plea-
sure, into which we may have been drawn by the dictates of our own
heart. Let it be a standing maxim in religion to cultivate self-distrust;
never to suppose security, where God warns us of danger, never to
trust ourselves with our own keeping. We are too weak needlessly
to expose ourselves to hazard. We cannot pray--"Lead us not into
temptation"--when we are rushing headlong into it--or--"Deliver
us from evil"--when we seem to invite its approach.2
27. He that giveth unto the poor shall not lack: but he that hideth his
eyes shall have many a curse.
'There is none that desireth want, nor that wisheth to be poor.
And therefore the carnally-minded, to save themselves from it, carefully
gather together, and enclose so much wealth as they can by any means
possible; and they think that by such means they shall avoid lack.
And indeed after man's judgment, it is the best way that a man can
take. But the Holy Ghost doth teach us another means, clean contrary
to natural reason. He that giveth unto the poor shall not lack. This is
against reason, which saith, that we must gather and hold fast, to avoid
poverty. She looketh not to what God can and will do. She is blind
in the works of the Lord, and chiefly in those that he worketh according
to his free promise.'*
However close we may hold our substance, who can give security
against coming to want? But this promise gives a security, that no
earthly abundance can afford. Covetousness indeed combines with
reason to contradict the word of God. Yet the promise is given by
him, who hath full power to make it good; who has a thousand ways
of repaying what is done or sacrificed at his command. (Ps. xxiv. 1.)
The fruit is absolutely certain, 'as the best preventive against poverty,
1 Eph. v. 15. Comp. chap. iii. 5, 6 2 Matt. vi. 13, with xxvi. 41.
* Cope in loco.
554 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
putting money into the bank of heaven, which can never forfeit
credit.'* The best securities on earth will not hinder "riches from
making to them wings. and flying away." (Chap. xxiii. 5.) But when
have the promises of heaven ever been falsified?1 Yet after all, with
the carnal mind, covetousness prevails above faith, and a "trust in
uncertain riches makes the living God a liar."2
Do we, the professed followers of Christ, lay these truths really to
heart, testing our own principles and practice by them, and honestly
intending to take them, instead of selfish prudence and expediency, as
our rule and measure of conduct? Most honourable is it to the
Christian profession, and a sure seal of blessing upon our family, when
we forbear to plead family claims, as an excuse for contracting our
liberality. Again and again does God ratify this engagement.† Yet
many, who are "earnest in contending for the faith" of the Gospel, and
who would resist at any cost the invasion of heresy--we fear--would
be ashamed to expose the scanty limits of their liberality.
Did we really believe the promise annexed to this duty, we should
not so often hide our eyes from a case of distress. Yet not only do we
neglect to look out for objects of compassion, but actually we turn
away from them, as the servant of God would turn away from sin;3
and then justify ourselves on the ground of frequent imposition, and
the many worthy objects, which mayor may not come before us.
Many a curse is entailed upon this grudging spirit, both from God and
man.4 And is there no danger here of the everlasting curse!5 Ponder it well lest,
prudence and discrimination check the glow of charity, prove a cloak for
selfishness, and obscure the light of Christian benevolence and love, which ought
to shine before men in the profession of the true servants of God.
28. When the wicked rise, men hide themselves: but when they perish, the
righteous increase.
This Proverb has in substance been given before. (Verse 12.) The
rise of the wicked to power is indeed a national judgment, greatly to be
deprecated, as the engine of cruel malice against the Church of God.
Thus has it been in all her Pagan and Papal persecutions. And thus
it always will be, while she is in the wilderness.6 But what a tremendous
1 Num. xxiii. 19. 2 Cor. i. 20. 2 1 Tim. vi. 17. 1 John, v. 10.
3 Job, xxxi. 1, with Gen. xxxix. 10. 4 Chap. xi. 26. 1 Sam. xxv. 17, 25, 26, 38.
Matt. xxv. 41-45. Jam. ii. 13; v. 1-4. 6 Chap. xxix. 27. Gen. iii. 15. Rev. xii. 6, 17.
* Lawson in loco.
† Chap iii. 9, 10; xi. 24, 25; xiii. 7; xiv. 22; xix. 17; xxii. 9. Deut. xv. 7-10. Ps.
xli. 1-3; cxii. 5-9, with 2 Cor. ix. 6-11. Eccles. xi. 1, Isa. xxxii. 8; lviii. 7-11. Matt. v. 7.
Luke, vi. 38. Observe the glowing exubernce of this last promise--Not only "shall it be
given you"--but good measure--justly proportioned to the exercise of love--pressed down
--to secure it as full measure--shaken together--as with corn, that it may lie closer in its
place--and as if this were not enough--running over--without bounds--given into your
bosom--so that you shall taste the large indulgence of the blessing.
CHAP. XXIX. 1. 555
weight of guilt and punishment is involved in thus fighting against
God! (Acts, ix. 4.) Little do the wicked know the preciousness of the
saints in his sight,1 their perfect security under his cover,2 the sovereign
restraint which he has placed upon her enemies,3 and the triumphant
issue of all opposition against her."
The power of the wicked even here however is but for a moment;
and when they perish--as perish they will--the righteous shall increase.
A great increase was there to the Church in the days of godly Hezekiah,
when the doors of the temple, which his wicked father had shut up,
were open from a national profession and consecration to God.5 The
immediate result of Haman's overthrow, was not only toleration and
encouragement of the true religion, but a large increase to the number of
its professors. (Esth. viii. 17.) In the early ages of the Christian Church,
after the death of the persecuting Herod, "the word of God grew and
multiplied." (Acts, xii. 23, 24.) And in our own annals, at the removal
of Mary from her ill-used power, the Christian exiles returned from their
continental hiding-place, bringing with them a large increase of bless-
ing both to the Church and nation. Thus "out of the eater came forth
meat, and out of the strong came forth sweetness." (Judg. xiv. 14.) The
cross is the enriching blessing to the Church, and to every individual
member of it.
CHAPTER XXIX.
1. He that being often reproved (a man of reproofs, marg.) hardeneth his
his neck, shall suddenly be destroyed, and that without remedy.
THIS is indeed an awful word. The intractable ox, hardening his neck
against the yoke,6 is but too apt a picture of the stubborn sinner, casting
off the restraints of God. This was the uniform complaint against
Israel,7 a true picture of the mass of the ungodly before our eyes. Con-
viction follows upon conviction, chastening upon chastening. Still the
the rebel hardens his neck, stops his ears against the voice of God, and
invites his threatened judgments.
Awfully frequent are these instances among the children of godly
parents or the hearers of a faithful minister.8 Every means of grace is
a solemn but despised reproof. Aggravated sin makes the judgment of
a righteous God more manifest. The more enlightened the conscience
the more hardened the neck. Every beating pulse is rebellion against a
God of love.
1 Zech. ii. 8. 2 Isa. xxvi. 20. 3 Ps. Ixxvi. 10.
4 Exod. xv. 1. Isa. li. 9-11. Rev. xviii. 20.
5 2 Chron. xxviii. 24. xxix. ; xxx. 13-25. 6 Jer. xxxi. 18.
7 Exod. xxxii. 9. 2 Chron. xxxvi. 13-16. Neh. ix. 29. Isa. xlviii. 8. Jer. xvii. 23. Zec. vii.
11, 12. Acts, vii. 51. 8 Chap. v. 12, 13. 1 Sam. ii. 12.
556 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
Sometimes it is more the immediate voice of God. An alarming
illness, a dangerous accident, or the death of a companion in wicked-
ness, is "the rod and reproof" intended to "give wisdom." (Verse 15.)
But if the "fool" continue to despise all God's reproof, his destruction
will be sudden,1 and without remedy.2
Such was the destruction of the old world, and of the cities of the plain,
long hardened against the forbearance of God.3 Pharaoh grew more
stubborn under the rod, and rushed madly upon his sudden ruin.4 Eli's
sons "hearkened not unto the voice of their father, and in one day died
both of them."5 Ahab, often reproved, by the godly prophet, hardened
his neck, and "the bow, drawn at a venture," received its commission.6
How must Judas have steeled his heart against his Master's reproof!7
Onward he rushed, "that he might go to his own place."8 Truly Divine
patience has its end. And this fearful moment once arrived, "the
vessels of wrath, endured with much long-suffering," are now shewn
more manifestly, as "fitted for destruction." (Rom. ix. 22.) No remedy
--not even the Gospel--can remedy the case. As they lived, so they
die, so they stand before God--without remedy. No blood--no advo-
cate, pleads for them. As they sink into the burning lake, every billow
of fire, as it rolls over them, seems to sound--without remedy.
Sinner--Oh! that thou wouldst be wise to consider thy guilt, thy
state, thy prospect, while yet "thy judgment and damnation linger!"
Is not "the Spirit of grace" pleading with thine heart? Would he not
now save thee, wouldst thou but obey his call? Thou art standing
upon mercy's ground, betwixt heaven and hell. O thou God of al-
mighty sovereign grace, shew "a pattern" of thy "long-suffering."
(1 Tim. i. 16.) Let the sinner sing thy everlasting praise, as "a brand
plucked out of the fire" a monument of thine over-abounding grace.
(Zech. iii. 2.)
2. When the righteous are in authority, the people rejoice: but when the
wicked beareth rule, the people mourn.
'The robes of honour to the righteous are the garments of gladness
to the people. The sceptre of authority to the godly is the staff of com-
fort to the people. On the other hand, the vestments of dignity to the
wicked are the weeds of mourning to the people. The throne of command
to the one is the dungeon of misery to the other. The titles of honour
given to the one are sighs of sorrow wrung from the other.* The con-
trast of the government of Mordecai and Haman illustrates this joy and
1 1 Thess. v. 3. 2 Chap. i. 22-30; vi. 15; xxviii. 14, 18. Isa. xxx. 12-14.
3 Luke, xvii. 21-29. 4 Exod. ix. 21,34; x. 27, 28; xiv. 28.
5 1 Sam. ii 25, 34; iv. 11. 6 1 Kings, xviii. 18; xxi. 20; xxii. 28, 34.
7 John, vi. 70; xiii. 10, 11, 18-27. 8 Matt. xxvi. 14-16. John, xiii. 30. Acts, i. 25.
* Jermin. Comp. chap. xxviii. 12, 28. Ecclus. x. 3.
CHAP. XXIX. 3. 557
mourning.1 The special rejoicings at the accession of Solomon might
probably be connected with the confidence, that he would "walk in the
ways of David his father."2 The reigns of the righteous kings of Judah
were pre-eminently distinguished by national happiness.3 The glorious
era yet in store for the world, is, when "the Lord shall bless" his own
kingdom, "as the habitation of justice and mountain of holiness."4 For
what but righteousness can truly bless either an individual, a family, or
a nation?*
When therefore the wicked bear rule--the people--not the godly--
only mourn. The depth of the mourning is surely the joy at the removal
of the scourge. Meanwhile it is borne by "the faithful in the land" as a
national scourge.5 And 'if tears be their drink, patience will be their
bread, till God have mercy on them.'† What need have we to thank
God, that our guilty country, with so much to humble us in shame,
should have been so long spared from the curse of wicked rulers! The
tyrant rules for his own sinful ends. The Christian sovereign for the
good of the people.
3. Whoso loveth wisdom rejoiceth his father but he that keepeth company
with harlots spendeth his substance.
These Proverbs in substance have been given before.6 Yet the
variations are instructive. The wisdom is here more distinctly de-
scribed as loving wisdom. For he is wise not only, who hath arrived at
a complete habit of wisdom, but who doth as yet love it, or desire it, and
listen to it.'‡ Do not we hang off too loosely from its heavenly in-
fluence? Let it be manifestly our great object, not as a good thing, but
the best--"the principal thing."§ The awakened sinner loves it from
the sense of want; the Christian from its satisfying delight. The taste,
gives a keen edge to the appetite. What we have grasped of the bless-
ing bears no comparison to what remains. The day-dreams of a world
of vanity engage our affections no longer.
1 Esth. viii. 15, 16; x. 3, with iii. 15; iv.1-3. 2 1 Kings, i. 39, 40, with iii. 3. Comp. iv.20.
3 2 Chron. xv.12-15; xx. 27-30. xxix.. 36; xxx. 21.
4 Jer. xxxi. 23. Isa. i. 26. 5 Eccles. x. 5, 6. Isa. iii. 4, 5. Mic. iii. 9-12.
6 Chap. x. 1; xv, 20; xxiii. 15, 24, 25; xxvii. 11; xxviii. 7.
*Ps. lxxii. 1-7. Isa. xxxii. 1. It is no peculiar conceit, but a matter of sound con-
sequence, that all duties are by so much the better performed, by how much the men are
more religious, from whose abilities the same proceed. For if the course of politic affairs
cannot in any good sort go forward without fit instruments, and that which fitteth them
be their virtues, let polity acknowledge itself indebted to religion, godliness being the
chiefest, top, and well-spring of all true virtue, even as God is of all good things.' Thus ad-
mirably docs our great Hooker insist, that 'religion, unfeignedly loved, perfecteth man's
abilities unto all kind of virtuous services in the commonwealth.'--Eccl. Pol. Book v. c. l.
†Jermin out supra.
‡ Basil, quoted by Bp. Patrick. Preface to Proverbs.
§ Chap. iv. 7. See the beautiful description, Ecclus. vi. 18-31; xxiv. Bp. Lowth's
elegant translation.--Lect. on. Heb. Poetry, xxiv.
558 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
Let the young man consider" wisdom's pleasantness and peace,"1
her light and security,2 her "durable riches,"3 and glorious inherit-
ance;4 and "wilt thou not from this time cry" to the God of wisdom--
"My Father! thou art the guide of my youth?" (Jer. iii. 4.) Let him
have the flower of thine age. Is not the best sacrifice due to him, who
is above the songs of heaven, who has obtained a kingdom for those
that love him? No worldly honour, no success of talent, will rejoice a
godly father, as will this choice for eternity. (Chap. xxiii. 23-25.)
Folly brings its own shame and sorrow. "The companion of the
riotous and vain persons" is readily found in fellowship with harlots,
saddening his father, by spending his substance. (Chap. xxviii. 7, 19.)
One course of vanity leads to another. All end alike in ruin.5 He may
possess the external endowment. But the love of wisdom is the only
preservative from "besetting snares."6
Deep indeed--is the anxiety--the joy or the sorrow--connected
with children.7 May it give a deeper tone of simplicity and pleading
in dedicating them to God,8 and training them up for his service! Let
us early present them, as "the children, whom the Lord hath given us;"
but as his, more than our own--his property--his inheritance. (Ps.
cxxvii.3.) Here are our springs of diligence, of hope, and of ultimate
reward.
4. The king by judgment establisheth the land: but he that receiveth gifts
(a man of oblations, marg.) overthroweth it.
Of what avail are the best laws, if they be badly administered?
Partiality and injustice absolutely make them null and void. And yet
it requires great integrity and moral courage to withstand the tempta-
tions of worldly policy and self-interest. God's own throne is built and
established by judgment.9 This then can be the only establishment of the
land.l0 The compromise of it to some private ends provokes the anger
of God to the chastisement, if not the overthrow, of the land. The article
in our Magna Charta--'We will sell justice to none'--is but too plain
evidence of the recklessness of all social principles, ere the great
standard was erected among us.
Under the godly government of Samuel the land was established by
judgment.11 "But his sons walked not in his ways." They were men of
oblations. They received gifts; and the Theocracy--the great palladium
of the land--was overthrown.12 The righteous administration of David
"bore up the pillars" of the land, at a time of great national weakness.13
1 Chap. iii. 17. 2 Chap; viii. 20; iv. 11, 12. 3 Chap. iii. 14, 15; viii. 18, 19.
4 Chap. iii. 35. 5 Chap. v. 9; vi. 26. Luke, xv. 30.
6 Chap iv. 6; vii. 4, 5. 7 Chap. xvii. 21, 25. 8 1 Sam. i. 26-28.
9 Ps. lxxxix. 14; xcvii. 2. lsa.. ix. 7.
10 Verse 14; xvi. 10-12; xx. 8, 26; xxv. 5. 2 Chron. ix. 8.
11 Sam. vii. 3-12, 15-17. 12 Ib. viii. 2-7. 13 Ps. lxxv. 2-6, 10. 2 Sam. viii 15.
CHAP. XXIX. 5. 559
The same principles in the godly successors were the source of strength
and prosperity.1 The want of uprightness in Saul shook the kingdom
from his grasp;2 and the covetousness of Jehoiakim3 destroyed its
foundations, and buried him in its ruins. Let the same consistency
pervade every grade of official responsibility. No respect will be paid
to dignity, temporal or spiritual, except it be established with judgment.
Let men of God be in our high places; and righteousness will exalt a
nation," and our Church will be "the joy and praise of the whole
earth." (Chap. xiv. 34.)
5. A man that flattreth his neighbour spreadeth a net for his feet.
Most wisely were Bunyan's pilgrims warned--'Beware of the flat-
terer.' Yet 'forgetting to read the note of directions about the way,'
they fell into his net, and, even though delivered, were justly punished
for their folly. The doctrine of man's goodness, strength, or freedom;
innocent infirmities; venial offences; softening down the statements of
man's total corruption; a general gospel, without close application; its
promises and privileges, without the counter-balance of its trials and
obligations--all this is frightful flattery--'the black man clothed in
white'--"Satan himself transformed into an angel of light, and his
ministers transformed as ministers of righteousness." (2 Cor. xi. 13-15.)
Unwary souls are misled. Even unwatchful Christians fall into the net.
And while they have to thank their faithful God for deliverance, they
cannot forget his sharp and needful chastening of their folly. Where
"the root of the matter" is not, heresy, or apostasy, is the baneful
fruit of the flatterer. (Rom. xvi. 17, 18. 2 Pet. ii. 1-3.)
But let us guard against this net in our daily path. Too readily do
the flatterer's words pass current. Even when conscious of not possess-
ing the loveliness attributed to us; when we know the flatterer to have
no faith in his own words; instead of a just indignation at his smooth
hypocrisy, is there not sometimes a secret self-satisfaction at being
thought of sufficient importance to tempt to the deceit? Nay--even.
when it is so gross as to create disgust, is this disgust always unaccom-
panied with pleasure? Besides--What else is much of the language
of smooth courtesy, or lively interest and affection? Who would
venture to act with confidence on this heartless profession? Always is
the net spread to allure into some devious path; often into the grossest
wickedness. Thus the flattering woman beguiled her prey.4 The
parasites of Darius deified him for a month, to make him the tool of
their malicious plot. (Dan. vi. 6-9.) The enemies of Christ spread the
flatterer's net for his feet. But here the wisdom of God was infinitely
above them, and "took the wise in their own craftiness."5
1 2 Chron. i. 1; xiv. 2-7; xix. 6, 1, with xx. 21-30; xxxi. 20, 21. Isa. xxxii. l, 2.
2 1 Sam. xiii. 12. 3 Jer. xxii. 13-19. 4 Chap. ii. 16; vii. 21; xxvi. 28.
5 Matt. xxii. 15-23, with 1 Cor. iii 19.
560 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
The feet of many strong men have been entangled in this net.
Indeed seldom has the frailty of the man of God been more painfully
exposed. David honoured his God in the endurance of Shimei's curse.
But Ziba's smooth words drew him to an act of gross injustice.1
Usually some want of integrity has predisposed the mind for this
poison. David was struggling to discover a plea for leniency to his
murderous son, when the woman of Tekoah plied him with her flattering
lips. The bribery of passion was far more powerful than her argu-
ments.2 But bitterly did the misguided parent reap the fruit of thus
entering into the net spread for his feet.3 Wilful infatuation fully prepared
Ahab, by listening to the flattery of his lying prophets, to his own ruin.4
Does a man thus load us with immoderate commendation? It is
the flatterer's net. "Ponder the paths of thy feet."5 Exchange confi-
dence for suspicion.6 Fearful is the snare to those, whose rank or
influence dispose them to walk rather before men, than before God.
Indeed religious flattery is a common snare to a Christian profession.
It may be natural, perhaps well-intentioned, to be willing to profit by
more advanced experience, and to enquire of a brother, by what means
he has been able to rise above the ordinary level; nay--even to
express our envy at his higher knowledge, faith, or love. But all this
tends to cherish self-complacency, "a confidence in the flesh"--the
bane to that self-renouncing confidence in his Saviour, which is the clear
stamp of the faithful follower of his Lord. (Philip. iii. 3.) Too often is
the same net spread for the feet of the Minister of Christ, whether to gain
his good opinions, or from the genuine but imprudent warmth of affec-
tion. But oh!--think--"He is a man as thou art"--beset with
temptation--perhaps even "besides those that are common to men."
His heart, little thine; is fully susceptible of self-exalting imaginations.
And to know that he has a reputation for holiness; that he is a man of
influence; that his character is looked up to; that his opinion is valued
--this is indeed "a fiery trial," that brings out to view much base
dross of vanity. (Chap. xxvii. 21.) Far better would it be, that our
Christian intercourse with each other should be moulded by the wise
resolution to refrain from "flattering titles," as hurtful to the creature,
and provoking to God.
1 2 Sam. xvi, 1-12. 2 Ib, xiv. 4-24. 3 Ib. xv, 1-14.
4 1 Kings, xxii. 11, 12. 5 Chap. iv. 26. 6 Chap. xxvi. 24, 25; xxvii, 14.
* Job, xxxii. 21, 22. Compo LXX. 22, with Acts, xii. 22, 23. Surely it is enough for us
to have foes within and without to contend with, without having snares for our feet laid by
our fellow-pilgrims. Oh! it is a cruel thing to flatter. The soul is often more exhausted
and injured by disentangling itself from these nets, than by the hottest contest with prin-
cipalities and powers. Those who have once known the torture the believer undergoes,
while this poison is pervading his soul, the bitter, lowering medicines he must take as
antidotes, the frightful oblivion of lessons of humility which he has been studying for years,
will, I think (unless much under the influence of the enemy of souls), not administer the
noxious potion a second time,'--HELEN PLUMPTRE'S Letters, pp. 43, 44--a most profitable
volume.
CHAP. XXIX. 6. 561
6. In the transgression of an evil man there is a snare, but the righteous
doth sing and rejoice.
There is always a snare in the ways of sin; always a song in the
ways of God. Which then are "the ways of pleasantness and peace?"1
The light-hearted sinner goes on in his flowery path. Soon he is
"taken captive in the snare of the devil;"2 often in a snare of his own
toil.3 Transgression is in fact the snare of the soul. Is it not wisdom
to avoid a snare? Sinner--Think a moment. What are "the
pleasures of sin" to the pleasures of Paradise? Remember--Sin and
ruin are bound together; and who can put them asunder?
The righteous may be in the same outward lot with the evil man.
But wide indeed is the gulf between their respective states. (Isa. lxv.
13, 14.) Joseph's brethren in prison, under the sting of conscience, sink
in despondency. Paul and Silas in prison did sing and rejoice.4 Little,
however, can be judged by their external state. The ungodly are in
prosperity, and, the children of God "chastened every morning" (Ps.
lxxiii. 14); yet rising triumphant in the deepest exercise--"Rejoice not
against me, O mine enemy; though I fall, I shall rise again; though I
sit in darkness"--my cause apparently forgotten, my light obscured,
my character defamed--"the Lord shall be a light unto me." (Mic. vii.
8.) What is it to be possessor of all the promises of God? The
wealth of this golden mine no tongue of man can express; no mind of
angel comprehend. And how abundant is the solid ground and
material of this rejoicing! The completeness of the Saviour's work;
his constant love; the fulness of his Spirit; the sufficiency of his grace;
his faithful promise; his watchful eye; his ready help; his perpetual
intercession; and all this joy--not like that of the world, flowing and
ebbing; but heightening and overflowing through all eternity.
But the righteous also sing--and only they. Yet often they have no
skill for the song. Their harp is upon the willows, as if they could not
"sing the Lord's song in a strange land." (Ps. cxxxvii. 4.) Unbelief
remains unchecked. The promises therefore are so faintly applied, that
distrust outweighs all encouragement. Their brighter seasons were
enjoyed rather than improved. No materials were laid up as principles
of life, love, and devotedness. And therefore "in the cloudy and dark
day" they lose their time in feeble complaints, instead of striving for
life.
Is it not worth pursuing this dishonourable evil to its sources,
whether remote or proximate? Are we incapacitated, or only disin-
clined, to sing? Seek a clearer exercise of faith, to rouse from indolence,
1 Chap. iii. 17, with xiii. 5. 2 2 Tim. ii. 26. Job, xviii. 9-11.
3 Chap. v. 22; xi. 5, 6; xii. 13. Job, xvii. 8. 4 Gen. xlii. 21, with Acts, xvi. 25.
562 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
and to remove mistaken apprehensions. And in the active energy of
faith, repent, return, watch and pray, mortify besetting sins. Enquire
seriously--Are the materials for our song passed away? our stated
grounds for praise sunk? Are there not a countless number of mercies
yet remaining, and preserved entire, sufficient to swallow up the smart
of the most bitter dispensation? Let faith be employed in putting
them together, and counting them over; and surely under the deepest
gloom that ever could rest upon the soul, the harp would be taken down
from the willows, "and the righteous would sing and rejoice."*
Add to which--Not only are these mercies left, while others are
removed. But to the watchful eye of dutiful, affectionate faith, the
value of our heavenly Father's kindness continued to us, is seen in a
clearer light, and more deeply enjoyed. And never is his grace seen
so cheering, so triumphant, as when it raises us above our trials" and
enables us to take up the song of victory on the field of battle;1
rebuking unbelief far away, and strengthening our confidence for
renewed conflict.
And indeed even in the most sinking frame, when wounded and
disheartened with the sense of our own guilt and follies--Oh! we must,
be ignorant of the alphabet--of the gospel; if, when we have told up the
fearful account, and magnified it to its utmost--we do not grasp the
glorious word--"Where sin abounded, grace doth much more
abound." (Rom. v. 20.) Can we then want materials for our song?
Shall not our harp reach an higher pitch? Praised be God! We are
hasting to a world, where it will never be unstrung, the heart never out
of tune, and the song ever new, when we shall rejoice and sing without
one faltering note in our song; without one jarring note in the song of
our brethren.2
7. The righteous considereth the cause of the poor; but the wicked
regardeth not to know it.
The original gives to the Proverb a judicial aspect.† To "respect
the person of the poor" is no less unjust, than to "honour the person of
the mighty."3 But the righteous judge or advocate will consider his
cause, judge it as for God, investigate it thoroughly, and take care that
it be not lost from his own inability to defend it. (Ps. lx:xxii. 3, 4.)
This was the considerate administration of the great King of righteous-
1 Rom. vii. 24, 25. 1 Cor. xv. 55-57. 2 Isa. xxxv. 10. Rev. v. 8-10.
3 Lev. xix. 15. Exod. xxiii. 3.
* To some Christians of a morbid temperament, Bernard's advice may be important-
Let us mingle honey with wormwood, that the wholesome bitter may give health, when it
is drunk tempered with a mixture of sweetness. While you think humbly of yourselves,
think also of the goodness of the Lord.'--In Cant. Serm xi. Always are there evil days
in the world; always good days in the Lord.'--AUGUSTINE on Ps. xxxiii.
†Holden. Geier. Bp. Patrick.
CHAP. XXIX. 1. 563
ness.1 The man of God will walk after this divine Exemplar.2 'Let
him have the conscience first'--says Bishop Sanderson--'and then the
patience too (and yet if he have the conscience, certainly he will have the
patience), to make search into the truth of things, and not be dainty of his pains
herein, though matters be intricate, and the labour like to be long and irksome.'*
Selfishness however, not truth, justice, or mercy, is the standard of
the wicked. He considers, first the poor man's person, then his cause.
"The unjust judge" would not have "avenged the widow of her
adversary, but to save trouble to himself. (Luke, xviii. 2-5.) Felix
regarded not to know the Apostle's cause, only that he might indulge his
own covetousness. (Acts, xxxiv. 26, 27.) But fearful is it to sit in the
place of God3 as his representative, only to pervert his judgment for sel-
fish aggrandizement.4 For 'He that rejecteth the complaint of the poor,
and beateth them off with big words, and terror in his looks, either out
of the hardness of his heart or the love of ease, when he might have
leisure to give them audience (if he were so minded) and to take
notice of their grievances, cannot justly excuse himself by pleading --
"Behold, we know it not."'†
The maxim however obviously applies more generally to the con-
siderate regard of the righteous, and the cruel disregard of the wicked,
towards the poor. The ordinance, that "the poor shall never cease out
of the land;" and the inequality of rank, prevailing throughout the
economy of Providence, were doubtless intended as an incitement to
Christian sympathy and enlargement.5 Consideration of the poor is the
true spirit of Christian sympathy; putting ourselves as far as may be
in their place.‡ Oh! how different is this from the impatient, un-
gracious temper, in which the suit of a poor client is sometimes dis-
patched, as if we grudged our time and pains. Our beloved Lord not
only went about doing good" (Acts, x. 38), but he did it so tenderly,
so considerately. Always was he ready to yield his own convenience
and even necessary comfort to the call of need. (Mark, vi. 31-34.) The
same considerate regard for the poor marked the Apostolic administra-
tion.6 Sympathy with the poor is the practical acknowledgment of
our own undeserved mercies; specially remembering the Lord's poor,
1 Ps.lxxii:.2-4, 12-14. 2 Job, xxix.11-16; xxxi. 13, 20. Jer. xxii. 16.
3 Ps. lxxxii. 6. Rom. xiii. 1, 2.
4 Chap. xxiv. 11, 12. Jer. v. 28, 29. Ezek. xxii. 7, 29-31. Mic. iii. 1-4.
5 Deut. xv. 7-11. 2 Cor. viii. 14, 15. Comp. Ecclus. iv. 8.
6 Acts, iv 34, 35; vi. 1-6. 1 Cor. xvi. 2. 2 Cor. ix. 12, 13. Gal. ii. 10.
* Sermon on Exodus. xxiii. 1-3.
†Dr. SANDERSON'S Sermon on chap. xxiv. 10-12.
‡ Ps. xli. 1. Most striking was the consideration of the poor in Bp. Ridley, imploring in
his last moments at the stake the queen in behalf of certain poor men's leases in his
bishopric likely to become void by his death. FOXE, vii. 545, 546. In the same noble spirit
was the remembrance of the dying Scott to his son, of the arrival of the season, when he
had been used to plant a root for the supply of the poor.
564 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERS.
as the representatives of Him,1 who is First and Last, and All to us;
and who, "though he was rich, yet for our sakes became poor, that we
through his poverty might be made rich." (2 Cor. viii. 9.)
Well do those, who regard not to know, deserve their name--the
wicked. Like Cain, they acknowledge no interest in their brother.
(Gen. iv. 9.) Like Nabal--"It is no concern of mine."2 ‘If the poor
must be fed rather than starve'--it is casting food to a dog, rather
than holding out an helping hand to a fellow-sinner.3 This total
absence of the image of a God of love4--this utter casting off his royal
law5--surely he will require it.6
8. Scornful men bring a city into a snare (set the city on fire, marg.);
but wise men turn away wrath.
The comparison is here between a "proud and haughty scorner,*
and a wise man." The one is a public injury; the other a public
blessing. The one raises a tumult; the other quells it. The man,
who scorns to be bound by common restraint, will bring the city into a
snare by his presumption,7 or set it on fire 'by blowing the fire of divine
wrath upon it.'† Happily wise men are scattered through the land:
and their energy and prudence turn away wrath.‡ 'Proud and foolish
men kindle the fire. Which wise and good men must extinguish.'§
Another instructive illustration of the Proverb suggests itself. Not
the tyrant over his fellow-creatures, but the scorner against his God, is
the public trouble. Many of the kings of Judah and Israel thus brought
the city into a snare. Their provocations of divine wrath did more to
further its ruin, than the most powerful foreign enemies. Their influ-
ence led the people into deeper aggravations of sin, and ripened them
for judgment. ||
But wise men stand in the gap, and turn away wrath.¶ Surely it
was wisdom in the king and people of Nineveh, instead of bringing their
city into a snare by scornful rebellion, to avert by timely humiliation the
impending destruction. (Jonah, iii. 5-10.) Let the people be gathered;
let the Ministers of the Lord gird themselves to their work of weeping
1 Matt. x. 42; xxv. 40. 2 1 Sam. xxv. 10, 11. 3 Luke, xvi. 21.
4 1 John, iii. 17. 5 Jam. ii. 8. Lev. xix. 18, with Luke, x. 31, 32.
6 Chap. xxiv. 12. 7 1 Sam. xi. 2,11. 2 Sam. x. 4; xii. 31.
* Heb, Men of scorn. Chap. xxi. 24.
† LXX. Durell.
‡ 2 Sam. xx. 1, 15-22. Acts, xix. 23--41. Comp. Virg. Aen. i. 143-153.
§ Henry.
|| 2 Kings, xxi. 9-15; xxiii. 26, 27. Isa. xxviii. 14-22. 2 Chron. xxxvi. 16,17. Jer.
xxxvi. 23-34. Matt. xxi. 33-43; xxiii. 34-39. 1 Thes 5. ii. 15, 16.
¶ Muses--Exod. xxxii. 10-14. Deut. ix. 8-20. Ps. cvi. 23. Aaron-Num. xvi. 48.
Phinehas, xxv. 11. Ps. cvi. 30. Elijah, 1 Kings, xviii. 42--45. Jam. v. 16-18. Jer. xviii. 20.
Dan. ix. 3-20. Amos, vii. 1-6. The righteous remnant--Isa. i. 9; vi. 13. Comp. Gen.
cviii. 32; Job, xxii. 30; Jer. v. 1: Ezek. xxii. 30, 31. Contrast xiii. 5. 'Nothing there-
fore can make a man so good a patriot as religion.'--Bp. HALL.
CHAP. XXIX. 9, 10. 565
and accepted pleaders for the land. (Joel, ii. 17.) Surely "except the
Lord of Hosts had left us a very small remnant" of these powerful
intercessors, "we should have been as Sodom, and we should have
been like unto Gomorrah." (Isa. i. 9.) Praised be God! The voice is
yet heard--"Destroy it not, for a blessing is in it." (Ib. lxv. 8.) The
salt of the earth preserves it from corruption. (Matt. v. 13.) Shall not
we then honour these wise men with reverential gratitude--"My father
--my father! the chariots of Israel, and the horsemen thereof?"*
9. If a wise man contendeth with a foolish man, whether he rage or laugh,
there is no rest.
It would generally be far better not to meddle with such a fool as is
here described. We can only deal with him on very disadvantageous
terms, and with little prospect of good.l If a wise man contend with
the wise, he can make himself understood, and there is some hope of
bringing the debate to a good issue. But to contend with a fool, there is
no rest, no peace or quiet. It will go on without end. He will neither
listen to reason, nor yield to argument. So intractable is he, that he
will either rage or laugh; either vent upon us the fury of an ungoverned
temper, or laugh us to scorn. This contention was a point of poignant
trial to our Divine Master. What could be more revolting than some-
times their murderous rage,2 sometimes their scornful laugh,3 both
"rejecting his counsel against themselves?" (Matt. xi. 16, 17.) And
what if a contention with such fools should be appointed for me? Let
me remember my days of perversity and folly. And while this vivid
impression brings me back to their level; can I return their unreason-
able provocation, save with tenderness and compassion? (Tit. iii. 2, 3.)
Yea--when, as the most effectual means for their benefit, I would com-
mend them to the Almighty and Sovereign grace of God; can I forget,
that if this grace has healed my deep-rooted stubbornness, it is not less
rich, not less free, not less sufficient, for them?
10. The bloodthirsty hate the upright: but the just seek his soul.
This bloody hatred is the fulfilment of the first prophecy from the
mouth of God. (Gen. iii. 15.) The first history of the fallen world puts
the seal to the prophecy--"Cain rose up against Abel his brother, and
slew him." (Ib. iv. 5-8.) Ever since has the same testimony been
given.4 "Which of the prophets have not your fathers persecuted?"
(was the indignant remonstrance of Stephen to his countrymen) until
1 Chap. xvii. 12; xxvi. 4. Eccles. x. 13. Matt. vii. 6.
2 Luke, iv. 29. John, vii. 1; viii. 59; xi. 53. 3 Luke, xvi. 14.
4 Verse 27. Ps. xxxvii 12-14, 32. Gal. iv. 29. 2 Tim. iii. 12.
* 2 Kings, ii. 12. This acknowledgment is sometimes forced from the consciences of
the ungodly. Chap. xiii. 10-16.
566 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
they" filled up the measure of their fathers," by being "the betrayers
and murderers" of the Son of God.1 The noble army of martyrs stand
before us. Such intensity of malice in the contrivance of the variety of
their torture! The bloodthirsty hate the upright. (Heb. xi. 36, 37.)
Their innocency was the only ground of hatred; and, on the threatened
apprehension of any outbreak of evil, the swelling cry of the bloodthirsty
multitude was--'The Christians to the lions!' The next picture down-
ward in the annals of the Church is not less illustrative--" I saw the
"woman "--awful sight!--"drunken with the blood of the saints, and
with the blood of the martyrs of Jesus." (Rev. xvii. 6.) We cannot
doubt but the fierce elements of the cruelty still lie in slumbering con-
cealment. Nothing but the Gospel can kill the principle. Everything
short of this only chains down the violence. In a softer mould it still
retains all its substance and power, and waits only for the removal of
present restraints to develope the same bloodthirsty hatred as ever.
Scripture explains this murderous vindictiveness. "Wherefore
slew Cain his brother? Because his own works were evil, and his
brother's righteous." (1 John, iii. 12, 13.) Darkness cannot endure the
light.2 The condemning light3 of godliness excites the enmity of the
ungodly. They cannot bear the picture. Thus the bloodthirsty Ahab
hated his upright prophets,4 and the Jews the holy Saviour.5 Con-
formity to him is the great offence still. 'Such precise--fools, contrary
to every one beside, "turning the world upside down"--how can they
be endured?' Their removal is a rejoicing riddance from the earth.
(Rev. xi. 9, 10.)
And yet their God is not unmindful of their threatening troubles.
The bloodthirsty hate the upright: but the just seek his soul. Saul sought
to murder David; Jonathan covered him.6 Jezebel was thirsting to
destroy the prophets of the Lord; Obadiah "hid them in a cave, and
fed them with bread and water."7 The enemies of Jeremiah plotted
against him; Ebedmelech saved his life.8 Herod was proceeding
against Peter's life; the Church shielded him with their prayer.9 The
bloodthirsty Jews bound themselves to murder Paul; "Priscilla and"
Aquila" were ready to "lay down their own necks for his life."10
What a life of conflict is this, world of sin! Need we be dissuaded
from loving it? Need we not rather patience to endure it? But while
we are in it, let us be found decidedly on the Lord's side,11 "partakers,"
if needs be, "of the afflictions of the gospel." (2 Tim. i.8.) Never let
us stand aloof from our brethren's cause. (Ib. i. 16, 17.) To help them,
is to be fellow-workers with God himself. If union is so effective
1 Acts, vii. 52. Matt. v. 12; xxiii. 32. 2 John, iii. 19, 20. 3 Heb. xi. 7.
4 1 Kings, xxi. 20; xxii. 8. 5 John vii. 7.
6 1 Sam. xviii.. 11, 25, with xviii. 1-4. 7 1 Kings, xviii. 1-4. 8 Jer. xxxviii. 1-13.
9 Acta, xii. 5. 10 Ib. xxiii. 12. Rom. xvi. 4. 11 Matt. xii. 30.
CHAP. XXIX. 11. 567
against the Church, surely its influence would not be of less moment on
the Church's side; "strengthening her stakes," establishing her founda-
tions, and enlarging her usefulness.
11. A fool uttereth all his mind; but a wise man keepeth it in till
afterwards.
"There is a time for everything"--the wise man elsewhere writes
--"a time to keep silence, and a time to speak."1 It is a mark of true
wisdom to discern the times.2 Indeed the discipline, or the want of
discipline, upon the "little member," is a sound test of character. The
man, who speaks hastily and with conceit, will be put to shame in his
folly.3 He might have been "counted" wise in his silence.4 But
silence is beyond his power--He uttereth all his mind--tells all he
knows, thinks, or intends, and runs on, until he has "poured out all his
foolishness." (Chap. xv. 2.) It is sometimes thought a proof of honesty
to utter all our mind. But it is rather a proof of folly. For how many
things it would be far better never to speak indeed to suppress in the
very thought!5 How much of "foolish talking and jesting;"6 how
many angry, detracting, uncharitable words do we utter, because we
have neglected to watch, or rather to entreat "the Lord to set a watch
upon, our lips," as the door of our hearts! (Ps. cxli. 3.) And what
wrong judgments we often pass upon men's actions, because we utter
all our mind as it were in one breath, without pondering, or perhaps
without materials to form a correct judgment!
Indeed the words of the fool--as an old Expositor remarks--'are
at the very door--so to speak--of his mind, which being always
open, they readily fly abroad. But the words of the wise are buried
in the inner recess of his mind, whence the coming out is more diffi-
cult.'* This is the wisdom to be valued and cultivated. Many things
we may keep in till afterward, which will then be far better spoken than
at the present moment. (1 Sam. xxv. 36.) We may find reason after-
ward to suspect what at the time we were fully persuaded of. There
is often a lightness of faith--the fruit of sudden impulse, breaking out
in sudden profession. Beware of a loose foundation. Men under the
present excitement run through all the sects and parties of the Church,
everywhere uttering their whole mind; "tossed to and fro, and carried
about by every wind of doctrine"--"seeking rest, and finding none."
(Eph. iv. 14.) How much better to take time for second thoughts, to
wait, and weigh again! We should then, instead of exhibiting a
1 Eccles. iii. 1-7. 2 Ib. viii. 5. Amos, v.13. 3 Chap. xviii. 13.
4 Chap. xvii. 28. 5 Chap. xxx. 32. Mic. vii. 5. 6 Eph. v. 4.
* Cartwright. Comp. Chap. x. 14; xii. 16, 23; xiii. 16; xiv. 83. Comp. Ecclus.
xxviii. 25.
568 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
changing and doubtful face, gain that "good thing--a heart esta-
blished with grace." (Heb. xiii. 9.)
This godly prudence holds in common life. Samson fell a victim
to the folly of uttering all his mind. (Judg. xvi. 17.) Samuel was
restrained by God from this imprudence, from a regard to his own
safety. Never speak against our mind. But it is not always necessary
to utter our whole mind. Take care that we speak nothing but the
truth. But the whole truth (as in the instance of Samuel) may some-
times be legitimately restrained. (1 Sam. xvi. 1, 2.) The Apostle was
two years at Ephesus, without uttering all his mind against the worship
of Diana. But was this cowardice shrinking from the truth? His
weeping ministry, and unceasing efforts, proved his faithfulness.1 His
open protest kept in till afterwards was self-discipline, consistent with
Christian courage and decisiveness.
12. If a ruler hearken to lies, all his servants are wicked.
The influence of the ruler's personal character upon his people
involves a fearful responsibility. A wicked prince makes a wicked
people.2 In his more immediate sphere, if he hearken to lies, contrary
to the laws of God and of charity;3 he will never want those about
him ready to minister to his folly. 'Lies will be told to those that are
ready to hearken to them.'† Envy, ambition, malice, self-interest, will
always be at hand for prejudice and scandal. The credulous ruler
becomes the tool of all manner of wickedness. His corruption pushes
away the godly from his presence; and all his servants are wicked.
Exceptions there are to this maxim (as Obadiah in the court of Ahab;"
Ebedmelech in the service of Zedekiah,5 Daniel in Nebuchadnezzar's
court.6) But this is the natural tendency, the general result, to his
own disgrace and ruin. If he would therefore rule in uprightness and
in the fear of God; instead of lending himself to detraction or flattery,
he must carefully close his ears against doubtful characters, lest he
should countenance wicked servants, and discourage those, that will
boldly speak the truth.
How wise was David's determination--both as the sovereign of
his people, and the ruler of his house--to discountenance lies, and
uphold the cause of faithful men! (Ps. ci. 2-7.) Contrast Ahab sur-
rounded with his wicked prophets; all combining in one lie to please
1 Acts, xix. 10, 23; xx. 31. 2 1 Kings, xv. 30; xvi. 2.
3 Exod. xxiii. I. M.R. Comp. chap. xiii. 5. 4 I Kings, xviii. 3.
5 Jer. xxxviii. 7-13. 6 Dan. ii. 48, 49.
* . . . . Componitur orbis
Regis ad exemplum; nec tantum inflectere sensus
Humanos edicta valent, quam vita regent is.
Mobile mutatur semper cum principe vulgus.
Claud. de Honorii Consul.
† Henry.
CHAP. XXIX. 13. 569
their weak and ungodly master. We see how ready he was to hearken
to lies, and how well the flattery worked; when he punished the only
man who was "valiant for--the truth," and who persisted in declaring
it--"not fearing the wrath of the king."*
But all in authority may learn a lesson of responsibility. Let
Ministers especially, not only hold the truth in its full integrity, and
take heed that their character will bear the strictest scrutiny; but let
them turn away from the fawning flattery of those, of whose uprightness
there is at best but doubtful proof.
13. The poor and the deceitful man (usurer, marg.) meet together: the
Lord lighteneth both their eyes.
The doctrine of this proverb, as of one similar to it (Chap. xxii. 2),
seems to be the real equality of the divine dispensations under apparent
inequalities. The rich seem to be intended by the deceitful; so called,
from the deceitfulness of riches,1 and of the means, by which they are
too often obtained.2 The usurer3 appears to point to the same pur-
port; implying the oppression too often connected with riches.† Both
these classes, so distinci in their relative condition, meet together on the
same level before God. However men may differ; however one may
oppress and despise, and the other envy or hate; however the poor may
be tempted to murmur because of the oppressions of his richer neigh-
bour; however the rich by usury or unjust gain may take advantage of
the necessities of the poor--the Lord enlighteneth both their eyes--"He
is no respecter of persons." (Acts, x. 34.) Both are partakers of his
providential blessings. (Matt. v. 45.) Both are the subjects of his
Sovereign grace; 'members of the same body, animated by the same
Spirit, appointed for the same inheritance; partakers of the same "great
and precious promises." There was not one prize for the soul of the
poor, and another for the rich. There was not one table for the meaner
guests, and another for the greater.'‡ The poor Lazarus and the usurer
Zaccheus have long met together in one common home; both alike the
undeserved monuments of wondrous everlasting mercy;--the eyes of
both enlightened, spiritually, eternally. (Luke, xvi. 22; xix. 9.)
Is it not presumption to judge hastily the ways of God; or to judge
them at all by the plummet of our own reason? (Ezek. xviii. 25.) Let
us wait the appointed time, and all will be clear, as all is right. How
1 Chap. xxiii. 5. Matt. xiii. 22. 2 1 Tim. vi. 9. 3 Comp. chap. xxii. 7.
* 1 Kings, xxii. 6, 26, 27. Comp. Hos. vii. 3. 'Many kings have been destroyed by
poison; but none has been so efficaciously mortal, as that drunk in by the ear'.--SOUTH
Massillon well taught his young prince, that the flattery of the courtier was little less dan-
gerous than the rebellion of the traitor.
† Ps. lxii. 9, 10. Jam. v. 1. For the same reason our Lord denominates riches generally
the distinctive term of "the mammon of unrighteousness." Luke, xvi. 9.
‡ Bp. REYNOLDS' Vanity of the Creature, Sect. 8.
570 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
far beyond our narrow conceptions is every exercise and display of this
manifold wisdom, grace, and love!
14. The king that faithfully judgeth the poor, his throne shall be established
for ever.
This maxim has often been repeated in substance. (Verses 4, 7;
xx. 28.) The writer of this book was a king. He was naturally led to
write for his own benefit, while the Divine Spirit guided his pen for the
use of rulers to the end of time. May every king--specially may our
own beloved Sovereign--place this picture of a godly ruler constantly
before the eyes! It is natural for the king to desire the establishment of
his throne, but not natural for him to seek it in God's own way. Jero-
boam sought it by wickedness;1 Rehoboam by worldly policy;2 Ahaz
by worldly alliances.3 The far more sure mode is the faithful adminis-
tration of justice, not neglecting the rich, but specially protecting the
poor, who from their weakness were in the greater need of a covering.4
David appears to have been a poor man's king, giving the lowest of
his people familiar access to him for judgment. (2 Sam. xix. 8.) Solo-
mon, and many of his godly successors, ordered their kingdom in the
same principles of justice, and were abundantly honoured of their God.
The maladministration of the rulers never failed to bring a curse upon
the governments "Them that honour me, I will honour; and they
that despise me shall be lightly esteemed." (1 Sam. ii. 30.)
When our Great Saviour King walked upon earth, his enemies bore
testimony, whether in flattery or conviction, to his righteous character.
(Matt. xxii. 16.) Not less beautiful than accurate is this description, as
applied to the principles of his government, in the connection with the
promise of the establishment of his throne.6
15. The rod and reproof give wisdom: but a child left to himself bringeth
his mother to shame.
Discipline is the order of God's government. Parents are his dis-
pensers of it to their children. The child must be broken in to "bear
the yoke in his youth." (Lam. iii. 27.) Let reproof be first tried; and
if it succeed, let the rod be spared. (Chap. xvii. 10.) If not, let it do its
work. Eli gave the reproof, "but spared the rod."7 The rod is evi-
dently to be taken literally, not metaphorically; corporal, not spiritual
chastisement.8
1 1 Kings, xi. 26. 2 2 Chron. xi. 22, 23; xii. 1. 3 Ib. xxviii. 16-20.
4 Chap. xxxi. 9. Ps. lxxxii 3, 4. 5 Isa. iii 13, 14; x. 1. Jer. xxii. 13-19. Zeph. iii. 3.
6 Ps. lxxii. 7, 11, 15. Isa. ix. 7; xi. 4, 9. 7 1 Sam. ii. 22. 25; iii. 13.
8 Chap. xxiii 13, 14. Comp. xix. 29; xx. 30.
*1 Kings, iii. 16-28. Jehoshaphat--2 Chron. xix. 5-11; xx. 30. Josiah-Jer, xxii.14-19.
Comp. Daniel's advice to Nebuchadnezzar, iv. 27.
CHAP. XXIX. 15. 571
Some give the rod without reproof, without any effort to produce
sensibility of conscience. From this tyranny or caprice nothing can
be expected. The combined influence not only "drives foolishness far
away," but, as a positive blessing, gives wisdom. (Chap. xxii. 15.) God's
own children grow wiser under correction. They see their folly, and
in genuine shame turn from it, blessing him for his rod of faithfulness
and love,1 and teaching us the folly of rejecting medicines because they
are bitter.
But look at the child left to himself--without restraint. A more
perfect picture of misery and ruin cannot be conceived. His evil
tempers are thought to be 1he accident of childhood. 'They will pass
away, as his reason improves. Time only can mend them.' But in
fact time of itself mends nothing. It only strengthens and matures the
growth of the native principle. This, being a decided bias to evil,
must tend to deadly injury. The mother cannot conjecture the future
stature, health, talents, or prospects of her new-born infant. But of one
thing she may be absolutely certain--a corrupt and wayward will.
The poison however does not appear at first. No special anxiety is
excited. The child is not nurtured in wickedness, or under the influ-
ence of bad example. He is only left to himself. Left! The restive
horse, with his rein loosened, full of his own spirit, plunges headlong
down the precipice. The child, without government, rushes on under
the impetuous impulse of his own will;* and what but Almighty
sovereign grace can save him from destruction? Many a hardened it
villain on the gallows was once perhaps the pleasing, susceptible child;
only left to himself, to his own appetite, pride, and self-willed-obstinacy.†
The sound discipline of heavenly guidance is our father's best
blessing. His most fearful curse, is to be given up to our own ways,
1 2 Chron. xxxiii. 12. Ps. cxix. 67, 71, 75. Luke, xv. 13-17. Mic. vi. 9.
* 'Puer, cui fraenum laxatum.'--SCHULTENS.
† Comp. 1 Kings, i. 6-9; ii. 23-25. Rousseau inculcated this system to its fullest extent
--'That no kind of habits ought to be impressed on children; that you should leave them
to the natural consequences of their own actions; and that, when reason comes to exert
itself in a maturer state, all will be right.' Upon which the following beautiful apostrophe
has been given--'Emilius! how I tremble for thee, while I see thee exposed to the care of
thy too ingenious tutor. I see thee wilful to thy parents; domineering in the nursery;
surfeiting on meats; inflaming thy body with noxious humours, thy mind with unquiet
passions; running headlong into dangers, which thou canst not foresee, and habits which
thou canst not eradicate; mischievous to others, but fatal to thyself.'--See Bp. HORNE'S
Sermon on Self-Denial. .'We pity orphans'--remarked a wise Christian parent--'who have
neither father nor mother to care for them. A child indulged is more to be pitied. It has
no parent. It is its own master, peevish, froward, headstrong, blind; born to a double
portion of trouble and sorrow above what fallen man is heir to; not only miserable itself,
but worthless, and a plague to all who in future will be connected with it. What bad
sons, husbands, masters, fathers, daughters, wives, and mothers, are the offspring of fond
indulgence, shewn to little masters and misses almost from the cradle! Wise discipline
gives thought and firmness to the mind; and makes us useful here, and fit for the world of
perfect subordination above.'--VENN'S Life, p. 257.
572 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
"to walk in our own counsels." (Ps. lxxxi. 12.) A child thus left is at
the furthest point from salvation, in the very jaws of the devouring lion.
Turn we now from the ruined child to the disgraced, broken-hearted
parent. The mother only is mentioned, as the chief superintendent of
the early discipline; perhaps also as the most susceptible of the grievous
error. For if the father's stronger character induces him to "provoke
his children to wrath" (Col. iii. 21); to rule rather by command than
by persuasion; does not the mother's softer mould tend to the opposite
evil? And so far as she yields to mistaken indulgence, she bears the
greater share of the punishment. It is not, that she is brought to
troub1e, or even to poverty; but to that, which is the most keenly-felt
of all distress--to shame.* Nowhere is God's retributive justice more
strongly marked. The mother's sin is visited in the proportioned pun-
ishment. What greater neglect of obligation, than a child left to
himself! What greater affliction, than the shame to which he bring,
her. Parental influence is lost. The reverence of authority is for-
gotten, as a by-gone name. (Chap. xix. 26.) The child rules; instead
of being as a corrected child, in subjection. (Heb. xii. 9.) The parent
fears, instead of the child; and thus virtually owns her own degra-
dation. Instead of "the wise son, that maketh a glad father;" it is
"the foolish son, that is the heaviness of his mother."1 The sunshine
of bright prospects is clouded. The cup of joy is filled with worm-
wood. The father's mouth is dumb with the confusion of grief. The
dearest object of the mother's tenderness, instead of being the staff and
comfort of her age, bringeth her to shame. Truly children, thus left to
themselves, will mingle the bitterest cup that man can ever have to drink,
and stir up the saddest tears, that ever eyes can have to weep.
This is not a trial, which, like many others, she might cover in her
own bosom. Alas! the shame is too public to be concealed. What
must have been the open dishonour upon Eli's name, when "the sins
of his children made men abhor the offering of the Lord!" When the
treason of David's sons brought him to shame in the sight of all Israel;
surely his own conscience, must have brought his own perverted fond-
ness to mind, as the cause of their ruin; both left to themselves--one
palliated in the most aggravated sin;2 the other having been not even
corrected by a word. (1 Kings, i. 5-9.) And if the shame before men
be so bitter, what will be the overwhelming confusion at the great con-
summation, when the evil propensities, cherished with such cruel fond-
ness in the parental bosom, shall produce their harvest "in the day of
grief and of desperate sorrow!" (Isa. xvii. 11.)
Oh! as our children's happiness or misery, both for time and eternity,
1 Chap. x. 1; xvii. 21, 25. 2 2 Sam. xiv. 21, 23; xv. 6; xviii. 33.
* Conturbator matris suae.'-- SCHULTENS. 'Filius confundens, confusion omni are
faciens, et perplexens.'--Ib. on Chap. x. 5.
CHAP. XXIX. 16, 573
is linked with our own responsibilities; shall not we "watch and
pray," and resist "the weakness of the flesh," in self-denying firmness?
'Take this for certain'--says Bishop Hopkins--'that as many deserved
stripes as you spare from your children, you do but lay upon your own
back. And those whom you refuse to chastise, God will make severer
scourges to chastise you.'* At whatever cost, establish your authority.
Let there be but one will in the house. And let it be felt, that this
will is to be the law. The child will readily discover, whether the
parent is disposed to yield, or resolved to rule. But however trifling
the requirement, let obedience be, in small as great matters, the indis-
pensable point. The awe of parental authority is perfectly consistent
with the utmost freedom of childlike confidence. Nay--it is the very
foundation of it (for the child can hardly appreciate the kindness of a
parent, whom he thinks afraid to strike), while it operates as a valuable
safeguard against a thousand follies of uncontrolled waywardness. But
ever let us put the awful alternative vividly before us. Either the
child's will, or the parent's heart, must be broken: "Without a wise and
firm controul, the parent is miserable; the child is ruined.†
16. When the wicked are multiplied, transgression increaseth: but the
righteous shall see their fall.
The increase of transgression is obviously proportioned to the increase
of transgressors. (Hos. iv.7.) Nor is it merely a numerical increase,
but also in power and daring of sin. "The men, who began to multiply
upon the face of the old earth, were giants" in wickedness, as in strength,
until "the striving of the Spirit of God" could endure no longer. (Gen.
vi. 3.) Thus was it with the Babel-builders (Ib. xi. 8), and the cities
of the plain. (Ib, xviii. 20.) Combination emboldens in sin. (Isa.
xli. 7.) Each particle of the mass is corrupt. The mass therefore of
itself ferments with evil. Hence the prevalence of infidelity in our
densely-crowded districts above the more thinly-populated villages.
There is the same evil in individual hearts; but not the same fermenta-
tion of evil.
But for the prospects of faith, the Christian eye could not bear the
* Works, i. 450.
† 'I earnestly entreat you'--writes the wise and experienced Josiah Pratt to his
children--'to subdue the wills of your children most tenderly if you can? But if not,
your duty and your love require measures, which shall enforce obedience. Commit your-
selves as little as may be into a contest with your children. But having once done this,
you must maintain the contest till the child yields. Every such victory will make the
text easier, and in all likelihood deter the child from entering on another contest. And
you must make thorough work of it, if you would bless the child. The guile of the heart
is seen in combination with its self-will, in trying to evade your authority. A very young
child puts forth perhaps his first approaches to sin in acts of cunning and rebellion. Rely
with unshaken confidence on that divine maxim--"Train up a child in the way he should,
go, and when he is old, he will not depart from it."'--Memoir, Chap. xix.
574 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
sight. But the righteous shall see their fall.1 Noah saw the destruction
of the old world,2 Abraham the ruin of the devoted cities;3 "Israel saw
the Egyptians dead upon the sea-shore." (Exod. xiv. 30.) 'Let not
the righteous'--said good Bishop Patrick--'be discouraged; for the
wickeder men are, the shorter is their reign.' The faithful Minister,
conscious of his inability to stem the everflowing torrent of iniquity
would sink. In despair, but for the assured confidence, that he is on the
conquering side; that his cause, as the cause of his Lord, must even-
tually prevail. Yes--though now sin seems to triumph, and Satan
boasts of his victories; yet" the kingdoms of this world," with all their
vast population, shall "become the kingdoms of our Lord and his it'
Christ, and he shall reign for ever and ever." (Rev. xi. 15.) This is
indeed the supporting joy of faith; to realize the glory of this day,
when the righteous shall see the fall of the now triumphing wicked; and
one universal shout shall swell throughout the earth--"Alleluia;
salvation, and glory, and honour, and power, unto the Lord our God;
for true and righteous are his judgments--Alleluia; for the Lord God
Omnipotent reigneth."4
17. Correct thy son, and he shall give thee rest; yea, he shall give delight
unto thy soul.
Once more the wise man returns to the subject of discipline. These
repeated inculcations5 strongly shew its importance. The command
is positive--Correct thy son. How can an upright judgment evade
or explain away a plain, literal rule? This, book of Proverbs is not
out of date. Like every other part of the Sacred Volume, it is the
Book for every age; "given by inspiration of God; profitable for doc-
trine, and written for our learning."6 To try therefore more self-
pleasing rules, is to set up our will in opposition to God's; reason or
feeling in the stead of faith. It is making ourselves "wise above that
which is written."
The measure and mode of correction indeed must depend upon the
age, sex, temper of the child, the character, the aggravation, or the
mitigated circumstances, of the fault. But let it be, like our gracious
Father's discipline, never more than can be borne.7 Make due allow-
ance for any marks of ingenuous confession. Yet with a wise applica-
tion of the principle, there must be no exception to the rule. Different
tempers, like different soils, require corresponding difference of treat-
ment. But discipline there must be; not relaxed in fondness, not
pushed on in harshness; but authority tempered with love.8 If a
gentle hand cannot controul, a stronger hand must be applied.
1 Ps. xxxvii. 34; lviii. 11. 2 Gen. vii. 23. 3 Ib. xix, 28.
4 Rev. xix. 1-6, with xv. 4; xviii. 20, Comp. 18a. lxvi. 24.
5 Verse 15. Chap.iii. 24; xix. 18; xxii. 15; xxiii. 13, 14. 6 2 Tim. iii. 16. Rom. xv. 4.
7 Isa. XXVII. 8; lvii. 16. 1 Cor. X. 13. 8 See Wisd. vi. 17.
CHAP. XXIX. 17. 575
We may take rest without correction; but such rest will bring
trouble in the end. The true rest is that, which our child will give;
and that he may give it, the rule is--Correct.1 We may be assured,
that God would not have so insisted upon it, if a blessing was not with
it. If Eli was rejected, it was because in this matter he "honoured his
sons above God."2 Those then "that honour him" above their sons
"he will honour." Pain is the present exercise both to parent and
child,3 but the after blessing is secured. (Heb. xii. 11.) Ground well
tilled, trees carefully pruned, bring forth more fruit."
Observe how the objection of parental weakness is anticipated.
'If I put my son to pain, will he not hate me?' No--when "left to
himself," he was a deep and anxious trouble. Now he shall give thee
rest. Before--he "brought thee to shame." (Verse 15.) Now he shall
give delight to thy soul." The momentary feelings of the child under
correction will give way to the conviction of the parent's wisdom and
regard for his profit. (Heb. xii. 9.)
Yet the rule against discouragement would not have been repeated,
had there not been some parental evil to be corrected. "Provocation"
revolts, transfers confidence to most unworthy associates, and brings
into ruinous temptations. Children claim a considerate treatment.
They must not be driven by brute force. Authority must be tempered
with love. The grounds of extraordinary commands should be explained
to them. What is good should be liberally commended. The best
construction should be put upon defective efforts. The distinction
should be carefully drawn between weakness and wilfulness, between
heedlessness and obstinacy. Home should be gladdened with the
invigorating joy of spring, and replete with every wholesome indul-
gence. Every attempt should be made to gain confidence, so that the
child, instead of a cold trembling reserve, should run into our arms.
But in this glowing atmosphere, forget not God's rule. The complete-
ness of discipline is the father's firmness combined with the mother's
tenderness; each infusing into the other the quality of each. A wise
parent will put his seal to the testimony, that this well-disciplined edu-
cation is the surest means of securing the children's affection, gratitude,
and reverence.
In fine--on this important subject so often enforced--we are not
taught to believe without promises, or to obey without precepts. The
Book of Proverbs exhibits cause and effect--the certain consequence of
a given course of action, whether good or evil. It sets out promise and
obligation--promise fulfilled in the way of obligation. The promised
blessing to godly parental discipline is written in beams of living light.
If the grace of the promise be lost, it is only by unbelief in the promise,
1 Comp. Ecclus. xxx. 2. 2 1 Sam. ii. 29, 30. Contrast Gen. xxii. 12.
3 Chap. xv. 10. 4 Chap. xxiii. 13-16, 24, 25.
576 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
or by a presumptuous confidence in it (separating the end from the
means) such as brings shame in the issue. It is not that God is untrue,
but that we are unfaithful. God has given the promise. Man either
slights, rejects or abuses it. He attempts to put aside the Scripture by
an appeal to experience, instead of proving the faithfulness of God by
"the obedience of faith." The commands--the directions--the promises--the
blessing--all are the Lord's. Put his word to the test. The simplicity and
perseverance of faith will be richly honoured in his own best time and way.
18. Where there is no vision, the people perish* (is made naked, marg.);
but he that keepeth the law, happy is he.
The vision--as appears from the contrast--is divine instruction.
(1 Sam. iii. 1.) The Ministry is the appointed ordinance to communi-
cate this blessing;1 and therefore the main instrumentality of conversion,2
and subsequent Christian perfection.† No greater calamity therefore
can there be than the removal of the vision. The temporal famine,
affecting only the body, is a light judgment, scarcely to be mentioned,
compared with that, by which the people perish--"the famine of hearing
the words of the Lord."3 For 'when there is none that can edify, and
exhort, and comfort the people by the word of God, they must needs
perish. They become thrall and captives unto Satan. Their heart is
bound up. Their eyes are shut up; they can see nothing. Their ears
are stopped up; they can hear nothing. They are carried away as a
prey into hell, because they have not the knowledge of God.'‡
Often did Israel provoke this most fearful judgment--the removal
of the open vision.4 "The candlestick " of the Apocalyptic Churches
has from the same cause been long since removed out of its place;"
and for the most part little more remains than the ceremonial of by-
1 1 Sam. ix. 9. Mal. ii. 7. Eph. iv. 11. 2 1 Cor. i. 21. Jam. i. 18. 1 Pet. i. 23.
3 Amos, viii. 11, 12. Isa. viii. 16.
4 1 Kings, xii. 28-32; 2 Chron. xv. 3-5. Ps. lx.xiv. 9. Lam. i. 4; ii. 9. Ezek. vii. 26. Hos.
iii. 4.
*Comp. Exod. xxxii. 25. 2 Chron. xxviii. 12. Geier and others give--'Dissipantur'--
scattered. Matt. ix. 36. Naked. Marg.--without clothing, in which to appear before God.
Every view pourtrays a state of desponding misery.
† 1 Cor. xiv. 3. Eph. iv. 11-14. 1 Thess. iii. 10. And yet this most fruitful organ of
divine agency (preaching), which our blessed Lord honoured as the grand medium of his
own teaching (Ps. xl. 9, 10. Isa. lxi. 1, 2) is now depreciated as the mark of 'a Church
only in a weak and a languishing state, and all instrument, which Scripture--to say the
least--has never much recommended.' (Tracts for the Times, 87, p. 75.) Far more orthodox
is the sentiment of one of our venerable reformers. 'Thus we may learn the necessity of
preaching and what inconvenience follows when it is not used. Where preaching fails"
--saith Solomon--"there people perish." Therefore let everyone keep himself in God's
school-house, and learn his lesson diligently. For as the body is nourished with meat; so
is the soul with the word of God.' Bp. PILKINGTON'S Works, p. 112. Parker Society's
edition. 'The meanest village'--Luther was wont to say--'with a Christian pastor and
flock; is a palace of ebony.'
‡ Bishop JEWELL on the Scriptures.
CHAP. XXIX. 18. 577
gone days.1 From the Apostate Church of Rome, the vision is well-
nigh withdrawn, and the people perish in ignorance and delusion. For
as our Protestant Cranmer nobly testified—‘I know how Antichrist
both obscured the glory of God, and the true knowledge of his word:
overcasting the same with mists and clouds of error and ignorance
through their false glosses and interpretations. It pitieth me'--he
I adds, 'to see the simple and hungry flock of Christ led into corrupt
pastures, to be carried blindfold they know not whither.'*
In other bodies also, "having a name to live," the complaint is as
real, as in days of old--"My people are destroyed for lack of know-
ledge. (Hos. iv. 6.) The sun shines not on more wretched objects,
than on the awful masses of our fellow-sinners, growing up in habitual
estrangement from God.
It has been calculated, that between four and five millions of our
countrymen are living in habitual separation from the worship of gods
Whether from the guilty neglect of rulers, the wilful neglect of indi-
viduals, or from the population having grown far beyond the extent of
instruction provided, certain it is, that in the most enlightened country
in the world, to vast masses of our poor there is no vision, and the people
perish in ignorance--"the things belonging to their peace being hid
from their eyes!Ӡ
Take the most awful illustration of this Proverb that can be
imagined. If to be without vision be the mark of a perishing state,
what ray of Scriptural hope dawns upon the Heathen world? Being
"without Christ," they are described by infallible testimony as "having
no hope." (Eph. ii. 12.) Salvation is indeed free to all, "whosoever
shall call upon the name of the Lord." But how shall they call with-
out faith; believe without hearing; "hear without a preacher?" (Rom.
x. 13-17.). If therefore there be no vision, how can they but perish?
"They perish indeed without law" (Ib. 11. 12) (not condemned under
the law of revelation, which they have never known); but still the
perish "without excuse" (Ib. i. 20), alienated from the life of God
through the ignorance that is in them, because of the "blindness of "
their hearts." (Eph. IV. 18.) Proud reasoning man revolts, and pre-
Burnes to be more merciful than God. But this false charity is only the
cover for selfishness. Men deny the danger, because they are too
indolent, too self-indulgent, to stretch out the helping hand, or to make
one sacrifice for the rescue. True charity is the fruit of reverential
faith. And, while it realizes the tremendous peril, it concentrates all
the energy of compassionate tenderness, believing prayer, and self-
denying effort upon their salvation.
1 Rev. ii. 1-5, iii. 1-3, 15, 16.
* Preface to Defence of the True and Catholic Doctrine of the Sacrament.
†Luke, xix. 42 So far as the mass has been reached, we are deeply indepted to the
Pastoral Aid Society, which may well be called our Home Missionary Society.
578 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
But the contrast is not between those, who have not the vision and
those who--have it; but between the destitution and the improvement
of the blessing. The mere profession of the Gospel may be a nullity.
Of what use is light, if we open not our eyes to see it? So far from
becoming a blessing, it will only issue in deeper condemnation.l If
some are enlightened, multitudes are struck blind. (John, xii. 40.) But
this true vision--the object really beheld as life and light to the soul
--is the spring of that happy keeping the law,2 which realizes no less a
privilege than communion with our God and Saviour here and for
eternity.3 Yes, truly--to be interested in the promises of God; to be
an inheritor of everlasting glory; to be the present possessor of divine
favour; to be secured from the peril of everything against him, and
assured of the supply of all things that will work for his good--this is
the happy portion of the practical disciple. And indeed in the ordinary
course of life, as Hooker observes in his godly instructiveness--'what
event soever ensue, it breedeth, if not joy and gladness always, yet
always patience, satisfaction, and reasonable contentment of mind.
Whereupon it hath been set down as an axiom of good experience, that
all things religiously taken. in hand are prosperously ended; because,
whether men in the end have that, which religion did allow them to
desire, or that, which it teacheth them contentedly to suffer, they are in
neither case unfortunate.'*
Who then can justly cast a cloud of gloom over the ways of God?
Let the Pentecostal Christians witness to their gladness. (Acts, ii. 46, 4.7.)
Let every servant of his Lord invite his fellow-sinners to the enjoyment
of his privileges by the manifestation of their holiness and joy.
19. A servant will not be corrected by words: for though he understand, he
will not answer.
Discipline must be carried, not only into the family (Verses 15,17),
but throughout the whole household, in order to preserve God's autho-
rity and order. An important hint is here given relative to the manage-
ment of servants. Though it does not apply to all,† it shews a very
common temptation to self-will. There is a proud as well as an humble
silence; as plain a proof of an unsubdued spirit, as a pert and flippant
answer. The patience of Job was sorely exercised by this trial; and
that under circumstances, that made the treatment more aggravated.
(Job, xix. 16.) We must guard against harshness in our spirit.4 But
with servants, as with children, authority must be maintained at any
cost. And therefore, if a servant understand the command, and will not
1 Matt. xi. 20-24. Luke, xii. 47, 48.
2 Chap. iii 21-24; iv. 5-9; viii. 32-35; xix. 16. Luke, xi. 28. John, xiii. 17.
3 John, xiv. 21-23. Rev. xxii. 12, 14. 4 Lev. xxv. 43. Comp. Ecclus. xxxiii. 28, 29.
* Eccl. Pol. b v. c. 1, 2.
† The LXX. renders, but without authority from the original—‘an obstinate servant.'
CHAP. XXIX. 20, 21. 579
answer; if he will not be corrected by words, it were better to dismiss him
than to lower our authority, and countenance evil by yielding to his
waywardness.
The Scripture fully sets out the duties of servants--"Not answering
again. With good-will doing service, as to the Lord, and not to man."l
Sullen resistance to reproof is most inconsistent with the profession of
a Christian; and, if the offender escapes the correction of an earthly
master, he will be visited with the rod of his angry Lord, as a self-
deceiver, or backslider from his high obligation.2
20. Seest thou a man that is hasty in his words? there is more hope of a fool
than of him.
We have just been warned against sullen silence. The next warn-
ing is directed against hasty words. When a man flows on in his words,
evidently without time for consideration (Chap. xviii. 13); when he
gives his opinion, as if it were a loss of time to take counsel, or regard
the judgment of others; when you find him forward in pronouncing
judgment before men of acknowledged wisdom and experience; this is
the "tool uttering all his mind" (Verse 11); the man lately marked out
for our warning (Chap. xxvi. 12), as an hopeless fool, "wise in his own
conceit."
It is very difficult to deal effectively with him. Until the strong-
hold of his own conceit be shaken, argument and instruction are lost
upon him. The man who is conscious of his weakness, distrusts him-
self and is ready to ask and receive counsel; is more likely to be led
right, than he, who thinks himself to be right already.
It is a special mercy to be preserved from hasty judgments, or ex-
pression of judgments. The first stamp upon a perfect mind is infal-
libly correct. On an imperfect mind it must he subjected to a careful
scrutiny. It is sound, wisdom to admit, that our judgment may be mis-
taken. Self-controul and self-diffidence give solid consistency. This
character of mind is most important in religious disputations. Be
careful to defend or contravene nothing, till you have tested it by the
true standard. Moses deferred judgment on the sin before his eyes, till
he had brought the matter to God. (Lev. xxiv. 12.) "Be swift to hear;
slow to speak." (James, i. 19.)
21. He that delicately bringeth up his servant from a child shall have him
become his son at the length.
We have another valuable rule for domestic discipline; directing
masters to a wise treatment of their servants. It is a grievous error to
step ourselves, or to induce another to step out of the path, which a
1 Titus, ii. 9. Eph. vi. i. 2 Chap. xix. 29; xxvi. 8.
580 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
God of order has marked for us. Divine Wisdom has framed the con-
stitution of society, assigning to each their station and their duties. If
a servant aspire to be in the house anything but a servant, his character
loses its value. A master acts--to say the least--most unseemly,
when he forgets his own place and authority, and delicately bringeth up
his servant by the allowance of undue freedom. It is a great exercise
to preserve the true medium between distance and familiarity. An
haughty, menacing demeanour towards our servants forgets the respect
justly due to them. (Eph. vi. 9.) An inconsiderate fondness takes them
out of their place, greatly to their own injury. Our Lord's distinction
shews, that friends--not servants--should be admitted to our familiar
intercourse, and entrusted with our confidence. (John, xv. 15.) To
promote a servant therefore to the rank of a confidant, unfits him for
his own condition, and defeats our own end by the natural results of
this unnatural treatment. True kindness keeps him in his place. 'Good
usage does by no means imply that indulgence, that would ruin a
child.'* A servant delicately brought up--often from a child--if he be
not taken down in time, and made to know his place--soon relaxes in
respect and attention. Instead of this false kindness stimulating to
diligence, and inducing gratitude; he becomes idle, insolent, and
ungovernable (Comp. Ecclus. xxxiii..25-27); assumes the young master
--becomes a son at the length. This unseemly usurpation is an evil,
"that the earth cannot bear--a servant, when he reigneth."† Ish-
bosheth must have allowed Abner undue liberty, when he so far forgot
the respect due to his sovereign, as to insult him before his face.
(2 Sam. iii: 8.) David also must have loosened the reins of proper
authority, when Joab murdered the commander-in-chief at the head of
his army, without being instantly subjected to the penalty of the law.
(Ib. xx. 10.) Even the wise man appears to have forgotten his own
prudent caution, when he delicately brought up Jeroboam in authority;
and promoted him too suddenly. He lived to regret his error, when
with the pretension of a son he combined the pride of a rebel. (1 Kings,
xi. 26-28.) The confusion and anarchy of after years in the kingdom
originated in the same false step. (Ib. xvi. 9-12.) The greatest kind-
ness to servants is to "give to them that which is just and equal"
(Col. iv. 1)--but no more. Any defect in this rule will be sure to bring
(as in the case referred to) future trouble, as the just chastening for
present folly. What need have we of the daily supply of Divine grace,
to rule our house well in due subjection! The resolution to "behave
ourselves wisely in a perfect way" can only be accomplished in the
*Scott.
† Chap. xxx. 21, 22. Lord Bacon suggests for the good ordering of servants--1. That
we promote them by steps, not by leaps. 2. That we occasionally deny their wishes,
'Sudden elevation'--he adds--induces insolence. The constant granting of their wishes
makes them only more imperative In demand.'—Advancement of Learning, Book xii
CHAP. XXIX. 22. 581
habitual prayer--"O, when wilt thou come unto me?" Then indeed
"I will walk within my house with a perfect heart." (Ps. ci. 2.)
22. An angry man stirreth up strife, and a furious man aboundeth in
transgression.
Anger is not necessarily a sinful passion. Even furiousness--the
overflowing of the torrent--is a property in God. (Nah. i. 2.) We can
readily conceive of its energy in the unfallen nature of man. Had Satan
appeared to Eve in his own open hatefulness, her anger against him
would have been a holy principle. But in a fallen nature, to presence
its purity is a rare and most difficult matter. It must be confined to
points, where God's honour is concerned (John, ii. 15-17); and even on
these points the rule must be observed--"Let not the sun go down
upon your wrath." (Eph. iv. 26.) The short period of the day is abun-
dantly sufficient to express right motives, and to accomplish holy
purposes.
The general tendency of anger is however here most truly described.
Its active energy stirreth up strife.l It quarrels even upon trifles,2--or
matters, which a forbearing consideration might have satisfactorily
explained. (Acts, xv. 39.) And when suppressed, but not laboriously
mortified, how often does it become more intense, and break out more
furiously--abounding in transgression! Indeed it is difficult to take a
full view of the mighty power of this mass of sin. It gives the impetus
to every besetting propensity. It may be blasphemy! (Lev. xxiv. 10,
11.) It stops at nothing. How many murders do we owe to this
paroxysm of the moment!3 But for the divine restraints, the very
foundations of society would be torn up!
Parents! Do we feel the responsibility of early checking this ebulli-
tion in our children? And do we diligently watch against the first
rising in ourselves, incessantly praying for its subjugation? How
beautiful are the instances of Almighty grace--such as Henry Martyn*
--transforming the furious man into the likeness of his meek and holy
Master!
But let us not be satisfied with the outward constraint upon pas-
sion. God condemns the deep-rooted principle that gives it birth.
Wretched heart! filled with soul-destroying corruption. Every, even
the least, indulgence operates fearfully. So much time spent in excite-
ment! So much more in the unquiet waiting for the desired oppor-
tunity! And all given to the great Murderer! Oh! for the mystery
and doctrine of the cross, to mould our temper into its genuine spirit
and influence!
1 Chap. xv. 18; xxvi. 21; xxx. 33. James, iii.16. 2 1 Tim. vi. 4.. 2 Tim. ii. 23, 24.
3 1 Sam. xviii 9, 10; xxii. 5-19. Matt. ii. 16. Acts, vii: 54-59; xii. 19.
*Life, p. 8. Pref. to 10th edit.
582 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
23. A man's pride shall bring him low: but honour shall uphold the
humble in spirit.
This Proverb--Bishop Hall remarks in his own style--'is like
unto Shushan: in the streets whereof honour is proclaimed to the
humble Mordecai; in the palace whereof is erected an engine of death
to a proud Haman.'* It exhibits the spirit of our Lord's oft-repeated
declaration expounded by his daily Providences--"Whosoever shall
exalt himself shall be abased; and he that shall humble himself shall
be exalted."† The real value of man in himself is so small, that the
Psalmist is at a loss where to find it.1 His undue value of himself is
utter delusion; having lost all; stripped of all; yet proud, as if he were
the possessor of all. He raises himself to heaven in his airy visions;
but soon does he meet with his own punishment--A man's pride shall
bring him low.‡ We see this in the world. The proud conceit of rank,
talent, or any superiority, subjects to continual mortification;2 while on
the other hand, humility, at first considered a mean and servile spirit,
ultimately comes to its just estimation.
The world counts nothing great without display. But mark the
substantial "honour that cometh from God only." "Heaven is my
throne; and earth is my footstool; yet to this man will I look--to
him that is poor, and of a contrite spirit." (Isa. lxvi. l, 2.) Yea--"I
dwell--saith the high and lofty One that inhabiteth eternity--with
him that is of a contrite and humble spirit." (Ib. lvii. 15.) Humility is
indeed true greatness--'the crown'--as Mr. Howels fine1y remarks--
'of finite beings, made and jewelled by the hand of God himself.
Supremacy is the g1ory of God; humility is the ornament of his chi1d.'§
"I am but dust and ashes. I am 1ess than the 1east of all thy mercies.
I abhor myself. Sinners--of whom I am chief"3--such are the self-
abasing confessions of men great in Jehovah's eyes. They shine with
the reflection of his glory; but they turn away with genuine humility
from their own shining.
Men of this stamp" the king delighteth to honour." Their dignity
begins on earth, and is crowned in heaven. "Blessed are the poor in
spirit; for theirs is the kingdom of heaven." (Matt. v. 3; xviii. 4.)
Poor they may be in station. But they shine forth as mightier con-
1 Ps. viii. 3, 4; cxliv. 3; xxxix. 5. 2 1 Kings, xxi. 1-4. Esth. v. 13,
3 Gen. xviii. 27; xxxii. 10. Job, xlii. 6. 1 Tim. 1. 15.
*Sermon on Text. Works, v. 270
† Matt. xxiii.12. Luke, xiv. 11 ; xviii. 14. The speech of Artabanus to Xerxes before
his invasion of Greece, is a striking testimony from an Heathen, 'God delights to depress
whatever is too highly exalted. Thus a large army is often defeated by a small one. When
God in his jealousy throws them into a panic, or thunders against them, they miserably
perish. For God suffers no mortal to think magnificently--HERODOTUS, Book vii c. 10
‡ Job, xl. 12. Ps. xviii. 27. Comp. Zeph. ii. 1. Rev. xviii. 7, 8. and references on Chap.
xvi. 18, 19.
§ Sermons, i. pp. 335, 336.
CHAP. XXIX. 24. 583
querors than Alexander. Their real glory eclipses the glare of the pomp
and "pride of life."
The elevation of the proud is often the step to their downfall. But
God's honour, put upon his own people, upholds them, as Joseph and
Daniel, in their high eminence, as witnesses for his name. Meetness
for heaven is that adorning clothing of humility, which leads us to
ascribe all our grace to God, and all our sin to ourselves. This is the
prostrate adoration of heaven. (Rev. v. 9-12.) The Lord imbue us
richly with this spirit.
Indeed all chastening discipline is for the great purpose, to "hide
pride from man" (Job, xxxiii. 17), and to bring us low in our own eyes,
that his honour may" lift us in due time."1 It is with us as with our
Lord--honour comes out of humilation.2 'Thou meanest to be not
our Saviour only, but our pattern too. If we can go down the steps of
thine humiliation, we shall rise up the stairs of thy glory.'*
24. Whoso is a partner with a thief hateth his own soul: he heareth
cursing, and bewrayeth it not.
This is a warning under the eighth commandment. Do we realize
the same solemnity of obligation as under the first? Many professors
attach a degree of secularity to a detailed application of the duties of
the second table. But both stand on the same authority. The trans-
gressions of both are registered in the same book. The place in the
decalogue cannot be of moment, if it be but there with the imprimatur
--"I am the Lord thy God." The law acknowledges no difference
between the thief and his partner. Consenting to sin--receiving the
stolen goods-involves us in the guilt and punishment.3 The accom-
plice may be less practised in sin. He may be only commencing his
course. But the first step is the way of death,--acting as if he hated
his own soul.4 One step naturally leads on to another. Suppose him
to be called to give evidence upon oath concerning his knowledge or
privity of the deed. Would not this be a temptation to perjury, rather
than to discover his fellow? Under the perverted obligation of his
bond of secrecy he heareth cursing--the solemn adjuration to declare
the truth on pain of the curse of God5--and he bewrayeth it not. 'He
keeps his wicked counsel, and will not betray.'
Oh! how frightful is the history of thousands, whose fellowship
with sinners has drawn them into fellowship with sin, and ultimately
to take the lead in sin!--whose entrance into the path has led them
step by step into the very depths of depravity! And of these thousands,
1 1 Pet. v. 6. Job, xxii. 29. 2 Chap. xv. 33; xviii. 12.
3 Chap. i. 10-15. Ps. 1.18-21. Isa.. 1.23, 24. 4 Comp. vi 32; viii. 36; xv. 32.
5 Comp. Lev. v. 1. Num. v. 21. 1 Kings, xxii. 16. Matt. xxvi. 63.
* Bp. Hall ut supra.
584 EXPOSITION OF 'IRE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
how few--it is to be feared--retrace their steps and become like
Onesimus, true followers of Christ, and faithful servants to man!*
25. The fear of man bringeth a snare: but whoso putteth his trust in the
Lord shall be safe. (Marg. set on high.)
A snare brings a man into straits. He is not master of himself.
Here Satan spreads the snare, and the fear of man drives into it. And a
fearful snare it is, and ever hath been to thousands. Many, once
entangled, have never escaped. It besets every step of the path-way to
heaven, every sphere of obligation. The king turns aside from strict
integrity.1 The judge wilfully pronounces an unrighteous sentence.2
The Minister faints under the cross;3 and too avoid it, compromises the
simplicity of the Gospel.4 There is a timidity in acting out an un-
popular doctrine. The people cannot bear the full light. The Sun of
righteousness is therefore exhibited under a mist; but dimly visible;
shorn of his glowing beams. The strictness of the precepts is unpalat-
able. It must therefore be softened down modified, or explained away.5
Or inconstancy of profession must be quietly dealt with, lest the good
opinion of some influential man be forfeited. Such is the power of evil
shame! Such low thoughts, not only of God, but of immortal souls,
and usefulness to our fellow-sinners! This time-serving shews a man-
pleaser, not a true "servant of God" (Gal. i. 10), and brings a blast
alike to his work and to his soul.†
The same deadly influence operates in families. Sometimes even
parents shrink from the open protection of their child. (John, ix. 22.)
They dare not avow a supreme regard to his primary interests, or pro-
fess in opposition to many around them, the Patriarch's godly deter-
mination--"As for me and, my house"--however evil it may seem to
others--"we will serve the Lord." (Josh. xxiv. 15.)
Every class of society exhibits this corrupt principle. Perhaps the
highest are bound in the most abject and hopeless chains; and to their
tyrant they seem to acknowledge a sort of conscience, or religious
obedience. They will set at nought all religion without fear; but such
submissive slaves are they to the omnipotency of fashion, that they
would "tremble very exceedingly"‡ at the suspicion of godliness
1 1 Sam. xv. 24. Matt. xiv. 9. 2 John, xix. 8, 13, 16. 3 1 Kings, xix. 3. Jon. i. 1-3.
4 Gal. ii. 12; vi. 12 5 Isa. xxx. 9, 10. Jer. v. 31.
*Epistle to Philemon.
† Zech. xi. 17. 'Remember Dr. Dodd '--writes Mr. Venn to his son--' myself heard
him tell his own flock, whom he was lecturing in his house that he was obliged to give up
that method of helping their souls because it exposed him to so much reproach. He gave
it up, and fell from one compliance to another, with his corrupt nature; and under what
reproach did he die!' Let the concluding advice of this excellent Minister be well pondered.
--'Be afraid of nothing more than the detestable cowardice of a selfish and unbelieving
heart.'--Life, pp. 255, 256.
‡ Gen. xxvii. 33. The same word in the original.
CHAP. XXIX. 25. 585
attaching to them; thus "honouring" a vain idol above the Lord of
heaven and earth. Many would be bold to front danger, who would
shrink from shame. They would fearlessly face the cannon's mouth,
and yet be panic-struck at the ridicule of a puny worm. Or even if
some public excitement roused an impulse of boldness for religion, in
the more quiet atmosphere there is a cold timidity of silence. They
shrink from the bold consistency of a living witness. They are afraid
of the stamp of singularity. They are satisfied with a meagre external
decorum, with no spiritual character or privilege. All is heartless
delusion.
What--again, makes so many, specially among the young,
ashamed to be found upon their knees; to be known as readers of their
Bibles; to cast in their lot decidedly among the saints of God? They
know the Christian to be on the right side; and oft is there a whisper
of conscience--'Would that my soul were in his place!'1 But they
have only half a mind to religion. The fear of man bringeth a snare.
And therefore they ask--not' What ought I to do?' but, 'What will
my friends think of me?' They cannot brave the finger of scorn. And
if they seem for a while to be in earnest, 'their slavish fears' (as Bunyan
well describes the case), overmaster them. They betake themselves
to second thoughts--namely--that it is good to be wise, and not to
run, for they knew not what, the hazard of losing all, or at least bring-
ing themselves into unavoidable and unnecessary troubles.'* They
would rather writhe under their convictions, till they have worn them-
selves away, than welcome what Moses "esteemed greater riches than
the treasures of Egypt--the reproach of Christ." (Heb. xi. 26.)
But how painful to see the children of God entangled in the snare!
The father of the faithful twice denied his wife.'2 His son follows his
weak example.3 "Aaron fashions the golden calf,"4 "The man after
God's own heart" sinks himself into the lowest degradation.5 Hezekiah,
distinguished for his trust, gives way to his fear.6 The ardent disciple,
even after the most solemn pledges to his Saviour, and after all act of
great boldness in his defence, yields up his courage to a servant girl,
and solemnly abjures his Lord.7 Oh! do we not hear the warning
voice against "entrance into temptation--against the weakness of the
flesh?"8 Let us run into our hiding-place, and cry--"Hold thou me
up, and I shall be safe." (Ps. cxix. 117.) Humbling indeed is the con-
trast between the boldness of the servants of Satan and the timidity of
the soldiers of Christ! Who of us has not cause of painful self-con-
demnation?
1 John, vii. 13; xii. 42, 43. Acts. xxvi. 11. 2 Tim. i. 15; iv.16. 2 Gen. xii. 11-13; xx. 2,11.
3 Ib. xxvi. 7. 4 Exod. xx-xii. 22-24. 5 1 Sam. xxi. 10-13.
6 2 Kings, xviii. 13-16. 2 Chron. xvi. 1-7. 7 Matt. xxvi. 69-74.
8 Ib. ver. 41
* Conversation between Hopeful and Christian.
586 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
How different is this servile principle from the godly fear of sin
which the wise man had lately marked as the substance of happiness!
(Chap.. xxviii. 14.) That is a holy principle; this an inlet to sin.l That
is our keeping grace;2 this wounds our conscience, and seduces us also
from our allegiance. 'By the fear of the Lord men depart from evil;3
by the fear of man they run themselves into evil.'* The one is the
pathway to heaven. (Chap. xix. 23.) The other, involving the denial
of the Saviour, plunges its wretched slave into the lake of fire. (Mark,
viii. 38. Rev. xxi. 8.)
But even apart from this tremendous end, observe its weighty hin-
drance to Christian integrity. Indeed--as Mr. Scott most truly
observes--'it is'--often at least--'the last victory the Christian
gains. He will master, by that grace which is given of God, his own
lusts and passions, and all manner of inward and outward temptations.
He will be dead to the pleasures of the world, long before he has mas-
tered this fear of man. "This kind of spirit goeth not out" but by a
very spiritual and devout course of life.'† The hindrance meets us at
every turn, like a chain upon our wheels; so that, like the Egyptian
chariots, they "drive heavily." (Exod. xiv. 25.) Oh! for a free deli-
verance from this principle of bondage; scarcely however to be expected,
till we have been made to feel its power!
Thank God--there is a way of deliverance. Faith unbinds the
soul from fear. If fear makes the giant tremble before the worm, trust
in the Lord makes the worm stronger than the giant. Neither the fury
of the King,4 or of the people;5 neither the fire,6 or the den of lions,7
daunts and hurts him that "believeth in his God." 'He that fears to
flinch, shall never flinch from fear.‡ Faith gives power to prayer.
The strength from prayer makes us cheerful in obedience, and resolute
in trial. Here is safety, strenght, courage, peace. Nothing but faith
gives the victory; but the victory of faith is complete.§ He only, who
putteth his trust in the Lord, is prepared, when God and man are at con-
traries, to "obey God rather than man." (Acts, iv. 19.) A secret union
with God is implanted in the soul by this faith; an union as righty, as
it is secret; a sacred spring of life--the energy of God himself (Gal.
ii. 20); triumphant therefore in the mightiest conflict with the flesh.
The man, dependent on the world for happiness, is in bondage. The
1 Gen. xxxix. 9, with Isa. lvii. 11. 2 1 Cor. x. 12 Heb. iv. 1. 3 Chap. xvi. 6.
4 2 Kings, vi. 31, 32. 5 Num. xiv.6-10. 6 Dan. iii. 17.
7 Ib vi. 10
* FLAVEL'S Treatise on Fear, Chap. ii. †Life, pp. 116, 117. ‡ Hildersham.
§ 1 John, v.4. 5. Comp. Heb. xi 27. 'I cannot wield the sword of the Spirit'--said
the weak and timid Haller to his friends, when going to the disputation at Berne against
the Romanists. 'If you do not stretch your hands to me, all is over.' He then threw
himself trembling at the feet of the Lord, and soon rose enlightened, and exclaiming-
‘Faith in the Saviour gives me courage, and scatters all my fears.'-D'AUBIGNE'S Hist. Refor.
Book xv. Chap. ii.
CHAP. XXIX. 26, 27. 587
servant of God is in liberty. It matters not to him, whether the world
smile or frown. He is safe, beyond its reach--set on high.1 Faith
brings him to his strong tower. (Chap. xviii. 10.) There he is "kept
by the power of God unto salvation." (1 Pet. i. 5.) Fear brings us into
the snare. Faith brings liberty, safety, exaltation. Oh! thou God of
power and grace, may my soul praise thee for this mighty deliverance,
this joyous freedom! May I never be ashamed of my Master! May I
be bound to his people, and glory in his cross! (Gal. vi. 14.)
26. Many seek the ruler's favour; but every man's judgment cometh from
the Lord.
Therefore seek God to be your friend. "In his favour is life." (Ps.
xxx. 5,) Confidence in man is no less sinful2 and dangerous3 than the
fear of man. Yet with what diligence will men seek earthly advan-
tage! Many seek the ruler's favour4 more than God's, and sacrifice
their consciences, and hazard their souls, to obtain it. But when they
have bought it at such a price, what is it?--as easily lost, as it was
hardly gained. The caprice of an hour may destroy the hard-earned
object. (Gen. xl. 1, 2.) And then what have they to live upon? All
this is forgetting, that every man's judgment cometh from the Lord. Here
then is the solid ground of faith. First, begin with God; all judgment
is in his hands. "Commit thy way unto the Lord; trust also in him,
and he shall bring it to pass."* Let him choose and dispose our lot.5
Consider everything that passes as coming from him. In everything,
great and small, deal with him. Ponder with him. His favour, unlike
the changing favour of the ruler, "is without variableness, or shadow of
turning." And when, through the fickleness of man, earthly prospects
are fading, then rest in quiet--"Surely my judgment is with the Lord."6
'As thou wilt, what thou wilt, when thou wilt.'† This is the shortest,
the surest, way of peace--"Only believe."
27. An unjust man is an abomination to the just: and he that is upright in
the way is abomination to the wicked.
Here is the oldest, the most rooted, the most universal quarrel in
the world. It was the first-fruit of the fall. (Gen. iii. 15.) It has con-
tinued ever since, and will last to the end of the world. It is always
kept up at the highest point. Each party is an abomination to the
1 Ps. lxix. 29; xci. 14. Isa. xxxiii. 16. 2 Ps. cxlvi. 3, Isa. ii. 22. Jer. xvii. 5, 6.
3 Isa. xxx. 1-3; xxxi. 1-3. 4 Chap. xix. 6. 5 Ps. xlvii. 4. Chap. xvi. 33.
6 Isa. xlix. 4. Jon, xxxiv. 29.
* Ps. xxxvii, 5, 6. He needeth not to flatter the ruler; for what God hath appointed,
that shall come to him.'--Reformer's Notes. 'The determination concerning a man is from
Jehovah.'-- Bp. LOWTH'S Prelim. Dissertation to Isaiah.
† Thomas a Kempis.
588 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
other. It is not only, that they are as contrary in character, as light is
to darkness; but there is a mutual antipathy, that can never be softened
down.
Let us look at each of the parties in this open opposition to each
other. An unjust man is an abomination to the just. Is it then his sin
to be at such contraries with his fellow-sinner? No rather--it is the
very holiness of his character and profession. If he have any appre-
hensions of the boliness of God; if through grace he is delivered from
the love and dominion of sin, is not the sight of sin hateful to him?
And while he abhors it most of all in himself, yet does not the watching
of the evil in his own heart deepen his abhorrence and detestation of it
in those around him? He would not spare it in those most dear to
him. He appeals to his God in the burst of holy indignation. "Do
not I hate them, O Lord, that hate thee? and am not I grieved with
those that rise up against thee? I hate them with a perfect hatred: I
count them mine enemies."1
Looking at the other party--the wicked hold the upright in equal
abomination. (Verse 10.) "The carnal mind is enmity against God,"
and cannot therefore bear his image in his children. (Rom. viii. 7.)2
Gladly would the wicked, were not their enmity restrained, root them
out of the face of the earth;" as they never rested, till they had nailed
the Son of God to the tree. Here however is the main difference. The
enmity of the just is against the sins, not the persons, of the wicked.
How do they with all this principle love their souls, and pray for
them! (Rom. ix. 1; x. 1.) How gladly would they win them to Christ
and salvation! The enmity of the wicked is against the persons--the
ways of the upright--all that belongs to them. 'This is that strong
poison in the serpent's seed,'* the murderous spirit of their father
the devil!
The soul is wearied with the unceasing struggles with the enemies
of truth. How can one forbear the wish for the "wings of a dove to
flyaway, and be at rest! " (Ps.lv. 6.) And how could we hold on the
contest, but for the blessed hope--O Lord! hasten it in thy time--
when the woman's conquering "seed shall bruise the Serpent's Head,"
and the head of all3 his seed, finally and for ever; and he shall reign
King and Saviour over his redeemed people.
1 Ps. cxxxix. 21, 22. Comp. chap. xxviii. 4. 2 John, xv. 17-19. 1 John, iii. 12,13.
3 Ps. xlv. 3, 4. Rev. xix. 11-16.
* LEIGHTON on 1 Pet. iii. 14.
CHAP. XXX. 1, 3. 589
CHAPTER XXX.
1. The words of Agur the son of Jakeh, even the prophecy: the man spake
unto Ithiel, even unto Itiel and Ucal: 2. Surely I am more brutish
than any man, and have not the understanding of a man. 3. I neither;
learned wisdom, nor have (gathered together, marg.) the knowledge of
the holy.
THE two concluding chapters of this Book are an appendix to the Pro-
verbs of Solomon. Nothing certain is known of the writers; and it is
vain to speculate, where God is silent. Far better is it to give the full
interest of our mind and heart to the matter of instruction, than to
indulge unprofitable curiosity respecting the writers. Our ignorance
of the writers of many of the Psalms in no degree hinders their profit
to us. We know their author, when the penmen are hid. It is
enough for us to be assured, that they were "holy men of God,"
who wrote ''as they were moved by the Holy Ghost." (2 Pet. i. 21.)
Agur was doubtless one of the wise men found in many ages of the
Old Testament Church. His words were a prophecy;--that is--divine
instruction* given unto Ithiel and Ucal (Ithiel especially) probably two
of his scholars, whose names are equally unknown to us. Perhaps they
came to him for instruction, and he was led to express himself in the
most humbling sense of his own ignorance. 'You come to me for
instruction. But surely I am more brutish than any man; not having
the advantages of learning wisdom (Amos, vii. 14, 15), or the knowledge
of the holy God (Dan. iv. 18), and of the holy revelation of his name.'
His language is indeed strong. Stronger could scarcely have been
used. He confesses himself to be, not only brutish, as man is by nature;
but, though enlightened by heavenly teaching, more brutish than any;
man. Were these the words of truth? Or were they the affectation
of modesty? Or was it false humility, dishonourably denying the
work of God? He was now speaking from the mouth of God. And
how could he dissemble in his name? He spake the truth as it really
is, as consciousness could not but speak; as self-knowledge under;
divine teaching dictated. For let a man take "the candle of the
Lord;" given him to "search all the inward parts of the belly" (Chap.
xx. 27); and what a mass of vanity will he find there! Such folly
mixed with his wisdom! such ignorance with, his knowledge! that,
instead of pluming himself upon his elevation above his fellow-men, he
can but cry out in shame--Surely I am more brutish than any man!
1 Job, xi. 12. Ps. xlix. 20. Jer. x. 14.
* This was a frequent Scripture name for ordinary instruction. Chap. xxxi, 1 Cor.
xiv. 1, 3, 4. 1 Thess. v. 20.
590 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
Whoever knows his own heart, knows that of himself, that he can
hardly conceive of anyone else being so degraded as himself.*
Add to which--it is the child of God comparing himself with his
perfect standard. And in the perception of his own short-comings, the
most discerning clear-sighted penitent feels, that he can never abase
himself as he ought before his God--He would lie low, lower still
infinitely lower, in the dust. Holy Paul, comparing himself with the
spirituality of the perfect law, exclaims--"I am carnal, sold under
sin." (Rom. vii. 14.) Isaiah, in the presence of a holy God--cries
out--"Woe is me, for I am undone; because I am a man of unclean
lips." (Isa. vi. 5.) Job in the manifestation of the power of God sinks
into absolute nothingness and unworthiness. (Job, xl. 4; xlii. 6.)
David in the full view of the wisdom of God is made to see the per-
verseness of his own folly, and take up the very confession of Agur--
"So foolish was I, and ignorant; I was as a beast before thee!"† The
nearer our contemplation of God, the closer our communion with him,
the deeper will be our self-abasement before him; like the winged
seraphs "before the throne, who with twain cover their faces, and with
twain cover their feet." (Isa. vi. 2.) Well, therefore, may the wisest
and holiest of men, though "renewed in knowledge after the image of
him that created him" (Col. iii. 10), take up the humiliating confession
--Surely I am -more brutish than any man--Genuine humility is the
only path of wisdom. Unless a man stoops, he can never enter the
door.--He must become "a fool, that he may be wise."‡ And when
he is hum bled in his shame, then let him see the house of his God in
its breadth and length (Ezek. xliv. 5); enjoying clearer, and panting
still for clearer manifestations of the incomprehensible God.
But how reverently should we approach this divine presence!
With what holy hands should we open his revelation! dreading a
careless, light, and presumptuous spirit; yet withal cherishing those
nobly ambitious desires for deeper and higher knowledge; yea--
reiterating them before our God with that repetition, which to a carnal
* Comp. chap. xiv. 10. The following remarks of a profound divine will illustrate this
subject--'He that has much grace, apprehends much more than others that great height
to which his love ought to ascend: and he sees better than others, bow little a way he has
risen towards that height. And therefore estimating his love by the whole height of his
duty, hence it appears astonishingly low and little in his eyes--True grace is of that
nature, that the more a person has of it, with remaining corruption, the less does his good-
ness and holiness appear in proportion, not only to his past but his present deformity, in
the sin that now appears in his heart, and in the abominable defects of his highest and best
affections.'--EDWARDS on Relig. Affections, Part iii. sect. vi.
† Ps lxxili. 1-22, 'a beast.' The original is the plural of excellence conveying an
intensitiveness, not easy to transfer acceptably into our idiom. Bp. Horsley gives it—‘I
was as a brute before thee.'
‡1 Cor. iii.18. There is a fine ray of wisdom in that consciousness of ignorance, that
led Socrates to confess--'I only know one thing--that I know nothing.' Comp. 1 Cor. 1
viii. 2.
CHAP. XXX. 4. 591
mind would be nauseating tautology; but which he who knows our
hearts loves to hear, and will beyond our desires abundantly fulfil.
4. Who hath ascended up into heaven, or descended? who hath gathered the
wind in his fists? who hath bound the waters in a garment: who hath
established all the ends of the earth? what is his name, and what is his
son's name, if thou canst tell?
Can we wonder that Agur should have acknowledged, his brutishness,
now that he was contemplating the majesty of God, so wondrous in his
works, so incomprehensible in his nature? The eye was blinded by
the dazzing blaze of the sun. To behold Jehovah ascending and descend-
ing in his own glorious person;1 afterward in the person of his dear
Son2 (for in his great work was not his Father's name in him?); to
see him holding the loose winds as firmly as a man might hold in his
fists;* to see his almighty controul of the waters,4 and his establishment
of the ends of the earth.5--this is a sight, that might make the highest!
and wisest of men sink into nothingness before him. Who hath done
this, none can doubt. The challenge is thrown out as a demonstration
that it was God alone. 'Shew me the man, that can or dare arrogate
this power to himself.'†
But when we pass from the works to their great Maker, truly it is
an overwhelming view--What is his name, if thou canst tell? "Canst
thou by searching find out God? Canst thou find out the Almighty
unto perfection? He dwelleth in the light, which no man can approach
unto, whom no man hath seen, nor can see."6 How can we express
him in words, or conceive of him in thought? Child of God! "Be
still, and know that he is God." (Ps. xlvi. 10.) Restrain thy reason.
Humble thy faith. "Lay thine hand upon thy mouth." Lie in the
dust before him. "O the depth!" (Rom. xi. 33)--open only to him
whose "understanding is infinite."7
But how does the mystery increase! What is his name, if thou canst
tell? And who can tell? "No one knoweth the Son, but the Father."
(Matt. xi. 27.) Yet there is a Son in the Eternal Godhead; a Son, not
begotten in time, but from eternity (Chap. viii. 22-30); his name
therefore, not as some would have it, a component part of his humilia-
tion but the manifestation of his Godhead: co-existent with his Father
1 Gen. xi.1; xvii. 22; xviii. 21. Exod. iii.8. 2 John, i. 51; iii. 13; vi. 62. Eph. iv. 9, 10.
3 John. x. 30. 38; xiv. 10. Comp. Exod. xxiii. 21.
4 Job, xxvi. 8; xxxviii 8-11. Isa. xl. 12. Jer. v. 22.
5 Job, xxvi. 7; xxxviii. 5. Ps. xciii. 1; cxix. 90.
6 Job. xi. 7-9. 1 Tim. vi. 16. Comp. Job, xxxviii. 3. ,4. 7 Ps. cxlvii. 5. Isa. xl. 28.
* Job, xxviii. 25. Comp. Ps. civ. 3; cxxxv. 7. The Heathens dream of a lower Deity,
whom Jupiter appointed as storekeeper, to still or raise the winds at his pleasures. HOM.
Odyss. K. 21, 22. VIRG. AEn. i. 69, 70.
† Bishop Hall.
592 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
in the same ineffable nature, yet personally distinct.* What is his
name? and what his Son's name? Sovereignty--Omnipresence--Omni-
potence is his. He too controuls the winds and waters,1 and establishes
the earth,2 as one, who is in the visible "form of God, and thinketh it
not robbery to be equal with God." (Philip. ii. 6.)
What is his name? The secret name is easily spelt. (Rev. xix.
12,13.) But the mystery is hid. We must not enquire too curiously.3
Be careful that we stop, where Revelation stops. Beyond this bound,
every step is a trespass "on forbidden ground," intruding into those
things which we have not seen, "vainly puffed up by our fleshly
mind." (Col. ii. 8.) Many however are so bewitched by their own
fancy, that they conceive themselves to understand this name. They
think far higher of their wisdom than Agur did, and are at no loss at
all to explain what they conceive in their proud ignorance to be the
full meaning of the inscrutable subject. But the genuine disciple
acknowledges the nature of the Son to be alike incomprehensible with
that of the Father. He humbly lies at his feet, and thankfully adores
the mystery, which he cannot "by searching find out." (Job, xi. 7.)
Yet what Revelatlon hath brought up to us from these untraceable
depths are pearls of great price. Let us reverently gather them for
the enriching of our souls. So far as our Divine Teacher leads us by
the hand, let us diligently follow him. Within his bounds let us freely
expatiate, through the length and breadth of the land. The wholesome
dread of being "wise above that which is written," must not damp the
holy ardour to be wise and wiser continually in that which is written.
Curiously to inquire is rashness; to believe is piety; to know indeed
is life eternal.† Unsearchable as he is in his greatness; yet so near
is he to us, that we can rest in his bosom. Yours--Christian--is
the unspeakable privilege to be one with him, who is One with God.
And therefore, if you tell his name, as you are bound to tell what is
revealed, is it not all that is infinitely great, combined with the endear-
ing relations--Husband--Brother--Saviour--King?
5. Every word of God is pure (purified, marg.): he is a shield unto them
that put their trust in him. 6. Add thou not unto his words, lest he
reprove thee, and thou be found a liar.
Nothing is learned solidly by abstract speculation. Go to the book.
Here all is light and purity. Though "secret things belong to the
Lord our God; yet the things that are revealed" are our holy direc-
1 Matt. viii. 26; xiv. 32. 2 Heb. i.. 3. 3 Gen. xxxii. 29. Judg. xiii. 18.
* 'We have a full and clear testimony of the distinction of persons, and that the Son is
equal to the Father, and of the same substance with him.' LAVATER. See Scott in loco.
Mr. Holden considers this interpretation to be 'natural and unforced, and very suitable
to the context,'
†Bernard.
CHAP. XXX. 5, 6. 593
tory. Everything is intended to influence the heart and conduct.
(Deut. xxix. 29.) How unlike the sacred books of the heathen, or the
sensual religion of Mahomet! Here is no license, or encouragement
to sin, no connivance at it. All lurking sins, cherished in the dark
cavern of pollution, are brought to light, and reproved. Every word of
God is pure. Of what other book in the world can this be said? Where
else is the gold found without alloy? The word is tried. (Heb.) It
has stood the trial, and no dross has been found in it. 'Having God
for its Author, it has truth without any mixture of error for its matter.'*
"The words of the Lord are pure words, as silver tried in a furnace of
earth, purified seven times."1
But if every word of God is pure, take care that no word is slighted.
How few range over the whole Revelation of God! To take a whole
view of the universe, we should embrace not only the fruitful gardens,
but its barren deserts, coming equally from the hand of God, and none
of them made for nought. To take a similarly comprehensive view of
the sacred field, we must study the apparently barren, as well as the
more manifestly fruitful, portions. Meat will be gathered from the
detailed code of laws, from the historical annals of the kings, and from
the "wars and fightings"--the prolific results of "the lusts of men."
(Jam. iv. 1.) The whole Scripture is Scripture, and "all Scripture is
profitable." (2 Tim. iii. 16.)
Favouritism however is a besetting snare in the sacred study. A
part is too often taken instead of the whole, or as if it were the whole.
One is absorbed in the doctrinal, a second in the practical, a third in
the prophetical, a fourth in the experimental, Scriptures; each seening
to forget, that every word of God is pure. Some clear defect in the
integrity of profession proves unsoundness. The doctrinist becomes
loose in practice; the practical professor self; righteous in principle.
The prophetic disciple, absorbed in his imaginative atmosphere, neglects
present obligations. The experimental religionist mistakes a religion
of feeling, excitement, or fancy, for the sobriety and substantial fruit-
fulness of the gospel. All remind us of our Lord's rebuke--"Ye do err
not knowing the Scriptures." (Matt. xxii. 29.)
The great exercise therefore is--to bring out the whole mass of
solid truth in all its bearings and glory. So wisely has God linked
together the several parts of his system, that we can receive no portion
soundly, except in connexion with the whole. The accuracy of any
view is more than suspicious, that serves to put a forced construction
upon Scripture, to dislocate its connexion, or to throw important truths
into the shade. Apparently contradictory statements are in fact only
balancing truths; each correcting its opposite, and, like the antagonal
1 Ps. xii. 6. Comp. Ps. cxix. 140. Chap. viii. 8, 9.
* Locke.
594 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
muscles, contributing to the strength and completeness of the frame.
Every heresy probably stands upon some insulated text or some
exaggerated truth, pressed beyond "the proportion of faith." But none
can stand upon the combined view and testimony of Scripture. Nor
let it be sufficient, that our system includes no positive error, if some
great truths be lacking. Let it be carefully grounded upon the acknow-
ledgment--Every word of God is pure. Some of us may err in pre-
sumptuous familiarity with Scripture; others in unworthy reserve. But
If the heart be right, self-knowledge will develope the error, and self-
discipline will correct it.
Christian simplicity will teach us to receive every Divine Truth
upon this formal ground--that it is the word of God. Though it is
not all of equal importance; it will be regarded with equal reverence.
We acknowledge implicitly God as the Author of every particle of
Scripture, and that every word of God is pure. To reject therefore one
'jot or title is a sufficient demonstration,'--as Dr. Owen admirably
observes--'that no one jot or title of it is received as it ought. Upon
whatsoever this title and inscription is--'The Word of Jehovah,--
there must we stoop, and bow down our souls before it, and captivate
our understandings unto the obedience of faith.'*
This holy reverence is combined with trust in God. Blessed trust,
which brings a shield of special favour over his trembling child!1
Sometimes indeed is Satan permitted to envelope him in darkness, and
to picture, as it were, frightful transparencies upon his prison wall.
What would he do in this time of terror, did he not find a shield and a
covert in the bosom of his God? Yes--if the word of God be pure, it
must be a sure ground of trust. We may take its dictum with un doubt-
ing confidence, that he is a shield, as to Abraham of old (Gen. xv. 1), so
to Abraham's children, that put their trust in him.† In all circumstances
from within and from without--when I quake under the terrors of the
law, in the hour of death, in the day of judgment--"Thou art my
shield." (Ps. cxix. 114.) Nothing honours God, like this turning to him
in every time of need. If there be rest, peaceful confidence, safe keep-
ing, here it is. And where is it found beside? Despondency meets the
poor deluded sinner, who looks for some other stay. And even the child
of God traces his frequent want of protection to his feeble and uncertain,
use of his Divine shield.
But the word of God is not only pure, and cannot deceive. It is also
sufficient; and therefore, like tried gold, it needs no addition for its per-
fection. Hence to add to his words, stamped as they are with his
1 Ps. ii. 11, 12. Isa. lxvi. 2.
*OWEN on the Perseverance of the Saints, chap. x. See Life of Mary Jane Graham,
chap. v.
† Ps. v. 12. Comp. the same connexion, xviii. 30.
CHAP. XXX. 5, 6. 595
Divine authority, will expose us to his tremendous reproof, and cover us
with shame.l The Jewish Church virtually added their oral law and
written traditions. (Mark, vii. 7-13.) The Church of Rome is not less
guilty, and as a church has been found a liar; adding to the inspired
canon a mass of unwritten tradition, and apocryphal writings, with all
their gross errors, and in despite of the clearest proof of their human
origin.* The attempt in our own day to bring tradition to a near, if not
to an equal, level with the sacred testimony, is a fearful approach to
this sinful presumption. A new rule of faith is thus introduced--an
addition to the Divine rule, of co-ordinate authority.†
The needlessness of this addition is obvious. For if "the holy
Scriptures are able to make us wise unto salvation" (2 Tim. iii. 15),
what want we more? And if this were spoken of the Old Testament
Scriptures, the sufficiency of a part confirms the larger sufficiency of the
whole, while it excludes all reference to any other sufficiency; just as
the sufficiency of the early light for all practical purposes, while it pre-
cludes the necessity of the light of a candle, establishes the fuller ad-
vantage of the light of perfect day. If "Scripture be profitable for
doctrine, for reproof, for correction, and for instruction in righteous-
ness;" if the man of God be perfected, and throughly furnished by it"
(Ib. verses 16,17), what clearer demonstration can be given of its abso-
lute completeness? To reflect therefore upon the integrity of this
Divine rule of faith, and to shake confidence in its sole authority, is to
bring in a false principle, the source of every evil and corruption of the
faith.
Never indeed was it so important to clear from all question the
momentous controversy--what is, what is not, the Word of God. The
Lord has most carefully guarded his pure word from all human admix-
ture. May he preserve his ministers from "teaching for doctrine the
commandments of men;" saying, "The Lord hath said it, when he hath
not spoken! "What a reverential awe, what godly jealousy, should
they exercise, to add not to the pure word by the glosses of false interpre-
tation; not to expound their own minds, instead of the mind of God!
7. Two things have I required of thee; deny me not them before I die: 8.
Remove far from me vanity and lies: give me neither poverty and
riches; feed me with food convenient (of my allowance, marg.) for me:
1 See Deut. iv. 2; xii. 32. Rev. xxii. 18, 19. 2 Ezek. xiii. 7-9, with Matt. xv. 9.
* Mr. Horne has conferred an obligation upon the Church, by publishing separately his
valuable Digest of the Apocryphal Question, from the last edition of his Introduction.
† 'Scripture is not the only ground of the faith' (NEWMAN'S Lectures on Roman, p. 369)
'Catholic tradition is a divine informant in religious matters.' (Ib. 329) 'the unwritten
word' (Ib. 255) 'We agree with the Romanist in appealing to antiquity as our great teacher
(Ib. 47.) 'These two (the Bible and Catholic tradition) together make up a joint rule (of faith).
Ib. 327. Obviously therefore, while the inspiration of Scripture may be admitted, Tradition
claims our equal reverence to its authority.
596 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
9. Lest I be full, and deny thee, and say, Who is the Lord? or lest I
be poor, and steal, and take the name of my God in vain.
Though Agur had confessed his brutishness before his God yet his
prayers (the most accurate test of a man of God) prove him to have
been possessed of deep spiritual understanding. "We ask, and receive
not, because we ask amiss, that we may consume it upon our lusts."
(Jam. iv. 3.) How wisely gracious therefore is the teaching of the
divine Comforter, "helping our infirmities" in prayer, and by moulding
our petitions, "according to the will of God," ensuring their accept-
ance. (Rom. viii. 26, 27.) Agur's heart must have been under this
heavenly teaching; dictating his prayers by a primary regard to his
best interests, and by a spiritual discernment of what would probably
be beneficial, and what injurious to them.
Two things he especially required--not as though he had nothing
else to ask, but as being the pressing burden of the present moment. And
these he asks--as if he would take no denial (Gen. xxxii. 26)--with all
the intense earnestness of a dying sinner--Deny me them not before I die!
His prayers are short, but comprehensive. Though little is said,
yet that little is fraught with matter; framed in its proper order.
Spiritual blessings occupy the first place; temporal blessings are
secondary, and in subserviency to them.
Remove from me vanity and lies. Is not this the atmosphere of the
world? vanity its character--lies its delusion; promising happiness,
only to disappoint its weary and restless victims? How can the hea-
ven-born soul breathe in such a world? Everything deadens the,
heart, and eclipses the glory of the Saviour. "The soul cleaveth to the
dust." "All that is in the world, the lust of the flesh, and the lust of
the eyes, and the pride of life--is not of the Father, but is of the
world." (1 John, ii. 16.) And therefore "they that observe lying
vanities forsake their own mercy." (Jonah, ii. 8.) A soul that knows
its dangers and its besetting temptations, will live in the spirit of this
prayer of the godly Agur--remove from me--far from me--as far as
possible, vanity and lies. "Turn away mine eyes"--prayed a saint of
God in the same watchful jealousy--"from beholding vanity. Remove
from me the way of lying." (Ps. cxix. 37, 29)
But how singular, yet how fraught with instruction, is Agur's
second prayer! All are ready to pray against poverty. But to deprecate
riches--this is not nature's desire, but an impulse of godly fear and
trembling, that cometh from above. 'Give me not riches'--is scarce
the prayer of one in ten thousand. Agur, as a wise man, desired the
safest and happiest lot; not, as Israel of old, "meat for his lust;"1 but
food convenient for him, measured out in daily allowance,2 suitable to his
1 Ps.lxxviii. 18. 2 Comp. 1 Kings, iv. 21. 2 Kings, xxv. 30.
CHAP. XXX. 7-9. 597
need. This is obviously not a fixed measure. It implies, not a bare
sufficiency for natural life, but a provision varying according to the
calling, in which God has placed us. 'If Agur be the master of a
family, then that is his competency, which is sufficient to maintain his
wife, children, and household. If Agur be a public person, a prince or a
ruler of the people; then that is Agur's sufficiency, which will con-
veniently maintain him in that condition.'* Jacob when "he had be-
come two bands," evidently required more than when in his earlier life
"with his staff he had passed over Jordan." (Gen. xxxii. 10.) What
was sufficient for himself alone, would not have been sufficient for the
many that were then dependent upon him. The immense provisions
for Solomon's table, considering the vast multitude of his dependants,
might be only a competency for the demand. (1 Kings, iv. 22.) The dis-
tribution of the manna was food convenient--nothing too much, but no
deficiency--"He that gathered much had nothing over; and he that
gathered little had no lack." (Exod. xvi. 18.) And thus, in the daily
dispensation of Providence, a little may be a sufficiency to one, while
an overflowing plenty is no superfluity to another. Only let Christian
self-denial, not depraved appetite, be the standard of competency.
Proud nature never stoops so low.1 The Apostle distinctly traces to
the influence of Divine teaching his Christian moderation in his diver-
sified conditions of abundance and of want.† Philosophy may have
inculcated the lesson; but Almighty grace alone can command the
practice of it.
It is a question'--says Dr. South--'whether the piety or the pru-
dence of this prayer be greater.‡ Agur was well persuaded of the
temptations incident to these two opposite conditions--the vanity and
lies belonging to riches (Ps. lxii. 9), the discontent and occasion of sin,
which are the snares of poverty. Yet he does not pray absolutely
against these states, only submissively. It is the prayer of his choice, the
desire of his heart, that God would graciously exempt him from both,
and bless him with a middle condition. Nor does he ask this for the
indulgence of the flesh. He deprecates not the trouble, anxieties,
and responsibilities of riches, which might betoken an indolent, self-
pleasing Spirit; nor the miseries and sufferings of poverty; but he cries
for deliverance from the snares of each condition--Let me not be rich,
lest I be full, and deny thee. Let me not be poor, lest I steal, and take the
name of my God in vain.
And alas! the danger of these results is but too evident. Both ex-
tremes are the borders of fearful temptation. Strange and irrational as
1 Eccles. v. 10. Hab. ii. 5. 1 Tim. vi 9, 10.
* MEDE'S Sermon on Agur's Choice.
† I have learned--I have been instructed--expressions taken from the instruction in the
Heathen Mysteries. Phil. iv. 11, 12.
‡ Sermon on James, iii. 16.
598 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
it may appear, such is the depravity of our nature, that mercies induce
neglect, and often, casting off, of God.l Lust is too strong for con-
science. Rarely does "the daughter of Tyre come with her gift, or the
rich among the people entreat the favour" of their God. (Ps. xlv. 12.)
Too often, the more we receive from God, the less he receives from us.*
The twining thorns choke the heavenly plant. (Matt. xiii. 22.) And as
we prosper in the flesh, we are impoverished in the spirit. But not less
imminent are the dangers of pinching poverty; nor is it every Christian,
that can honourably grapple with them. Dishonesty is a besetting
temptation,2 followed up by perjury to escape punishment.3 Thus two
commandments are broken, and the sinner is in "the snare of the devil,
taken captive by him at his will." (2 Tim. ii. 26.)
The 'golden mean' (for so even a heathen could describe it† is
recommended by patriarchs,4 prophets,5 and apostles.6 Nay, our Lord
teaches us to pray for it in terms identical with this petition. For what
else is our "daily bread" but food convenient for us?‡
We must however be careful, that we use Agur's prayer in his spirit.
Perhaps the Gospel rather teaches us to leave the matter entirely with
God. Both riches and poverty are his appointment.§ It may please
him to place us in a high condition; to entrust us with much riches, or
to exercise us with the trials of poverty. Many of his children are in
both these conditions.|| And shall they wish it otherwise? Let them
rather seek for grace to glorify him in either state. Or if it seem lawful
to pray for a change of condition, let us not forget to pray for a single
eye to his glory, that his will, not ours, may be done in us. 'Whither-
soever God gives'--said the pious Bishop Hall--'I am both thankful
and indifferent; so as, while I am rich in estate, I may be poor in
spirit; and while I am poor in estate, I may be rich in grace."¶
1 Job, xxi. 18, 14; xxii. 17, 18. 2 Chap. vi. 80.
3 Chap. xxix. 24. Comp. Lev. vi. 2,8; xix. 11, 12. Zech. v. 3, 4.
Gen. xxviii. 20. 5 Jer. xlv. 5. 6 Philip. iv. 11, 12. 1 Tim. vi. 6-10.
* Deut. vi. 11, 12; viii. 10-18; xxxii. 15. Hos. xiii. 6. What a deep knowledge of the
heart is implied in that petition of our Litany for deliverance in all time of wealth! How
hard to realize the time of wealth as the time of special need!
† 'Auream quisquis mediocritatem
Diligit, tutus caret obsoleti
Sordibus tecti, caret invidenda
Sobrius aula.'--HORAT. Carm. lib. ii. 10.
+ The learned Mede insists upon this identity. Things fit and sufficient, precisely
answers to arton eipiousion. (Matt. vi. 11) a sufficiency as it were epi thn ousian,
adequate to our being and support--bread sufficient--the bread we have need of. Thus
periousia signifies abundance or superfluity--peri, ultra or super--as it were, an overbeing.
§ Riches are his gift, 1 Kings, iii. 13. Poverty is his will, Deut. xv. 11. Comp. Job, i. 21.
|| Abraham-David-Solomon-with Lazarus and the heirs of his kingdom, James, ii. 5.
¶ Work. viii. 195. 'Our Saviour, in the prayer he taught, directs us to pray in general
that God would give us daily bread, and deliver us from evil; without specifying the ex-
tenal comfort we might desire, or the particular disagreeable occurrences we might wish
to be secured against: but leaving it to the goodness of our heavenly Father to determine
CHAP.XXX. 10,11. 599
10. Accuse not (hurt not with thy tongue, marg.) a servant unto his
master, lest he curse thee, and thou be found guilty.
Let not this Proverb be a shelter for unfaithfulness. How much
evil goes on in a family, because those that are privy to it, and ought
to inform, shrink from accusing a servant to his master! 'They must not
make mischief in the house, or bring themselves into trouble.' But we
owe it alike to master and to servant1 not to wink at sin. We may
owe it to ourselves to accuse the servant to his master for injury to our-
selves. (Gen.xxi.25,26.) Yet let a fellow-servant first observe our
Lord's rule of privacy. (Matt.xviii.15.) Let every exercise of faithful-
ness be in the spirit of love. Beware of the busy wantonness of the
talebearer. (Lev.xix.16.) Never make trouble for trifles; or accuse
the servant, when he may not have the full liberty and power to defend
himself. When conscience does not constrain us to speak, the law of
love always supplies a reason for silence. The Jewish servants were
ordinarily slaves, for the most part crushed by their masters' oppression.
Cruel therefore would it be without strong cause to heap degradation
upon a sinking fellow-creature, for whom the Mosaic law prescribed
kindness and protection. (Deut.xxiii.15.)
The rule however may be more generally applied. David suffered
severely from unkind accusations to his royal master.2 Those who take
the most eager pleasure in finding fault are usually those, who can least
bear the retort upon themselves. Take heed, lest, while thou art ex-
posing "the mote in thy brother's eye," thou be reminded to thy deeper
disgrace of "the beam that is in thine own eye," (Matt. vii. 3-5.) A
curse from thy injured brother may not "come causeless to thee."3 The
motive, which plainly actuated the accusation of the adulteress, only
retorted shame upon the accusers. "The conviction of their own con-
sciences" brought their own guilt to mind. (John, viii. 3-9.) Should
not this remembrance constrain us to "speak evil" needlessly "of no
man?" (Titus, iii. 2.) Should not the covering of our infiniely pro-
voking offences induce us gladly to cast a covering over our offending
brother, where the honour of God did not forbid concealment?4
11. There is a generation, that curseth their father, and doth not bless their
mother. 12. There is a generation, that are pure in their own eye, and
what is convenient for us, and what would prove upon the whole really evil. Let us there-
fore from hence learn to pray, that God would always put us into that condition, which he
sees to be fittest for us, and that he would fit us more and more for that condition, in
which he places us, whatever it be; granting us wisdom and grace to behave in it after
right manner and both to discern and improve the advantages annexed to it. By this
means, when there was no appearance but of a barren desert, we shall discover mines of
gold.'--Grave's Sermons.
1 Matt. vii. 12. Lev. xix. 17. 2 1 Sam. xxii. 9, 10; xxvi. 19.
3 Comp. chap. xxvi. 2. Deut. xv. 9. I Sam. xxvi. 19. Comp. Jam. ii.13.
4 Eph. iv. 31, 32. Col. iii. 12, 13.
600 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
yet is not washed from their filthiness. 13. There is a generation, O
how lofty are their eyes! and their eyelids are lifted up. 14. There is
a generation, whose teeth are as swords, and their jaw-teeth as knives to
devour the poor from off the earth, and the needy from among men.
Agur here gives in artificial order (as in some of the Psalms) his
observations, probably in answer to his disciples' inquiries. He de-
scribes four different masses that came under his eyes--not a few indi-
viduals, but generations; a race of men, like a large stock, descending
from father to son. Truly "the thing that hath been, is that which
shall be; and that which is done, is that which shall be done; and
there is no new thing under the sun." (Eccles. i. 9.) For these four
generations belong to every age. They always have been, and always
will be, to the end of time.
Take the first generation. What a disgrace to human nature!
cursing their parents! Solon, when asked why he had made, no law
against parricides, replied, that he could not conceive of anyone so
impious and cruel. The divine law-giver knew his creature better, that
his heart was capable of wickedness beyond conception (Jer. xvii. 9);
of this wickedness beyond the imagination of the heathen sage. He has
marked it with his most tremendous judgment.1 The cursing of a
parent was visited with the same punishment as the blaspheming of
God;* so near does the one sin approach to the other. The rebel
against his parent is ready to "stretch out his hand against God" him-
self, and to "run upon the thick bosses of his buckler." (Job, xv.
25, 26.) Many are the forms, in which this proud abomination shews
itself; resistance of a parent's authority,2 contempt of his reproof,3
shamelessly defiling his name,4 needlessly exposing his sin,5 coveting
his substance,6 denying his obligation.† Most fearful is the increase of
this generation among ourselves. Every village bears sad testimony
to this crying sin, that brings down many a parent's grey hairs with sor-
row to the grave, and spreads anarchy throughout the whole land. No
plea of extenuation can be allowed to justify the sin. The authority of
parents, even in the lowest degradation, must be respected, when we
dare not, must not, follow their examples. But what can be done to
stay the threatened invasion of this devastating flood? Once and
again let us remember, ere it be too late, discipline, wise, tender, early,
discipline; prayer--pleading, patient, believing prayer; diligence--
active, direct, prudently applied. Will not our God bless his own
means, and give us yet to praise him? Trust, and doubt not.
1 Verse 17; xx. 20. Deut. xxi. 18-21; xxvii. 16.
2 2 Sam. xv. 1-10. 3 1 Sam. ii. 25. 4 2 Sam. xvi. 22.
5 Gen. ix. 22. 6 Chap. xix. 26. Jud. xvii. 2.
* Lev. xx. 9, with xxiv. 11-16. See the same close connexion, Isa. xlv. 9, 10. 2 Tim.
iii. 2.
† Matt. xv. 4-6--shewing the identity between cursing, and not blessing, the parent.
CHAP. XXX. 11-14. 601
In what Church do we not find the next generation--pure in their
own eyes, yet not washed from their filthiness? (Isa. lxv. 5.) The Pharisees
of the Gospel1 were the living picture, devoted to the externals of reli-
gion, and to them exclusively; "washing the outside of the cup and
platter," while the inward part was wholly unwashed from its filthiness.
We see them in the next generation in the Laodicean Church. (Rev. iii.
17, 18.) The family at this distance of time is far from being extinct.
Their lineal representatives abound among us. Their religion, as of
old, is mere ceremony; rigid in forms, but with an inveterate hatred of
vital godliness. In the service of the Church they will go through the
exercise of confession of sin, and supplication for mercy, as 'miserable
offenders;' still pure in their own eyes, with no conscious filthiness, from
which they need to be washed. Nay--they will even at the Lord's
table, engage in a service, as full of contrition and self-renunciation as
language could express; yet all this, not to humble the soul in sorrow
and confidence, but to feed self-righteousness and delusion. All is
formality, and "confidence in the flesh."
Indeed a thin cloak of profession suffices to maintain this self-
gratifying judgment. For everywhere it is the great work of Satan, to
delude the sinner into a good opinion of himself. His open profession
is "according to the course of this world," plunging without scruple
into all its follies and pleasures. His baptismal engagement is thrown
to the wind. He does not pretend to renounce the devil, the world, or
the flesh. Creeds are a matter of indifference. For the hearty service
of his God he has no care or concern. And yet, withal, he is pure in his
own eyes. He estimates himself by some plausible qualities, or some
course of external decorum,2 while a blind infidel as to the depravity of
his nature, which--not the gross acts of sin--gives the stamp to the
whole character. Sometimes partial obedience maintains this delusion;
while he hides from himself the genuine hypocrisy of secret reserves,
which mars all. (1 Sam. xv. 13, 14.) He was once impure; but he has
gone through a course of purifying observances, has washed himself
from his filthiness, little knowing the infinite distinction between being
pure in his own eyes, and being pure in the sight of God.
We often see this self-deceiver in the spiritual Church, exhibiting a
full and clean profession to his fellow-men; while himself--awful
thought!--living at an infinite distance from God. (1 Cor. xiii. l.) He
has got notions of the grand doctrines of the gospel, and he finds it con-
venient to profess them. Salvation by free grace is his creed, and he
will "contend earnestly for" its purest simplicity. He conceives him-
self to distinguish accurately between sound and unscriptural doctrine.
He deems it legal to search for inward evidences, lest they should ob-
1 Matt. xxiii. 25-27. Comp. Luke, xvi. 15; xviii. 10. John ix. 40, 41.
2 Matt. xix. 20. Rom. vii. 9. Philip. iii. 6.
602 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
scure the glorious freeness of the gospel. All this is a cover for his
slumbering delusion. His conscience is sleeping in "the form of godli-
ness," while his heart is wholly uninfluenced by "its power." (2 Tim. iii.
5.) Or perhaps there may be alarming conviction of some powerful
corruption, which, if he could master, he would be at peace. But while
fixing his eye upon this single sin, he has no conception of the grand
fountain of evil within. Sometimes it is the Romish error (common
however to human nature) of substituting penance for penitence; some
external work of sacrifice for the deep, inwrought principle; or the
periodical routine of humiliation instead of the daily habit. But with
all this, there is no mourning for his innate guilt and pollution; no
sensibility of sin in thoughts, objects, motives, or prayers; no percep-
tible change from a proud, self-willed, or worldly spirit. All serves only
to soothe his conscience. He is pure in his own, eyes--in his own
imaginary view and perverted judgment! Yet until he be disturbed
in his complacency, how hopeless his condition! (Chap. iii. 7; xii. 15;
xvi. 2.)
Whatever allowance we may make in other cases for the pressure of
constitutional temperament, here at least the want of all cheering in-
fluence is a plain proof of self-delusion. Vital religion is the sugar in
the liquid, which impregnates the whole contents of the cup. The path
may be thorny, and our light darkness. But sweetness will be mingled
in our sorrow, even till the last drop in the cup of life shall be spent.
The formalist's religion is a piece of polished marble in the cup, exter-
nally beautiful, but cold and dead; impregnating nothing with an atom
of sweetness.
The power of this self-delusion is, that man has no natural concep-
tion of the deep stain of sin, such as nothing but the blood of sprinkling
can fetch out. The man of God, bathed in the tears of penitence, cries
out for this sprinkling alone to "purge him." (Ps. li. 7.) The tears of
the purest repentance in themselves are impure and abominable.1 It is
not the exercise of a day to know the full extent of our corruption. As
the Lord leads us into the light of our own hearts, we behold "greater
and yet greater abominations." (Ezek. viii. 7.) The conscience purged
from sin becomes more clear for the discovery of remaining pollution.
Those who are the most purified will have the deepest sensibility of im-
purity,2 and will most deeply value "the fountain opened for sin and
uncleanness," with its free invitation--"Wash, and be clean." (Zech.
xiii. 1.)
Sinner! if thou be found unwashed from thy filthiness, must it not be
certain exclusion from that "place, into which shall not in any wise
enter anything that defileth?" (Rev. xxi. 27.) Awful indeed will be
1 Job, ix. 30, 31. Jer. ii. 22.
2 Comp. Rom. vii. 9 Philip. iii. 6, with Rom, vii. 14-24. 1 Tim. i. 15.
CHAP. XXX. 11-14. 603
the final sentence--"He that is filthy, let him be filthy still!" (Ib.
xxii. 11)
The next generation provokes our sorrowful amazement. O how lofty
are their eyes! and their eyelids lifted up. Such intolerable arrogance!
What greater anomaly does the conscience afford than that of a proud
sinner! his eyelids being lifted up, instead of being cast down to the
ground. Such is his self-confidence even in the presence of his God!
(Luke, xviii. 11.) And before men--all must keep their distance from
these swelling worms! We may see this pride embodied in a system
--"the Man of sin, sitting in the temple of God, shewing himself that
he is God!" (2 Thess. ii. 4.) We may see it in worldly greatness
in the pride of Moab;1 the prince of Tyre;2 the boasting Antiochus;3
Haman in all his glory;4 "Herod arrayed in his royal apparel;"5
Nebuchadnezzar in his self-pleasing contemplation, before the severe
chastenmg of his God had taught him the wholesome lesson--"Those
that walk in pride he is able to abase." (Dan. iv. 30.) In a lower 1evel
it is the pride of birth, rank, wisdom, riches, or accomplishments. In
every circumstance is this high look specially hateful to God;6 and the
day is appointed in his own purpose for its prostrate humiliation. (Isa.
ii. 12.) Meanwhile little is it conceived, how really contemptible this
pride makes its deluded votaries appear before their fellow-creatures.
(Ps. ci. 5.) One beam of the divine glory,7 and one sight of the cross of
Calvary,8 must at once dispel their vain splendid illusion.
The last generation appears before us as a monster of iniquity. We
can scarcely draw the picture in its full colours. Conceive of brutes
with iron teeth--a wild beast opening his mouth, and displaying,
instead of teeth, swords and knives, sharpened ready for their murderous
work. (Ps. lvii. 4.) Yet withal, these cruel oppressors are marked by
pitiful cowardice. They vent their wantonness, only where there is
little or no power of resistance. It is not the wolf with the wolf, but
with the defenceless lamb; devouring the poor and needy from off the
earth,9 --"eating up my people"--not like an occasional indulgence,
but "as they eat bread" their daily meal, without intermission. (Ps.
xiv. 4.) Such cruel oppressors appear from time to time as a chastening
curse to the land; nay, they were found among the rulers of God's own
people,10 even among the teachers of religion.11 Cloaking their covetous-
ness under the garb of special holiness. God would thus shew us a
picture of man left to himself. When the reins are loosened or given
up, is there any length of wickedness, to which he may not proceed?
Indeed the four generations teach us this lesson, most valuable, yet
1Isa. xvi. 6. Jer. xlviii. 29. 2Ezek xxviii. 2. 3Dan. xi. 36.
4Esth. v. 11. 5Acts, xii. 21. 6Chap. vi. 17; xxi. 4. Comp. Ps. cxxxi. l.
7Comp. Job, xlii. 5, 6. Isa. vi. 5. 8 Phil. ii. 5.
9Ib. x. 8, 9. Eccles. iv. 1. Isa. iii. 15. Am. ii. 6, 7; viii. 4. Mic. ii. 1, 2. Hab. iii 14.
10Am. iv. 1. Mic. iii. 1-3. 11Matt. xxiii 14.
604 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
most humbling, thoroughly to know. Yet so depraved is man, that he
does not understand his own depravity. Nothing is so much hidden
from him as himself. (2 Kings, viii. 13.) He keeps a good opinion of
himself, by keeping the light out of the heart and conscience. His
imagination fancies good, where there is nothing but hateful deformity.
Under this self-delusion, we deal so gently and tenderly with sin, that
no conflict is maintained with it, no sorrow or burden felt concerning
it. How deeply do we need the searching light and convincing power
of the Spirit of God, to shew us our abominations; to make us tremble
at the sight of them; and to let us see, that our remedy must come
from God every moment; that no partial change, no external polish,
nothing less than the creating power of God, can reach the case for a
cure! (Ps. li. 10.)
Adored indeed be the grace of God, if we be not in one or other of
these generations! But let us remember--"Such were some of us"--
either disobedient to our parents, or self-righteous in the church, or
proud and contemptuous, or cruel and oppressive. But we are washed
from our filthiness. (1 Cor. vi. 11.) Therefore--"who maketh thee to
differ?" (Ib. iv. 7) is the profitable recollection, when we are disposed
to forget from whence we were raised, and to whom we owe all that we
have and are for his service.
15. The horseleech hath two daughters, crying, Give, give. There are three
things, that are never satisfied, yea, four things say not, It is enough
(wealth, marg.). 16. The grave; and the barren womb; the earth
that is not filled with water; and the fire that saith not, It is enough.
Agur describes in an artificial mode of expression,1 but with
forcible imagery, the cravings of human lust. If viewed in reference to
the last generation, they form an admirably finished picture of the
merciless and avaricious tyrant. They are like the horseleech, which
hath two daughters, crying, Give, give. They are like the three and four
things, the grave, the womb, the earth, and the fire.* But with a more
general reference the figures are graphically instructive. The horse-
leech with its two-forked tongue like two daughters, sucks the blood
with an insatiable appetite.† The grave opens the mouth for fresh
victims.2 The barren womb eagerly covets the blessing.3 The parched
earth, after large supplies, still thirsts for more. The fire, when the
spark first kindles a coal, or lights upon combustible matter, never
1 See Verses 21, 24, 29; vi. 16. Am. i. 3, 6, 9; ii. 1, 4.
2 Chap. xxvii. 20. Hab. ii. 5. 3 Gen. xxx. 1. 1 Sam. i. 6, 11.
*Holden. Comp. Ps. lix. 12, 14, 15.
†Reformer's Notes.
'Non missura cutem, nisi plena cruoris hirudo."
HOR. De Arte Poetica, 476.
CHAP. XXX. 17. 605
ceases to burn as long as fuel is supplied, and in many a disastrous
conflagration, leaves us to cry out in fearful wonder, "Behold! how
great a matter a little fire kindleth." (Jam. iii. 5.) And yet these are
scarcely adequate representations of that insatiable thirst within, that
never says--It is enough. The greater the portion, the greater the lust.
Every indulgence provokes the appetite.* 'The horseleech hath but two
daughters. But we have'--says Bishop Sanderson-- 'I know not how
many craving lusts, no less importunately clamorous than they; till
they be served, incessantly crying, Give, give; but much more unsatisfied
than they. For they will be filled in time, and when they are filled,
they tumble off, and there is an end. But our lusts will never be satis-
fied. Like Pharaoh's kine, when they have eaten up all the fat ones,
they are still as hungry and as whining as they were before.†
How blessed then is the state, to which the Gospel brings us
"Having food and raiment, let us be therewith content!" What a
merciful--deliverance from that "destruction and perdition," the certain
end of lawless lust. (1 Tim. vi. 6-10.) Happy child of God--weaned
from his old indulgence! disciplined under his father's yoke! satisfied
abundantly with his father's love. Whether "he abound or suffer need"
--he can say--"It is wealth--I am full, and abound." (Phil. iv.
12, 18.) Has he not found that, which answers every demand, supplies
every need, and satisfies every desire? What but God can fill the
soul, which God hath made, and made for himself?
17. The eye that mocketh at his father, and despiseth to obey his mother,
the ravens of the valley shall pick it out, and the young eagles shall
eat it.
Agur here returns to the first generation--the unnatural despisers
of their parents. (Verse 11.) He had before described their character.
Now he links it with the punishment. Observe the guilt only of a
scornful look, or the mocking eye, when perhaps not a word is spoken.
Certainly if the fifth commandment is "the first with promise" (Eph.
vi. 2), it is also the first with judgment. No commandment in the
breach of it is visited with more tremendous threatenings. What a
picture is here given of infamy! Perhaps the case of Absalom furnishes
the most striking illustration--a self-willed youth or rebel against his
father and his sovereign made a spectacle of shame before his people
the vengeance of God inflicting the punishment, which was due at the
bar of human justice! (2 Sam. xviii. 17.) But we may observe a more
general illustration of the frightful picture. How many confessions
*See Augustine's Confession, Lib, iii. c. 1.
† Sermon on Phil. iv. 11. 'By the daughters of the horseleech may be understood covetous-
ness and prodigality. Both then cry, Give, give. The former cries--Give, to keep; the
latter cries--Give, to spend. Neither of them saith--It is enough..' CARYL on Job, xx. 20.
606 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
on the scaffold have borne testimony, that the first step towards the
untimely end was contempt of parental authority and restraint! The
bodies of such criminals were deprived of the rites of burial; exposed
either on the gallows, or cast out into the valley, as meat for the fowls
of the air.1 Thus the eye, that hath scornfully mocked his father, became
the choice morsel of the eagle or the raven of the valley.*
But even where there is no such literal fulfilment, the curse is not
the less sure. Seldom do we see the disobedient rebels prospering, and
blessed in their own children. Retributive justice visits them late, but
certain; and the poignant anguish of many a disappointed hope, and
many an arrow shot from their own bow, may bear to them the message
of their chastising Father--"Thine own iniquities shall correct thee,
and thy backslidings shall reprove thee." (Jer. ii. 19.)
18. There be three things, which are too wonderful or me: yea, four, which
I know not. 19. The way of an eagle in the air; the way of a serpent
upon a rock; the way of a ship in the midst (heart, marg.) of the sea,
and the way of a man with a maid. 20. Such is the way of an adul-
terous woman; she eateth, and wipeth her mouth, and saith, I have done
no wickedness.
The kingdom of nature is full of wonder, and these wonders full of
instruction. Where the philosopher cannot give a reason, the humble
disciple may learn a lesson. The depths of nature are the figure of the
depths of sin--of the unsearchable deceitful heart. (Ib. xvii. 9.) The
eagle soars in the air with so lofty and rapid a flight, that the eye cannot
follow her way. She leaves no scent nor footsteps, by which we might
trace her, as the beast on the ground. (Job, xxxix. 27.) The serpent on
the sand would leave its mark. But the serpent on the "rock leaves no
slime like the worm, no feathers like the birds; who then can mark its
way? The ship, like the great monster of the deep, "maketh a path to
shine after her."† But while she ploughs in the midst (in the heart) of
the sea, her furrows are quickly closed up, and her way is untraceable.
Not less mysterious is the way of a man with it maid. Eminently prac-
1 See Gen. xl. 19. 1 Rom. xvii. 46. 2 Sam. xxi. 10.
* Bochart conceives the allusion to be to the valley-- Jer. xxxi. 40--where probably the
dead bodies of the criminals sent. At all events the denial of the rites of burial was
one of the severest marks of divine chastisement. Comp, Jer. vii. 33; xxii. 18, 19. The
Heathens felt this deprivation to be a special affliction. Homer represents the dying
Hector, as entreating Achilles not to give his body to be torn by his Grecian dogs, but
restore it to his parents for burial. Lib. XI: 337-343. Virgil also represents Palinurus
begging AEneas either to throw the earth himself upon his body, or to carry it with him
through the water, rather than expose it to the birds of prey.--Aen. VI. 363-371.
† Job, xli. 32. Comp. Ps. civ. 26; cvii. 23, 24. This figure, and that of the eagle, as
images of the rapid course of life, are finely illustrated--Wisd. v. 11,12. Witsius admirably
defends these figures as worthy of inspiration, against the sneers of neological critics.--
Misc. Sacra, Lib. i. c. xviii. 31-33.
CHAP. XXX. 18-20. 607
tised is the seducer in "the depths of Satan," and a thousand arts does
he employ to allure the affections of his unwary victim. And it is often
as difficult to penetrate his designs, and to escape his snares, as to trace
the way of the eagle, the serpent, or the ship. Let this be a warning to
young and inexperienced females, not to trust to their own purity,
or to the strength of their own resolutions, or to place themselves in
unprotected situations.*
Equally unfathomable are the devices of the adulterous woman to
entangle her prey, and to deceive her unsuspecting husband. Solomon
has described the picture with striking and minute accuracy. (Chap.
vii; v.6.) Such a course of abomination, wickedness, and hypocrisy,
as is scarcely to be conceived; indulging her sin as the sweet morsel
under her tongue; feasting greedily upon her "stolen waters and secret
bread;"1 yet keeping up the semblance of innocence and purity;2
wiping her mouth, to prevent all suspicion, suffering no sign of the action
to remain. A woman must be advanced very far in the way of sin,
before she can present such unblushing a front. Yet every fresh
indulgence of lust gives rise to new artifices, "hardening" the heart
more fully in the "deceitfulness of sin." (Heb. iii. 13.) Its fascinations
blind it to its real character. Let then the first step be shunned, the
most distant path, that may lead to temptation. Where shame ceases
to accompany it, the ruin of the victim is accomplished. Abundant
warning is given; solemn instruction--many beacons in the path--
to show the certain end of this flowery road.3
1Chap. ix.17. 2 Gen. xxxix. 13-19. 3Chap. v. 3-5; vii. 24-21; ix. 18.
*Ambrose has treated fully upon these four figures. Assuming the chapter to be
written by Solomon, he explains his ignorance of them—‘not that he was not able to
know them, but because it was not a time for him to know them.' The way of the eagle he
understands to be the ascension of Christ, flying back as an eagle to his Father, carrying
man plucked from the Jaws of the enemy as his prey with him! And though the ascen-
sion was visible, yet what understanding could grasp the apprehension of such Majesty
retiring to heaven! The way of the serpent on the rock shadowed the assaults of Satan upon
Christ--on whom, as on a rock (unlike the first man, who was earth and dust) he could
leave no mark, no footsteps of his malice. The pious father seems to be in some doubt
upon the third image. The way of the ship in the sea is the way of God's church through the
sea of persecution. This ship cannot miscarry, because Christ is lifted up in the mast of it
--that is--on the cross. The Father sitteth as pilot at the stern of it. The Comforter
preserved its prow! Or--Christ is the ship, into which the souls of all true belivers do go
up; which, that it may be carried more strongly in the midst of the waves, is made of
wood, and fastened with iron: this is Christ in the flesh. And who can tell the way of this
ship, either into the womb of the Virgin, or the heart of believers? The way of a man in
his youth (LXX. and some other versions) illustrates the ways of our Saviour Christ in his
youth upon the earth!'
Such puerile crudities are calculated to bring ridicule rather than reverence to the
sacred book. Yet a combined and powerful effort is now made to palm the Fathers upon
the church as the primary expositors of Scripture, and the standard of faith! Many
patristic expositions of the Proverbs equally gross might have been produced. Apart from
higher ground--Can we forbear surprise, that men of taste and learning should affix their
imprimatur to such undisciplined folly of interpretation?
608 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
21. For three things--the earth is disquieted, and for four, which it cannot
bear: 22. For a servant when he reigneth; and a fool when he is filled
with meat: 23. For an odious woman when she is married: and an
handmaid that is heir to her mistress.
Next to things which were unsearchable, Agur now mentions some
things that were intolerable--things, for which the earth is disquieted,
bringing confusion wherever they are found. Who does not naturally
condemn things out of place, as unsuitable and unseemly? Order is
the law of the works of God in the world, no less than in the Church;1
and any breach of order is to be deprecated. Four such evils are here
mentioned--two connected with men, two with women; the one class
in the community, the other in the family.
The first evil mentioned is--a servant, when he reigneth. This is a
serious evil in the family, whether it arises from the mismanagement of
the master,2 or from his own intrigue. (Verse 23.) He is obviously out
of place; and ruling, where he ought to serve, he must bring disorder.
(Gen. xvi. 4.) The evil is far greater in a kingdom. Men of low birth
may indeed rise honourably by their own merit to a high station. God
may call them, as he did Joseph (Ib. xli. 41), to reign. The evil is the
advancement to power of ignorant, unprincipled minions.3 Men of
mean spirit cannot bear to be raised. Intoxicated by sudden elevation,
these upstarts shew themselves not only fools, but tyrants;* swelling
with all the insolence of their unseemly honour. Such was the enmity
of Tobiah the Ammonite4 and the misrule of Haman.5 What national
evil resulted from the elevation of Jeroboam!6 What anarchy from the
successful usurpation of Zimri!7 Well therefore might the reign of
servants be deplored, as a component part of the calamnity of disconsolate
Zion! (Lam. v. 8.) In the ordinary course it can only be viewed as a
chastening dispensation. (Isa. iii. 4, 5.) Let us acknowledge with
thankfulness our deliverance from it.
Then look at the fool (not an idiot, but a wilful sinner) when he is
filled with meat. Can we wonder that he should be a trouble and a
curse; giving the reins to his appetite, and becoming yet more devoid
of understanding than before? The history of Nabal, sunk into
brutishness by his own sensual lust (1 Sam. xxv. 36); Elah murdered
by his servant, whilst "drinking himself drunk in his steward's
1Eccles. iii. 11. 1 Cor. xiv. 40. 2Chap. xxix. 21. 3Chap. xix. 10. Eccles. x. 5-7.
4 Neh. ii. 10. 5 Esth. iii. 1. 6 1 Kings, xi. 26-28; xii. 30,
7 Ib. xvi. 9-20. Comp. 2 Kings, viii. 12.
*Chap. xxviii. 3. This danger is accurately drawn by one of the Classic moralists:--
Asperius nihil est bumili; cum surgit in altum,
Cuncta ferit, dum cuncta timet; desaevit in omnes,
Ut se posse putet; nec bellua tetrior una est,
Quam servi rabies, in libera terga furentis.
CLAUDIAN. Lib. i. in Eutrop.
CHAP. XXX. 21-23. 609
house;"1 Belshazzar giving himself over to the lust of ungodliness2
--all these were evils, for which the earth was disquieted, and which it
could not bear. Filled with meat--"with surfeiting and drunkenness"
they dig as it were their own graves with their teeth, and are set forth
as an example in the just punishment of their wicked folly.
Look again into the inner room of the family. What is the origin
of discord and palpable misery? An odious woman is in rule. She
quarrels with all around her. Her ungoverned tongue and temper are
an unceasing source of agitation. Had she known herself, much better
for her never to have entered into the marriage bond, than to become
the inseparable tormentor of her husband and family.3 Woman is to
man either his greatest curse or blessing. If love be not the earnest of
the sacred union, truly will it be a bond of misery, from which only the
special mercy of God can deliver. Let the worldly portion of the wife
be the last consideration. Take heed, lest worldly glitter open a door
for remediless misery."
The odious woman, when she is married, if she be in authority,
becomes a national evil. Jezebel was a scourge to Israel, the spring of
all Ahab's wickedness, that brought the heavy judgment of God upon
the and.4 The earth was disquieted for her, and at the last cast her out.
(2 King, ix. 30-37.) Herodias brought upon her husband and his
nation the guilt of the blood of the murdered prophet "crying from the
ground." (Matt. xiv. 8.) If marriage be the ordinance of lust, not of it
godliness, what wonder if an odious woman should be the result, a
canker to every domestic comfort?
The last evil noticed is a frequent source of family trouble--an
handmaid, that is heir to her mistress. Want of discipline, simplicity, or
integrity, leads to waywardness and self-indulgence; and the house,
instead of being under wholesome rule, becomes a prey to envy and
strife. The ill-regulated connection between Abraham and Hagar, when
the servant became heir to her mistress--occupying her mistress's place
with her husband-became the source of most baneful contention.
(Gen. xvi. 4.) Our own history presents sad illustration of this intoler-
able evil. Anne Boleyn and Jane Seymour were handmaids, and
unhappily heirs, to their respective mistresses while living, in the
affections of the sovereign. The royal example of selfishness and lust
was a national grievance, in which the handmaids were not wholly
guiltless.
And thus in modern society, an handmaid, treated with that
familiarity, which breaks down the Divine barriers between the several
ranks, has sometimes become heir to her mistress; either succeeding to
her property--perhaps to the exclusion of more rightful claimants
11 Kings, xvi. 9, 10. Hos. vii.5. 2 Dan. v. 1-4, 30. 1 Sam. xxx. 16. 1 Kings, xx. 16.
3Chap. xxi. 9, 19; xxvii. 15. 41 Kings, xvi. 31; xxi. 25.
610 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
(Chap. xxix. 21); or rising into her place by an ill-assorted union, like
those above-mentioned, usually productive of much family dissension.
Or again, in the higher ranks, she is the heir to her mistress's dresses.
This encourages in her the love of dress and vanity, habits unsuitable
to her situation in life; and too often hurtful to her solid respectability
and eternal interests.
How needful is it to preserve consistency in every part of our pro-
fession! Oh! let us look carefully to it, that no want of wisdom, godly
contentment, or self-denial, brings reproach upon that worthy name by
which we are called; that there be no spots, to mar that adorning
beauty, which might attract those around us to the ways of God.
24. There be four things which are little upon the earth: but they are ex-
ceeding wise: (wise, made wise, marg.) 25. The ants are a people
not strong: yet they prepare their meat in the summer; 26. The conies
are but a feeble folk yet make they their houses in the rocks. 27. The
locusts have no king; yet go they forth all of them by bands. 28. The
spider taketh hold with her hands, and is in king's palaces.
The mind of man spreads over the length and breadth of creation,
and draws instruction from every part of the universe presented to his
senses. Everywhere God teaches us by his works as well as by his
word;* by his works, small as well as great. He instructed Job by
Behemoth and Leviathan. (Job, xl. xli.) Here he instructs us by the
ants and the conies. And indeed in the minute creation his splendour
shines as gloriously as in the more majestic. 'At one end' (of the
scale) (as Dr. Paley finely draws the contrast) 'we see an intelligent
power arraying planetary systems; fixing, for instance, the trajectory
of Saturn, or constructing a ring of two hundred thousand miles dia-
meter, to surround his body, and be suspended like a magnificent arch
over the head of his inhabitants; and at the other, bending a hooked
tooth, concerting and providing an appropriate mechanism for the
clasping and re-clasping of the filaments of the feathers of the humming-
bird.'†
Agur had before mentioned four things, that seemed great, but were
really despicable. Here the produces four things little upon the earth, but
exceeding wise. Therefore despise them not for their littleness: but
admire the wonder-working hand, which hath furnished these little
creatures with such sufficient means of provision, defence, and safety.
As has been beautifully remarked--'God reigns in a community of
ants and ichneumons as visibly, as among living men or mighty
*The stupid beasts reprove our ingratitude (Isa. i. 3.) The fowls of the air, our inat-
tention (Jer. viii. 7); our unbelieving carefulness (Matt. vi. 26); and anxious fears (Ib. x.
29-31.)
† Natural Theology. Conclusion.
CHAP. XXX. 24-28. 611
seraphim.'* Truly nothing was made for nought. The world of
instinct shews that which will put to blush our higher world of reason.
Yes,--these four remarkable instances of Almighty skill, the natures
and habits of these four little animals, teach many useful and important
lessons, to which the greatest philosopher might attend with profit, and
"he that hath ears to hear may hear" words of suitable wisdom, rebuke,
direction and encouragement for himself.
'Industry is commended to us by all sorts of examples, deserving
our regard and imitation. All nature is a copy thereof and the whole
world a glass, wherein we may behold this duty represented to us.
Every creature about us is incessantly working toward the ends for
which it was designed; indefatigably exercising the powers with
which it is endued; diligently observing the laws of its creation.'†
The ants have already brought the lesson before us (Chap. vi. 6-8)--a
people not strong; ‡ indeed so weak, that thousands are crushed by one
tread of the foot; yet wise in preparing their meat in the summer. A
quickening sermon do these little insects preach to us! They make
preparation for the coming winter. What must be the thoughtlessness
of making no provision for the coming eternity! whiling away life in
inactivity, as if there was no work for God, for the soul, or for eternity!
Shall not we learn to be wise betimes; to improve the present moment
of salvation; not to wait for the winter--the verge of life, when that
grace, offered now, shall be offered no more? Sinner! if all be lost by
thy indolence, wilt not thou be the great loser? What else hast thou
to do, but to prepare for eternity? What hope canst thou have of
heaven at the last, if thou hast never seriously thought of heaven
before? Oh!--ere it be too late, throw thyself at his feet, whose
heart over-flows with love. If thou art ready, "all things are ready."
Exclusion is with thyself, not with thy Saviour.1
The ants are a people not strong. Yet--apart from their wisdom--
what people more diligent, more persevering, or more effective?
Indeed the union of so many noble qualities in so small a corpuscle is
one of the most remarkable phenomena in the works of nature.§
Weakness, then, is no excuse for indolence, no occasion of despondency.
Is it not rather the cheering exercise of faith? (2 Cor. xii. 9, 10.)
"The worm shall thresh the mountains." (Isa. xli. 15.) To the diligent
"labourer shall be given the meat, that endureth to everlasting life."
1Luke, xiv. 16-24. John, vi. 37.
*McCheyne's Life, p- 34.
† BARROW'S Sermon on Industry.
‡ The term--nation or people--is applied to the animal creation, Joel, i, 6; ii. 2. This
is a frequent classical allusion. Homer spoke of a nation of bees (Ib. B. 1. 87); of hogs
( 73); Virgil of fishes, Geor. iv. 430.
§ PAXTON'S Natural History of the Scripture, p. 97.
612 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
(John, vi. 27.) "Working out his salvation in helpless dependence,"
his "labour shall not be in vain in the Lord."*
As the ants prepare their meat, so do the conies their refuge. Feeble
folk as they are, they secure themselves from impending danger, by
making their houses in the holes of inaccessible rocks.† Thus what they
want in strength they make up in wisdom. Not less feeble are we; not
less exposed to assault. And is not our refuge like theirs "the muni-
tion of rocks?" (Isa. xxxiii. 16.) Are we then, like them, making our
house, our home, there? in the foresight of evil hiding ourselves?
abiding in our shelter in conscious security? (Chap. xxii. 3.)
Observe again the instinct of the locusts. Some insects, like the
bee, are under monarchical government. But the locusts have no king.
Yet how wonderful is their order, going forth all of them by band; like
an army with unbroken ranks, and under the strictest discipline!‡
Jerome mentions what he had lately seen--'When the swarms of
locusts came, and filled the lower region of the air, they flew in such
order, by the divine appointment, and kept their places as exactly, as when
several tiles or party--coloured stones are skilfully placed in a pavement,
so as not to be an hair's-breadth out of their several ranks.'§ Do not
these little insects read to us a lesson on the importance of unity and
unanimous movement? Here is not an ungoverned, disorderly multi-
tude flying in different directions. But all go forth by bands. All keep
their ranks. Many professors, instead of going by bands, prefer an indi-
vidual course. They belong to no cohort. They are under no disci-
pline. This unsettled principle can never issue in a Christian stead-
fastness. Unity, not diversity, brings "the good thing of the heart
*Phil. ii. 12, 1, 3. 1 Cor. xv. 58. Chrysostom ingeniously remarks upon the wonders of
divine wisdom, in inspiring so minute a body with such a perpetual desire for labour;
teaching us so strongly the lesson, not to affect softness and delicacy, or to fly from toil and
labour. He adds--that the wise man, sending us to learn of these little creatures, is just
as we should in our families put to shame the disobedience of the elder children, by point-
ing to the little ones--Behold one much younger and smaller than yourself; yet how pli-
able and ready he is to do as he is hid!' Hom. xii. ad Pop. Antioch.
† Ps. civ. 18. There is much difficulty in determining this animal, which was reckoned
among the unclean (Lev. xi. 55. Deut. xiv. 7.) Dr. Shaw (with whom Parkhurst agrees)
considers it to be ‘the Daman of Mount Libanus, though common in other parts of Syria
and Palestine, of the rabbit size and form. As its usual residence and refuge is in the holes
and clefts of the rocks, we have so far a presumptive evidence, that this creature may be
the coney of the Scriptures.' Travels, vol. ii. 160, 161. Mr. Bruce strongly confirms this
account from his own observation--adding--'He is above all other animals so much at-
tached to the rock, that I never once saw him on the ground, and from among large stones
in the mouth of caves, where is his constant residence. He is in Judaea, Palestine, and
Arabia, and consequently must have been known to Solomon.' See his Travels, v. pp.
139-147. 'Gaudet in effossis habitare caniculus antris.'
MART. Epig. Lib. xiii. Ep. 58.
‡ See the picture, Joel, ii. 7, 8, 25.
§ Quoted by Lowth on Joel, ut supra. The mystical locusts have a king. Comp. Rev.
ix. 3-11.
CHAP. xxx. 29-31. 613
established with grace." (Heb. xiii. 9.) The strength of the Church is
--not as an army of irregular soldiers, a regiment in loose disorder,
unconnected with each other; but when she goeth forth by bands,
united, concentrated, well disciplined, every officer at his post, every
soldier in his ranks, each under rule, helpful to each other and to their
great cause! (Num. 11.) "When shall It once be. "Lord, heal our
unhappy divisions. Unite our energies' in one holy bond of Truth
and Peace, of Faith and Charity.'*
And what lessons does the spider teach, of ingenuity, patience, and
untiring labour and perseverance! 'Its claws or spinning-organs serve
both as hands and eyes to the animal.'† She forms her web against
the walls, as if she took hold of them with her hands. She frames her
fine-spun house with such exactness of proportion, as if conversant with
mathematical rule.‡ She steals her way alike into the cottage of the
poor and king's palaces; as if God would instruct even the great-ones
of the earth by this pattern of diligence. Such assiduity; such "dili-
gence" in the work of our high calling, if it shall not bring us into the
king's palaces (Chap. xxii. 29), will ensure the full reward of the man,
whom the Great "King delighteth to honour."§
The general lesson to learn from these diminutive teachers is the
importance of acting wisely according to the principles of our nature,"
as the best means to secure the greatest quantum of happiness, of which
they are capable. God has provided happiness for every nature, and
for each its own happiness. In more particular detail how many of us
stand condemned by the sermons of these little insects! Let us not be
too proud to learn, or too careless to attend to, the humbling but most
valuable lessons taught in this school of instruction: "A wise man will
hear, and will increase learning." (Chap. i. 5.)
29. There be three things which go well, yea, four are comely in going:
30. A lion which is strongest among beasts, and turneth not away from
any; 31. A greyhound (a horse--girt in the loins, marg.), an he-
goat also; and a king, against whom there is no rising up.
Agur naturally lingers upon this vast field of natural wonders:
* Prayer for Unity in the Service of Accession--a most suitable and spiritual pleading with
the God of Peace.
† KIBBY'S Bridgewater Treatise, vol. ii. 186.
+ Who made the spiders parallels design,
Sure as Demoivre, without rule or line.'--Pope.
§ Interpreter expounded this figure to Christiana; that, as the venomous spider hung
by her hands by the wall; so, how full of the venom of sin soever we be, 'yet we may by
the hand of faith lay hold of, and dwell in the best room, that belongs to the King's house
above.'-- Pilg. Prog. part ii. Important as this truth doubtless is; yet our inimitable alle-
gorist we judge to have here pressed his imagination beyond due bounds. Accommodation
may admit of far greater latitude than exposition; though even in this department--as
the Writer would desire to remember for himself--a sober discipline must be exercised.
614 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
such a splendid exhibition of--the divine perfections! the source of so
much light to the world, before the Book of Revelation was fully opened.
(Job, xii. 7-10.) After having mentioned some striking instances of
wisdom, he now singles out a few objects, which appeared to him
remarkable for their comeliness in going--the firm and stately walk of
the lion,* fearless and proud, not turning away for any; the graceful
form, and the elegant and swift movements, of the greyhound;† the he-
goat at the head of the Hock, as their guide and protector; and the
majesty of the king, inspiring all who approach him with reverence for
his authority, and not suffering any rising up against the exercise of
his power. (Eccles. viii. 2-4.) From all these many practical lessons
may be learned by the man, "who will be wise, and observe these
things."
Let us have regard, not only to the various duties of the Christian
life, but also to the manner and spirit of their performance. Cultivate
not only the integrity, but the comeliness of the Christian character-
"the beauty" and uniformity "of holiness;" that there be nothing
misshapen or distorted; that there be just proportion in all the parts
and features. Christians should be attractive and engaging by the
courtesy of their general demeanour. It is not enough to observe
"whatsoever things are true, whatsoever things are honest, whatsoever
things are just, whatsoever things are pure." But "whatsoever things
are lovely, whatsoever things are of good report, think on these things."
(Philip. iv. 8.) Any manifest want of comeliness in our going repels the
world from the gospel of Christ. 'If we desire to reign in heaven, we
must present ourselves there with this beautiful crown, from whence
radiate all kinds of virtue and praise.'‡
Nor let us forget to imitate the features of this comeliness here pour-
trayed; to be fearless as the lion, when pursuing the path of duty, not
turning away from any (see Neh. vi. 3, 11); to desire the eager spring
of the greyhound in our heavenly course: to be useful as the he-goat, as
the leader of a godly band; and to maintain our proper authority in
any place of trust, as parents or guardians of families; and not to allow
any rising up against it.
32. If thou hast done foolishly in, lifting up thyself, or if thou hast thought
*See Homer's fine description, Il. M. 299.
† This name is, as Mr. Holden remarks, 'of doubtful import.' The Hebrew is 'girt in
the loins'--a general phrase--admitting of a great variety of conjecture; so that Poole
(Synopsis) considers him to be wisest, 'who confesses he knows not what it is.' Our
translation is however as well supported as any other. Some conceive it to be a leopard.
And perhaps this conjecture, combined with the lion and the he-goat, has given rise to the
absurd ideality of some Rabbinical and Romanist expositors (not wholly discountenanced
by more respectable names), who consider these four creatures to be prophetical of the four
great monarchies. Dan. viii. The reader may readily conceive--the extent of fancy requisite
to maintain this interpretation.
‡ Daille on Phil. iv. 8.
CHAP. XXX. 32, 33. 615
evil, lay thine hand ttpon thy mouth. 33. Surely the churning of milk
bringeth forth butter, and the wringing of the nose bringeth forth blood
so the forcing of wrath bringeth forth strife.*
This evidently applies to the preceding illustration--a king, against
whom there is no rising. But if thou hast lifted up thyself in despising
his authority (Rom. xiii. 1, 2); or even if thou hast but thought evil; lay
thine hand upon thy mouth, restraining the ebullition in silent and humble
submission.1 As a general rule, however, we may be thankful for the
caution. If we have done foolishly by provoking irritation, in lifting
up ourselves, even in some evil thought, against a brother; quench the
rising spark, ere it kindle into a flame. "The thought of foolishness is
sin."2 Yet it is more sinful, when it forces its passage to the mouth.
Words increase the sin, shew more of its power, and are more hurtful
to others. Obviously it is wise to lay our hand upon our mouth, and to
restrain the expression, when we cannot prevent the thought. Better
to keep in the infirmity, than to give it vent. But when, instead of
the hand laid upon the mouth, there is no discipline, guard, or restraint;
"the mouth of the fool poureth out foolishness,"3 overflowing at the lips,
and bringing a flood of trouble upon the soul.4
How much more, when the lying, heartless, proud worm lifts up
itself against the Great King! The foolishness even of an evil thought
against him is such, as no tongue can express. The Lord humble us
in a tender sensibility of this sin! "Behold! I am vile: what shall
I answer thee? I will lay mine hand upon my mouth." (Job, xl. 4, 5.)
Towards man however it is often the forcing of wrath, not natural
irritation. A peaceable man may be goaded to anger;5 as the violent
shaking of the milk in the churn bringeth forth butter; or the wringing of
the nose bringeth blood. The action of force works, what would not
otherwise have been done. But fearful is the strife of this forced wrath.
Sihon thus provoked his own ruin;6 the Ephraimites stirred up a
murderous strife;7 Asahel sharpened Abner's spear by his wilful way-
wardness;8 Amaziah plunged into destruction by the strife of the forced
wrath of Joash, who was disposed to peace and quietness.9 How multi-
plied are the sources of misery--the fruit of ungovernable temper and
self-will! "Only by pride cometh contention" (Chap. xiii. 10); and
where that contention may end, who can say? 'I am, and profess to
be'--said the godly Bishop Hall--'as the terms stand, on neither,
and yet on both, parts; for the peace of both; for the humour of
neither.'
1Chap. xvii. 28. Job, xxi. 5. 2Chap. xxiv. 9. Jer. iv. 14. 3Chap. xv. 2.
4Chap. xv. 18; xvi. 28, 29; xvii. 14; xviii. 7. 5Chap. xv. 1; xxvi. 21; xxix. 22.
6 Num. xxi. 23, 24. 7 Judg. xii. 1-6. 8 2 Sam. ii 22, 28.
9 2 Chron. xxv. 17-23.
* 'Whoso chyrneth mylck maketh butter; he that rubbeth his nose maketh it blede,
and he that causeth wrath bryngeth forth strife.'--Bp. COVERDALE.
616 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
An humble heart will repress the sparks of this unholy fire. A
sorrowful spirit for the evil of our thoughts is a component part of the
cure. (Eccles. vii. 4.) We should not readily indulge the sin, for
which we had been truly humbled before our God. Whereas in the
want of this genuine spirit, how reluctant we are to acknowledge our
offence towards each other! We can always find some good reason for
lifting up ourselves, or for thinking evil. And how hard it goes with our
proud tempers to be the first to lay our hands upon our mouths! How
much more ready are we to open our mouths in self-justification, than
in self-abasement. Thus, instead of quenching, we force, wrath. In-
stead of the "meekness of wisdom," there "is envy and strife, con-
fusion, and every evil work" (Jam. iii. 13, 16); enmity between
nominal professors of the gospel, and distance even between those, who
believe themselves to be members of the same body, heirs of the same
inheritance,1 and bound by the same obligation to love one another.2
Oh! hasten the blessed time, when the Church shall be fully transformed
into the image of her Divine Lord; when it shall be a Church of perfect
love in a world of love!
CHAPTER XXXI.
1. The words of King Lemuel, the prophecy that his mother taught him. 2.
What, my son? and what the son of my womb? and what, the son of
my vows.
OF King Lemuel we know no more than of the prophet Agur in the last
chapter.* All that we know is, that he was endowed, like many of
God's people (Ps. cxvi. 16. 2 Tim. i. 5; iii. 15), with the invaluable
blessing of a godly mother; who, like Deborah of old (Judg. v. 1),
was honoured of God to be the author of a chapter of the sacred;
volume.
What an animating burst from the yearning of a mother's heart!
What! my son-the son of my womb-of my vows! Happy mother-
1 Eph. iv. 4-6. 2 John, xiii. 34, 35.
*Both have been identified with Solomon, though without any historical evidence. It
seems unlikely, that Solomon, having given his own name more than once in this book
(chap. i. 1; x. 1,) should give two mystical names at the close, without any distinct per-
sonal application. Nor is there any scriptural testimony in favour of Bathsheba, that would
lead us to stamp her with this peculiar honour as one of the writers of God's word. 'The
admonitory verses composed for King Lemuel by his mother, when in the flower of youth
and high expectation, are an inimitable production, as well in respect to their actual
materials, as the delicacy with which they are selected. Instead of attempting to lay down
rules concerning matters of state and political government; the illustrious writer confines
herself, with the nicest and most becoming art, to a recommendation of the gentler virtues,
of temperance, benevolence, and mercy, and a minute and unparalleled delineation of the
female character, which might bid fairest to promote the happiness of her son in connubial
life.'--Dr. GOOD.
CHAP. XXXI. 3-7 617
when the son of her womb is the son of her vows! like Samuel, a
dedicated child, a child of many prayers; "asked of the Lord, let into
his service." (1 Sam. i. 11.) If there were more Hannahs, would there
not be more Samuels? If thou wouldst have, Christian mother, thy
child a Samuel or an Augustine, be thyself a Hannah or a Monica. The
child of thy prayers, of thy vows, and of thy tears, will be in the Lord's
best time the child of thy praises, thy rejoicings, thy richest consolation.
Yet thy faith will not end with the dedication of thy child. Lemuel--
the son of her vows--his mother taught him. And such is the practical
habit of godliness, that faith in vowing quickens diligence in teaching.
The child, truly consecrated, will be "brought up in the nurture and
admonition of the Lord." (Eph. vi. 4.)
3. Give not thy strength unto women, nor thy ways to that which destroyeth
kings. 4. It is not for kings, O Lemuel, it is not for kings to drink wine:
nor for princes strong drink: 5. Lest they drink, and forget the law, and
pervert (alter, marg.) the judgment of any of the afflicted, (all the sons
of affliction, marg.) 6. Give strong drink unto him that is ready to
perish, and wine unto those that be of heavy hearts (bitter of soul,
marg.) 7. Let him drink, and forget his poverty, and remember his
misery no more.
Solomon has given us his father's wise counsels. (Chap. iv. 4.) Le-
muel gives us his mother's. Both have an equal claim to reverence.
(Chap. i. 8.) Filled with deep anxiety, the impassioned tenderness
bursts out in this godly mother, as if some besetting enticements were
imminent, perhaps already working poison in her beloved son. What!
my son--the son of my womb--of my vows? My heart is full. I must
give vent. Have I endured all this travail in vain? Beware--Give
not thy strength unto women. What a beacon had Solomon set up!
(Chap. ii. v. vii.) What a beacon had he himself become! (Neh. xiii.
26.) These forbidden gratifications were ways that destroy kings. Such
was the judgment upon David. His kingly authority was shaken.
(2 Sam. xii. 9, 10.) Solomon's sin destroyed his kingdom. (1 Kings, xi.
11.) The fruit of this sin is shame. The end of it, without repentance,
is death.
The anxious mother next warns against another cognate sin--in-
temperance. (Hos. iv. 11.) The vice that degrades a man into a beast,
is shameful to all, specially unseemly for kings. They are "the city set
upon a hill." Men look, or ought to look, to them for guidance and
example. What a sight for kings to drink wine and strong drink--to be
given to it! Witness Elah1--Benhadad2--Belshazzar--"the princes
of Israel made sick with bottles of wine!"3 How was their high office
l I Kings, xvi. 8, 9. 2 Ib. xx. 16. 3 Hos. vii. 5.
618 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
and glory covered with shame! Sometimes it is pleaded as an excuse
for sin. But if the drunken king forgets the law, and perverts the judg-
ment,* will he not be held responsible? Ahasuerus was doubtless
responsible for his unseemly conduct to Vashti.1 Herod murdered the
Baptist at an ungodly feast.2 Priest and prophet "err through strong
drink."3 A wise veto therefore is set for the rulers of the Church--"not
given to wine."4
And yet the abuse of God's blessing does not destroy their use.
Wine is the gift of God. " It maketh glad the heart of man." (Ps. civ.
14, 15.) Yea--by a bold figure of its refreshment--it is said to "cheer
God" also. (Judg. ix. 13.) Yet it is not for kings--for their indulgences
and sinful excitement, but for those that need it. As restoratives and
refreshments cordials are seasonable in the hour of need. Give strong
drink to him that is ready to perish, as the Samaritan gave it to the
wounded traveller (Luke, x. 34); as Paul prescribed it for "the in-
firmities" of his beloved son in the faith. (1 Tim. v. 23.) Many a sinking
spirit may be revived, and forget his misery under a well-timed restora-
tive. The rule therefore of love and self-denial is--Instead of wasting
that upon thyself, in the indulgence of appetite, which will only debase
thy nature; see that thou dispense thy luxuries among those, who
really require them. Seek out cases of penury and wasting misery.
Let it be an honour to thee to bring in the poor that is cast out into
thine house, that he may forget his poverty, and remember his misery no
more.† May not this remind us of the Messenger of love, dealing with
those that are ready to perish? (Isa. lxi. 1,2. Matt. xi. 28.) Their con-
science is loaded with guilt. Their hearts are heavy with a burden
which they can neither bear nor be rid of. He tells them of God's love
to sinners; the ransom found for them; the welcome assured to them.
This is a cordial of strong drink, and wine such as they need. The heavy
heart becomes "no more sad." (1 Sam. i. 18. Acts, xvi. 34.) The former
poverty is forgotten, and his misery is remembered no more, and "the
blessing of him that was ready to perish comes" upon him " that bringeth
the good tidings." Happy minister, gifted like his divine Master, with
the "tongue of the learned, that he should know how to speak a word
in season to him that is weary." (Isa. 1. 4.)
1 Esther, i. 10, 11. 2 Mark, vi. 21-28. 3 Isa. xxviii. 7; lvi. 12.
4 1 Tim. iii. 3. Titus, i. 7.
* A woman wrongly condemned by Philip of Macedon, when drunk, boldly exclaimed
--'I appeal to Philip, but it shall be when he is sober.' Roused by the appeal, the monarch
examined the cause, and gave a righteous judgment.
† This was the classical idea of the power of wine,--'Huic calix mulsi impingendus. ut
plorare desinat.--CICERO, Tuscul. 3., 'Nunc vino pellite curas.'-- HOR. Od. 1. i. 7. 'Vinum
obliviosum' (blotting out the remembrance of evil.)--Tb. Od.l. ii. 7. 'Tunc dolor et curae
rugaque frontis abit.'--Ovid. The mixed wine which Helena gave to Telemachus, called
Nepenthes, had such an effect as to remove sorrow, and to bury in forgetfulness past evils.
--Odyss. D. 220, 221. Comp. Mark, xv. 23.
CHAP. XXXI. 8-10. 619
8. Open thy mouth for the dumb in the cause of all such as are appointed to
destruction. 9. Open thy mouth, judge righteously, and plead the cause
of the poor and needy.
Very soundly does the wise mother inculcate mercy upon her royal
son. This is one of the pillars of the king's throne. (Chap. xx. 28.) He
must be the Father of his people, employing all his authority to protect
those, who cannot protect themselves. (Ps. lxxii. 12-14.) No case of
distress, when coming to his knowledge, should be below his attention.
Thus our law makes the judge the counsel for the prisoner, who is un-
able to plead for himself--opening his mouth for the dumb. Thus should
magistrates more carefully consider, that no one should lose his just
right from want of ability to defend it.1 Those who are, or appear to be,
appointed to destruction, should have their fair and open course to plead,
and save their lives.2
This it was, that made the difference between the prosperity of godly
Josiah and the ruin of his wicked son. (Jer. xxii. 15-19.) How repeatedly
did Jonathan open his mouth for his friend appointed for destruction!3 How
effectively did Esther plead the cause of her helpless and devoted peo-
ple! (Esth. vii. 3,4.) To descend into lower ranks (for why should
we restrict these wise injunctions within the narrow limits of royalty?)
what a complete pattern of this mercy does Job exhibit! "Eyes as he
was to the blind, and feet to the lame," doubtless he perfected his cha-
racter as “a father to the poor, by being a mouth to the dumb. (Job,
xxix. 15, 16.) How was Ebedmelech honoured for this merciful advo-
cacy of the condemned!4 How awful is the threatened vengeance for
the neglect of this mercy!5 Alas! Jesus, though he had found an ad-
vocate in earlier times, yet stood as a sheep before his shearers--dumb,
appointed for destruction. None was found to open his mouth for the
divine afflicted victim.6 And yet how does he reverse this picture of
pitiless neglect, in his powerful effectual pleading in the cause of those,
whom the voice of justice so loudly, so justly appoints for destruction!
Let his representatives on earth study the character of their king in
heaven, and be conformed more fully to his image of forgiveness and
love.
10. Who can find a virtuous woman! for her price is above rubies.
We now come to the principal part of the chapter. The wise
mother of Lemuel had warned her royal son against the seduction of evil
women, and its attendant temptations, and given him wholesome rules
for government. She now sets before him the full-length portrait of a
1 Deut. xvi. 18-20. Ps. lxxxii. 3, 4. 2 Contrast 1 Kings, xxi. 9-13, with John, vii. 51.
3 1 Sam. xix. 4-7; xx. 32; xxii. 14, 15. 4 Jer. xxxviii. 8, 9; xxxix. 15-18.
5 Chap. xxiv. 11, 12. Jer. v. 28, 29. 6 Isa. liii. 7. Matt. xxvi. 59, 63.
620 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
virtuous woman--that choicest gift, which is emphatically said to be
"from the Lord." (Chap. xix. 14.) It is an elegant poem of twenty-two
verses--like the hundred and nineteenth Psalm, artificially constructed
--each verse beginning with one of the successive letters of the Hebrew
alphabet.* It describes a wife, a mistress, and a mother. 'All mothers
and mistresses should teach the female pupils under their care to read
and learn it by heart.† The more deeply it is studied--provided only
it be practically studied--the more will its beauty be understood and
felt. Genuine simple fact without colouring or pretensions commends
the character to our warmest interest.
So rare is this treasure, that the challenge is given--"Who can find
a virtuous woman?" (Comp. chap. xx. 6.) Abraham sent to a distant
land for this inestimable blessing for his beloved son. (Gen. xxiv. 3, 4.)
Perhaps one reason of the rarity of the gift is, that it is so seldom sought.
Too often is the search made for accomplishments, not for virtues; for
external and adventitious recommendations, rather than for internal godly worth.
The enquiry also implies the value of the gift when found. Even
Adam's portion in innocence was not complete, till his bountiful Father
"made him a help-meet for him." (Ib. ii. 18.) Truly her price is above
rubies. No treasure is comparable to her.1 It is not too much to say
with the prince of heathen philosophy--'If women be good, the half of
the commonwealth may be happy where they are.'‡
11. The heart of her husband doth safely trust in her, so that he shall have
no need of spoil. 12. She will do him good, and not evil, all the days
of her life.
The price of the virtuous woman has been told. Her different features
will now be given. The first lines of the portrait describe her cha-
racter as a wife. Her fidelity, oneness of heart, and affectionate duti-
fulness, make the heart of her husband safely to trust in her.§ He feels
1 Comp. Ecclus. vii. 19; xxv. 13-18.
* Comp. also Ps. cxlv. The Lamentations of Jeremiah.
† Bp. HORNE'S Sermon on the Female Character. See the counterpart of "the virtuous
man " in the exquisite picture, which the sorrowful patriarch drew of the simple habit and
feelings of his owu life. Job, xxix.-xxxi.
‡ ARIST. Rhet. i. 5. Comp. Polit ii.9.
§ Such was Luther's description of his wife --'The greatest gift of God is a pious amia-
ble spouse, who fears God, loves his house, and with whom one can live in perfect confidence.'
D' AUBIGNE'S Hist. of Reformation, book x. chap. xiii. Contrast with this picture, chap.
vii. 18-20. Gen. xxxix 19, 20. Isaac Walton's account of Bp. Sanderson's wife was much
after Solomon's pattern--'A wife, that made his life happy, by being always content, when
he was cheerful; that was always cheerful when he was content; that divided her joys
with him, and abated of his sorrow by bearing a part of that burden; a wife that demon-
strated her affection by a cheerful obedience to all his desires during the whole course of
his life.'--Life of Bp. Sanderson. Ambrose expounds the woman to be the Church, and
explains the confidence of her husband as the ground of her perseverance--adding--'that it
is not the heart of her Lord, who may be deceived, but of her husband, which cannot be mis-
CHAP. XXXI. 11, 12. 621
his comfort to be regarded, his burdens relieved, and his mind exempted
from many teazing vexations. He is at ease in constrained absence
from home, having left his interests safe in her keeping; while he is
sure, that his return will be welcomed with the gladdening smile. A
faithful wife and a confiding husband thus mutually bless each other.
With such a jewel for his wife, the husband has no misgivings. His
home is the home of his heart. He needs not to look into the matters
entrusted to her with suspicious eye. He has no reserves or jealousies.
Ruling in this sphere without, he encourages her to rule in her sphere
within. All is conducted with such prudence and economy, that he
has no need of spoil, no temptation to unjust gain; no need to leave his
happy home, in order to enrich himself with the soldier's spoils. The
attachment of such a wife is as lasting, as the time of their union-
constant--consistent. Instead of abusing confidence, she only seeks
to make herself daily more worthy of it; not fretful and uncertain,
caring "how she may please her husband" (1 Cor. vii. 34), doing him
good, and not evil, all the days of her life. Would that it were always
so! But look at Eve--the help-meet1 becoming a tempter; Solomon's
wives drawing away his heart;2 Jezebel stirring up her husband to
abominable wickedness;3 Job's wife calling upon her husband to
"curse God, and die;"4 the painful cross of "the brawling woman"5
--this is a fearful contrast--evil, not good. Often again is it a mix-
ture of evil with the good. Rebekah caring for her husband in the act
of opposition to God, yet wickedly deceiving him;6 Rachel loving
Jacob, yet bringing idolatry into his family;7 Michal doing good to
David at first in preserving his life, evil afterwards in despising him as
a servant of God.8 Often we hear of prudent management, but not in
the fear of God, connected with a teazing temper. But in this picture
it is good, and not evil.
Her husband's comfort is her interest and her rest. To live for him
is her highest happiness. Even if her minute attentions to this object
are not always noticed, yet never will she harbour the suspicion of
indifference or unkindness; nor will she return fancied neglect with
sullenness, or by affected or morbid sensibility force on a feverish inter-
change of expression, which has little substantial foundation.
This course of disinterested regard and devoted affection, when con-
ducted on Christian principles, commends most graciously the 'holy
and honourable estate of matrimony.' If it implies subjection, it involves
no degradation. Indeed no greater glory could be desired, than that
taken.' In loc. Would such a conceit with any other name escape severe castigation?
Augustine's Exposition is much in the same character--fancy, not judgment.--De Temper.
Serm. p. 217. Many Romish commentators apply this description to the Virgin."
1Gen. ii. 18, with iii. 6. 2 1 Kings, xi. 1-5. 3 Ib. xxi. 25.
4 Job, ii. 9. 5 Chap. xxi. 9; xxv. 24. 6 Gen. xxvii.
7 Ib. xxxi. 19; xxxv. 1-4. 8 1 Sam. xix. 12. 2 Sam. vi. 20-22.
622 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
which is given to it, that it should illustrate "the great mystery,"--
"Christ and his Church,"1 the identity of interest between them; her
trials his;2 his cause hers.3
13. She seeketh wool, and flax, and worketh willingly with her hands.
14. She is like the merchants' ships; she bringeth her food from afar.
15. She riseth also while it is yet night, and giveth meat to her house-
hold, and a portion to her maidens. 16. She considereth a field, and
buyeth it; with the fruit of her hands she planteth a vineyard. 17. She
girdeth her loins with strength, and strengtheneth her arms. 18. She
perceiveth (tasteth, marg.) that her merchandize is good: her candle
goeth not out by night. 19. She layeth her hands to the spindle, and
her hands hold the distaff. 20. She stretcheth out (spreadeth, marg.)
her hand to the poor; yea, she reacheth forth her hands to the needy.
21. She is not afraid of the snow for her household, for all her house-
hold are clothed with scarlet (double garments, marg.) 22. She
maketh herself coverings of tapestry; her clothing is silk and purple.
23. Her husband is known in the gates, when he sitteth among the
elders of the land. 24. She maketh fine linen, and selleth it; and
delivereth girdles unto the merchant. 25. Strength and honour are her
clothing; and she shall rejoice in time to come. 26. She openeth her
mouth with wisdom; and in her tongue is the law of kindness. 27.
She looketh well to the ways of her household, and eateth not the bread
of idleness.
This lovely character is drawn according to the usage of ancient
times; though the general principles are of universal application. It
describes not only the wife of a man of rank, but a wise, useful, and
godly matron in her domestic responsibilities. It is "a woman pro-
fessing godliness, "adorned" with good works" (1 Tim. ii. 10); a Mary
no less than a Martha. 'It may be necessary to retouch the lines of
the picture, that have been obscured by length of years; in plain terms
--to explain some parts of the description, which relate to ancient
manners and customs, and to shew how they may be usefully applied
to those of our own age and country.'*
One thing however is most remarkable. The standard of godliness
here exhibited is not that of a religious recluse, shut up from active
obligations, under the pretence of greater sanctity and consecration to
God. Here are none of those habits of monastic asceticism, that are
now extolled as the highest point of Christian perfection. One half at
least of the picture of the virtuous woman is occupied with her personal
and domestic industry. What a rebuke also does this convey to a
1 Eph. v. 32. 2 Acts, ix. 4. 3 Ps. cxx.xix. 22.
* Bp. Horne, ut supra.
CHAP. XXXI. 13-27. 623
self-indulgent inactivity! Her several employments admirably illus-
trate genuine simplicity of manners, and practical, yet liberal economy.
This is indeed a difficult and rare attainment, economy without a nig-
gardly spirit; seen and felt as little as possible, and conducted with all
care and consideration of the comfort of the family.
But let us look more minutely into the features of the portrait
drawn before us. Her personal habits are full of energy. Manual labour,
even menial service, in olden times was the employment of females in
the highest ranks.* Self-denial is here a main principle.--The virtuous
woman goes before her servants in diligence, no less than in dignity;
imposing nothing upon them, which she had not first bound upon
herself, ruling her household most efficiently by the government of
herself. Thus she seeks out her materials for work. Her needle is at
the service of her family. Instead of a suppressed murmur at some
inconvenient demand, she sets the pattern of working willingly with her
hands. Instead of loitering herself, while they were labouring, she
counts it no shame to be employed at the spindle and distaff.† She is
early and late at her work, rising in the night.‡ The fruit of her work
she turns to good account. She exchanges it in commerce for food
brought from far. Her merchandize is good in quality--tapestry, fine
linen, and girdles delivered to the merchant.§ Her whole soul is in her
work--girding her loins with strength, and strengthening her arms--
ready to do any work befitting her sex and station. The land has also
her due share of attention. Ever careful for her husband's interests,
she considers the value of a field; and, if it be a good purchase, she buys
it, and plants the vineyard for the best produce.
One more particular connected with her character as a wife is men-
tioned--her dress. This in a woman of superior rank, fit for a king, is
* Sarah, Gen. xviii. 6-8; Rebekah, xxiv. 18-20, with 12-14; Rachel, xxix. 9, 10; the
daughters of the Prince of Midian, Exod. ii. 16: the daughter of a king. 2 Sam. xiii. 5-9.
†Compare PAXTON'S Illustrations, ii. 418-420. HOM. Il. I. 128. Z. 490, 491. XI. 440.
Odyss. A. 357. E. 62. Ovid advises maidens, if they would have the favour of Minerva, to
learn to use the distaff, to card, and spin (Fasti, Lib. iii.) Comp. Met. L. iv. v.34. VIRG.
Georg. iv. 348. Classic writers mention Lucretia found spinning with her maids, when her
husband paid her a visit from the camp. The wool spun by Tarquin's wife long remained
with a distaff and spindle in the temple. Alexander the Great is said to have shewn to the
Persian princesses his garments made by his mother. Augustus--it is said--would wear
no clothes, but such as were made by the members of his own family. (BURDER'S Oriental
Customs.) Our English records of female royalty furnish similar proofs of hand-industry.
The magnificent far-famed tapestry of Bayeux was the work of William I.'s queen. The
messengers of Henry to Katherine of Arragon, announcing her divorce. found her with a
skein of red silk round her neck being at work with her maids. Beautiful memorials are
still preserved of Queen Katherine Parr's manual skill. See Miss STRICKLAND'S Queens of
England--a work however, not to be read without caution from the unsound principles
pervading it.
‡ See Parkhurst--Virgil's beautiful picture of the industrious wife. Aen. viii. 407
§ See PAXTON'S Illustrations, ii. 420.--Girdles, a rich article of dress both of men (2 Sam.
xviii. 11), and women. Isa. iii. 24. The Merchant--'The Canaanite.' Heb. LXX.
624 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
of course according to her station. Her clothing is silk* and purple.
Nor does this contravene the New Testament rule of sobriety.1 It only
commends her station in consistency with the purest simplicity of god-
liness. In a more general application, the dress should be suitable, so
as to maintain the rank of presidency in the house. It is possible to
pay too little, as well as too much, attention to this point; and it is not
always that Christian women pay to it the regard precisely due, separate
from both extremes. No increase of active exercise can excuse the
neglect of those graces, which, trifling as they seem, when set out on
right principles, form a component part of an attractive profession.
The primary respect inculcated to the inward "adorning"2 in no way
renders the exterior grace a nullity. Even in isolated seclusion some
regard would be due; much more, as suited to the gradation which
Providence has assigned; and as commanding an husband's respect,
who justly claims, that his wife's exterior, so far as she is concerned,
should continue to be not less pleasing, than when at first his heart was
drawn to her.
We now again observe her conduct as a mistress. And here also her
praise is not, that she spends her time in devotional exercises (though
these, as "a woman that feareth the Lord" (Verse 30), she duly prizes);
but that, according to the Scriptural canon, "she guides her house"
(l Tim. v. 14), watching carefully over her charge, distributing both
her meat and her work in due proportion, and "in due season." This
is her responsibility. If "man goeth forth to his work, and to his
labour till the evening" (Ps. civ. 23), the woman finds her work as "a
keeper at home." (Tit. ii. 5.) And beautiful indeed is it to see, how
by her industry, self-denial, and heartiness she "buildeth her house."
(Chap. xiv. 1.) She rises while it is yet night, not for the sake of being
admired and talked of, but to give meat to her household. The delicacy
also, with which she preserves her own sphere, is remarkable. For
while she provides food for the whole household: she giveth the portion--
that is--of work--not to the man-servants (these with great pro-
priety she leaves to her husband), but to her maidens.† Their clothing
is also provided with every regard to their comfort. She is not afraid
of snow for them. They are clothed with scarlet, or rather with double
garments,‡ well clad for a severe winter. So well does she look to the
ways of her household, such untiring energy does she shew in every
department, that none can accuse her of eating the bread of idleness. In
1 1 Tim. ii. 9. 1 Pet. iii. 3. 2 1 Pet. iii. 4. 1 Tim. ii. 10.
* Parkhurst translates it, 'Fine white linen.' Holden doubts whether the article of
silk was known to the Jews at this early age. Gibbon mentions it as not known beyond
the Chinese territories, whence it originally came, till the reign of Justinian. Chap. xl.
†See Foxe's beautiful picture of Anne Boleyn as the mistress of her household, v. 63.
‡ 'Dupicibus penulis'--such as the wife of Hector made. HOM. Il. XI. 441. 'All her
household folks are double clothed.' Bp. COVERDALE.
CHAP. XXXI. 13-27 625
her household, order is the principle of her rule. Timely orders are
given, and they must be obeyed. Nothing is neglected, that belongs
to order, sobriety, economy, or general management. Well does she
understand the exact work of each under her care, and their different
abilities; when they need to be directed, and when they may be left
to their own responsibility; what belongs to, and what is beyond, her
own province of superintendence.
But never let the mistress contract her inspection within the sphere
of a mere housekeeper, with her whole time and mind employed in the
external routine of her household. While she exercises sound disci-
pline and maternal anxiety, her primary principle is a Christian con-
science for their highest interests; looking well to their moral habits,
their religious instruction, and attendance on the means of grace;
giving them time for secret prayer, and reading the word of God,*
bringing them to the daily ordinance of family worship; inculcating
the careful observance of the Sabbath; anxiously watching over their
manners, habits, and connections. While we would be careful not to
over-work them, yet never let them eat the bread of idleness. If they
have nothing to do for us, let them work for God. In short; let us
consider them, not as beasts of burden, not as mere mercenaries; but as
a solemn and responsible trust for God and for eternity. Who can have
the claim to a virtuous woman, who does not feel this weight of family
responsibility?
Nor is her provident care limited to her own dependants. Her
spindle and distaff are worked, not for herself only, or for her household,
but for the poor and needy. And, having first "drawn out her soul"
(Isa. lviii. 10), she stretcheth out her hands (Deut. xv. 7, 8), to embrace
those at a distance from her with the flow of her love; and thus "the
blessing of those that were ready to perish cometh upon her." (Job,
xxix. 13. Acts, ix. 39.) Her spirit and manner also are of the same
character; all in full accordance with her professions. Clever, brisk,
and managing minds are often deficient in the softer graces. Their
tongues are unrestrained, and lawless under provocation. Children,
servants, and neighbours, suffer from this revolting hardness, and find
"it better to dwell in a corner of the house-top, than with a brawling
woman in a wide house." (Chap. xxi. 9.) But the godly matron has not
only the law of love in her heart, but wisdom in her mouth, and in
tongue the law of kindness. The same love that binds her heart, governs
her tongue, not with the caprice, but with the law, of kindness--a law,
which she receives from wisdom, and which gives the mould to her
*Esther must surely have been in the habit of instructing her maidens; else they could
not have been girded for the extraordinary services of the fast, iv. 16. Thus it is recorded
of one, who shone as a sparkling jewel in the licentious court of Charles II., that 'she pro-
vided her servants books to read, prayers to use by themselves, and constantly instructed
them herself in the principles of religion.'--Life of Mrs. Godolphin, p. 195.
626 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
whole spirit, so that 'she says nothing that is foolish, nothing that is
ill-natured.'* Richly endued with "the wisdom that is from above,
she is "gentle, and easy to be entreated; pitiful, courteous." (Jam. iii.
17. 1 Pet. iii. 8.)
Thus indeed "a virtuous woman is a crown to her husband." (Chap.
xii. 4.) He is known in the gates, when he sitteth among the elders of the
land; as blessed with no common treasures of happiness; 'as indebted
perhaps for his promotion to the wealth acquired by her management at
home, and, it may be, for the preservation and establishment of his
virtue, to the encouragement furnished by her example and conversation.'†
For herself--manifest and manifold blessings rest upon her.
Strength is the clothing of her inner man. Christian courage and resolu-
tion lift her up above appalling difficulties. The clothing of honour
stamps her with the Lord's acceptance, as his faithful servant, the child
of his grace, and the heir of his glory. She rejoices, not only in her
present happiness, but in time to come. Having been so wisely pro-
vident for the morrow, she is not overburdened with its cares. Having
lived in the fear of God, and honoured her God with the fruits of
righteousness, there is sunshine in her hour of trial, "in the valley of
the shadow of death," in the unclouded day of eternity. She shall
rejoice in time to come, when the ministering angels, and with them the
blessed recipients of her bounty (Luke, xvi. 9), shall welcome this
daughter of Jerusalem "into the joy of the Lord."
28. Her children arise up, and call her blessed: her husband also, and he
praiseth, her. 29. 'Many daughters have done virtuously, but thou
excellest them all.' 30. Favour is deceitful, and beauty is vain: but a
woman that feareth the Lord, she shall be praised. 31. Give her of the
fruit of her hands; and let her own works praise her in the gates.
The virtuous woman is obviously subserving her own interest. For
* Bp. Horne. Comp. Ecclus. xxxvi. 23. Hooker probably had the portrait before his
eyes, when in his exquisite funeral sermon for his 'virtuous gentlewoman' he enumerates
'among so many virtues hearty devotion towards God, towards poverty tender compas-
sion; motherly affection towards servants; towards friends even serviceable kindness;
mild behaviour and harmless meaning towards all.'--Remedy against Sorrow and Fear.
Bp. Taylor's finely-drawn portrait of Lady Carbery is after the same pattern of complete-
ness. 'If we look on her as a wife, she was chaste and loving, discreet and humble. If we
remember her as a mother, she was kind and severe, careful and prudent, very tender, and
not at all fond; a greater lover of her children's souls than of their bodies, and one that
would value them more by the strict rules of honour and proper worth, than by their relation
to herself. Her servants found her prudent and fit to govern, and yet open-handed and apt
to reward; a just exalter of their duty, and a great rewarder of their diligence.'--Funeral
Sermon. Mrs, Godolphin's Biographer mentions her 'employing herself (especially in
Lent) in working for poor people, cutting out and making waistcoats, and other necessary
coverings, which she constantly distributed among them, like another Dorcas, spending
much of her time, and no little of her money in relieving, visiting and inquiring of them
out.'--Life, pp. 176, 177, 182. † Bp. Horne.
CHAP. XXXI. 28-31. 627
what greater earthly happiness could she know, than her children's
reverence, and her husband's blessing? We may picture to ourselves
her condition--crowned with years; her children grown up; perhaps
themselves surrounded with families, and endeavouring to train them,
as themselves had been trained. Their mother is constantly before
their eyes. Her tender guidance, her wise counsels, her loving disci-
pline, her holy example, are vividly kept in remembrance. They
cease not to call her blessed, and to bless the Lord for her, as his invalu-
able gift. No less warmly does her husband praise her. His attach-
ment to her was grounded, not on the deceitful and vain charms of
beauty, but on the fear of the Lord. She is therefore in his eyes to the
end, the stay of his declining years, the soother of his cares, the coun-
sellor of his perplexities, the comforter of his sorrows, the sunshine of
his earthly joys. (Ecclus. xxxvi. 23, 24.) Both children and husband
combine in the grateful acknowledgment,-- Many daughters have done
virtuously; but thou excellest them all.
But why--it may be asked--do external recommendations form
no part of this portrait? All that is described is solid excellence; and
favour is deceitful. A graceful form and mien often end in disappoint-
ment, more bitter than words can tell. Often do they furnish a cover
for the vilest corruptions. And then beauty--what a fading vanity it
is!* One fit of sickness sweeps it away. (Ps. xxxix. 11.) Sorrow and
care wither its charms. (Ib. vi. 7. P. T.) And even while it remains, it
is little connected with happiness.1 It proves itself the fruitful occasion
of trouble, the source of many hurtful temptations and snares;2 and,
without substantial principle, to a well-judging mind it becomes an
object of disgust rather than of attraction. (Chap. xi. 22.)
The portrait, here pencilled by divine inspiration, begins with the
touch of a virtuous woman, and fills up the sketch with the lineaments
of a woman, that feareth the Lord. (Verses 10, 30.) For the lovely fea-
tures described--her fidelity to her husband, her active personal
habits, her good management and diligence in her family, her consider-
ation for the necessities and comforts of others, her watchfulness of con-
duct, her tenderness for the poor and afflicted, her kind and courteous
behaviour to all--this completeness of character and grace could only
flow from that virtue, which is identified with vital godliness. They
are the good fruit, that "prove the tree to be good." (Matt. vii. 17.)
They are such fruit, flowing from a right principle, as the natural cor-
rupt stock of man could never produce.
The virtuous woman seeks not the praise of men. Content to be
known and loved within her own circle, she never presses herself into
1 Gen. xxix. 17; xxx. 1, 2.
2 Chap. vi. 25, 26. Gen. xii 11-19; xx. 1. 2, 11; xxvi. 7. 2 Sam. xi. 2; xiii. 1.
*Gen. xii. 14, with xxiii. 4. 1 Pet. i. 24. Comp. Virg. Eclog. ii. 17, 18.
628 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
notice. But as a public blessing, she cannot be hid. (Acts, ix. 39.)
And if she has no herald to sound her praise, all will say--Give her of
the fruit of her hands, and let her own works praise her in the gates. 'Let
every one'--says Bishop Patrick--'extol her virtue. Let her not
want the just commendation of her-pious labours. But while some are
magnified for the nobleness of the stock, from whence they sprung;
others for their fortune; others for their beauty; others for other things;
let the good deeds, which she herself hath done, be publicly praised in
the greatest assemblies; where, if all men should be silent, her own
works will declare her excellent worth.' Add to this--as her works
praise her in the gates, so will they "follow her. The memory of the
just is blessed." (Rev. xiv. 13. Chap. x. 7.) All will see in her the
light and lustre of a sound and practical profession; that the promises
of godliness are the richest gain, the grace of God the best portion, and
his favour the highest honour.
If this picture be viewed as an exhibition of godliness, we observe that
religion does not slacken attention to temporal duties. It rather renders a
woman scrupulously exact in all her household obligations, in every-
thing within her province; careful not by her negligence to bring
reproach upon her holy profession. Why should she be careless or
slovenly, putting her important duties out of time and out of place?
Of her it is specially expected, as the summing up of all her practical
exercises, that "she should have diligently followed every good work."
(1 Tim. v. 10.)
How valuable also is this picture, as a directory for the marriage
choice! Let virtue, not beauty, be the primary object. Set against the
vanity of beauty the true happiness, connected with a woman that feareth
the Lord. Here is the solid basis of happiness. 'If'--says Bp.
Beveridge--'I choose her for her beauty, I shall love her no longer than
while that continues; and then farewell at once both duty and delight.
But if I love her for her virtues; then, though all other sandy founda-
tions fail, yet will my happiness remain entire!† The external choice
was the cause of the destruction of the world. (Gen. vi. 2-7.) A flood
of iniquity came into a godly man's family from the self-pleasing delu-
sion. (2 Chron. xviii. 1 ; xxi. 5, 6.) The godly choice is uniformly
stamped with the seal of divine acceptance.
In fine--'if women'--says pious Bishop Pilkington--'would
learn what God will plague them for, and how; let them read the third
chapter of the prophet Esay. And if they will learn what God willeth
them to do, and be occupied withal, though they be of the best sort,
let them read the last chapter of the Proverbs. It is enough to note
it, and point it out to them that will learn.'‡ That which is last to be
* In loco. †Resolution ii.
+ Works, Parker Society Edit. p. 381.
CONCLUSION. 629
done'--concludes an old Expositor—‘ is to mark it well and let every
woman strive to make it agree to herself as much as she can. Let
every man be ashamed, that any woman shall excel him in virtue and
godliness.'*
'Thus--and once more'--says pious Matthew Henry, in his quaint
style--'is shut up this looking-glass for ladies, which they are desired
to open and dress themselves by; and if they do so, their adorning will
I be found to praise, and honour, and glory, at the appearing of Jesus
Christ.†
We would conclude with a brief summary of a few prominent
points involved in the study of this most instructive Book.
Let us observe the connection between inward principle and outward
conduct. Never let it be forgotten, that the exercises, here described or
inculcated, suppose an internal source. It is the light within, that
shines without. The hidden life is thus manifested. "The fountain
sendeth forth" its wholesome waters. The good tree bringeth forth
good fruit. A good man out of the good treasure of the heart bringeth
forth good things." (Matt. xii. 33, 35.) These therefore are the manifes-
tations, not the innate principles. They flow from the cultivation of
the source within. Nothing permanent is produced by change of
opinion, excitement of feeling, conviction of conscience, but by a new
mould of the heart. The "soft answer" (Chap. xv. 1) is the outward
exhibition of the softened and humble heart. The religion of sincere
purposes, however promising, withers away, "having no root in itself."
(Matt. xiii. 21.) The ways and fashions of the world therefore rule with
a far mightier power, than the dictates of God's word, or the voice of
conscience. The external apprehensions of the Christian system also
are powerless without the internal principle. They exhibit a body of
truth indeed, but a body without life, without any spring of influence
or consolation. Religion, grounded in the heart, will regulate the out-
ward conduct, and put everything in its proper place and proportion.
Let us mark also the flow of true happiness throughout the whole sphere
of godliness. Often has the wise man painted this connection with the
most glowing interest.1 Most important is it to leave this impression
upon the minds of all, specially of our young, readers, that religion is a
joyous thing. With the world it is a matter to be endured, not to be
enjoyed. The Pharisaic professor conceives of much to be done, but
nothing to be enjoyed. With him it is a serious and most weighty con-
cern. But no gleam of sunshine has he ever found in it. The man of
pleasure has no conception of religion, except as the atmosphere of
1 Chap. iii. 13-18; iv. 4-13; viii. 17-21, 32-36.
*Jermin in loco. † In loco.
630 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
gloom; as absurd as to speak; of the darkness of noonday. But not-
withstanding all these misconceptions, no reality is more undoubted
than this--Holiness is happiness. It is not indeed the mirth of the
fool, or the giddy gaiety of the thoughtless. But it is the only thing,
that deserves the name of happiness; the only solid, permanent prin-
ciple of enjoyment.
'Happy the believer '--as an eloquent Preacher forcibly puts it--
'who in his warfare with the enemies of his salvation, is able to oppose
pleasure to pleasure, delight to delight; the pleasures of prayer and
meditation to the pleasures of the world; the delights of silence and
retirement to those of parties of dissipation or of public amusement.
Such a man is steady and unmoved in the performance of his duties;
and because he is man, and man cannot help loving what opens to him
sources of joy; such a man is attached to religion by motives like
those, that lead men of the world to attach themselves to the objects of
their passions, because they procure him unspeakable pleasure.'* In
fact the world's contracted vision little qualifies them to pass judgment
on what they have never apprehended. They see our infirmities, not
our graces; our cross, not our crown; our affliction, not the "joy in the
Holy Ghost," which compensates and infinitely overpays for all that we
can endure.
We wonder not, therefore, that the unenlightened mind naturally
associates religion with restraint, never with freedom or confidence.
But in fact actions, that are valued according to their conformity with
the will of God, though they be secular in their character, are a part of
his service, and ensure his acceptance. Taking up this tight standard,
we shall be able to resist our ruling passion. We shall occupy no
doubtful position. We shall adopt no questionable course. We shall
not lend the influence of our character to the spirit of this world. We
shall feel, that we have only one object--only one obligation--to
maintain the honour of our God. And yet this yoke of strict discipline
is our happiness, not our burden. It is linked with a foretaste of hea-
venly happiness, of which none of us have an adequate conception.
Speculative religion is indeed dry and barren. Practical godliness is
rich in its delights.1 And while the defect of earthly joy is, that it
comes to an end; the perfection of this happiness is, that it will endure
throughout eternity. Yes, truly--it is not a mere temporary privilege.
It is not a provision for drying our eyes, and diverting our sorrow for
a time. It is "everlasting consolation." (2 Thess. ii. 16.) It is con-
solation, of which the present joy arises from the belief, that it will be
everlasting, from looking forward and foretasting that which should
be everlasting. Surely then in our most sorrowful hours we have far
1 See Ps. xix. 11; cxix. 14, 127. Isa. xxxii 17. Jam. i. 25.
* Saurin's Sermons, quoted by Alexander Knox, Remains, iii: 365.
CONCLUSION. 631
more reason for joy than for mourning; and we are hasting onward to
the home, where " the days of our mourning will be ended" (Isa. lx. 20)
for ever.
It is of great moment to remark the wise man's estimate of real good.
Every particle of the chief good he centres in God. To find him is
life.1 To fear him is wisdom.2 To trust him is happiness.3 To love
him is substantial treasure.4 To neglect him is certain ruin.5 Now
man is naturally an idolator. Himself is his centre, his object, his end.
Instead of submitting to guidance, he guides himself. He disputes the
sovereignty with God. He would amend the laws of the Great Law-
giver. Need we add--"This his way is his folly?" (Ps. xlix. 13.) What
then is the true good? "Acquaint thyself with God, and be at peace."
(Job, xxii. 21.) Not real, but known excellence quickens the desire.
Our known God will be our portion.6 He will claim our entire service.7
He will shew himself to us as our chief good--a privilege worth ten
thousand worlds to know--a satisfying portion for eternity. For
indeed so intense is his divine love towards us, that he cannot be
satisfied without accomplishing for us the whole eternal duration of
enjoyment, that he hath laid up for us in himself. All that we could
look for here in the most full and conscious enjoyment of our portion,
we should "reckon as not worthy to be compared" with a single
moment in heaven, when "we shall see face to face, and know even as
also we are known." (1 Cor. xiii. 12.)
Let us study Christian completeness and consistency. The elements of
this character will be brought out by a diligent and prayerful study of
this important Book. Let them be put together in their due connection
and proportion; and "the man of God will be perfect, throughly
furnished unto all good works." (2 Tim. iii. 17.) We want religion to
be to the soul, what the soul is to the body--the animating principle.
The soul operates in every member. It sees in the eye, hears in the
ear, speaks in the tongue, animates the whole body, with ease and
uniformity, without ostentation or effort. Thus should religion direct
and regulate every thought, word, and act. In this day of light and
knowledge, ignorance of our duty too often implies neglect of the
means of instruction, and therefore is an aggravation of our fault,
rather than our excuse. The grand object is, that the conscience be
intelligently instructed under divine teaching. Then let the daily
course be carefully regulated by it. Never turn aside a single step
from its guidance. Never admit the maxims or habits of this world.
Guard against everything that damps vital spirituality, lowers the
high Scriptural standard, or slackens the energy of unremitting
Christian watchfulness. Let our path be steadily balanced between
1 Chap. iii. 35. 2 Chap. i 7. 3 Chap. xvi. 20. 4 Chap. viii. 18-21
5 Ib. ver.36. 6 Ps. xvi. 5. Lam. iii 24. 7 Ps. xlv. 11. Matt. xxii.37.
632 EXPOSITION OF THE BOOK OF PROVERBS.
compromising concession and needless singularity. Let the Christian
only walk with God in the way of the Gospel. He will never be satis-
fied with appearing to maintain his ground. But he will acknowledge
the wisdom of the discipline, which allows his no enjoyment of the
present moment, except in grasping at something beyond him. (Phil.
iii.12-14.) We want not a profession, that will give us a name in the
Church, or eyen a stamp of reproach in the world; but one which
places the divine image before our eyes, and animates us to a growing
conformity to our standard. (Matt. v. 48.) The conscience thus enlight-
ened, and the heart readily following its voice; the sins that carry less
reproach with the world will be resisted, not less than those which are
more revolting. We shall no more indulge an uncharitable spirit, than
a course of profligacy. An angry tone, lowering look, sharp retort, or
disparaging word, will cause grief to the conscience, and will be visited
by its rebuke, as severely as those gross ebullitions, which disgrace our
character before men. "Walking thus before God," not before men, is
Christian "perfection." (Gen. xvii. 1.) His eye is our restraint--his
judgment our rule--his will our delight.
But "Who is sufficient'!" Child of God! let the trembling of insuf-
ficiency in thyself be stayed by the recollection of all-sufficiency in thy
God.1 What he demands of thee, that he works in thee. His covenant
secures thy holiness, no less than thine acceptance--thine holiness, not,
as some would have it, as the ground, but as the fruit, of thine accept-
ance. Let the one then be primarily sought; and the other will
assuredly follow.
"I WILL PUT MY LAW IN THEIR INWARD PARTS, AND WRITE IT IN
THEIR HEARTS. . . . FOR I WILL FORGIVE THEIR INIQUITY, AND I WILL
REMEMBER THEIR SINS NO MORE." (Jer. xxxi. 33, 34.)
1 Comp. 2 Cor. ii. 16, w ith iii. 5; also xii. 9.
THE END.
INDEX.
Abercrombie, Dr. quoted, 55 Bacon, Lord, Pref. xiii. 1'13,275 n. 355,369.
Absalom referred to, 181, 277. 497, 514, 520. 380, 446, 580 n.
605 Bainham referred to, 292
Acceptable words, 111, 468 Balance, false and true, 112, 343, 347
Access to God, 203, 299. 472 Barrow's Sermon, 94 n. 96, 101 n. 246, 545,
Accusation, needless, rebuked, 599 611
Adams, Rev. T., Works, 276 Basil quoted, Pref. xiii. 557
Adams' Private. Thoughts, 238, 438 Bates, Dr., 219
Addison quoted, Pref. iii. 195 D. Baxter, 64 n. 238
AfIiiction, value of, 202, 255. See Chastening. Bear, allusion to, 262. 543
------powerless,522 Beauty, vanity of, 123, 627
-------support in, 207 Bede referred to, 326 n. 422 n.
Agesilaus referred to, 395 n. Begging discountenanced, 375
Agricola referred to, 456 n. Bernard quoted, 64, 199, 495, 562 n. 592
Agriculture, importance of, 137, 167, 171. Berridge quoted, 371
546 Beveridge, Bp quoted, 300, 530, 628
Agur referred to, 589 Bible, completeness of, 592
------his humility, 589, 590 -----holiness of, 592
------prayers, 596 -----importance of studying. Pref. x. xi.
A Lapide, referred to, Pref. xv. 341 n. 422 n. 13, 67, 189
Alexander referred to, 251. 302, 550 n. Bilney referred to, 292
------Dr.. 418, n. Blayney quoted, 475 n.
Alfred, 360 Blessing of God, 94, 104, 126
All-seeing eye of God, 197, 203. 225 Boasting spirit, 469, 500
Alphonsus of Arragon, 259 n. Bochart quoted, 606 n.
Ambrose quoted, 241, 412, 441 n. 607 n. Boleyn, Aune, 609, 624 n.
620 n. Bountiful spirit, 125. 408. 625
Amusements of children, 105, 413 Boyle referred to, 291
Anger, 181, 196, 314,323, 420, 483, 615 Brainerd, 127n.
-------holy, 478, 581 Brawling woman, 371, 381, 479, 515, 609
-------rule over, 250, 279, 314, 336 Brewster's Sir D. Life of Newton, 291
Angry man. friendship with, 420 Britain, anxiety for, 195
Anselm, Abp.. referred to, 293 Brown, Sir T. quoted, 448
Ants, pattern of industry, 60, 611 Bruce quoted, 612 n. .
Apocryphal books, Pref. v. xi. 595 Bunyan, 55, 78 n. 108, 114 n. 136, 185 n. 319,
Apostacy, 12, 18, 481, 490 436, 448, 492 n. 494, 49711. 540. 552 n. 559,
Appetite, rules for, 423 585, 613 n.
-------insatiable, 604 Burder's Orient. Customs, 370n. 522n. 623n.
-------for sin 256 Burke quoted, 195 n. 262 n. 265 n.
-------for the' word, 83, 506 Burnet, Bp. 'quoted, 165, 275 n. 306, 479 n.
Application, personal, of the Gospel, 416 Burroughs on Hosea, 338
Aristotle quoted, 30 n. 32 n. 199 n. 431 n. Butler, Bp. quoted, 102. 185, 244 n. 476. 477.
620 502
Artabanus's speech, 582 n. Buying the truth, 234 n. 435
Articles referred to, 124 n. 201 Byfield on Co1088. quoted. 170 n.
Ass referred to, 485
Athallasius, 411, 525 Calmet182, 282, 522 n.
Atonement of the Gospel, 229 Calvin, 86n. 98n. 298, 538
Attention to the Bible, Pref. x. xi. 85, 416. Carbery, Lady. 626 n.
428 Care for souls, 451
Augustine, Pref. ix. 45, 4S n. 59 n. 67, 89 n. Carlton's, Bp. Life of Gilpin, 550 n.
161, 224 n. 241, 247, 347 n. 353. 359 n. Carpzoy, Pref. v.
413 n. 425 n. 442 n. 452, 461 n. 479 n. 519. Cartwright quoted, 2 n. 4 n. 6, 52. 54, 55 n. :
562 n. 605 n. 617. 621 n. 78, 126 n. 218, 230. 284, 369, 414, .503, 567
Augustus. 271 n. 314 n. 316 n. Caryl quoted, 260n. 345, 350, 369 n. 605 n.
Cato, 252 n. 502 n; 548 n.
Babbling, 95, 102 Cecil quoted, Pref. ix. 306, 382, 529n.
Backbiter described, 466, 478 -------Lord, 384
Backsliding. 178 Chalmers. Dr. quoted, 12, 305, 423
634 INDEX.
Charity. Christian, 38, 321, 553 Counsels, divine certainty of, 325, 357, 389
Charles II. referred to, 235 n. Coverdale. Bp. quoted, 302 n. 307, 344 n.
Charnock quoted, 198 454 n. 469 n. 488 n. 492 n. 515 n. 615 n.
Chastemng of God, 27, 130, 168, 202, 284, 624 n.
322, 336 Covering of sins, 538
------- parental, 168, 322, 413, 429, 570, Covetousness, evil of, 217, 232, 534, 549, 553.
574 See Hasting- to be rich.
Children, anxiety of, 90, 211, 276, 330, 431, Cowardice, warning against, 87. Bee 'Fear
558, 617 of Man.
-------blessing of, 258 Cowper quoted, 147 n. 186, 268 n. 531 n. 547
-------joy in 91, 271, 431 Cranmer referred to, 292, 577
-------promise to, 77, 344 Creation, work, 35, 80
-------sorrow in, 91, 271, 277, 316,550, Credulity, evil of, 179, 497
572 Cruelty, 474, 603
Christ, his divinity, 8, 11, 75, 79, 227 n. 591 --------punishment of, 120
-------example. 5, 150. 197, 223, 466. 487 Curse of God, 40
-------glory of his coming, 158, 183, 189, -------the people, 116, 458
223 -------causeless, 484
-------government, 76, 528 Cyprian quoted, 379 n.
-------gracious words, 147, 241, 410 Cyril referred to, Pref. v.
-------history, Providence of, 394
-------humility, 466 Daille quoted, 142,181, 357n. 614
-------love to sinners, 9, 81, 85, 183, 268 Dathe quoted, 14G, 193 n. 551
-------prudence, 74,145 D'Aubigne's History of the Reformation,
-------sufferings, 118, 273 n. 293 n. 240 n. 357 n. 586 n. 620 n.
-------sympathy, 38, 176, 268, 303 Davenant, Bp. quoted, 58n.266 n.
-------warnings, 11 Death of wicked and righteous contrasted,
--------wisdom, 197 191
Christian, dignity of, Pref. xiii.147, 371 Deceit, evil of, 154, 175, 350
--------happiness of. See Happiness De La Harpe quoted, 530 n.
Chrysostom quoted, 297 n. 299, 34711. 372, De Stael, Madame, quoted, 521
383 n. 612 n. Dependence on God, 224, 319
Church of England, 78, 446 Depression of spirits, 146, 205, 272
Cicero quoted, Pref. iv. 39 n. 137 R. 161 n. Desires, insatiable, 169, 518
252 n. 279 n. 310 n. 353 n. 532 n. 538 n. ---------of righteous, 124, 164, 280, 326
615 n. ---------slothful, 151, 385
Clarendon, Lord, referred to, 235 n. Despair, temptation to, 291
Claudian quoted. 568n. 608 n. Despising, chastening sin of, 28
Cleaver quoted. 123, 258 ---------neighbour, 116, 184
Coelius referred to, 548 n. ---------parents, 199, 211, 550, 600, 605
Comeliness, 614, 627 ---------reproof, 11, 57, 555
Commerce; benefit of, 112 ---------our ways, 320
Communion of Saints, 244, 510, 516 ---------wisdom, 3, 427
Competency, 136 ---------word of God, 159
Completeness, Christian, 631 Destruction of sinners, wilful, 12, 84, 266
Concealment, the glory of God, 464 Devices, wicked, 181, 184
--------unscriptural, 464n. Dew of heaven., 35
Conceit, evil of, 140, 491, 536, 579 Diligence, value of. 127, 138, 369, 422, 385,
Confession of sin. 538 524, 610
Confidence, Christian, 13, 37, 110, 188, 418, Diligent and slothful compared, 92, 145,
453, 541 151
Conies, description of. 612 Diodati quoted, 34, 40, 51, 89, 108, 115, 170n.
Connection between principle and conduct, 176, 181 n. 193 n. 195, 417, 534, 551
629 Diogenes referred to, 251 n.
Consideration, importance of, 38, 218,406, Discipline. value of, 131, 150, 163, 176n. 261,
472 309, 570, 578. See Chastening.
Consistency, Christian, 610, 627 Discretion, value of, 16, 314
Constantiue, Emperor, 14 n. --------want of, 123
Constantius, 234 n. Dishonesty, sin of, 112, 347, 356, 870, 583.
Contention, evil of, 156, 297, 466, 496, 615 See Deceit.
------uselessness of, 565 Diversion of mind, evil of, 275
Contentment, value of, 207, 232, 254. See Divorce, 383n.
Moderation. Dod and Cleaver quoted. See Cleaver I
Conversation, vain, 185 Dodd, Dr. referred to, 584 n.
Cope's Exposition quoted, 80, 92, 185 n. 187, Doddridge referred to, Pref. viii. n. 228 n.
223, 553 346 n, 452 n
Correction. See Chastening. Douay version, 36 n.
Corruption of human nature, 342. 368, 413 Dress, importance of due attention to. 623
--------total, 342, 365, 447, 602 Drunkenness, evil of, 334,434:,442, 617
Counsel. value of 117, 212, 338, 351 Dumb, advocate for, 619
Counsellor, the Great, 75, 140, 213, 352 Durell referred to, 564 n.
INDEX. 635
Eagle, described,. 606 Fool, punishment, 43, 98, 283, 487, 608
Early chastening, 168, 322 ------treatment of 486 565
-------habits, 346 ------way of, 140, 174, 199, 206, 212, 262
-------seeking. 76 266, 280, 567
-------training, 401, 413 --------wrath of, 140, 262, 503
Editorial labours, use of, 462 Foolish child evil of 512
Education, responsibility of, 90, 143, 168, -------woman, 170
401, 403 n. Foolishness, natural, 413
Edward II. referred to, 314 Forbearance 261, 315, 336
--------VI. referred to, 14n. Forgiveness 97, 538
Edwards' (Jon.) Works, 127 n. 227 n. 228, --------great work of, 229
342, 590 n. Foster quoted, 176 n.
Egotism described, 102, 502 Foundation of righteous, 107. See Per-
Elizabeth (Queen) referred to, 15 n. severance
Eloquence, natural, 241 Foxe quoted, 14 n. 37n. 73 n. 103 n. 142,
Empires, four, Daniel's prophecy of, 614n. 205n. 268n. 292, 435n. 450n. 563n. 624n.
End of God in his works, 227 Franke quoted, Pref. ix. 222
Enemies, compassion for, 454 French and Skinner's Commentary 614n
--------forgiveness of, 354, 475 175, 209n. 457n
England, Church of. See Church Fretfulness rebuked, 444, 455
Enmity to the Gospel, 453, 565, 587 Fretting heart 307'
Envy described, 190,.432, 444, 503. Friendship, 261, 504, 510, 511, 515
Equality In the Divine dispensations, 393, --------Divine, 268, 303, 511
569 Frowardness, 63, 122, 270, 371, 401
Erasmus quoted, 15n. 61 n. Fuller, A. quoted, 481
Este quoted, 98 n. 422 n. Furnace of trial, 255, 520
Euripides referred to, Pref. iv. n. Future life, knowledge of, in Old Testa-
Eusebius referred to, Pref. iv. 4811. 249 n. ment, 114 n. 193 n. 214, 374
Evil company, danger of, 5. 17, 47, 89, 164,
420, 434, 533, 583 Gardiner, Colonel, quoted, 161
Experimental religion, 241, 242, 452 Galen referred to, 345n.
Extravagance, 379, 551, 558. See Watch- Gehazi, 121, 350
fulness Geier quoted, Pref. xv. 45 n. 55 n. 70, 71,
Eyes of God, 59. See All-seeing 80 n. 98 n. 133 n. 155 n. 189, 230, 291; 336,
--------importance of keeping, 54 401 n. 407, 422 n. 442, 445, 457 n. 562;
--------seening, 345 576n.
Gesenius referred to, 35 n. 520 n.
Face, hardened, 392 Gibbon referred to, 501, 624 n.
Faintness, encouragement under, 448 Gifts, corruption of, 259, 275, 376, 558
Faith, nature of, 113, 179, 417 ---------use of, 295
--------happiness of, 226, 239, 355, 386, 552, Gill, Dr. quoted, 228 n. 269 n.
584, 594 Gilly's Protestant Forefathers, 422 n.
--------prospects of, 573, 588 Gilpin, Life of, 550 n.
--------parental, 271, 277, 344, 401, 616 ----------Bernard, 384
Faithful man, rarity of, 117, 329, 546 Glass quoted, 8 n. 91n. 439 n;
Faithful wife, blessing of, 620 Glory of God, 227, 464
Faithfulness of God, 92, 405 n. ---------saints, 183
Falsehood reproved, 469. See Lying God, government of, 232, 489
Family Religion, 340 --------omniscience of, 197, 203, 225
----------trials of, 277, 316 --------wrath of, 236, 315
----------ungodliness, evil of, 129, 170, 572 Godliness, blessing of. to the family, 170
Favour of God, blessing of, 132, 195, 237 --------to the state, 115, 194, 531, 556
Favouritism in the study of the Bible, 593 Godolphin (Mrs.), Life of, 520 n. 625 n. 626 n.
Fear of God. blessing of, 3, 26, 75, 87, 107, Good, real, what it is, 179, 631
187, 222, 231, 432, 455 --------man, described, 132
--------God's word, 159 --------Dr. quoted. Pref. v. viii. 149n. 279n.
--------of man, 584 378n. 463 D. 616 n.
--------of sin, 180 Goode, Rev. F..quoted, 143n.
--------godly, 544 Gospel, comfort of, 146, 452, 480
--------of wicked, 105, 524 --------invitations of, 8, 72, 85, 427, 530
Feathers' Tavern Association, 422. --------satisfaction of, 519
Feet, keeping of, 54, 320 Graham, Life of Miss, Pref. ix. xi. 594
Female character, loveliness of, 119, 133, 620, Grave, insatiable, 518
628 Graves. In Pentateuch, 378 n.
Filial obligation, 4, 434, 435 Greenhill on Ezekiel quoted 434
Flattery, evil of, 353, 498, 559 Gregory Nazianzen, 260 ft.
Flavel quoted, 53, 64 n. 103, 404 n. 482, 521, Greyhound alluded to, 613
586 Grotius referred to, Pref. iv. n.
Fletcher quoted, 30 Grove's Sermons, 598 n.
Fool mischief of, 487 Gurnal quoted, 69
--------pleasure, 105, 313 Guyso, Dr. referred to, Pref. viii.
636 INDEX.
Hale, Sir Matthew, 25 n. 67, 206, 281, 806, Horne, Bp. 72 n. 93 n.129, 187, 199, 273, 841,
396, 501 408, 456, 471, 522 n. 511 n. 620, 626
Hall, Bp. Pref. iv. 2, 8, 9, 16, 26, 30, 48, --------Hartwell, Pref. xii. 522 n. 595 n.
85 n. 97, 129, 151, 155. 157, 175. 207, 215, Horse alluded to, 485
227,240, 253,257,268,270 n. 275,279, 281, Horseleech, 604
282,293,310,312,311,322, 323, 326n. 330, Horsley, Bp. quoted, 88-n. 456n. 590n.
334, 850, 352, 360, 362, 369 n. 370, 388, 401, Hottinger referred to, Pref. v. n.
424,435, 442, 445,449,452, 464,471, 472, Howard referred to, 375 n.
477, 488,495, 497, 526,528,552, 564 n. 582, Howe quoted, 43, 261', 511
588, 591, 598, 615 Howels, Rev. W. quoted, 269, 582
Haller quoted, 586n. Human nature, the same, 517
Handmaid heir, 609 Humanity inculcated, 136
Happiness in religion, Pref. xv. 31, 108, Hume, 161
176, 205, 221, 274, 377, 384, 416, 561, Humility, 42, 112, 154,. 222, 239, 289, 530,
629 582, 590
Harmer's Observations, 236 n. Hypocrisy, 101, 115, 889, 865, 497, 506, 514,
Harvest, importance of gathering, 98, 167 585, 545
Hasting to be rich, 354, 369, 549
Hasty spirit, 189, 218, 250, 290, 307,314, 869, Idleness, evil of, 69, 185
466, 579 Idler referred to, 412n.
Hatred, sin of, 91, 101, 497 Ignatius quoted, 295
-------of God, 84 Impatience, evil of, 307
-------reproof, 131. 202 Improvidence reproved, 93
Hawkes, Mrs. Life of, Pref. ix. 269 n. Imprudence. See Suretyship.
Thomas, Life of, 13 n. Inability, moral, 345, 368
Health, religion cond11cive to, 32, 190 Inconsistent profession, evil of, 481
Hearing, the grand means of instruction, 2 Independence, Christian, 332, 406
-------caution concerning it, 331 -------proud, 456
-------diligence in hearing, 82, 428 Indulgence, carnal, 471, 482
-------ear, 345, 429 Industry, blessing of, 92, 181, 157, 167. 171
Heart, danger of trusting, 352 523, 544, 611, 625
-------deceitfulness of, 339 ---------spiritual, 138, 389
-------depth of, 282, 338 Infallibility of the Pope, 284 n.
-------hardness of, 542 Infidelity, 418
-------wholly to be given to God, 21, 481, Ingratitude, 263
432 Inheritance of fathers, 317, 340
Heathen, state of, 194, 577 --------of vanity, 129, 182, 354
Heavenly walk, 214 --------the wise, 42, 78, 166, 254
He-goat alluded to, 618 Injustice, 265, 278, 283, 290, 354, 457, 548,
Henry (Matthew) quoted, Pref. iv. n. xii. 558
40, 65, 80, 84, 93, 139, 143, 154, 185, 229, Innovators described, 456
254, 263, 285, 380, 407, 421, 430, 459, 495, Instruction, sin and danger of despising, 3,
564, 568, 629 56, 168, 221, 421
-------(Philip) quoted, 60 n, 251 n. 478 n. --------importance of receiving, 2, 43,
499, 506 n. 512 n. 73, 82. 100, 428
-------VIII. referred to, 544, 609 Instruction of fools. 241
Herbert (George), 442 n. ---------value of parental, 4, 46, 52, 64,
Heresy, 180, 594 150, 324, 434
Herodotus, 249 n. 582 n. Integrity, moral value of, 112, 113, 304, 340,
Hervey's Theron and Aspasio, 71n. 356
Hezekiah's labours. 462 Interpretation of the Book of Proverbs,
Hildersham quoted, 586 Pref. viii.
Hoary head, 248, 362 --------false, 19 n. 607 n. 620 n.
Hobbes referred to, 455 Invitations, deceitful, 426
Holden quoted. Pref. vi. n. 19 n. 69 n. 80 n. --------of the Gospel. See Gospel.
81 n. 99 n. 137 n. 184 n. 224 n. 230 n. 331 n.
442, 412 n. 515, 524, 551, 562, 592 n. 604 n. Jacob's History, 350
614 n. 624 n. Jamieson's Vindication of the Deity of
Holiness of the Gospel, 229 Christ, 81 n.
Homer referred to, 315 n. 442 n. 418 n. 499, Jebb. Bp. quoted, 91 n.
531 n. 591 n. 606 n. 611 n. 614, 618n. 623n. Jericho described, 485 n.
624n. Jermin, Dr. Comments, Quoted, 7, 112,165,
Homilies quoted, 318, 372, 383 n. 316, 362, 441, 455, 502, 556, 557, 629
Honey, sweetness of, 454, 471 Jerome, Pref. iv. n. 14 n. 45, 99 n. 134 n.
Hooker quoted, 36n. 235, 237, 383n. 399n. 224 n.
456 n. 451 n. 462 n. 557 n. 578, 626 n. Jews, Scottish Mission to. 112 n.
Hooper, Bp. 14n. 268n. Job's history, 6, 383 n. 448, 620 n.
Hopkins, Bp. 32, 200, 201, 213,368, 573 John's, St. charge to the young man, 48 n.
Horace, 31 n. 61 n. 117 n. 252 n. 289 n. 352 n. Johnson, Dr. referred to, Pref. 1. 143, 288 n.
388n 403 n. 443 n. 503 n. 506 n. 510 n. 306. See Idler-Rambler
516 n. 518 n. 543n. 598n. 604 n. 618D. Jon... Rev. W. quoted, 138 n.
INDEX. 637
Jones, Christian biography, 291 Longjnus quoted, 426 n.
Joseph's History, 5, 253, 359, 480 Lot history of 48, 549
Jowett's Christian Visitor, 444 n. Lot: use of, 252, 296
Judgment, private right of, 332 Louis IX. 259n.
-------respect in. See Injustice Love, spirit of, 97, 261
------want of, 167 Lowth, Bp. Pref. vi.n. 85 n. 91n. 110n.
Julian, referred to, Pref. iv. 123 n. 360n. 364 n. 394, 467n. 557 n. 587 n.
Junius, 230 n. -------Mr. quoted, 612 n.
Just: blessings on, 94 Loyalty, 455
Justice, 366, 563 Lust, danger of 56, 65, 69, 88
-------of God, 227. -------means of resisting, 58, 65, 67, 70, 71
Justification of a sinner, 229, 265, 441
Justin Marty, 314 n. Luther, 14, 37, 169, 213, 240, 298, 408, 425,
Juvenal, 47 n. 183 n. 249 n. 315 n.. 333 n. 525, 551, 576 n. 620 n.
355n. 426 n. 448n. 518n. 547 n. LXX. Pref. iii n. v. n. 51 n. 55n. 80n. 124n.
133n. 138n. 168n. 230n. 299n. 301 n.
Kathenne of Arragon, 623n. 354n. 457, 477, 478, 488, 532, 578n. 623n.
Keeping the heart, Importance or, 53 Lying, evil of, 142, 153, 259, 31l, 313, 497
Kennicott, Dr. quoted, 299 n. 486 n. -------listening to, 256, 568
Kidder, Bp. quoted, 505 -------prayer to be delivered from 596
King, favour of, 195, 236, 315 Lyra, 37n.
-------fear of, 455 Lyttleton on St. Paul, 483 n.
-------honour of, 189
-------power of. 236, 615 McCbeyne's Life, 611
-------responsibjlity or, 189, 568 Machiavel quoted, 194 n.
-------wrath of, 236. 315 McCrie's Reformation in Spain, 217 n.
-------godly, 278, 360, 362, 465, 558, 570 McKnight quoted; 42 n.
-------manual for, 189, 234 Magee, Abp. quoted, 394
-------power of God over, 364 Magistracy, 76n.
King's duty to search. 464 Magna Charta, 558
Kirby and Spence, Entomology, 61 n. 613 Manton, Dr. quoted, 147, 503
Knowledge, concealment of, 145 Marriage, of, 58
-------despised, 3 -------not civil contract, 19 n.
-------dispersing, 200 -------indissoluble, 19 n. 383 n.
--------importance of, 74, 196, 206, 293, -------responsibility, 133, 170, 479, 609, 628
306, 349 Martial, 416n. 612n.
--------laying up, 98 Martyn, Rev. H., 78, 87 n. 207, 423, 445,
Knox, Alexander, 227 n. 630n. 505 n. 520 n. 581
Martyr, Peter, quoted, 15 n.
Labour, 100, 185, 246, 247, 623 Mary, Queen, 555
Landmarks, removal of, 421, 428 ---------Queen of William III. 479 n.
--------sacredness of, 421 Massillon referred to, 569
Lathbury's, Rev. T. Tract, 422 n. Meddling spirit, evil of, 283, 336, 494
Latimer, Bp. 95, 142, 450 n. Mede, 19 n. 53, 59 n. 6511.59'7, 598
Lavater's Comment. Pref. iii. 2n. 67, 144, Meditation, importance of, Pref. xi.
166. 187 n. 259 n. 393, 442 n. 457 n. 514 Melancthon's Commentary, 337 n. 372 n.
Lawson's Commentary, 84 n. 132, 275, 415, 411, 416, 422
419, 443, 554 Meekness commended, 196, 208, 470
Lee, Professor, 482 n. Menander quoted, 547 n.
Leigh 's Critica Sacra, 48 n. 61 n. 204 n. Mercy, reward of, 22, 120
Leighton. Abp. 14 n. 35, 74 n. 87, 114, 146, Merry heart, 205n. 272
165, 173, 177, 198, 207, 223n. 256, 279, 284, Messenger, faithful, 162
288, 309, 315, 327, 336, 382, 394, 441, 463, ---------unfaithful, 107, 162, 487
496, 498. 510, 512, 542, 588 Michaelis quoted, Pref. v. 11 n. 226 n. 485n.
Lemuel, King, 616 Middle path, 55 n. 18
Leopard alluded to, 614 n. Middleton. Bp. 80 n.
Liberality, 26, 125, 408, 553 Milner referred to, 249
Life, long. blessing of. 21, 32, 83, 100 Milton, 65 n. 175
--------of the gospel, 149, 214, 327, 397 Minister, Christian, not to be flattered, 520,
Light, cheering comfort of. 220 560, 569
Lion, image of Christian boldness, 524, 614n. Ministry, Christian. 3, 5, 103, 111, 126, 163,
------of ruler, 315, 335, 543 172, 187, 214, 241, 295, 298, 432, 452, 469,
Lips, lying. See Lying. 488, 520, 618
--------righteous, 98, 103, 111, 139, 142, 234, Ministry (Author's) Christian, referred t(),
241, 242, 409. See Mouth, Tongue. 512n. 520 n.
--------ungodly, 188 Mirth, sinful 178, 212
Liturgy, 12, 40, 124, 150, 192, 215. 223, 250, Mischief, love of, 97, 105, 495
300, 425, 476 n. 489, 543, 598 n. 613 Mistress, godly, 624
Livy quoted, 252 n. 314 n. 412 n. Mocking at sin, 175
Locke quoted, 137, 493 n. 593 Moderation, Christian. 596. 605
Locusts described, 612 Mopsuest, Theodore, Pref. v. n.
638 INDEX.
More. Sir Thomas. 321, 389 Poor, kindness to, 191, 321~ 553. 562
Mouth of. righteous, 97, 150 -------neglect of, 184, 257, 310, 562
--------wicked, 98, 111, 135, 199, 216. See -------godly, better condition of 201, 304,
Lips, Tongue 532, 536
Muffett's Comm. 154, 249, 299, 340 Pope, infallibility of. 234n.
Murder, sin of, 544 -------(A.), quoted. 613n.
Popery, endowment of. 195 n.
Name good, value of. 395 -------evil of, 367. See Rome
-------of the Lord. 286 Poverty, advantages of, 155
National judgments. 526, 554, 556 -------trials of, 92, 183, 310
------sins. 195, 526 Practical religion, Pref. xii. 82, 365, 404
Neff quoted, 390 n. 521 n. Praise, danger of. 482, 499, 521
Newman, Lectures on Romanism, 595n. ------importance of renouncing 502, 628
Newton, Sir Isaac, 291 ------value of, 395
Nicholls' Commentary, Pref. xi. 59 n 242 Praising spirit, value of, 561
Nitre explained, 475 n, Prating spirit, 95, 173
Pratt, Rev. Josiah, 573n.
Obedience, Christian, 319 Prayer, importance of, Pref. x. 14
-------to parents, 4, 199 --------privilege of, 202, 218, 472, 531
Odious woman, 609 --------spirit of, 224, 531
Olney Hymns, 106n. 268n. 303n. Preaching, value of. 584
Oppression, 191, 527, 543, 603 Preparation of heart, 224
Order, Christ, 174. 509. 608, 612 Pride, 41, 75, 112,116. 136, 154,156, 216, 228
Ordinances, love for, 83 270, 288. 367, 520, 530, 551, 582, 603
Original corruption. See Corruption. Prior's Life of Burke, 265 n.
Ovid. 89 n. 169 n. 249 n. 252 n. 268 n. 273 n. Progress, Christian, 49
312 n. 421 n. 465 n. 618 n. 623n. Promises of God faithful, 405
Owen, Dr. 11 n. 24. 243, 463.594 Prosperity, snares of, 12
Oxen referred to, 171 Proverbs, canonical authority, Pref. v.
-------rule of life. Pref. xiii.
Paley, 265n. 418, 610 ------time of writing, 'Pref. vii.
Parents addressed, 20, 45, 129, 208, 340, 534, Proverbial teaching, Pref. iii.
581,617 Providence, 226,317, 357, 410, 463
-------anxiety of. See Children Prudence, 60, 74, 86. 144, 162, 174, 179, 240,
-------comforts of. Ib. 293, 398, 458, 486, 513, 568, 610
-------confidence of, 271, 340, 344, 405 Punishment, capital, 544
-------rebellion agst.199, 330,353, 600, 605 Purity of heart, 409
-------sorrow. see Children.
Parkhurst, 157n. 204n. 234:n. 252n. 378n. Queen, prayer for, 235, 526
481 n. 488 n. 524 n. 612 n. 624 n. Quesnel, 130
Parr, Queen Catherine, 623 n.
Pastoral Aid Society, 577n. Rambler, 249n. 288n. 467n.
Patience. See Meekess. Ransom, riches, 155
Patrick, Bp. Pref. xiii.3, 19n. 27, 64n.169. --------of wicked, 114, 381
173 n. 236, 248, 260, 268. 312. 350, 359, Rebellion. 247
369n. 393. 422 n, 453, 488, 492, 511, 557 n. Refiner's furnace, 255, 520
562 n. 574, 628 Reformation. blessings of, 365, 462 n.
Patriotism, Christian, 194, 564 Reformer's Notes, 35, 40, 47,51, 74, 81, 110,
Paulinus, 549 152, 241, 411, 523, 587n. 604n.
Paxton's Illustrations, 11, 235 rL. 295, 364 n. Report, good, gladness of, 221, 480
485 n. 525 n: 543, 611, 623 n. Reproof, 86, 100.. 131, 199, 202, 204, 221, 261,
Payson, Dr. 160, 520 n. 521 n. 329, 467, 486, 549
Peace, 144 Reserve, Tractarian, 464 n.
-------men of, 481 Retirement, blessing of. 280
Persecutions, 554, 566 Retribution justice, 114, 231, 282, 311, 498,
Persius quoted, 388 n. 403 n. 460 n. 536, 606. See Ransom.
Perverseness, 199, 304, 308 Revenge, evil of. 355, 459
Peter, 543, 552 Reynolds, Bp. 11, 74, 110, 124, 208, 224, 240,
-------Czar, referred to, 251 n. 242, 258, 271 n. 286, 288. 291, 296, 304, 311,
Philip of Macedon, 260 n. 618 n. 355, 356, 361, 3f:8, 389, 392, 396, 397, 420,
Pilkington, Bp. quoted, 95, 576 n. 628 425, 451 n. 493, 497, 507, 527 n. 534, 545,
Pindar. 525 n. 563, 569. 605
Pitt, Mr. referred to, 527 Richard III 354 ..
Plato, 2, 194 n. 199 n. 259 n. 335 n. Richardson, Dr. 69 n.
Pliny, 15 n. Riches, crown, 186
Plumptre's, Miss, Letters, 560 n. -------danger of, 99, 128, 425
Plutarch, 216 n. 252 n. 341 n. 550 n. -------use of, 155
Polhill, 253, 351 -------not to be envied, 536
Poole, 40, 63n. 80 n. 337, 391 n 456, 469, 484, Richmond's (Rev. L.) Life, 512
503, 614n. Ridley, Bp.l03n. 142, 268n. 450n. 563n.
Poor, harshness to, 301, 375 Righteous, honour of, 147, 182, 231
INDEX. 639
Righteous perseverance of, 128, 132, 454 n. Service of God, 165, 517
-------recompense of, 121, 129, 166, 232 Severus, speech of senate to, 115
-------security of, 286, 594 Seymour, Jane, 609
-------thoughts of, 134 Shakespeare, 161 n.
Righteousness, 91,113 Shaw, Dr., his travels, 612
-------blessing, 194 Sheppard's Thoughts on Devotion, referred
Rod, discipline of, 98. See Chastening to, 530 n.
Rogers, John, 37 n. Ship in the sea described, 606
Rollin, referred to, 501n. Sidney, Sir P., quoted, 504
Rome, referred to, 371, 411, 419, 566, 595 Simeon, Rev. C., quoted, 520
Rousseau, 571 n. Simple described, 8, 179, 399, 513
Ruined child, 571 Sin, energy of, 251
Rulers, bad, 527, 543, 558, 568 ------enticements of, 5
-------good, 234, 457, 544, 570 ------God not the author of, 227
Russell, Dr. 236n. ------guilty of, 175, 201
Rutherford, 205, 380, 450 ------hatefulness of, 164
------infatuation of, 7, 121, 166
Sabbath, honour of, 195 n. ------misery of, 161, 248
Sallust, 456 n. 502 n. ------purged, 229
Samson's history, 71 n. 441 n. 568 Slander, 497
Sanctification of the Gospel, 229 Sleep, 346
Sanderson, Bp. 22, 26 n. 34, 36, 91, 93, 184 n. Sloth, evil of. See Sluggard.
194, 196, 228 n. 231, 232, 256, 257n. 344, Sluggard, 61, 92, 107, 167, 209, 285, 318, 328,
347, 348n. 451 331, 388, 411, 460, 492. See Diligent.
-------Walton's Life of, 620 Snow, 469, 484
Satisfaction, godly, 150, 169, 118, 327, 519 Soames's Anglo-Saxon Church, 422n.
Saurin's Sermons, 630 Sobriety, 471, 482
Schism, 63, 535 Socrates quoted, 395, 432 n. 590 n.
Schleusner, 411n. Solomon's history, 44, 552
Schultens, 51 n. 53, 56, 71 n. 104, 133 n. 150, Solon quoted, 311 n. 426 n
184, 208 n. 238 n. 336 n. 401 n. 446 n. 450 n. Sons, wise and foolish, compared, 91, 211,
571 n. 572 n. 538
Scipio, 252 n. Sophocles, 265 n.
Scorner, 8, 86, 88, 204, 329, 338, 373, 387, Sorrow, 178, 205, 206, 273, 291
409, 564 South, Dr., Sermons, Pref. xii. 33, 39 n.
Scott, Pref. iv. xi. xii. xiv. ,8 n. 19 n. 64 n. 70, 182, 253 n. 361, 402, 459, 476, 514, 549,
76, 78, 81, 84 n. 116, 125, 146, 154, 157, 569, 597
170 n. 184, 187 n. 221, 234 n. 239 n. 253, South Sea, mission of, 194 n.
260 n. 269 n. 288, 314 n. 331 n. 340 n. 351, Sovereignty of God, 232, 357
410, 418, 417, 442, 454 n. 476, 488, 490, 498, Spider described, 613
498, 514 n. 546, 580, 586, 592 n. Spira, Francis, quoted, 264
Scott's Continuation of Milner, 218 n. Spirit, importance of rule over, 250, 483
Scott, Sir W., quoted, 93 n. ------mischievous, 97, 105, 495
Scriptures, faithful keeping of, 410 Stedfastness, Christian, 509
------favoritism in, 598 Strange woman, 18, 56, 412, 441, 607
------purity of, 592 Strength of God's ways, 109
Security of the ways of God, 13, 34, 87, 95, Strickland's, Miss, Queens of England, 15n.
545 623 n.
Secret of the Lord, 40 Strife, evil of, 97, 156, 208, 254, 264, 270,
Secrets-discovered, 117, 466, 288, 336, 466, 551, 581. See Contention.
Seducer, warning against, 607 ------appeasing, 209
Seed's Sermons, 241 Strigelius, 297 n.
Self-deception, 140, 171, 177, 181, 225, 245, Substance of the Gospel. 18
365, 535, 601 Suretyship, 59, 118, 269, 340, 420, 513
Self-discipline, 279 -------of Christ, 60, 119, 230, 269
Selfishness, 126, 184, 310, 312, 375, 415, 553, Sweetness of the ways of God, 244
562 ------word of God, 452
Self-justifying, 295, 538, 615 Swinnock quoted, 138; 158, 312, 340 n. 369,
Self-righteousness, 506, 431 n. 507
Selling the truth, 485 Sympathy, Christian, imperfect, 176, 510,
Seneca, 26 n. 28 n. 61, 196 n. 251 n. 252 n. 518
310 n. 314 n. 424, 516 n.
Serle's Horae Solitariae, 529 Tacitus, 297 n. 456 n. 499 n.
Serpent described, 606 Talebearers, 117, 261, 284, 599
Servant, diligent, 422, 516 Talkativeness, 185
------faithful, 162, 469 Taylor, Bp, 193, 322 n. 346, 353, 368 n.
-----indulged. 579 385 n. 387 n. 526 n. 530 n. 626 n.
-----ruling, 313, 608 --------Dr. Rowland, 485 n.
-----unfaithfull, 107, 487 --------F. Exposition, 22, 41 n. 45 n. 46
-----unruly, 578 Teaching, false, warning against, 331
-----wise, 195, 254 Temporal promises, 92
640 INDEX.
Temptation, 5, 19, 47, 53, 65, 536 War, spiritual, 351
-------preservation from, 17, 67, 160, Warburton, Bp. 193n.
441 Wardlaw, Dr. on EccJesiastes. Pref. vi n.
-------warning against, 5, 64. 89, 617 137 n. 250 n. 504
Theophilus of Alexandria, quoted, 242 Warnings of the Gospel 10, 555
Thief, not excused, 66 Wastefulness, 158, 330, 384, 551
------partner of, 583 Water, cold, refreshment of 480
Thomas a Kempis, 587 Watts, Dr. 51 n.
Thompson. referred to, 328 Ways of God, dark, 281,468,529
Thorns, trial of, 209, 400 Weekly Lectures, 83
Thoughtless addressed, 73, 313, 320, 324 Whichcote's Sermons, 502 n.
Thoughts, sinfulness of, 216, 448 Whisperers, evil of, 24.8
Three weeks in Palestine, 485 n. Wicked, course of, 202 368 528
Thucydides referred to, Pref. iv. ------destruction of, 12 '51 105 107 121
Tillotson, Abp. 59, 404, 479 n.. 136, 156, 192
Tongue, blessing of, 139, 150, 196 ------energy of, 7, 47, 63, 121, 247, 373,
------evil of, 141, 151, 198, 444
------responsibility of, 208 ------enmity of, 164. 565, 588
------wisdom of, 111, 142, 197, 467 ------multiplying of, 573
Tracts for the Times, 464n. 576n. ------responsibility of, 9, 84, 227, 368
Tradition, 73 n. 411, 422, 595 ------sacrifice of, 201, 390
Trapp's Commentary, 31, 67 n. 134 n. 205 n. ------thoughts, 134
223 n. 362, 394 ------words, ibid.
Treasure, durable, 78, 200 ------worthlessness of, 104, 201
--------of the wise, 383 Wife, blessing of, 58, 133, 170, 299, 317,
-------of wickedness, 91 619-626
Trigge's Sermon, 126 n. -------contentious, 133, 316, 515
Trinity, exper. apprehension of, 243 Will, liberty of, 325, 357
Trust in God, 23 William I. his Queen, 623 n.
Truth, perpetuity of, 142 ------- III. ibid. 479 n.
Turbulent described, 456 Wilson, Bp. Sodor and Man, 478
Turenne, Marshal, quoted, 318 n. Wine, evil of, 334
Tyndale quoted, 546 n. Wisdom, Personal, Christ, 8 n. 72 n. 75, 80, 81
-------call of, 8, 72, 80
Understanding, a well-spring, 241 -------attribute of, 35
--------spirit, 73, 529 -------heavenly, 16, 42, 73, 98, 111, 135,
Unfaithfulness, 474 193, 197, 200, 214, 266. 275, 312, 445
Unity of the Church, 297, 507, 612 ------rules for study of, 16, 67
Unsettled professors, 306, 507, 567 Wise men, value of, 200, 565
Uprightness, 96, 113, 122, 171, 237, 545 -------son, 90, 174, 218
Usher, Abp.201 -------servant, 195, 254
Witness, faithful, 141, 172, 391
Vain-glory, 482, 502 ------false, 63, 141,172, 187, 311, 333, 391,
Valentinian,251 459, 473
Vanity, the fruit of sin, 157, 407 Witsius referred to, Pref. v. 606 n.
Venn's, Rev. H. Life, 30, 125n. 127n. 342, Wolsey referred to, 465
571 n. 584n. Wounded spirit, 291
Victory, Christian, 196, 250, 586
Virgil quoted, 47, 61 n. 213 n. 264 n. 291 n. Young quoted, 302 n. 346
319 n. 403 n. 438 u. 480 n. 564 n. 591 n. -------addressed, 18, 20, 77, 160, 163, 289,
606 n. 611 n. 623 n. 627 n. 320, 330, 440, 512, 533, 551, 558
Vision, importance of, 576 -------Proverbs, book for, Pref. xix. 412
Voltaire referred to, 161, 229, 411 n. -------snares for, 18
Vulgate, 55 n. 488 n. ------teachers of, addressed, 20
-------Christian, word to, 46, 95, 173
Walker's Life, referred to, 333 n. Youth, advantage of, 76, 362
Walton's Life of Bp. Sanderson, 620n.
War, advice for, 351 Zealand, New, mission to, 194 n.
-------civil, 291, 526